mirror of
https://github.com/GITenberg/My-Secret-Life-Volumes-I.-to-III.1888-Edition_30360.git
synced 2025-04-30 06:11:40 -04:00
23704 lines
1.4 MiB
23704 lines
1.4 MiB
Project Gutenberg's My Secret Life, Volumes I. to III., by Anonymous
|
|
|
|
This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
|
|
almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
|
|
re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
|
|
with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
|
|
|
|
|
|
Title: My Secret Life, Volumes I. to III.
|
|
1888 Edition
|
|
|
|
Author: Anonymous
|
|
|
|
Release Date: October 30, 2009 [EBook #30360]
|
|
|
|
Language: English
|
|
|
|
Character set encoding: ASCII
|
|
|
|
*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK MY SECRET LIFE, VOLUMES I. TO III. ***
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Produced by An Anonymous Volunteer (This file was produced
|
|
from scans of public domain material produced by Google
|
|
Books)
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
MY SECRET LIFE
|
|
|
|
By An Anonymous Author
|
|
|
|
|
|
Amsterdam 1888
|
|
|
|
|
|
Privately Printed For Subscribers.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
This first reprint of "My Secret Life" is for private distribution
|
|
among connoisseur collectors. It is strictly limited to four hundred
|
|
and seventy five copies, all of which have been subscribed for prior to
|
|
publication.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
INTRODUCTION
|
|
|
|
In 18-- my oldest friend died. We had been at school and college
|
|
together, and our intimacy had never been broken. I was trustee for his
|
|
wife and executor at his death. He died of a lingering illness, during
|
|
which his hopes of living were alternately raised, and depressed. Two
|
|
years before he died, he gave me a huge parcel carefully tied up and
|
|
sealed. Take care of, but don't open this he said: if I get better,
|
|
return it to me, if I die, let no mortal eye but yours see it, and burn
|
|
it.
|
|
|
|
His widow died a year after him. I had well nigh forgoten this packet
|
|
which I had had full three years, when looking for some title deeds
|
|
I came cross it, and opened it, as it was my duty to do. Its contents
|
|
astonished me. The more I read it, the more marvellous it seemed. I
|
|
pondered long on the meaning of his instructions when he gave it to me,
|
|
and kept the manuscript some years, hesitating what to do with it.
|
|
|
|
At length I came to the conclusion knowing his idiosyncracy well, that
|
|
his fear was only lest any one should know who the writer was; and
|
|
feeling that it would be sinful to destroy such a history, I copied the
|
|
manuscript and destroyed the original. He died relationless.
|
|
|
|
No one now can trace the author, no names are mentioned in the book,
|
|
though they were given freely in the margin of his manuscript, and I
|
|
alone know to whom the initials refer. If I have done harm in printing
|
|
it, I have done none to him, have indeed only carried out his evident
|
|
intention, and given to a few a secret history, which bears the impress
|
|
of truth on every page, a contribution to psychology.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
PREFACE
|
|
|
|
I began these memoirs when about twenty-five years old, having from
|
|
youth kept a diary of some sort, which perhaps from habit made me think
|
|
of recording my inner and secret life.
|
|
|
|
When I began it, I had scarcely read a baudy book, none of which
|
|
excepting "Fanny Hill" appeared to me to be truthful, that did, and
|
|
it does so still; the others telling of recherche eroticisms, or
|
|
of inordinate copulative powers, of the strange twists, tricks, and
|
|
fancies, of matured voluptuousness, and philosophical lewedness, seemed
|
|
to my comparative ignorance, as baudy imaginings, or lying inventions,
|
|
not worthy of belief; although I now know by experience, that they may
|
|
be true enough, however eccentric, and improbable, they may appear to
|
|
the uninitiated.
|
|
|
|
Fanny Hill was a woman's experience. Written perhaps by a woman, where
|
|
was a man's, written with equal truth? That book has no baudy word
|
|
in it; but baudy acts need the baudy ejaculations; the erotic, full
|
|
flavored expressions, which even the chastest indulge in, when lust, or
|
|
love, is in its full tide of performance. So I determined to write my
|
|
private life freely as to fact, and in the spirit of the lustful acts
|
|
done by me, or witnessed; it is written therefore with absolute truth,
|
|
and without any regard whatever for what the world calls decency.
|
|
Decency and voluptuousness in its fullest acceptance, cannot exist
|
|
together, one would kill the other; the poetry of copulation I have only
|
|
experienced with a few women, which however neither prevented them, nor
|
|
me from calling a spade, a spade.
|
|
|
|
I began it for my amusement; when many years had been chronicled I tired
|
|
of it and ceased. Some ten years afterwards I met a woman, with whom,
|
|
or with those she helped me do; I did, said, saw, and heard, well nigh
|
|
everything a man and woman could do with their genitals, and began to
|
|
narrate those events, when quite fresh in my memory, a great variety of
|
|
incidents extending over four years or more. Then I lost sight of her,
|
|
and my amorous amusements for a while were simpler, but that part of my
|
|
history was complete.
|
|
|
|
After a little while, I set to work to describe the events of the
|
|
intervening years of my youth, and early middle age; which included most
|
|
of my gallant intrigues and adventures of a frisky order; but not the
|
|
more lascivious ones of later years. Then an illness caused me to think
|
|
seriously of burning the whole. But not liking to destroy my labor, I
|
|
laid it aside again for a couple of years. Then another illness gave
|
|
me long uninterrupted leisure; I read my manuscript, and filled in some
|
|
occurrences which I had forgotten, but which my diary enabled me to
|
|
place in their proper order. This will account for the difference in
|
|
style in places, which I now observe; and a very needless repetition,
|
|
of voluptuous descriptions, which I had forgotten, had been before
|
|
described; that however is inevitable, for human copulation, vary the
|
|
incidents leading up to it as you may, is, and must be, at all times,
|
|
much the same affair.
|
|
|
|
Then for the first time, I thought I would print my work that had been
|
|
commenced more than twenty years before, but hesitated. I then had
|
|
entered my maturity, and on to the most lascivious portion of my life,
|
|
the events were disjointed, and fragmentary and my amusement was to
|
|
describe them just after they occurred. Most frequently the next day I
|
|
wrote all down with much prolixity, since, I have much abbreviated it.
|
|
|
|
I had from youth an excellent memory, but about sexual matters a
|
|
wonderful one. Women were the pleasure of my life. I loved cunt, but
|
|
also she who had it; I like the woman I fucked and not simply the cunt
|
|
I fucked, and therein is a great difference. I recollect even now in a
|
|
degree which astonishes me, the face, color, stature, thighs, backside,
|
|
and cunt, of well nigh every woman I have had, who was not a mere
|
|
casual; and even of some who were. The clothes they wore, the houses and
|
|
rooms in which I had them, were before me mentally, as I wrote, the way
|
|
the bed, and furniture were placed, the side of the room the windows
|
|
were on, I remembered perfectly; and all the important events I can fix
|
|
as to time, sufficiently nearly by reference to my diary, in which the
|
|
contemporaneous circumstances of my life are recorded.
|
|
|
|
I recollect also largely what we said, and did, and generally our baudy
|
|
amusements. Where I fail to have done so, I have left description blank,
|
|
rather than attempt to make a story coherent by inserting what was
|
|
merely probable. I could not now account for my course of action, nor
|
|
why I did this, or said that, my conduct seems strange, foolish, absurd,
|
|
very frequently, that of some women, equally so, but I can but state
|
|
what did occur.
|
|
|
|
In a few cases, I have for what even seems to me very strange, suggested
|
|
reasons, or causes, but only where the facts seem by themselves to be
|
|
very improbable, but have not exaggerated anything willingly. When I
|
|
have named the number of times I have fucked a woman in my youth, I may
|
|
occasionally be in error, it is difficult to be quite accurate on such
|
|
points after a lapse of time. But as before said in many cases the
|
|
incidents were written down a few weeks and often within a few
|
|
days after they occurred. I do not attempt to pose as a Hercules in
|
|
copulation, there are quite sufficient braggarts on that head, much
|
|
intercourse with gay women, and doctors, makes me doubt the wonderful
|
|
feats in coition, some men tell of.
|
|
|
|
I have one fear about publicity, it is that of having done a few things
|
|
by curiosity and impulse (temporary abberations), which even professed
|
|
libertines may cry fie on. There are plenty who will cry fie who have
|
|
done all and worse than I have and habitually, but crying out at the
|
|
sins of others was always a way of hiding one's own iniquity. Yet from
|
|
that cause perhaps no mortal eye but mine, will see this history. The
|
|
christian name of the servants mentioned are generally the true ones,
|
|
the other names mostly false, the phonetically resembling the true
|
|
ones. Initials nearly always the true ones. In most cases the woman they
|
|
represent are dead or lost to me. Streets and baudy houses named are
|
|
nearly always correct. Most of the houses named are now closed or pulled
|
|
down; but any middle aged man about town would recognize them. Where a
|
|
road, house, room, or garden is described, the description is exactly
|
|
true; even to the situation of a tree, chair, bed, sofa, pisspot. The
|
|
district is sometimes given wrongly; but it matters little whether
|
|
Brompton be substituted for Hackney, or Camden Town for Walworth. Where
|
|
however owing to the incidents it is needful, the places of amusement
|
|
are given correctly. The Tower, and Argyle rooms, for example. All this
|
|
is done to prevent giving pain to some, perhaps still living, for I have
|
|
no malice to gratify.
|
|
|
|
I have mystified family affairs, but if I say I had ten cousins, when I
|
|
had but six, or that one aunt's house was in Surrey instead of Kent, or
|
|
in Lancashire; it breaks the clue and cannot matter to the reader.
|
|
|
|
But my doings with man and woman are as true as gospel. If I say that
|
|
I saw, or did, that with a cousin male, or female, it was with a cousin
|
|
and no mere acquaintance; if with a servant, it was with a servant; if
|
|
with a casual acquaintance, it is equally true. Nor if I say I had that
|
|
woman, and did this or that with her, or felt or did aught else with a
|
|
man, is there a word of untruth excepting as to the place at which the
|
|
incidents occurred. But even those are mostly correctly given, this is
|
|
intended to be a true history, and not a lie.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
SECOND PREFACE
|
|
|
|
Some years have passed away since I penned the foregoing, and it is not
|
|
printed. I have since gone through abnormal phases of amatory life, have
|
|
done and seen things, had tastes and letches which years ago I thought
|
|
were the dreams of erotic mad-men; these are all described, the
|
|
manuscript has grown into unmanageable bulk, shall it, can it be
|
|
printed? What will be said or thought of me, what become of the
|
|
manuscript if found when I am dead, better to destroy the whole, it has
|
|
fulfilled its purpose in amusing me, now let it go to the flames!
|
|
|
|
I have read my manuscript, through what reminiscences I had actually
|
|
forgotten some of the early ones; how true the detail strikes me as I
|
|
read of my early experiences; had it not been written then, it never
|
|
could have been written now, has anybody but myself faithfully made such
|
|
a record? It would be a sin to burn all this, whatever society may
|
|
say it is but a narrative of human life, perhaps the every day life of
|
|
thousands, if the confession could be had.
|
|
|
|
What strikes me as curious in reading it, is the monotony of the course
|
|
I have pursued toward women who were not of the gay class; it has been
|
|
as similar, and repetitive as fucking itself; do all men act so, does
|
|
every man kiss, coax, hint smuttily, then talk baudily, snatch a feel,
|
|
smell his fingers, assault, and win, exactly as I have done? Is every
|
|
woman offended, say no, then oh! blush, be angry, refuse, close her
|
|
thighs, after a struggle open them, and yield to her lust as mine have
|
|
done? A conclave of whores telling the truth, and of Romish Priests,
|
|
could alone settle the point. Have all men had the strange letches which
|
|
late in life have enraptured me, though in early days the idea of them
|
|
revolted me? I can never know this, my experience if printed may enable
|
|
others to compare as I cannot.
|
|
|
|
Shall it be burnt or printed? How many years have passed in this
|
|
indecision, why fear; it is for others' good and not my own if
|
|
preserved.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
VOLUME ONE
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER I.
|
|
|
|
Earliest recollections.--An erotic nurse-maid.--Ladies
|
|
abed.--My cock.--A frisky governess.--Cousin Fred.--Thoughts
|
|
on pudend.--A female pedler.--Baudy pictures.--A naked
|
|
baby.
|
|
|
|
My earliest recollections of things sexual are of what I think must have
|
|
occurred some time between my age of five, and eight years. I tell of
|
|
them just as I recollect them, without attempt to fill in what seems
|
|
probable.
|
|
|
|
She was I suppose my nursemaid. I recollect that she sometimes held my
|
|
little prick when I piddled, was it needful to do so? I don't know. She
|
|
attempted to pull my propuce back, when, and how often I know not. But I
|
|
am clear at seeing the prick tip show, of feeling pain, of yelling out,
|
|
of her soothing me, and of this occurring more than once. She comes to
|
|
my memory as a shortish, fattish young female and that she often felt my
|
|
prick.
|
|
|
|
One day, it must have been late in the afternoon, for the sun was low,
|
|
but shining--how strange I should recollect that so clearly--but I have
|
|
always recollected sunshine.--I had been walking out with her, toys had
|
|
been bought me, we were both carrying them, she stopped and talked to
|
|
some men, one caught hold of her and kissed her, I felt frightened, it
|
|
was near a coach stand, for hackney coaches were there, cabs were not
|
|
then known, she put what toys she had on to my hands, and went into a
|
|
house with a man. What house? I don't know. Probably a public-house, for
|
|
there was one not far from a coach stand, and not far from our house.
|
|
She came out and we went home.
|
|
|
|
Then I was in our house in a carpeted room with her; it could not have
|
|
been the nursery I know, sitting on the floor with my toys, so was she;
|
|
she played with me and the toys, we rolled over each other on the floor
|
|
in fun, I have a recollection of having done that with others, and of my
|
|
father and mother, being in that room at times with me playing.
|
|
|
|
She kissed me, got out my cock, and played with it, took one of my hands
|
|
and put it underneath her clothes. It felt rough there, that's all, she
|
|
moved my little hand violently there then she felt my cock and again
|
|
hurt me, I recollect seeing the red tip appear as she pulled down the
|
|
prepuce, and my crying out, and her quieting me.
|
|
|
|
Then of her being on her back, of my striding across or between her
|
|
legs, and her heaving me up and down, and my riding cock-horse and that
|
|
it was not the first time I had done so; then I fell flat on her, she
|
|
heaved me up and down and squeezed me till I cried. I scrambled of! of
|
|
her, and in doing so, my hand, or foot went through a drum, I had been
|
|
drumming on, at which I cried.
|
|
|
|
As I sat crying on the floor besides her, I recollect her naked legs,
|
|
and one of her hands shaking violently beneath her petticoats, and of my
|
|
having some vague notion that the woman was ill, I felt timid. All was
|
|
for a moment quiet, her hand ceased, still she lay on her back, and I
|
|
saw her thighs, then turning round she drew me to her, kissed me and
|
|
tranquillised me. As she turned round I saw one side of her backside, I
|
|
leant over it and laid my face on it, crying about my broken drum, the
|
|
evening sunbeams made it all bright, it had at some time been raining I
|
|
recollect.
|
|
|
|
I expect I must have seen her cunt, as I sat beside her naked thigh.
|
|
Looking towards her and crying about my broken drum, and when I saw
|
|
her hand moving no doubt she was frigging. Yet I have not the slightest
|
|
recollection of her cunt, nor of anything more than I have told. But of
|
|
having seen her naked thighs, I am certain, I seem often to have seen
|
|
them, but cannot feel certain of that.
|
|
|
|
The oddest thing is, that whilst I early recollected more or less
|
|
clearly what took place two or three years later on, and ever
|
|
afterwards, on sexual matters; and what I said, heard, and did, and
|
|
nearly consecutively, this my first recollection of cock, and cunt,
|
|
escaped my memory for full twenty years.
|
|
|
|
Then one day talking with the husband of one of my cousins, about
|
|
infantine incidents he told me something which had occurred to him in
|
|
his childhood; and suddenly, almost as quickly as a magic lantern throws
|
|
a picture on to a wall, this which had occurred to me came into my mind.
|
|
I have since thought over it a hundred times, but cannot recollect one
|
|
circumstance relating to the adventure more than I have told.
|
|
|
|
My mother had been giving advice to my cousin about nursemaids. They
|
|
were not to be trusted. "When Walter was a little fellow, she had
|
|
dismissed a filthy creature, whom she had detected in abominable
|
|
practices with one of her children," what they were my mother never
|
|
disclosed. She hated indelicacies of any sort, and usually cut short
|
|
allusion to them by saying, "It's not a subject to talk about, let's
|
|
talk of something else." My cousin told her husband, and when we
|
|
were together he told me, and his own experiences, and then all the
|
|
circumstances came into my mind, just as I have told here.
|
|
|
|
I could not, as the reader will hear, thoroughly uncover my prick tip
|
|
without pain, till I was sixteen years old nor well then when quite
|
|
stiff unless it went up a cunt. My nursemaid I expect thought this
|
|
curious, and tried to remedy the error in my make, and hurt me. My
|
|
mother, by her extremely delicate feeling, shut herself off from much
|
|
knowledge of the world, which was the reason why she had such implicit
|
|
belief in my virtue, until I had seen twenty-two years, and kept, or
|
|
nearly so, a French harlot.
|
|
|
|
I imagine I must have slept with this nurse-maid, and certainly I did
|
|
with some female, in a room called the Chinese room, on account of the
|
|
color of the wall papers. I recollect a female being there in bed with
|
|
me, that I awoke one morning feeling very hot, and stifled, and that my
|
|
head was against flesh; that flesh was all about me, my mouth and nose
|
|
being embedded in hair, or some thing scrubby, which had a hot peculiar
|
|
odour. I have a recollection of a pair of hands suddenly clutching,
|
|
and dragging me up on to the pillow, and of daylight then. I have no
|
|
recollection of a word being uttered. This incident I could not long
|
|
have forgoten, having told my cousin Fred, of it before my father died.
|
|
He used to say it was the governess. I suppose, I must have slipped down
|
|
in my sleep, till my head laid against her belly, and cunt.
|
|
|
|
Some years afterwards when I got the smell of another woman's cunt on my
|
|
fingers, it at once reminded me of the smell I had under my nose in
|
|
the bed; and I knew at a flash, that I had smelt cunt before, and
|
|
recollected where, but no more.
|
|
|
|
How long after, I have no idea, but it seems like two or three years,
|
|
there was a dance in our house, several relations were to stop the night
|
|
with us, the house was full, here was bustle, the shifting of beds, the
|
|
governess going into a servant's room to sleep, and so on. Some female
|
|
cousins were amongst those stopping with us; going into the drawing-room
|
|
suddenly, I heard my mother saying to one of my aunts: "Walter is after
|
|
all but a child, and its only for one night." Hish-hish both said, as
|
|
they saw me, then my mother sent me out of the room, wondering why they
|
|
were talking about me, and feeling curious, and annoyed at being sent
|
|
away.
|
|
|
|
I had been in the habit then of sleeping in a room, either with another
|
|
bed in it, or close to a room leading out of it, with another bed, I
|
|
cannot recollect which; I used to call out to whoever might have been
|
|
there when I was in bed: for being timid, the door was kept open for me.
|
|
It could not have been a man who slept there, for the men servants slept
|
|
on the ground-floor, I have seen their beds there.
|
|
|
|
The night I speak of, my bed was taken out, and put into the Chinese
|
|
paper room, one of the maids who helped to move it, sat on the pot and
|
|
piddled; I heard the rattle, and as far as I can recollect it was the
|
|
first time I noticed anything of the sort, tho I recollect well seeing
|
|
women putting on their stockings and feeling the thigh of one of them
|
|
just above her knee. I was kneeling on the floor at the time, and had a
|
|
trumpet, which she took angrily out of my hand soon afterwards, because
|
|
I made a noise.
|
|
|
|
I recollect the dance, that I danced with a tall lady, that my mother
|
|
contrary to custom as it seems to me, put me to bed herself, and that it
|
|
was before the dance was over, for I felt angry and tearful at being put
|
|
to bed so early. My mother closed the curtains quite tightly all round
|
|
a small four post bed, and told me, I was to lie quietly, and not get up
|
|
till she came to me in the morning; not to speak, nor undo my curtains,
|
|
nor to get out of bed, or I should disturb Mr. and Mrs. ------ who were
|
|
to sleep in the big bed; that it would make them angry if I did. I am
|
|
almost certain she named a lady and her husband, who were going to stay
|
|
with us; but can't be sure. A man then frightened me more than a woman,
|
|
my mother I dare say knew that.
|
|
|
|
I dare say, for it was the same the greater part of my life, that I went
|
|
to sleep directly I laid down, usually never awaking till the morning.
|
|
Certainly I must have gone fast asleep that night; perhaps I had had
|
|
a little wine given me, who knows; I have a sudden consciousness of a
|
|
light, and hear some one say, he is fast asleep, don't make a noise;
|
|
it seemed like my mother's voice. I rouse myself and listen, the
|
|
circumstances are strange, the room strange, it excites me, and I rise
|
|
on my knees, I don't know whether naturally, or cautiously, or
|
|
how; perhaps cautiously, because I fear angering my mother, and the
|
|
gentleman, perhaps a sexual instinct makes me curious, though that
|
|
is not probable. I have not in fact the slightest conception of the
|
|
actuating motive, but I sat up and listened. There were two females
|
|
talking, laughing quietly, and moving about, I heard a rattling in the
|
|
pot, then a rest, then again a rattle and knew the sound of piddling.
|
|
How long I listened, I don't know, I might have dozed and awakened
|
|
again, I saw lights moved about; then I crawled on my knees, with fear
|
|
that I was doing wrong, and pushed a little aside the curtains where
|
|
they met at the bottom of the bed. I recollect their being quite tight
|
|
by the tucking in and that I could not easily make an opening to peep
|
|
through.
|
|
|
|
There was a girl, or young woman with her back to me, brushing her hair,
|
|
another was standing by her, one took a night gown off the chair, shook
|
|
it out, and dropped it over her head, after drawing off her chemise. As
|
|
this was done I saw some black at the bottom of her belly, a fear came
|
|
over me, that I was doing wrong and should be punished if found looking,
|
|
and I laid down wondering at it all, I fancy I again slept.
|
|
|
|
Then there was a shuffling about, and again it seems as if I heard a
|
|
noise like piddling, the light was put out, I felt agitated, I heard the
|
|
women kiss, one say hish! you will wake that brat, then one said listen,
|
|
then I heard kisses and breathing like some one sighing, I thought some
|
|
one must be ill and felt alarmed and must then have fallen asleep. I do
|
|
not know who the women were, they must have been my cousins, or young
|
|
ladies who had come to the dance. That was the first time I recollect
|
|
seeing the hair of a cunt, though I must have seen it before, for I
|
|
recollect at times a female (most likely a nursemaid) stand naked, but
|
|
don't recollect noticing anything black between her thighs, nor did I
|
|
think about it at all afterwards.
|
|
|
|
In the morning my mother came and took me up to her room, where she
|
|
dressed me, as she left the room, she said to the females in bed, they
|
|
were not to hurry up, she had only fetched Wattie.
|
|
|
|
But all this only came vividly to my mind when, a few years after, I
|
|
began to talk about women with my cousin, and we told each other all we
|
|
had seen, and heard, about females.
|
|
|
|
Until I was about twelve years old I never went to school, there was
|
|
a governess in the house who instructed me, and the other children, my
|
|
father was nearly always at home. I was carefully kept from the grooms
|
|
and other men servants; once I recollect getting to the stable yard and
|
|
seeing a stallion mount a mare, his prick go right out of sight in what
|
|
appeared to me to be the mares bottom, of father appearing and calling
|
|
out "What does that boy do there," and my being hustled away. I had
|
|
scarcely a boy acquaintance excepting among my cousins, and therefore
|
|
did not learn as much about sexual matters, as boys early do at schools.
|
|
I did not know what the stallion was doing. I could have had no notion
|
|
of it then, nor did I think about it.
|
|
|
|
The next thing I clearly recollected, was one of my male cousins
|
|
stopping with us, we walked out and when piddling together against
|
|
a hedge, his saying: "show me your cock, Walter, and I will show you
|
|
mine." We stood and examined each others cocks, and for the first time,
|
|
I became conscious, that I could not get my foreskin easily back, like
|
|
other boys. I pulled his backwards and forwards. He hurt me, laughed
|
|
and sneered at me, another boy came and I think another, we all compared
|
|
cocks, and mine was the only one which would not unskin, they jeered me,
|
|
I burst into tears, and went away, thinking there was something wrong
|
|
with me, and was ashamed to show my cock again, then I set to work
|
|
earnestly to try to pull the foreskin back, but always desisted fearing
|
|
the pain, for I was very sensitive.
|
|
|
|
My cousin then told me that girls had no cock, but only a hole they
|
|
piddled out of, we were always talking about them, but I don't recollect
|
|
the word cunt, nor that I attached any lewd idea to a girl's piddling
|
|
hole, or to their cocks being flat, an expression heard I think at the
|
|
same period. It remained only in my mind that my cock and the girl's
|
|
hole were to piddle out of, and nothing more, I cannot be certain about
|
|
my age at this time.
|
|
|
|
Afterwards I went to that uncle's house often, my cousin Fred was to be
|
|
put to school, and we talked a great deal more about girls' cocks which
|
|
began to interest me much. He had never seen one he said, but he knew
|
|
that they had two holes, one for bogging and the other to piddle from.
|
|
They sit down to piddle said he, they don't piddle against a wall as we
|
|
do, but that I must have known already, afterwards I felt very curious
|
|
about the matter.
|
|
|
|
One day, one of his sisters left the room where we were sitting, she
|
|
is going to piddle, he said to me. We sneaked into a bed room of one of
|
|
them one day, and gravely looked into the pot to see what piddle was in
|
|
it. Whether we expected to find anything different from what there was
|
|
in our own chamber pot, I do not know. When talking about these things
|
|
my cousin would twiddle his cock. We wondered how the piddle came out,
|
|
if they wetted their legs and if the hole was near the bum hole, or
|
|
where; one day Fred and I pissed against each others cocks, and thought
|
|
it excellent fun.
|
|
|
|
I recollect being very curious indeed about the way girls piddled after
|
|
this, and seeing them piddle became a taste I have kept all my life. I
|
|
would listen at the bed room doors, if I could get near them unobserved,
|
|
when my mother, sister, the governess, or a servant went in, hoping to
|
|
hear the rattle and often succeeded: it was accompanied by no sexual
|
|
desire, or idea, as far as I can recollect; I had no cockstand, and am
|
|
sure, that I then did not know that the women had a hole called a cunt,
|
|
and used it for fucking. I can recall no idea of the sort, it was simple
|
|
curiosity to know something about those, whom I instinctively felt
|
|
were made differently from myself. What sort of a hole could it be I
|
|
wondered. Was it large? Was it round? Why did they squat instead of
|
|
stand up, like men, my curiosity became intense.
|
|
|
|
How long after this the following took place, I can't say, but my cock
|
|
was bigger. I have that impression very distinctly.
|
|
|
|
One day, there were people in one of the sitting rooms, where my mother
|
|
and father were I don't know; they were not in the room, and were most
|
|
likely out. There were one or two of my cousins, some youths, my big
|
|
sister and one brother, besides others, our governess, and her sister,
|
|
who was stopping with us, and sleeping in the same room with her. I
|
|
recollect both going into the bed room together, it was next to mine.
|
|
It was evening, we had sweet wine, cake, and snap-dragon, and played
|
|
at something, at which all sat in a circle on the floor. I was very
|
|
ticklish, it nearly sent me into fits, we tickled each other on the
|
|
floor. There was much fun, and noise, the governess tickled me, and I
|
|
tickled her. She said as I was taken to bed, or rather went, as I then
|
|
did by myself, "I'll go and tickle you." Now at that time when in bed, a
|
|
servant, or my mother, or the governess took away the light, and closed
|
|
the door; for I was still frightened to get into bed in the dark, and
|
|
used to call out, "Mamma, I'm going to get into bed." Then they fetched
|
|
the light, they wished to stop this timidity, often scolded me about it,
|
|
and made me undress myself, by myself, to cure me of it.
|
|
|
|
I expect the other children had been put to bed. My mother keeping all
|
|
the younger ones in the room near her. The nursery was also upstairs, my
|
|
room, as said, was next to the governess.
|
|
|
|
When in bed, I called out for some one to put out the light, up came the
|
|
governess and her sister. She began to tickle me, so did her sister,
|
|
I laughed, screeched, and tried to tickle them. One of them closed the
|
|
door and then came back to tickle me. I kicked all the clothes off, and
|
|
was nearly naked, I begged them to desist, felt their hands on my naked
|
|
flesh, and am quite sure, that one of them touched my prick more than
|
|
once, though it might have been done accidentally. At last I wriggled
|
|
off the bed, my night-gown up to my armpits, and dropped with my naked
|
|
bum on to the floor, whilst they tickled me still, and laughed at my
|
|
wriggling about, and yelling.
|
|
|
|
Then what induced me, heaven alone knows; it may have been what I had
|
|
heard about the piddling-hole of a woman, or curiosity, or instinct, I
|
|
don't know; but I caught hold of the governess' leg as she was trying to
|
|
get me up on to the bed again, saying, "that will do, my dear boy, get
|
|
into bed, and let me take away the light." I would not; the other lady
|
|
helped to lift me, I pushed my hands up the petticoats of the governess,
|
|
felt the hair of her cunt, and that there was something warm, and moist,
|
|
between her thighs. She let me drop on to the floor, and jumped away
|
|
from me. I must have been clinging to her thigh, with both hands up her
|
|
petticoats, and one between her thighs, she cried out loudly--oh!
|
|
|
|
Then slap-slap-slap, in quick succession, came her hand against my head,
|
|
"You...rude...bad...boy," said she slapping me at each word, "I've a
|
|
good mind to tell your mamma, get into bed this instant," and into bed
|
|
I got without a word. She blew out the light, and left the room with her
|
|
sister, leaving me in a dreadful funk. I scarcely knew that I had done
|
|
wrong, yet had some vague notion, that feeling about her thighs was
|
|
punishable; the soft hairy place my hand had touched, impressed me with
|
|
wonder, I kept thinking there was no cock there, and felt a sort of
|
|
delight at what I had done.
|
|
|
|
I heard them then talking, and laughing loudly, thru the partition.
|
|
"They are talking about me, oh if they tell mamma, oh! what did I do it
|
|
for?" Trembling with fear, I jumped out of bed, opened my door, and
|
|
went to theirs listening; theirs was ajar,--heard: "right up between my
|
|
thighs, felt it! he must have felt it; ah! ah! ah! would you ever
|
|
have thought the little beast would have done such a thing." They both
|
|
laughed heartily. "Did you see his little thing?" said one. "Shut the
|
|
door, it's not shut;"--breathless I got back to my room, and into bed,
|
|
and laying there, heard them through the partition roaring with laughter
|
|
again.
|
|
|
|
That is the first time in my life, I recollect passing an all but
|
|
sleepless night. The dread of being told about, and dread at what I
|
|
had done, kept me awake. I heard the two women talking for a long time.
|
|
Mixed with my dread was a wonder at the hair, and the soft, moist feel,
|
|
I had had for an instant, on some part of my hand. I knew I had felt the
|
|
hidden part of a female, where the piddle came from, and that is all
|
|
I did think about it, that I know of, I have no recollection of a lewd
|
|
sensation, but of a curious sort of delight only.
|
|
|
|
It must have been from this time, that my curiosity about the female
|
|
form strengthened, but there was nothing sensual in it. I was fond of
|
|
kissing, for my mother remarked it; when a female cousin, or any female
|
|
kissed me, I would throw my arms round them, and keep on kissing. My
|
|
aunts used to laugh, my mother corrected me, and told me it was rude. I
|
|
used to say to the servants, kiss me. One day I heard my godfather say:
|
|
"Walter knows a pretty girl from an ugly one doesn't he?"
|
|
|
|
I had a dread of meeting the governess, at breakfast, watched her, and
|
|
saw her laugh at her sister, I watched my mother for some days after,
|
|
and at length said to the governess, who had punished me for something.
|
|
"Don't tell mamma." "I have nothing to tell about, Walter," she
|
|
replied, "and don't know what you mean." I began to tell her what was on
|
|
my mind. "What's the child talking about, you are dreaming, some stupid
|
|
boy has been putting things into your head, your papa will thrash
|
|
you, if you talk like that." "Why you came and tickled me," said I. "I
|
|
tickled you a little when I put your light out," said she, "be quiet."
|
|
I felt stupified, and suppose the affair must have passed away from
|
|
my mind for a time, but I told my cousin Fred about it afterwards. He
|
|
thought I must have been dreaming, and I began to wonder if it really
|
|
had occurred, I never thought much about it until I began to recall my
|
|
childhood for this history.
|
|
|
|
I must have been twelve years old, when I went to an uncle's in Surrey,
|
|
and became a close friend of my cousin Fred, a very devil from his
|
|
cradle, and of whom much more will be told: before then I had only seen
|
|
him at intervals. We were then allowed, and it seems to me not before
|
|
that time, to go out by ourselves. We talked boyish baudiness. "Ain't
|
|
you green," said he, "a girl's hole isn't called a cock, it's a cunt,
|
|
they fuck with it," and then he told me all he knew. I don't think I had
|
|
heard that before, but can't be sure.
|
|
|
|
From that time a new train of ideas came into my head. I had a vague
|
|
idea, though not a belief, that a cock and cunt, were not made for
|
|
pissing only. Fred treated me as a simpleton in these matters, and was
|
|
always calling me an ass; I have quite a painful recollection of my
|
|
inferiority to him, in such things, and of begging him to instruct me.
|
|
"They make children that way," said Fred. "You come up and we will ask
|
|
the old nurse, where children come from, and she'll say 'out of the
|
|
parsley-bed,' but it's all a lie." We went and asked her in a casual
|
|
sort of way. She replied, "the parsley-bed," and laughed. The nurse at
|
|
my house told me the same, when I asked afterwards about my mother's
|
|
last baby. "Ain't they liars?" Fred remarked to me, "it comes out of
|
|
their cunts, and it's made by fucking."
|
|
|
|
We both desired to see women piddling, though both must have before seen
|
|
them at it often enough. Walking near the market-town with him just at
|
|
the outskirts, and looking up a side-road, we saw a pedler woman
|
|
squat down and piss. We stopped short and looked at her: she was a
|
|
short-petticoated, thick-legged, middle-aged woman; the piss ran off in
|
|
a copious stream, and there we stood grinning. "Be off, be off, what are
|
|
you standing grinning at, yer dam'd young fools," cried the woman, "be
|
|
off, or I'll heave a stone at yer," and she pissed on. We moved a few
|
|
steps back, but keeping our face towards her, Fred stooped, and put his
|
|
head down. "I can see it coming," said he jeeringly. He was rude from
|
|
his infancy, bold in baudiness to the utmost, had the impudence of the
|
|
devil. The stream ceased, the woman rose up swearing, took up a big
|
|
flint and threw it at us. "I'll tell on yer," she cried. "I know yer,
|
|
wait till I see yer again." She had a large basket of crockery for sale,
|
|
it was put down in the main-road at the angle; she had just turned round
|
|
into the side lane to piss. We ran off, and when well away, turned
|
|
round and shouted at her, "I saw your cunt," Fred bawled out;--she
|
|
flung another stone. Fred took up one, threw it, and it crashed into the
|
|
crockery, the woman began to chase us, off we bolted across the fields
|
|
home. She could not follow us that way; it was an eventful day for us.
|
|
I recollect feeling full of envy at Fred's having seen her cunt.
|
|
Though writing now, and having in my mind's eye, exactly how the woman
|
|
squatted, and the way her petticoats hung, I am sure he never did see
|
|
it; it was brag when he said he had, but we were always talking about
|
|
girls' cunts, the desire to see one was great, and I then believed that
|
|
he had seen the pedlar woman's.
|
|
|
|
Then one of Fred's companions showed us a bawdy picture, it was
|
|
coloured. I wondered at the cunt being a long sort of gash, I had an
|
|
idea that it was round, like an arse-hole. Fred told his friend I was
|
|
an ass, but I could not get the idea of a cunt, not being a round hole
|
|
quite out of my head, until I had fucked a woman. We were all anxious
|
|
to get the picture, and tossed up for it, but neither I nor Fred got it,
|
|
some other boy did.
|
|
|
|
Soon after that, Fred came to stop with us and our talk was always about
|
|
women's privates, our curiosity became intense. I had a little sister
|
|
about nine months old, who was in the nursery. Fred incited me to look
|
|
at her cunt, if I could manage it. The two nurses came down in turns, to
|
|
the servants dinner. I was often in the nursery, and soon after Fred's
|
|
suggestion, was there one day, when the oldest nurse said: "Stop here,
|
|
master Walter, while I go downstairs, for a couple of minutes, Mary (the
|
|
other nurse) will be up directly, and don't make a noise." My little
|
|
sister was lying on the bed asleep. "Yes, I'll wait." Down went nurse,
|
|
leaving the door open; quick as lightning, I threw up the infant's
|
|
clothes, saw her little slit, and put my finger quite gently on it, she
|
|
was laying on her back most conveniently. I pulled one leg away to see
|
|
better, the child awakened and began crying, I heard footsteps and had
|
|
barely time to pull down her clothes, when the under nursemaid came in.
|
|
I only had a momentary glimpse, of the outside of the little quim, for
|
|
I was not a minute in the room with the child by myself altogether, and
|
|
was fearful of being caught all the time I was looking.
|
|
|
|
There must have been something in my face, for the nursemaid said: "What
|
|
it the matter, what have you been doing to the baby?" Nothing. "Yes,
|
|
you are coloring up, now tell me." "Nothing. I have done nothing." "You
|
|
wakened your sister." "No, I have not." The girl laid hold of me, and
|
|
gave me a little shake. "I'll tell your mamma if you don't tell me, what
|
|
is it now?" "No, I have done nothing, I was looking out of the window
|
|
when she began to cry." "You're telling a story, I see you are," said
|
|
the nursemaid; and off I went, after being impudent to her.
|
|
|
|
I told Fred and he tried the same dodge, but don't recollect whether
|
|
he succeeded or not. His sisters were somewhat older, and we began to
|
|
scheme how to see their cunts, when I was on a visit to his mother's
|
|
(my aunt,) which was to come off in the holidays. The look of the little
|
|
child's cunt, as I described it, convinced him that the picture was
|
|
correct, and that a cunt was a long slit, and not a round hole. That
|
|
cast doubt on males putting their pricks into them, and we clung somehow
|
|
to the idea of a round hole, and we quarrelled about it.
|
|
|
|
It must have been about this time, that I was walking with my father,
|
|
and read something that was written with chalk, on the walls. I asked
|
|
him what it meant. He said he did not know, that none but low people,
|
|
and blackguards wrote on walls; and it was not worth while noticing such
|
|
things. I was conscious that I had done wrong somehow, but did not know
|
|
exactly what. When I went out, which I was now allowed to do for short
|
|
distances by myself, I copied what was on the walls, to tell Fred, it
|
|
was foul, baudy language of some sort, but the only thing we understood
|
|
at all, was the word cunt.
|
|
|
|
Just then, being out with some boys, we saw two dogs fucking. I have
|
|
no recollection of seeing dogs doing that before. We closed round them,
|
|
yelling with delight as they stuck rump to rump, then one boy said that
|
|
was what men and women did, and I asked, did they stick together so, a
|
|
boy replied that they did; others denied it, and all the remainder of
|
|
the day, some of us discussed this; the impression left on my mind is,
|
|
that it appeared to be very nasty; but it seemed at the same time to
|
|
confirm me in the belief, that men put their pricks up into women's
|
|
holes, about which I seemed at that time to have grave doubts.
|
|
|
|
After this time my recollection of events is clearer, and I can tell not
|
|
only what took place, but better what I heard, said, and thought.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER II.
|
|
|
|
My godfather.--At Hampton-Court.--My aunt's backside.--
|
|
Public baths.--My cousins' cunts.--Haymaking frolics.--
|
|
Family difficulties.--School amusements.--A masturbating
|
|
relative.--Romance and sentiment.
|
|
|
|
My godfather (whose fortune I afterwards inherited) was very fond of me;
|
|
somewhere about this time he used perpetually to be saying, "When you
|
|
get to school, don't you follow any of the tricks yourself, that other
|
|
boys do, or you will die in a mad-house; lots of boys do." And he told
|
|
me some horrible tales; it was done in a mysterious way. I felt there
|
|
was a hidden meaning, and not having knowledge of what it was, asked
|
|
him. I should know fast enough, said he, but mark his words. He repeated
|
|
this so often, that it sunk deeply into my mind, and made me uneasy,
|
|
something was to happen to me, if I did something--I did not know
|
|
what--it was intended as a caution against frigging, and it had good
|
|
effect on me I am sure in various ways in the after time.
|
|
|
|
One day talking with Fred, I recollected what I had done to the
|
|
governess. I had kept it to myself all along for fear. "What a lie,"
|
|
said he. "I did really." "Oh! ain't you a liar," he reiterated, "I'll ask
|
|
Miss Granger." The same governess was with us then.
|
|
|
|
At this remark of his, an absolute terror came over me, the dread was
|
|
something so terrible, that the recollection of it is now painful. "Oh
|
|
don't, pray don't, Fred," I said, "oh if Papa should hear!" He kept on
|
|
saying he would. I was too young to see the improbability of his doing
|
|
anything of the sort. "If you do, I'll tell him what we did when the
|
|
pedler woman piddled." He did not care. "Now, it's a lie, isn't it, you
|
|
did not feel her cunt?" In fear, I confessed it was a lie. "I know it
|
|
was," said Fred. He had kept me in a state of terror about the affair
|
|
for days, till I told a lie, to get quit of the subject.
|
|
|
|
I was evidently always secret, even then, about anything amorous,
|
|
excepting with Fred (as will be seen) and have continued so all my
|
|
life. I rarely bragged, or told anyone of my doings; perhaps this little
|
|
affair with the governess, was a lesson to me, and confirmed me in a
|
|
habit natural to me from my infancy. I have kept to myself everything I
|
|
did with the opposite sex.
|
|
|
|
We now frequently examined our pricks, and Fred jeered me so about my
|
|
prepuce being tight, that I resolved that no other boy should see
|
|
it; and though I did not keep strictly to that intention, it left a
|
|
deep-seated mortification on me. I used to look at my prick with a
|
|
sense of shame, and pull the prepuce up and down, as far as I could
|
|
constantly, to loosen it, and would treat other boys' cocks in the same
|
|
way, if they would let me, without expecting me to make a return; but
|
|
the time was approaching when I was to learn much more.
|
|
|
|
One of my uncles, who lived in London, took a house in the country for
|
|
the summer near Hampton-Court Palace. Fred and I went to stay there
|
|
with them. There were several daughters and sons, the sons quite young.
|
|
People then came down from London in vans, carts, and carriages of all
|
|
sorts, to see the Palace and grounds (there was no railway), they were
|
|
principally of the small middle classes, and used to picnic, or else
|
|
dine at the taverns when they arrived; then full, and frisky, after
|
|
their early meal, go into the parks and gardens. They do so still, but
|
|
times were different then, so few people went there comparatively; fewer
|
|
park-keepers to look after them, and less of what is called delicacy,
|
|
amongst visitors of the class named.
|
|
|
|
Our family party used to go into the grounds daily, and all day long
|
|
nearly, if we were not on the river banks. Fred winked at me one day,
|
|
"let's lose Bob," said he, "and we'll have such a lark." Bob was one
|
|
of our little cousins, generally given into our charge. We lost Bob
|
|
purposely. Said Fred, "if you dodge the gardiners, creep up there, and
|
|
lay on your belly quietly, some girls will be sure to come, and piss,
|
|
you'll see them pull their clothes up as they turn round, I saw some
|
|
before you came to stay with us." So we went pushing our way among
|
|
shrubs, and evergreens, till a gardiner, who had seen us, called out,
|
|
"You there, come back, if I catch you going off the walks, you'll be put
|
|
outside." We were in such a funk, Fred cut off one way, I another, but
|
|
it only stopped us for that day. Fred so excited me about the girls'
|
|
arses, as he called them, that we never lost an opportunity of trying
|
|
for a sight, but were generally baulked. Once or twice only we saw a
|
|
female squat down, but nothing more, till my mother and Fred's came to
|
|
stop with us.
|
|
|
|
Fred's mother, mine, the girls, Fred and I went into the Park gardens,
|
|
one day after luncheon. A very hot day, for we kept in the shady walks,
|
|
one of which led to the place where women hid themselves to piss. My
|
|
aunt said, "Why don't you boys go and play, you don't mind the sun," so
|
|
off we went, but when about to leave the walk, turned round and saw
|
|
the women had turned back. Said Fred, "I'm sure they are going to
|
|
piss, that's why they want to get rid of us." We evaded the gardiners,
|
|
scrambled through shrubs, on our knees, and at last on our bellies up
|
|
a little bank, on the other side of which was the vacant place on which
|
|
dead leaves and sweepings were shot down. As we got there, pushing aside
|
|
the leaves, we saw the big backside of a woman, who was half standing,
|
|
half squatting, a stream of piss falling in front of her, and a big
|
|
hairy gash, as it seemed, under her arse; but only for a second, she
|
|
had just finished as we got the peep, let her clothes fall, tucked them
|
|
between her legs, and half turned round. We saw it was Fred's mother, my
|
|
aunt. Off aunt went. "Isn't it a wopper," said Fred, "lay still, more of
|
|
them will come."
|
|
|
|
Two or three did, one said, "you watch if anyone is coming," squatted
|
|
and piddled, we could not see her cunt, but only part of her legs, and
|
|
the piddle splashing in front of her. Then came the second, she had her
|
|
arse towards us, sat so low, that we could not even see the tips of her
|
|
buttocks. Fred thought it a pity they did not stand half up like his
|
|
mother. On other occasions, we went to the same place, but though I
|
|
recollect seeing some females' legs, don't recollect seeing any more.
|
|
Nevertheless the sights were very delightful to us, and we used to
|
|
discuss his mother's "wopper" and the hair, and the look of the gash,
|
|
but I thought there must be some mistake, for it was not the idea I had
|
|
formed of a cunt.
|
|
|
|
Fred soon after stopped with us in town, we had been forbidden to go
|
|
out together, without permission, but we did, and met a boy bigger than
|
|
either of us, who was going to bathe. "Come and see them bathing," he
|
|
said. My father had refused to take me to the public baths. Disregarding
|
|
this, Fred and I paid our six pence each, and in we went with our
|
|
friend; we did not bathe, but amused ourselves with seeing others, and
|
|
the pricks of the men. None, as far as I can recollect, wore drawers in
|
|
those days, they used to walk about hiding their prides generally, with
|
|
their hands, but not always. I was astonished at the size of some of
|
|
them, and at the dark hair about them, and on other parts of their
|
|
bodies. I wondered also at seeing one or two, with the red tip showing
|
|
fully, so different from mine. All this was much talked over by us
|
|
afterwards, it was to me an insight into the male make and form. Fred
|
|
told me, he had often seen men's pricks in their fields, and in those
|
|
days, living in the country as he did, I dare say it was true, but I
|
|
don't recollect ever having seen the pricks of full grown men, or a
|
|
naked man before in my life.
|
|
|
|
It must have been in the summer of that same year, that I went after
|
|
this to spend some days at my aunt's at H...ds...e..., Fred's mother.
|
|
We slept in the some room, and sometimes got up quite at daybreak to
|
|
go fishing. One morning Fred had left something, in one of his sisters'
|
|
rooms and went to fetch it, though forbidden to go into the girls'
|
|
bedrooms. The room in question was opposite to ours. He was only partly
|
|
dressed, and came back in a second, his face grinning. "Oh! come Wat,
|
|
come softly, Lucy and Mary are quite naked, you can see their cunts,
|
|
Lucy has some black hair on hers." I was only half dressed, and much
|
|
excited by the idea of seeing my cousins' nudity. We both took off our
|
|
slippers, and crept along through the door half open, then went on our
|
|
knees! But why we did so, to this day I don't understand, and so crept
|
|
to the foot of the bed, then raising ourselves, we both looked over the
|
|
footboard.
|
|
|
|
Lucy, fifteen years old, was laying half on her side, naked from her
|
|
knees to her waist, the bed-clothes kicked off (I suppose through heat),
|
|
were dragging across her feet and partly laying on the floor; we saw her
|
|
split, till lost in the closed thighs, she had a little dark short hair
|
|
over the top of her cunt, and that is all I can recollect about it.
|
|
|
|
Mary-Ann by the side of her, a year younger only, laid on her back,
|
|
nacked up to her navel, just above which was her night-gown in a heap
|
|
and ruck; she had scarcely a sign of hair on her cunt, but a vermillion
|
|
line, lay right through her crack. Projecting more towards the top,
|
|
where her cunt began, she had what I now know was a strongly developed
|
|
clitoris; she was a lovely girl and had long chestnut hair.
|
|
|
|
Whilst we looked she moved one leg up in a restless manner, and we
|
|
bobbed down, thinking she was awaking; when we looked again, her limbs
|
|
were more open, and we saw the cunt till it was pinched up, by the
|
|
closing of her buttocks. In fear of being caught, we soon crept out,
|
|
closed the door ajar, and regained our bedroom, so delighted that we
|
|
danced with joy, as we talked about the look of the two cunts; of which,
|
|
after all, we had only had a most partial, rapid glimpse.
|
|
|
|
Lucy was a very plain girl, and was so as a woman. She had, I recollect,
|
|
a very red bloated looking face as she lay (it was so hot); she it was,
|
|
who in afterlife my mother cautioned about leaving her infant son to a
|
|
nursemaid.
|
|
|
|
Mary-Ann was lovely. I used afterwards to look and talk with her,
|
|
thinking to myself: "Ah! you have but little idea, that I have seen your
|
|
cunt." She was unfortunate; married a cavalry officer, went to India
|
|
with him, was left at a station unavoidably by her husband, who was sent
|
|
on a campaign, for a whole year; could not bear being deprived of cock,
|
|
and was caught in the act of fucking with a drummer boy, a mere lad.
|
|
She was separated from him, came back to England, and drank herself to
|
|
death. She was a salacious young woman, I think from what I recollect
|
|
of her, and am told, was afterwards fucked by a lot of men; but it was a
|
|
sore point with the family, and all about her was kept quiet.
|
|
|
|
One of Lucy's sons, in after years, I saw fucking a maid in a
|
|
summer-house: both standing up against a big table; I was on the roof.
|
|
Many years before that, I fucked a nurse-maid, she laying on that table,
|
|
in the very same summer-house, as I shall presently tell.
|
|
|
|
Fred and I used to discuss the look of his sisters' and mother's
|
|
cunts, as if they had belonged to strangers. The redness of the line
|
|
in Mary-Ann's quim astonished us. I do not recollect having even then,
|
|
formed any definite notion of what a girl's cunt was, though we had seen
|
|
the splits, but had still, and till much further on, the notion that the
|
|
hole was round, and close to where the clitoris is, having no idea then
|
|
of what a clitoris was, though we had got an Aristotle and used to read
|
|
it greedily; the glimpse of the two cunts were but momentary, and our
|
|
excitement confused our recollections.
|
|
|
|
Fred and I then formed a plot to look at another girl's cunt; who the
|
|
girl was, I don't know, it may have been another of Fred's sisters, or
|
|
a cousin by another of my aunts, but I think not; at all events she was
|
|
stopping in aunt's house, and from her height, which was less than that
|
|
of Fred and myself, I should think a girl of about eleven or twelve
|
|
years of age. I scrupulously avoid stating anything positively, unless
|
|
quite certain. Some years afterwards when we were very young men, we
|
|
did the same thing with a female cousin (but not his sister), as I shall
|
|
tell.
|
|
|
|
There was haymaking. We romped with the girl, buried each other in hay,
|
|
pulled each other out, and so on. I was buried in the hay and dragged
|
|
out by my legs by Fred and the girl. Then Fred was: then we buried the
|
|
girl, and as Fred pulled her out he threw up her clothes, I lay over her
|
|
head, which was covered with hay. Fred saw, winked and nodded. It came
|
|
to my turn again to be buried, and then hers; I laid hold of her legs
|
|
and pulling them from under the hay, saw her thighs, I pushed her knees
|
|
up, and had a glimpse of the slit, which was quite hairless. My aunt
|
|
and others were in the very field, but had no idea of the game we were
|
|
playing, the girl romping with us, had no idea, that we were looking at
|
|
her cunt, and an instantaneous peep only it was.
|
|
|
|
What effect sensuously, these glimpses of cunt, had on me, I don't know;
|
|
but have no recollection of sexual desire, nor of mine nor Fred's cock
|
|
being stiff. I expect that what with games, and our studies, that after
|
|
all the time we devoted to thinking about women, was not long, and
|
|
curiosity our sole motive in doing what we did. I clearly recollect our
|
|
talking at that time about fucking, and wondering if it were true or a
|
|
lie. We could repeat what we had read, and heard, but it still seemed
|
|
improbable to me that a cock should go up a cunt, and the result be a
|
|
child.
|
|
|
|
Then a passionate liking for females came over me; I fell in sort of
|
|
love with a lady who must have been forty, and had a sad feeling about
|
|
her, that is all I recollect. Then I began to follow servants about,
|
|
on the hope of seeing their legs, or seeing them piddle, or for some
|
|
undefined object: but that I was always looking after them, I know very
|
|
well.
|
|
|
|
Then (I know now) my father got into difficulties, we moved into a
|
|
smaller house, the governess went away, I was sent to another school,
|
|
one of my brothers and sisters died; my father went abroad to look after
|
|
some plantations, and after a year's absence came back and died,
|
|
leaving my mother, in what compared with our former condition, were poor
|
|
circumstances, but this in due course will be more fully told.
|
|
|
|
I think I went to school, though not long before what I am going to tell
|
|
of happened, but am not certain, if so, I must have seen boys frigging;
|
|
yet as far as I can arrange in my mind the order of events, I first saw
|
|
a boy doing that, in my own bed-room at home.
|
|
|
|
I was somewhere, I suppose, about thirteen years of age, when a distant
|
|
relative came from the country, to stay with us, until he was put to
|
|
some great school. He was the son of a clergyman, and must have been
|
|
fifteen, or perhaps sixteen years old, and was strongly pitted with the
|
|
small-pox. I had never seen him before, and took a strong dislike to
|
|
him; the family were poor, this boy was intended for a clergyman. I
|
|
was excessively annoyed, that he was to sleep with me, but in our small
|
|
house, there was just then no other place for him.
|
|
|
|
How many nights he slept in my bed, I don't recollect, it can have been
|
|
but few; One evening in bed he felt my prick; repulsing him at first, I
|
|
nevertheless afterwards felt his, and recollect our hands crossing each
|
|
other and our thighs being close together. Awaking one morning, I felt
|
|
his belly up against my rump, and his feeling or pushing his prick
|
|
against my arse, putting my hand back, I pushed him away; then I found
|
|
it pushing quickly backwards and forwards between my thighs, and his
|
|
hand, passed over my hips, was grasping my cock. Turning round, I faced
|
|
him; he asked me to turn round again, and said I might do it to him
|
|
afterwards, but nothing more was done. An unpleasant feeling about
|
|
sleeping with him is in my memory, but as said, I disliked him.
|
|
|
|
The next night undressing, he showed me his prick, stiff, as he sat
|
|
naked on a chair; it was an exceedingly long, but thin article; he told
|
|
me about frigging, and said he would frig me, if I would frig him. He
|
|
commenced moving his hand quickly up and down, on his prick, which got
|
|
stiffer and stiffer, he jerked up one leg, then the other, shut his eyes
|
|
and altogether looked so strange, that I thought he was going to have
|
|
a fit; then out spurted little pasty lumps, whilst he snorted, as some
|
|
people do in their sleep, and fell back in the chair with his eyes
|
|
closed; then I saw stuff running thinner over his knuckles. I was
|
|
strangely fascinated as I looked at him, and at what was on the carpet,
|
|
but half thought he was ill; he then told me it was great pleasure, and
|
|
was eloquent about it. Even now, as it did then, the evening seemed to
|
|
me a nasty unpleasant one, yet I let him get hold of my prick and frig
|
|
it, but had no sensation of pleasure, he said, "your skin won't come
|
|
off, what a funny prick;" that annoyed me, and I would not let him do
|
|
more; we talked till our candle burnt out; he stamped out the sperm on
|
|
the carpet, saying the servants would think we had been spitting. Then
|
|
we got into bed.
|
|
|
|
Afterwards he frigged himself several times before me, and at his
|
|
request I frigged him, wondering at the result, and amused, yet at the
|
|
same time much disgusted. When frigging him one day; he said it was
|
|
lovely to do it in an arse-hole, that he and his brother took it in
|
|
turns that way: it was lovely, heavenly! would I let him do it to me.
|
|
In my innocence I told him, it was impossible and that I thought him a
|
|
liar. He soon left us and went to college. I saw him once or twice after
|
|
this, in later years, but at a very early age he drowned himself. I told
|
|
my cousin Fred about this when I saw him; Fred believed in the frigging,
|
|
but thought him a liar about the arse-hole business, just as I did. This
|
|
was the first time I ever saw frigging and male semen, and it opened my
|
|
eyes.
|
|
|
|
Though now at a public school, I was shy, and reserved, but greedily
|
|
listened to all the lewed talk, of which I did not believe a great deal.
|
|
I became one of a group of boys of the same tastes as myself. One day
|
|
some of them coaxed me into a privy, and there, in spite of me, pulled
|
|
out my cock, threw me down, held me, and each one spat upon it, and
|
|
that initiated me into their society. They had what they called
|
|
cocks-all-round: anyone admitted to the set, was entitled to feel
|
|
the others' cocks. I felt theirs, but again to my mortification, the
|
|
tightness of my prepuce caused jeering at me; I was glad to hear that
|
|
there was another boy at the school in the same predicament, though I
|
|
never saw his. This confirmed me in avoiding my companions, when they
|
|
were playing at cocks-all-round; being a day scholar only, I was not
|
|
forced at all times into their intimacy, as I should have been had I
|
|
been a boarder.
|
|
|
|
We had a very large playground; beyond it were fields, orchards and
|
|
walks of large extent reserved for the use of the two head-masters'
|
|
families, many of whom were girls. On Saturday half-holidays only, if
|
|
the fruit was not ripe, we were allowed to range certain fields, and the
|
|
long bough-covered paths, which surrounded them. Two or three boys of
|
|
my set told me mysteriously one afternoon, that when the others had gone
|
|
ahead, we were to meet in the play-ground privy, in which were seats for
|
|
three boys of a row, and I was to be initiated into a secret without my
|
|
asking. I was surprised at what took place, there was usually an usher
|
|
in the play-ground in play-hours, and if boys were too long at the
|
|
privy, he went there, and made them come out. On the Saturdays, he went
|
|
out with the boys into the fields: there was no door to the privy, I
|
|
should add, it was a largish building.
|
|
|
|
One by one, from different directions, some dodging among trees which
|
|
bordered one side of the playground, appeared boys. I think there were
|
|
five or six together in the privy, then it was cocks-all-round, and
|
|
every boy frigged himself. I would not, at first. Why? I don't know.
|
|
At length incited, I tried, my cock would not stand, and vexed and
|
|
mortified, I withdrew, after swearing not to split on them, on pain of
|
|
being kicked and cut. I don't think I was one of the party again, though
|
|
I saw each of the same boys frig himself in the privy when alone with
|
|
me, at some time or another.
|
|
|
|
After this a boy asked me to come to a privy with him in school time,
|
|
and he would show me how to do it. Only two boys were allowed to go
|
|
to those closets at the same time, during school time. There were two
|
|
wooden legs with keys hung up on the wall by string: a boy if he wanted
|
|
to ease himself looked to see if a log and key was hanging up, and
|
|
if there was, stood out in the centre of the room; by that the master
|
|
understood what he wanted. If he nodded, the boy took the key and went
|
|
to the bog-house (no water-closets then), and when he returned, he
|
|
hung up the log in its place. Those privies were close together, and
|
|
separate, there were but two of them.
|
|
|
|
"You wait till there are two logs hanging up, and directly I get one,
|
|
you get up and come after me." Soon we were both in one privy together.
|
|
"Let's frig," said he; we were only allowed to be away five minutes. Out
|
|
he pulled his prick, then out I pulled mine; he tried to pull my skin
|
|
back, and could only half do it, he frigged himself successfully, but
|
|
I could not. He had a very small prick compared with mine. How I envied
|
|
him the ease with which he covered and uncovered the red tip. I frigged
|
|
that boy one day, but finding my cock was becoming a talk among our set,
|
|
I shrunk from going to their frigging parties, which I have seen even
|
|
take place in a field, boys sitting at the edge of a ditch, whilst one
|
|
stood up to watch if anyone approached. When they were frigging in the
|
|
privy, a boy always stood in the open door on the watch, and his time
|
|
for frigging came afterwards.
|
|
|
|
With this set I began to look through the Bible, and study all the
|
|
carnal passages; no book ever gave us perhaps such prolonged, studious,
|
|
baudy amusement; we could not understand much, but guessed a good deal.
|
|
|
|
Before I had seen anyone frig, I had been permitted to read novels, not
|
|
a moment of my time when not at studies was I without one. My father
|
|
used to select them for me at first, but soon left me to myself, and
|
|
now he was dead, I devoured what books I liked, hunting for the love
|
|
passages, thinking of the beauty of the women, reading over and over
|
|
again, the description of their charms, and envying their love meetings.
|
|
I used to stop at print-shop windows and gaze with delight at the
|
|
portraits of pretty women, and bought some at six pence each, and stuck
|
|
them into a scrap-book. Although a big fellow for my age, I would sit
|
|
on the lap of any woman who would let me, and kiss her. My mother in her
|
|
innocence called me a great girl, but she neverthless forbid it. I was
|
|
passionately fond of dancing and annoyed when they indicated a girl of
|
|
my own age, or younger, to dance with.
|
|
|
|
These feelings got intensified, when I thought of my aunt's backside,
|
|
and the cunts of my cousins, but when I thought of the heroines, it
|
|
seemed strange that such beautiful creatures should have any. The cunt
|
|
which seemed to have affected my imagination, was that of my aunt, which
|
|
appeared more like a great parting, or division of her body, than a cunt
|
|
as I then understood it; as if her buttock parting was continued round
|
|
towards her belly, and as unlike the young cunts I had seen as possible.
|
|
Those seemed to be but little indents. That the delicate ladies of the
|
|
novels should have such divisions seemed curious, ugly, and unromantic.
|
|
My sensuous temperament was developing, I saw females in all their
|
|
poetry and beauty, but suppose that my physical forces had not kept pace
|
|
with my brain, for I have no recollection of a cock-stand, when thinking
|
|
about ladies; and fucking never entered into my mind, either when I
|
|
read novels, or kissed women, though the pleasure I had when my lips met
|
|
theirs, or touched their smooth, soft cheeks was great. I recollect the
|
|
delight it gave me perfectly.
|
|
|
|
After having seen frigging, it set me reflecting, but it still seemed to
|
|
me impossible, that delicate, handsome ladies, should allow pricks to
|
|
be thrust up them, and nasty stuff ejected into them. I read Aristotle,
|
|
tried to understand it, and thought I did, with the help of much talk
|
|
with my schoolfellows; yet I only half believed it. Dogs fucking were
|
|
pointed out to me; then cocks treading hens, and at last a fuller belief
|
|
came.
|
|
|
|
I began then, I recollect, to think of their cunts when I kissed women,
|
|
and then of my aunt's; I could not keep my eyes off of her, for thinking
|
|
of her large backside and the gap between her thighs; it was the
|
|
same with my cousins. Then I began to have cock-stands and suppose a
|
|
pleasurable feeling about the machine, though I do not recollect that. I
|
|
then found out that servants were fair game, and soon there was not one
|
|
in the house whom I had not kissed. I had a soft voice and have heard,
|
|
an insinuating way, was timorous, feared repulse, and above all being
|
|
found out; yet I succeeded. Some of the servants must have liked it,
|
|
who called me a foolish boy at first; for they would stop with me on a
|
|
landing, or in a room, when we were alone, and let me kiss them for a
|
|
minute together. There was one, I recollect, who rubbed her lips into
|
|
mine, till I felt them on my teeth, but of what she was like, I have no
|
|
recollection, and I did not like her doing that to me.
|
|
|
|
My curiosity became stronger, I got bolder, told servants I meant to see
|
|
them wash themselves, and used to wait inside by bed-room, till I heard
|
|
one of them come up to dress. I knew the time each usually went to her
|
|
bedroom for that purpose, the person most in my way was the nurse: she
|
|
after a time left, and mother nursed her own children. "Let's see your
|
|
neck; do, there is a dear," I would say. "Nonsense, what next?" "Do,
|
|
dear, there is no harm; I only want to see as much as ladies show at
|
|
balls." I wheedled one to stand at the door in her petticoats and show
|
|
her neck across the bedroom lobby. The stays were high and queerly made
|
|
in those days, the chemises pulled over the top of them like flaps. One
|
|
or two let me kiss their necks, a girl one day said to my entreaties,
|
|
"Well, only for a minute," and easing up one breast, she showed me
|
|
the nipple, I threw my arms around her, buried my face in her neck and
|
|
kissed it. "I like the smell of your breast and flesh," said I. She was
|
|
a biggish woman, and I dare say I smelt breasts and armpits together;
|
|
but whatever the compound, it was delicious to me, it seemed to enervate
|
|
me. The same woman, when I kissed her on the sly afterwards, let me
|
|
put my nose down her neck to smell her. We were interrupted. "There is
|
|
someone coming," said she, moving away.
|
|
|
|
"What makes ladies smell so nice?" said I to my mother one day. My
|
|
mother put down her work and laughed to herself. "I don't know that they
|
|
smell nice."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, they do, and particularly when they have low dresses on."
|
|
"Ladies," said mother, "use patchouli and other perfumes." I supposed
|
|
so, but felt convinced from mother's manner, that I had asked a question
|
|
which embarrassed her.
|
|
|
|
I used to lean over the backs of the chairs of ladies, get my face as
|
|
near to their necks as I could, quietly inhale their odours, and talk
|
|
all the time. Not every woman smelt nice to me, and when they did, it
|
|
was not patchouli, for I got patchouli, which I liked, and perfumed
|
|
myself with it. This delicate sense of smell of a woman I have had
|
|
throughout life, it was ravishing to me afterwards, when I embraced the
|
|
naked body of a fresh, healthy young woman.
|
|
|
|
From about this time of my life, I recollect striking events much more
|
|
clearly, yet the circumstances which led up to them or succeeded them I
|
|
often cannot. One day, Miss Granger, our former governess, came to see
|
|
us. I kissed her. Mother said: "Wattie, you must not kiss ladies in that
|
|
way, you are too big." I sat Miss Granger on my lap in fun (my mother
|
|
then in the room), and romped with her. Mother left us in the room, and
|
|
then seating Miss Granger on my lap again, I pulled her closely to me.
|
|
"Kiss me, she's gone," I said. "Oh! what a boy," and she kissed me,
|
|
saying, "let me go now--your mamma is coming." It came into my mind that
|
|
I had had my hand up her clothes, and had felt hair between her legs.
|
|
My prick stiffening in thinking of a women. I clutched her hard, put
|
|
one hand on to her and did something I know not what. She said: "You are
|
|
rude, Wattie." Then I pinched her and said: "Oh! what a big bosom you
|
|
have." "Hish! hish!" said she. She was a tallish woman with brown hair;
|
|
I have heard my mother say she was about thirty years of age.
|
|
|
|
A memorable episode then occured. There were two sisters, with other
|
|
female servants, in our house. My father was abroad at that time; I was
|
|
growing so rapidly, that every month they could see a difference in my
|
|
height, but was very weak. My godfather used to look at me, and severely
|
|
ask if I was up to tricks with the boys. I guessed then what he meant,
|
|
but always said I did not know what he meant. "Yes, you do; yes, you
|
|
do," he would say, staring hard at me, "you take care, or you'll die in
|
|
a mad-house, if you do, and I shall know by your face, not a farthing
|
|
more will I give you." He had been a surgeon-major in the Army, and gave
|
|
me much pocket-money. I could not bear his looking at me so; he would
|
|
ask me why I turned down my eyes.
|
|
|
|
About this time, I had had a fever, had not been to school for a long
|
|
time, and used to lie on the sofa reading novels all day. Miss Granger
|
|
had come to stop with my mother. One day I put my hand up her clothes,
|
|
nearly to her knees; that offended her, and she left off kissing me.
|
|
One of my little sisters slept with her, in a room adjoining my mother's
|
|
room; I slept now on the servants floor, at the top of the house. Again
|
|
I recollect my cock standing when near Miss Granger, but recollect
|
|
nothing else.
|
|
|
|
I was then ordered by my mother to cease speaking to the servants,
|
|
excepting when I wanted anything, though I am sure my mother never
|
|
suspected my kissing one. I obeyed her hypocritically, and was even at
|
|
times reprimanded for speaking to them, in too imperious a tone. She
|
|
told me to speak to servants respectfully. For all that I was after
|
|
them, my curiosity was unsatiable, I know the time each went up to
|
|
dress, or for other purposes, and if at home, would get into the lobby,
|
|
or near the staircase, to see their legs, as they went upstairs. I would
|
|
listen at their door, trying to hear them piss, and began for the first
|
|
time to peep through keyholes at them.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER III.
|
|
|
|
A big servant.--Two sisters.--Armpits.--A quiet feel.--
|
|
Baudy reveries.--Felt by a woman.--Erections.--My prepuce.--
|
|
Seeing and feeling.--Aunt and cousin.--A servant's thighs.--
|
|
Not man enough.
|
|
|
|
A big servant, of whom I shall say much, had most of my attention;
|
|
she went to her room usually when my mother was taking a nap in the
|
|
afternoon; or when out with my sisters and brother. When I was ill in
|
|
bed, this big woman usually brought me beef-tea, I used to make her kiss
|
|
me, and felt so fond of her, would throw my arms around her, and hold
|
|
her to me, keeping my lips to hers, and saying how I should like to see
|
|
her breasts; to all which she replied in the softest voice, as if I were
|
|
a baby. I wonder now if my homage gave the big woman pleasure, or
|
|
my amatory pressures made her ever feel randy. She was engaged to be
|
|
married, but I only heard that at a later day, when my mother talked
|
|
about her; her sister was also with us, as already said.
|
|
|
|
The sister was handsome, according to my notions then (I now begin to
|
|
remember faces clearly); both had bright, clear complexions. I kissed
|
|
both, each used to say, "Don't tell my sister," and ask, "Have you
|
|
kissed my sister?" I was naturally cunning about women, and my mother
|
|
said, she must get rid of them.
|
|
|
|
The youngest was often dancing my little sister round in the room, then
|
|
swinging herself round, and making cheeses with her petticoats. As I got
|
|
better, I would lay on the rug with a pillow, and my back to the light
|
|
reading, and say it rested me better, to be on the floor, but in hope of
|
|
seeing her legs as she made cheeses. I often did, and have no doubt now
|
|
that she meant me to do so, for she would swing round, quite close to my
|
|
head, so that I could see to her knees, and make her petticoat's edge
|
|
as she squatted, just over my head, immediately snatching her petticoats
|
|
back and saying: "Oh! you'll see more than is good for you."
|
|
|
|
It used to excite me. One day as she did it, and squatted, I put out
|
|
my hand and pulled her clothes, she rolled on to her back, threw up
|
|
her legs quite high, and for a second I saw her thighs; she recovered
|
|
herself, laughing. "I saw your thighs," said I. "That you didn't." One
|
|
day she let me put my hand into her bosom; I sniffed. "What's there to
|
|
smell?" said she. I have some idea that she used to watch me closely,
|
|
when I was with her sister, as she was always looking after her, and
|
|
before she kissed me, would open the door suddenly or go out of the
|
|
room, and then return. I've seen the other sister just outside the door
|
|
of the room, when suddenly opened.
|
|
|
|
The big sister must have been five feet nine high, and large in
|
|
proportion; the impression on my mind, is that she was two and twenty:
|
|
that age dwells in my recollection, and that my mother remarked it. She
|
|
had brown hair and eyes, I recollect well the features of the woman.
|
|
Her lower lip was like a cherry, having a distinct cut down the middle,
|
|
caused she said by the bite of a parrot, which nearly severed her lip
|
|
when a girl. This feature I recollect more clearly than anything else.
|
|
My mother remarked that though so big, she was lighter in tread, than
|
|
anyone in the house, her voice was so soft, it was like a whisper or a
|
|
flute; her name was I think Betsy.
|
|
|
|
I had none of the dash, and determination towards females, which I had
|
|
in after life; was hesitating, fearful of being repulsed, or found
|
|
out, but was coaxing and wheedling. Betsy used to take charge of my two
|
|
little sisters (there was no regular nursery then), and used to sit with
|
|
them in a room adjoining our dining room; it had a settee, and a large
|
|
sofa in it, we usually breakfasted there. She waited also at table, and
|
|
did miscellaneous work. I am pretty certain that we had then no man in
|
|
the house. I used to lie down on the sofa in this room. One day I talked
|
|
with her about her lip, put my head up and said: "Do let me kiss it."
|
|
She put her lips to mine, and soon after if I was not kissing her
|
|
sister, I was kissing her regularly, when my mother was out of the way.
|
|
|
|
One day when she went up to her bed-room, I went softly after her, as
|
|
I often did, hoping to hear her piddling. Her door was ajar, one of
|
|
my little sisters was in the room with her, I expect I must have had
|
|
incipient randiness on me. She taught the child to walk up stairs in
|
|
front of her, holding her up, and in stooping to do so, I had glimpses
|
|
of her fat calves. At the door, I could not see her wash, that was done
|
|
at the other side of the room, but I heard the splash of water, and to
|
|
my delight, the pot moved, and her piddle rattle. The looking-glass was
|
|
near the window. Then she moved to the glass, and brushed her hair, her
|
|
gown off, and now I saw her legs, and most of her breast, which looked
|
|
to me enormous.
|
|
|
|
Then I noticed hair in her armpits; it must have been the first time I
|
|
noticed any thing of the sort, for I told a boy afterwards, that grown
|
|
women had hair under their armpits; he said every fool knew that. When
|
|
she had done brushing, she turned round, and passing the door, shut it:
|
|
she had not seen me.
|
|
|
|
I fell in love with this woman, an undefined want took possession of me,
|
|
I was always kissing her, and she returned it without hesitation. "Hush!
|
|
your mamma's coming"; then she would work, or do something with the
|
|
children if there, as demurely as possible. I declare positively as I
|
|
write this, that I believe I gave that woman a lewed pleasure in kissing
|
|
me, her kisses were so much like those I have had from women, I have
|
|
fucked in after years, so long, and soft, and squeezing.
|
|
|
|
One day, I was in the sitting-room laying on the sofa reading, she
|
|
sitting and working; where the children were, where my mother was, I
|
|
can't say: they must have been out, why this servant was in the room
|
|
with me alone, I don't know. On a table was something the doctor had
|
|
ordered me to sip, from time to time. "Come and sit near me, I like to
|
|
touch you, dear" (I used to say dear to her). She drew her chair to the
|
|
sofa, so that her thighs were near my head, she handed me my medicine,
|
|
I turned on one side, put my head on her lap, and then my hand on her
|
|
knee. "Kiss me." "I can't." I moved my head up and she bent forward and
|
|
kissed. "Keep your face to mine, I want to tell you something." Then
|
|
I told her I had seen her brushing her hair, her breasts, her armpits.
|
|
"Oh! you sly boy! you naughty boy! you must not do it again, will you?"
|
|
"Won't I, if I get the chance; put your head down, I've something more
|
|
to tell you." "What?" "I can't if you look at me; put your ear to my
|
|
mouth."
|
|
|
|
I was longing to tell her, and could not do it whilst she looked at me.
|
|
I recollect my bashfulness perfectly, and more than that, my fear of
|
|
saying what I wanted to say.
|
|
|
|
She bent her ear to my mouth. "I heard you piddle." "Oh! you naughty!"
|
|
and she burst into a quiet laugh. "I'll take care to shut the door in
|
|
future." I let my hand drop by the side of the sofa, laid hold of her
|
|
ankle, then the calve of her leg (without resistance); then up I slid
|
|
it gently, and gradually above her garter, and felt the flesh; she was
|
|
threading a needle. As I touched the thigh, she pressed both hands down
|
|
on to her thighs, barring further investigation. "Now, Wattie, you're
|
|
taking too much liberty, because I've let you feel my ankles." I whined,
|
|
I moaned. "Oh do dear, do, kiss me dear; only for a minute." I tried
|
|
very gently to push my hand (it was my left hand) further. "What do you
|
|
want?" "I want to feel it, oh! kiss me--let me,--do,--Betsy, do," and I
|
|
raised my head.
|
|
|
|
Sitting bent forward towards me as I lay, until she was nearly double,
|
|
she put her lips to mine and kissing me said: "What a rude, boy you are,
|
|
what do you expect to find?" "I know what it's called, and it's hairy,
|
|
isn't it, dear?" Her hands relaxed, she laughed, my left hand slid up,
|
|
until I felt the bottom of her belly. I could only twiddle my fingers
|
|
in the hair, could feel no split, or hole, was too excited to think, too
|
|
ignorant of the nature of the female article; but oh the intense delight
|
|
I felt at the touch of the warm thighs, and the hair, which now I knew
|
|
was outside the cunt, somewhere, I recollect my delight perfectly.
|
|
|
|
She kept on kissing me, saying in a whisper, "what a rude boy you are."
|
|
Then I whispered modestly, all I had read, told of the Aristotle I had
|
|
hidden in my cupboard, and she asked me to lend her the book. I touched
|
|
nothing but hair, her thighs must have been quite closed, and a big
|
|
stay-bone dug into my hand and hurt it, as I moved it about. I have felt
|
|
that obstacle to my enterprise in years later on, with other women.
|
|
|
|
Then came over me a voluptuous sensation, as if I was fainting with
|
|
pleasure, I seem to have a dream of her lips meeting mine, of her saying
|
|
oh! for shame I of the tips of my fingers entangling in hair, of the
|
|
warmth of the flesh of her thighs upon my hand, of a sense of moisture
|
|
on it, but I recollect nothing more distinctly.
|
|
|
|
Afterwards she seems to have absorbed me. I ceased speaking to her
|
|
sister, and could think of nothing but her neck, legs and the hair at
|
|
the bottom of her belly. I was several times in the same room with
|
|
her, and was permitted the same liberties, but no others. I lent
|
|
her Aristotle, which I had borrowed, and one day recollect my prick
|
|
stiffening, and a strange overwhelming, utterly indescribable feeling
|
|
coming over me, of my desire to say to her "cunt," and to make her feel
|
|
me, and at the same time a fear and a dread overtook me, that my cock
|
|
was not like other cocks, and that she might laugh at me. After that, I
|
|
used to pull the skin down violently every day, I bled, but succeeded;
|
|
it became slightly easier to do so, yet I have no recollection of having
|
|
a desire to fuck that woman, all that I recollect of my sensations I
|
|
have here described.
|
|
|
|
I was still ill, for there was brought me to my bed at nights, a cup of
|
|
arrowroot. My mother usually did this, but sometimes the big woman did,
|
|
I was so glad, when my mother did not. Then I would kiss her as if I
|
|
never wanted to part with her, put my hand out of bed, scramble it up
|
|
her clothes, till I could feel the hair. Then she would jut her bum
|
|
back, so that I could not touch more. One night my prick stood, "Take
|
|
the light outside," I said, "I've something to say to you." The door was
|
|
half open when she had complied; the gleam of the light struck across
|
|
the room, my bed was in the shade, "do let me feel you further, dear
|
|
and kiss me." "You naughty boy!" but we kissed. Again I felt her thighs,
|
|
belly and hair. "What good does it do you, doing that," she said. I took
|
|
hold of her hand, and put it under the bed-clothes on to my prick. She
|
|
bent over me, kissing and saying "naughty boy," but feeling the cock,
|
|
and all round it, how long, I can't say, "oh! I'd like to feel your
|
|
hole," I said. "Hish!" said she, going out of the room, and closing the
|
|
door.
|
|
|
|
She felt me several times afterwards. When my mother brought me the
|
|
arrowroot, she having an idea, that I liked her to do so, I would not
|
|
take it, saying it was too hot. She said, "I can't wait, Wattie, while
|
|
it cools." "Don't care, mamma, I don't want it." "But you must take it."
|
|
"Put it down then." "Well, don't go to sleep, and I'll send Betsy
|
|
up with it in a few minutes." Up Betsy would come, and quickly and
|
|
voluptuously kissing, keeping her lips on mine for two or three minutes
|
|
at a time, she would glide her hand down and feel my cock, whilst my
|
|
fingers were on her motte, her thighs closed, then she would glide out
|
|
of the room. I never got my hand between her thighs, I am sure.
|
|
|
|
I used to long to talk to her about all I had heard, but don't think I
|
|
ever did more than I have told, for I had a fear about using baudy words
|
|
to a woman, though I already used them freely enough among boys.
|
|
|
|
I used to talk only of her hole, my thing, of doing it, and so forth;
|
|
but what made her laugh was my calling it pudendum, a word I had got out
|
|
of Aristotle and my latin dictionary. In spite of all this, and of the
|
|
voluptuous sensations, which used to creep over me, I have no clear,
|
|
defined, recollection of wishing to fuck her, nor did I ever say
|
|
anything smutty, if I could see her face.
|
|
|
|
I got better. Then she refused either to feel me, or let me feel her,
|
|
on account of my boldness. One day, just at dusk, she was closing the
|
|
dining-room shutters, I went behind her, and after pulling her head back
|
|
to kiss me, stooped and pulled up her clothes to her waist; it exposed
|
|
her entire backside. Oh how white and huge it seemed to me. She moved
|
|
quickly round not hollowing out, but saying quietly: "What are you
|
|
doing? don't, now!" As she turned round, so did I, gloating over her
|
|
bum, then laid both hands on it, slid them round her thighs, and rapidly
|
|
kneeling down, put my lips on to the flesh, her petticoats fell over my
|
|
head. She dislodged me, saying she would never speak with me again. She
|
|
never either felt me, or permitted me, any liberties afterwards, and
|
|
soon left. One or two years after that, she came to see my mother with
|
|
her baby. She smiled at me. I don't recollect what became of her sister,
|
|
but think she soon left us also.
|
|
|
|
My physique could not then have been strong, nor my sexual organs in
|
|
finished condition, because I am sure that up to that time, I had
|
|
not had a spend; perhaps my growing fast and the fever, may have had
|
|
something to do with it. My father came home broken hearted I have
|
|
heard, and ill. Soon after we only kept two female servants, a man
|
|
outside the house, and a gardener. Father was ordered to the sea-side,
|
|
my mother went with him, taking the children and one servant (all went
|
|
by coach then). One of father's sisters, my aunt, a widow, came to take
|
|
charge of our new house, and brought her daughter, a fair, slim girl,
|
|
about 16 years old.
|
|
|
|
I remained at home, so as to go to school; the servant left in the house
|
|
was a pleasant, plump young woman, dark haired, and was always laughing;
|
|
she was to do all the work. My godfather who lived a mile or two away
|
|
from us, and whose maiden sister kept house for him, was to see me
|
|
frequently, and did so till I was sick of him. Every half-holiday,
|
|
he made me spend with him in walking, and riding; he insisted on my
|
|
boating, cricketting and keeping at athletic games, when not at my
|
|
studies. The old doctor I expect guessed my temperament, and thought by
|
|
thoroughly occupying, and fatiguing me, to prevent erotic thoughts. He
|
|
wanted me to stay at his house, but I refused, and it being a longer way
|
|
from my school, it was not persisted in.
|
|
|
|
My aunt slept in my parents bed-room, my cousin in the next room. I was
|
|
taken down, during my parents' absence, from the upper floor, to sleep
|
|
on the same floor as my aunt. They had not been in the house a week
|
|
before I had heard my cousin piddle, and stood listening outside her
|
|
bed-room door, night after night, in my bed-gown, trying to get a
|
|
glimpse of her charms through the key-hole, but was not successful.
|
|
|
|
I made up to the servant, beginning when she was kneeling, by putting
|
|
myself on her back. It made her laugh, she gave her back a buck up, and
|
|
threw me over; then I kissed her, and she kissed me. She and my aunt
|
|
quarrelled, my aunt was very poor and proud, and wanted a hot dinner at
|
|
seven o'clock, I my dinner in the middle of the day. The servant said
|
|
she could not do it all. The girl said quietly to me, "I'll cook for you,
|
|
don't you go without, let her do without anything hot at night." She did
|
|
not like her. My aunt said she was saucy and would write to my mother
|
|
and complain that she wasted her time with the gardener. Godfather then
|
|
renewed his offer for me to stay with him, but I would not, for I was
|
|
getting on very comfortably with the servant in kissing, and things
|
|
settled themselves somehow. I learnt the ways of my aunt, and tried to
|
|
get home when she was out, so as to be alone with the servant; but
|
|
to escape both aunt and godfather was difficult. I did so at times by
|
|
saying I was going out with the boys somewhere, on my half-holidays, or
|
|
something of the sort, but was rarely successful.
|
|
|
|
The servant went to her bed-room, one afternoon; with palpitating
|
|
heart I followed her, and pushed her on to the bed. She was a cheeky,
|
|
chaffing, woman, and I guess knew better than I did, what I was about. I
|
|
recollect her falling back on to the bed, and showing to her knees. "Oh
|
|
I what legs!" said I, "Nothing to be ashamed of," said she. Whatever my
|
|
wishes or intentions might have been, I went no further. My relations
|
|
were of course cut.
|
|
|
|
Another day we romped, and pelted each other with the pillows from her
|
|
bed, she stood on the landing, I half way down the stairs, and kept when
|
|
I could, my head just level with the top of the landing on which she
|
|
was, so that as she whisked backwards and forwards, picking up the
|
|
pillows to heave at me, I saw up to her knees. She knew what she was
|
|
about, though I thought myself very cunning to manage to get such
|
|
glimpses. On the landing I grappled with her for a pillow, and we rolled
|
|
on the floor. I got my hand up her clothes, to her thighs, and felt the
|
|
hair. "That's your thing," said I with a burst of courage. "Oh! oh!" she
|
|
laughed, "what did you say?" "Your thing!" "My thing! what's that?" "The
|
|
hole at the bottom of your belly," said I, ashamed at what I uttered.
|
|
"What do you mean? who told you that? I've no hole." It is strange but
|
|
a fact, that I had no courage to say any more, but left off playing, and
|
|
went down stairs.
|
|
|
|
On occasions afterwards, I played more roughly with her, and felt her
|
|
thighs; but fear prevented me from going further up. She gave me lots of
|
|
opportunities, which my timidity, prevented me from availing myself of.
|
|
One day she said: "you are not game for much, although you are so big,"
|
|
and then kissed me long and furiously, but I never saw her wants, nor my
|
|
chances that I know of, though I see now plainly enough, that boy as I
|
|
was, she wanted me to mount her.
|
|
|
|
About that time,--how I got it, I know not,--I had a book describing the
|
|
diseases caused by sacrificing to Venus. The illustrations in the book,
|
|
of faces covered with scabs, blotches, and eruptions, took such hold
|
|
of my mind, that for twenty years afterwards, the fear was not quite
|
|
eradicated. I showed them to some friends, and we all got scared. I had
|
|
no definite idea of what syphilis, and gonorrhea were, but that both
|
|
were something awful, we all made up our minds. My godfather also used
|
|
to hint now to me about ailments men got, by acquaintance with loose,
|
|
bad, women; perhaps he put the book in my way. Frigging also was treated
|
|
of, and the terrible accounts of people dying through it, and being
|
|
put into straight waistcoats, etc., I have no doubt was useful to me.
|
|
Several of us boys were days in finding out what the book meant, by
|
|
masturbation, ononism, or whatever, the language may have been. We used
|
|
dictionaries and other books to help us, and at last one of the biggest
|
|
boys explained the meaning to us.
|
|
|
|
One evening my aunt being out (it was not I think any plan on my part),
|
|
I had something to eat, and then went into the kitchen, where the
|
|
servant was sitting at needle-work by candle-light. I talked, kissed,
|
|
coaxed her, began to pull up her clothes, and it ended in her running
|
|
round the kitchen, and my chasing her; both laughing, stopping at
|
|
intervals, to hear if my aunt knocked. "I'll go and lock the outer
|
|
gate," said she, "then your aunt must ring, if she comes up to the door,
|
|
she will hear us, for you make such a noise." She locked it and came
|
|
back again.
|
|
|
|
The kitchen was on the ground-floor, separated from the body of the
|
|
house by a short passage. I got her on to my knees, I was now a big
|
|
fellow, and though but a boy, my voice was changing, she chaffed me
|
|
about that; then my hand went up her petticoats, and she gave me such a
|
|
violent pinch on my cock (outside the clothes), that I yelled. Whenever
|
|
I was getting the better of her in our amatory struggles, she said "oh!
|
|
hush! there is your aunt knocking," and frightened me away, but at last
|
|
she was sitting on my knees, my hand touching her thighs, she feeling
|
|
my prick, she felt all round it and under. "You have no hair," she said.
|
|
That annoyed me, for I had just a little growing. Then how it came about
|
|
I don't recollect, but she consented to go into the parlor with me,
|
|
after we had sat together feeling each other for a time, if mine could
|
|
be called feeling, when my lingers only touched the top of the notch.
|
|
I took up the candle. "I won't go if you bring a light," said she, so I
|
|
put down the candle, and holding her by the arm, we walked through the
|
|
passage across the little hall, to the front parlour; she closed the
|
|
door, and we were in the dark. And now I only recollect generally what
|
|
took place, it seems as if it all could but have occupied a minute, or
|
|
two, though experience tells me it must have been longer.
|
|
|
|
We sat on a settee or sofa, she had hold of my prick, and I her cunt,
|
|
for she now sat with thighs quite wide open. It was my first real feel
|
|
of a woman, and she meant me to feel well. How large and hairy, and wet
|
|
it seemed; its size overwhelmed me with astonishment, I did not find the
|
|
hole, don't recollect feeling for that, am sure I never put my finger in
|
|
it, all seemed cunt below her belly, wet, and warm, and slippery. "Make
|
|
haste, your aunt will be in soon," said she softly, but I was engrossed
|
|
with the cunt, in twiddling it and feeling it in delighted wonder at
|
|
its size, and other qualities. "Your aunt will be in," and leaving off
|
|
feeling my cock, she laid half on, half off the settee. "No, no, not
|
|
so," I recollect the words, but what I was doing, know not; then I
|
|
was standing by her side, my cock stiff, and still feeling her cunt in
|
|
bewilderment. "I can't... stop..., get on to the sofa." I laid half over
|
|
her, my prick touched something--her cunt of course. Whether it went in
|
|
or not, God knows, I pushed, it felt smooth to my prick, then suddenly
|
|
came over me, a fear of some horrible disease, and I ceased whatever I
|
|
was doing. "Go on, go on," said she, moving her belly up. I could not,
|
|
said nothing, but sat down by her side, she rose up, "You're not man
|
|
enough," said she, laying hold of my prick. It was not stiff, I put my
|
|
hand down, and again the great size--as it seemed to me--of her cunt,
|
|
made me wonder.
|
|
|
|
What then she did with me, I know not, she may have frigged it, I think
|
|
she did, but can't say, a sense of disgrace had come over me, as she
|
|
said I was not man enough, disgrace mixed with fear of disease. "Let
|
|
me try," said I; again she laid back, I have a faint recollection of my
|
|
finger going in somewhere deep, again of my prick touching her thighs
|
|
and rubbing in something smooth, but nothing more. "You're not man
|
|
enough" said she again. A ring... "Hark! it's your aunt, go!" and it
|
|
was.
|
|
|
|
I went into the adjoining room, where my books were and a lamp, she went
|
|
to the street-door. My aunt and cousin came in, and went up to their
|
|
bed-rooms, I sat smelling my fingers; the full smell of cunt that I
|
|
had for the first time. I smelt and smelt almost out of my senses, sat
|
|
pouring over a book, seeming to read, but with my fingers to my nose and
|
|
thinking of cunt, its wonderful size and smell. Aunt came down. "Have
|
|
you got a cold, Wattie?" "No, aunt." "Your eyes look quite inflamed,
|
|
child." Soon after again, she said: "You have a cold." "No, aunt." "Why
|
|
are you sniffing so, and holding your hand to your mouth?" Suddenly
|
|
the fear of the pox came over me, I went up to the bedroom, soaped and
|
|
washed my prick, and had a terrible fear on me.
|
|
|
|
I was overwhelmed with a mixed feeling of pride, at having had my prick
|
|
either touch or go up a cunt, fear that I had caught disease, and shame
|
|
at not being man enough. Instinct told me, I had lost, in the eyes of
|
|
the woman; and my pride was hurt in a woeful manner. I tried to avoid
|
|
seeing her, instead of as before getting excitedly into a room, where
|
|
she was likely to be alone for a minute. I did that for three days, then
|
|
fear of disease vanished, and my hopes of feeling her cunt again, or of
|
|
poking--I don't know which--impelled me towards her.
|
|
|
|
During those three days, I washed my prick at every possible
|
|
opportunity, and thought of nothing else but the incident; all seemed to
|
|
me hurry, confusion, impossible, I wondered, and wonder still, whether
|
|
my prick went into her or not; but above all, the largeness of the cunt
|
|
filled me with wonder; for though I had had rapid glimpses of cunts as
|
|
told, and had now seen a few pictures of the long slit, I never could
|
|
realise that that was only the outside of the cunt, until I had had a
|
|
woman. My fingers had no doubt slipped over the surface of hers,
|
|
from clitoris to arse-hole; the space my hand covered filled me with
|
|
astonishment, as well as the smell it left on my fingers, I thought of
|
|
that more than anything else. This seems to me now laughable, but it was
|
|
a marvel to me then.
|
|
|
|
When I sneaked into the kitchen again, I was ashamed to look at her, and
|
|
left almost directly, but one day I felt her again, laughing she put her
|
|
hand outside my trousers, gave my doodle a gentle pinch and kissed me.
|
|
"Let's do it!" I said. "Lor! you ain't man enough," and again I slunk
|
|
away ashamed.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IV.
|
|
|
|
My first frig.--My godfather.--Meditations on copulation.--
|
|
Male and female aromas.--Maid and gardener.--My father
|
|
dies.--A wet dream.--Bilked by a whore.
|
|
|
|
The frequency of my cock-stands, up to this time I don't know.
|
|
Voluptuous sensation, I have no clear recollection of; but no doubt
|
|
during that half swooning delight, which I had when big Betsy allowed me
|
|
to lay my head on her lap and feel her limbs, that impulse towards the
|
|
woman was accompanied by sensuous pleasure, though I don't recollect the
|
|
fact, but soon my manhood was to declare itself.
|
|
|
|
Some time after I had felt this servant's quim, I noticed a strong
|
|
smelling, whitish stuff inside my foreskin, making the underside of the
|
|
tip of the prick sore. At first I thought it disease, then pulling the
|
|
foreskin up, I made it into a sort of cup, dropped warm water into
|
|
it, and working it about, washed all round the nut, and let the randy
|
|
smelling infusion escape. This marked my need for a woman, I did not
|
|
know what the exudation was, it made me in a funk at first. One day I
|
|
had been toying with the girl, had a cockstand, and felt again my prick
|
|
sore, and was washing it with warm water, when it swelled up. I rubbed
|
|
it through my hand, which gave me unusual pleasure, then a voluptuous
|
|
sensation came over me quickly so thrilling and all pervading that I
|
|
shall never forget it. I sunk on to a chair, feeling my cock gently, the
|
|
next instant spunk jotted out in large drops, a full yard in front of
|
|
me, and a thinner liquid rolled over my knuckles. I had frigged myself,
|
|
without intending it.
|
|
|
|
Then came astonishment, mingled with disgust, I examined the viscid
|
|
gruelly fluid with the greatest curiosity, smelt it, and I think tasted
|
|
it. Then came fear of my godfather, and of being found out; for all
|
|
that, after wiping up my sperm from the floor, I went up to my bed-room,
|
|
and locking the door, frigged myself until I could do it no more from
|
|
exhaustion.
|
|
|
|
I wanted a confident and told two schoolfellows who were brothers, I
|
|
could not keep it to myself, and was indeed proud though ashamed to
|
|
speak of the pleasure. They both had bigger pricks than mine, and never
|
|
had jeered at me because I could not retract my prepuce easily. Soon
|
|
after they came to see me, we all went into the garden, each pulled
|
|
my prepuce back, I theirs, and then we all frigged ourselves in an
|
|
out-house.
|
|
|
|
Then I wrote to Fred, who was at a large public school, about my
|
|
frigging. He replied that some fellows at his school had been caught at
|
|
it, and flogged; that a big boy just going to Oxford had had a woman and
|
|
got the pox badly. He begged me to burn his letter, or throw it down the
|
|
shit-house directly I had read it, adding that he was in such a funk for
|
|
he had lost mine; and that I was never to write to him such things at
|
|
the school, because the master opened every day indiscriminately one or
|
|
two letters of the boys. He knew my mother was away and so did not mind
|
|
writing to me. When I heard that he had lost my letter, I also was in a
|
|
funk; the letter never was found. Whether the master got it, or sent it
|
|
to my godfather, or not, I can't say, but it is certain that just after
|
|
I had one night exhausted myself by masturbation, my godfather came to
|
|
see me.
|
|
|
|
He stared hard at me. "You look ill." "No, I'm not." "Yes, you are, look
|
|
me full in the face, you've been frigging yourself," said he just in so
|
|
many words. He had never used an improper word to me before. I denied
|
|
it. He raved out, "No denial, sir, no lies, you have sir; don't add
|
|
lying to your bestiality, you've been at that filthy trick, I can see
|
|
it in your face, you'll die in a mad-house, or of consumption, you shall
|
|
never have a farthing more pocket-money from me, and I won't buy your
|
|
commission, nor leave you any money at my death." I kept denying it,
|
|
brazening it out. "Hold your tongue, you young beast, or I'll write to
|
|
your mother." That reduced me to a sullen state, only at times perking
|
|
out: "I haven't!" He put on his hat angrily, and left me in a very
|
|
uncomfortable state of mind.
|
|
|
|
I knew that my father was not so well off as he had been, my mother
|
|
always impressed upon me not to offend my godfather, and now I had done
|
|
it. I wrote Fred all about it, he said the old beggar was a doctor, and
|
|
it was very unfortunate; he wondered if he really did see any signs in
|
|
my face, or whether it was a bounce; that I was not to be a fool, and
|
|
give in, and still say I hadn't, but had better leave off frigging.
|
|
|
|
From that time my godfather was always at my heels, he waited for me at
|
|
the schooldoor, spent my half-holidays with me, sat with me and my
|
|
aunt of an evening till bed-time, made me ride and drive out with him,
|
|
stopped giving me pocket-money altogether, and no one else did; so that
|
|
I was not very happy.
|
|
|
|
The pleasure of frigging, now I had tasted it (and not before), opened
|
|
my eyes more fully to the mystery of the sexes, I seemed at once to
|
|
understand why women and men got together, and yet was full of wonder
|
|
about it. Spunking seemed a nasty business, the smell of cunt an
|
|
extraordinary thing in a woman, whose odour generally to me was so
|
|
sweet and intoxicating. I read novels harder than ever, liked being near
|
|
females and to look at them more than ever, and whether young or old,
|
|
common or gentle, was always looking at them and thinking that they had
|
|
cunts which had a strong odour, and wondering if they had been fucked; I
|
|
used to stare at aunt and cousins, and wonder the same. It seemed to me
|
|
scarcely possible, that the sweet, well dressed, smooth-spoken ladies
|
|
who came to our house, could let men put the spunk up their cunts. Then
|
|
came the wonder if, and how, women spent; what pleasure they had in
|
|
fucking, and so on; in all ways was I wondering about copulation, the
|
|
oddity of the gruelly, close smelling sperm being ejected into the hole
|
|
between a woman's thighs so astonished me. I often thought the whole
|
|
business must be a dream of mine; then that there could be no doubt
|
|
about it. Among other doubts, was whether the servant's quim, which had
|
|
made by fingers smell, was diseased, or not. Fear of detection perhaps
|
|
kept me from frigging, but I was weak and growing fast, and have no
|
|
recollection of much desire, though mad to better understand a cunt. It
|
|
does not dwell in my mind now that I had a desire to fuck one, but to
|
|
see it, and above all, to smell it; the recollection of its aroma seems
|
|
to have had a strange effect on me. I did not like it much, yet yearned
|
|
to smell it again. Watching my opportunity one day, I managed to feel
|
|
the servant; it was dusk, she stood with her back up against the wall,
|
|
and felt my prick whilst I felt her; it was an affair of a second or
|
|
two, and again we were scared. I went to the sitting-room, and passed
|
|
the evening in smelling my fingers and looking at my cousin. This
|
|
occurred once again, and I think now, that the servant must just have
|
|
been on the point of letting me fuck her, for she had been feeling my
|
|
prick and in a jeering way saying, "You are not man enough if I let
|
|
you," I emboldened, blurted out that I had spent, I recollect her saying
|
|
"oh! you story," and then something put us to flight, I don't now
|
|
know what. I certainly was not up to my opportunities, that I see now
|
|
plainly.
|
|
|
|
I had a taste for chemistry, which served my purpose, as will be seen
|
|
further on, and used to experimentalize in what was called a washhouse,
|
|
just outside the kitchen, with my acids and alkalis; that enabled me to
|
|
slip into the kitchen on the sly, but the plan of the house rendered it
|
|
easy, for my aunt to come suddenly into the kitchen.
|
|
|
|
My bed-room window overlooked the kitchen yard, in which was this
|
|
wash-house, a knife-house and a servant's privy, etc., etc., the whole
|
|
surrounded by a wall, with a door in it, leading into the garden. Just
|
|
outside on the garden side, was a gardener's shed; the servant in the
|
|
morning, used to let the gardener in at the kitchen entrance; and he
|
|
passed through this kitchen yard into the garden. I was pissing in the
|
|
pot in my bedroom early one morning, and peeping through the blind, when
|
|
I saw the servant's head just coming out of the gardener's shed, she
|
|
passed through the kitchen yard into the kitchen in great haste, looking
|
|
up at the house, as if to see if anyone was at the windows. Then it
|
|
occurred to me, that if I got quite early to the kitchen, I could play
|
|
my little baudy tricks without fear, for my relatives never went down
|
|
till half-past eight to breakfast, whilst the servant went down at six.
|
|
|
|
The next morning, I went down early to the kitchen, did not see the
|
|
wench, and thinking she might be in the privy in the kitchen yard,
|
|
waited. The shutters were not down, after some minutes delay, in she
|
|
came; she started. "Hulloh! what are you up for?" I don't think I spoke,
|
|
but making a dash, got my hand up her clothes and on to her cunt. She
|
|
pushed me away, then caught hold of the hand with which I had touched
|
|
her cunt, and squeezed it hard with a rubbing motion, looking at me as I
|
|
recollected (but long afterwards), in a funny way. "Hish! hish! here is
|
|
the old woman," said she. "It is not." "I'm sure I heard the wires of
|
|
her bell," and sure enough there came a ring. Up I went without shoes,
|
|
like a shot to my bedroom, began to smell my fingers, found they were
|
|
sticky, and the smell not the same. I recollect thinking it strange that
|
|
her cunt should be so sticky, I had heard of dirty cunts,--it was a joke
|
|
among us boys, and thought hers must have been so, which was the cause,
|
|
that the smell and feel were different.
|
|
|
|
Two or three days afterwards my mother came to town by herself, there
|
|
was a row with the servant, I was told to leave the room; the servant
|
|
and gardener were both turned off that day and hour, a char-woman was
|
|
had in, a temporary gardener got, and my mother went back to my sick
|
|
father. Years passed away, and when I had greater experience and thought
|
|
of all this, concluded that my aunt had found the gardener and the
|
|
servant amusing themselves too freely, had had them dismissed, and that
|
|
the morning I found my fingers sticky, the girl had just come in from
|
|
fucking in the gardener's shed.
|
|
|
|
With all the opportunities I had, both with big Betsy and with this
|
|
woman, I was still virgin.
|
|
|
|
When I saw Fred next, he told me he had felt the cunt of one of their
|
|
servants. I told him partly what I had done, but kept to myself how I
|
|
had failed to poke when I had the opportunity, fearing his jeers; and
|
|
as I was obliged to name some woman, mentioned one of my godfather's
|
|
servants. He went there to try his chances of groping her as well, but
|
|
got his head slapped. We talked much about the smell of cunt, and he
|
|
told me that one day after he had felt their servant, he went into the
|
|
room where his sisters were, and said, "oh what a funny smell there is
|
|
on my fingers, what can it be, smell them." Two of his sisters smelt,
|
|
said they could not tell what it was, but it was not nice. Fred used to
|
|
say, that he thought they knew it was like the smell of a cunt, because
|
|
they colored up so.
|
|
|
|
I had noticed a strong smell on my prick, whenever the curdy exudation
|
|
had to be washed out. Fred's talk made me imitative, so I saturated my
|
|
fingers with the masculine essence one evening, and going to my female
|
|
cousin, "oh what a queer smell there is on my fingers," said I, "smell
|
|
them." The girl did. "It's nasty, you've got it from your chemicals,"
|
|
said she. "I don't think I have, smell them again, I can't think what it
|
|
can be, what's it like?" "I don't think it's like anything I ever smelt,
|
|
but it is not so nasty, if you smell it close, it's like southern wood,"
|
|
she replied. I wonder if that young lady when she married, ever smelt
|
|
it afterwards, and recognized it. I did this more than once, it gave
|
|
me great delight to think my slim cousin had smelt my prick, through
|
|
smelling my fingers; what innate lubricity comes out early in the male.
|
|
|
|
Misfortunes of all sort came upon us, the family came back to town,
|
|
another brother died, then my father who had been long ill, died, and
|
|
was found to be nearly bankrupt; then my godfather died, and left me
|
|
a fortune, all was trouble and change, but I only mention these family
|
|
matters briefly.
|
|
|
|
My physique still could not have been strong, for though more than ever
|
|
intensely romantic, and passionately fond of female society, I don't
|
|
recollect being much troubled with cock-standings, and think I should,
|
|
had I been so. My two intimate school-friends left off frigging,
|
|
the elder brother, who had a very long red nose, having come to the
|
|
conclusion with me, that frigging made people mad, and worse, prevented
|
|
them afterwards from fucking and having a family. Fred, my favorite
|
|
cousin, arrived at the same conclusion--by what mental process, we all
|
|
arrived at it, I don't know.
|
|
|
|
When I was approaching my sixteenth year, I awakened one night with a
|
|
voluptuous dream, and found my night-shirt saturated with semen, it was
|
|
my first wet-dream; that set me frigging again for a time, but I either
|
|
restrained myself, or did not naturally require much spending at that
|
|
time, for I certainly did not often do so.
|
|
|
|
But our talk was always about cunt and woman, I was always trying to
|
|
smell their flesh, look up their petticoats, watch to see them going
|
|
to piddle; and the wonder to me now is, that I did not frig myself
|
|
incessantly; and can only account for it on the grounds, that though my
|
|
imagination was very ripe, my body was not. The fact of hair under
|
|
the arms of women had a secret charm for me about that time. I don't
|
|
recollect thinking much about it before, though it had astonished me
|
|
when I first saw it; and why it came to my imagination so much now, do
|
|
not know, but it did. I have told of the woman under whose arms I first
|
|
saw hair.
|
|
|
|
One afternoon after my father's death, and that of my godfather, Fred
|
|
was with me, we went to the house of a friend, and were to return home
|
|
about nine o'clock. It was dark, we saw a woman standing by a wall. "She
|
|
is a whore," said Fred, "and will let us feel her if we pay her." "You
|
|
go and ask her." "No, you." "I don't like to." "How much money have you
|
|
got?" We ascertained what we had, and after a little hesitation, walked
|
|
on, passed her, then turned round and stopped. "What are you staring at,
|
|
kiddy," said the woman. I was timid, and walked away, Fred stopped with
|
|
her. "Wattie, come here," said he in a half whisper. I walked back. "How
|
|
much have you got?" the woman said. We both gave her money. "You'll let
|
|
us both feel?" said Fred. "Why of course, have you felt a woman before?"
|
|
Both of us said we had, feeling bolder. "Was it a woman about here?"
|
|
"No." "Did you both feel the same woman?" "No." "Give me another shilling
|
|
then, you shall both feel my cunt well, I've such a lot of hair on it."
|
|
We gave what he had, and then she walked off without letting us. "I'll
|
|
tell your mothers, if you come after me," she cried out.
|
|
|
|
We were sold; I was once sold again in a similar manner afterwards, when
|
|
by myself.
|
|
|
|
These are the principal baudy incidents of my early youth, which I
|
|
recollect, and have not told to friends; many other amusing incidents
|
|
told them, are omitted here, for the authorship would be disclosed, if
|
|
I did. One or two were peculiar and most amusing, yet I dare not narrate
|
|
them; but all show how soon sexual desires developed in me, and what
|
|
pleasure early in life even these gave me and others.
|
|
|
|
I now had arrived at the age of puberty, when male nature asserts itself
|
|
in the most timid, and finds means of getting its legitimate pleasure
|
|
with women. I did, and then my recollection of things became more
|
|
perfect, not only as to the consummations, but of what led to them; yet
|
|
nothing seems to me so remarkable as the way I recollect matters which
|
|
occurred when I was almost an infant.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER V.
|
|
|
|
Our house.--Charlotte and brother Tom.--Kissing and
|
|
groping.--Both in rut.--My first fuck.--A virginity taken.--
|
|
At a baudy house.--In a privy.--Tribulations.--Charlotte
|
|
leaves.--My despair.
|
|
|
|
After father's death, our circumstances were further reduced, at the
|
|
time I am going to speak of, we had come to a small house nearer London;
|
|
one sister went to boarding-school, an aunt (I had many) took another,
|
|
I went to a neighboring great school or college, as it was termed, my
|
|
little brother Tom was at home; but reference henceforth to members of
|
|
my family will be but slight, for they had but little to do with the
|
|
incidents of this private life, and unless they were part actors in it,
|
|
none will be mentioned.
|
|
|
|
Our house had on the ground-floor a dining-room, a drawing-room, and
|
|
a small room called the garden parlor, with steps leading into a large
|
|
garden. On the first floor my mother's bed-room and two others; above
|
|
were the servants' room, mine, and another much used as a lumber-room;
|
|
the kitchens were in the basement, beside them a long covered way led
|
|
to a servants' privy, and close to it a flight of stairs leading up into
|
|
the garden; at the top of the stairs was a garden-door leading into
|
|
the fore-court, on to which opened the street-door of the house. This
|
|
description of plan is needful to understand what follows.
|
|
|
|
I was about sixteen years old, tall, with slight whiskers and moustache,
|
|
altogether manly and looking seventeen or eighteen, yet my mother
|
|
thought me a mere child, and most innocent; she told our friends so.
|
|
I had developed without her having noticed it, love of women, and the
|
|
intensest desire to understand the secrets of their nature had taken
|
|
possession of me; the incessant talk of fucking with which the youths I
|
|
knew beguiled their leisure, the stories they told of having seen their
|
|
servants, or other girls half, or quite naked, the tricks by which they
|
|
managed this, the dodges they were up to, inflamed me, sharpened
|
|
my instinctive acuteness in such matters, and set me seeking every
|
|
opportunity to know women naked, and sexually. Frigging was now hateful
|
|
to me; I had never done so more than the times related, that is as far
|
|
as I now can recollect, frightened as said, by my godfather telling
|
|
me, that it sent men mad, and made them hateful to women. So although
|
|
boiling with sensuality, I was still all but a virgin, and actually so
|
|
in fucking.
|
|
|
|
A housemaid arrived just as I came home from college, the cook stood
|
|
at the door, she was a lovely woman about twenty-five or six years old,
|
|
fresh as a daisy, her name was Mary. The housemaid was in a cart, driven
|
|
by her father, a small market gardener living a few miles from us. I saw
|
|
a fresh, comely girl about seventeen years old in the fore-court, turned
|
|
round to look, she was getting down, the horse moved, she hesitated.
|
|
"Get down," said her father angrily. Down she stepped, her clothes
|
|
caught on the edge of the cart, or step, or somehow; and I saw rapidly
|
|
appear white stockings, garters, thighs, and a patch of dark hair
|
|
between them by her belly; it was instantaneous, and down the clothes
|
|
came, hiding all. I stood fascinated, knowing I had seen her cunt hair.
|
|
She, without any idea of having been exposed, helped down with her
|
|
box, I went into the parlor ashamed of having as I thought, been seen
|
|
looking.
|
|
|
|
I could thing of nothing else, and when she brought in tea, could not
|
|
take my eyes off her, it was the same at supper (we lead a simple life,
|
|
dining early and having supper). In the evening my mother remarked,
|
|
"that girl will do," I recollect feeling glad at heart.
|
|
|
|
I went to bed, thinking of what I had seen, and stared whenever I saw
|
|
her the next day, until by a sort of fascination, she used to stare at
|
|
me; in a day or two I fancied myself desperately in love with her, and
|
|
indeed was. I recollect now her features, as if I had only seen her
|
|
yesterday, and after the scores and scores of women I have fucked since,
|
|
recollect every circumstance attending my having her, as distinctly, as
|
|
if it only occurred last week; yet very many years have passed away.
|
|
|
|
She was a little over seventeen years, had ruddy lips, beautiful teeth,
|
|
darkish hair, hazel eyes, and a slightly turn-up nose, large shoulders
|
|
and breast, was plump, generally of fair height, and looked eighteen or
|
|
nineteen, her name was Charlotte.
|
|
|
|
I soon spoke to her kindly, by degrees became free in manner, at length
|
|
chucked her under her chin, pincher her arm, and used the familiarities
|
|
which nature teaches a man to use towards a woman. It was her business
|
|
to open the door, and help me off with my coat and boots if needful; one
|
|
day as she did so, her bum projecting upset me so, that as she rose from
|
|
stooping I caught and pinched her. All this was done with risk, for
|
|
my mother was then nearly always at home, and the house being small, a
|
|
noise was easily heard.
|
|
|
|
I was soon kissing her constantly. In a few days got a kiss in return,
|
|
that drove me wild, her cunt came constantly into my mind, all sorts
|
|
of wants, notions, and vague possibilities came across me; girls do let
|
|
fellows feel them I said to myself, I had already succeeded in that.
|
|
What if I tell that I have seen it outside? Will she tell my mother?
|
|
Will she let me feel her? What madness! Yet girls do let men, girls like
|
|
it so all my friends say. Wild with hopes and anticipations, coming in
|
|
doors one day, I caught her tightly in my arms, pulled her belly close
|
|
to mine, rubbed up against hers saying, "Charlotte, what would I
|
|
give, if you would..." it was all I dare say. Then I heard my mother's
|
|
bed-room door open, and I stopped.
|
|
|
|
Hugging and kissing a woman never stopped there, I told her I loved her,
|
|
which she said was nonsense. We now used regularly to kiss each other
|
|
when we got the chance; little by little I grasped her closer to me, put
|
|
my hands round her waist, then cunningly round to her bum, then my prick
|
|
used to stand and I was mad to say more to her, but had not the courage.
|
|
I knew not how to set to work, indeed scarce knew what my desires lead
|
|
me to hope, and think at that time, putting my hand on to her cunt, and
|
|
seeing it, was perhaps the utmost; fucking her seemed a hopelessly mad
|
|
idea, if I had the expectation of doing so at all very clearly.
|
|
|
|
I told a friend one or two years older than myself how matters stood,
|
|
carefully avoiding telling him who the girl was. His advice was short.
|
|
Tell her you have seen her cunt, and make a snatch up her petticoats
|
|
when no one is near; keep at it, and you will be sure to get a feel, and
|
|
some day, pull out your prick, say straight you want to fuck her, girls
|
|
like to see a prick, she will look, even if she turns her head away.
|
|
This advice he dinned into my ears continually, but for a long time, I
|
|
was not bold enough to put it into practice.
|
|
|
|
One day, my mother was out, the cook upstairs dressing, we had kissed
|
|
in the garden parlour, I put my hand round her bum, and sliding my face
|
|
over her shoulder half ashamed, said, "I wish my prick was against
|
|
your naked belly, instead of outside your clothes." She with an effort
|
|
disengaged herself, stood amazed, and said, "I never will speak to you
|
|
again."
|
|
|
|
I had committed myself, but went on, though in fear, prompted by love
|
|
or lust. My friend's advice was in my ears. "I saw your cunt as you got
|
|
down from your father's cart," said I, "look at my prick (pulling it
|
|
out), how stiff it is, it's longing to go into you, 'cock and cunt will
|
|
come together'." It was part of a smutty chorus the fellows sang at my
|
|
college; she stared, turned round, went out of the room, through the
|
|
garden, and down to the kitchen by the garden stairs, without uttering a
|
|
word.
|
|
|
|
The cook was at the top of the house, I went into the kitchen reckless,
|
|
and repeated all I had said. She threatened to call the cook. "She must
|
|
have seen your cunt, as well as me," said I; then she began to cry. Just
|
|
as I was begging pardon, my friend's advice again rang in my ears, I
|
|
stooped and swiftly ran both hands up her clothes, got one full on to
|
|
her bum, the other on her motte; she gave a loud scream, and I rushed
|
|
off upstairs in a fright.
|
|
|
|
The cook did not hear her, being up three pairs of stairs; down I went
|
|
again, and found Charlotte crying, told her again all I had seen in the
|
|
court yard, which made her cry more. She would ask the cook, and would
|
|
tell my mother--then hearing the cook coming downstairs, I cut off
|
|
through the passage up into the garden.
|
|
|
|
The ice was quite broken now, she could not avoid me, I promised not to
|
|
repeat what I had said and done, was forgiven, we kissed, and the same
|
|
day I broke my promise; this went on day after day, making promises and
|
|
breaking them, talking smuttily as well as I knew how, getting a slap on
|
|
my head, but no further, my chances were few. My friend, whom I made a
|
|
half confident of, was always taunting me with my want of success, and
|
|
boasting of what he would have done, had he had my opportunities.
|
|
|
|
My mother just at that time began to resume her former habits, leaving
|
|
the house frequently for walks and visits. One afternoon she being out
|
|
for the remainder of the day, I went home unexpectedly; the cook was
|
|
going out, I was to fetch my mother home in the evening; Charlotte laid
|
|
the dinner for me; we had the usual kissing, I was unusually bold and
|
|
smutty. Charlotte finding me not to be going out, seemed anxious. All
|
|
the dinner things had been taken away, when out went the cook, and there
|
|
were Charlotte, my little brother and I alone. It was her business to
|
|
sit with him in the garden parlor when mother was out, so as to be able
|
|
to open the street-door readily, as well as go into the garden if the
|
|
weather was fine. It was a fine day of Autumn, she went into the parlor
|
|
and was sitting on the huge old sofa, Tom playing on the floor, when I
|
|
sat myself down by her side; we kissed and toyed, and then with heart
|
|
beating, I began my talk and waited my opportunity.
|
|
|
|
The cook would be back in a few minutes, said she. I knew better,
|
|
having heard mother tell cook she need not be home until eight o'clock.
|
|
Although I knew this, I was fearful, but at length mustered courage to
|
|
sing my cock and cunt song. She was angry, but it was made up. She went
|
|
to give something to Tom, and stepping back put her foot on the lace of
|
|
one boot which was loose, sat down on the sofa and put up one leg over
|
|
the other, to relace it. I undertook to do it for her, saw her neat
|
|
ankle, and a bit of a white stocking. "Snatch at her cunt," rang in my
|
|
ears. I had never attempted it since the afternoon in the kitchen.
|
|
|
|
Lacing the boot, I managed to push the clothes up so as to see more of
|
|
the leg, but resting as the foot did on one knee, the clothes tightly
|
|
between, a snatch was useless: lust made me cunning, I praised the foot
|
|
(though I knew not at that time how vain some women are of their feet).
|
|
"What a nice ankle," I said putting my hand further on. She was off her
|
|
guard; with my left arm, I pushed her violently back on to the large
|
|
sofa, her foot came off her knee, at the same moment, my right hand went
|
|
up between her thighs, on to her cunt; I felt the slit, the hair, the
|
|
moisture.
|
|
|
|
She got up to a sitting posture, crying "you wretch, you beast, you
|
|
blackguard," but still I kept my fingers on the cunt; she closed her
|
|
legs, so as to shut my hand between her thighs, and keep it motionless,
|
|
and tried to push me off; but I clung round her. "Take your hand away,"
|
|
said she, "or I will scream." "I shant!" Then followed two or three
|
|
loud, very loud screams. "No one can hear," said I, which brought her to
|
|
supplication. My friend's advice came again to me: pushing my right hand
|
|
still between her thighs, with my left I pulled out my prick, as stiff
|
|
as a poker. She could not do otherwise than see it; and then I drew my
|
|
left hand round her neck, pulled her hand to me, and covered it with
|
|
kisses.
|
|
|
|
She tried to get up and nearly dislodged my right hand, but I pushed her
|
|
back, and got my hand still further on to the cunt. I never thought
|
|
of pressing, under towards the bum, was in fact too ignorant of female
|
|
anatomy to do it, but managed to get one of the lips with the hair
|
|
between my fingers, and pinch it; then dropped on to my knees in front
|
|
of her, and remained kneeling, preventing her getting back further on
|
|
the sofa, as well as I could by holding her waist, or her clothes.
|
|
|
|
There was a pause from our struggles, then more entreaties, then more
|
|
attempts to get my right hand away; suddenly she put out one hand,
|
|
seized me by the hair of my head, and pushed me backwards by it. I
|
|
thought my skull was coming off, but kept my hold and pinched or pulled
|
|
the cunt lip till she yelled and called me a brute. I told her I would
|
|
hurt her as much as I could, if she hurt me; so that game she gave up;
|
|
the pain of pulling my hair made me savage, and more determined and
|
|
brutal, than before.
|
|
|
|
We went on struggling at intervals, I kneeling with prick out, she
|
|
crying, begging me to desist; I entreating her to let me see and feel
|
|
her cunt, using all the persuasion, and all the baudy talk I could,
|
|
little Tom sitting on the floor playing contentedly. I must have been
|
|
half an hour on my knees, which became so painful, that I could scarcely
|
|
bear it; we were both panting, I was sweating; an experienced man would
|
|
perhaps have had her then; I was a boy inexperienced, and without her
|
|
consent almost in words, would not have thought of attempting it; the
|
|
novelty, the voluptuousness of my game was perhaps sufficient delight to
|
|
me; at last I became conscious that my fingers on her cunt were getting
|
|
wet; telling her so, she became furious and burst into such a flood
|
|
of tears, that it alarmed me. It was impossible to remain on my knees
|
|
longer, in rising, I knew I should be obliged to take my hand from her
|
|
cunt, so withdrawing my left hand from her waist, I put it also suddenly
|
|
up her clothes, and round her bum, and lifted them up, showing both
|
|
her thighs, whilst I attempted to rise. She got up at the same instant,
|
|
pushing down her clothes, I fell over on one side,--my knees were so
|
|
stiff and painful--and she rushed out of the room upstairs.
|
|
|
|
It was getting dusk, I sat on the sofa in a state of pleasure, smelling
|
|
my fingers. Tom began to howl, she came down and took him up to pacify
|
|
him, I followed her down to the kitchen, she called me an insolent
|
|
boy (an awful taunt to me then), threatened to tell my mother, to give
|
|
notice and leave, and left the kitchen, followed by me about the house;
|
|
talking baudily,
|
|
|
|
telling her how I liked the smell of my fingers, attempting to put my
|
|
hand up her clothes, sometimes succeeding, pulling out my ballocks, and
|
|
never ceasing until the cook came home, having been at this game for
|
|
hours. In a sudden funk, I begged Charlotte to tell my mother, that I
|
|
had only come home just before the cook, and had got to be unwell; she
|
|
replying she would tell my mother the truth, and nothing else. I was in
|
|
my bed-room before cook was let in.
|
|
|
|
Mother came home later, I was in a fright having laid in bed cooling
|
|
down, and thinking of possible consequences; heard the street-door
|
|
knocker, got out of bed, and in my night-shirt went half way downstairs
|
|
listening. To my relief, I heard Charlotte in answer to my mother's
|
|
enquiry, say I had come home about an hour before, and had gone to bed
|
|
unwell. My mother came to my room, saying how sorry she was.
|
|
|
|
For a few days I was in fear, but it gradually wore off, as I found she
|
|
had not told; our kissing recommenced, my boldness increased, my talk
|
|
ran now freely on her legs, her bum, and her cunt, she ceased to notice
|
|
it, beyond saying she hated such talk, and at length she smiled in spite
|
|
of herself. Our kissing grew more fervid, she resisted improper action
|
|
of my hand, but we used to stand with our lips close together for
|
|
minutes at a time, when we got the chance, I holding her to me as close
|
|
as wax. One day cook was upstairs, mother in her bed-room, I pushed
|
|
Charlotte up against the wall in the kitchen, and pulled up her clothes,
|
|
scarcely with resistance; just then my mother rang, I skipped up into
|
|
the garden, and got into the parlour that way, soon heard my mother
|
|
calling to me to fetch water, Charlotte was in hysterics at the foot
|
|
of the stairs--after that, she frequently had hysterics, till a certain
|
|
event occurred.
|
|
|
|
My chances were chiefly on Saturdays, a day I did not go to college;
|
|
soon I was to cease going there, and was to prepare for the army.
|
|
|
|
I came home one day, when I knew Charlotte would be alone--the cook was
|
|
upstairs--I got her on to the sofa in the garden parlour, knelt and
|
|
put my hands between her thighs, with less resistance than before, she
|
|
struggled slightly but made no noise. She kissed me as she asked me to
|
|
take away my hand; I could move it more easily on her quim, which I did
|
|
not fail to do; she was wonderfully quiet. Suddenly I became conscious
|
|
that she was looking me full in the face, with a peculiar expression,
|
|
her eyes very wide open, then shutting them. "Oho--oho," she said with
|
|
a prolonged sigh, "do--oh take away--oh--your hand, Walter dear,--oh I
|
|
shall be ill,--oho,--oho," then her head dropped down over my shoulder
|
|
as I knelt in front of her; at the same moment, her thighs seemed to
|
|
open slightly, then shut, then with a quivering, shuddering motion, as
|
|
it then seemed to me, and then she was quite quiet.
|
|
|
|
I pushed my hand further in, or rather on, for although I thought I had
|
|
it up the cunt, I really was only between the lips--I know that now.
|
|
With a sudden start she rose up, pushed me off, snatched up Tom from the
|
|
floor, and rushed upstairs. My fingers were quite wet. For two or three
|
|
days afterwards, she avoided my eyes and looked bashful, I could not
|
|
make it out, and it was only months afterwards, that I knew, that the
|
|
movement of my fingers on her clitoris had made her spend. Without
|
|
knowing indeed then that such a thing was possible, I had frigged her.
|
|
|
|
Although for about three months, I had been thus deliciously amusing
|
|
myself, anxious to feel, and see her cunt, and though I had at last
|
|
asked her to let me fuck her; I really don't think I had any definite
|
|
expectation of doing it to her. I guessed now at its mutual pleasures,
|
|
and so forth, yet my doing it to her appeared beyond me; but urged on by
|
|
my love for the girl--for I did love her--as well as by sexual instinct,
|
|
I determined to try. I also was quickened by my college friend, who had
|
|
seen Charlotte at our house and not knowing it was the girl I had spoken
|
|
to him about, said to me, "What a nice girl that maid of yours is, I
|
|
mean to get over her, I shall wait for her after church next Sunday, she
|
|
sits in your pew I know." I asked him some questions,--his opinion was
|
|
that most girls would let a young fellow fuck them, if pressed and that
|
|
she would (this youth was but about eighteen years old), and I left him
|
|
fearing what he said was true, hating and jealous of him to excess. He
|
|
set me thinking, why should not I do it if he could, and if what he said
|
|
about girls was true,--so I determined to try it on, and by luck did so
|
|
earlier than I expected.
|
|
|
|
About one hour's walk from us, was the town house of an aunt, the
|
|
richest of our family, and one of my mother's sisters. She alone now
|
|
supplied me with what money I had, my mother gave me next to nothing.
|
|
I went to see aunt, who asked me to tell my mother, to come and spend
|
|
a day with her, the next week, and named the day. I forgot this until
|
|
three days afterwards, when hearing my mother tell the cook, she could
|
|
go out for a whole holiday! I said, that my aunt particularly wished
|
|
to see mother on that day. My mother scolded me for not having told her
|
|
sooner, but wrote and arranged to go, forgetting the cook's holiday.
|
|
To my intense joy, on that day she took brother Tom with her, saying to
|
|
Charlotte, "You will have nothing to think of, but the house, shut it
|
|
up early, and do not be frightened." I was as usual to fetch my mother
|
|
home.
|
|
|
|
In what an agitated state I passed that morning at school, and in the
|
|
afternoon went home, trembling at my intentions. Charlotte's eyes opened
|
|
with astonishment at seeing me. Was I not going to fetch my mother?
|
|
I was not going till night. There was no food in the house, and I had
|
|
better go to my aunt's for dinner. I knew there was cold meat, and made
|
|
her lay the cloth in the kitchen. To make sure, I asked if cook was
|
|
out,--yes, she was, but would be home soon. I knew that she stopped
|
|
out till ten o'clock on her holidays. The girl was agitated with some
|
|
undefined idea of what might take place, we kissed and hugged, but she
|
|
did not like even that, I saw.
|
|
|
|
I restrained myself whilst eating, she sat quietly beside me; when I had
|
|
finished she began to remove the things, the food gave me courage, her
|
|
moving about stimulated me, I began to feel her breasts, then got my
|
|
hands on to her thighs, we had the usual struggles, but it seems to me
|
|
as I now think of it, that her resistance was less, and that she prayed
|
|
me to desist more lovingly than was usual. We had toyed for an hour,
|
|
she had let a dish fall and smashed it, the baker rang, she took in the
|
|
bread, and declared she would not shut the door unless I promised to
|
|
leave off. I promised, and so soon as she had closed it, pulled her
|
|
into the garden parlour, having been thinking when in the kitchen, how
|
|
I could get her upstairs. Down tumbled the bread on the floor, on to the
|
|
sofa, I pushed her, and after a struggle she was sitting down, I kissing
|
|
her, one arm round her waist, one hand between her thighs, close up to
|
|
her cunt. Then I told her I wanted to fuck her, said all in favour of it
|
|
I knew, half ashamed, half frightened as I said it. She said she did not
|
|
know what I meant, resisted less and less as I tried to pull her back on
|
|
the sofa, when another ring came: it was the milkman.
|
|
|
|
I was obliged to let her go, and she ran down stairs with the milk. I
|
|
followed, she went out, and slammed the door which led to the garden,
|
|
in my face; for the instant, I thought she was going to the privy, but
|
|
opened and followed on; she ran up the steps, into the garden, through
|
|
the garden parlor, and upstairs to her bed-room just opposite to mine,
|
|
closed and locked the door in my face, I begged her to let me in.
|
|
|
|
She said she would not come out, till she heard the knocker or bell
|
|
ring; there was no one called usually after the milkman, so my game was
|
|
up, but nothing makes man or woman so crafty as lust. In half an hour
|
|
or so, in anger, I said I should go to my aunt's, went downstairs, moved
|
|
noisily about, opened and slammed the street-door violently, as if I had
|
|
gone out, then pulled off my boots, and crept quietly up to my bed-room.
|
|
|
|
There I sat expectantly a long time, had almost given up hope, began to
|
|
think about consequences if she told my mother, when I heard the door
|
|
softly open and she came to the edge of the stairs. "Wattie!" she said
|
|
loudly, "Wattie!" much louder, "he has," said she in a subdued tone to
|
|
herself, as much as to say that worry is over. I opened my door, she
|
|
gave a loud shriek and retreated to her room, I close to her; in a few
|
|
minutes more, hugging, kissing, begging, threatening, I know not how;
|
|
she was partly on the bed, her clothes up in a heap, I on her with my
|
|
prick in my hand, I saw the hair, I felt the slit, and not knowing then
|
|
where the hole was or much about it, excepting that it was between her
|
|
legs, shoved my prick there with all my might. "Oh! you hurt, I shall be
|
|
ill," said she, "pray don't." Had she said she was dying, I should not
|
|
have stopped. The next instant a delirium of my senses came, my prick
|
|
throbbing and as if hot lead was jetting from it, at each throb;
|
|
pleasure mingled with light pain in it, and my whole frame quivering
|
|
with emotion; my sperm left me for a virgin cunt, but fell outside it,
|
|
though on to it.
|
|
|
|
How long I was quiet I don't know; probably but a short time; for a
|
|
first pleasure does not tranquillize at that age; I became conscious
|
|
that she was pushing me off of her, and rose up, she with me, to a
|
|
half-sitting posture; she began to laugh, then to cry, and fell back in
|
|
hysterics, as I had seen her before.
|
|
|
|
I had seen my mother attend to her in those fits, but little did I then
|
|
know, that sexual excitement causes them in women, and that probably in
|
|
her I had been the cause. I got brandy and water, and made her drink a
|
|
lot, helping myself at the same time, for I was frightened, and made her
|
|
lay on the bed. Then ill as she was, frightened as I was, I yet took
|
|
the opportunity her partial insensibility gave me, lifted her clothes
|
|
quietly, and saw her cunt and spunk on it. Roused by that, she pushed
|
|
her clothes half down feebly and got to the side of the bed. I loving,
|
|
begging pardon, kissing her, told her of my pleasure, and asked about
|
|
hers, all in snatches, for I thought I had done her. Not a word could I
|
|
get, but she looked me in the face beseechingly, begging me to go. I had
|
|
no such intention, my prick was again stiffened, I pulled it out, the
|
|
sight of her cunt had stimulated me, she looked with languid eyes at me,
|
|
her cap was off, her hair hanging about her head, her dress torn near
|
|
her breast.
|
|
|
|
More so than she had ever looked, was she beautiful to me, success
|
|
made me bold, on I went insisting, she seemed too weak to withstand me.
|
|
"Don't, oh pray, don't," was all she said as pushing her well on the
|
|
bed, I threw myself on her, and again put my doodle on to the slit now
|
|
wet with my sperm. I was though cooler, stiff as a poker, but my sperm
|
|
was not so ready to flow, as it was in after days, at a second poke, for
|
|
I was very young; but nature did all for me; my prick went to the proper
|
|
channel, there stopped by something it battered furiously. "Oh, you
|
|
hurt, oh!" she cried aloud. The next instant something seemed to tighten
|
|
round its knob, another furious thrust,--another,--a sharp cry of pain
|
|
(resistance was gone), and my prick was buried up her, I felt that it
|
|
was done, and that before I had spent outside of her. I looked at her,
|
|
she was quiet, her cunt seemed to close on my prick, I put my hand down,
|
|
and felt round. What rapture to find my machine buried; nothing but the
|
|
balls to be touched, and her cunt hair wetted with my sperm, mingling
|
|
and clinging to mine; in another minute nature urged a crisis, and I
|
|
spent in a virgin cunt, my prick virgin also. Thus ended my first fuck.
|
|
|
|
My prick was still up her, when we heard a loud knock; both started up
|
|
in terror, I was speechless. "My God; it is your mamma!" Another loud
|
|
knock. What a relief, it was the postman. To rush downstairs, and open
|
|
the door was the work of a minute. "I thought you were all out," said he
|
|
angrily, "I have knocked three times." "We were in the garden," said I.
|
|
He looked queerly at me and said, "With your boots off!" and grinning
|
|
went away. I went up again, found her sitting on the side of the bed,
|
|
and there we sat together. I told her what the postman had said, she
|
|
was sure he would tell her mistress. For a short time, there never was
|
|
a couple who had just fucked, in more of a foolish funk than we were;
|
|
I have often thought of our not hearing the thundering knocks of a
|
|
postman, whilst we were fucking, though the bed-room door was wide
|
|
open; what engrossing work it is so to deafen people. Then after
|
|
unsuccessfully struggling to see her cunt, and kissing, and feeling each
|
|
others' genitals, and talking of our doings and our sensations for an
|
|
hour, we fucked again.
|
|
|
|
It was getting dark, which brought us to reason, we both helped to
|
|
remake the bed, went downstairs, shut the shutters, lighted the fire
|
|
which was out, and got lights. I then having nothing to do, began
|
|
thinking of my doodle which was sticking to my shirt, and pulling it
|
|
out to see its condition, found my shirt covered with sperm smears, and
|
|
spots of blood, my prick was dreadfully sore. I said to her that she had
|
|
been bleeding, she begged me to go out of the kitchen for a minute, I
|
|
did, and almost directly she came out, and passed me saying, she must
|
|
change her things before the cook came home. She would not let me stay
|
|
in the room whilst she did it, nor did I see her chemise, though I had
|
|
followed her upstairs; then the idea flashed across me that I had taken
|
|
a virginity; that had never occurred to me before. She got hot water
|
|
to wash herself. I did not know what to do with my shirt; we arranged
|
|
I should wash it before I went to bed. We thought it best to say, I had
|
|
not been home at all, and that I should go and fetch my mother. After
|
|
much kissing, hugging, and tears on her part, off I went, hatching an
|
|
excuse for not having fetched mother earlier, and we came home with Tom
|
|
in my aunt's carriage I recollect.
|
|
|
|
Before going to bed, I ordered hot water for a footbath. How we looked
|
|
at each other as I ordered it. I washed my shirt as well as I could, and
|
|
looked sadly at my sore prick, I could not pull the skin back, so much
|
|
as usual, it was torn, raw, and slightly bleeding.
|
|
|
|
Awake nearly all night, thinking of my pleasure and proud of my success;
|
|
I rose early, and looking at my shirt, found stains still visible, and
|
|
that I had so mucked it in washing, that an infant could have guessed
|
|
what I had been doing. I knew that my mother who now did household
|
|
duties herself, selected the things for the laundress; and in despair
|
|
hit on a plan: I filled the chamber-pot with piss and soap-suds, making
|
|
it as dirty as I could, put it near a chair and my shirt hanging over it
|
|
carelessly, so as to look as if it had dropped into the pot by accident;
|
|
left it there, and put on a clean shirt. After breakfast my mother who
|
|
usually helped to make my bed, and her own as well, called out to me; up
|
|
I went with my heart in my mouth, to hear her say, she hoped I would
|
|
be a little more careful, and remember that we had no longer my poor
|
|
father's purse. "Look," said she, "a disgraceful state you left your
|
|
shirt in, I am ashamed to have it sent to the laundress, have been
|
|
obliged to tell the housemaid to partly wash it first, you are getting
|
|
very careless." Charlotte afterwards told me, that when mother gave her
|
|
the shirt to rough wash, she felt as if she should faint.
|
|
|
|
I need not repeat about my prepuce, which as said I could now pull down
|
|
with a little less difficulty. Lacerated and painful over night, it was
|
|
much more swollen and sore the next morning, when I pissed it smarted,
|
|
the thinking and smarting made me randy: risking all, whilst my mother
|
|
was actually in the adjoining room, the poor girl in horrid fear and
|
|
looking shockingly ill, I thrust my hand up her clothes and on to her
|
|
split. She whispered, "What a wretch you are!" I went to college, came
|
|
back at three o'clock, thinking always on the same subject; my prick got
|
|
worse, I took it into my head, that Charlotte had given me some disease,
|
|
and was in a dreadful state of mind. I washed it with warm water, and
|
|
greased it, having eased it thus a little, got the skin down, then could
|
|
not get it back again, it got stiff; as it did so sexual pleasures came
|
|
into my mind, and worse got the pain. I greased it more, my pain grew
|
|
less, I touched the tip with my finger, it gave a throb of pleasure, I
|
|
went on without meaning, almost without knowing, the pleasure came and
|
|
spunk shot out. I had frigged myself unintentionally again.
|
|
|
|
I watched my penis shrink, its tension lessen, its high colour go, then
|
|
came the feeling of disgust at myself that I have always felt after
|
|
frigging, a disgust not quite absent even when done by the little
|
|
hands of fair friends, to whose quims I was paying similar delicate
|
|
attentions. I was able to pull up the skin again, but the soreness got
|
|
worse, I told the poor girl that my prick was very sore, and that I
|
|
thought it strange. It did not wound her feelings, for she did not know
|
|
my suspicions. The next morning being no better, I with much hesitation
|
|
told a college friend, he looked at my prick, and thought it either clap
|
|
or pox. Frightened to go to our own doctor, I at his advice went to a
|
|
chemist, who did a little business in such matters; we dealt there, but
|
|
my friend assured me that the man never opened his mouth to any one, if
|
|
youths consulted him, and many he knew had.
|
|
|
|
With quaking I said to the chemist, that I had something the matter with
|
|
my thing. "What?" said he. "I don't know." "Let me see it." I began
|
|
to beg him not to mention it to my mother, or anyone. "Don't waste my
|
|
time," said he, "show it to me, if you want my advice." Out I pulled it
|
|
as small as could be, but still with the skin over it. "Have you been
|
|
with a woman?" said he. "Yes." He looked at my shirt, there was no
|
|
discharge, then he laid hold of my prick with both hands, and with force
|
|
pulled the skin right down, I howled. He told me there was nothing the
|
|
matter with me, that the skin was too tight, that a snip would set me to
|
|
rights, and advised me soon to have it done, saying, "it will save you
|
|
trouble and money if you do, and add to your pleasure." I declined.
|
|
"Another day then." "No." He laughed and said, "Well, time will cure
|
|
you, if you go on as you have began," gave me a lotion, and in three
|
|
days I was pretty right: warm water I expect would have had the same
|
|
effect. I had simply torn the skin in taking the virginity.
|
|
|
|
Of course I wanted Charlotte again, she seemed in no way to help me, and
|
|
used to cry, still there was a wonderful difference between then, and
|
|
before the happy consummation: she tried to prevent my hands going up her
|
|
petticoats, but once up objections ceased, and my hands would rove
|
|
about on the outside and inside of all, we stood and kissed at every
|
|
opportunity. "When shall we do it again?" she replied "Never!" for she
|
|
was sure it would bring punishment on us both.
|
|
|
|
I neglected my studies absolutely; all I thought about was her, and how
|
|
to get at her, it must have been a week or more before I did. Ready for
|
|
any risk, that day my mother was out, I came home, had the early dinner;
|
|
the cook after that always went up to dress, or as she said, clean
|
|
herself, and there she always was an hour. Waiting till I heard her go
|
|
up, I went into the garden parlour, where as usual Charlotte was with
|
|
my little brother. Going at her directly, I was refused, but now how
|
|
different, once she would not rest until my hand was altogether away
|
|
from her. Now I begged and besought her, with my hand up her clothes,
|
|
my fingers on her quim. No--if we had not been found out before, we were
|
|
fortunate, but never, never, would she do it again; was I mad? did I
|
|
wish to ruin her? was not the cook upstairs? might she not come down,
|
|
whilst we did it? how light the room was (the sun was coming in).
|
|
I dropped the blinde, her resistance grew less, as her cunt felt my
|
|
twiddling. "No--now no--oh what a plague you are; hush! it is the cook."
|
|
I open the door, listen, there is no one stirring. "What will she think
|
|
if she finds you here?" "What does it matter; now do--let me,--I'll bolt
|
|
the door, if she comes I will get under the sofa, you say you don't know
|
|
how it got bolted." Such was my innocent device, but it sufficed,
|
|
for both were hot in lust. I bolted it. My prick is out, I pull her
|
|
reluctant hand on to it, my hands are groping now, but too impatient for
|
|
dallying, I push her down on the sofa--that dear cunt. "Don't hurt me so
|
|
much again, oh don't push so hard." Oh! what delight! in a minute we are
|
|
spending, together this time.
|
|
|
|
I unlock the door, go back to the dining-room, she strolls out into the
|
|
garden, cook speaks to her out of the window. "Where is master Wattie?"
|
|
"In the dining-room I suppose." Soon out I stroll into the garden,
|
|
play with Tommy of course, she can scarcely look me in the face, she is
|
|
blushing like a rose. "Was it not lovely, Charlotte, is not your thing
|
|
wet?" In she rushes with Tom, soon I follow, cook is still upstairs.
|
|
"Come, be quick." Again the bolt, again we fuck, she walks off into the
|
|
garden with Tommy, and her cunt full, and cook and she chat from the
|
|
window. How we laughed about it afterwards.
|
|
|
|
Modesty retired after this, we gave way to our inclinations, she
|
|
refusing but always letting me if we got a chance! We were still green
|
|
and timid, at the end of three weeks we only had done it a dozen times
|
|
or so, always with the cook in the house, always with fear. I was
|
|
longing for complete enjoyment of all my senses, had never yet seen
|
|
her cunt, except for a minute at a time, was mad for "the naked limb
|
|
entwined with limb," and all I had read of in amatory poetry. I had
|
|
gained years in boldness and manhood, and although nervous, began to
|
|
practice what I had heard.
|
|
|
|
I heard of accommodation houses, where people could have bed-rooms and
|
|
no questions were asked; and found one not far from my aunt's, although
|
|
she lived in the best quarter of London. Just before Charlotte's day
|
|
out, I went to my aunt, complained of my mother's meanness, and she gave
|
|
me a sovereign. On my way home, I loitered a full hour in the street
|
|
with the baudy house, marked it so as to know it in the day, and saw
|
|
couples go in, as my knowing friend who had told said I should. The next
|
|
day instead of going to college, and risking discovery, I waited till
|
|
Charlotte joined me, took a hackney coach to the street, and
|
|
telling Charlotte it was a tavern walked to the door with her, to my
|
|
astonishment it was closed. Disconcerted I nearly turned back, but rang
|
|
the bell. Charlotte said she would not go in. The door opened, a woman
|
|
said, "Why did you not push the door?" Oh! the shame I felt as I went
|
|
into that baudy house with Charlotte; the woman seemed to hesitate, or
|
|
so I fancied, before she gave us a room.
|
|
|
|
It was a gentleman's house, although the room cost but five shillings:
|
|
red curtains, looking-glasses, wax lights, clean linen, a huge chair, a
|
|
large bed, and a cheval-glass, large enough for the biggest couple to
|
|
be reflected in, were all there. I examined all with the greatest
|
|
curiosity, but my curiosity was greater for other things, of all the
|
|
delicious voluptuous recollections, that day stands among the brightest;
|
|
for the first time in my life I saw all a womans' charms, and exposed my
|
|
own manhood to one; both of us knew but little of the opposite sex. With
|
|
difficulty I got her to undress to her chemise, then with but my shirt
|
|
on, how I revelled in her nakedness, feeling from her neck to her
|
|
ankles, lingering with my fingers in every crack and cranny of her body;
|
|
from armpits to cunt, all was new to me. With what fierce eyes after
|
|
modest struggles, and objections to prevent, and I had forced open her
|
|
reluctant thighs, did I gloat on her cunt; wondering at its hairy outer
|
|
covering and lips, its red inner flaps, at the hole so closed up, and
|
|
so much lower down and hidden, then I thought it to be; soon at its look
|
|
and feel, impatience got the better of me; hurredly I covered it with
|
|
my body and shed my sperm in it. Then with what curiosity I paddled my
|
|
fingers in it afterwards, again to stiffen, thrust, wriggle, and spend.
|
|
All this I recollect as if it occurred but yesterday, I shall recollect
|
|
it to the last day of my life, for it was a honey-moon of novelty, years
|
|
afterwards I often thought of it when fucking other women.
|
|
|
|
We fell asleep, and must have been in the room some hours, when we
|
|
awakened about 3 o'clock. We had eaten nothing that day, and both were
|
|
hungry; she objected to wash before me, or to piddle; how charming it
|
|
was to overcome that needless modesty, what a treat to me to see that
|
|
simple operation. We dressed and left, went to a quietish public-house,
|
|
and had some simple food and beer, which set me up, I was ready to do
|
|
all over again, and so was she. We went back to the house and again
|
|
to bed, the woman smiled when she saw us, the feeling, looking,
|
|
tittillating, baudy inciting and kissing recommenced. With what
|
|
pleasure she felt and handled my prick, nor did she make objection to
|
|
my investigations into her privates, though saying she would not let me.
|
|
Her thighs opened, showing the red-lipped, hairy slit, I kissed it, she
|
|
kissed my cock, nature taught us both what to do. Again we fucked,
|
|
I found it a longish operation, and when I tried later again, was
|
|
surprised to find that it would not stiffen for more than a minute, and
|
|
an insertion failed. I found out that day that there were limits to
|
|
my powers. Both tired out, our day's pleasure over, we rose and took a
|
|
hackney coach towards home, I went in first, she a quarter of an hour
|
|
afterwards, and everything passed off as I could have wished.
|
|
|
|
From that day lust seized us both; we laid our plans to have each other
|
|
frequently, but it was difficult: my mother was mostly at home, the
|
|
cook nearly always at home if mother was out; but quite twice a week we
|
|
managed to copulate, and sometimes oftener. We arranged signals. If when
|
|
she opened the door, she gave a shake of the head, I knew mother was
|
|
in; if she smiled and pointed down with her fingers, mother was out,
|
|
but cook downstairs; if it pointed up, cook was upstairs; in the latter
|
|
case, to go into the garden parlour and fuck, all this was done off
|
|
hand. If cook was known to be going out, Charlotte told me beforehand,
|
|
and if mother was to be out, I got home, letting college and tutors
|
|
go to the devil. Then there was lip kissing, cunt kissing, feeling and
|
|
looking, tickling and rubbing each others articles, all the preliminary
|
|
delights of copulation, and but one danger in the way: my little brother
|
|
could talk in a broken way, we used to give him some favorite toy, and
|
|
put him on the floor, whilst we indulged voluptuously. On the sofa one
|
|
day, I had just spent in her, when I felt a little hand tickling between
|
|
our bellies, and Tommy who had tottered up to us said, "Don'ty hurt
|
|
Lotty, der's a good Wattie." We settled that Tom was too young to notice
|
|
or recollect, what he saw, but I now think differently.
|
|
|
|
Winter was coming on, she used to be sent to a circulating library
|
|
to fetch books, the shop was some distance off, a few houses, long
|
|
garden-walls and hedges were on the road. I used to keep out, or go
|
|
out just before she went, and we fucked up against the walls. I took
|
|
to going to church in the evening also, to the intense delight of my
|
|
mother, but it was to fuck on the road home. One day hot in lust, we
|
|
fucked standing on the lobby near my bed-room, my mother being in the
|
|
room below, the cook in the kitchen. We got bold, reckless, and whenever
|
|
we met alone, if only for an instant, we felt each others genitals.
|
|
|
|
At last we found the servant's privy one of the best places. I have
|
|
described its situation near to a flight of steps, at the end of a
|
|
covered passage, which could be seen from one point only in the garden;
|
|
down there, anyone standing was out of sight. If all was clear I used
|
|
to ring the parlour bell, ask for something, and make a sign; when she
|
|
thought it safe, there she would go, I into the garden, to where I could
|
|
see into the passage by the side of the garden stairs. If I saw her,
|
|
or heard "ahem," down I went into the privy, and was up her cunt in a
|
|
second, standing against the wall, and shoving to get our spent over, as
|
|
if my life depended on it; this was uncomfortable, but it had its charm.
|
|
We left off doing it in the privy, being nearly caught one day there.
|
|
|
|
We thought cook was upstairs mother was out, I was fucking her, when the
|
|
cook knocked saying, "make haste Charlotte, I want to come." We had just
|
|
spent, she was so frightened I thought she was fainting, but she
|
|
managed to say "I cannot." "Do," said cook, "I am ill." "So am I," said
|
|
Charlotte. Said cook, "I can sit on the little seat." "Go to misses's
|
|
closet, she's out." Off cook went, out we came, and never fucked in that
|
|
place again; one day I did her on the kitchen table, and several times
|
|
on the dining-room table.
|
|
|
|
We in fact did it everywhere else, and often enough for my health, for I
|
|
was young, weak and growing, and it was the same with her. The risks we
|
|
ran were awful, but we loved each other with all our souls. Both young,
|
|
both new at the work, both liking it, it was rarely we got more than
|
|
just time to get our fucking over, and clothes arranged before we had to
|
|
separate, for her to get to her duties. Many times I have seen her about
|
|
the house, cunt full and with the heightened colour, and brilliant
|
|
eyes, of a woman who had just been satisfied. I used to feel pleasure
|
|
in knowing she was bringing in the dinner, or tea, with my spunk in her
|
|
cunt; not having had the opportunity to wash, or piddle it out.
|
|
|
|
When she had another holiday, we went to the baudy house, and stayed so
|
|
long in it, that we had a scare; just asleep, we heard a knocking at the
|
|
door. My first idea was that my mother had found me out, and although I
|
|
ruled her in one way, I way in great subjection to her, from not having
|
|
any money. She thought her father was after her. What a relief it was
|
|
to hear a voice say: "Shall you be long sir, we want the room." I was
|
|
having too much accommodation for my money. That night we walked home,
|
|
for I had no money for a coach, and barely enough to get us a glass
|
|
of beer and a biscuit; we were famished and fucked out, my mother had
|
|
refused to give me money, and another aunt whom I had asked, said I was
|
|
asking too often, and refused also.
|
|
|
|
Although we went to this baudy house, I always felt as if I was going
|
|
to be hanged when I did, and it was with difficulty I could make her
|
|
go; she called it a bad house, and it cost money. Something then occured
|
|
which helped me, penniless as I was.
|
|
|
|
At the extreme end of our village were a few little houses, one stood
|
|
with its side entrance up a road only partially formed, and without
|
|
thoroughfare; its owner was a pew-opener, her daughter a dressmaker, who
|
|
worked for servants and such like; they cut out things for servants, who
|
|
in those days largely made their own dresses. Charlotte had things made
|
|
there. At a fair held every year near us of which I shall have to tell
|
|
more, my fast friend, who had put me up to so much, and whom I forgot
|
|
to say tried to get hold of Charlotte, I saw with the dressmaker's
|
|
daughter. Said he, talking to me next day, "She is jolly ugly, but she's
|
|
good enough for a feel, I felt her cunt last night, and think she has
|
|
been fucked (he thought that of every girl), her mother's a rum old gal
|
|
too, she will let you meet a girl at her cottage, not whores, you know,
|
|
but if they are respectable." "Is it a baudy house?" I asked. "Oh no,
|
|
it's quite respectable, but if you walk in with a lady, she leaves you
|
|
in the room together, and when you come out, if you just give her half
|
|
a crown, she drops a curtesy, just as she does when she opens
|
|
the pew-doors and anyone gives her six pence, but she is quite
|
|
respectable--the clergyman goes to see her sometimes."
|
|
|
|
Charlotte asked to go out to a dressmaker, I met her as if by chance at
|
|
the door, the old pew-opener asked if I would like to walk in and wait.
|
|
I did. Charlotte came in after she had arranged about her dress. There
|
|
was a sofa in the room, and she was soon on it; we left together, I
|
|
have two or three shillings (money went much further then), and the
|
|
pew-opener said, "You can always wait here when your young lady comes to
|
|
see my daughter."
|
|
|
|
When we went a second time, she asked me if I went to St. Mary's Chapel
|
|
(her Chapel). We went to her house in the day that time. When going away
|
|
she said, "Perhaps you wont mind always going out first, for neighbours
|
|
are so ill-natured." The old woman was really a pew-opener, her daughter
|
|
really a dressmaker, but she was glad to earn a few shillings, by
|
|
letting her house be used for assignations of a quiet sort; she would
|
|
not have let gay women in, from what I heard.
|
|
|
|
She had lived for years in the parish, and was thought respectable. She
|
|
had not much use of her house in that way, wealthy people going to town
|
|
for their frolics,--town only being an hour's journey--and no gay women
|
|
being in the village that I know of.
|
|
|
|
At this house, I spent Charlotte's third holiday with her, in a
|
|
comfortable bed-room. We stopped from eleven in the morning, till nine
|
|
at night, having mutton chops and ale, and being as jolly as we
|
|
could be. We did nothing the whole day long, but look at each other's
|
|
privates, kiss, fuck and sleep outside the bed. It was there she
|
|
expressed curiosity about male emissions. I told her how the sperm
|
|
spurted out, then discussing women's, she told me of the pleasure I
|
|
had given her when fingering her in the manner described already; we
|
|
completed our explanations by my frigging myself to show her, and then
|
|
my doing the same to her with my finger. I bungled at that, and think I
|
|
hear her now saying, "No, just where you were is nicest." "Does it give
|
|
you pleasure?" "Oh yes, but I don't like it that way, oh!--oh!--I am
|
|
doing it--oh!" I had no money that day, Charlotte had her wages, and
|
|
paid for everything, giving me her money to do so.
|
|
|
|
One day we laughed at having nearly been caught fucking in the privy.
|
|
"She must have a big bum, must Mary," said I, "to sit on that little
|
|
seat at the privy." Said Charlotte, "She is a big woman, twice as big
|
|
as me, her bottom would cover the whole seat." This set us talking about
|
|
the cook, and as what I then heard affected me much at a future day, I
|
|
will tell all Charlotte said as nearly as I can recollect.
|
|
|
|
"Of course I have seen her naked bit by bit--when two women are together
|
|
they can't help it, why should they mind--if you sit down to pee, you
|
|
show your legs, and if you put on your stockings you show your thighs,
|
|
then we both wash down to our waists, and if you slip off your chemise
|
|
or night-gown you show yourself all over. Mary's beautiful from head to
|
|
foot, one morning in the summer, we sleeping in the same bed, were
|
|
very hot. I got out to pee, we had kicked all the clothes off, Mary was
|
|
laying on her back with night-clothes above her waist fast asleep,
|
|
I could not help looking at her thighs, which were so large and
|
|
white--white as snow." "Had she much hair on her cunt?" said I. "What's
|
|
that to you?" said she laughing, but went on: "Oh! twice as much as I
|
|
have, and of a light brown." "I suppose her cunt is bigger than yours?"
|
|
said I reflectively. "Well, perhaps it is," said Charlotte, "she is a
|
|
much bigger woman than me, what do you think?" I inclined to the opinion
|
|
it must be, but had no experience to guide me; on the whole we agreed
|
|
that it was likely to be bigger.
|
|
|
|
"Then," said she, "I suppose some men have smaller things than yours?"
|
|
I told her that as far as I knew they varied slightly, but only had
|
|
knowledge of youthful pricks, and could not be certain whether they
|
|
varied much when full grown or not. We went on about Mary. "I know I
|
|
should like to be such a big, fine woman." "But" said I, "I don't like
|
|
light hair, I like dark hair on a cunt, light hair can't look well, I
|
|
should think." "I like her," said Charlotte, "she is a nice woman, but
|
|
often dull, she has no relatives in London, never says anything about
|
|
them or herself, she used to have letters, and then often cried, she has
|
|
none now; the other night she took me in her arms, gave me a squeeze
|
|
and said, 'Oh! if you were a nice young man now', then laughed and
|
|
said, 'perhaps we would put our things together and make babies.' I was
|
|
frightened to say anything, for fear she would find out I knew to much;
|
|
I think she has been crossed in love."
|
|
|
|
I was twiddling Charlotte's quim as I was never tired of doing,
|
|
something in the sensation I suppose reminded her, for laughing she went
|
|
on: "You know what you did to me the other night." "What?" said I not
|
|
recollecting. "You know, with your finger." "Oh! frig." "Yes, well Mary
|
|
does that; I was awake one night, and was quite quiet, when I heard Mary
|
|
breathing hard, and felt her elbow go jog, jog, just touching my side,
|
|
then she gave a sigh, and all was quiet. I went to sleep, and have
|
|
only just thought of it." She had heard or felt this jog from the cook
|
|
before, so we both concluded, that she frigged herself, Charlotte knew
|
|
what frigging was.
|
|
|
|
"Do you recollect your mamma's birthday?" said Charlotte, "she sent us
|
|
down a bottle of sherry, the gardener was to have some, but did not;
|
|
so we were both a little fuddled when we went to bed. When Mary was
|
|
undressed she pulled up her clothes to her hips, and looking at herself
|
|
said, 'my legs are twice as big as yours.' Then we made a bet on it and
|
|
measured; she lost, but her thigh was half as big again round as mine;
|
|
then she thew herself on her back and cocked up her legs, opening them
|
|
for a minute. I said 'Lor, Mary, what ever are you doing?' 'Ah I' said
|
|
she, 'women's legs were made to open', and there it ended. I never heard
|
|
her before say or do anything improper, she is most particular." If
|
|
Charlotte had been older or wiser, she would not have extolled the naked
|
|
beauties of a fellow servant to her lover, for the description of the
|
|
big bum, white thighs and hairy belly bottom, the jog, jog, of the
|
|
elbow, and all the other particulars sunk deep into my mind.
|
|
|
|
We fucked more than ever, recklessly--it is a wonder we were not found
|
|
out, for one evening, it being dark, I fucked her in the forecourt,
|
|
outside our street-door; but troubles were coming.
|
|
|
|
Her father wrote to know why she had not been home at her holidays, she
|
|
got an extra holiday to go and pacify him; then we had a fright because
|
|
her courses stopped, but they came on all right again. One of my sisters
|
|
came home, and diminished our opportunities, still we managed to fuck
|
|
somehow, most of the times they were uprighters. The next holiday she
|
|
went home by coach (the only way), I met her on the return, and we
|
|
fucked up against the garden wall of our house. A month slipped away,
|
|
again we spent her holiday at the pew-opener's; no man and woman could
|
|
have liked each other more, or more enjoyed each other's bodies, without
|
|
thinking of the rest of the world. I disguised nothing from her,
|
|
she told me all she knew of herself, the liking she took for me, her
|
|
pleasure yet fear and shame when first I felt her cunt, the shock of
|
|
delight and confusion when on my twiddling it, she had spent; how she
|
|
made up her mind to run out of the house when the milkman came, the
|
|
hysterical faint when I first laid my prick between her slit and spent,
|
|
the sensation of relief when I had not done, an instinct told her I
|
|
should, in spending outside, the sort of feeling of "poor fellow, he
|
|
wants me, he may do as he likes," which she had; I told my sensations.
|
|
All these we told each other over and over again, and never tired of the
|
|
conversation; we were an innocent, reckless, randy couple.
|
|
|
|
We had satisfied our lusts in simple variety, but I, never put my
|
|
tongue in her mouth, nor do I know that I had heard of that form of
|
|
lovemaking--but more of that hereafter. I did her on her belly, and
|
|
some-thing incited me to do it to her dog fashion, but it was never
|
|
repeated; we examined as said each others appendages, but once
|
|
satisfied, having seen mine get from flaccid to stiff, the piddle
|
|
issue, the spunk squirt, she never wanted to see it again, and could
|
|
not understand my insatiable curiosity about hers. She knew I think less
|
|
than most girls of her age about the males, having never I recollect
|
|
nursed male children, and I don't think she had brothers.
|
|
|
|
How is it that scarcely any woman will let you willingly look at her
|
|
cunt after fucking, till it is washed; most say it is beastly, gay or
|
|
quiet, it is the same. Is it more beastly to have it spurted up, to
|
|
turn and go to sleep with the spunk oosing on to a thigh, or an hour
|
|
afterwards to let a man paddle in what has not dried? They don't
|
|
mind that, but won't let you look at it after your operations,
|
|
willingly--why?
|
|
|
|
A modest girl lays quietly after fucking, and does not wash till you are
|
|
away. A young girl who has let you see her cunt and take her virginity,
|
|
won't wash it at all, until you point out the necessity. A gay woman
|
|
often tries to shove back her bum just as you spend, gets the discharge
|
|
near the outlet, uncunts you quickly and at once washes and pisses at
|
|
the same time. A quiet young girl wipes her cunt on the outside only.
|
|
A working man's wife does the same. I have fucked several, and not one
|
|
washed before me. I incline to the opinion that poor women rarely wash
|
|
their cunts inside, their piddle does all the washing. "What's the good
|
|
of washing it?" said a poor, but not a gay girl to me, "it's always
|
|
clean, and feels just the same an hour afterwards, whether washed
|
|
or not." Is the unwashed cunt less healthy than one often soaped and
|
|
syringed? I doubt it. An old _roue_ said to me he would not give a damn
|
|
to fuck a cunt at night, which has been washed since the morning.
|
|
|
|
About sexual matters each of us knew about as much as the other, and
|
|
we had much to learn. A girl however in the sphere of life of Charlotte
|
|
usually knows more about a man's sex, than a youth of the same age does
|
|
of a woman's; they have nursed children, and know what a cock is; a girl
|
|
is never thought too young to nurse a male child, no one would trust a
|
|
boy after ten years of age to nurse a female child; but she had never
|
|
nursed. From Charlotte I had my first knowledge of menstruation, and of
|
|
other mysteries of her sex. Ah! that menstruation was a wonder to me, it
|
|
was marvellous, but all was really a wonder to me then.
|
|
|
|
After Christmas my sister went back to school, our chances seemed
|
|
improving, we spent another holiday at the pew-opener's. I had got
|
|
money, and we were indiscreet enough to go to see some wax-works. Next
|
|
day her father came to see her; he ordered her to tell where she had
|
|
been. She refused, he got angry, and made such a noise, that mother
|
|
rang to know what it was. He asked to see her, apologized, and said his
|
|
daughter had been out several holidays, without his knowing where she
|
|
had been. My mother said it was very improper, and that he ought. A
|
|
friend was with us in the room, and I sat there reading and trembling.
|
|
My mother remarked to the lady, "I hope that girl is not going wrong,
|
|
she is very good looking." Mother asked me to go out of the room, then
|
|
had Charlotte up, and lectured her; afterwards Charlotte told me for the
|
|
first time, that her father was annoyed because she would not marry a
|
|
young man.
|
|
|
|
A young man had called at our house several times to see her; she saw
|
|
him once and evaded doing so afterwards. He was the son of a well-to-do
|
|
baker, a few miles from Charlotte's home, and wished to marry her; his
|
|
father was not expected to live, and the young man said he would marry
|
|
her directly the father died. Her mother was mad at her refusing such
|
|
a chance. Charlotte showed me his letters, which then came, and we
|
|
arranged together the replies.
|
|
|
|
She went home, and came back with eyes swollen with crying, some one
|
|
had written anonymously, to say she had been seen at the wax-works with
|
|
a young man, evidently of position above her, and had been seen walking
|
|
with a young man. The mother threatened to have a doctor examine her
|
|
to see if she had been doing anything wrong, no one seemed to have
|
|
suspected me; her father would have her home, her mother had had
|
|
suspicion of her for some time, "The sooner you marry young Brown the
|
|
better, he will have a good business, and keeps a horse and chaise,
|
|
you will never have such a chance again, and it will prevent you going
|
|
wrong, even if you have not already gone wrong," said her mother.
|
|
|
|
It was a rainy night, I had met her on her return, and we both stood an
|
|
hour under an umbrella, talking and crying, she saying, "I knew I should
|
|
be ruined; if I marry he will find me out, if I don't they will lead me
|
|
such a life; oh! what shall I do!" We fucked twice in the rain against
|
|
a wall, putting down the umbrella to do it. Afterwards we met at the
|
|
dressmaker's, talked over our misery and cried, and fucked, and cried
|
|
again. Then it was nothing but worry, she crying at her future, I
|
|
wondering if I should be found out; still with all our misery, we never
|
|
failed to fuck if there was a clear five minutes before us. Then her
|
|
mother wrote to say that old Brown was dead, and her father meant to
|
|
take her away directly; she refused, the father came, saw my mother, and
|
|
settled the affair by taking back Charlotte's box of clothes. I had not
|
|
a farthing; at her age a father had absolute control, and nothing short
|
|
of running away would have been of use. We talked of drowning ourselves,
|
|
or of her taking work in the fields. I projected things equally absurd
|
|
for myself. It ended in her agreeing to go home,--she could not help
|
|
that,--but refusing to marry.
|
|
|
|
Charlotte wrote me almost directly after her return. My mother had
|
|
reserved the right of opening my letters, although she had ceased to do
|
|
so. That morning seeing she had one addressed to me, in fear I snatched
|
|
it out of her hand. She insisted on having it back, I refused, and we
|
|
had a row. "How dare you sir? give it me." "I won't, you shant open my
|
|
letter." "I will, a boy like you!" "I am not a boy, I am a man, if you
|
|
ever open a letter of mine, I will go for a common soldier, instead of
|
|
being an officer." "I will tell your guardian." "I mean to tell him how
|
|
shamefully short of money I am, uncle says it's a shame, so does aunt."
|
|
my mother sunk down in tears, it was my first rebellion; she spoke to
|
|
my guardian, never touched my letters again, and gave me five times
|
|
the money I used to have; but to make sure, I had letters enclosed to a
|
|
friend, and fetched them.
|
|
|
|
Charlotte was not allowed to go out alone, and was harassed in every
|
|
way; for all that, I managed to meet her at a local school, one Saturday
|
|
afternoon when it was empty; some friendly teacher let her in, and she
|
|
let me in. We fucked on a hard form, in a nearly dark room, about the
|
|
most difficult poke I ever had, it was a ridiculous posture. But our
|
|
meeting was full of tears, despondency, and dread of being with child.
|
|
She told me I had ruined her, even fucking did not cheer her. A week or
|
|
so afterwards, having no money, I walked all the way to try to see
|
|
her, and failed. Afterwards in her letters, she begged me never to tell
|
|
anyone about what had passed between us. Her father sent her away to his
|
|
brother's, where she was to help as a servant; for somehow it had got
|
|
wind that she had met some one at the school-house. There she fell ill
|
|
and was sent home again. Then she wrote that she should marry, or have
|
|
no peace, wished I was older, and then she could marry me; she did not
|
|
write much common sense, although it did not strike me so then. She was
|
|
coming to London to buy things, would say she would call on my mother on
|
|
the road, but would meet me instead. How she humbugged the young woman
|
|
who came to town with her, I don't know, but we met at the baudy house,
|
|
cried nearly the whole time, but fucked for all that till my cock would
|
|
stand no longer; then vowing to see each other after she was married, we
|
|
parted.
|
|
|
|
She married soon, my mother told me of it; she lived twelve miles
|
|
from us, and did not write to me. I went there one day, but although
|
|
I lingered long near their shop, I never saw her. I did that a second
|
|
time, she saw me looking in, and staggered into a back room. I dared
|
|
not go in for fear of injuring her. Afterwards came a letter not signed,
|
|
breathing love, but praying me not to injure her, as might be if I was
|
|
seen near her house. Money, distance, time was all against me; I felt
|
|
all was over, took to frigging, which, added to my vexation, made me
|
|
ill. What the doctor thought I don't know, he said I was suffering
|
|
from nervous exhaustion, asked my mother if I was steady, and kept good
|
|
hours. My mother said I was the quietest, and best of sons, as innocent
|
|
as a child, and that I was suffering from severe study--she had long
|
|
thought I should; the fact being that for four months I had scarcely
|
|
looked at a book, excepting when she was near me, and had when not
|
|
thinking of Charlotte, spent my time in writing baudy words, and
|
|
sketching cunts and pricks with pen and ink.
|
|
|
|
Thus I lost my virginity, and took one, thus ended my first love or
|
|
lust; which will you call it? I call it love, for I was fond of the
|
|
girl, and she of me. Some might call it a seduction, but thinking of it
|
|
after this lapse of years, I do not. It was only the natural result of
|
|
two people being thrown together, both young, full of hot blood, and
|
|
eager to gratify their sexual curiosity; there was no blame to either,
|
|
we were made to do it, and did but illustrate the truth of the old song,
|
|
"Cock and cunt will come together, check them as you may," and point to
|
|
the wisdom, of never leaving a young male and female alone together, if
|
|
they were not wanted to copulate.
|
|
|
|
In all respects we were as much like man and wife as circumstances would
|
|
let us be. We poked and poked, whenever we got a chance; we divided our
|
|
money, if I had none, she spent her wages; when I had it, I paid for her
|
|
boots and clothes--a present in the usually sense of the term I never
|
|
gave her; our sexual pleasures were of the simplest, the old fashioned
|
|
way was what we followed, and altogether it was a natural, virtuous,
|
|
wholesome, connection, but the world will not agree with me on that
|
|
point.
|
|
|
|
One thing strikes me as remarkable now: the audacity with which I went
|
|
to a baudy house; all the rest seems to have began, and followed as
|
|
naturally as possible. What a lovely recollection it is! nothing in my
|
|
career since is so lovely as our life then was; scarce a trace of what
|
|
may be called lasciviousness was in it, had the priest blest it by the
|
|
bands of matrimony, it would have been called the chaste pleasure of
|
|
love and affection--as the priest had nothing to do with it, it will
|
|
be called I suppose beastly immorality. I have often wondered if her
|
|
husband found out that she was not a virgin, and if not whether it was
|
|
owing to some skill of hers, or to his ignorance; I heard afterwards
|
|
that they lived happily.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VI.
|
|
|
|
Mary the cook.--A bloody nose and broken piss-pot.--An
|
|
involuntary spend.--A feel and a poke.--A new sensation.--At
|
|
a baudy house.--Mary's history.--She leaves.
|
|
|
|
As the certainty that all was finished between us came to me, I
|
|
got better, my grief moderated, my prick expected occupation, I was
|
|
horrified at having frigged myself, and ceased doing it. Then naturally
|
|
I looked at the servants. The new housemaid was ugly as sin, so I turned
|
|
to Mary the cook. I was then about seventeen years old.
|
|
|
|
She was now I think twenty-six or eight years old, big, stout, but as it
|
|
seemed to me then, symmetrical; she had exquisite teeth, blue eyes, and a
|
|
fine complexion--so fine that my mother remarked it. She was quiet in
|
|
a remarkable degree, and treated me as a boy. Nine months before this
|
|
I should as soon have dared to think of fucking my aunt, but experience
|
|
had altered me. I thought of the light hair on her cunt, and of all I
|
|
could not see, which Charlotte had innocently described to me; and the
|
|
conclusions we had arrived at, that she frigged herself. Then I thought
|
|
that after all, old as she was, and young as I was, she might like
|
|
Charlotte, let me do her. I had once kissed her when Charlotte was with
|
|
us, and she had taken it as if she was letting a child kiss her; I now
|
|
tried it again, and got a quiet kiss in return; it was done with the air
|
|
and manner of "There, there, you troublesome boy," which mortified me
|
|
much.
|
|
|
|
I had now special tutors at home, and was at home when I liked, yet
|
|
my chances with the cook were fewer than they had been with Charlotte,
|
|
owing to her occupations. I was studying elementary chemistry, and when
|
|
making some experiments in the garden parlour, burnt a table cover. My
|
|
mother angry, said I had better experiment in the back kitchen again, so
|
|
under that pretence, I managed to be downstairs frequently.
|
|
|
|
I used to watch Mary, slipping out into the outside passage leading
|
|
to the servant's privy, and take pleasure in the idea of her piddling
|
|
there. One day, I watched her coming back, she gave her clothes a tuck
|
|
between her legs, and I knew it was to dry her cunt; opened the door
|
|
just as she did it, she knew that I saw the action by my grin, and her
|
|
face turned scarlet. I kissed her that day, asked her timidly if she had
|
|
dried it properly that morning. "Dried what?" said she innocently. "What
|
|
I saw you drying when you came from the closet." She turned away without
|
|
saying a word.
|
|
|
|
A day or two after as she went upstairs to the parlour, I stopped, saw
|
|
her legs, and told her she had jolly fat legs. She wished I would go
|
|
upstairs, for I was in the way with my chemicals, and after that ceased
|
|
talking to me. But it was difficult to avoid me, I got rude, would tuck
|
|
my coat between my legs, laugh and make believe to stoop down to see her
|
|
ankles, but she took no notice. Begging her to kiss me one day; she gave
|
|
me two or three at once saying, "There now, go on with your chemicals,"
|
|
in such a motherly way, that it mortified me excessively; making me feel
|
|
the difference in our ages, as a barrier to my hopes.
|
|
|
|
But if discouraged one day, I got courage the next; impelled by a
|
|
cock-stand, and my mother being out, I said, "Should I not like to see
|
|
your legs." For a wonder she answered, "Look at your own." "Oh!" I
|
|
replied, "they are not the same, you have got a slit between them, I have
|
|
got something hanging, and ready to put into the slit." "I wish you
|
|
would go upstairs," said she, "you are always down here now." Then she
|
|
told mother I was in her way,--I promised only to go to the back kitchen
|
|
when it suited the cook, but did not keep my word.
|
|
|
|
She was alone one evening, I went home and downstairs, kissed and
|
|
fondled, and would not be repulsed. At some time every woman is more
|
|
yielding than at others, they always are if randy. Getting my courage up
|
|
I said I wished she would let me feel her thing, then said, "Let me do
|
|
you," in a whisper. It was quite dusk down there when I said it. She
|
|
was speechless for a full minute, whilst I kept repeating my demand. At
|
|
length she replied, "How dare a boy like you, speak like that to a woman
|
|
like me." "I--am not a boy," said I in anger; "I have had many women, I
|
|
know all about a woman's pleasure, I know where your thing is; I know
|
|
why you tuck your hand outside your clothes after you have piddled."
|
|
Then she pushed me out of the kitchen, but I thought she smiled.
|
|
|
|
Our family habits were much as they had been, but the weather getting
|
|
finer, mother often took both Tom and the housemaid with her out for a
|
|
walk; but not until the cook had dressed herself after our early dinner.
|
|
Unless she took the housemaid out, I was worse off than ever. Yet my
|
|
chances came.
|
|
|
|
Cook one day was alone in the kitchen darning a stocking; it was
|
|
cold--the beginning of March--her feet were on the old fashioned iron
|
|
fender, I sat myself down on the fender, and we talked, I laid my hand
|
|
on her lap, and tried quietly without letting her know it, to feel where
|
|
she gartered. I felt the knot distinctly above her knee, thought how
|
|
near it was to the cunt I was burning to feel, then put my hand up her
|
|
clothes, and felt her naked leg under the knee.
|
|
|
|
She told me to leave off, my prick was standing, "Have you not jolly big
|
|
white thighs, I have heard of them," said I. "Heard?" said she. "Yes,
|
|
and a good lot of hair between them." "Who, to look at you would believe
|
|
you were such a liar, such a young monkey; get out of the kitchen." She
|
|
arose, drew some water, took it in one hand, some clean clothes in the
|
|
other, and went upstairs, taking no further notice of me. I followed her
|
|
a few steps up, then pushed my hands up her clothes on to her thighs,
|
|
just beneath her backslide; round she swung facing me, and sat down on
|
|
the stairs; in swinging round my hand came just into contact with the
|
|
hair of her cunt; then with a push she sent me downstairs tumbling. As I
|
|
got up she said quite quietly, "It's your fault if you are hurt; if you
|
|
follow me, I will push you down again," "I am stronger than you." I
|
|
sung out,. "I don't care, so long as I can feel you." "If I was not
|
|
so comfortable here in many ways, I would leave to-morrow," said she,
|
|
continuing to go upstairs, and thinking she had settled me; but I
|
|
followed, tried again, and she threw the whole jug of water over me.
|
|
"Now tell your mamma," said she, "and I'll surprise her, she don't know
|
|
her son," and again she pushed me down. That did not stop my tongue, for
|
|
I had now got angry and reckless, sang out my wants, bawling out about
|
|
her cunt, and said, "Did you ever sit on the little privy seat Mary,
|
|
tell me." She went up, and locked herself in her bed-room, till I was
|
|
tired of waiting.
|
|
|
|
I had been a month at this fun, and as in Charlotte's case seemed
|
|
not getting on at all, my experience was confined to one woman, and
|
|
naturally I used to compare everything taking place, with what had taken
|
|
place with her. To my inexperienced mind, there was a difference between
|
|
the two women which I could not understand: when I first got my hand up
|
|
Charlotte's clothes, she was as quick as me, struggled, screeched, and
|
|
got my hand away, seemed in dread and astonished. When I got my hand on
|
|
Mary's flesh, which I did repeatedly afterwards, she would turn round
|
|
quite quietly, remove my hand with force, look at me as if she were
|
|
collecting her thoughts, did not seem at all alarmed, but gave me a
|
|
lecture. When she kissed me afterwards, it seemed to be upon reflection,
|
|
but she did it with force, looked me full in the face, then turned away.
|
|
One day she said, "I would not leave a sister of mine here, if she were
|
|
young, for five times my wages, but I am old enough to keep you in your
|
|
place."
|
|
|
|
Soon after mother was one day out, I at home, housemaid and Tom in
|
|
the garden; it was a clear, bright day, there was a fire in the garden
|
|
parlour, the garden window-door was shut, and I bolted it; it was about
|
|
half-past three o'clock, the cook was dressing, I burning with lust,
|
|
went to my bed-room, opposite then to her door and listened. I heard
|
|
the rattle of piddle, excitement got the better of my fears, I knocked.
|
|
"It's not locked," she called out, thinking it was the housemaid; I
|
|
opened the door, went in and closed it.
|
|
|
|
She was standing before the glass brushing her hair, with but stays on;
|
|
over her chemise, I saw at a glance big white breasts, and big white
|
|
legs up to her knees. She turned round, and seeing me, put her hands up
|
|
to cover her breasts, stepped backwards till the bedstead stopped
|
|
her, and said, "Go out, mister Walter," but I threw my arms round her,
|
|
clasping her tightly and kissing her on her breasts before she could
|
|
repeat her request, and said, "Oh! do Mary, do let me."
|
|
|
|
She did not answer, but disengaged herself from my arms. Crafty with
|
|
lust and doubtless thinking of former experience, I dropped on my knees,
|
|
in an instant had her chemise up, both hands round her great bum, and my
|
|
mouth buried in the hair, kissing the outside of her cunt; she sat down
|
|
nearly crushing my hands, between her bum and the bedstead, I withdrew
|
|
them with a cry of pain.
|
|
|
|
She pushed me away; being on my knees, back I tumbled; as I did so,
|
|
caught her chemise and lifted it; she put her hands down to prevent it;
|
|
I kept my hold tightly, and it tore up with a noise, to where her stays
|
|
stopped it from going further; but the rent disclosed thighs belly and
|
|
motte simultaneously. She rose, tried to hide her nakedness, and stop
|
|
the chemise going further, her legs got somehow entangled with mine, I
|
|
fell back, and she fell clean over me. As I fell, my head struck the pot
|
|
and overturned it, I felt the warm piddle round my neck and head, and
|
|
at the same instant a heavy sort of blow on my nose, and hair on my
|
|
lips--it was her naked belly and motte which struck me as she fell on
|
|
me. We rolled over, and struggled for a second, I saw white thighs a
|
|
huge bum, and then we were both up. She opened the window and shouted
|
|
out, "Eliza, Eliza, I want you."
|
|
|
|
Then she turned to me with her eyes wide open, her bosom palpitating,
|
|
and said, "Get out, you are a nice young blackguard, I would not have
|
|
believed it, had I not found you out." And in the same breath hurriedly,
|
|
"Oh! my God, Wattie, what is the matter?" I felt a funny trickling
|
|
sensation on my upper lip, and putting my hand up to feel, removed it
|
|
covered with blood, the result of the blow of her motte on my nose,
|
|
which was pouring down blood copiously, and dropping on to my shirt. The
|
|
sight of blood always made me furious, "It's a blow from your belly,"
|
|
said I, "you did it purposely." She saw by that time it was not serious
|
|
and said, "it serves you right, and directly your mamma comes in I will
|
|
tell her." "Do," said I. She repeated, "You are a young blackguard."
|
|
|
|
In the excitement of opening the window, calling out, and seeing my nose
|
|
bleeding, she had forgotten her torn chemise; and I had thought about
|
|
nothing but my bleeding nose. Standing by the table to open the window,
|
|
her form had been hidden, but she moved, disclosed the torn chemise,
|
|
partly one of her hips, thigh, leg, and partially the hair of her cunt.
|
|
"I can see your cunt," said I staunching my nose. She snatched up the
|
|
torn chemise, hiding herself with it. "Oh! go, go," said she, "oh! that
|
|
mess, what shall I do!" and she stopped to set up the piss-pot which was
|
|
laying on one side; I rushed forward, nose still bleeding, and tried to
|
|
feel the half naked thigh. "For God's sake go," said she, "here is Eliza
|
|
coming." I heard Tom lumping up step by step slowly, assisted by the
|
|
housemaid, and bolted into my room.
|
|
|
|
I held the door ajar and listened. "Where is Master Walter?" said the
|
|
housemaid as she got to the top landing. "I don't know," said Mary, "is
|
|
he not in the drawing-room?" "I don't know," replied Eliza, "what do you
|
|
want?" The door closed, I heard no more, but felt sure that Mary did not
|
|
mean to tell. My nose left off bleeding, I washed it, and crept quietly
|
|
downstairs.
|
|
|
|
Eliza and Tommy went down again into the garden; shortly afterwards
|
|
down went cook into the kitchen, five minutes after down I went. It was
|
|
always dullish in the afternoon there. I had thought that I might risk,
|
|
and as I passed the door from the kitchen leading into the garden, shot
|
|
the bolt so that, had the housemaid come down that way, she could not
|
|
get in also.
|
|
|
|
Mary was sitting close to the fire. "No more nonsense I hope," said she.
|
|
There was a kiss and forgiveness soon given me, in her tranquil way.
|
|
|
|
Again I sat down on the huge kitchen fender, and the next instant was
|
|
thinking what I had best do. I had seen those wonderfully large, white
|
|
thighs, seen the thicket of lightish hair between them, had felt no
|
|
cunt fully for weeks, and was dying with lust. She was as serene as if
|
|
nothing had happened, and kissed me, but in the usual motherly sort of
|
|
way. She rose up saying, "I must begin to shut up; what is Eliza staying
|
|
out so late in the garden with that child for?" That instant I thrust
|
|
my hand up her clothes, got it on to the motte, and clutched the hair
|
|
between my fingers; it was easy enough, for it was about the longest and
|
|
thickest motte thatch I have yet felt Down she sat, and tried to push
|
|
me away, but I had firm hold of the hair, and as I did on a similar
|
|
occasion with Charlotte, pulled and hurt her; she ceased to push me
|
|
off, and there I stopped, my prick throbbing, and every fibre in me,
|
|
palpitating with the lust of long continence. Then I pulled and hurt her
|
|
again, threatening to hurt her more still unless she let me feel her;
|
|
knowing the housemaid must knock before she could get in suddenly, I was
|
|
bold.
|
|
|
|
She bore my tugs with a little flinching and never answered my
|
|
entreaties. I had found my courage, and used the words cunt and fuck; it
|
|
was getting dark; looking at me steadily, she said, "So young and yet so
|
|
cruel, five minutes ago you were saying you were so fond of me, and now
|
|
you are trying to hurt me; you promised you would not touch me again,
|
|
now you are doing it; you are all alike, young and old, cruel and
|
|
liars." I felt ashamed, but was mad with lust. "A youth like you, and so
|
|
quiet as you look." "Youth! I am a man, have had women, feel me, let me
|
|
feel you, oh! do feel me." I had my prick out. To get better at her,
|
|
go from the fender on to my knees, and was pushing my hand between her
|
|
thighs with energy. Pulling her bum back, she stooped, and her face came
|
|
near mine. "Kiss me, feel me, and I will indeed leave off, I have seen
|
|
your belly, let me feel it, and I will leave off." "You will break
|
|
your word again," said she. "I swear not." She put her face to mine and
|
|
kissed me, her right hand dropped, and gently laid hold of my prick, her
|
|
thighs just so little opened that my fingers passed the hair and felt
|
|
the smooth inner face of the lips; it was too much for me, for some
|
|
hours my prick had been standing off and on, I had been pulling it
|
|
about, longing and hoping to use it, and for a long time no emission had
|
|
left it.
|
|
|
|
I felt my sperm coming, and could not stop it, my arse jogged and
|
|
pushed my prick involuntarily between her fingers, pleasure suddenly
|
|
overwhelmed me, and kissing her I spent in her hand--all the work of
|
|
half a minute. Then burning shame came over me, I could kiss her no
|
|
longer, dared not look her in the face, nor keep my hand between her
|
|
thighs, but rose quickly and without a word rushed upstairs to my
|
|
bed-room.
|
|
|
|
I have done for myself I thought, what a beast she will think me, I
|
|
shall never dare to speak to her again, and was ready to cry; little
|
|
knowing then that every step in baudiness, is a step towards the
|
|
end, and that my spunk on her hand, would help me to shed some in her
|
|
elsewhere.
|
|
|
|
Feeling so uncomfortable I went out; calling out to the housemaid, that
|
|
I should be home about eight o'clock, went to a friend's, had dinner,
|
|
but could not talk nor scarcely eat. My friend joked and asked if I was
|
|
in love. My prick was standing again after I had eaten, I went home,
|
|
making up my mind to go to bed early, preferring solitude and my own
|
|
thoughts; it was about seven P. M., to my astonishment Mary opened the
|
|
door. I felt my face hot, and could scarcely look at her; she was
|
|
as tranquil as ever, nothing ever seemed to disturb that woman. This
|
|
tranquility reassured me, the more so when I found mother was still out.
|
|
The housemaid had gone out to make a few purchases, leaving Mary alone
|
|
with Tommy, who she was just going to put to bed, and upstairs she went
|
|
with him for that purpose, without speaking to me.
|
|
|
|
What a chance! oh! if I had not been such a beast. My prick rose stiff,
|
|
the afternoon's spend was the first I had had for a long time, a stiff
|
|
prick gives courage, and darkness helps. We are alone, she said nothing
|
|
as I spent in her hand, indeed went on kissing me when spending, what if
|
|
I ask her again? What an age she seemed putting Tommy to bed, at last I
|
|
heard her say, "Go to sleep, mamma will be home soon," and she went up
|
|
to her bed-room. She is going thought I to sit there till Eliza knocks,
|
|
and did not dare go up, but stood listening in the hall, feeling my
|
|
prick and longing;, at last I heard her coming down with slow, measured
|
|
steps. In the hall, I flung my arms around her, kissing and begging her
|
|
to forgive me. "I could not help it," said I in a whisper, "you do not
|
|
know how I longed for you." "Let me go downstairs," said she.
|
|
|
|
The garden parlour door was open. "Come in here and talk." I pulled her
|
|
in with but little difficulty, pushed her down on the sofa, and put both
|
|
arms round her. The door closed, leaving a small opening; there was
|
|
no light, but the gleam which shot from the hall-lamp through the door
|
|
ajar; I could barely see her face, and sat by her begging forgiveness
|
|
and kissing, but got no reply. My prick was more than stiff, I put my
|
|
hand down on her lap, on to her knees, then down to her feet, waiting a
|
|
second at each advance--no movement. My hand slipped up bit by bit,
|
|
it passed her ankle, her garter, and was on the flesh above--still no
|
|
movement. I hesitated and begged--no reply. Up further went my hand, the
|
|
thighs were not closed, but let my hand slip between them, a long drawn
|
|
sigh came from her as my fingers buried themselves in a fat, warm quim.
|
|
I pushed her back gently, and put her hand on to my prick; she held it
|
|
tight, and in a whisper said, "Will you never tell anyone?" By my body
|
|
and soul I swore it; the thighs opened wider, her body fell back and
|
|
disposed itself on the sofa, my hands roved over a large expanse of
|
|
flesh, I could see the white mass only, the rest seemed dark. I kissed
|
|
the hair on her cunt which I could not see, felt the smooth velvety
|
|
haunches, and threw myself on one of the finest, whitest and broadest
|
|
bellies I ever yet have had close to mine. The thighs opened to receive
|
|
me, and the next moment my prick was gliding up her cunt--she was not a
|
|
virgin.
|
|
|
|
What a heavenly sense of satisfaction at being up a cunt again. I could
|
|
scarcely realize my success; my hands felt between the fat lips, to
|
|
ensure my being in all right. I was conscious of a difference between
|
|
her and Charlotte, the way she lay, the size of the thighs, the quantity
|
|
of hair, and a quiescent manner, made her as different as possible from
|
|
my former sweetheart. Novelty made me think this one more delicious,
|
|
but nature would not postpone, and was impelling her as well as me; was
|
|
tightening her cunt round my prick, her body was thrilling for a spend.
|
|
I pushed as her cunt tightening, roused me, tighter was my prick grasped
|
|
within her; her arms folded across me, drew me towards her like a vice;
|
|
her belly moved up quite slowly to mine, as if to throw me off, then
|
|
moved twice or thrice as if in a spasm--a sigh, and her belly sunk down
|
|
as slowly as it had risen up, drawing my sperm into her, as she spent.
|
|
|
|
We lay without stirring, or uttering a word for a long time, supremely
|
|
happy; my prick lingered as if it intended to stop permanently in its
|
|
trap, she made no effort to dislodge it; at last it began to shrink,
|
|
then curiosity began, down went my hand between our bellies, wet as if
|
|
from a bath of gruel was my doodle and her quim. Then she spoke--the
|
|
first words uttered--"No--no--." The feel had such an effect on me,
|
|
that my prick began again to stiffen. I had with Charlotte failed
|
|
ignominiously two or three times, in a third fuck on the same day, and
|
|
feared a failure now. I kissed and felt her, as far as my hands and our
|
|
clothes would let me, she moved her bum up gently to let my hand under
|
|
it, but not a word could I get from her. "Can I do it again?" thought
|
|
I, and began pushing--yes it was stiffening, and again was that cunt
|
|
tightening. I push harder,--with a gentle heave the belly comes up, I am
|
|
off on the ride without having withdrawn; was this the fist time I had
|
|
ever been man enough to do it twice without uncunting? I think so.
|
|
|
|
The passage of privates was longer, I felt more movement in her
|
|
buttocks, her sighs were stronger, her hand moved more restlessly over
|
|
my back, our mouths got glued together. Her lips are wet, or it is
|
|
mine which are getting wet? There is a new, voluptuous sensation I never
|
|
experienced before, it delights me; I glued my lips tighter to hers,
|
|
our heaves are quicker, our sighs shorter, I feel the least bit of
|
|
her tongue touching my lips. I had never heard of that voluptuous
|
|
accompaniment of fucking, and it was to me an inspiration; shooting
|
|
out my tongue into her mouth,--hers comes out to meet it; they are
|
|
exchanging liquids,--the delight spreads electrically through our
|
|
bodies,--up comes her belly,--shorter are my shoves,--a quivering
|
|
wriggle to get deeper up her--and we both spend together, as it
|
|
seems with more pleasure than I ever did before. How strange I should
|
|
recollect this all so clearly.
|
|
|
|
The delights of the wet kisses are new to me; although not able to see
|
|
them, I thought of her exquisite teeth, and rolled my tongue over them.
|
|
She kisses me, still holds me, again my hand goes down to feel the parts
|
|
now separating, slobbered, and sticky with past joy; out comes my prick,
|
|
and then she speaks. "No-no," she sits up, I by her side, my hand on her
|
|
naked thighs for a minute. She gets up, gives me a long kiss, goes to
|
|
her room, and soon after comes down, her eyes wet with crying, "Don't
|
|
come near me, don't be unkind, let me alone," she says. Her manner was
|
|
so commanding, that I let her go to the kitchen without following her.
|
|
Shortly Eliza and then my mother came home.
|
|
|
|
Mad for her again, I took to my chemistry in the back kitchen
|
|
constantly, you may be sure. When I got the chance, spoke of our
|
|
pleasures and my hopes. "We ought," said she, "both to be ashamed of
|
|
ourselves, but I especially who am so many years older than you, ought
|
|
to have known better; if I am punished it will serve me right. Oh! if
|
|
you don't hold your tongue! My risk is more than you have any idea of."
|
|
All was said in a way as if she were preaching, and looking me full in
|
|
the face.
|
|
|
|
She refused what I wanted and avoided me, but it was impossible for her
|
|
altogether to escape me. Risking everything, emboldened by impunity with
|
|
Charlotte, I used to clutch her knees, and put my head up her clothes,
|
|
kissing and smelling her motte, I began to love the smell of it. She
|
|
used to dislodge me, and neither made a noise, nor uttered a word in
|
|
doing so--indeed she rarely spoke at any time. But it is difficult for
|
|
a woman who has been fucked by a man to refuse him again; I watched my
|
|
opportunities, my conversation broken as it was, and rarely but for a
|
|
minute at a time, was one repetition of lustful wants and prayers; I
|
|
used to pull my prick out, beg her to see and feel it. At length she
|
|
did, saying, "May God forgive me for my weakness." That day I fucked her
|
|
again standing in the kitchen, and a second time a few hours afterwards
|
|
in the dusk, which experience began to show me was the time she was most
|
|
accessible; the other servant was somewhere in the house at the time I
|
|
recollect.
|
|
|
|
After that her manner changed, she ceased to resist; but when I asked
|
|
her to go to a house with me, she said, "No, no, I am not coming to
|
|
that." Now, though tranquil, she was more capricious, sometimes letting
|
|
me feel her, or do it to her with impatience; at other times with
|
|
evident desire to please; but I was so often baulked, and I plagued her
|
|
so incessantly to meet me somewhere, that at length she did, saying,
|
|
"Well, it little matters, as I have made my bed, so I must lie on it." I
|
|
did not know then what she meant by that.
|
|
|
|
She got a holiday, we had food at a tavern, went to the house to which I
|
|
first took Charlotte, and into the same room; what a reminiscence! As I
|
|
got to the door, she looked nervously round and said, "I may as well
|
|
be hung for a sheep as a lamb." It was a joyous day for me. Once in the
|
|
house she became gay and amatory, threw off all restraint, and abandoned
|
|
herself to sexual enjoyment in a way she never did but twice again.
|
|
|
|
She was simply dressed as was customary with servants in those days.
|
|
Soon I had her standing naked before me with but boots and stockings on.
|
|
And what a sight she was. Quite five feet eight high, stout, yet as it
|
|
seemed to me then, without a single part of her body either flabby
|
|
or shapeless, her skin was of such dazzling whiteness that her white
|
|
stockings looked dull by contrast, very light brown hair, which when
|
|
pulled out nearly hung to her waist, the hair of her cunt and arm-pits
|
|
in quantity of a lighter golden brown; all looked much darker than their
|
|
true colour, against the dazzling whiteness of the skin. Ample calves
|
|
and thighs, breasts firm as ivory, her arms to match in plumpness and
|
|
whiteness, her hands alone discoloured by work, looked dark against the
|
|
rest of her glorious person. I recollect this all well, and that at that
|
|
time I disliked light-haired women: but in her suddenly, the light hair
|
|
appeared to me lovely.
|
|
|
|
She changed in manner that day from a condescending matron, to a
|
|
lover of my own age; had the complacency of a gay woman, tempered with
|
|
modesty. I had no notion of baudily posturing women which I learned
|
|
in after life, but had an innate love and perception of all that
|
|
was beautiful, and began placing her in attitudes favorable to the
|
|
contemplation of her charms. She complied with all; from belly to side,
|
|
from side to back I turned her; she smiled as if pleased, curious, and
|
|
astonished; and when I turned to quench my passion in her, she met me
|
|
with an ardour less demonstrative, but more stifling and satisfying
|
|
than Charlotte; it was a worry to think that I had twice fucked her, and
|
|
seemed to have finished each time before I had began fucking.
|
|
|
|
The firmness of her flesh impressed me, whether I put my finger between
|
|
the cheeks of her arse or between her thighs, I could with difficulty
|
|
get it away; she could have cracked a nut between either. The next
|
|
wonder was the hair of her cunt, which was long but curly; I now see
|
|
that she could not have pissed without wetting it, which accounted
|
|
for her always what we youths used to call mopping it, after she had
|
|
piddled. The cunt looked twice as big as Charlotte's, but the prick-hole
|
|
seemed to me smaller; and whether my finger or my prick was in it,
|
|
seemed to grasp it tightly. My prepuce used to give me then at times
|
|
pain just before, or when I spent in Charlotte; in Mary I scarcely
|
|
seemed to feel it, and afterwards a quiet sort of grinding of her cunt,
|
|
prolonged my pleasure until my penis left it. I was so new to the work,
|
|
that all those differences impressed me, I compared and thought of them
|
|
constantly.
|
|
|
|
She gave no violent writhes, nor twists, nor jerked her arse, nor
|
|
wriggled as she spent, but just as my short thrusts came on, her belly
|
|
used gradually to heave up and grow into mine; her cunt almost seemed to
|
|
be sucking my prick, whilst it throbbed and jetted its sperm into her;
|
|
my hardest thrusts never hurt; Charlotte used to complain if my prick
|
|
was too vigorous in her. Then when her pleasure was over; lolling her
|
|
tongue against mine, and sucking my very breath from me, she quietly
|
|
subsided; leaving me to lay in her, until with a kiss, she would gently
|
|
doze off with me in her arms.
|
|
|
|
A taste had developed as said, which I have retained to the present
|
|
time. I loved to see a woman piddle, used to make Charlotte do it as
|
|
often as I could, to place my hand under the stream, and feel its splash
|
|
on my fingers; and if chance let me hear the rattle in a pot, or see a
|
|
woman rising up from the attitude, my prick used to stand. I did this
|
|
with her greatly to her astonishment, she resented it so much that I
|
|
never repeated it: singular that a woman who would let me lay and kiss
|
|
her cunt, or put finger and prick up it; should refuse to let me see the
|
|
water come from it--but so it was.
|
|
|
|
Charlotte I loved, and used to feel as if she were part and parcel of
|
|
me for life, when I was up her, with Mary I thought of thighs, backside,
|
|
cunt, and her other parts, without much liking her beyond the desire of
|
|
spending in her. My impression is that I must have fucked that day,
|
|
as much as I ever did in my life on one day; my mother remarked that I
|
|
looked ill and worn out when I got home, and again fell on her favorite
|
|
belief that I was overstudying. How she could have permitted a young man
|
|
to be so often in the kitchen, and near to female servants, seems to me
|
|
a marvel of stupidity,--but she did.
|
|
|
|
Nothing opens a man and woman's heart to each other like fucking. A
|
|
woman laying satisfied by your side, her cunt bedewed with your spunk,
|
|
with fingers touching your prick, and mouth fresh from contact with
|
|
yours; will tell you more than she will at any other time. She did that
|
|
day. She had thought me a mere boy, getting baudy with coming manhood,
|
|
and had liked me. My quiet, demure manner, made her imagine that such an
|
|
attack from me, was among the most improbable things; when I began
|
|
she made up her mind to leave, but then came the mystery,--there were
|
|
circumstances which rendered it needful for her to stay where she was,
|
|
if possible--what they were she would not say. My assault on her in the
|
|
bed-room and all that followed upset all her ideas, filled her mind
|
|
with images of lust and pleasure, and left that undefined sensation and
|
|
unsatisfied longing which is known as randiness. I suddenly seemed a man
|
|
to her. My spending in her hand upset her still more. I asked if that
|
|
had made her let me have her. She replied, "I gave up the self denial
|
|
of years, abandoned my intentions, and let you do it; when you pushed
|
|
me into the garden parlour I intended to let you as I went in, I had not
|
|
quite intended before."
|
|
|
|
There was the greatest difficulty after that day in getting her, for my
|
|
mother seemed always in my way, and objected to my being in the kitchen.
|
|
Mary never helped me as Charlotte used, as cook indeed she could not.
|
|
She ran no risks, and was never in a hurry, so where I had Charlotte
|
|
half a dozen times, I could scarcely get Mary once.
|
|
|
|
She met me out again, and in a fortnight asked for another holiday. It
|
|
astonished my mother, for more than a year she scarcely had gone out,
|
|
and never had taken a whole holiday. What another day of ballock-ing it
|
|
was, in that old, snug, baudy house--but we had a quarrel there.
|
|
|
|
Even with my inexperience, I knew she was different from Charlotte
|
|
at the first poke. I used in my mind to compare the differences.
|
|
Charlotte's curiosity, the manifest novelty of fucking to her, even for
|
|
a couple of months after her splitting and bleeding; was so different
|
|
from the steady, quiet, well satisfied way with which Mary copulated.
|
|
Pondering over this, I wondered if she had been done before, how often,
|
|
and by how many, or had I been the first? The idea of asking her was
|
|
always floating through my brain. That day I said to her as her face was
|
|
towards mine on the pillow, and I was toying with her bubbies, "I wonder
|
|
who had you before me." She sat up, looked me steadily in the face, and
|
|
replied, "You have no right to ask me, you are not my husband." "But
|
|
tell me." "I shall not, it is an impertinence; how can a youth like you
|
|
know anything about first or second." I blurted out, "Because when first
|
|
I did it to Char--" the name was almost out of my mouth, but I stopped
|
|
in time, "when I first had a young woman (correcting myself), I could
|
|
not easily get into her, it tore my prick, and she bled." "Who was it?"
|
|
said she. "Oh! a young woman." "But who was it?" I did not reply. "Was
|
|
it Charlotte?" and she looked me hard and full in the face. "No," said
|
|
I. "Now was it? Tell me," said she bending over, kissing and coaxing me.
|
|
"No, it was not." "I believe it was, you once said she was young, and
|
|
had dark brown hair--it was she." In vain I denied it. "I felt sure it
|
|
was, and with a youth like you! Is it possible you can have harmed that
|
|
nice girl! What a wretched, wicked lot you all are, you will be as bad
|
|
as the others." Then she suddenly said, "Mind, you have sworn solemnly
|
|
never to mention to any living soul about me; oh! once forget yourself,
|
|
and it's all up with a woman." Then she laid down, again her manner
|
|
became quiet and voluptuous--another fuck followed. I again tried the
|
|
question. She settled me by saying, "If ever you ask me that question
|
|
again, I will not let you have me afterwards," and I never did ask her
|
|
that I can recollect until just before she felt us.
|
|
|
|
But she for some time after asked ME questions about my first woman,
|
|
"was she tall? were her teeth as good as hers?" and so on. How far she
|
|
satisfied herself that it was Charlotte, she never said; for I
|
|
don't recollect that she mentioned her name again, and I gave wrong
|
|
descriptions; but may have got more information than I meant her to
|
|
have, as she asked me at odd times when I was off my guard.
|
|
|
|
A third time, to the still greater surprise of my mother, she took a
|
|
holiday. We spent it at the house, and she exhausted me and herself. For
|
|
a day or two afterwards she gave me every chance at home, and we fucked
|
|
furiously. She took to calling me a dear fellow, when her tongue was
|
|
not against mine, but which was always the case when our mouths got
|
|
together; and I imagine now, must have been a greater luxury to her than
|
|
it was then to me. Soon after she received several letters which I said
|
|
were from her lover. "I wish they were," said she. Then she took ill,
|
|
and when better, refused me altogether. I had opportunities, but she
|
|
would not. I said I wished I had never seen her; she said she wished so
|
|
too, for she was fond of me, although it was ridiculous at her age
|
|
and mine. Afterwards when mother was one evening at the bottom of the
|
|
garden, Eliza gone out to the library. I seized Mary as she closed the
|
|
shutters; kissing and begging her. She opened her thighs, my fingers
|
|
were on her clitoris; she kissing me at intervals said: "Oh! no, oh! I
|
|
can't, dear--I dare not--Walter, Walter, you must not; I am a married
|
|
woman, and am going home to my husband most likely."
|
|
|
|
Soon afterwards she told me her history. Married seven years previously,
|
|
her husband became dissipated and unfaithful; and from being a
|
|
well-to-do tradesman, brought himself to the condition of a labourer.
|
|
She forgave him until he gave her a disease, then she left him as she
|
|
had threatened to do. Nothing he could say would induce her to have
|
|
anything more to do with him. "Is there anything about me that a man
|
|
could not be satisfied with for years?" she asked, as if I were a judge.
|
|
|
|
She went home to her mother. He appears to have been fond of her. Love
|
|
of women was his great fault; but the disease so set her against him,
|
|
that all his entreaties were useless. Nevertheless she was his wife, and
|
|
getting into the mother's house one day, when she was alone (Mary), he
|
|
fucked her with violence--and violent it must have been, for she was as
|
|
strong as a horse. Directly afterwards she left and went to service in
|
|
London, confiding only her address to her mother, taking a false name,
|
|
and writing him, that if ever he found her out and annoyed her, she
|
|
would go abroad. Her husband made the mother a sort of promise to keep
|
|
steady for three months, but failed in doing so, went to America, had
|
|
never ceased to write affectionate letters which came to her through
|
|
her mother, and had recently written to say he had made a large sum of
|
|
money, and was coming home. He had sent money home to the mother with
|
|
instructions to settle it on Mary how she liked, provided she would
|
|
come back to him. Afterwards she showed me his letters; they were well
|
|
written, and in a style above a man of his position in life.
|
|
|
|
She had lived in service ever since; with us she had then been a year
|
|
and a half, and had had but two other places. One she left because
|
|
a grown up son began to pay her too much attention. At the other the
|
|
master--a married man--made love to her, and one day tried to force her.
|
|
I know the last place, it was about three miles from us.
|
|
|
|
This news came like a cold bath on me. It suited my taste to have a
|
|
woman in the house. The idea of losing her was terrible. She refused
|
|
me my pleasures. I doubted her truth at times, but whenever I did, she
|
|
would fetch a letter as proof saying, "Now will you believe me?" She
|
|
refused to say where her home had been, and what her real name was. I
|
|
used to try to make out the postmark on her letters, but could not. They
|
|
were negligent in those days in such matters, and postage was dear.
|
|
|
|
And now I again asked if she had had any other but her husband and me;
|
|
by all that was holy she declared she had not. "How came you to let me?"
|
|
"God in heaven knows!" said she, "months ago if anyone had said such a
|
|
thing was possible, I should have said it was ridiculous; I only thought
|
|
of you as a tall boy, but that day I felt that my life was passing away
|
|
without the pleasures of a woman; what you did kneeling down in the
|
|
kitchen upset me, then I let you; though I thought I should ruin myself
|
|
by doing so."
|
|
|
|
She cared but little for her husband, for he had caused her to lead the
|
|
life of a widow for years. "Suppose I had done anything wrong," said
|
|
she, "and he had found it out, he would have cast me away; but you men
|
|
can do what you like, and we poor women have to submit." "But why go
|
|
back?" "Four months ago I would not have done so, but you have made me
|
|
find out I am a woman after all; you will understand that better as you
|
|
grow older. Not many would have kept chaste as I have done until that
|
|
night. Now I mistrust myself. I am getting fond of you, but what could
|
|
come of it? And if anything came to the ears of my mother and friends,
|
|
who are respectable, I should drown myself. I have got plenty of will of
|
|
my own, although I am quiet."
|
|
|
|
"You don't care much about poking?"
|
|
|
|
"I have had my wants, but suppressed them," she replied. "What did you
|
|
do?" "Oh!" said she in an off hand way, "what other unmarried women do,
|
|
I suppose." "Frigged yourself." She gave a nod and said, "And not often
|
|
that." I thought of what Charlotte had told me, but held my tongue.
|
|
|
|
I tried to get at her at intervals, but it was no use. "It's caprice,"
|
|
said I with my prick out, "you let me when I wanted it three weeks ago,
|
|
why not now?" "I can't,--I dare not,--it might be certain ruin now."
|
|
"What does a fellow care about ruin, when his hand is outside a cunt,
|
|
and his prick is like an iron rod?" Twice as strong as me, she could
|
|
at all times have escaped me, unless sexual desire was strong on her;
|
|
desire gives a man force, but it takes away a woman's force. She rose
|
|
up, nor would she continue talking, until I had buttoned up my prick and
|
|
promised not to touch her; that done, she said, "Would you wish to ruin
|
|
me? You might if I let you, I have been very ill as you know, was in the
|
|
family way, my monthlies stopped, and I have brought them on. When I was
|
|
in trouble that way, I let you do what you like, now I am going home,
|
|
what would become of me if I were in the family way then?" This explained
|
|
all.
|
|
|
|
I had never given her a present, I never gave Charlotte one; having then
|
|
so little money. I never thought about it. I had now more, and offered
|
|
to give her some if she wanted any. She showed me a saving-bank's book.
|
|
She had got nearly fifty pounds. I bought a pair of gold earrings for
|
|
her, it was the first present I had even given a woman, and she was much
|
|
pleased. I had I think some vague notion, that it would induce her to
|
|
let me have her; but if so, I was deceived.
|
|
|
|
Mother seemed to be keeping at home to baulk me. My chemicals had
|
|
been taken back into the garden parlour. I knew she wanted to go to my
|
|
aunt's; but one morning it was too hot, then it rained, and so on. How I
|
|
restrained myself from frigging I don't know, for I used to walk up and
|
|
down my bed-room with my prick out stiff, and looking at it; at length a
|
|
chance came--my last.
|
|
|
|
Mother went to aunt's, the ugly housemaid said, "As Master Tom wont be
|
|
at home, do you mind my going out for a couple of hours?" "No," said my
|
|
mother, "when the cook is ready." "Please will you tell the cook Mamm,"
|
|
said she, "or she wont let me go." I had then a tutor in mathematics who
|
|
came on that day, but promised to fetch mother home. I had many times
|
|
broken my promises to do so, to enable me to get at Mary. Mother said,
|
|
"I hope you mean what you say, you are getting a man, and should never
|
|
break your word." Anxious to know when the housemaid would go; I asked
|
|
her. "I am not going till five o'clock, sir," said she, "unless you
|
|
particularly want the books," "That will be too late, for I am to fetch
|
|
mamma home,--never mind."
|
|
|
|
I finished with my tutor, and out I went. But at about five o'clock came
|
|
home near to the house, wondering if the housemaid had gone, (Mary I had
|
|
not spoken a word to), waited in sight of the house, and at last saw
|
|
a form I guessed to be the housemaid's, going off fast towards the
|
|
village; five minutes afterwards I knocked, and Mary opened the door.
|
|
Said she, "What brings you home?" I said I was unwell, had a bad cold,
|
|
could not go for my mother, would go to bed, would she fetch me a
|
|
foot-bath, and went to my bed-room. I had been two days planning the
|
|
thing, an old dodge it was though.
|
|
|
|
It was hot and quite light, but I drew down the blinds, undressed and
|
|
put on my nightgown; she brought the bath, we talked. She had not heard
|
|
from her mother again, it was strange,--was she being played with? It
|
|
took weeks then to get to America. I kissed and got closer to her, we
|
|
were on the edge of the bed; I spoke of our meetings and our pleasures,
|
|
she avoided the subject, said I should take cold, prayed me to have
|
|
the foot-bath and go to bed. Gradually I got my hand on her thighs, how
|
|
could she help it?--a woman who had been fucked by me a lot of times.
|
|
But she was firm in refusing me. I lifted my night-shirt, my prick stood
|
|
up, the shirt hanging at the back of it like clothes on the hook of a
|
|
prop,. Finding that useless, I threatened to frig myself and began the
|
|
operation. She said I ought to be ashamed of myself, that she would
|
|
leave if I did not desist, and turned to go, when I pulled her on to the
|
|
bed. Soon my fingers were on her slit, her fingers on my prick. "I dare
|
|
not let you,--oh! pray!" she said, but she was vanquished, silent, and
|
|
tranquilly laid down on the bed; nature was too strong for her.
|
|
|
|
I lifted her chemise, had a glimpse of the lovely plump calves, and
|
|
large, fleshy thighs, as I threw myself impetuously upon her. My belly
|
|
closed with hers, and pushing my knuckles through the hairs, I guided my
|
|
prick towards her cunt, but alas! too late. The long abstinence and
|
|
the excitement were too much for me; just as my fingers opened the
|
|
cunt-lips, and my prick touched her cunt, throb--throb--gush--gush, and
|
|
over my fingers, over her thighs, into the thicket of hair, on to the
|
|
clitoris, on to the smooth, round bum-cheeks below--anywhere--everywhere
|
|
excepting the right place, my sperm spurted out: and only the last drop
|
|
remained just as I buried my prick in her. Then instead of meeting her
|
|
humid tongue with mine, I sank on her breast kissing, yet damning and
|
|
cursing like a dragoon, at my spoiled pleasure,--I had spent out of
|
|
sheer copiousness of spunk, and excitement.
|
|
|
|
Said she, "It is as well as it is, get off." I made no reply, hoping my
|
|
sexual force would return, for my prick was in her sheath. She moved to
|
|
release herself. Stronger far than me, she could in any other attitude
|
|
have easily done so; but the most difficult position for a woman to
|
|
disengage herself from a man, is when he is on the top of her, well
|
|
between her thighs, and clasping her backside tightly. As she moved
|
|
there was no strong will in it; how could it be otherwise? She in the
|
|
prime of life had been without it for weeks, nature was pleading for me,
|
|
my prick was in her, my spunk all about her. To gain time I promised to
|
|
get off in a minute. "Kiss me." Our mouths and tongues met. It was like
|
|
magic. A voluptuous throb passed through both of us, my prick stiffened
|
|
to the full, a sympathetic grind of her cunt responded; again we were in
|
|
the full tide of pleasure, fucking and spending together, the future was
|
|
forgotten as we sunk quietly down. I had spent twice without uncunting;
|
|
scarcely was it over than she pushed me off, and washed out her cunt in
|
|
my foot-bath.
|
|
|
|
We sat on the side of the bed kissing and feeling each other, it was
|
|
like the old time, the door wide open to hear the street door knocks.
|
|
When the housemaid knocked, into bed I got; an hour afterwards home came
|
|
my mother and into my bed-room. She approved of the hot foot-bath, but
|
|
insisted on my taking a febrifuge. To keep up the sham, I took it, Mary
|
|
brought it and stood by, whilst my mother gave it to me; my prick was
|
|
again standing like a prop at the sight of Mary, and as my mother pulled
|
|
the bed-clothes over me, she might, if she had had eyes, seen my prick
|
|
pushing them almost up.
|
|
|
|
Next morning she gave notice to leave. I never had her again. On one or
|
|
two occasions I felt her, and if there had been more time might perhaps
|
|
have had her. At the end of a fortnight she told me that her monthlies
|
|
were all right. From that day she resolutely refused to even let me feel
|
|
her. "I don't much care about going back," said she; "I don't think I
|
|
shall be happy, but I do it for the best; at all events I shall have a
|
|
home." The day before she went she said, "Goodbye, God bless you, you
|
|
are a good fellow," but you will play mischief with many a poor girl
|
|
here before you have done. "I like you very much, and shall always think
|
|
of you." I never heard of her after, and with her, passed from me the
|
|
woman who is still in my recollection as one of the most beautiful, and
|
|
perfect in form; as one who gave me the greatest sexual pleasure,--but I
|
|
was of course very young and inexperienced.
|
|
|
|
My mother remarked that she was the most trustworthy servant she ever
|
|
had; but that there was a mystery about her. Her boxes were labelled
|
|
for a place that the coach would not take her to, and her boxes were not
|
|
like a servant's. "I think she has been crossed in love and ran away,"
|
|
said mother. Said I, "Perhaps she had gone off with a bobby," it was a
|
|
current joke then, policemen not having been long invented. My mother
|
|
said in her severe way, "She is a virtuous woman, a youth like you
|
|
should not utter ignorant jokes about women, especially about the
|
|
humbler classes, to whom good reputation is everything." I began to see
|
|
plainer than ever, that I could humbug mother after that.
|
|
|
|
Many of our conversations are told here in her very words, others as
|
|
nearly as I can recollect them. I have often wondered at the way this
|
|
woman behaved to me, talked to me, and all about her. The circumstances
|
|
as they occurred, even at the time seemed peculiar; I felt as if I was
|
|
wicked in getting into her, almost as if I was going to poke my mother;
|
|
but I cannot attempt to analyze motives or sensations, I simply narrate
|
|
facts. Certain it is, that I never have had a woman who in behaviour
|
|
resembled Mary, in manner, conversation, and general behaviour,--I
|
|
always felt as if she were a superior person to me, as if she were
|
|
obliging me and not herself, and was putting me under an obligation, by
|
|
letting me fuck her.
|
|
|
|
Again lonely, I not only wanted cunt, but also the society of a
|
|
woman, it was so sweet to see and talk, to some one I fucked; to do so
|
|
secretly, was an additional charm, and I used to feel quite sad. I was
|
|
then about in my eighteenth year.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VII.
|
|
|
|
At the Manor house.--Fred's amours.--Sarah and Mary.--What
|
|
drink and money does.--My second virgin.--My first whore.--
|
|
Double fucking.--Gamahucking.--Minette.--A belly up and
|
|
down.
|
|
|
|
One aunt as said lived in H...shire, a widow; her son, my cousin Fred,
|
|
was preparing for the Army. I wanted a change, and went by advice to
|
|
stay there. Fred was a year older than me, wild and baudy to the day
|
|
of his death, he talked from boyhood incessantly about women. I had not
|
|
seen him for some time, and he told me of his amours, asking me about
|
|
mine. I let him know all, without disclosing names; he told me in nearly
|
|
the words, that it was "a lie," for he had heard my mother say, that
|
|
I was the steadiest young fellow possible, and she could trust me
|
|
anywhere. This, coupled with my quiet look, and the care I took not to
|
|
divulge names, made him disbelieve me; but I disclosed so many facts
|
|
about women's nature, that he was somewhat astonished. He told me what
|
|
he had done, about having had the clap, and what to do if I got it; then
|
|
he had seduced a cottager's daughter on the estate; but his description
|
|
of the taking, did not accord with my limited experience. One day he
|
|
pointed the girl out to me at the cottage door, and said he now had her
|
|
whenever he wanted.
|
|
|
|
She was a great coarse wench, whom he had seen in my aunt's fields. He
|
|
had caught her piddling on one side of a hedge; she saw him looking at
|
|
the operation from a ditch, and abused him roundly for it; it ended
|
|
in an acquaintance, and his taking her virginity one evening on a
|
|
hay-cock,--that was his account of it.
|
|
|
|
Her father was a labourer on my aunt's estate, the girl lived with him
|
|
and a younger sister, her name was Sarah; he expatiated on her charm
|
|
from backside to bubbies, but it was soon evident to me, that with this
|
|
woman it was no money, no cunt; for he borrowed money of me to give her.
|
|
I had squeezed money out of my aunt, my guardian and mother, and had
|
|
about ten pounds,--a very large sum for me then, so I lent him a few
|
|
shillings.
|
|
|
|
He had his shove as he called it, and triumphantly gave me again such
|
|
account of his operations, and the charms of the lady, that I who
|
|
had been some time without poking, wondered if the girl would let me;
|
|
arguing to myself, he gives her money--my girls never wanted money,--why
|
|
should his? He had been dinning into my ears, that all women would let
|
|
men for money, or presents, or else from lust. "Kiss and grope, and if
|
|
they don't cry out, show them your prick and go at them." These maxims
|
|
much impressed me.
|
|
|
|
"Fred," said my aunt at breakfast, "ride over to Brown about his rent,
|
|
you will be sure to find him at the corn market," and she gave him other
|
|
commissions at the market town. I promised to ride with him, but had
|
|
been tortured with randiness about this great wench of his; so made some
|
|
excuse, and as soon as he was well off, sauntered towards the cottage,
|
|
which was about half a mile from the Hall.
|
|
|
|
It was one of a pair in a lane. Scarcely anyone passed them excepting
|
|
people on my aunt's lands. One was empty. The girl was sweeping in front
|
|
of the cottage, the door was wide open. I gave her a nod, she dropped a
|
|
respectful curtsey. Looking round and seeing no one, I said, "May I come
|
|
in and rest, for it is hot and I am tired?" "Yes sir," said she, and in
|
|
I went, she giving me a chair; then she finished her sweeping. Meanwhile
|
|
I had determined to try it on. "Father at home?" "No sir, he be
|
|
working in the Seven-Acre field." "Where is your sister?" "At mill,
|
|
sir"--meaning a paper mill. I thought of Fred. It was my first offer,
|
|
and scarcely knew how to make it, but chucking her under the chin said,
|
|
"I wish you would let me--" "What, sir?" "Do it to you," said I boldly,
|
|
"and I will give you five shillings," producing the money; I knew it was
|
|
what Fred gave her usually.
|
|
|
|
She looked at me and the five shillings, which was then more than her
|
|
wages for a week's work in the fields, burst into laughter and said,
|
|
"Why, who would have thought a gentleman from the Hall would say that
|
|
to a poor girl like me." "Let me do it," said I hurredly, "if you wont I
|
|
must go--I will give you seven and six pence." "You wont tell the young
|
|
squire?" said she--meaning Fred. "Of course not." She went to the door,
|
|
looked both ways, then at the clock, shut the door and bolted it without
|
|
another word.
|
|
|
|
The house consisted of a kitchen, a bed-room, leading out of it, and
|
|
a wash-house. She opened the bedroom door, there were two beds which
|
|
almost filled the room; at the foot of one was a window, by its side a
|
|
wash-stand. She got on to the largest bed saying, "Make haste." I pulled
|
|
up her clothes to her navel and looked. "Oh! make haste," said she.
|
|
But I could not, it was the third cunt I had seen, and I paused to
|
|
contemplate her. Before me lay a pair of thick, round thighs, a large
|
|
belly, and a cunt covered with thick brown hair, a dirty chemise round
|
|
her waist, coarse woolen blue stockings darned with black, and tied
|
|
below the knees with list, thick hob-nailed boots. The bed beneath was
|
|
white and clean, which made her things look dirtier; it was different
|
|
to what I had been accustomed to. I looked too long, "Better make haste,
|
|
for father will be home to dinner," said she.
|
|
|
|
I put my hand to her cunt, she opened her thighs, and I saw the cleft,
|
|
with a pair of lips on each side like sausages, a dark vermillion strong
|
|
clitoris sloped down and hid itself between the lips, in the recesses of
|
|
the cock-trap; the strong light from the window enabled me to see it as
|
|
plainly as if under a microscope. I pushed my finger up, then my cock
|
|
knocked against my belly, asking to take the place of my finger, and so
|
|
up I let it go. No sooner was I lodged in her, than arse, cunt, thighs
|
|
and belly, all worked energetically, and in a minute I spent. Just as
|
|
I pulled out, her cunt closed round my prick with a strong muscular
|
|
action, as if it did not wish the warm pipe withdrawn, a movement of the
|
|
muscles of the cunt alone, and it drew the last drop of lingering sperm
|
|
out of me.
|
|
|
|
I got on my knees, contemplating the sausage lips half open, from which
|
|
my sperm was oozing, and then got off sorry it had been so quick a
|
|
business. She laid without moving and looking kindly at me said, "Ye may
|
|
ha me agin an yer loike." "But your father will be home?" "In half an
|
|
hour," said she. "I don't think I can," said I. Such coolness in a woman
|
|
was new to me, I scarcely knew what to make of it. She got hold of my
|
|
tool, I had not had a woman for some time, soon felt lust entering my
|
|
rod again, and sought her cunt with my hands. She opened her legs wider
|
|
in a most condescending manner and I began feeling it. I was soon fit,
|
|
which she very well knew, for immediately with a broad grin on her face
|
|
she pulled me on to her and put my prick in her cunt herself, lodging it
|
|
with a clever jerk of her bum, a squeeze, and a wriggle.
|
|
|
|
I fucked quietly, but it was now her turn; she heaved and wriggled
|
|
so that once she threw my prick out of her, but soon had it in again.
|
|
"Shove, shove," said she suddenly, and I shoved with all my might, she
|
|
clipped my arse so tightly that she must have left the marks of her
|
|
fingers on it, then with a close wriggle and a deep sigh, she lay still,
|
|
her face as red as fire, and left me to finish by my own exertions.
|
|
|
|
I felt the same squeeze of the cunt as I withdrew, one of those
|
|
delicious contraction which women of strong muscular power in their
|
|
privates can give; not all can do it. Those who cannot never can
|
|
understand it. Those who can, will make a finger sensible of it's grip,
|
|
if put up their cunts.
|
|
|
|
She got up, and tucked her chemise between her legs to dry her split,
|
|
she did not wash it. "I am always alone," said she, "between eight and
|
|
twelve just now," and as any woman just then answered my wants, I made
|
|
opportunities, and I had her again two or three times, till a rare bit
|
|
of luck occurred to me.
|
|
|
|
We were in the bed-room one hot day; to make it cooler I took off
|
|
trowsers and drawers, laid them on a chair, carefully rolled my shirt up
|
|
round my waist, so as to prevent spunk falling upon it, and thus
|
|
naked from my boots to waist, laid myself on the top of my rollicking,
|
|
belly-heaving, rump-wriggling country lass.
|
|
|
|
I always gave her five shillings before I began; she had taken a letch
|
|
for me, or else being hot cunted, and not getting it done to her often,
|
|
dearly liked my poking her; and seeming to want it that day unusually,
|
|
began her heaving and wriggling energetically. We were well on towards
|
|
our spend, when with a loud cry of "Oh! my God!" she pushed me off, and
|
|
wriggled to the bedside. I got off, and saw a sturdy country girl of
|
|
about fifteen or sixteen years, standing in the bed-room door looking at
|
|
us with a broad grin, mixed with astonishment, upon her face.
|
|
|
|
For an instant nobody spoke. Then the girl said with a malicious grin,
|
|
"pretty goings on Sarah, if fearther knowed un--" "How dare you stand
|
|
looking at me?" said Sarah. "It's my room as well as yourn," said
|
|
Martha, for that was her name; and nothing further was said then. But
|
|
Martha's eyes fixed on me as I sat naked up to my waist with my prick
|
|
wet, rigid, red, throbbing, and all but involuntarily jerking out its
|
|
sperm. I was in that state of lust, that I could have fucking anything
|
|
in the shape of a cunt, and scarcely knew in the confusion of the
|
|
moment, where I was, and what it was all about. Sarah saw my state, and
|
|
began pulling down my shirt. "Go out of the room," said she to her
|
|
sister. "Damn it I will finish, I will fuck you," said I making a snatch
|
|
at her cunt again. "Oh! for God's sake, don't sir," said she. With a
|
|
grin out went young sister Martha into the kitchen, and then Sarah began
|
|
to blubber, "If she tells fearther, he will turn me out into the
|
|
streets."
|
|
|
|
"Don't be a fool," said I, "why should she tell?" "Because we are bad
|
|
friends." "Has she not done it?" "No, she is not sixteen." "How do you
|
|
know she has not?" "Why we sleep together and I know." "Who sleeps in
|
|
the other bed?" "Fearther." "In the same room?" "Yes." "Don't you know
|
|
anything against her?" "No, last hay-making I seed a young man trying
|
|
to put his hands up her clothes, that's all; she has only been a woman
|
|
a few months." If she tells of her, she will tell of me, I thought. It
|
|
might come to my aunt's ears, Fred would know, and I should get into a
|
|
scrape.
|
|
|
|
"It is a pity she has not done it," said I, "for then she would not
|
|
tell." "I wish she had," she replied. One thing suggested another. "She
|
|
knows all about what we were doing?" Sarah nodded. "Get her to promise
|
|
not to tell, and get her to let me do it to her, and I will give you two
|
|
pounds," said I, taking the money out of my purse.
|
|
|
|
It was more money than she had ever had in her life at one time, her
|
|
eyes glistened; she was silent a minute as if reflecting, then said,
|
|
"She has always been unkind to me, and she shant get me turned out if I
|
|
can help it." Then after farther talk, some hesitation, and asking me if
|
|
I was sure I would give her the money, she said, "I'll try, let's have
|
|
a jolly good drink, then I'll leave you together," and we went into the
|
|
kitchen. I saw her dodge.
|
|
|
|
Martha was leaning, looking out of the window, her bum sticking out, her
|
|
short petticoats showing a sturdy pair of legs; she turned round to us,
|
|
it was about eleven o'clock in the day, the old man was at work far off
|
|
and had taken his dinner with him that day, Sarah had told me.
|
|
|
|
"You won't tell father," said Sarah in a smooth tone. No reply but
|
|
a grin. "If you do, I will tell him I saw young Smith's hand up your
|
|
clothes." "It's a lie."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, he did, and you know you have seen all he has got to show." "You
|
|
are a liar," said Martha. Sarah turned to me and said, "Yes, she did,
|
|
we both saw him leaking, and a dozen more chaps." "She saw their
|
|
cocks?" said I. "Yes." "You took me to see them, you bitch," said Martha
|
|
bursting out in a rage. "You did not want much taking, what did you say,
|
|
and what did you do in bed that night, when we talked about it?" "You
|
|
are a wicked wretch, to talk like that before a strange young man," said
|
|
Martha and bounced out of the cottage.
|
|
|
|
In a short time she came in again, the oldest told me scandals she
|
|
knew about her sister, and made her so wild, that they nearly fought. I
|
|
stopped them, they made it up, and I sent off the eldest to fetch shrub,
|
|
gin and peppermint; it was a good mile to the tavern in the village.
|
|
|
|
When she had gone I told Martha I hoped she would do no mischief. She
|
|
was nothing loath to let me kiss her, so there was soon acquaintance
|
|
between us. She had seen me half naked, how long she had been watching I
|
|
knew not, but it was certain she had seen me shoving as hard as I could
|
|
between the naked thighs of her sister, and that was well calculated
|
|
to make her randy and ready for the advances of a man. "Here is five
|
|
shillings, don't say anything my dear." "I won't say nothing," said she
|
|
taking the money. Then I kissed her again, and we talked on.
|
|
|
|
"How did you like him feeling you?" I asked, "was he stiff?" No reply.
|
|
"Was it not nice when he got his hand on your thigh?" Still no reply.
|
|
"You thought it nice when in bed, Sarah says." "Sarah tells a wicked
|
|
story," she burst out. "What does she tell?" "I don't know." "I will
|
|
tell you my dear; you talked about Smith's doodle and the other men's
|
|
you saw pissing." "You are the gentleman from London stopping at the
|
|
Hall," she replied, "so you had better go back and leave us poor girls
|
|
alone," and she looked out of the window again.
|
|
|
|
"I am at the Hall," said I putting my hand round her waist, "and like
|
|
pretty girls," and I kissed her until she seemed mollified and said,
|
|
"What can you want in troubling poor girls like us?" "You are as
|
|
handsome as a duchess, and I want you to do the same as they do." "What
|
|
is that?" said she innocently. "Fuck," said I boldly. She turned away
|
|
looking very confused. "You saw me on your sister, between her thighs,
|
|
that was fucking; and you saw this," at the same time pulling out my
|
|
prick, "and now I am going to feel your cunt."
|
|
|
|
I put my hand up her clothes and tried to feel, but she turned round,
|
|
and after a struggle half squatted on the floor to prevent me. The
|
|
position was favorable, I pushed her sharply half on to her back on the
|
|
floor, got my fingers on to her slit, and in a moment we were struggling
|
|
on the floor, she screaming loudly as we rolled about.
|
|
|
|
She was nimble, got up and escaped me, but by the time her sister came
|
|
back, I had felt her bum, pulled her clothes up, and talked enough
|
|
baudiness; she had hollowed, cried, laughed, abused and forgiven me, for
|
|
I had promised her a new bonnet, and had given her more silver.
|
|
|
|
Sarah brought back the liquors, there was but one tumbler and a mug, we
|
|
did with those; the weather was hot, the liquor nice, the girls drank
|
|
freely. In a short time they were both frisky, it got slightly into my
|
|
head; then the girls began quarrelling again, and let out all about each
|
|
other, the elder's object being to upset the younger one's virtue and
|
|
make her lewed. I began to get awfully randy, and told Sarah I had felt
|
|
her sister's cunt whilst she had been out. She laughed and said, "All
|
|
right, she will have it well felt some day, she's a fool if she don't."
|
|
We joked about my disappointment in the morning, I asked Sarah to give
|
|
me my pleasure then. "Aye," said she, "and it is pleasure, when Martha
|
|
has once tasted it, she will like it again." Martha very much fuddled,
|
|
laughed aloud saying, "How you two do go on." Then I put my hands up
|
|
Sarah's clothes. "Lord how stiff my prick is, look," and I pulled
|
|
it out, Martha saying, "I won't stand this," rushed from the room. I
|
|
thought she had gone, and wanted to have Sarah; but she thought of the
|
|
two pounds, and shutting Martha's mouth, "Try her," said she, "she must
|
|
have it some day, she'll come in soon." When the girl did, we went
|
|
on drinking. What with mixing gin, peppermint and rum shrub, both got
|
|
groggy, and Martha the worst. Then out went Sarah saying she must go to
|
|
the village to buy something, and she winked at me.
|
|
|
|
She had whilst the girl was outside told me to bolt the front door, and
|
|
if by any chance her father came home, which was not likely; to get out
|
|
of the bed-room window,and through a hedge, which would put me out of
|
|
sight in a minute. Directly she was gone I bolted the door and commenced
|
|
the assault. Martha was so fuddled, that she could not much resist my
|
|
feeling her bum and thighs, yet I could not get her to go and lie down;
|
|
she finished the liquor, staggered, and then I felt her clitoris.
|
|
|
|
I was not too steady, but sober enough to try craft where force failed.
|
|
I wanted to piss, and did, holding the pot so that she could see my cock
|
|
at the door, but she would not come into the bed-room. Then I dropped a
|
|
sovereign, and pretending I could not find it, asked her to help me; she
|
|
staggered into the bed-room laughing a drunken laugh. The bed was near,
|
|
I embraced her, said I would give her two sovereigns if she would get
|
|
on the bed with me. "Two shiners?" said she. "There they are," said I
|
|
laying them down. "No--no," but she kept looking at them. I put them
|
|
into her hand, she clutched them saying, "No--no," and biting one of her
|
|
fingers, whilst I began again tittillating her clitoris, she letting me.
|
|
From that moment I knew what money would do with a woman. Then I lifted
|
|
her up on to the bed, and lay down besides her. All her resistance was
|
|
over, she was drunk.
|
|
|
|
I pulled up her clothes, she lay with eyes shut, breathing heavily,
|
|
holding the gold in her hand. I pulled open her legs, with scarcely any
|
|
resistance, and saw a mere trifle of hair on the cunt; the novelty
|
|
so pleased me, that I kissed it; then for the first time in my life I
|
|
licked a cunt, the spittle from my mouth ran on to it, I pulled open
|
|
the lips, it looked different from the cunts I had seen, the hole was
|
|
smaller. "Surely," thought I, "she is a virgin." She seemed fast asleep,
|
|
and let me do all I wanted.
|
|
|
|
In after life, I should have revelled in the enjoyment of anticipation
|
|
before I had destroyed the hymen; but youth, want, liquor, drove me on,
|
|
and I don't remember thinking much about the virginity, only that the
|
|
cunt looked different from the two others I had known. The next instant
|
|
I laid my belly on hers. "Oh! you are heavy, you smother me," said she
|
|
rousing herself, "you're going to hurt me,--don't sir, it hurts," all in
|
|
a groggy tone and in one breath. I inserted a finger between the lips of
|
|
her quim, and tried gently to put it up, but felt an impediment. She had
|
|
never been opened by man. I then put my prick carefully in the nick, and
|
|
gave the gentlest possible movement (as far as I can recollect) to it.
|
|
|
|
Her cunt was wet with spittle, I well wetted my prick, grasped her round
|
|
her bum, whilst I finally settled the knob of my tool against it,
|
|
then putting my other hand round her bum, grasped her as if in a
|
|
vice, nestled my belly to hers, and trembling with lust, gave a
|
|
hinge,--another,--and another. I was entering. In another minute it
|
|
would be all over with me, my sperm was moving. She gave a sharp "oh!" A
|
|
few more merciless shoves, a loud cry from her, my prick was up her, and
|
|
her cunt was for the first time wetted with a man's sperm; with short,
|
|
quiet thrusts I fell into the dreamy pleasure, laying on the top of her.
|
|
|
|
Soon I rolled over to her side, to my astonishment she lay quite still
|
|
with mouth open, snoring, and holding the two sovereigns in her hand.
|
|
I gently moved to look at her; her legs were wide open, her gown and
|
|
chemise (all the clothing she had on) up to her navel, her cunt showed a
|
|
red streak, my spunk was slowly oozing out streaked with blood, a little
|
|
was on her chemise; but I looked in vain for the sanguinary effusion
|
|
which I saw on Charlotte's chemise, and on my shirt, when I first had
|
|
her; and from later experience, think that young girls do not bleed as
|
|
much as full grown women, when they loose their virginity.
|
|
|
|
Her cunt as I found from ample inspection afterwards, was lipped like
|
|
her sister's, the hair, about half an inch long, scarcely covered the
|
|
mons, and only slightly came down the outer lips, her thighs were plump
|
|
and round, her calves big for her age; she was clean in her flesh, but
|
|
alas! thick blue stockings with holes and darns, big boots with holes at
|
|
the sides, a dirty ragged chemise, dark garters below the knees, made
|
|
an ugly spectacle compared with the clean whiteness of Charlotte's and
|
|
Mary's linen.
|
|
|
|
But the sight took effect, my prick had her blood on it, quietly I
|
|
slid my finger up her cunt, it made her restless, she moved her legs
|
|
together, shutting my hand in them; she turned on her side, and showed
|
|
a plump white bum, over one side of which a long streak of bloody sperm
|
|
had run. I pulled her on to her back, then she awakened struggling and
|
|
called out loudly, but I was heavy on her, my prick at her cunt's mouth,
|
|
and I pushed it up until it could go no further, whilst she kept calling
|
|
out, I was hurting her.
|
|
|
|
"Be quiet, I can't hurt you, my prick is right up you," said I beginning
|
|
the exercise. She made no reply, her cunt seemed deliriously small,
|
|
whenever I pushed deep, she winced as if in pain, I tried to thrust my
|
|
tongue into her mouth, but she resisted it. Suddenly she said, "Oh! go
|
|
away, Sarah will be home and find us." I had my second emission, and
|
|
went to sleep with my prick up her,--I was groggy. She slept also.
|
|
|
|
I awakened, got up tired with heat, excitement, drink and fucking. She
|
|
got up, and sat on the side of the bed half sobered, but stupid; dropped
|
|
a sovereign, and did not attempt to pick it up. I did, and put it back
|
|
into her hands; she took it without saying a word. When buttoned up, I
|
|
asked her what she was going to do, but all the reply I could get was,
|
|
"You go now." I went into the kitchen, banged the door, but held the
|
|
latch, the door remained ajar, and I peeped through.
|
|
|
|
She sat perfectly still so long, that I thought she was never going
|
|
to move; then sat down on the chair and laid her head against the bed,
|
|
looking at the sovereigns at intervals; then put them down, put her hand
|
|
up her petticoats carefully feeling her cunt, looked at her fingers,
|
|
burst into tears, sat crying for a minute or two, then put a basin with
|
|
water on to the floor, and unsteady, partially upset it, but managed to
|
|
wash, and got back on to the chair, leaving the basin where it was. Then
|
|
she pulled up the front of her chemise and looked at it, again put her
|
|
fingers to her cunt, looked at them, again began crying, and leaned her
|
|
head against the bed, all in a drowsy, tipsy manner. Whilst so engaged,
|
|
her sister knocked and I let her in; she looked at me in a funny way; I
|
|
nodded; she went into the bed-room and closed the door, but I heard most
|
|
of what was said.
|
|
|
|
"What are you sitting there for?" No reply. "What's that basin there
|
|
for?" No reply. "You have been washing your grummit?" No reply. "What
|
|
have you been washing it for?" "I was hot." "Why, you have been on the
|
|
bed!" "No, I ain't." "You have, with he." "No, I ain't." "I know he
|
|
have, and been atop a you, just as he were atop on me this morning."
|
|
"No, he ain't." Then was a long crying fit. Sarah said, "What's the good
|
|
of crying you fool, no one ain't going to tell, I shant, and the old man
|
|
won't know."
|
|
|
|
Then their voices dropped, they stood together, but I guessed she was
|
|
asking what I had given her.
|
|
|
|
Then I went in. "You have done it to my sister," said Sarah. "No," said
|
|
I. "Yes, you have," and to Martha crying, "Never mind, its better to be
|
|
done by a gent, than by one of them mill-hands, I can't abear 'em; leave
|
|
off, don't be a fool." I went out of the room, Sarah followed me, and
|
|
I gave her the two sovereigns. "You know," she said, "some one would ha
|
|
done it to her; one of them mill-hands, or Smith would, he's alius after
|
|
her, and I knows he got his hands upon her."
|
|
|
|
Fred went up to London next day, and I was at the cottage soon after;
|
|
the girls were there, the elder grinned, the younger looked queer, and
|
|
would not go to the bed-room. "Don't be a fool," said the elder, and
|
|
soon we were alone together there. Half force, half entreaty got her on
|
|
to the bed, I pulled up her clothes, forced open her legs, and lay for
|
|
a minute with my belly to hers in all the pleasure of anticipation, then
|
|
rose on my knees for a close look. My yesterday's letch seized me, I
|
|
put my mouth to her cunt and licked it, then put my prick up the tight
|
|
little slit and finished my enjoyment.
|
|
|
|
Afterwards when I had her she was neat and clean underneath, although
|
|
with her every day's clothes on. She was frightened to put on her Sunday
|
|
clothes. She was a nice plump round girl, with a large bum for her size,
|
|
with pretty young breasts, and a fat-lipped little slit, the lining of
|
|
it instead of being a full red like Charlotte's, Mary's, and Sarah's
|
|
cunts, was of a delicate pink. I suppose is was that which attracted me.
|
|
Certain it is that I had never licked a cunt before, never had heard
|
|
of such a thing, though "lick my arse" was a frequent and insulting
|
|
invitation for boys to each other.
|
|
|
|
I saw her nearly every day for a week, and her modesty was soon broken.
|
|
Sleeping in the same room with her father, accustomed to being in
|
|
the fields or at a mill, such girls soon loose it; but she seemed
|
|
indifferent to my embraces, and all the enjoyment was on my side. "I've
|
|
not much pleasure in that," said she, "but more when you put your tongue
|
|
there." I could not believe that was so in a young and healthy lass, but
|
|
being always in a hurry to get my poking done lest her father came home,
|
|
used to lick, put up her, spend quickly and leave; but she soon got to
|
|
rights. I licked so hard and long the next time I had her, at the side
|
|
of the bed; that all at once I felt her cunt moving, her thighs closed,
|
|
then relaxed, and she did not answer me. I looked up, she was laying
|
|
with eyes closed and said, that what I had done was nicer than anything.
|
|
I had gamahuched her till she spent.
|
|
|
|
After that she spent like other women, when I had her. I tell this
|
|
exactly as I recollect it, and can't attempt to explain. She worked at a
|
|
paper mill, slack work was the reason of her being at home, now she was
|
|
going back to work; I feared a mill hand would get her, and offered to
|
|
pay her what she earned; but if she did not go to the mill, her father
|
|
would make her work in the fields, and she dare not let him see she had
|
|
money.
|
|
|
|
Indeed the two sisters did not dare to buy the finery they wanted,
|
|
because they could not say how they got the money. So back to the mill
|
|
she went, it being arranged that she should stay away now and then,
|
|
for me to have her. "Oh! won't she," said Sarah "she takes to ruddling
|
|
natoral, I can tell you." Sarah said she told her everything I had done
|
|
to her, including the licking, and I felt quite ashamed of Sarah knowing
|
|
that I was so green, as I shall tell presently.
|
|
|
|
Fred returned, and I had difficulty in getting her often. My cousins
|
|
walked out in the cool of the evening, I with them; often we passed the
|
|
cottage, and I made signs if I saw the girls. I sometimes then had her
|
|
upright in a small shed or by a hay-stack in the dark, where the hay
|
|
pricked my knuckles.
|
|
|
|
Fred was soon to join his regiment, was always borrowing money of me
|
|
"for a shove," and never repaid me; but he was a liberal, good-hearted
|
|
fellow; and when in after life I was without money and he kept a woman,
|
|
he said, "You get a shove out of ------," meaning his woman, "she likes
|
|
you, and I shant mind, but don't tell me." I actually did fuck her; nor
|
|
did he ever ask me,--but that tale will be told hereafter. Nothing till
|
|
his death pleased him more than referring to our having looked at the
|
|
backside of his mother and at his sister's quims, he would roar with
|
|
laughter at it. He was an extraordinary man.
|
|
|
|
One day we rode to the market-town; and putting up our horses, strolled
|
|
about. Fred said, "Let's both go and have a shove." "Where are the
|
|
girls?" said I. "Oh! I know, lend me some money." "I only have ten
|
|
shillings." "That is more than we shall want." We went down a lane past
|
|
the Town-Hall, by white-washed little cottages, at which girls were
|
|
sitting or standing at the doors making a sort of lace. "Do you see a
|
|
girl you like?" said he. "Why, they are lace-makers." "Yes, but some
|
|
of them fuck for all that; there is the one I had with the last
|
|
half-a-crown you lent me." Two girls were standing,-together; they
|
|
nodded. "Let's try them," said Fred. We went into the cottage; it was a
|
|
new experience to me. He took one girl, leaving me the other, I felt
|
|
so nervous; she laughed as Fred (who had never in his life a spark of
|
|
modesty), put his hands up her companion's clothes. That girl asked what
|
|
he was going to give her, and it was settled at half-a-crown each. Fred
|
|
then went into the back-room with his woman.
|
|
|
|
I never had had a gay woman. A fear of disease came over me. She made
|
|
no advances, and at length feeling my quietness was ridiculous, I got my
|
|
hands up her clothes, pulling them up and looking at her legs. "Lord! I
|
|
am quite clean, sir," said she in a huff, lifting her clothes well up.
|
|
That gave me courage, I got her on to an old couch, and looked at her
|
|
cunt, but my prick refused to stand; her being gay upset me. She laid
|
|
hold of my prick, but it was of no use. "What is the matter with you?"
|
|
said she, "don't you like me?" "Yes, I do." "Have you ever had a girl?"
|
|
I said I had. Fred who had finished, bawled out, "Can't we come in?"
|
|
This upset me still more, and I gave it up. In Fred and his girl came,
|
|
and he said, "There is water in the other room." I went in and feigned
|
|
to wash myself, and hearing them all laughing, felt ashamed to come out,
|
|
thinking they were laughing about me; though such was not the case, it
|
|
was because Fred was beginning to pull about my woman.
|
|
|
|
I had more money than I had told Fred, and when he said he was thirsty,
|
|
offered to send for drink, thinking my liberality would make amends for
|
|
my impotence. Gin and ale was got; then I began to feel as if I could do
|
|
it. "She's got a coal-black cunt," said Fred, and I seemed to fancy his
|
|
woman; then he said to mine, "What colour is yours?" and began to lift
|
|
her clothes; "let's change and have them together," and we went at once
|
|
into the back room, whither the two girls had gone. One was piddling,
|
|
Fred pulled her up from the pot, shoved her against the side of the bed,
|
|
bawling out, "You get the other," and pulled out his prick stiff and
|
|
ready. An electric thrill seemed to go through me at this sight, I
|
|
pulled the other into the same position by the side of Fred's; then the
|
|
girls objected, but Fred hoisted up his girl and plunged his prick into
|
|
her. Mine got on to the bed, leaving me to pull up her clothes. The same
|
|
fear came over me, and I hesitated; Fred looked and laughed, I pulled
|
|
up her clothes, saw her cunt; fear vanished, the next moment I was into
|
|
her, and Fred and I, side by side, were fucking.
|
|
|
|
All four were fucking away like a mill, then we paused and looked at
|
|
our pricks, as they alternately were hidden and came into sight from the
|
|
cunts. Fred put out his hand to my prick, I felt his, but I was coming;
|
|
my girl said, "Don't hurry." It was too late, I spent, laid my head upon
|
|
her bosom, and opening my eyes, saw Fred in the short shoves. The next
|
|
instant he lay his head down.
|
|
|
|
I believe now that really all four felt ashamed for directly after we
|
|
were all so quiet, one of the girls remarked, "Blest if I ever heard
|
|
of such a thing afore, you Lunnon chaps are a bad lot." A long time
|
|
afterwards I again had the girl for two and sixpence, Fred was then in
|
|
Canada; she recollected me well, and asked me, whether gals and chaps
|
|
usually did such things together in London.
|
|
|
|
Fred and I used to examine our pricks for a few days after, to see if
|
|
there were any pimples on them. Fred soon forgot his fear and shame, and
|
|
offered to bet me the fee of the gals, that he would finish first, if we
|
|
went and repeated the affair, but we did not.
|
|
|
|
Martha became very curious about me and my doings with Sarah. New to
|
|
fucking as she was; she got jealous at the idea of anyone sharing my
|
|
cock with her. She was curious too to know about her sister's pleasure;
|
|
the elder had I think got all she wanted to know from the younger, and
|
|
had made but little return for it in information.
|
|
|
|
Then my amatory knowledge was increased by an event unlooked for,
|
|
unthought of, unpremeditated; I am quite sure I had neither heard, nor
|
|
read of such a thing before; and should at that period of my life have
|
|
scouted the idea, as beastly and abominable, though I had done it. How
|
|
I came to lick Martha's cunt even then astonished me, I thought that it
|
|
was the small size, the slight hair, and youthfulness of the article;
|
|
but I used to lick it very daintily, wiping my mouth, spitting
|
|
frequently, and never venturing beyond the clotoris. It occurred to me
|
|
one day instead of kneeling, to lay down and lick; so I laid on the
|
|
bed, my head between her thighs, my cock not far from her mouth, and
|
|
indulging her in the luxury; for it was much the idea of pleasing her
|
|
that made me do it. She played with my cock and wriggled as my tongue
|
|
played over her clotoris, then grasped my prick hard, which gave me a
|
|
premonitory throb of pleasure. "Do to me what I am doing to you," said
|
|
I, "put it in your mouth," scarcely knowing what I said and without any
|
|
ulterior intention. She with her pleasure getting intense, impelled by
|
|
curiosity, or by the fascination of the cock, or by impulse, the result
|
|
of my tongue on her cunt, took it in her mouth instantly. How far my
|
|
prick went in, whether she sucked, licked, or simply let it enter, I
|
|
know not, and I expect she did not either; but as she spent I felt a
|
|
sensation resembling the soft friction of a cunt, and instantly shot my
|
|
sperm into her mouth and over her face. Up she got, calling me a beast.
|
|
I was surprised and ashamed of this unlooked for termination, and said
|
|
so to her.
|
|
|
|
I had as said arranged signs as I passed the cottage about our meetings,
|
|
yet had difficulty now in getting at her without being found out, and
|
|
never should, excepting for the elder sister, to whom I gave every now
|
|
and then money. She took care of the house, rarely went out, but worked
|
|
at a coarse of lace, and earned money that way. She used to sit outside
|
|
the cottage door if fine; working, and curtseying when we, who were
|
|
called the Hall folks, passed. My aunt said one day, "What a strapping
|
|
wench that is, don't you think so Walt? you always look at her as you
|
|
pass." I might have replied, "Yes she is, and her arse is remarkably
|
|
like yours," but I did not, and was after that more on my guard. Fred
|
|
had not had the girl for a long time, that freed me a little. Then
|
|
Martha shammed ill two days to stay from the mill and let me have her,
|
|
and I spent a good many hours with her. As I turned my head quickly one
|
|
day, I thought I saw the bed-room door close, and it occurred to me,
|
|
that the elder had been watching; she looked letcherously at me as I
|
|
came out.
|
|
|
|
I went one day soon after, and found Sarah alone. She made some excuse
|
|
about her sister being obliged to go to work. I was going away angry,
|
|
when she asked me to look at her new boots and stockings. Amused at
|
|
her vanity, I looked and she put them on. "Them fits fine," said she,
|
|
showing her legs amply. I was not excited about it, and was going.
|
|
"Ain't you never going to ha me agin?" said she. "I've no money." "We
|
|
are old friends, never mind money, if I hadn't got you Martha we moight
|
|
ha been good friends still,--ar wish a hadn't." "You did it to save us,"
|
|
said I. "Ah, but yer shouldn't leave old friends, and I ha watched and
|
|
made yer both comfortable." Well, thought I, this is an invitation to
|
|
fucking,--she had a wonderful slip in her cunt, and I began to rise.
|
|
"You have lots of friends," said I. "I take my oath, that no friend has
|
|
seen me since the day you got my sister; ain't I been allus on watch for
|
|
yer, did yer ever pass without seeing me?"
|
|
|
|
A woman who wants fucking is not easy to resist, even if she is ugly and
|
|
middle-aged. There she sat, the picture of health, her petticoats nearly
|
|
up to her knees; I had never before seen them excepting in coarse blue
|
|
woolen stockings. I rolled her clothes up, saw the big thighs, the next
|
|
instant had my fingers in the slit; up knocked my doodle. She shut the
|
|
shutter, locked the door, and with a pleased look got on to the bed. Her
|
|
cunt struck me as quite a novelty, and I got ready for insertion.
|
|
|
|
"You like her better than me," said she. It was a poser, but a man
|
|
always likes the woman he is going to poke better than any other, and so
|
|
I denied it. "Why don't you do to me what you do to she then?" "What
|
|
is that?" "You knows." "No." "Yes you do." "I feel it like this." "More
|
|
than that." "What?" "You know." "I don't, tell me." There was a pause.
|
|
It came into my head that she knew I had licked Martha's quim, and it
|
|
had such an effect on me, that down went my doodle, and I was almost
|
|
ashamed to look at her; for as said, until I licked Martha, I had never
|
|
done such an act, and did it with a sort of belief that I was a great
|
|
beast, and should have said so of any man who did anything of the sort.
|
|
Indeed after spending in her mouth, I had felt so very much disgusted
|
|
with myself, that I left off the licking altogether, and had made the
|
|
girl promise she would never tell her sister, nor refer to the matter
|
|
again. So I was silent, standing with one hand on her belly just above
|
|
her split, and in an uncomfortable state of mind.
|
|
|
|
She broke the silence. "Do it as you do it to she." "I don't know what
|
|
you mean," I again stammered. "Yes yer do now." "What has Martha told
|
|
you?" "Nothing, but I knows." And finding I was about to get on the bed,
|
|
"Naw, naw, kiss it." So I put my mouth down on to the hair and gave a
|
|
loud kiss. "Naw," said she, "do it as you do it to she, I am a finer
|
|
woman than she by long chalks; what is't yer sees to take to her so? you
|
|
knows you tickles her with yer tongue." The murder was out. I wanted to
|
|
mount her, she baulked me, and kept repeating in a jockular, playful,
|
|
manner her request. So I got her to the side of the bed, her large
|
|
thighs wide open, and legs hanging down in a favorable position,
|
|
intending to please her; she gave her cunt a dry rub with her chemise.
|
|
|
|
I began with dislike, but there was something in the novelty which
|
|
warmed me. What a difference between her and her sister. I could lick
|
|
the younger one's all but hairless orifice with comfort, and she always
|
|
laid quiet; but I had to pull open this one's sausage lips and hold back
|
|
the dark thick fringe, which got into my eyes and tickled my nose. No
|
|
sooner had my tongue touched her clitoris, than the lips closed round my
|
|
mouth, and as my saliva worked up on to the cunt-hair by her movement,
|
|
it wetted my nose and face, she heaved and bounced her arse so much.
|
|
Then her thighs closed round my head tightly enough to squeeze it off,
|
|
she buried her hands in the hair of my head, and up went cunt again,
|
|
bringing my nose into the hole, then with a jerk she got her cunt away
|
|
from me. I was not at all sorry to desist.
|
|
|
|
"Oh! do it natural,--do it natural," said she, and her thighs opened and
|
|
hung down, showing a slobbered cunt. I went into her just as she lay at
|
|
the side of the bed, and in a minute her cunt was wetter than ever.
|
|
|
|
I have no doubt that the wench spent almost directly I licked her, but
|
|
I did not know it. When I asked her if she liked it, she said, "The
|
|
old fashioned way be the best, but I have done the same as she." I
|
|
questioned her, but never knew whether her sister had told her or not,
|
|
or whether she had peeped and seen us together at it.
|
|
|
|
I made her promise she would never tell her sister what I had done. She
|
|
hoped I would see her again, but having promised Martha that I would not
|
|
have Sarah again, told her so. She said she was tired of watching for
|
|
us. The sisters were often quarrelling, and I believe out of jealousy
|
|
about me, yet I fucked her again.
|
|
|
|
I may mention about the risks I ran, that I was once with Martha on the
|
|
bed, when I heard my cousin's voice asking Sarah who was at the door, if
|
|
she had seen me pass.
|
|
|
|
I could not get the younger readily enough, had been long from home, and
|
|
was about returning. I had spent all my money, and told Sarah one day
|
|
after I had poked her, that I was going away. Her sister was then at the
|
|
mill. Said she, "What will Martha do?" I supposed she would get another
|
|
sweetheart. She shook her head, "Martha be poisoned." "What?" "Don't
|
|
be afraid," said she, "she be in the family way, we call it poisoned in
|
|
these parts, when a girl be'nt married." It was true. The girl had only
|
|
menstruated once or twice before I first had her, and now her courses
|
|
had stopped. There was no attempt at making a market of me, all needed
|
|
was to get her right again. The elder took Martha to a fortune-teller,
|
|
and she got better of her difficulty. I borrowed money of my aunt
|
|
and giving Martha all I could, went back to London. She left the
|
|
neighbourhood.
|
|
|
|
I saw Martha two years afterwards, when visiting again my aunt; she was
|
|
in house-hold service, and was out for the day. I waylaid her, hoping
|
|
to have her again; we kissed and fondled, and with difficulty I felt her
|
|
quim, but could not accomplish my wishes; she was going to be married,
|
|
and soon after I heard that she was.
|
|
|
|
Sarah also was going to be married to a farm labourer, and when I joked
|
|
her about his finding her out, she laughed and said, "Lord, he war my
|
|
first sweetheart," from which I inferred that cousin Fred was mistaken
|
|
about taking her virginity.
|
|
|
|
My first cunt-licking, and cock-sucking took place with Martha; I had
|
|
never before played such amatory pranks, and all came about by instinct.
|
|
For a long time I was ashamed of myself, and never breathed a word on
|
|
such subjects to anyone; I don't think I should have done so even to
|
|
Fred, but he was then away. Gradually I was learning by instinct the
|
|
whole art of love. What made me offer money to get Martha I can't say,
|
|
I don't think that I had ever heard of tempting women's virtue by money,
|
|
but I never forgot the lesson, and much improved on it as time went on.
|
|
|
|
I now had had four women. The difficulties in the way of getting at
|
|
them, were very useful in preventing excesses; and kept me in health. It
|
|
seems surprising to me now, how little I seemed to have thought of baudy
|
|
attitudes, and lascivious varieties; for belly-to-belly poking on the
|
|
bed, was nearly all I did. I had still the modest, demure, demeanour
|
|
which deceived my mother (coupled with her ignorance of life generally)
|
|
and relations, and though very proud of my achievements, kept them much
|
|
to myself, never disclosing the names of my women, and only telling one
|
|
or two intimate friends of what I had done; who reciprocated by telling
|
|
me their achievements. Fucking had eased my prepuce. I made a practice
|
|
of pulling it backward and forward several times a day; in fact whenever
|
|
I piddled. My prick had grown bigger in the two years, which pleased me
|
|
much, but about the size of it I had a curious doubt, which will be told
|
|
of further on.
|
|
|
|
I was though demure, quite a man in manner and looks, and with women
|
|
behaved in a way which one or two of my relatives remarked. I used to
|
|
think to myself when talking to them, "Ah! I know what sort of opening
|
|
you have at the bottom of your belly." The cousins whose cunts I had had
|
|
a partial glimpse of, I used to like to dance with, wondering how much
|
|
the hair had grown on them. I used also to think about my sister's
|
|
cunt that I had seen when in the cradle, but just then she died. My
|
|
experience indeed much increased the charm of female society to me.
|
|
|
|
Chance had given me two virgins out of four women, that was a luxury
|
|
unthought of, uncared for, and in no way appreciated; the virgins were
|
|
no more liked by me than the others.
|
|
|
|
Cousin Fred will appear at less frequent intervals, he was away
|
|
sometimes for months, then for years, but he is named whenever he played
|
|
an important part in my adventures,--he was participator in others which
|
|
will never be written about here.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VIII.
|
|
|
|
Fanny Hill.--Masturbation.--Friend Henry.--Under street-
|
|
gratings at the gunmaker's.--A frigging match.--Sights from
|
|
below.--In a back street.--A prick in petticoats.--
|
|
Evacuations.--Ladies scared.
|
|
|
|
I went back to London, and resumed my preparations. Penniless, I tried
|
|
to get money from my mother, but could not. I tried to feel our ugly
|
|
housemaid, who threatened to tell. Just then a friend lent me _Fanny
|
|
Hill_, how well I recollect that day, it was a sunshiny afternoon,
|
|
I devoured the book and its luscious pictures, and although I never
|
|
contemplated masturbation, lost all command of myself, frigged, and
|
|
spent over a picture as it lay before me. I did not know how to clean
|
|
the book and the table-cover.
|
|
|
|
Fascinated although annoyed with myself, I repeated the act till not a
|
|
drop of sperm would come; and the skin of my prick was sore. The next
|
|
day I had a splitting headache but read at intervals, and again frigged;
|
|
and did this for a week, till my eyes were all but dropping into my
|
|
head. In a fever and worn out; the doctor said I was growing too fast,
|
|
and ordered strong nourishment; but I used to take the infernal book
|
|
with me to bed, and lay reading it, twiddling my prick, and fearing to
|
|
consummate, knowing the state I was in. It was indeed almost impossible
|
|
to do it, and when emission came, it was accompanied by a fearful aching
|
|
in my testicles.
|
|
|
|
My friend had his book back, my erotic excitement ceased, I grew
|
|
stronger, felt ashamed of myself, and soon found a new excitement.
|
|
|
|
I had a friend who like me was intended for the Army, his father was a
|
|
gun manufacturer. The eldest son died, and the old man saying that five
|
|
thousand a year should not be lost to the family, made his other son--my
|
|
friend--go into the business. He resisted, but had no alternative but
|
|
to consent. Their dwelling-house was just by ours, but the old man now
|
|
insisted on his son residing largely at the manufactory where he invited
|
|
me to stay at times with him, which I did.
|
|
|
|
Several houses adjoining belonged to the old man, at the East-End of
|
|
London, where the manufactory was. Some faced an important thoroughfare,
|
|
the rest faced two other streets, and at the back, a place with out a
|
|
thoroughfare, on one side of which was the manufactory and workmen's
|
|
entrance; on the other side stables. The whole property formed a large
|
|
block.
|
|
|
|
The house faced the better street, the family had for forty years lived
|
|
in it before they became rich, and it was replete with comfort. The old
|
|
man had since lived there principally, for his love was in his business,
|
|
and he had made all arrangements for his convenience. He had a private
|
|
staircase leading from a sitting-room into the manufactory, and could go
|
|
into the warehouse, or the back street, or out of the front door of the
|
|
house unnoticed. The people employed, never knew when to expect him. He
|
|
was a regular Tartar, but for all that a kind-hearted man.
|
|
|
|
There now lived in the house an old servant with her sister, who had
|
|
been many years in the family. One was married to a foreman in whom his
|
|
master had much confidence; these three were in fact in charge of the
|
|
premises, although nominally the keyes were given up to my friend whom
|
|
we will call Henry. The old man wished his son to be happy, allowed
|
|
friends to visit him, there was good wine, put out by the old man in
|
|
small quantities from time to time, good food, good attendance, and all
|
|
to make things comfortable; but the old man resolutely forbade his son
|
|
to be out later than eleven o'clock, and kept him as my mother kept me,
|
|
almost without money. I expect that the old servants were told to keep
|
|
an eye on the doings of Henry.
|
|
|
|
The basement was used as store-room for muskets, put into wooden boxes
|
|
which stood in long rows upon each other like coffins. It was a large
|
|
place and originally only went under the factory, but the old gentleman
|
|
gradually as he acquired the adjacent houses, let them, but retained
|
|
most of the basements, so that his stores ran not only under the
|
|
premises he occupied, but largely under half a dozen other houses of
|
|
which he only let the shops and upper portions. On four sides this large
|
|
basement had glimpses of light let into it, by gratings in the footways
|
|
of the streets.
|
|
|
|
At one end and on the principal street was a row of windows, beneath
|
|
what was then a first class linen-draper's shop--first class I mean for
|
|
the East-End--a large place for those days, and always full. Women used
|
|
to stand by dozens at a time, looking into the shop windows which were
|
|
of large plate-glass--a great novelty in those days--people waiting for
|
|
omnibusses used also to stand up against the shop.
|
|
|
|
Henry and I were old school friends, I had seen and felt his cock, he
|
|
mine; I had not been with him an hour before he said, "When the workmen
|
|
go to dinner, I will show you more legs than your ever saw in your
|
|
life." "Girls?" said I. "Yes, I saw up above the garters of a couple
|
|
of dozen yesterday in an hour." "Could you see their cunts?" "I did not
|
|
quite, but nearly of one," said he. I thought he was bragging, and was
|
|
glad when twelve o'clock came.
|
|
|
|
At that hour down we went, through the basement stored with muskets;
|
|
it seemed dark as we entered, but soon we saw streams of light coming
|
|
through the windows at the end; they had not been cleaned for years. We
|
|
rubbed the glass and looked up. Above us was a flock of women's legs
|
|
of all sizes and shapes flashing before us, thick and thin in wonderful
|
|
variety. We could see them by looking up, it being bright above; but
|
|
dark and dusty below, they could not by looking down see us, through the
|
|
half cleaned windows; or notice round clean spots on the glass, through
|
|
which two pairs of young eyes almost devoured the limbs of those who
|
|
stood over them.
|
|
|
|
As our only way lay through the work-shop and we did not wish it known
|
|
that we were there (there was no business done there, unless arms were
|
|
being stored or taken out), we went back before the workmen returned
|
|
from their meals; but for several days did we go into the place,
|
|
gloating over such of the women's charms as we could discern; legs we
|
|
saw by the hundreds, garters and parts of the thighs we saw by scores:
|
|
quite enough to make young blood randy to madness, but the shadowy mass
|
|
between the thighs we could not get a glimpse of.
|
|
|
|
"There are vaults," said I, "if there, we could see right up, and be
|
|
at the back of the women." We tried unused keys to find one to open
|
|
the door, and at length to our intense delight it unclosed. We stepped
|
|
across the little open space under the gratings into the empty vaults,
|
|
and there arranging to take our turns of looking up at the most likely
|
|
spots, we put out our heads and took our fill at gazing. We were right
|
|
under the women, who as they looked into the shop windows, jutting out
|
|
their bums in stooping, tilted their petticoats exactly over our heads.
|
|
If there was no carriage passing, we could at times hear what they said,
|
|
but that was rarely the case.
|
|
|
|
In those days even ladies wore no drawers. Their dresses rarely came
|
|
below their ankles, they wore bustles, and standing over a grating,
|
|
anyone below them, saw much more, and more easily, than they can in
|
|
these days of draggling dresses, and cunt swabbing breeches, which
|
|
the commonest girl wears round her rump. For all that, so close to the
|
|
thighs, do chemise and petticoats cling, that it was difficult to see
|
|
the hairy slits, which it was our great desire to look at. Garters and
|
|
thighs well above the knees, we saw by scores. Every now and then either
|
|
by reason of scanty clothing, or short dresses, or by a woman's stooping
|
|
and opening her legs to look more easily low down at the window, we had
|
|
a glimpse of the cunt; and great was our randiness and delight when we
|
|
did. On the whole we were well rewarded. Many as the legs and thighs
|
|
are, that I have since seen, I doubt whether I have seen so many pairs
|
|
of legs half-way up the thighs, and all but to the split, as I saw in
|
|
the times we stood under that big linendraper's shop window. Old and
|
|
young, thin and fat, dirty and clean, ragged and neat, there was every
|
|
possible variety and number of legs and their coverings.
|
|
|
|
There were two states of the weather which favoured us: if muddy, women
|
|
lifted their clothes up high. Having no modern squeamishness, all they
|
|
cared about was to prevent them getting muddy; and then with the common
|
|
classes, we got many a glimpse of the split. But a brilliant day was the
|
|
best. Then the reflected light being strong, we could see higher up if
|
|
the lady was in a favourable position. We could see if they had clouts
|
|
round their cunts, and had some strange sights of which I will only tell
|
|
one or two. One day, quite at the end of the gratings, two women,
|
|
|
|
neat, clean, plump, and of the poorer classes (for we could soon tell
|
|
the poorer classes from their legs and under-clothings), stood close
|
|
together. It was my five minutes. Henry was at my back. They had been
|
|
standing talking, close together, not seeming to be looking at the shop,
|
|
in fact they were at the spot where the shop window finished. One put
|
|
her leg up against a ledge, keeping the other on the grating; it was
|
|
a bright day, and I saw the dark hair of her cunt as plainly as if she
|
|
were standing to show it me. The next minute she gathered up her clothes
|
|
a little high, and squatted down on her heels as if to piddle, her bum
|
|
came down within four or five inches of the grating, and I saw through
|
|
the bars, her cunt open just as a woman does when she pisses. I thought
|
|
she was going to do so, when a plantive cry explained it all; she had
|
|
a baby, and all the movements were to enable her to do something to
|
|
it conveniently. At the same time her companion dropped on one knee,
|
|
pulling her clothes a little up, and arranging them so as to prevent
|
|
soiling them, she put the other leg out in front, and sat back on
|
|
the heel of the kneeling leg. Then was another split, younger and
|
|
lighter-haired, partly visible from below, but not so plainly as the
|
|
dark-haired one; and they did something in that position for five
|
|
minutes to the squalling child.
|
|
|
|
I lost all prudence, whispered to Henry; and together we stood looking,
|
|
till they moved away. "My prick will burst," said I. "So will mine,"
|
|
said he. The next instant both our pricks were out, and looking up
|
|
at the legs, stood we two young men, frigging till two jets of spunk
|
|
spurted across the area. It would have been a fine sight for the women
|
|
had they looked down, but women rarely did. They stood over the gratings
|
|
usually with the greatest unconcern, looking at the shop windows, or
|
|
only glanced below for an instant, at the dark, uninhabitated looking
|
|
area.
|
|
|
|
This was the beginning of a new state of things. We got reckless; Henry
|
|
had business to attend to, I none, I ceased to think about what might be
|
|
said of our being so much in the store-house; and used to go by myself,
|
|
and stay there two or three hours at a time. Then I gave way to erotic
|
|
excesses. My prick would stand as I went down the stairs. I used to wait
|
|
prick in hand, playing with it, looking up and longing for a poke
|
|
until I saw a pair of thighs plainly, then able to stand it no longer,
|
|
frigged; hating myself even whilst I did it, and longing to put my spunk
|
|
in the right place. I used to catch it in one hand, whilst I frigged
|
|
with the other, then fling the spunk up towards the girls' legs. It was
|
|
madness; for although the feet of the women were not three feet above my
|
|
head, yet the smallness of the quantity thrown (after what stuck to my
|
|
fingers), and the iron bars above, seemed to make it impossible that any
|
|
of it should reach its intended destination; but I think it did one day.
|
|
A youngish female was stooping, and showing part of her thighs. I flung
|
|
up what I had just discharged; suddenly her legs closed, she stepped
|
|
quickly aside, looked down and went away. I am still under the
|
|
impression that a drop of my sperm, must have hit her naked legs.
|
|
|
|
We both also grew more lascivious, having frigged before each other, we
|
|
took to frigging each other. I went to my home, on going back, found
|
|
he had taken other young men to see the legs. One night five of us had
|
|
dinner, we smoked and drank, our talk grew baudier; we had mostly been
|
|
schoolfellows, and dare say we had all seen each other's doodles, but I
|
|
cannot assert that positively. We finished by showing them to each other
|
|
now, betting on their length and size, and finished up by a frigging
|
|
sweep-stakes for him who spent first.
|
|
|
|
At a signal, five young men (none I am sure nineteen years old) seated
|
|
on chairs in the middle of the room began frigging themselves, amidst
|
|
noise and laughter. The noise soon subsided, the voices grew quiet, then
|
|
ceased, and was succeeded by convulsive breathing sighs and long-drawn
|
|
breaths, the legs of some writhed, and stretched out, their backsides
|
|
wriggled on the chairs, one suddenly stood up. Five hands were frigging
|
|
as fast as they could, the prick-knobs standing out of a bright
|
|
vermillion tint looking as if they must burst away from the hands which
|
|
held them. Suddenly one cried "f-fi-fir-first," as some drops of gruelly
|
|
fluid flew across the room, and the frigger sunk back in the chair. At
|
|
the same instant almost the other jets spurted, and all five men were
|
|
directly sitting down, some with eyes closed, others with eyes wide
|
|
open, all quiet and palpitating, gently frigging, squeezing, and
|
|
tittillating their pricks until pleasure had ceased.
|
|
|
|
Afterwards we were quiet, then came more grog, more allusion to the legs
|
|
of women, their cunts and pleasures, more baudiness, more showing of
|
|
pricks and ballocks, another sweep-stakes, another frigging match, and
|
|
then we separated.
|
|
|
|
I do not think that excepting to Henry, that baudy evening ever was
|
|
referred to by me.
|
|
|
|
I got up I recollect next day ashamed of myself, and felt worse, when he
|
|
remarked, "What beasts we made ourselves last night." What changes since
|
|
then. Two of the five found graves in the Crimea, the third is dead
|
|
also; Henry and I alone alive. He with a big family, with sons nearly as
|
|
old as he was at the time of the frigging matches. I wonder if he ever
|
|
thinks of them, wonder if he ever has told his wife.
|
|
|
|
I spent much time now in this leg inspection and frigging myself, till
|
|
I could scarcely get semen out of me. I hated myself for it, yet went on
|
|
doing it, when luckily I lost the exciting sights. Some women happened
|
|
to look down and saw us. A man without a hat came several times and
|
|
looked down the gratings. Henry's father came to the manufactory, as
|
|
he often did, went into the stores, asked who had opened the area-door,
|
|
locked it up, had a new lock put on, and forbad anyone to go into the
|
|
stores excepting to get out the guns, and so we lost our game. We never
|
|
asked a question, nor made a remark on the matter; and came to the
|
|
conclusion, that some one had complained to the linendraper that persons
|
|
were looking up the women's legs, and that he had written to Henry's
|
|
father on the matter.
|
|
|
|
I went home used up, and in a state of indescribable disgust with
|
|
myself, entirely ceased masturbation, and in a month went again to visit
|
|
my friend,--he had found out another grating.
|
|
|
|
The back of the manufactory as said was in a _cul-de-sac_. There were
|
|
but the manufactory and stables in it. The workmen entered that side.
|
|
There were gratings, and coal-vaults beneath the street similar to those
|
|
beneath the linendraper's shop. Workmen's wives bringing their husbands'
|
|
dinners, used to stand and sometimes sit down over the gratings, but
|
|
their legs when seen were rarely worth the seeing; it was usually but a
|
|
sight of dingy petticoats, and dirty stockings. We were however content
|
|
to look up at them, for they belonged to women, but soon tired of doing
|
|
so.
|
|
|
|
One night (we had never been there at night before), for some reason
|
|
or the other which I don't recollect we went down and found two women
|
|
pissing down the grating, then a man and woman together, and discovered
|
|
it to be the pissing-place of the gay women, in the main thoroughfare;
|
|
and where if the nights were dark, couples used to come for a grope, a
|
|
frig, or even for a fuck at times. The pissing often took place over a
|
|
grating, we could hear, and feel, but not see.
|
|
|
|
Then we got a common dark lantern, had the top shade taken of, and a
|
|
funnel, or short chimney put with a slide, so that when we pushed the
|
|
slide off, the light shot up through the chimney, and throw a strong
|
|
light on a circle about one foot across. With this we went down waiting
|
|
till we heard some one above, then opened the light and saw what was to
|
|
be seen. Sometimes we waited for hours without seeing anything, but it
|
|
is astonishing what cute-loving, baudy young men will go through for the
|
|
sake of seeing a woman's privates. At other times we saw a good deal. If
|
|
it were a light night, we saw nothing. No one knew we went down at those
|
|
hours, the workmen had gone, and the private staircase from the dwelling
|
|
house at any time let us into the factory; from the factory we could go
|
|
anywhere on the premises.
|
|
|
|
When we heard feet, or a rustle of petticoats over the grating, taking
|
|
up the light we sometimes saw a white hum, a split gaping like a dog
|
|
with its throat cut, and a stream of water splashing from it. We never
|
|
used to move, but sooner than not see it all and as well as possible,
|
|
let the stream come over us. Sometimes two women came together;
|
|
sometimes we could hear to our mortification that they were pissing on
|
|
the pavement close by, without coming over the grating. We could often
|
|
hear their conversation. Now and then a woman shit down the grating,
|
|
we used to watch the turds squeeze out with a fart or two, with great
|
|
amusement. Once a man did the same, we saw prick, balls, and turd, all
|
|
hanging down together, we could not help laughing, and off he shuffled
|
|
as if he had been shot. He must have heard us.
|
|
|
|
There was one woman whose face we never saw, but who came and pissed
|
|
over a grating so regularly every evening, and sometimes twice; that we
|
|
knew her arse perfectly. We lost sight of her and used to wonder if she
|
|
had found us out, for she finished one night with such a loud fart, that
|
|
we laughed out,--and she must have heard us.
|
|
|
|
One night half a dozen ladies came, we knew they were ladies by their
|
|
manner and conversation, which we could hear perfectly, there being no
|
|
carriage traffic in the street. "Can anyone see?" said one. "No," said
|
|
another, "make haste." We heard the usual leafy rustle, and immediately
|
|
a tremendous stream was heard; then two more sat down close together.
|
|
I turned on the light at all risks, there were two pretty white little
|
|
bums above us, with the gaping cunts, they were of quite young girls,
|
|
without a hair on them; the women then were scared I suppose, for they
|
|
moved. One said, "Make haste, don't be foolish, nobody is coming." A
|
|
rustle again, off went the slide, up went the light; what a big round
|
|
bum, what a great black-haired open cunt did we see, and a stream of
|
|
water as if from a fire-engine. "Oh! there is a light down there," said
|
|
one. Up went the bum, piss still straining down, down went the clothes,
|
|
and all were off like lightening.
|
|
|
|
Another night we heard two pairs of feet above us, one was the heavy
|
|
footstep of a man. "Don't be foolish, he won't know," said a man in a
|
|
very low tone. "Oh I no,--no, I dare not," said a female voice, and the
|
|
feet with a little rustling moved to another grating. Henry and I moved
|
|
on also. "You shall, no one comes here, no one can see us," said the
|
|
man in a still lower tone. "Oh! I am so frightened," said the female. A
|
|
little gentle scuffling now took place, and then all seemed quiet but a
|
|
slight movement of the feet. "Are they there?" whispered Henry from
|
|
the vault. I nudged him to quiet, and putting the light as high up as I
|
|
could, pushed aside the slide a little only.
|
|
|
|
We were well rewarded. Just above our heads were two pairs of feet, one
|
|
pair wide apart; and hanging only partly at her back the garments of
|
|
a female; in front the trousers of a man with the knees projecting
|
|
slightly forward between the female's legs, and higher up a bag of balls
|
|
were hanging down hiding nearly the belly and channel, which the prick
|
|
was taking. The distended legs between which the balls moved, enabled us
|
|
however to get a glimpse of the arse-hole and of a cunt. The movement of
|
|
the ballocks showed the vigor with which the man was fucking, but there
|
|
must have been some inequality in height; and either he was very tall,
|
|
or she very short; for his knees and feet moved out at times into
|
|
different positions. He then ceased for an instant his shoving, as if
|
|
to arrange himself in a fresh and more convenient posture, and then the
|
|
lunges recommenced. He must have had his hands on her naked rump, from
|
|
the way her clothes hung, showing her legs up to her belly, or to where
|
|
his breeches hid it, or where the clothes fell down which were over his
|
|
arm.
|
|
|
|
Once I imagine, the lady's clothes were in his way, for there was a
|
|
pause, his prick came quite out, her feet moved, her legs opened wider.
|
|
He did not need his fingers to find his mark again, his long, stiff,
|
|
red-tipped article had slidden in the direction of her bum-hole; but
|
|
no sooner had they readjusted their legs, then it moved backwards,
|
|
and again it was hidden from sight in her cunt. The balls wagged more
|
|
vigorously than ever, quicker, quicker; the lady's legs seemed to shake,
|
|
we heard a sort of mixed cry, like a short groan and cry together, and
|
|
a female voice say, "Oh! don't make such a noise," then a quiver and a
|
|
shiver of the legs, and all seemed quiet.
|
|
|
|
When I first had removed the slide, I did so in a small degree, fearing
|
|
they might look below and see it; but if the sun had shone from below,
|
|
I believe now they must have been in that state of excitement, that they
|
|
would not have noticed it. To see better I opened the slide more, and
|
|
gradually held the lantern higher and higher, until the chimney through
|
|
which the light issued was near to the grating. I was holding it by the
|
|
bottom at arms length; and naturally, so as to best see myself. Henry
|
|
could not see as well, although standing close to me, and our heads
|
|
nearly touching. "Hold it more this way," said he in an excited whisper.
|
|
I did not. Just then the lady said, "Oh! make haste now, I am so
|
|
frightened." Out slipped the prick,--I saw it. At that very instant,
|
|
Henry pulled my hand, to get the lantern placed so as to enable him to
|
|
see better. I was holding it between the very tips of my fingers, just
|
|
below the feet of the copulating couple. His jerk pulled it over, and
|
|
down it went with a smash, just as the lady said, "Make haste, I am so
|
|
frightened." A huge prick as it seemed to me drew out, and flopped down,
|
|
a hand grasped it, the petticoats were falling round the legs, when the
|
|
crash of the lantern came. With a loud shriek from the lady, off the
|
|
couple moved, and I dare say it was many a day before she had her
|
|
privates moistened up against a wall again, and over a grating.
|
|
|
|
Henry and I laughing picked up the lantern and got back to the house;
|
|
I went to my bed-room in a state of indescribable randiness. I had for
|
|
some time broken myself of frigging, and now resisted the desire, tried
|
|
to read but could not, undressed and went to bed. My prick would stand.
|
|
If it went down for a minute and my thoughts were diverted, the very
|
|
instant my mind recurred to those balls wagging above my head, up it
|
|
went again. I tried to piss, the piss would not run. At that time when
|
|
my prick was stiff, I used to pull the prepuce back, so as to loosen it.
|
|
I laid down on the bed, prick stiff. If it could have spoken, it would
|
|
have said, "Frig or fuck, you shall, before I give you rest." So I
|
|
pulled the prepuce slowly back,--only once,--and as the knob came
|
|
handsomely into view, out shot my spunk all over the bed-clothes.
|
|
|
|
Getting up to wipe and make things clean, I saw something on the brim
|
|
of my cap which I had worn; the cap was on the table. I took it up and
|
|
found a large spot of sperm which had come from the happy couple, it
|
|
must have followed the withdrawal of the prick; and had my head been a
|
|
little more turned up, it must have tumbled on my face. I did not mind
|
|
wiping up my own sperm, but doing so to their's seemed beastly. Yet what
|
|
was the difference?
|
|
|
|
We heard one night some one squat down, and turned up the light; there
|
|
were petticoats, legs and an arse, but instead of the usual slit, we saw
|
|
to our astonishment a prick and balls hanging down between the legs, it
|
|
was a man in woman's clothes, and he was shitting. The sight alarmed us,
|
|
we talked over it for many a day afterwards, for we did not then know
|
|
that some men are fond of amusing themselves with other men.
|
|
|
|
I never saw but that one couple fucking, but we could hear groping and
|
|
frigging going on close by. We heard women say, "Oh! don't!" Gay women,
|
|
we heard say, "Here is a good place," but they did not often select the
|
|
gratings, why? I cannot tell, for they were partly in recesses in the
|
|
wall which enabled people to get more hidden. The bars were wide apart,
|
|
and I suppose the regulars did not like that, yet they often used the
|
|
gratings for pissing down.
|
|
|
|
These sights did no occur all at once, I went home, stopped, returned,
|
|
and so on; in the meanwhile not having women, I then frigged, left off,
|
|
then took to it again, and so time went on. Fewer women came at last up
|
|
the street, we imagined that with all our care, they had found out that
|
|
people were beneath the gratings, and avoided them. The favorite place
|
|
was the recess at the workmen's door to the factory at which were two
|
|
steps; we could hear but not see when a couple was there, we used then
|
|
to go up into the factory and listen at the door. Generally, feeling and
|
|
frigging was only going on, bargaining for money first. "Give me another
|
|
shilling. Oh! your nails hurt. What a lot of hair you have. What a big
|
|
one! Oh! I am coming! Don't spend over my clothes," and so on, we heard
|
|
at times.
|
|
|
|
Meanwhile there was either no servant at my home worthy of a stiff one,
|
|
or those who would not take one; and I had no alternative but to frig.
|
|
Money my mother again kept from me. What I got, I sent to the poor girl
|
|
Martha, who then had not got rid of her big belly; gay women I had
|
|
fear of; devoured by desire to get into a woman again, I even looked
|
|
longingly at the wife of the foreman who took charge of the house in
|
|
which Henry lived, although she was fifty. I recollect seeing her making
|
|
my bed one morning, and getting a cock-stand at the sight of the woman
|
|
so near a place to lay down on.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IX.
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Smith.--A brutal husband.--My second adultery.--A
|
|
chaste servant.--Road harlots.--A poke in the open.--Use for
|
|
a silk handkerchief.--A shilling a tail.--Clapped.
|
|
|
|
Henry had now much business to attend to, I had none. I used to wander
|
|
into the back street just as the men's wives brought them their dinners,
|
|
so as to look at them. They were not allowed inside, but if the men
|
|
chose to eat inside they could do so, their wives waiting outside. Six
|
|
or eight men had their dinners brought, the rest went away. The women
|
|
most frequently sat on a door-step, or loitered over the gratings up
|
|
which we used to look at night; or squatted down against the wall. I had
|
|
once or twice looked up their clothes, but found little inviting, with
|
|
the exception of a plump little pair of legs which belonged to a Mrs.
|
|
Smith. She looked about twenty-six years of age, her husband twenty
|
|
years older, a good workman but a brutal fellow. He bore a bad character
|
|
among his fellows, and was thought a brute to his wife. Some said
|
|
his wife drank; there was often a row in the street between them at
|
|
dinner-time, he used to sit on the door-step and eat his dinner outside,
|
|
she standing near him, and her legs came at times over a grating. I used
|
|
to dodge downstairs at times at the workmen's dinner-hour, and have a
|
|
look up, and that is how I saw, and began to think of the legs of Mrs.
|
|
Smith.
|
|
|
|
I took a sort of fancy to her, or rather her legs, so plump and clean.
|
|
I saw she had a nice clean face with bright brown eyes, and then had
|
|
a desire to fuck her. I again had desisted from frigging, had sworn
|
|
to myself not to do so again, and now getting strength wanted a woman
|
|
badly. Our eyes had often met, I had even got out of her way when
|
|
passing her, a courtesy not often then shown by gentlemen to workpeople.
|
|
I used to stare at her so, that she began to look confused when I did.
|
|
The husband never seemed to notice anything but his dinner, at which he
|
|
usually swore. Sometimes I spoke to him about gun-making. I wanted to
|
|
poke Mrs. Smith, but there did not seem to be the remotest chance, nor
|
|
had I any intention of attempting it, but used to look at her with
|
|
my cock standing, and wondering what sort of cunt she had. I had been
|
|
brought up religiously, and the idea of having a married woman seemed
|
|
shocking. I was shocked when I found that Mary was married. At length I
|
|
nodded, smiled, and established a sort of intimacy in that way without
|
|
speaking, managing to meet her as it were, quite casually when going to,
|
|
or leaving the workshop.
|
|
|
|
One day the man dined on the step, his wife standing by his side; down I
|
|
went to peep up her clothes and heard him rowing. "Why the hell had
|
|
she not got him beef instead of mutton; God damn her, why were there
|
|
no potatoes!" That was his style. Angry words passed, the voices grew
|
|
louder, I heard a loud smack and a strong oath, he had hit his wife and
|
|
gone back into the work-shop.
|
|
|
|
There was a great gabbling of female voices over the grating round Mrs.
|
|
Smith. "I would not stand it," said one. "It is a shame," said another.
|
|
"He ought to be proud of such a wife, an old beast," said another. The
|
|
husband came out again. "I have done my best," said she, "you are not a
|
|
man anyhow, or anywhere, for two pins I would run away from you." A loud
|
|
oath, and another smack followed.
|
|
|
|
I heard Mrs. Smith sobbing. "I have had a little drink," said she, "I
|
|
told him so. He makes me so unhappy, I must; but I spend scarce a trifle
|
|
and it's what I earns myself. Ain't I clean? don't I bring him good
|
|
meals?" "You do, you do," said they. "It's a shame," she went on, "he is
|
|
not a man, not in bed, not anywhere, not anyhow, I don't aggravate him,
|
|
I put up with everything, it's full six months since he's been a husband
|
|
to me, although we sleeps in the same bed," she added in a significant
|
|
way, "yes, six months full." "Lor," said half a dozen voices together,
|
|
then said one, "Don't he do anything to you then?" Things quieted, off
|
|
went Mrs. Smith with some of the women, two remained waiting for their
|
|
husbands' platters, they squatted down on the step.
|
|
|
|
"They're a miserable couple," said one. "Yes, and likely, he is never at
|
|
home, no wonder she do take a drop of comfort." "No, it ain't." "She is
|
|
a nice little woman, and no man gets his meals nicer." "No, that they
|
|
don't." "He's too old for her, but he ain't jealous." "No, in course
|
|
not." "Why he ain't done it to her for six months," said one. They both
|
|
chuckled then. "Why, my old man don't forget me like that, and he is ten
|
|
years older than Smith," said the other. "Ah!" said the first, "he's a
|
|
bad 'up altogether, men be a bad lot, the best on 'em." The time-bell
|
|
rang, their husbands brought out their dinner-cans, and off the women
|
|
went.
|
|
|
|
I can scarcely tell what followed exactly or how it came about, for even
|
|
now to me it seems astonishing. I was but between eighteen and nineteen,
|
|
and had not had the remotest idea of getting Mrs. Smith, though I longed
|
|
for her lewedly when my cock stood. I was timid with women until I knew
|
|
them well, I could never begin with our own servants until they had
|
|
been in the house a few days; yet directly I heard this conversation, a
|
|
chance seemed in my way, and without meaning it I followed it up.
|
|
|
|
With but little idea of married life or habits, I saw that not only were
|
|
they a wretched couple, but that for months Smith had never touched his
|
|
wife. I imagined then that married people were always doing it, that
|
|
women were randier than men,--a common belief of young people. I
|
|
thought: how she must want a poke! how she would enjoy it! Out I went
|
|
to see if Mrs. Smith was about, and saw her walking off with a group of
|
|
sympathizers, who dropped off gradually, until she was left with one,
|
|
with whom she went into a public-house. In a few minutes they came out
|
|
and parted. On she went alone, and went into another public-house, and
|
|
then wiping her eyes as she came out, went her way alone; I after her,
|
|
lewed and thinking to myself, "she has not had it for six months," and
|
|
so on. She went into a public-house now by herself. I waited till she
|
|
came out, and saw she had been taking to many drops of comfort.
|
|
|
|
Without any definite intention as far as I can remember, but simply for
|
|
lewed gratification, I went up to, and addressed her. She recognized me
|
|
and stood stock still. She had a small bottle of what I found afterwards
|
|
to be gin in her hand, which she put into her husband's dinner can. I
|
|
told her I was sorry for her, having heard the row and all she had said.
|
|
The reference to her wrongs roused her, and she said vehemently, "He is
|
|
not a man anyhow or anywhere," and then was silent. I did not know what
|
|
to say more, and walked on by her side. After a time she said, "Why are
|
|
you walking with me sir?" The only reply I made was that I liked it,
|
|
and was sorry she had such a bad husband. She said she would rather be
|
|
alone, but I walked on with her she carrying the little tin can with a
|
|
cover. I not knowing what to do, offered to carry it for her, but she
|
|
would not let me.
|
|
|
|
Then she remarked, "You are very good, but don't come any further,
|
|
it won't look well for a poor woman to be walking with a gentleman;
|
|
neighbors make mischief, and God knows, I have enough to bear already."
|
|
My boldness having quite left me, I shook hands with her, which seemed
|
|
to astonish her, and off she went. I followed her at a distance, to her
|
|
house, which was one of a row of small cottages fronting a ditch, and
|
|
a field, on which carpets were beaten, and boys played, a scrubby poor
|
|
place as you may be sure.
|
|
|
|
I turned back hesitating. One moment wondering at my boldness, and
|
|
wickedness in thinking of a married woman; the next, thinking I was a
|
|
fool for not having asked her to let me; when I saw in the path, the top
|
|
of the tin can she had been carrying. Here was a chance. I walked about
|
|
for half an hour before I mustered up courage to go to the house. She
|
|
opened her eyes wide when she saw me. "What do you want?" "Here is the
|
|
top of the dinner-can," said I innocently. "Oh!" said she, "I am so
|
|
glad, he would have hit me if I had lost it." As she took it I entered
|
|
and closed the door.
|
|
|
|
She had finished the gin, for the empty bottle was on the table. She may
|
|
have been more than fuddled, I cannot say; for I was so excited that I
|
|
recollect only the most prominent circumstances. I was in a funk, but
|
|
my cock was stiff, and that overcame all scruples. The house had but two
|
|
rooms: a kitchen I was standing in, the street-door opened on to it.
|
|
An open door showed a neat bed in a clean white-washed bed-room. How I
|
|
began I know not, but recollect telling what I had heard, and that
|
|
for months he had not been a husband to her. That set her off talking
|
|
wildly, and she said it all over again. She was sure he was spending his
|
|
money on some dolly, hoped she might catch her, then cried, wiped her
|
|
eyes and said, "Well, that is no business of yours, I am a fool for
|
|
talking to a young gentleman like you, I don't know what you are doing
|
|
here."
|
|
|
|
"Let me do it to you," said I, "I have seen up your clothes, let
|
|
me,--you are so nice, and I want you so badly; why should you not, he
|
|
is no husband to you, and you such a nice woman." That was my artless
|
|
beginning, or something like it. Fright at my impudence was struggling
|
|
against my cock-stand. For a second she seemed speechless, then replied,
|
|
"Well sir, you ought to be ashamed,--a married woman like me." "He is no
|
|
husband to you, he never does it to you, you know,--I heard you tell the
|
|
women so; they laughed, and said he had some hussy whom he did it to."
|
|
"That's no business of yours, but he is a bad one," and she began crying
|
|
again. "Now go sir go,--if he came home, he would murder me, if he found
|
|
you here."
|
|
|
|
I don't know how the next came off, but I know I was kissing her, that I
|
|
got my hand up her clothes, on to her cunt, that I pulled out my prick,
|
|
that the struggling ceased, that I edged her to the bed-room, and that
|
|
up against the bed she made a stand. "Oh! my God sir, I am a married
|
|
woman, pray don't." Paying no heed, I got her clothes up and as she
|
|
stood, was bending and trying to get my cock up her; but she was little,
|
|
and I could not; it shoved up against her navel, and motte. That I
|
|
suppose stirring her lust, overcame her, for she got on the bed, I got
|
|
on her, and up her in a second.
|
|
|
|
I was in a bursting state of randiness, and she must have been the same.
|
|
I was ready to spend, she readier; for I had no sooner entered her than
|
|
her breath shortened, she clasped me tight, quivered and wriggled, and
|
|
we both spent. I lay up her, cock ready for further work. Up to that
|
|
time I had not properly felt her, nor seen her body. I began fumbling
|
|
about, put my hand down feeling cautiously round the stem of my cock and
|
|
my ballocks. All was wet, I slid my finger below her cunt (feeling even
|
|
near to an arse-hole was then beyond me), there it felt wetter; that
|
|
stimulated me, and on I went grinding. She lay with her eyes closed
|
|
without speaking. Soon we both went again, I had fucked her twice
|
|
without uncunting.
|
|
|
|
The quiet dreamy enjoyment had barely began, when she pushed me off
|
|
and sat up saying, "What have I done? what have I done? I am a married
|
|
woman!" Then comes tears, then a kiss from me, then talk, then tears,
|
|
and at intervals she told me a story of a bad, brutal, morose husband,
|
|
who had not fucked her for months. Half frightened, half hysterical, it
|
|
seemed as much pleasure to her to tell me her misery, as it had been to
|
|
have me doing her husband's work. We moved off the bed. "Oh! my God,"
|
|
said she, "look at the bed." I saw one wet patch as large as a tea-cup,
|
|
and another as large as a crown at the spot where her bum had laid on
|
|
the counterpaine. "What shall I do?" "Wash it." "But I have no other."
|
|
It was a bore no doubt. I left without being able to get permission to
|
|
see her again, but only tears, and an expression of her conviction that
|
|
she was a wicked woman.
|
|
|
|
Although she had not asked me not to tell anyone, which women so often
|
|
do who commit these little slips, I did not mention it to Henry. For
|
|
three or four days afterwards she did not come to the factory. I went to
|
|
her cottage. She was out. At length at the dinner-hour I met her face to
|
|
face by the factory. She looked ready to drop. An hour afterwards seeing
|
|
her burly husband at work, off to her house I went, and gave a single
|
|
knock. She opened the door, nearly fell back with surprise, and before
|
|
she could recover herself I was indoors. I had an altercation, a
|
|
refusal, almost a fight, but I conquered. Again she was fucked on the
|
|
bed, and now for the first time I had a look at her charms, her cunt
|
|
unwashed.
|
|
|
|
She was a plump little woman, dark-haired on head and tail, her quim was
|
|
neither large or small, her thighs round and white, she was an ordinary
|
|
person, neither handsome nor plain, and my curiosity was soon satisfied.
|
|
She kept exclaiming, "Oh! if he should come home!" I fell to work again
|
|
with vigor, and soon again spent. As I got off I observed under her bum
|
|
again a large wet place, but now on her chemise. "What a lot of spending
|
|
you have done," said I. "I can't help it," said she. My experience was
|
|
small, but I knew that from no other woman whom I had stroked, had such
|
|
an effusion taken place. Before I had spent I had felt her wetness on my
|
|
fingers. I had her on another occasion, and the same thing occurred. I
|
|
notice this because I only recollect meeting one other such case since;
|
|
Mrs. Smith, like the other to whom I refer, used after a few pushes up
|
|
her to squeeze her cunt, shiver, and discharge quite copiously, to
|
|
be followed with a second pleasure and discharge when I spent. I only
|
|
reflected on Mrs. Smith's peculiarity some years afterwards.
|
|
|
|
In about a week I had her again at her cottage. Then she said if I came
|
|
any more she would have trouble, for neighbors had already remarked a
|
|
gentlemen at the house. I disregarded this, went and knocked. She opened
|
|
the door cautiously with the chain up, and seeing me, shut it in my
|
|
face. I was then about going to my own home, and feared I should not
|
|
have her again, but found out that the husband spent his evenings at a
|
|
tavern (I had a strange pleasure in looking at him after I had had his
|
|
wife), that he was to be at some workman's carousal, watched him to the
|
|
public-house, then ran to his cottage, gave a single loud knock at the
|
|
door, which was this time opened unsuspiciously, and in I pushed before
|
|
she could scarcely see who it was.
|
|
|
|
I had difficulty in persuading her to let me, she was more timid than
|
|
ever, but promised that I would never come again.
|
|
|
|
Then she got on to the bed. The crisis was just over when we heard a
|
|
knock. With a shriek she pushed me off and got up. "He will murder me,
|
|
he will murder me," said she. I stood blank with bewilderment, relieved
|
|
by another knock and a voice crying "beer." She fell on the floor
|
|
fainting, and so alarmed me, that I nearly called in the neighbours. I
|
|
put a pillow under her head. I don't know what induced me, for not three
|
|
minutes before I was frightened out of my life, but as she laid there
|
|
close by the fire (at the knock we had rushed into the kitchen), I
|
|
pulled up her clothes. The flickering of the fire showed her thighs
|
|
and cunt in a strange light to me. As I pulled her legs asunder, I felt
|
|
ashamed, but lust was strong. I looked at the cunt, the novelty of an
|
|
insensible woman on the floor excited me, the next instant in spite of
|
|
her, for she recovered just as I laid on her, my prick was up her, and
|
|
my knuckles on the hard bit of dingy carpet, and as I grasped her bum,
|
|
it seemed that my poke was most delicious. So much for novelty and
|
|
imagination. I left immediately afterwards.
|
|
|
|
Then I went home to my mother. In about three weeks, went to see Henry,
|
|
again as I said, but really to get to Mrs. Smith, and found her husband
|
|
had been discharged. I went off to the cottage, it was empty. They had
|
|
gone no one knew where, and he had half murdered his wife. I wondered if
|
|
it had been about me. Then my conscience upbraided me with having
|
|
committed adultery. I took to going to church more regularly, and
|
|
repeated the commandments emphatically.
|
|
|
|
I was now approaching nineteen years, was at home doing nothing but
|
|
study, and with scarcely a farthing of money. I tried to get into one
|
|
of our servant's unsuccessfully, she was a plain lass, but had a cunt,
|
|
which was all I wanted. I began to kiss and fondle her, which she
|
|
submitted to demurely. Then by surprise one day got my hand up her
|
|
clothes, and between her cunt-lips. She loudly screamed, which luckily
|
|
was unheard, for my mother was out. Her cunt felt wet, and I found from
|
|
my fingers afterwards that she was poorly built. She rushed downstairs
|
|
crying violently, the next day gave warning and left, much to my relief.
|
|
She never I am sure told my mother, but I was in a fright until she had
|
|
left.
|
|
|
|
I restrained myself from frigging, although sorely tempted to do so, and
|
|
luckily found cheaper and better relief. Having had but one gay woman,
|
|
and having a dread of them, neverthless, my mind involuntarily turned
|
|
to them, especially as I now defied my mother, stopped out of nights
|
|
latish, and consequently saw more of them. But I had no money.
|
|
|
|
Between London and our suburb, there were some lengths of road bounded
|
|
by fields, and only lighted by oil-lamps. At places small houses were
|
|
being built in side-roads, which were altogether without light. Gay
|
|
women of a poor class, were then of an evening about the darkest parts,
|
|
or they used to walk where the roads were lighter. They were of that
|
|
class who go with labouring men, and were not attractive, although
|
|
cleaner and better-looking than the same class now is.
|
|
|
|
One evening I worried an aunt out of two pounds, which I had with a
|
|
solitary shilling besides; and was returning, when a woman accosted me.
|
|
She walked by my side and talked, but I could not afford a soverign,
|
|
which was a much larger sum then than it now is, and a shilling seemed
|
|
to me a ridiculous sum, so I determined to run, for fear I should be
|
|
fool enough to let her have a soverign. "I can't," said, "good night, I
|
|
only have a shilling." "Make it two," said she. "I have not got more."
|
|
"Give it me then." I stopped in astonishment at the idea of her taking
|
|
such a trifle. "She is going to take it and go off," thought I, for
|
|
I had known such a thing, but I gave her the shilling and then stood
|
|
still. "Well, are you not going to have it?" said she, "make haste." It
|
|
was a dark night, but I saw from a white gleam that her clothes were up,
|
|
felt where the nick was, and in much agitation thrust my tool up it.
|
|
|
|
Having a woman in the open up against a field fence, and without seeing
|
|
her cunt, or even her face, was a novelty to me. For a long time I had
|
|
been bottling up my sperm. All fear left me, and it seemed the most
|
|
delicious fuck I ever had had. In a few pushes I spent, and kept my
|
|
belly up against hers in silent delight, till I felt sperm trickling
|
|
down over my balls. Telling me to take care of my shirt she drew her bum
|
|
back. Scarcely recovered from my pleasure and still wondering how I had
|
|
such pleasure with so poor a woman, I suppose I must have said something
|
|
of the sort, for she remarked, "Why not? we are all made the same way,
|
|
and if some of us had more cheek, we might have as good clothes as the
|
|
best, but there are plenty of real gents glad enough to have us," and so
|
|
we talked for a minute. I had not felt her and now longed to do so, but
|
|
was too timid to ask her. She turned away. I had been wiping my cock
|
|
with a silk pocket-handkerchief, to prevent any sperm getting on to my
|
|
shirt. A happy idea came. "Let me feel you, and do it again and I will
|
|
give you this silk handkerchief, for I have no more money." Laughing
|
|
and saying, "I suppose it is silk," she accepted it. I think now of the
|
|
exquisite delight, with which I felt the thighs and bum of that poor
|
|
woman, who might for all I could see, have had the great, or the
|
|
small pox, or have been as ugly as the devil; but I stroked her belly,
|
|
twiddled her wet cunt-hair (she had pissed), plunged my fingers into
|
|
her wet cunt, and at length spent again in it, with more delight, than I
|
|
have had with some of the most dashing women since that time.
|
|
|
|
After funking about pox and clap, for a few days, out I sped one evening
|
|
to try to get her again, delighted at the economical rate at which I
|
|
found it now possible to have women. But I always was liberal, and gave
|
|
her three or four shillings. Several times I had had her afterwards and
|
|
never saw her face. At length I insisted on going when I could see her.
|
|
She refused until tempted by an offer, then agreed to meet me at a
|
|
place which she named; saying, "And I will put on a clean chemise and
|
|
stockings." I met her, and found her to be about thirty-five years old,
|
|
and one of the ugliest women I ever saw.
|
|
|
|
She was so plain that all desire left me. I looked her all over, to
|
|
which she made no objection, remarking as she pulled up her clothes,
|
|
"Ah, you may look, I am as clean as any woman although I am what I am."
|
|
I went on looking at, and fiddling her about, but no erection came. She
|
|
gave an uneasy motion with her bum and said, "Oh! you are tickling
|
|
me so, why don't you get on?" I said I did not want it yet, which so
|
|
astonished her, that she sat upright, and looked at me and at my tool.
|
|
Then she made me lay down on the poor bed, and mutual feeling soon
|
|
brought me to a proper state. "Don't you be quick or you will spoil me,"
|
|
said she. Her manner was quite different from what it had been on the
|
|
high road, it was amorous. I forgot her ugliness, and fucking with all
|
|
my heart, spent when her hard breathing, tightening cunt, and clasping
|
|
arms, told me she enjoyed it also.
|
|
|
|
Then the miserable room, and her ugliness revolted me. I moved to
|
|
get off, but she retained me, asking me to talk. Somewhat against my
|
|
inclination I did. She laid hold of my prick, pinching it. The gentle
|
|
pleasure returned, and it ended in my doing her again, as much to her
|
|
delight as mine. She said so. Instead of feeling pleased, it made
|
|
her seem to me ugly. I went away, and although I argued with myself,
|
|
especially when I only had a shilling or two, yet I never could bring
|
|
myself to have her again. When I saw her on the road, I went the other
|
|
side of the way, and soon lost sight of her.
|
|
|
|
Finding that I had not suffered by my indiscretion, I got bolder, took
|
|
the run of the road, and must have had a dozen girls at a shilling a
|
|
tail. One night as I fumbled a girl, she frigged me vigorously. "I will
|
|
do it this way," said she, "you will like it so." But I refused. "I
|
|
will give you such pleasure," said she again, "all the gents say I do
|
|
it better than any girl." But again I refused. "I am afraid my monthlies
|
|
are just coming on," said she. But up I put it, and went home satisfied.
|
|
Two or three mornings afterwards I felt a slight itching at the tip of
|
|
my prick, but took no notice of it; the next morning piddling, to
|
|
my horror I saw a little yellowish fluid oozing, and sat down in
|
|
consternation. I had got a clap.
|
|
|
|
This laid me up for weeks, I went to a strange doctor and managed to
|
|
keep it from my mother, but was in anxiety as to how I was to pay the
|
|
doctor. Fortune and misfortune often follow each other. My long promised
|
|
appointment came from the W... Office just as I was getting well. With
|
|
overwhelming joy I saw some chance of a little money, beyond what I got
|
|
by begging from relatives; and then also my mother, at the advice of an
|
|
uncle, who pointed out that in a year and a half I could not be kept out
|
|
of my property, allowed me a fair monthly stipend.
|
|
|
|
I now found out that women of a superior class, were to be had much
|
|
cheaper, than my great friends used to talk of; but at the time I write
|
|
of, a sovereign would get any woman, and ten shillings as nice a one
|
|
as you needed. Two good furnished rooms near the Clubs, could be had
|
|
by women for from fifteen to twenty shillings per week, a handsome silk
|
|
dress for five or ten pounds, and other things in proportion. So cunt
|
|
was a more reasonable article than it now is, and I got quite nice
|
|
girls at from five to ten shillings a poke, and had several in their own
|
|
rooms, but sometimes paying half-a-crown extra for a room elsewhere.
|
|
|
|
When with but little money, I used to take out my best silk
|
|
handkerchiefs, and give them with money, and once or twice I gave
|
|
nothing else. One night to a nice-looking girl I said I could give her
|
|
nothing but a handkerchief. "All right," said she without a murmur. When
|
|
I had fucked her, she laid still on the bed and before she washed her
|
|
cunt examined the handkerchief very carefully. "It's a rare good new
|
|
one, it will pop for half-a-crown where I am known, where did you prig
|
|
it?" looking at me as she spoke, and then added, "Yet you look like a
|
|
gentleman too." I recollect it as well as if it were yesterday. I at
|
|
that time used to take pleasure in laying as long as I could after I had
|
|
spent, then getting up and kneeling between the girl's legs opening her
|
|
cunt and watching the spunk at the mouth, or the big drops rolling down
|
|
between the cheeks of her bum. I was kneeling so then, and was not a
|
|
little shocked at her remark. That girl was young, handsome, well made,
|
|
and in the Hay-market would now get anything from one to five pounds,
|
|
yet I had her several times for three and four shillings a time.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER X.
|
|
|
|
A big cunted one.--Sister Mary.--A wet dream.--Charlotte
|
|
reappears.--Consequences.--My first child.--Cook Brown, and
|
|
housemaid Harriet.--Masturbation and foolscap.--A deaf
|
|
relative.--An uncomfortable pudendum.--A lacerated penis.--
|
|
Sudden dismissals.
|
|
|
|
Just at this time the following incident occurred. Going one Saturday
|
|
night up Granby street, Waterloo road, then full of women who used to
|
|
sit at the windows half naked; two or three together at times in the
|
|
same room on the ground-floor, with the bed visible from the street, and
|
|
which street I often walked in for the pleasure of looking at the women.
|
|
A woman standing at a door seized my hand, asking me in, and at the same
|
|
time pulling me quite violently into the little passage. I had barely
|
|
seen her, and upon her saying, "Come and have me," replied that I had
|
|
scarcely any money. "Never mind," said she, "we will have a fuck for
|
|
all that." She shut the door, closed rapidly the outer wooden shutters,
|
|
which all the ground-floor windows had in that street, and began to kiss
|
|
me and feel my prick. I then saw she was half drunk. Quickly she pulled
|
|
me towards the bed, threw herself on it, pulled up her clothes to her
|
|
navel, and cried aloud, "Fuck me,--fuck me,--fuck me.--oh! how I want
|
|
a fuck, make haste." She was a tall woman with dark hair on her cunt,
|
|
neither very long nor thick. As I looked at it, I saw the inner lips
|
|
hanging out a full inch, I put my finger, two, then three fingers up her
|
|
cunt easily. It was enormous. It shocked me, having never seen such a
|
|
cunt before I am quite sure. She meanwhile did nothing but jerk,
|
|
and wriggle her arse about, shouting out, "Fuck me,--put your prick
|
|
in,--fuck me,--fuck me."
|
|
|
|
The look of her thing, its size, and her manner so shocked me, that my
|
|
prick refused its work, and I told her so. She jumped off of the bed,
|
|
fell on her knees, and began sucking my prick violently, made it stiff
|
|
in spite of me, got on to the bed again, and recommenced crying out for
|
|
me to do it to her. With a feeling of disgust I got on her, slipped my
|
|
prick up and began, but it felt nowhere. I could not make out that it
|
|
was up a cunt at all, so loose was it. If it had been in a wet bladder,
|
|
it could not have felt looser, and it shrunk up again to nothing. "I
|
|
can't do it," said I in a fright, for her manner was so lewed, and
|
|
became so ferocious, that it quite upset me. "What! a fine young man
|
|
like you can't do it," said she. "No" (and as an apology), "I often
|
|
can't do it." Again she got it stiff by sucking it. That quite disgusted
|
|
me, but on to the bed and into her again I got. My doodle in a minute
|
|
began to shrink, but whilst in her, she wriggled and jerked away so
|
|
hard, that I think she must have got a pleasure, for she laid quiet for
|
|
a time. I was very glad to get off; but was not to be let off so easy.
|
|
"I _will_ give you a pleasure," said she, "I can if anyone can," and
|
|
although it disgusted me, for such a thing had never been done to me
|
|
before, and I tried to stop her, she dropped upon her knees saying, "You
|
|
will come to see me again I know, for a man can always do it one way or
|
|
another," put my prick in her mouth and sucked and palated it. I was too
|
|
young and too full not to feel it. Spite of myself I spent, and just as
|
|
I did, grasping my balls with one hand and frigging the stem with the
|
|
other, she drew back her mouth about two inches, kept it wide open, went
|
|
on frigging, and the sperm squirted out into her mouth and on to her
|
|
face; then she resumed sucking it until every drop was out of me.
|
|
|
|
That over, she rose and said, "You will come to me again, won't you? I
|
|
will always do that to you, and anything else you like." I gave her a
|
|
shilling and promised, but never felt so sick and disgusted with a woman
|
|
before. Everything about the woman was repulsive. I have since met four
|
|
or five woman with very large cunt-holes, but hers was the largest. I am
|
|
perfectly certain I could have put my fist up it. I avoided the street
|
|
for some months, which was a great loss to me, for I often used to go
|
|
through it, to gloat on the charms of the women as they lolled out of
|
|
the windows. When I thought of my prick being sucked, it used to disgust
|
|
me awfully, and it was many years before I knew what pleasure it was to
|
|
a man, at times; but it never has been done to me again, in the manner
|
|
that woman did it.
|
|
|
|
Then I saw the woman in taking whose virtue I lost my own,--Charlotte.
|
|
|
|
Our cook married. A new cook and housemaid came, the latter a pretty
|
|
dark-eyed girl of about eighteen years of age, named Mary. Directly I
|
|
set eyes upon her I liked her, and thought I would try to get her. My
|
|
clap and cheap pokes, had not made me much in love with gay women; whose
|
|
free-and-easy ways somewhat shocked my timidity. Some time had elapsed
|
|
since I had had any others, and my mind naturally reverted to the nice
|
|
pokes I had had with servants. My chances were fewer than ever. One of
|
|
my sisters was now frequently at home, Tom no longer needed a servant
|
|
to be with him, and the housemaid was less frequently away from the
|
|
kitchen. But I felt myself more a man, my good fortunes made me feel
|
|
more sure of success, more prompt and determined in attack.
|
|
|
|
At first I watched her closely and thought I must have seen her before.
|
|
A resemblance struck me, and I remarked to my mother, "How like that
|
|
girl is to Charlotte, who lived with us." "She is her sister," said she.
|
|
I was startled, for a feeling came over me that I ought not to try her.
|
|
|
|
But it brought my liason with Charlotte vividly to my recollection. The
|
|
first meeting, the glimpse of her cunt as she got down from the cart, my
|
|
first grope, our first poke, were now constantly before me; and I longed
|
|
with all my heart to have her again, though I knew it was hopeless.
|
|
|
|
Gradually my mind centered itself on Mary, and as I saw the resemblance
|
|
to her sister, I used to wonder how far the resemblance extended.
|
|
Whether her haunches were as large, her thighs as round, her cunt so
|
|
made, fringed, and dark, and so on; until I desired to have her, as much
|
|
for her resemblance to Charlotte, as for herself. Yet I had fear and
|
|
reluctance to make advances, because she was Charlotte's sister.
|
|
|
|
Meanwhile I was chaste, was in good health and wanted a woman awfully.
|
|
Then I had a wet dream; dreamed I had Charlotte in my arms, that she ran
|
|
away and left me with Mary, who pulled up her clothes, and invited me to
|
|
fuck her. Before I could get in to her, I awakened, found that I was on
|
|
my back and was spending on my night-gown.
|
|
|
|
I had heard much of these dreams, had had one partially, and now had
|
|
experienced a complete one. It threw me into a state of irritation,
|
|
but seemed to fix the hidden charms of Mary strongly in my imagination.
|
|
Desire so carried me away, that from gently rubbing and titillating
|
|
myself, I passed to frigging a discharge, whilst thinking of Mary's
|
|
cunt.
|
|
|
|
In the morning I had the enervation I have always since felt after these
|
|
dreams, and my usual disgust at having frigged myself; a feeling which
|
|
was not allayed when I looked at my night-shirt. I had a dread of
|
|
letting it be seen, but left things as they were. Mary and the cook made
|
|
my bed, and must have seen it. Servants see funny things on beds often.
|
|
I wonder what they say, and what they think about it. It can't be easy
|
|
for a young woman to see sheets, and night-gowns, spunk-stained; without
|
|
its effecting her imagination baudily, and paving the way for somebody
|
|
to stain sheets and linen with herself.
|
|
|
|
I gave up all idea of attacking Mary, but "cock and cunt will try to
|
|
get together." There is no use in resisting it. So again with no fixed
|
|
intention, but simply from pleasure for the time being, and impelled
|
|
by desire (all my silk handkerchiefs were gone and I was again without
|
|
money), and by opportunity, I got to courting, and we soon kissed. I had
|
|
pressed her belly against mine, got my hand on to the calf of her leg,
|
|
and was on the high road to the snatch at her cunt, which my experience
|
|
now told me was the right thing to do, when all came to an end.
|
|
|
|
I went daily to the W---- Office returning about half-past four. One day
|
|
when about half-a-mile from home, a lady in black silk and with a dark
|
|
veil approached me; but as if she had made a mistake, when close to me,
|
|
turned on one side and passed on. I looked back and saw she was standing
|
|
still, then on she went, and so did I, and had nearly forgotten her,
|
|
when I heard quick footsteps in the rear, and some one saying, "Mister
|
|
Walter, don't you know me?" I turned round, stopped and tried to see who
|
|
it was, but the veil prevented it. She hesitated an instant, then lifted
|
|
it, and I saw Charlotte.
|
|
|
|
With flushed face, bright eyes and a gentle smile, she looked exquisite.
|
|
My heart beat tumultuously, my love returned in an instant. I put my arm
|
|
round her, and regardless of the publicity of the place, gave a kiss.
|
|
There was it is true scarcely anyone about, but she as well as me when
|
|
I had done it, saw the impropriety. "Don't, for God's sake," said she,
|
|
"what will people think?" "Let us walk," said I, and pulling her arm
|
|
through mine, on we went; I looking into her face all the way, noticing
|
|
how much the time which had passed had improved her, and overwhelming
|
|
her with questions. I felt overjoyed, as if again I should possess her,
|
|
and old times had returned. She for a few minutes seemed to give way
|
|
to similar elation. Just then I saw a gentleman named Courtauld
|
|
approaching, he was our next-door neighbour. We nodded as we passed,
|
|
but the incident altered the current of our thoughts. I led her down a
|
|
turning where there were scarcely any people, and saying, "I am so glad
|
|
old Courtauld did not see me, for his brother lives just by us, and his
|
|
old servant is often there and knows me." She relapsed into silence. I
|
|
went on chatting of the happy times we had had, and the pleasures we had
|
|
tasted together. She remarked, "Oh! pray don't talk of that any more,
|
|
recollect I am married, let me say what I have come to say, and then I
|
|
must go."
|
|
|
|
"To say to me?" said I. "Pray don't misunderstand me, I thought you
|
|
would excuse it," said she getting confused, "besides it is my duty, and
|
|
of course knowing what I do about you, I was so afraid of something."
|
|
"What do you mean?" "Well if I had known where she was going to I would
|
|
have made mother stop it, now I come at once to ask you not to hurt
|
|
her." I proposed going into a small half-country ale-house close by, but
|
|
she refused saying, that if seen to do so, and it became known to her
|
|
husband, it might cause much harm. "Oh! no," said she in a hurry again,
|
|
"I must go, I must get back, I came to ask you not to hurt her, promise
|
|
you won't for my sake." All this time I was in a fog. "Who--who,--what
|
|
do you mean?" said I. "Oh you know,--Mary, I mean Mary, she is my
|
|
favorite sister, pray don't harm her." The whole affair was clear to me
|
|
at once. "It that what you came about?" I asked disappointed. "Yes, I
|
|
have been coming for a fortnight, but could not make up my mind; her
|
|
last letter made me determine at any risk to do so, and now dear,
|
|
promise me not to hurt her, and I will go."
|
|
|
|
I was annoyed and wounded in vanity, for I had almost brought myself to
|
|
think she had come for the pleasure of meeting me. I had no intention of
|
|
quitting her so soon, felt as if I could not, so chaffed her, "What do
|
|
you mean by hurting her?" "Don't talk nonsense, you know what I mean."
|
|
"Another case of cock and cunt coming together." "If you talk like
|
|
that, you insult me, and I did not think you would." "Well, I love you
|
|
and would not like to hurt your feelings, what you really mean is, that
|
|
I am not to try to do it to her." "Why of course, don't ruin her, that
|
|
is what I mean."
|
|
|
|
We had walked without any intention on my part to the outskirts of our
|
|
village, where the pew-opener's house was in which Charlotte and I had
|
|
spent many an hour in love's frolics. The house was in sight, the hope
|
|
of again having her came to my mind. In her excitement, which was as
|
|
great if not greater than mine, she had not noticed where we were, until
|
|
quite at the angle. The pew-opener was at the door, gave me a nod, and
|
|
thinking it possible I might be coming in I suppose, left the door ajar.
|
|
"Come in," said I. "Never! oh! no, you have brought me here purposely."
|
|
I saw there would be difficulty. "Here is that old Courtauld's
|
|
house-maid, damn her," said I. "Where,--where,--which way?" said she
|
|
looking in alarm in all directions, but unable to see clearly through
|
|
her veil. "There,--there," "just step inside the door till she has
|
|
past." She stepped in quickly, the next instant I half pulled, half
|
|
hustled her through the little door into the bed-room, slammed the door,
|
|
locked it, and stood still, half afraid of my own boldness. She went
|
|
to the window and began to peer through the blinds to see the old
|
|
housemaid.
|
|
|
|
"I can't see her," said she, "she must have passed, tell me which
|
|
way she went, and let me go." "Not yet. What do you want about Mary?"
|
|
"Promise for my sake, you won't try to ruin her." "Well, let us have
|
|
a longer talk, how do you know I want to do so?" "I know you do." "Sit
|
|
down." "I cannot." "Then I won't promise, why should I?" "Oh! don't be a
|
|
blackguard, don't oh! don't,--you shant have her, I will take care," and
|
|
then she burst out crying.
|
|
|
|
I loved her so that I felt I would do anything to please her; but wanted
|
|
her so much, that I could be cruel enough to do or say anything to have
|
|
her again. Desire was the stronger. The sofa, the bed, the room, her
|
|
beauty, all made me feel savage with lust, so I temporized. "I am so
|
|
excited," said I, "I scarcely know what to say, what to do, tell me
|
|
more, what you know, what you want, for all this stems so strange to
|
|
me,--sit down." "No." "Sit down only while you tell me." "No." But I
|
|
laid hold of her and pushed her on to the sofa, and there I held her,
|
|
and after beseeching her to be quiet and kiss me, she did so. Then she
|
|
sat for a minute, drying her tears, and began her tale and her request.
|
|
|
|
"Mary is my favourite sister, she lived with us for a year after I
|
|
married, but mother wanted her and she went home. She grew tired of
|
|
being at home, went to service, did not like it and went home again;
|
|
again grew weary; and to my astonishment, the last time I went to see
|
|
the old people, found she had gone to live with your mother. I was
|
|
frightened for her sake, for I love her dearly." "Why frightened?" I
|
|
asked. "Why frightened? don't I know you, do you think I have forgotten
|
|
all?" "I never thought of doing her harm." "Perhaps not," she replied,
|
|
"but I would not trust my sister near you, if she had the least liking
|
|
for you, or you for her." I protested I was indifferent to her. "Why
|
|
kiss her and squeeze her so?" I began denying it, and she stopped me
|
|
saying vehemently, "Now don't tell stories, you never did to me, I know
|
|
all, I know you do, you mean her harm, or if you don't, harm will come
|
|
of it. Look, here is her letter," and she put it into my hands. To
|
|
my astonishment I found Mary had told her sister all, mixed with warm
|
|
encomiums of me. I was shut up, and could only say I meant no harm.
|
|
"Perhaps! but harm must come of it. It nearly brought me to ruin, for
|
|
I would have done anything, lived anyhow to keep near you; but I have
|
|
escaped it. Poor Mary may not, for you are older now and may do more
|
|
harm! she is a different temper from me, and in despair will go wrong
|
|
altogether; so I pray you if you loved me, not to injure her for my
|
|
sake. If she came to harm, I should break my heart," and she broke again
|
|
into tears, getting up at the same time to go.
|
|
|
|
I pulled her back and kissed her tears away. "Charlotte, we cannot meet
|
|
and part like this, I love you still, I have never ceased to love and
|
|
think of you, oh! let me." I could say no more, for in my eyes then
|
|
there was a sanctity about a married woman which stilled my tongue. "Oh!
|
|
let me," was all I could say.
|
|
|
|
She understood what I wanted, and replied, "I am married and cannot,
|
|
let me go." At my entreaties she kissed me freely, yet all the time
|
|
struggled to get up.
|
|
|
|
I thought to myself, "You have had her. She loves you still. Think of
|
|
the pleasure you have had with her. Here she is in your power, and
|
|
cannot escape without a riot, which she will fear." Kissing her fiercely,
|
|
stifling her voice with my mouth, "I must, I will have you again," I
|
|
pulled her violently back on the sofa, and had my hand on her thighs in
|
|
an instant.
|
|
|
|
"Oh! don't, for the love of God, think I am married, don't make me
|
|
afraid of myself; oh! take care, you crush my bonnet, what shall I do,
|
|
how shall I get home?" Holding her tight, I dragged the bonnet off her
|
|
head, and recommenced. We made such a noise, that the old pew-opener
|
|
knocked at the door and asked if anything was the matter.
|
|
|
|
"By God," said I, "either I will have you, or you shant go out of this
|
|
house this night," and so I struggled on through tears and entreaties,
|
|
threats, kissings and promises, till with broken voice her head sunk
|
|
back, her struggles ceased, her legs opened, my hand slipped over her
|
|
smooth thighs, and nestled in the warm moist slit it had so often toyed
|
|
with in time gone by. It is nigh fifteen years since that delicious
|
|
afternoon, but I recollect my sensations as I touched her cunt, as well
|
|
as if it had been but yesterday.
|
|
|
|
Resistance had ceased, for a moment in silent enjoyment I laid with my
|
|
fingers in their warm lodging, then too impatient to get to the bed, or
|
|
take the full luxury of my fortune, I arranged her on the sofa as well
|
|
as its size permitted, with her petticoats up in a heap, and with my
|
|
trowsers half unbuttoned, flung myself upon her, and entered the
|
|
smooth channel in which I first had spent my virginity. Frantic with
|
|
excitement, the pleasure came on ere I was in full up her. She, excited
|
|
and loving, clutched me tightly in her arms, whilst her cunt and belly
|
|
moved sympathetically. In too short a time we spent together.
|
|
|
|
My position was a fatiguing one, I was half on, half off the sofa; hers
|
|
was but little less so, yet as long as our privates would keep together,
|
|
we kept them so. I poured out my love to her, and joyed to hear from
|
|
her that she loved me still. But our position could not last for ever;
|
|
gradually I slipped off. My prolonged embrace, my sensuous imagination,
|
|
and my love for her had told so upon me; that I was already
|
|
contemplating the pleasure of another poke, a desire to see her charms
|
|
came over me, I went on to my knees and had a glimpse between the open
|
|
thighs, of the half open cunt, from which a love-drop was rolling. She
|
|
pushed down her clothes, and sat up, looking at me, and blushing like
|
|
the most modest of maidens.
|
|
|
|
It is extraordinary what objection so many women have to a man's looking
|
|
closely at their cunts. A woman will stand naked, lay naked on her
|
|
belly, or bum, stand with one leg on a chair, kneel with one leg on the
|
|
bed, be looked at frontways, backways, sideways, and be pleased with the
|
|
admiration. You may lay and kiss the outside, put your fingers up and
|
|
probe it, rub your knuckles into it, tickle or frig it; but directly
|
|
you want to pull the lips open, to see the hole which lays hidden by the
|
|
hairy outer lips, to see where your prick is longing to hide its head;
|
|
they object, put their thighs together, say, "No, it is not to be looked
|
|
at." Or if angrily pressed, reluctantly half yield, throw themselves
|
|
down, so as to put their back to the light, lifting one leg so as to
|
|
hide the light, and using every manoeuvre to prevent you looking closely
|
|
at it; and if you desire to look when it's laden with the efforts of
|
|
your love, they will struggle to prevent you. Gay or modest, it is the
|
|
same among the English; although a gay lady will yield to please her
|
|
friend. With the French the objection is less, a French gay woman
|
|
will pull open her cunt with her own hands, and let you pull open her
|
|
arse-hole if you can and like it. I have known a few women of other
|
|
nations and even of my own as free and easy, but the rule is as I say.
|
|
This cannot be modesty. I rather imagine it results from a fear that
|
|
some discharge will show itself, and sicken the man's appetite.
|
|
|
|
Up jumped Charlotte, and went into the adjoining room. I heard her
|
|
splashing away a long time at her cunt, and went to her. I had no desire
|
|
to wash away from my person, anything which had come from hers. She
|
|
pushed me back. I had a glimpse of her, naked to her waist, washing
|
|
something. She said, "My linen is in such a mess I have been obliged to
|
|
wash it." She had found much spunk upon it, and washed it for fear of
|
|
being found out. She put a petticoat over her neck to hide her charms,
|
|
the chemise was so wet that it was almost impossible for her to put it
|
|
on, and she did not know what to do.
|
|
|
|
"Good God, you will catch your death of cold." I rang the bell and gave
|
|
it to the old woman to dry. "Now," said I, "you cannot go, it is of
|
|
no use, I must have you again, and will see all your charms, I had
|
|
you first, I have had you again, and again I will have you; don't be
|
|
foolish, all harm is done."
|
|
|
|
Crying, entreating and saying she was married, I got her on to the bed,
|
|
and stripping myself was soon folded in her arms. My prick was ready,
|
|
she had struggled hard, now saw it was useless, and lay in all her
|
|
beauty before me, her head on the pillow and her eyes closed, leaving me
|
|
to work my will.
|
|
|
|
I saw her as leisurely as my throbbing prick would let me from head to
|
|
foot, that she had grown stouter, taller, and was now a splendid woman.
|
|
Her breasts were full and hard, her buttock large and solid, her thighs
|
|
more rounded, the hair of her cunt thicker. Curiously I opened its lips
|
|
and put my finger in, to see if marriage had made any difference, but
|
|
was far too young and inexperienced to find it out, if there had been
|
|
any. It seemed the dear old split which had so often given me pleasure
|
|
before; that look and feel finished me, in another second my ballocks
|
|
were bang-iny away against her bum, and she met my embraces with
|
|
fervour which too soon came to an end. Repose followed, the luscious
|
|
tongue-kisses ceased, our sighs stopped, and we fell asleep.
|
|
|
|
But not for long. The wet chemise was brought back. That off her mind
|
|
into bed I got with her. The coach by which she now could go home did
|
|
not leave until eight o'clock, hurry was of no use; with my finger in
|
|
her quim, side by side, mouth to mouth, we laid and talked.
|
|
|
|
Her anxiety was about her sister, whom I swore I never would attempt.
|
|
That settled her. She wanted to know all about me, that was soon told.
|
|
I never mentioned Mary's name, although she asked after her. Then I was
|
|
curious about her married life, how she got over her marriage night, how
|
|
often he poked her, and so on. I got but little out of her, beyond that
|
|
he had not discovered that she had been fucked before, and that he was
|
|
a good husband to her; my other questions she said were disgraceful. I
|
|
felt mad to think that another man should put his prick where my fingers
|
|
then were, so I asked if she enjoyed it with him, whereupon she burst
|
|
into a passionate flood of tears, and it closed with her saying,
|
|
"Whether I love him or not, he is a good fellow to me, and if I am found
|
|
out and disgraced it will serve me right." Would she meet me again?
|
|
"Never, never, I love you still, but never again." It ended in another
|
|
fuck.
|
|
|
|
And so it went on till the time for going. Never in my life up to that
|
|
time had desire been so strong in me. When I knew she must go I insisted
|
|
on again doing it, but could not come up to the scratch, until with a
|
|
sharp frig it stiffened and again it was put up her. What a long hard
|
|
poke it was, what a test of my manhood, how proud was I when with a
|
|
sharp and sudden pleasure I felt my spunk squirting up her dear quim,
|
|
and a spasmodic clutch, a sharp sob and "dear Walter," escaping from her
|
|
told me she had spent with me.
|
|
|
|
She washed, I dressed, swearing I would never wash my prick again till
|
|
I saw her. "I have poked you darling, five times," said I in triumph.
|
|
It was the first time I think I ever had done so, but am not sure,
|
|
and proud enough I felt. We soon relapsed into sadness and tears, and
|
|
telling our love to each other, parted at the coach-. stand.
|
|
|
|
I was mad again for her; had now money, and twice went down to the place
|
|
to get a glimpse at her and failed, but saw her husband in the shop. We
|
|
stared at each other. I wonder if he felt that I should have liked-to
|
|
throttle him, for so I did. I wrote and got no reply. I pumped her
|
|
sister, to see if I could learn where she walked or went, and got no
|
|
information; indeed soon lost opportunity for suddenly her sister left
|
|
us. Her father came to ask my mother to excuse her on account of his
|
|
wife's illness, and she never came back. I have but little doubt it was
|
|
only to get her away from our house, and that it was Charlotte's doings.
|
|
I never saw Charlotte again, though I still may do so; but to this day
|
|
I have an affection for her, and although she must be forty, should like
|
|
to poke her.
|
|
|
|
Next year, one day my mother opened a letter, it was from the E------
|
|
family; and read aloud little scraps of it to me, and my sisters who
|
|
were in the room. "That family is all doing very well," said she; "Mary
|
|
who was with us but three months last year is married." She went on
|
|
reading, "And Charlotte's husband has taken a large shop and is making
|
|
money.--Ah! I am very glad of it, for she was a nice respectable girl.
|
|
Oh! here,--and has just been confined with a fine boy.--I am very glad,"
|
|
said mother. I looked and found it was nine months after Tom's birthday,
|
|
and that that day nine months some one had fucked Charlotte five times.
|
|
I was delighted.
|
|
|
|
My appointment now made it needful to dine late, so we reverted to a six
|
|
o'clock dinner. This neither suited the cook nor housemaid; both left,
|
|
and two new servants came. I was about nineteen years old.
|
|
|
|
The cook whose name was Brown was clean, fat, and wholesome to look at,
|
|
and I should say forty-five years old. She must have weighed sixteen
|
|
stone. The width across her arse as I eyed it outside her dress, looked
|
|
greater than that of Mary the cook; there was a roguish twinkle in her
|
|
eye, which made her look like a good-tempered monthly nurse, her eyes
|
|
were blue and her hair brown.
|
|
|
|
Harriet the housemaid was very tall, and very sallow, had jet-black hair
|
|
and black eyes, with the expression of a serpent in them. She showed
|
|
splendid teeth when she laughed, and then looked half cat, half hyena.
|
|
She never looked you in the face long, was so quiet in her movements
|
|
that the cat moved less noiselessly; she startled you by being close to
|
|
you when you did not know she was near, and had a sneering laugh. After
|
|
a day or two my mother remarked she did not like the pair, and was sorry
|
|
she had engaged them.
|
|
|
|
Up to this time I had only poked two servants, Charlotte and Mary.
|
|
Others had not been to my taste. With one I tried it on and failed, and
|
|
when randy now could not help thinking of the couple in the house. I
|
|
tried it on with Harriet, but she so snubbed me, that I set her down as
|
|
an impregnable virgin. Then I turned my eyes to Brown, though it seemed
|
|
absurd to think of such a fat middle-aged woman; but I one day chanced
|
|
to see that she had a very fat pair of calves, and I knew she must have
|
|
a big arse; and as fat legs had an irresistible attraction for me, I
|
|
tried to see more of them, but without the thought of taking liberties
|
|
with their owner.
|
|
|
|
I saw her legs again, from thinking of them and her rump, my mind
|
|
naturally went to her cunt, which I pictured must be very thick-lipped
|
|
and hairy like that of Sarah's, whose cunt had made a great impression
|
|
on me. Her age then seemed to fade from my mind, and I used to follow
|
|
her when going upstairs, trying to see her legs, and flattering myself
|
|
she did not see what I was after, but she knew it as well as I did.
|
|
|
|
One day going upstairs she stumbled upon her dress, and as if to prevent
|
|
doing it again, held it up, so as to show nearly to her knees. When she
|
|
got on the top stair she turned round, and as if she had only just seen
|
|
me, dropped her dress quickly. Another time she stooped and jutted out
|
|
her bum, so that I saw a good deal up the clothes, whilst she pretended
|
|
to be doing something to her boot. It seemed to me accidental, but it
|
|
was all intentional.
|
|
|
|
Then my prick used to stand when I saw her. About nine o'clock one
|
|
morning she came into the garden when I was there, and gathered
|
|
some herbs. Her stooping posture gave me a cock-stand, and under its
|
|
influence I joked her about her legs and my seeing them. She gave a
|
|
suppressed laugh and saying, "Lawd! did you sir?" went down into the
|
|
kitchen. What made me go down I do not know, but five minutes afterwards
|
|
I did so; and just by the kitchen door, saw her with one leg on a chair,
|
|
putting up her garter.
|
|
|
|
I stood stock still and silent. She adjusted one garter neatly, then put
|
|
up her other leg, unrolled the garter, pulled up the stocking and put on
|
|
the garter quite deliberately. I saw the flesh of her large thighs, for
|
|
her garters were tied above the knees, and she pulled up her petticoats
|
|
freely. Putting down her clothes she turned round, saw me, then with a
|
|
grin said, "Lawd sir, how you startled me."
|
|
|
|
Bursting with randiness I lost all prudence. Mother, sister, Tom, and
|
|
the other servant were about the house, but up to the cook I went,
|
|
whispering, "I saw your legs, what jolly ones, what thighs, what a cunt
|
|
you must have, let's have a feel," and got one hand up her clothes.
|
|
She pushed me away saying, "Hish! here is missis." It was a lie, but it
|
|
frightened me away.
|
|
|
|
The same evening I went downstairs after our dinner. The housemaid had
|
|
been sent to the circulating library. Mother, sister and Tom were, as
|
|
they usually were after dinner, when the weather was warm; sitting in
|
|
the summer-house at the bottom of the garden. I usually sat with them,
|
|
but slinked into the house, and down into the kitchen; which being
|
|
underground was darkish, although then it was light until eight o'clock.
|
|
Cook when she saw me, grinned and became familiar, for she was a regular
|
|
old stager, and knew well, that when a man wanted to take liberties with
|
|
her, she might safely take them with him. "What do you want?" "To feel
|
|
your cunt," said I, "see your legs, feel that crummy rump of yours,
|
|
cookey." "Then you won't," said she laughing, and lifting a heavy
|
|
saucepan off the fire with both hands, she carried it towards the sink
|
|
in the back kitchen. Randy and ready, I saw my opportunity; and as she
|
|
neared the sink, thrust both hands up her clothes, grasped her arse, and
|
|
was fumbling for her slit; when putting down the saucepan with a bang,
|
|
she flung round, and hit me such a slap on the head as knocked me over,
|
|
saying, "Why, you young devilskin, it would serve you right to tell your
|
|
mother of your capers," and then she stood and laughed at me.
|
|
|
|
I persisted, kissed the old party, and told her how I wanted her, for
|
|
indeed at that moment I would have fucked her, if she had been eighty.
|
|
She repulsed me saying in a whisper, "Harriet is upstairs." "She is
|
|
going out," said I. "Wait till she has, if she hears you, she will make
|
|
mischief." As I felt this might be true, I desisted.
|
|
|
|
I went back to the garden thinking, and hoping mother and sister would
|
|
not go indoors. When Harriet had gone oft, I went back into the garden
|
|
parlour quite leisurely (for mother could see me do that), then down to
|
|
the cook. It was nearly dark. In a minute I had pushed her up against
|
|
the dresser, was groping her, and she was feeling my prick and ballocks
|
|
with seemingly hearty enjoyment. She opened her legs to give me every
|
|
facility. I attempted to get into her, but her clothes and big belly
|
|
prevented me. She held my prick against her cunt, so that it pushed
|
|
against her orifice, but did not go up it; and such was my state, that
|
|
I spent against it. She kept hold of the prick, rubbing it, and gently
|
|
squeezing it, until not a drop of sperm was left in it. Then for fear
|
|
of being found out, upstairs I went again. The whole business, had not
|
|
occupied five minutes.
|
|
|
|
I had once spent by accident in Mary's hand, and had fear lest it should
|
|
disgust her. There was something about this affair, which seemed quite
|
|
different. I could scarcely make out how, with a cunt close to my prick,
|
|
I had spent as I had done. The next night came, I tried it on at the
|
|
same hour with the same result. She not only let me feel her, but put
|
|
my fingers to her cunt, at a place where she wished me to rub her, she
|
|
meanwhile frigging away at my prick. But I wanted more than this, and
|
|
just as it was too late, she let me put my prick in. At the first spurt
|
|
of my spunk, she by a twist threw my prick out, and caught hold of
|
|
it with her fingers, letting me spend over her thighs and linen, but
|
|
squeezing and frigging at my doodle until it had shrunk thoroughly down.
|
|
|
|
For a month the same thing occasionally happened. She would let me
|
|
finger, feel, rub her (in the nearly darkened kitchen), putting one leg
|
|
on a chair, or stooping down, or any way to let me feel both inside and
|
|
outside well. When I got my prick out, she immediately began to frig it.
|
|
I used to have quiet rows with her, for not letting me put it into her;
|
|
and when at length she did, I was always near spending; and do not think
|
|
that more than once, I spent up her completely, so did she manage to
|
|
throw me out just as my sperm began to flow. All was done standing up.
|
|
|
|
She treated me like some one she had known for years, did everything
|
|
before me, talked both baudily, and beastly, called my balls, my cods,
|
|
and used to say, "Hish! let me piss first." Then she would sit down on a
|
|
pail in the back kitchen and piss, sometimes farting, and saying, "oh!"
|
|
with a laugh, when she did so. She would belch without ceremony, blow
|
|
her nose through her fingers, and I noticed she never washed her hands
|
|
(whilst I was present at all events), when I had spent upon them.
|
|
She would say, "How are your cods off for starch to-night?" She was
|
|
complaisant enough in letting me feel, would turn her backside round and
|
|
let me fumble about it anyhow, but although want made me do what I did,
|
|
it never seemed quite pleasant to me, and I disliked her. I never got a
|
|
glimpse of her belly or cunt. If the front-kitchen was not dark enough,
|
|
she moved to the back, before we began our pranks, and scrupulously
|
|
avoided light. Her cunt I felt was a large one, but so far from having
|
|
the quantity of hair I expected, she seemed scarcely to have any. One
|
|
thing she did which annoyed me. After feeling my cock, she would slide
|
|
her hands under the balls to my arse-hole which she would press hard
|
|
with her middle-finger, giving a "tchick" with her tongue, at the same
|
|
time.
|
|
|
|
All this took place in about six weeks. "Hush!" said she one night,
|
|
"some one is listening." I could hear nothing, but she whispered, "Go up
|
|
to the garden." I did. It was dusk, and I thought I saw a figure enter
|
|
the garden parlour, just as I got up the garden stairs. All were out
|
|
but me and the two servants. Cook at the same time went up the
|
|
kitchen-stairs, calling out loudly, "Harriet, is Master at home, do you
|
|
know?"
|
|
|
|
A few days afterwards when at our fun, we stood in the door jamb;
|
|
Harriet was at the top of the house. Said cook, "If I push you hard by
|
|
the shoulders, go out into the garden at once, without saying a word."
|
|
It was nearly dark. The kitchen garden-door was shut, but she opened it
|
|
wide, before we went to work. I had my prick against her cunt, when a
|
|
push came; off I went buttoning up, and after a time across the garden,
|
|
into the parlor. Afterwards Harriet brought up lights, her eyes cast
|
|
down as usual. The next day the cook whispered to me, "It was that bitch
|
|
Harriet watching, I found her coming downstairs with her shoes off,
|
|
saying she wanted a candle;--but I will be even with her."
|
|
|
|
I never had the cook but once after that. She would not let me. The two
|
|
servants quarrelled so, that my mother threatened to dismiss both. When
|
|
I tried it on with Brown, she said, "Why don't you ask Harriet, you
|
|
young devilskin?" I told her there was no chance. She said she was quite
|
|
sure that I should not be the first. Another day she repeated it saying,
|
|
"I bet she will let you, the baker has had her I believe." Then she put
|
|
me up to watching the baker with Harriet. The man came in the afternoon.
|
|
Just when I returned one afternoon, I posted myself at the garden
|
|
entrance-gate from the fore-court, from which door ajar, I could see the
|
|
street-door. The baker after giving her a kiss, made a poke at her quim
|
|
outside her clothes, which she returned by knocking a loaf against his
|
|
trowsers just by his tool, and laughing. This I told the cook, who said,
|
|
"She will let you, if you try, young devilskin, she has seen you and
|
|
your cods naked." "Seen me naked?" "Both of us have," and then she told
|
|
me how.
|
|
|
|
Opposite my bed-room door at the end of the room, was a cheval-glass,
|
|
between it and the door was my sponging bath, then a big tub. Any one
|
|
looking through the key-hole could see me naked, when I was in it.
|
|
I took the bath directly I was up, which was at about the time the
|
|
servants went down. Many a time have I looked at myself naked in the
|
|
glass, making my prick stand, to see how I looked in that condition.
|
|
Both servants had seen me so. They had sometimes arranged the key so as
|
|
to leave the hole clear. Never had it occurred to me that I should be
|
|
so looked at, although I had often looked through a key-hole myself,
|
|
at women. The cook made this clear to me, by standing in the tub and
|
|
requesting me to look at her through the keyhole.
|
|
|
|
We arranged that I should bathe the next morning and suddenly open the
|
|
door. "Pull your cods about well, and I warrant Harriet will look as
|
|
long as she can," she said. I did so, heard the servants door carefully
|
|
open, and then frigged my cock, till it was as stiff as a poker.
|
|
Stepping out of the bath with a towel, as if to dry myself, I opened the
|
|
door suddenly, and found Harriet just rising from a stooping position.
|
|
She rushed downstairs but quietly for fear of awaking my mother. For all
|
|
that I could not make up my mind to try Harriet, but tried to get Brown
|
|
again. "No thank you, young devilskin," said she "not with that bitch of
|
|
Harriet about."
|
|
|
|
Then I had a strange erotic fancy. Randy with abstinence and fearful of
|
|
Harriet, I took to frigging and spending against a piece of paper pinned
|
|
against the wall of my room, opposite to the glass, and when standing in
|
|
the tub.
|
|
|
|
Autumn was coming. As I could not then get leave of absence, my mother
|
|
with my sister from school, and little brother, went without me on a
|
|
visit to my aunt in H--f--shire, leaving an old female relative who was
|
|
very deaf, to take charge in her absence. Cautioning her especially to
|
|
make me comfortable, and look sharp after the servants, she said that
|
|
she could not bear them and would perhaps dismiss them on her return;
|
|
for she had heard them using foul language to each other. I heard this.
|
|
|
|
Cook gave me unasked her opinion, that Harriet would let me sleep with
|
|
her. Instigated by her, I asked Harriet how I looked naked. She did not
|
|
reply, and went downstairs. I overheard them quarrelling. Afterwards I
|
|
asked her before the cook. She did not know what I meant, she said.
|
|
I then asked the cook if she had not been looking at me through the
|
|
key-hole. Cook laughed saying, "He caught you, Harriet once, he caught
|
|
you." "You are a liar," said Harriet. "Oh! if it comes to that," said
|
|
cook, "we have both seen you naked a dozen times." There was a row
|
|
interrupted by my deaf relative coming home. The same afternoon cook
|
|
whispered to me, "Come to our room when we are both in bed."
|
|
|
|
That night with candle in my hand and in my nightshirt I crept
|
|
stealthily into their room; both were awake, Harriet sat up in bed
|
|
staring at me. When I entered cook asked me what I wanted. I replied,
|
|
"To see as much of them as they had seen of me," and pulled up my
|
|
night-gown to my waist. Cook laughed, Harriet said, "Now leave the
|
|
room." "If you are a fool and make a row," said cook, "we shall be both
|
|
sent off." Just then we did hear some sort of noise, cook sat up and
|
|
listened. "It is nothing," said she, and with a grin laid down. I drew
|
|
off my night-shirt, standing then naked, and Harriet laying down with a
|
|
modest look; I felt encouraged, extinguished the light, and jumped into
|
|
bed by the side of Harriet. The bed was so small I was obliged to hold
|
|
on to her, to prevent myself falling out. She turned round her bum
|
|
towards me and got close to the cook, which gave me more room; and for a
|
|
minute we all three lay as close as three herrings in a barrel.
|
|
|
|
Darkness encourages baudiness. Harriet had tucked her clothes tight
|
|
round her, but I could feel her bum outside, and there did not seem much
|
|
of it. I tried to push my fingers between its cheeks, and there was
|
|
much struggling and quiet complaining on her part, and joking on mine.
|
|
Harriet appealed to the cook to help her, but she only chaffed and
|
|
chuckled. At length putting my hand towards the bottom of the bed, I got
|
|
hold of her night-gown end, gave it a pull, and it came clean up, the
|
|
next moment my naked body met hers from her heels to her waist. She gave
|
|
a howl, cook said, "I'll go into young devilskin's room, and leave you
|
|
to take care of him," got up and went across to my room, and into my
|
|
bed; and there was Harriet and I in bed alone.
|
|
|
|
She seemed furious, I felt her over, she was powerless, I dared her
|
|
to call out, and at last in one of her writhings to escape my fingers,
|
|
getting on her back; I rolled on to her and pinned her under me with my
|
|
weight; but her legs were tightly closed, and so for a moment I laid
|
|
my stiff prick between the shelving of her thighs, the tip just laying
|
|
buried in the hair of her cunt.
|
|
|
|
"I can feel your cunt with my prick, I am on it, let me do it," said I,
|
|
and struggled to force her limbs open with my knees.
|
|
|
|
"No," said she. Again I asked and got a request to get off. "Not if I
|
|
lay here all night," said I. I did lay for some minutes, she complaining
|
|
of my being heavy, and hot; I every minute trying to wriggle my prick
|
|
between her legs, coaxing and kissing, and begging. "What made you think
|
|
of coming here with both of us in bed?" said she at length. "Wanting
|
|
you." "It's funny," said she, "and Mrs. ------ downstairs." "You know,"
|
|
said I, "that unless you bawl she cannot hear." At length I told her
|
|
that if I did not do it inside, I must do it outside, and began shoving
|
|
my prick up and down, which made her restless. She asked me if I would
|
|
tell the cook. "No." Gradually her thighs opened, I slipped down between
|
|
them, and felt my prick at the portals of her cunt.
|
|
|
|
The rest was quick enough. I felt my way through a mass of hair to
|
|
a low-down slit, a hole which seemed tight, and as I guided my tool,
|
|
fancied for an instant I was again going to have a virgin. I was
|
|
mistaken, but the entry needed a hard, sharp, and painful push to me,
|
|
and a comparatively easy passage followed. No sooner did I feel up, than
|
|
all came to an end, spending copiously I sunk on her, long before the
|
|
strokes could have told on her sensations, for in a savage voice she
|
|
said, "Now, get off, I hope you are satisfied, and that beast Brown has
|
|
got me as she thinks. Now, I suppose you are going."
|
|
|
|
I rolled off, but let her know I meant to stay. There seemed something
|
|
odd about her which awakened my curiosity. The knob of my tool seemed
|
|
to catch as it came out and hurt me, so I began feeling, which I had not
|
|
done before, nor did she want much solicitation to feel me, and as she
|
|
did so, it struck me she was not unaccustomed to the feel; but her cunt
|
|
was a wonder, it was so small and tight on the outside. The feeling
|
|
had a good effect, and in half-an-hour I got up her again. And what a
|
|
difference! After a few thrusts she gripped me like a vice, she did not
|
|
heave, but writhed and wriggled in a way which in my young experience I
|
|
never had noticed before; she threw her long legs round me and with her
|
|
equally long arms tried to feel my balls from behind. Then a certain
|
|
feeling of constriction in her cunt seemed to hurt, but it brought me to
|
|
the crisis just as with a last wriggle and sigh her limbs relaxed, and
|
|
she became quiet. I laid for some time in her, but although gradually
|
|
reducing, my prick did not come out. I attempted to withdraw it, and
|
|
it seemed sore and as if something caught the knob and kept it back. At
|
|
length out it came, and we both fell asleep.
|
|
|
|
Some one pushed me. It was the cook. "Now young devilskin," said she,
|
|
"be off, or you will be found out." It was broad daylight. She pulled
|
|
the clothes off us. I was on my back with my privates visible. There lay
|
|
Harriet on her back also, with everything visible from her knees to her
|
|
breasts, and I saw for the first time her black cunt-fringe. The cook
|
|
grined and awakened her. Up she got, off I went to my room, and found my
|
|
prepuce torn at the top, raw and all but bleeding.
|
|
|
|
When I saw them the next day Harriet was savage, for the cook was
|
|
chaffing her. The next night I again turned the cook out and had
|
|
Harriet. On the third night the cook was restive. "You may do what you
|
|
like together, I shant take any notice of you," said she, "but I am not
|
|
going to be turned out of my own bed." When I began to fumble about
|
|
her, with the view-to annoy her into leaving, she struck out right at
|
|
my bal-locks saying, "If you annoy me, I will soon settle you for the
|
|
night," and it ended in Harriet coming into my bed-room.
|
|
|
|
I examined every part of her body much against her will, nor did she
|
|
fail when she warmed under my overhauling to look at me. But a woman is
|
|
soon satisfied, and when she has squeezed the balls, and looked at the
|
|
tip, she has done. Some men--and I am one--are insatiable and could
|
|
look at a cunt without taking their eyes off for a month. So I satisfied
|
|
myself well, and at times afterwards,--for she was a peculiar, and an
|
|
unpleasant woman in every way, one of the out-of-the-way ones not often
|
|
met with, and one I never want to meet again.
|
|
|
|
She was quite five feet ten high, her face was sallow and nearly white,
|
|
her eyes sloe black, but with the look of a dull serpent in them, her
|
|
mouth large, long, and straight, teeth white and large, and the whole
|
|
were shown when she laughed, and then she had half the look of a wild
|
|
beast. Whenever she smiled baudily, her look was still more unpleasant;
|
|
when thoroughly lewed, her eyes opened on you with a still worse stare;
|
|
often just before she spent I have seen them, and they startled me.
|
|
|
|
Her hair was jet black and magnificent, it fell nearly to her waist; her
|
|
shoulders were broad, but there was scarcely more breast than on a girl
|
|
of fourteen, and seen sideways she looked more like a man than a woman.
|
|
Her ribs you could count as she lay; she was very wide across her hips,
|
|
but she had almost as little flesh on her buttocks, as on her shoulders;
|
|
her belly was flat, and as she laid down seemed to fall in, and the
|
|
sides rose to the two projecting hip-bones; in fact she seemed to want
|
|
filling up all over, and yet she was not like a skeleton.
|
|
|
|
Her legs were thin, her thighs seemed closer than in other women's. I
|
|
used to say when fucking her, "Open your thighs." "They are open," she'd
|
|
reply, "they are the same as other women's." She had a huge conceit of
|
|
herself, and if I said other women's seem to open more, used to reply,
|
|
"What do you know about it?"
|
|
|
|
Her cunt was set in a quantity of longish black hair, strong but not
|
|
very curly. I didn't much like the look of that. The slit quite hidden
|
|
by the hair was long and the lips thin; of inner lips she had none, and
|
|
the first idea as I pulled aside the hair was that the cunt was large;
|
|
instead of that, low down, and near to her arse-hole was a hole not
|
|
bigger than that of a girl's of ten years; you saw both holes quite
|
|
close together. Her cunt was in fact a study. Something seemed to bar
|
|
the passage; for about an inch further up it seemed smaller. The whole
|
|
thing seemed out of proportion, yet I could not say how, or where that
|
|
deformity was, with the experience I then had.
|
|
|
|
Her arse being so flat, her cunt-hole so low, and her thighs so close,
|
|
my prick as it entered seemed to bend under in some way and hurt me; my
|
|
tight prepuce was often torn rudely down, and frequently bled. When I
|
|
probed her cunt with my finger it never seemed to have the soft buttery
|
|
feel I had been accustomed to, but to be harsh; so I found it best to
|
|
wet my prick copiously with spittle when I had her. Then off we used to
|
|
go; she raising her long legs until her heels were above my buttocks,
|
|
writhing and wriggling under me and finishing her pleasure with a sort
|
|
of snort. Then my prick would be up her until quite small, when with
|
|
pain at the knob, I pulled it out, making a sucking noise as it came
|
|
away; nor do I think till pulled out, that any spunk left her, such a
|
|
fit it was at the mouth.
|
|
|
|
I had much opportunity with her for a few weeks, and she took good care
|
|
that she would have her fill of me. She took sleeping with me as a mater
|
|
of course. I used to awaken and find her twiddling it up. If I went up
|
|
to my room in the middle of the day and Mrs. ------ was out, she came up
|
|
directly, and I had her, for I felt ashamed to say I did not want it. I
|
|
am not sure, and at that time did not know much about the thing, and how
|
|
little a woman really lascivious will stop at, but believe that in the
|
|
night when I was asleep, she used to suck me up; for I have awakened and
|
|
found her with her face upon my doodle kissing it. She asked me to kiss
|
|
her black pussy, and now think she must have wanted me to lick it, but
|
|
did not then see what she wanted. There was one thing I did with her
|
|
which I had not done before, and which the flatness of her backside
|
|
favored doing, fuck her from behind, both laying on our sides, and it
|
|
became my favorite way. I used to go to sleep after my spend with my
|
|
prick up her in that fashion; she with her long arm put between her
|
|
thighs clutching by balls.
|
|
|
|
I was constantly at her, and more by her randiness than mine. The cook
|
|
used to grin and say, "Well young devilskin, you seem jolly well knocked
|
|
up," and made Harriet savage by saying, "Have a little mercy on him."
|
|
The cook now took no notice of me, she was a coarse beast, would go to
|
|
the servants' closet leaving the door wide open, and begin to talk with
|
|
me as I passed; Harriet called her a beast one day for doing so.
|
|
|
|
I found that the cook after going to her room used to go down again.
|
|
Harriet would let her out and she stayed out all night, Harriet letting
|
|
her in in the morning. One night Harriet did the same, saying her mother
|
|
was ill. I spoke to the cook about it; she said, "Her mother! pugh--she
|
|
goes to see the baker." I began to feel very uncomfortable about these
|
|
tricks in case it came to my mother's ears, and that I knew of them.
|
|
|
|
The cook asked me to look carefully at Harriet's belly, and explained
|
|
to me that I should find certain marks of her having had a child, and to
|
|
tell her (cook) if I did. I could not find them. "I am sure she has had
|
|
one for all that," said cook. I never told Harriet what I had looked
|
|
for. The cook one day said, "If you tell Harriet what we have done
|
|
together I will split on you both and tell your mother. I don't care a
|
|
dam for the place and am tired of service," so I held my tongue. Harriet
|
|
always declared she was a virgin until she had me, and that the cook had
|
|
had two or three children. I did not tell Brown that, for fear of a row
|
|
between them. Another night that Harriet stopped out, the cook said,
|
|
"You may come to me if you are frightened to sleep alone." I went. She
|
|
undressed, pissed and farted; but seeing her fat form, into the bed I
|
|
got. When I was stiff she said if I would tell all about my doings with
|
|
Harriet I might poke her as I liked. I told her most that she asked me;
|
|
but she threw my prick out just as I spent for all that.
|
|
|
|
Things were now uncomfortable, they quarreled so. One night I asked
|
|
Harriet who was frigging me up, whether the baker did not do it enough
|
|
to her. She dropped my tool, rushed across to the cook, said that she
|
|
had been telling about her, and made such a row, that even my deaf
|
|
relative was awakened, and came out of her bed-room asking from below if
|
|
anything was the matter. I was on the landing when I saw the light and
|
|
hopped across to my own room in a fright. Up came the old lady, the
|
|
cook came out and said, "Harriet is very unwell Maam, can you give her a
|
|
little brandy?" I had no fuck that night. The next night she began about
|
|
the baker. I would answer nothing. She said, "If I have had him it's my
|
|
affair; at all events it's an insult to a woman whom you never gave the
|
|
slightest present to yet."
|
|
|
|
I was struck with that. My allowance was due, and I took her home some
|
|
article of jewelry. She made me for the ensuing week fuck her till I
|
|
was as dry as a bone, and my very arse-hole ached the last time I did
|
|
it,--it was the day before my mother returned. She sat on the side of
|
|
my bed and frigged me for a quarter of an hour before she got it stiff,
|
|
saying that I did not seem to like her as I used to.
|
|
|
|
My mother and sister came back. I never got a poke for a fortnight. When
|
|
mother returned nothing would get it out of her head, that I had not
|
|
been out late of night; it never _could_ be got out of her head that it
|
|
was late at night that did the harm. Not being able to get Harriet now,
|
|
I waited for her one night as she went to the library. As I got near a
|
|
wall by our house, I saw a man and a woman standing close up against it
|
|
together; the man went away directly I approached, and I saw Harriet.
|
|
"There was a man with you?" said I. "Yes," said she, "it was the baker,
|
|
whom you have heard such stories about, I am going to marry him." I
|
|
pulled up her clothes, and to my surprise she resisted, for the first
|
|
time saying, "I want to piddle," which she did, and then I had her. Her
|
|
height made an uprighter easy, her quim did not seem to need so much
|
|
wetting as usual.
|
|
|
|
A day or two after this event I came home, my deaf relative opened the
|
|
door. Finding that she was laying the cloth, I asked, "Where is the
|
|
servant?" My mother said, she had turned both the hussies away, and
|
|
the people who gave their characters ought to be prosecuted. With heart
|
|
beating I asked what was the matter. "It's not needful for you to
|
|
know," she replied, "they are a bad couple." I saw at once I was not
|
|
implicated, so asked no more, nor did I ever see them again; though
|
|
about ten years after, I met in the streets a tall gaunt haggard woman
|
|
who stared at me, and I think it was Harriet.
|
|
|
|
For some years this episode seemed a funny one, especially the cook's
|
|
uncunting me just as I began to spend, but of course I know now why she
|
|
did it, or fancy I do.
|
|
|
|
Her inciting me to get Harriet also astonished me, but I have since
|
|
found girls anxious to get others into the same way as themselves. Many
|
|
I am sure like doing that, and all girls who have been fucked illicitly
|
|
like other girls to do the same.
|
|
|
|
Harriet was a lewed bitch. I never liked her, and her cunt always gave
|
|
me pain as well as pleasure, but she was at hand, and so I got into her
|
|
of course. I can't even now make out what was the matter with her cunt;
|
|
for though she would let me look at it at times, she always hindered
|
|
a quiet inspection, besides I could not at that time of life look at
|
|
a cunt for a minute without my cock standing. Then I rushed it up the
|
|
machine and had done for a time. I had seen one virginity, but that was
|
|
but for a minute, for I pricked it directly. All I recollect afterwards
|
|
was that it did not look as open as other cunts, I could not describe
|
|
it. I did not care about virginities and never thought about them. I
|
|
liked best a good, large, fat-lipped, hairy hole into which my prick
|
|
glided easily. When Harriet said I took her virginity, somehow I felt
|
|
sure she was lying, but had it been true I should not have noticed it,
|
|
as far as my pleasure was concerned.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XI.
|
|
|
|
Charwoman and daughter.--At a key-hole.--Cutting corns.--A
|
|
shower and a barn.--A fat rumped Devonian.--Suggestive
|
|
pictures.--A bum-hole offered.--Erotic madness.--Remorse.
|
|
|
|
We could not get servants for some time. A middle-aged charwoman came
|
|
to assist, and one of her daughters came from time to time, stopping
|
|
generally the night. Their cottage was not far off, I had seen the
|
|
girl from an infant, she was then about eighteen years old. I had often
|
|
smiled when I met her, of course I smiled now. She was quite a slim
|
|
little girl, there was nothing of her, but I was at an age when anything
|
|
having a cunt attracted me.
|
|
|
|
Profiting by experience, I now used key-holes; fortune favored me, for
|
|
some reason instead of one large bed, two small ones were put into the
|
|
servant's room; between them a wash-stand and a chair on each side of
|
|
it were nearly opposite the key-hole. How I chuckled at this, for unless
|
|
the key-hole was covered, I could see nearly all one bed and both chairs
|
|
and wash-stand. I saw the old woman wash and use the pot, put on her
|
|
stockings and other things, the other bed was a little out of range. I
|
|
could not so often see the girl, but did at times.
|
|
|
|
One evening the girl only stopped. So soon as I heard mother's door
|
|
closed, out I went in my nightshirt, and through the key-hole saw the
|
|
girl naked. She put the light on the floor, one leg on the chair, and
|
|
with a small hand-glass looked at her quim, her bum was towards me. Not
|
|
satisfied she turned round, sat down facing me, putting the candle
|
|
on the floor and with legs so wide open as she could went on with her
|
|
investigation. I had a reasonably good look at her, and her cunt. As
|
|
said; she was nothing to look at, but I got in a fearfully excited state
|
|
and made some noise at the door which alarmed her, for up she got
|
|
and stood still listening. I went to my room, looking through the
|
|
half-closed door, hers opened and out came her head. I nodded and back
|
|
she went.
|
|
|
|
The next day she was going home, and as I now (although having rows with
|
|
mother about it) went out when I liked, just before she left I went out
|
|
and walked. It was dark. In two or three minutes out she came. After
|
|
walking by her side for a time I asked her point blank how she liked the
|
|
look of it last night. "What do you mean?" I told her all I had done.
|
|
"Oh!" she said with intense surprise, "what a mean thing to do." I told
|
|
her how one of our former servants used to look at me naked. After a
|
|
minute she did not appear to be at all disconcerted at having been seen
|
|
naked; from my description she could have had no doubt what ever that I
|
|
had seen all. "What did you look at your quim for?" asked I. "Ah! that's
|
|
my business; what did you look at me for?" "To see your cunt." Being at
|
|
a dark part of the road I began kissing her, and got my fingers on
|
|
to her belly. She made no row, but crossed her legs; and small and
|
|
seemingly weak as she was, succeeded in preventing me feeling. I was
|
|
out with her an hour, kissing, coaxing, attempting; I got my fingers and
|
|
hand over her bum and belly, but not on to her slit. At each failure she
|
|
laughed and said, "done again." I swore I would some day. "No you won't,
|
|
you're not the first that has tried," said she, and I went home without
|
|
having felt her quim properly.
|
|
|
|
I attempted it the next day and at every opportunity in the house and
|
|
out of it, till new servants came. She felt my prick, would look at it,
|
|
squeeze the balls, talk about fucking and baudiness to any extent, tell
|
|
me what she had seen, and what she had heard about such matters. She at
|
|
length scarcely resisted my feeling her bum, belly and legs, yet I never
|
|
got my finger on to her slit, so as to feel the moisture; for she closed
|
|
her little legs and wriggled, or got away from me somehow. Once or
|
|
twice when I got a little rough, she set up a squeal, and I desisted. I
|
|
offered her money. She replied, "No thank you, I am not going to spoil
|
|
my chance that way." Our conversation used to begin by my saying, "How
|
|
is your duff?" "Oh! nicely, thank you; how is your jock?" "All right and
|
|
stiff, waiting for your duff." "Then it will wait a long time," and so
|
|
on. It always ending in my trying to feel her, and getting no further.
|
|
At length they left, new servants coming.
|
|
|
|
I frequently saw her afterwards, and always began the same game. My
|
|
mother was told I had been seen talking to her, so after that I only
|
|
spoke to her at dusk. Some time afterwards she married a gardener, and
|
|
I occasionally saw her, but recognition came to a knowing nod and smile,
|
|
which she always returned. Meanwhile I had got my fortune, as I shall
|
|
tell; had no end of women, and had forgotten her, when walking across
|
|
a field not far from our house, I overtook a short woman with a little
|
|
child, and it was she. A shower came on, and we went into a barn, no
|
|
one was in it. She told me I was said to be a "dreadful chap after the
|
|
gals." "You know all about that now," said I. "Yes," she replied with a
|
|
grin, and gradually talking baudier, we went on, until in a few minutes
|
|
I had laid her down and fucked her on the hay. "I told you I would do
|
|
it," said I. "But you didn't when you said you would,--now it won't
|
|
matter." That was her notion. The rain continuing, she said she must go,
|
|
whether wet or dry. Neither of us had an umbrella. She pulled her gown
|
|
over her head, and saying, "You won't tell anyone, will you," took the
|
|
child by the hand and was going, when my appetite came again. I pulled
|
|
her back, and with little persuasion, again went up her. She enjoyed the
|
|
fuck greatly. As I lay on the top of her we heard a bang, and the barn
|
|
grew dark; a man was shutting the door. "Ulloh!" said he, "I didn't know
|
|
any one was there; I hope I ain't disturbed you." We made no reply,
|
|
but out we went. "You will have a boy out of this," said I. "I hope I
|
|
shall," said she. That was the end of my adventure, for I never had her
|
|
again, and she soon left the neighborhood. It was her own little child
|
|
that was with her.
|
|
|
|
Though I have (as I shall in other cases) told all I had to do with her
|
|
consecutively, yet between the time when she was in our house, and the
|
|
time of meeting her at the barn, three or four years must have elapsed;
|
|
and didn't we talk baudy in the barn before I got into her. That may
|
|
have warmed her up, yet I believe she wanted me, as soon as she found
|
|
herself alone with me. Her little child witnessed the business.
|
|
|
|
Just at this time or a little later, an adventure of a serious kind
|
|
occurred to me.
|
|
|
|
The streets leading out of the Waterloo road were then occupied much
|
|
by gay women. Some were absolutely full of them; they were mostly of
|
|
a class to be had for a few shillings if they could not get more (my
|
|
Granby street adventure has been already told). but many a swell I have
|
|
noticed lingering about there. My mother now took nearly all my
|
|
money for my board, but with the little remaining, I had a knock off
|
|
occasionally. It was one of my pleasures to walk up those streets when
|
|
dark and talk with the women at the windows, which were always open
|
|
whatever the weather, unless some one as within engaged with the ladies.
|
|
|
|
Each woman had generally but one room, but two or three used to sit
|
|
together in the front room in their chemises. There was the bed,
|
|
wash-stand, chamberpot and all complete. Perhaps one lolled out of the
|
|
window, showing her breasts, and if you gave such a one a shilling,
|
|
she would stoop so that you could see right down past her belly to her
|
|
knees, and have a glimpse of her cunt-fringe. Sometimes one would pull
|
|
up her garter, or another sit down and piddle, or pretend to do so, or
|
|
have recourse to other exciting devices when men peeped in.
|
|
|
|
I used to look in and long. Sometimes had a shilling peep, and then
|
|
bashfully asked for a feel of the cunt for it. I so often succeeded,
|
|
that ever since then I wanted that amusement, have offered a shilling
|
|
for a feel, and met with but few refusals in any part of London.
|
|
Sometimes it ended in a fuck. Once or twice to my astonishment they
|
|
took mere trifles, and as I think of it, there is wonderfully little
|
|
difference between the woman you have for five shillings, and the one
|
|
you pay five pounds, excepting in the silk, linen, and manners.
|
|
|
|
One night I saw a woman with very fat breasts looking out of the window
|
|
(I was then fond of stout women); and after talking a minute, asked her
|
|
if she would let me feel her cunt for a shilling. "Yes," said she. In I
|
|
went, down she shut the window, and in another minute I was groping her.
|
|
She did not let me feel her long. I had not felt such a bum since Mary's
|
|
(already told of), and it so wetted my appetite, that I struck a bargain
|
|
for a fuck. She was soon stripped, and all I now recollect about her is,
|
|
that her cunt was large and covered with hair of a brownish colour; that
|
|
her eyes were dark; and that she seemed full twenty-five years of age. I
|
|
fucked her on a sofa.
|
|
|
|
When I had buttoned up she produced a book full of baudy pictures of
|
|
which I then had seen but few; and I went a second time to see the book,
|
|
rather than her. Looking over it, she pointed out to me with a laugh,
|
|
several pictures of men putting their pricks into women's arse-holes,
|
|
and into the rumps of other men. Having never before seen such pictures,
|
|
and having no idea of the operation, I felt modest, and turned to
|
|
others; but she so regularly as we turned over the leaves pointed
|
|
out this class, that my sense of shame gave way to curiosity; and not
|
|
believing, asked if it was possible to do it so. "Lord yes," said she.
|
|
"Does it not hurt?" said I. "Not if properly done," she replied,
|
|
and went on to say it was delicious some men thought; and she talked
|
|
altogether in a very knowing way about it; told me how it was best to
|
|
grease the hole first, then the prick, and to shove gently, and went on
|
|
so, that I said on a sudden, "Why, you have done it, I think." "Yes, but
|
|
only with a particular friend of mine who is very fond of it,--and so am
|
|
I; it is better than the other."
|
|
|
|
I felt shocked, bewildered, and excited. The subject dropped, but she
|
|
sat feeling me, slipping her finger under my balls, and pressing my
|
|
arse-hole with her finger. I prepared to fuck. She suggested she should
|
|
kneel with her buttocks towards me, so that she could feel my balls when
|
|
my prick was up her. I assented, and her bum-cheeks were presented to
|
|
me. Excited by her conversation and her hints, I looked curiously at
|
|
her large slit, and then at her bum-hole; I touched the latter, and she
|
|
drove her bum back upon my finger with a laugh. I did not take her hint,
|
|
but drove my prick into her quim and pushed in the regular fashion.
|
|
Thinking of the pictures excited me and without knowing what I said,
|
|
I suddenly pulled it out saying, "Let me put it into the other." "Not
|
|
tonight," said she, "put your thumb a little way in, your nail is quite
|
|
short" (she had noticed that I used to bite my thumbnails short). I
|
|
instantly did, the next moment spent, and dropped over her back, waiting
|
|
for the last drop of sperm to run off into her.
|
|
|
|
Her hints, her pictures, of which she had actually scores, stirred my
|
|
curiosity, her manner disgusted me, yet my brain seemed affected. Is it
|
|
possible, thought I, that a man's prick can go in there?--impossible.
|
|
And yet she says she has had it done to her, and my thumb went in easily
|
|
enough. The more I thought, and the more I reflected how a hard turd
|
|
hurt me sometimes in passing it, the more I was puzzled about the
|
|
intense pleasure which she said the operation gave! To solve my doubts
|
|
(although I had determined not), I went to her again, and saw the
|
|
pictures. She again talked about them, until scarcely knowing what I was
|
|
doing, "Will you let me?" I asked. "Don't talk loud," said she, "it will
|
|
never do to let any one know what we are at." Our voices dropped to a
|
|
whisper, whilst by her advice I pulled off trousers and drawers, and she
|
|
stripped stark naked.
|
|
|
|
Then she carefully greased my prick with pomatum, and put some on her
|
|
arse-hole; it was the work of a minute, not a word was said. She then
|
|
stark naked, sat by the side of me on the sofa, began fondling and
|
|
kissing me, took my hand in hers and rubbed my fingers on her clitoris,
|
|
half frigged herself with my fingers, I let her do what she liked. Then
|
|
she turned round. "Put it in," she said when her rump was towards me,
|
|
"then give me your hand, and don't push till I tell you." Her arse-hole
|
|
was at the level of my prick as I stood by the side of the sofa, my
|
|
machine was like a rod of iron, my brains seemed on fire, I felt I was
|
|
going to do something wrong, dreaded it, yet determined to do it. "Put
|
|
it in, slowly," said she in a whisper. The hole opened, felt tight,
|
|
but to my astonishment almost directly my whole prick was hidden in it
|
|
without pain to me or any difficulty. "Give me your hand." I did. Again
|
|
she began frigging herself with my fingers. "Rub, rub, push gently," she
|
|
said, and I tried, but was getting past myself. "Now," said she with a
|
|
spasmodic sort of half cry, half grunt. I felt my prick squeezed as in
|
|
a vice, I shoved or rather scarcely began to do so when I discharged a
|
|
week's reserve up her rectum. My brain whirled with excitement, whilst
|
|
she leaning over the pillows on the sofa, kept breathing hard and half
|
|
snorting like a pig, still frigging herself with my fingers.
|
|
|
|
As my sense returned, I could scarcely believe where my prick was,
|
|
excitement still kept it stiff, but desire had left me. I pulled it out
|
|
with an indescribable horror of myself.
|
|
|
|
"Wasn't it delicious?" said she. "I like it, don't you? You may always
|
|
do it so." What I replied I know not; I washed, dressed and got out of
|
|
the house as soon as I could. When in the street, I was sick. I ran off
|
|
fearing some one would see me, got into a Hackney-coach and drove in the
|
|
wrong direction; then got out and went a round-about way home, fearing
|
|
some one was following to upbraid or expose me. I scarcely slept that
|
|
night for horror of myself, never went up the street again for years,
|
|
and never passed its end without shuddering, have no recollection of
|
|
having had pleasure, or of any sensation whatever; all was dread to
|
|
me. And so ended that debauch; one I was deliberately let into by that
|
|
woman, having never thought of such doings before as possible, or at
|
|
all, as far as I can recollect.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XII.
|
|
|
|
Sarah and Susan.--At the key-hole.--A village fair.--Up
|
|
against a wall.--An unknown woman.--Clapped again.--My deaf
|
|
relative.--Some weeks felicity.--Sarah's secret.--Susan's
|
|
history.--Sarah with child.--Amidst black-berries.--
|
|
Susan's virginity.--Susan with child.--Sisters'
|
|
disclosures.--A row.--A child born.--Emigration.
|
|
|
|
I had now passed my twentieth year. The new servants were sisters (how
|
|
many times have sisters fallen to me!); the eldest who was cook was
|
|
named Sarah; the youngest, Susan. Sarah was about twenty-six, Susan
|
|
nineteen or twenty. I carefully arranged the key in the key-hole of
|
|
their door the first night, but saw nothing for two or three nights.
|
|
Then oh! fortune again. They rose later than my mother liked; she came
|
|
up to their room one morning and found them locked in, so she took away
|
|
the key. Now I had as far as the key-hole permitted, a fair field, but
|
|
then clothes hanging upon pegs on the door were often in my way; yet I
|
|
was so persistent in looking when they went to bed, and arose, that I
|
|
saw a great deal. How cunning I had got; I had filed and oiled the lock
|
|
and hinges of my door and theirs, so that I could close and open them
|
|
noiselessly, used to stoop daily with my eye to their key-hole, stepping
|
|
from my room with naked feet. I was nearly caught several times, but
|
|
never quite. It now seems wonderful that I was not.
|
|
|
|
I was so demure and quiet in talk about women always, and had kept
|
|
myself so circumspectly, that my mother never had the least suspicion of
|
|
me,--but in all matters of love and intrigue, mother always seemed to me
|
|
as innocent as the babe unborn.
|
|
|
|
For all that, my mother just then, and to my dismay, seeing that my
|
|
little games would be much interfered with, said I better change my
|
|
room, and have one on the first floor. Mrs. ------ had remarked, that
|
|
being a man now I ought not to sleep on the servants' floor. "As you
|
|
please,--it's one flight of stairs less for me, but Mrs. ------ is a
|
|
fool," I cried. "And which room?" "Your sister's. Annie will always be
|
|
with her aunt adopted, and Jane is only at home in the holidays." But I
|
|
would not be pushed into a small room; where was my tub to stand? Where
|
|
my books? I must have the spare room. There was much altercation, I made
|
|
my mother cry by saying that when of age I would get chambers away from
|
|
her, and into the spare room I moved.
|
|
|
|
It was next to my mother's. Installed there I did nothing but complain
|
|
of its inconvenience. I smoked incessantly in it. The smell got into
|
|
mother's bedroom, and she could not bear tobacco smoke. I made a noise
|
|
when she was in bed,--that annoyed her. I did all in a quiet way to make
|
|
her as uncomfortable as possible. An uncle and aunt who stopped with
|
|
us when in town, just then came from the country; and not liking my
|
|
sister's room, went to an hotel, which wounded mother considerably, so
|
|
she said I had better go upstairs again. I refused point blank; being
|
|
down there I would remain, and so managed, that she thought I went back
|
|
as a favour to her, and much against my will; but was I not glad!--and
|
|
got to my spying immediately.
|
|
|
|
Within a month I had seen them both stark naked, for being sisters they
|
|
had not hesitated to strip. I had seen the cook piddle, wash her cunt,
|
|
and put on her napkin. Susan's bed was not on the right side for me, but
|
|
nevertheless I saw enough of her to compare her with her sister. Sarah
|
|
was demure in manner, stout, with a splendid bum, and with little hair
|
|
of a lightish brown at the bottom of her belly; she wore black stockings
|
|
of which I then had a horror. Susan had a wicked, merry face, and a
|
|
splendid bunch of dark hair on her motte which attracted me largely.
|
|
It struck me that I should have a better chance with her than with her
|
|
sister, and began making approaches; when one Saturday night seeing
|
|
Sarah wash herself from head to foot, I got such glimpses of her round
|
|
fine haunches, and the split between them, that I fell into a fit of
|
|
randy adoration, which settled the direction of my attentions to her
|
|
instead of Susan.
|
|
|
|
I feared to go on with either, because they were sisters, but lust got
|
|
the better of my fears. I began kissing cook Sarah; who returned it
|
|
saying, she would not have her sister know it on any account. Shortly
|
|
after I kissed Susan, who made nearly the same remark; and I found that
|
|
each was careful not to tell the other; which was just what had occurred
|
|
with two sisters, of whom I have already written. This was very jolly.
|
|
Meanwhile I once or twice had a cheap poke on the road, but always with
|
|
fear of disease.
|
|
|
|
I had but little chance of the cook having now no pretext for going into
|
|
the kitchen, and the sisters were not much separated; but I looked up my
|
|
chances indefatigably, and finding Sunday favorable, to the horror of
|
|
my mother, left off going to church in the morning because the cook was
|
|
then alone. After our early Sunday dinner, I used to go to my bed-room
|
|
nominally to lay down, but really to look through the key-hole at the
|
|
cook who on that day only, dressed and washed herself in the middle of
|
|
the day, her sister being downstairs. I got on but slowly; in two months
|
|
only having taken outside liberties; till meeting Susan coming away from
|
|
the privy one day, I saw her press her clothes against her belly to dry
|
|
her cunt, and she saw me. Whenever I met her afterwards I used to tuck
|
|
my frock-coat between my legs and smile at her. It was an old dodge.
|
|
|
|
I had then bought a _Fanny Hill_ which I kept in my bed-room locked up.
|
|
One morning I forgot to put it by, thought of it and rushed upstairs,
|
|
entered the room where the servants had been making the bed, and saw
|
|
Sarah intently looking at the book. I had feared that my mother had
|
|
entered my room, and seen the book. I stood for an instant motionless,
|
|
she turned round, gave a cry, dropped the book, and rushed out of the
|
|
room, her face like blood. I locked the book up feeling somewhat uneasy,
|
|
but afterwards joked her about it and the smutty pictures, and this took
|
|
effect.
|
|
|
|
There was a fair held not far from us at that time, the girls were to go
|
|
there each on separate evenings. Before Sarah went out, I went out, she
|
|
had agreed to meet me at the fair; it was dusk, she had a female friend
|
|
with her. We went into a dancing booth and had drink, then into the long
|
|
room of stalls in which was a dance mob, shouting, crying, pushing each
|
|
other, scratching backs, blowing trumpets, and speaking baudily to the
|
|
women. As it got later, the men used to feel outside the women's cunts,
|
|
and many a so-called modest girl felt a man's prick outside, and passing
|
|
in the mob without being found out. Many a grab have I had at my prick
|
|
which could only have been done by a woman, who looked quite demure
|
|
whilst she did it. I got excited, put Sarah in front of me, and in the
|
|
first rush, put my hand round and gave her cunt outside her clothes a
|
|
grab. She upbraided me, rushing out of the crowd at the side to escape
|
|
me, I after her, into a dark passage, between the backs of the booths,
|
|
where men were pissing. They hailed her with laughter, asking her if she
|
|
had come to piddle. Back into the crowd she rushed, I with her, and did
|
|
the same thing, talking baudily, and kept this up until it was time for
|
|
her to go home.
|
|
|
|
I said I should walk home with her. The village-road had but occasional
|
|
oil-lamps; at places it was quite dark, loving couples were walking or
|
|
turning off into dark bye-places by hedges and fences to satisfy their
|
|
amatory wants. This I pointed out to her, and talked of the prints she
|
|
had seen in _Fanny Hill_ that morning. Altogether she had gone through
|
|
enough that day and night to make a female randy. Suddenly a girl in
|
|
the dark squealed, and a masculine voice in the dark shouted up, "That's
|
|
right, shove your prick well up her, old boy." I tried it on with Sarah
|
|
on the way home, but it was no go. I felt her bum and thighs, got her
|
|
hand on to my prick, but she would not let me have her.
|
|
|
|
Next night I was at the fair, and met her sister Susan there by chance.
|
|
I got excited and tried the same dodge with her, she had also a female
|
|
friend with her. I pressed their bellies and pinched their burnt when
|
|
in the crowd; her friend went off with her young man, then I had Susan
|
|
alone and tried pushing my hand against her belly, more than ever; she
|
|
took no notice. Her friend and we then met again face to face in the
|
|
mob. I had an impression that a feel at my balls must have come from her
|
|
friend. We all went to a public-house and had drink; there suddenly
|
|
she bid me good-bye, saying it was late, and she must get home, set off
|
|
running and was out of sight in a minute.
|
|
|
|
I had no intention of going home, but after thinking an instant ran
|
|
after her, saw a woman squatting who got up as I neared her; it was she.
|
|
"You have been piddling," said I. There was some joking on this. The
|
|
same sort of couples were to be seen cuddling about as on the previous
|
|
night; the same whispering, squealing ad scuffling a little way off in
|
|
the dark lanes. She was more frisky than her sister, and more talkative.
|
|
"Ain't they larking!" said she as a girl gave a half giggle, half cry
|
|
in the dark. Said I, "They are fucking." She stood stock still for a
|
|
minute, and then walked on quietly without saying another word. I had
|
|
not before said a baudy word to her.
|
|
|
|
Having got the word fuck out, I was game for anything, rattled on
|
|
baudily; at last after a long silence, something I said made her laugh.
|
|
I began kissing her, at length she returned it, and next instant I
|
|
thrust her up against a wall, pushed my hand up her clothes, and my
|
|
fingers on to her slit, which was as wet as a slop-pail. She cried, "Oh!
|
|
you vagabond," got my hand away, took to her Heels, and ran off. I after
|
|
her, till we both stopped breathless.
|
|
|
|
I tried again, her resistance grew feebler, she was silent, I had her
|
|
against a wall, one hand holding her cunt, with the other I was guiding
|
|
my prick to it, it was sliding in, in an instant it would have been
|
|
up her, when putting down both hands she pushed it away saying, "Oh!
|
|
gracious God, what am I about again," ran off, and never stopped until
|
|
she had rang our house-bell.
|
|
|
|
I went back to the fair and later on met outside it a very short girl,
|
|
who seemed too respectable to be by herself and had her veil down. I
|
|
spoke with her, found she was going my way, and walked with her. She
|
|
knew my name, and where I lived. Two nights scrambling had not got me
|
|
a poke, that I suppose made me bold enough to make advances to this
|
|
modest, quiet girl; I stole a kiss, then another, then a hug, then a
|
|
feel, and finally with scarcely any hindrance fucked her. We walked and
|
|
talked when it was over, she would not tell me her name or address, nor
|
|
give me a glimpse of her face; I fucked her again up against our own
|
|
garden-wall, insisted on knowing where she lived, said I would walk till
|
|
I saw, and did walk with her for about an hour. She said, "If you walk
|
|
about all night you shall never know where I live, but you may do it
|
|
again if you like, or I will meet you to-morrow, but I dare not let you
|
|
see where I go." I feared I could not poke again, so stopped to piss.
|
|
She modestly walked on a little; I frigged my prick until the steam was
|
|
up, then in her well moistened cunt consummated, and parted, promising
|
|
to meet her the next night.
|
|
|
|
I looked at Sarah and Susan the next morning, took opportunity of
|
|
reminding each of them that I had felt their cunts, bragged to each,
|
|
that a young lady who lived close by had let me do it to her. The next
|
|
night came, the unknown girl did not keep her appointment, and the
|
|
following morning found I had the clap. I never saw or heard of her
|
|
again, nor know who the young lady who gave it to me. She was not a
|
|
common domestic, I am sure.
|
|
|
|
This stopped me for a month, but the time was not all lost, for I
|
|
indulged in baudy talk, and familiarized both servants with it, and
|
|
the fact that they had felt me, and I them. The eldest used to look
|
|
uncomfortable, Susan used to brazen it out with a bright roguish eye,
|
|
that I then almost turned to her, especially as Sarah still wore black
|
|
stockings; but then Sarah had such fat white thighs, and a larger bum.
|
|
|
|
When better and I was again alone with Sarah on a Sunday morning, I got
|
|
her on to a chair, pulled up her clothes all round, exposed her legs,
|
|
showed her my prick, showed her the pictures in _Fanny Hill_, got
|
|
her excited, but did nothing more. Another Sunday I tried it on
|
|
unsuccessfully. The third Sunday going upstairs just after mother and
|
|
Tom had gone to church, she said she was not going to be worried with
|
|
me, and Susan would be at home. Susan had not I found gone to church as
|
|
usual. Baulked, I was going out, but catching her in the hall, tried to
|
|
pull up her clothes. She cried, "For God's sake don't, I would not let
|
|
Susan hear for the world." This confirmed me in what I had felt nearly
|
|
certain of; the sisters did not tell each other of my games. I heard
|
|
Susan say to her sister who had gone to the top of the house, "I shan't
|
|
loose my outing, there is nothing the matter with you," and out she
|
|
went. The next minute down came Sarah; I stopped her on the landing, by
|
|
my mother's room.
|
|
|
|
"Now don't," she began in a coaxing way, but I had not spent for weeks,
|
|
and as I looked into her bright eyes and flushed face, meant that day to
|
|
do so if I could. She must herself have wanted it, there was such a
|
|
soft look about her. My reply was to try to pull up her clothes.
|
|
We struggled, pushed against the door of mother's bed-room, and
|
|
we staggered into the room together. Nothing could have been more
|
|
favorable. I got her up against the bed, her clothes up, my prick
|
|
against her belly, and there for a minute we struggled.
|
|
|
|
Opposite my mother's was a small low sort of bedstead called a child's,
|
|
I don't know why. It was covered with a large skin on a mattress. Mother
|
|
used it as a sofa. My prick was actually up against Sarah's belly, my
|
|
balls nestling in the hair of her cunt, my hands tightly round her bum,
|
|
but her legs were so close together, that I could not get into her; I
|
|
put one hand down to open the road to her cunt, but could not manage it,
|
|
though her resistance was growing less. She ceased praying me to leave
|
|
off, but tried by putting her hands down, to dislodge me from her belly,
|
|
withdrawing her hands as they touched my prick. The blinds were down, no
|
|
one but us in the house, I saw the child's bed, pulled her towards it,
|
|
I going backwards. We fell on it together, she more than half on the top
|
|
of me; another struggle, and her petticoats were flung up as I rolled
|
|
her round on to her back. She tried to pull them down, bringing her
|
|
knees half up to meet them; I saw her buttocks beneath and recklessly
|
|
pushing with my hand, a finger went half-way up her cunt. Down went her
|
|
legs quite straight, the next instant I was on the top of her.
|
|
|
|
I weighted her down, she lay panting. "Now do Sarah dear, be quiet."
|
|
She said not a word, nor looked at me. I pressed my knees, and with
|
|
difficulty opened her thighs, and we were belly to belly; with one or
|
|
two vigorous shoves, in went my prick without difficulty and spending as
|
|
it entered. So did abstinence, desire, and excitement tell on me. It has
|
|
often behaved in the same way.
|
|
|
|
I was now at a time of life when I could do more fucking, and after
|
|
long abstinence if I liked a woman, could sometimes do it twice
|
|
before withdrawing. The first words she uttered were, "Oh! let me go
|
|
downstairs, the dinner will be spoiled." But what did that matter to a
|
|
man whose prick was stiff up a cunt! So I waited my second enjoyment;
|
|
and if I know anything about the matter, you my dear Sarah, brought your
|
|
liquor out to mix with mine.
|
|
|
|
Scarcely was my prick out of her, before the street bell rang;
|
|
downstairs she ran, I went upstairs. I recollect how wet my hair and
|
|
my balls were as I ran, wrapping them up. It was her sister. Directly
|
|
afterwards home came mother. Dinner was served, what a row there was,
|
|
the meat was not done, the vegetables smashed. "It is disgraceful,"
|
|
said mother, "has she been upstairs Walter?" How queer I felt at that
|
|
question, and wonder my confusion was not noticed. I said I did not
|
|
know. "I will be bound she has," said mother, "and been trying on her
|
|
finery before going out to-night, Sundays and dress are the ruin of
|
|
servants now-a-days." "I have been out," said I to mother. "You would
|
|
have done yourself more good had you been to church," said she.
|
|
|
|
After dinner mother went up to her bed-room as was her custom, to doze
|
|
on the small bed; the next minute her bell rang violently. "Send up
|
|
Sarah," said she angrily to Susan, and up she went, I went into the hall
|
|
listening in a funk. "Why don't you keep my bed-room door closed?" said
|
|
she, "as I tell you." "I am almost sure it was closed when I went out."
|
|
"Have you been in here?" "No m'am," stammered the poor woman, "the nasty
|
|
cat has been up here on this bed (luckily the cat had done that once
|
|
before), and been scratching up the skins." "You must have opened the
|
|
door,--and oh! the beast has made some mess upon it." Mother told Sarah
|
|
to wipe up the place, it was only marks of what Sarah's overflowing cunt
|
|
and my prick had dropped in our hurry. A little more blowing up, and
|
|
mothers' anger was over. Sarah came down, looking more dead than alive,
|
|
when I saw her in the hall.
|
|
|
|
In the evening Sarah went out, and I to church,--so mother thought,--but
|
|
in reality to meet Sarah. For an hour we walked about, then as it
|
|
grew dark began kissing. What a difference the morning had made. No
|
|
resistance now, my hand roved over the smooth bum and belly, a slight
|
|
objection on the part of the thighs as my hand touched the hairy
|
|
covering, but for an instant only, then as of a right the fingers felt
|
|
the moist lapels, which were soon opened by my prick, as I fucked her
|
|
up against the wall of the garden, at the very spot where some weeks
|
|
previously I had fucked the unknown lady, and caught the clap.
|
|
|
|
Good and bad luck come in heaps. I was now in for the good. Next Sunday
|
|
and others afterwards, we had a nice half-hour on her bed, or my bed, or
|
|
on the sofa in the parlour; but we left no signs of the cat anywhere.
|
|
|
|
My mother then went on a long visit to my aunt in H--tf--dshire, wanted
|
|
me to go, but I could not get away, so she took my sister from my aunt's
|
|
and Tom, and to my delight took Susan. Sarah was left as servant, the
|
|
deaf female relative came again to take charge of the house, and we
|
|
three were alone in it. My mother's last words were, "Give as little
|
|
trouble as you can, and I hope Walter, you will keep out of bad society,
|
|
and not be out late." I was mostly to dine with my guardian's executor,
|
|
an old family friend.
|
|
|
|
That night and for several weeks, Sarah and I slept together, it was a
|
|
honey-moon. My old relative, deaf and timid, used to lock her door; I
|
|
used to go across to Sarah's and lock it, mother having put back the
|
|
key. We had fear of being found out, but not much. In those weeks we
|
|
gave way so to our passions, that we were worn out. I taught her all I
|
|
knew; she was willing, docile, and did all I told her: love's amusements
|
|
in every variety which I then knew of did we try; never had I had such
|
|
continuous fucking. The first thing mother on her return noticed, was
|
|
that I was pale, and then great was her astonishment when told by my
|
|
old deaf relative, that I had scarcely been out one night after seven
|
|
o'clock, and up early most days; so my mother put it down to close
|
|
attention to my studies, for I was preparing.
|
|
|
|
I told Sarah in confidence I had had a virgin, and that there had been
|
|
difficulty with her, but none in getting into Sarah. She swore by all
|
|
that was solemn that she never had had a man, that although she had been
|
|
kissed and tried, no man had put his hands on her naked thighs until I
|
|
had. From what she had heard of girl's virginities, she thought she must
|
|
have been different from them; she could always easily put a finger up
|
|
her cunt, and I believed her. She spent the second time I did it to her.
|
|
|
|
Talking excitedly about her virginity and her not having bled when first
|
|
pierced, she remarked, "Susan told me that when she--" Then she stopped
|
|
and turned the conversation, but my curiosity was whetted. I pressed her
|
|
to tell more, she got confused, said it was her cousin Susan, would not
|
|
go on to say what Susan had said, at last refused to say more. I did
|
|
not forget it, and one night as I lay kissing her and fingering her
|
|
clitoris, she told me under promise of the greatest secrecy, that her
|
|
sister Susan bled when her young man first put it up her, and with this,
|
|
that Susan had been seduced and had a child; so her father had sent
|
|
her to service in London, and the better to get her taken care of, had
|
|
arranged that her sister Sarah should always take service in the same
|
|
house with her; hence at my mothers. "And, oh!" she concluded, "if Susan
|
|
or father should ever know what I have done, I should die." The family
|
|
trusted her.
|
|
|
|
This accounted for the somewhat forward manner of Susan, for her
|
|
exclamation when I got up against her belly on the night of the fair,
|
|
"Gracious God, what am I about again!" Sarah believed Susan could have
|
|
had no one else but her first sweetheart, and that was more than a year
|
|
before. All this set me thinking, and more than once when twiddling
|
|
Sarah's cunt, I thought of Susan's with the thicker and darker hair, and
|
|
wondered in what other respects it differed from that of her sister.
|
|
|
|
Now came trouble. Sarah said she was two months gone with child; she had
|
|
kept it to herself hoping her courses might come on. She got with child
|
|
she thought the first day I fucked her. We were both in great anxiety,
|
|
but did nothing to help it. Sunday morning usually passed this way.
|
|
Directly they had all gone to church, up came Sarah to mother's room
|
|
or into the garden parlour, there I looked at her belly to see if it was
|
|
bigger, then she had a crying fit, then we fucked, then she went down to
|
|
see after the meat roasting, then generally we had another fuck, and
|
|
all was over for that day; for my prick usually came out of her not long
|
|
before Susan rang the bell to be let in.
|
|
|
|
At length her state began to show, her mother just then was very ill and
|
|
wrote to her, she made this an excuse for asking to go home, intending
|
|
to try when there to get rid of her encumbrance. My mother with great
|
|
objection let her go, for she liked her. For one or two weeks before she
|
|
left someone or other had stopped at home on Sundays, so I was balked
|
|
in getting ar her, and only did it once to her in nearly a month. I
|
|
gave her what money I could to help her; a charwoman came to work in her
|
|
absence; it was arranged that her sister should do most of her work as
|
|
well as her own, as far as she could.
|
|
|
|
My mind reverted to what Sarah had told me about her sister. Would she
|
|
not like a doodle up her again I how she must long for a man, I used to
|
|
think. She nearly let me coming from the fair, what if I tried again.
|
|
Then I thought how wrong it was, seeing what I had done to her sister.
|
|
But back again the desire came, I grew randier. "I won't try her on
|
|
account of her sister," thought I, "but there will be no harm in larking
|
|
with her."
|
|
|
|
So I began and reminded her of the night of the fair, told her I knew
|
|
that the hair of her motte was dark, by degrees got her to kiss me, to
|
|
leave off chaffing her, felt her outside, but went no further. About the
|
|
fourth day after her sister had left, I got my hands on her thigh. On
|
|
Sunday when all were at church: to blind my mother I had gone out, but
|
|
went home directly, and into the kitchen to resume my baudy chaff, I
|
|
forgot all about her sister, got to kissing and trying to feel her. I
|
|
was long in the kitchen with my prick out, sometimes hanging, sometimes
|
|
standing stiff, trying to induce her to let me, but it was of no use.
|
|
Her cap was off, her hair dishevelled. I had got her clothes once up
|
|
to her hips, had seen her motte, felt it, got my prick up against it,
|
|
knocked it about all over her belly, but no more; time was short, and at
|
|
last with a sort of guilty fear I went out before church was over, and
|
|
came back in time for our early dinner, telling my mother I had been
|
|
to ------ church. Then I reflected and thought it was as well I had not
|
|
done it to Susan.
|
|
|
|
When mother returned she left my sister and little brother in the
|
|
country. My old deaf relative remained with us and slept in the room
|
|
adjoining my mother's. That same Sunday night, I waited until Susan came
|
|
up to bed, pounced upon her on the top landing and tried to feel her;
|
|
she dropped her candle-stick and made such a noise, that back I sneaked
|
|
to bed, and was asleep, when I heard the bell ringing violently in
|
|
the servants' room. Out I rushed saw Susan on the landing with but
|
|
a petticoat over her night-dress, and old Mrs. ------ going into my
|
|
mother's room who was taken very ill.
|
|
|
|
Down to the kitchen went Susan and I to get boiling water, I heaped wood
|
|
and coals on the fire, she blew it with the bellows, old Mrs. ------
|
|
was upstairs getting brandy and other things ready. What followed I
|
|
recollect as well as if it were yesterday. Susan was half squatting,
|
|
half kneeling and blowing the fire furiously. Standing by her my
|
|
randiness came on, I pulled out my prick, and pushed it right in her
|
|
face. "For shame!" said she, "I will hit you with the bellows, think of
|
|
your mother." It did shame me for a moment, I hid my prick, and knelt
|
|
by her side stirring the blazing wood. But just then I saw her breasts
|
|
through the half-tied night-gown; it was too much for me; that and the
|
|
attitude she was in together; loosing all prudence, I pushed one hand
|
|
on to her breast, and the other up her clothes, between her legs,--which
|
|
were very conveniently opened quite wide,--and on the slit of her cunt
|
|
With a suppressed cry she dropped the bellows, attempted to rise, and
|
|
repulse my hand, and in doing so we both rolled backwards ( for I had
|
|
stooped) on to the floor among the black-beetles of which there were
|
|
dozens about. "You wretch," she cried in a suppressed voice, "oh!
|
|
don't,--and your poor mother so ill,--oh! don't,--you shant!--and
|
|
wanting hot water,--you shant!" in a still louder tone as I got my hand
|
|
full on her cunt. "Oh! my God, here is Mrs. ------."
|
|
|
|
Had Mrs. ------ not been as deaf as a post, she must have heard our
|
|
scuffling, as she neared the kitchen. In an hour or so my mother was
|
|
better, and Mrs. ------ stopped in the room with her for the night. My
|
|
mother was asleep when I left, Mrs. ------ had had a good dose of brandy
|
|
and water, and I knew she would sleep well enough. I went to my room
|
|
excited by the continual trying it on with Susan; Mrs. ------ had given
|
|
her a glass of brandy and water, "to keep the cold out," as she said,
|
|
and she went to her room. I listened, heard her moving about longer than
|
|
I expected. I had come up some minutes before to deceive all, and was
|
|
shivering in my night-shirt. I thought how unfair it was to her sister
|
|
who was in the family way by me, of the risk I ran with my mother in
|
|
the house; but a standing prick stifles all conscience. I crossed the
|
|
landing, opened her door, shut it rapidly, and there I was in the room
|
|
with her, both of us in our night-dresses. She was doing up her hair as
|
|
I entered, she wore a night-cap.
|
|
|
|
"I won't let you come in here." "Hush! mother will hear you," said I.
|
|
Her voice dropped to a whining, "Pray go, I shall loose my character,
|
|
if any one supposes anything of this; it's very hard on me." Such was my
|
|
state, that I believe if my mother had come in just then, I should have
|
|
tried Susan. My reply was to strip my night-gown right off and stand
|
|
naked; then I caught her in my arms and forced her into a sitting
|
|
posture on the bed-side, sitting myself down beside her. "Let me
|
|
do it,--let us fuck, I have felt your cunt,--seen it;--look at my
|
|
prick,--let me put it in,--let me do it,--you did nearly once,--let me
|
|
now." "For God's sake go." "I won't." "Oh! don't,--oh I go,--if Misses
|
|
should hear us, what will become of me." "Don't make a noise then, or
|
|
she will." "Well go, there is a dear,--not now,--perhaps some other day
|
|
I will." She was defenceless, I hitched up her nightgown, saw a pair of
|
|
nice white thighs. "You shant,--you shant," she cried in a louder tone,
|
|
pushing down her night-gown. I gave it a violent tug, and pulled it up
|
|
to her belly, saw thighs, navel, and dark brown hair between her thighs,
|
|
that I had looked at in glimpses through the key-hole. There was my
|
|
thigh close to hers, my stiff prick within a few inches of her cunt;
|
|
considering all she had gone through that day with me, it was a position
|
|
which would have upset the frigidity of an angel, had she not frigged
|
|
away some of her passion in the interim.
|
|
|
|
But her passions were conquering on my behalf, for she was a woman who
|
|
had known love's pleasures; her voice was quiet as she said, "Oh! pray
|
|
don't, oh I pray now." I pulled her back and slid my naked limbs between
|
|
her thighs, then in a moment I was on her, but in an uncomfortable
|
|
position; two of our legs on the bed, two off, my belly touched hers and
|
|
pressed her down; with my right hand I guided my prick to her slit. Her
|
|
hour had come, "Oh! for God's sake, leave me, I will let you another
|
|
day,--I will,--not now,--oh! if you knew!--oh! now!--oh!..."
|
|
|
|
It was all but over, my fingers were feeling their way, my prick between
|
|
them, every motion she made to help herself, helped me; I held her down
|
|
with force until I felt my penis was on the notch, but as it touched the
|
|
slippery sides of the red orifice, the first pang of pleasure came and
|
|
my sperm spat on to it. With a furious thrust I plunged up her and threw
|
|
my whole body over her, grasping her bum, quivering, wriggling, and
|
|
pushing. The deed was done, she knew it, and was as quiet as the grave.
|
|
|
|
The position was painful to both of us, I felt it in both my legs; she
|
|
moved uneasily saying, "I hope you will go." I had no such intention,
|
|
kept her down, and my prick in her as long as I could; then got up
|
|
quickly, hoping to see her spunk-trap whilst her thighs were open. A
|
|
woman seems always up to this, how quickly they shut them. She did, but
|
|
the light though feeble was close by, and I saw sperm outside; then she
|
|
sat at the side of the bed with her limbs uncovered, I stood naked with
|
|
doodle wet, flabby and shrunken, not a pretty picture at all. She begged
|
|
me to go, was tranquil, sat twisting up her hair, scarcely made attempt
|
|
to hide her limbs, all her anxiety was about her mistress finding me
|
|
in her room; but after a few minutes altercation, I was in bed with her
|
|
cuddling, and promising to leave directly I had fucked again.
|
|
|
|
I got into bed without my night-gown, hers was rolled up so that she
|
|
was all but naked, our naked bodies touched at all points, my hands were
|
|
free to rove everywhere. How she must have wanted it, only a woman with
|
|
twelve months abstinence from cock can tell; and when after feeling her
|
|
cunt well, and putting her unresisting hands round my pego, I pushed her
|
|
on to her back; there was no difficulty about her thighs, they opened at
|
|
once as I turned on to her, her frame thrilled, her tongue sought mine,
|
|
her hand clutched my naked back; she spent I verily believe before I
|
|
had began, and finished again with me a few minutes afterwards. About
|
|
day-break neither of us having closed our eyes, I went back to my room,
|
|
tired out.
|
|
|
|
My mother kept her bed the next day, so Susan and I had time to talk.
|
|
"I don't know what to do," said she, "we have made the sheet in such a
|
|
dreadful mess"; and that night before she went to bed, she took it down
|
|
and did something to it. I fucked her that day on the kitchen table.
|
|
|
|
Her sister did not return for a fortnight, and during that time we
|
|
had plenty of fucking; a few nights after I first had her, she was
|
|
excessively quiet; on questioning her she said, "I think I got in the
|
|
family way last night." "Nonsense," but she told me she had heard that
|
|
women sometimes had a sort of consciousness of getting with child,
|
|
and added, "I somehow feel certain that I shall have a child from last
|
|
Sunday." This will be a pretty go, thought I, and asked, "Did you ever
|
|
have your belly up before, for I don't think you were a virgin when I
|
|
had you." She denied it, and there the matter ended, but I never could
|
|
get to see the lower part of her belly; she would let me see up to her
|
|
cunt, and down to her navel, but never more. My experience might not
|
|
have taught me much if I had, but I guessed something from what old
|
|
Brown had told me, and knew that woman had marks of some sort on
|
|
their-bellies after child-birth.
|
|
|
|
As the time came for Sarah's return I felt trouble could come with her.
|
|
The day before she did, Susan cried, said she was certain she was in the
|
|
family way, and expressed great dread of her sister knowing it. "Surely
|
|
you don't mind your own sister." "Oh! you don't know how hard she is
|
|
upon poor girls who get into trouble," she replied. "Here is a mess!" I
|
|
thought.
|
|
|
|
Sarah returned, had tried to get a miscarriage and failed, she grew
|
|
bigger, all her fear was lest Susan should find it out before she left,
|
|
and on plea of her mother's health, she gave notice. Both girls were
|
|
afraid of each other, both seemed determined to get as much fucking as
|
|
possible. Sarah got hers on Sundays, and sometimes on week days. Susan
|
|
who was more about and could often get five minutes with me slyly, threw
|
|
herself in my way, got it when and where she could, and had it once or
|
|
twice daily. I was not loth. The excitement of two cunts and a certain
|
|
pungency in the position stimulated me. I have seen the two standing
|
|
side by side, each at the same moment with my spunk in them, yet neither
|
|
knowing the other's condition. At times before I had washed my prick
|
|
after one sister, I was wetting it in the cunt of the other, which
|
|
delighted me.
|
|
|
|
Things got desperate. Sarah said I ought to marry her, spoke of
|
|
committing suicide, and at length unable to hide her belly, left. I
|
|
was anxious to do what I could to help her, so disclosed my case to
|
|
a friend; who advised me to borrow, as I was so near coming into my
|
|
property. I borrowed fifty pounds of a Jew, promising to pay him a
|
|
hundred pounds for it six months afterwards; and got her lodgings a few
|
|
miles from our house. Susan also got bigger, and made no disguise of her
|
|
intention of getting abortion.
|
|
|
|
No disclosure of the sisters to each other had yet taken place, yet
|
|
I felt it would be done. One morning Susan's eyes followed me whilst
|
|
waiting at table in a most unpleasant manner. I felt all was found out,
|
|
so to face it, and get the worst over, threw myself in her way. "You
|
|
wretch, you scoundrel, you blackguard," she whispered to me on the
|
|
staircase, "it is you who have seduced my poor sister." Soon a better
|
|
opportunity was found, and we had a scene; it took place in my bed-room,
|
|
when the other servant who had replaced Sarah, and my mother were out.
|
|
I could only say I was sorry. She blazed out worse than ever then,
|
|
and spoke so violently about my behaviour to herself, that I told her,
|
|
whatever her sister had to complain of, I thought she had but little,
|
|
for that mine was not the first prick which had been up her, I was sure.
|
|
My words and manner staggered and quieted her and after making me take a
|
|
solemn oath (which I did holding a Bible) I would never tell her sister
|
|
that she was in the family way by me, she got tranquil, and I fucked her
|
|
before she left the room.
|
|
|
|
Susan was dreadfully ill a few days afterwards, she had got a
|
|
miscarriage; my mother attended to her, thinking she had inflammation
|
|
of her bowels. I went to see Sarah, who told me some fellow had got her
|
|
sister Susan in the family way, she could not tell who, for Susan quite
|
|
refused to say. She was soon after confined with a fine child. Troubles
|
|
then came apace, the mother of the two women died, Susan left my mother
|
|
at once to take charge of the old man's house, and never let me have her
|
|
again after her miscarriage. Then the father came to grief, failed and
|
|
was sold up. Sarah went home with her child, and after a time, acting on
|
|
the advice of a friend, I advanced money out of my property which I had
|
|
then come into, and sent the whole lot to Canada. After a year my child
|
|
died, and Susan got married. What became of Sarah, I don't know, for all
|
|
letters soon after ceased; but to the last I believe that Sarah never
|
|
knew that I had had her sister as well as herself, although Susan knew I
|
|
had had both of them and was father of both children, or what would have
|
|
been both children.
|
|
|
|
This ended my intrigues with servants for some time, for my fucking took
|
|
quite another direction. Harlots of small degrees amused me till I came
|
|
into what was a pretty fortune in those days.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIII.
|
|
|
|
Of age.--Camille my first French woman.--Lascivious
|
|
delights.--Harlots by the dozen.--Baudy books.--Tribades.--
|
|
A grey-haired cunt.
|
|
|
|
I came into my property, and to the great horror of my mother and
|
|
family, soon gave up my post at the ------ and my intended career and
|
|
determined to live and enjoy myself. I had been all but posted to a
|
|
regiment, that commission I resigned, though all my youth desiring it. I
|
|
lost much money by doing so. What I did between the time that I had the
|
|
two sisters, until I went regularly to the town, is not worth telling of
|
|
more than already done. Frig myself, I did not, gay women since my last
|
|
clap I was shy of, but I used to shag a servant of a family close by,
|
|
and rather think one of our own servants; but if so, all circumstances
|
|
made small impression on me, and nearly escaped my mind, excepting those
|
|
of a comely woman of about thirty with black curls, of a wall not far
|
|
from a church, and of fucking her up against it, of her being so anxious
|
|
to get indoors by nine o'clock, and scuffling off with her wetted cunt
|
|
directly she had finished with me. Her name or who she was I quite
|
|
forget.
|
|
|
|
This I know, that I had no other woman at home, and had no liking for
|
|
gay women, nor is it to be wondered at, since my experience with them
|
|
was confined to one I had with my cousin Fred, women by the roadside who
|
|
would take a shilling, and others of a queer class in the confines of
|
|
the Waterloo road (two debauches there told of) then filled me with
|
|
horror, and three claps; yet I was to leave off giving my passion to
|
|
quiet women, and bestow all my attention for a time on gay women.
|
|
|
|
Walking up Waterloo place one evening, with plenty of money in my
|
|
purse, and lust in my body, I met a fine, clear complexioned woman, full
|
|
twenty-five years of age, who addressed me in French, and then in broken
|
|
English. She had an eye, and manner which fascinated me, her dress was
|
|
quite elegant, as unlike the French women of Regen street of the present
|
|
day, as a duchess is to a milkmaid; but she was the ordinary French
|
|
whore of the day, of whom there were but few in London (there was no
|
|
railway to Paris); and who were exclusively supported by gentlemen at
|
|
the West-End. I went home with her to a house at the corner of G-l-n
|
|
square, after fearing and hesitating.
|
|
|
|
As I got to the door my fear returned, and but for shame I would
|
|
not have gone in. "I have but little money," said I, "Have you not a
|
|
Victoria?" said she. "No." "You will find one, I am sure." By that time
|
|
the door was opened, and in I went. "You will find one Victoria," said
|
|
she in broken English as she closed the room-door, "but if not, shall you
|
|
not give me what you shall find." The room was nicely furnished, out
|
|
of it was a nice large bed-room and a smaller one (she paid twenty
|
|
shillings a week for all, as you will soon hear). Four wax candles were
|
|
lighted, down she sat, so did I, and we looked at each other. I could
|
|
say nothing.
|
|
|
|
"Shall I undress?" said she at length. "Yes," I replied, and she began.
|
|
Never had I seen a woman take off such fine linen before, never such
|
|
legs in handsome silk stockings, and beautiful boots. I had had the
|
|
cleanest, nicest women, but they were servants, with the dress and
|
|
manners of servants. This woman seemed elegance itself to them. A
|
|
nice pair of arms were disclosed, a big pair of breasts flashed out, a
|
|
glimpse of a fine thigh was shown, and as her things dropped off, and
|
|
she stopped to pick them up, with her face towards me; her laced chemise
|
|
dropped, opened, and I saw darkness at the end of the vista between her
|
|
two breasts.
|
|
|
|
A pull up of the stockings and garters, disclosed other glimpses of the
|
|
thighs and surroundings. Then she sat on the pot, pissed and looked
|
|
at me, whilst I sat in fear, saying nothing, doing nothing, my cock
|
|
shrivelled to the size of a gooseberry, and longing to go away. The
|
|
whole affair was unlike anything I had seen or dreamed of, a quiet
|
|
business-like, yet voluptuous air was about it, which confused me; it
|
|
affected my senses deliciously in one way, but all the horrors about
|
|
gay women were conjured up in my imagination at the same time. I was
|
|
intensely nervous.
|
|
|
|
She seeing me so quiet, sat herself on my knee, and began unbuttoning
|
|
my trowsers. I declined it. "Are you ill?" said she. I told her no,
|
|
scarcely knowing what she meant. Then she unbuttoned me in spite of my
|
|
objection, laid hold of my little doodle, and satisfied herself that
|
|
it was all right I suppose; for she hurt me; I could not tell why she
|
|
squeezed it, for I did not know then the ways of gay women. The squeeze
|
|
gave me a voluptuous sensation, although fear had still hold of me; then
|
|
she kissed, and fondled me, but it was useless. Then she said, "You have
|
|
never had a woman before I see." My pride was wounded, and I told her I
|
|
had many.
|
|
|
|
"Are always you like this with them?" she asked. "No, but I really did
|
|
not want it." "Oh! yes you shall. Come to the bed." She got off my knee,
|
|
went to the bed, laid down on one side, one leg on, one dropping down to
|
|
the floor, drew up her chemise above her navel, and lay with beautiful
|
|
large limbs clad in stainless stockings and boots, her thighs of the
|
|
slightly brown color seen in Southern women, between them a wide thicket
|
|
of jet-black hair, through which a carmine streak just showed. She
|
|
raised one of her naked arms above her head, and under a laced chemise
|
|
showed the jet-black hair in the arm-pit. I had never seen such a
|
|
luscious sight, nor any woman put herself unasked into such a seductive
|
|
attitude.
|
|
|
|
"Come," she said. I obeyed and went to the side of the bed, my prick not
|
|
yet standing. She took my hand and put the finger on to her clitoris,
|
|
pulled my prick towards her and kissed it, and at the double touch up
|
|
it rose like a horn. "Ah!" said she moving on to the middle of the bed,
|
|
"take off your clothes." I was on to her without uttering a word and had
|
|
plugged her almost before I had said "no," which I had meant to say.
|
|
|
|
What a cunt! what movement! what manner! I had till then never known
|
|
what a high-class, well practised professional fucker could do. How well
|
|
they understand the nature and wants of the man who is up them; hers was
|
|
the manner of a quiet woman, who had been some time without a prick, it
|
|
was so like baudy nature in a lady, that I was in the seventh Heaven,
|
|
"don't hurry"; but the wriggle and heave, and the tightening of the cunt
|
|
kept hurrying me, as well she knew.
|
|
|
|
I had scarcely finished my spend, when curiosity took possession of me.
|
|
She yielded in the way a French woman does to all a man wishes; almost
|
|
anticipating them. The black hair under her arm-pits first came in for
|
|
my admiration, then her eyes, her bubbies came in for their share, as
|
|
raising myself on an elbow, my prick still up her, I looked and felt
|
|
all over her, I even opened her mouth and felt her teeth which were
|
|
splendid. Then rising on my knees, I looked between her legs, at the
|
|
splendid thicket of black hair. Far from attempting to get up, or
|
|
prevent me, she opened her thighs wider, I pulled aside the cunt-lips,
|
|
there rolling out from a dark carmine orifice was my essence. At the
|
|
sight of it, up came my prick, still dripping, and up it went into the
|
|
sperm-lined passage.
|
|
|
|
My second fuck over, she washed. No sooner was that done, than I wanted
|
|
to see it all over again. "You are very fond of women," she said, "I
|
|
thought you had never had a woman before." Then I explained, gave her
|
|
the Victoria, and scarcely daring said (for she was dressed again), "How
|
|
I should like to do it again." "You take up much time of me, but you
|
|
may, if you like, at side of de bed." Out came my prick, up it went, her
|
|
duff and belly in sight now, till I spent in her, and promising to see
|
|
her again I left. One does not get silk stockings, laced chemise, four
|
|
wax lights and three fucks for a pound now, if rooms be well furnished,
|
|
or not.
|
|
|
|
I saw her the next day, then saw her almost daily. Little by little I
|
|
took to calling at all times, and sleeping with her. The more I had her,
|
|
the more I liked her. She was a very nice woman in most ways, I scarcely
|
|
ever found her untidy, dirty, or slammerkin. If not dressed, she had
|
|
a clean wrapper on, had nearly always silk stockings on, and a clean
|
|
chemise; and therefore call when I might she was ready to be fucked at
|
|
a minute's notice. She was a good cook, and would cook omlettes and nice
|
|
things in her room. I used to fuck, get out of bed, eat, and fuck again
|
|
with the food almost in my mouth. I used to have little dinners in her
|
|
room, sent in by a French cook, which were excellent, and then with
|
|
stomach full and with nice wine, would spend the evening in baudy joys.
|
|
|
|
What astonished and delighted me at the same time, was the freedom and
|
|
the way she lent herself to all my voluptuous inclinations. The gay
|
|
women I had had, I had fucked so fast, and got away from them as soon
|
|
as I could; my spend even scarcely finished at times. With my mother's
|
|
servants (my first love Charlotte excepted, and for a time with Susan),
|
|
my enjoyments were mostly hurried, a fingerstink, a frig on their cunt,
|
|
and a hurried look were all my amatory preliminaries for the most part;
|
|
because I was too impatient for the spend, was mostly obliged to seize
|
|
opportunities in a hurry, or because the girls were impatient at being
|
|
pulled about. When I had tried with them, some of the little amatory
|
|
amusements, which were beginning to suggest themselves to my voluptuous
|
|
imagination, they resisted, or only half lent themselves to my will.
|
|
With Susan I had tried the most, because I knew she had had a bumbasting
|
|
before, and she had been more willing; she liked pulling my prick about,
|
|
but even she made a fuss one night, when I wanted to fuck her with her
|
|
bum towards my belly, and never let me look at her belly. Thus my
|
|
baudy longings had never been satisfied. With Charlotte I did a little
|
|
variety, from curiosity; now I began to want it from voluptuousness. The
|
|
natural impatience of my age, and my few opportunities, had led me to
|
|
bring my women to the bed, throw up their clothes, pull open their legs,
|
|
give a rapid glance at their thighs, belly and cunt-fringe, by which
|
|
time my prick was nodding and throbbing. Then followed a grope, and the
|
|
next minute I was fucking as hard as I could.
|
|
|
|
With Camille all came like new to me. She even anticipated me. If I
|
|
pushed her to the side of the bed, she fell on her back and opened her
|
|
legs gently, dis-dosing her slit in the most voluptuous manner, without
|
|
speaning. If I strove to open her thighs, open they went as wide as
|
|
she could make them, leaving me to open,shut, pinch, frig, or probe her
|
|
cunt, as I listed. At a hint, she with two fingers would spread open the
|
|
lips to enable the fullest inspection. If I turned her round, she would
|
|
fall on the bed arse upwards, like a tumbler. If I cocked up a leg,
|
|
there she kept it till I pulled it down. I scarcely ever said what I
|
|
wanted, she guessed my desires from the way I turned her about. It was
|
|
only at a later time when my baudiness grew whimsical, and invented
|
|
strange attitudes, or singular caprices of love, that I had to tell her
|
|
what I wanted; but at first I was too timid for that. She once said to
|
|
me laughing, "I am a born whore, for I like it, and like to see a man
|
|
amuse himself with me."
|
|
|
|
Her every movement, even when I was tranquil, was exciting. If she sat
|
|
down, her limbs were in some position which by contemplation stirred my
|
|
lust, and made me rush to stroke her, and was gratified in any form
|
|
and manner I liked. With her all forms of copulation were wholesome and
|
|
natural, so that I had enough variety.
|
|
|
|
I was constantly with her until pretty well fucked out, then I stayed
|
|
away a while. When I recommenced she I expect thought I was weary of
|
|
her, and set to work to keep me, by putting into my head things I had
|
|
not heard, or thought of, asking if I would like to sate my lust in
|
|
such, and such ways; and then procuring for me what she had suggested.
|
|
|
|
I was indeed worth treating so, for though I only gave her a sovereign
|
|
at first, my money quickly began to go into her pocket from mine. The
|
|
more variety I had, the more I paid, which was but natural, and fair.
|
|
|
|
She had a book full of the baudiest French pictures; there was not an
|
|
attitude depicted in it that I did not fuck her in. That done, she asked
|
|
me one day if I would like another woman to feel whilst I had her. She
|
|
came, and I fucked Camille feeling the other's cunt, longing to fuck it,
|
|
but fearing to propose it. Camille guessed what I wanted, and proposed
|
|
it herself. With what joy my prick entered the stranger's split, Camille
|
|
looking on, holding her cunt open for inspection at the same time, and
|
|
going through the motions of frigging herself whilst I was shoving. Then
|
|
came endless variety. I had two other French ladies, and fingered their
|
|
cunts whilst I fucked a third, then two more, laying cunt upwards, legs
|
|
in the air, and arses meeting over Camille's head. At last I had six
|
|
altogether at once, and spent the evening with them naked, fucking,
|
|
frigging, spending up or over them, making them feel each other's cunts,
|
|
shove up dildoes, and play the devil's delight with their organs of
|
|
generation, as they are modestly called.
|
|
|
|
Then came other suggestions. "I know such a little girl, not above this
|
|
high," she said. I ballocked that little girl. Then she knew one six
|
|
feet high. She also I had. Then she knew one with an immense duff of
|
|
hair on her cunt. Of course I had her. Then one with none at all; and
|
|
mightily pleased was I, as my doodle rubbed in and out of that hairless
|
|
cunt, the owner laying at the side of the bed, I standing up, and
|
|
Camille holding a candle over the hairless quim, to enable me fully to
|
|
see and enjoy the novelty, I was pushing up.
|
|
|
|
At intervals when worn out with spending, or disinclined to find the
|
|
money, needed for this endless variety of women and cunt-hunting; I
|
|
frequently spent evenings quietly in Camille's society. I got from her
|
|
information about habits of women, in a way which is not often given
|
|
to young men by gay women; learned that women thrust sponges up their
|
|
cunts, to prevent men finding out they had their courses on. For
|
|
the first time with her, I understood that women could, and did frig
|
|
themselves; and on her own cunt, placing herself my finger there, I
|
|
first knew the exact spot where a women rubs for her solitary
|
|
pleasure. She told me of women rubbing their clitoris together so as
|
|
to spend,--what the French call tribadism,--and two women of her
|
|
acquaintance did this. All of us half spoony with champagne after a
|
|
jolly little supper; she set the two girls rubbing their cunts together.
|
|
The two girls on the top of each other, I thought a baudy amusement, and
|
|
did not believe until after years, that flat fucking was practicable,
|
|
and practised, with sexual pleasure.
|
|
|
|
Then should I like to see a man? Now it was not many years since I had
|
|
frigged two or three, and declined it. Yet one night she expatiated so
|
|
much about the wonderful size of a young man's prick, and what a lot
|
|
he spent, and how respectable he was, and what gentlemen had him, etc.;
|
|
that I who had a dislike to men being near me, consented, and a fine
|
|
young Frenchman came. I could not for half-an-hour go near him, but my
|
|
temptress meant I should, and I frigged one of the largest pricks I
|
|
have ever seen, and saw his spunk squirt over Camille's arse, which the
|
|
Frenchman requested her to turn upwards for him to spend on; indeed he
|
|
said he could not make his cock stand until he saw her arse. Directly
|
|
afterwards I had the most ineffable disgust at him, myself and all, and
|
|
never saw him again.
|
|
|
|
I would not again be in the room with a man, but she arranged to let
|
|
me see through a hole made in the door, herself fucked by another man,
|
|
which I immensely enjoyed, but had not the sight repeated. I even used
|
|
to hate the idea of her being fucked by any one but myself; not that I
|
|
had anything in the way of love or liking for her, which might have been
|
|
termed affection.
|
|
|
|
So time went on, I paying handsomely, trying to see and do anything she
|
|
suggested, and glorifying myself at being in the lucky way of doing and
|
|
knowing everything. I told much to some special friends, some of whom
|
|
wanted to find out my sources of such enjoyments; others thought I was a
|
|
mere braggart.
|
|
|
|
Nearly a year ran away, and four thousand pounds, leaving me with
|
|
infinite knowledge and a frame pretty well worn; but I never had a love
|
|
ailment, nor have I ever taken one from a French woman yet.
|
|
|
|
She never suggested arse-hole work. In her book were pictures of
|
|
buggering, and she asked me if I would like such a thing. I frightened
|
|
at what I knew, which seemed like a horrible dream, said, "certainly
|
|
not," and asked if it was possible. She told me it was, but was
|
|
"villaine," and the matter was never again referred to.
|
|
|
|
With much fucking I got done up, and one night could get no cock-stand.
|
|
She asked me if I had ever played at minette. I did not know what it
|
|
meant. She told me it was having my prick sucked. I told her no. I have
|
|
already narrated my licking the slightly haired cunt of young Martha,
|
|
and how when doing so, she having my prick in her hand close to her
|
|
mouth, and was playing with it, when scarce thinking of consequences,
|
|
"Kiss it," I said, "put it in your mouth"; and that the young girl randy
|
|
with my licking, put it to her mouth or tongue, and that I immediately
|
|
shot out my spunk without meaning it. That remained in my recollection
|
|
as a nasty subject. The big-cunted woman also sucked me against my will.
|
|
So when Camille suggested it I refused. There was another French woman
|
|
with her; they were both naked on the bed, and I had been fumbling both,
|
|
and baudily amusing myself, with no cock-stiff or fucking desire about
|
|
me. After a while I laid down on the bed with them, the other French
|
|
woman told me, that some men never did anything else, and that she would
|
|
like doing it to me. She had found out I was pretty liberal, and I dare
|
|
say counted on my being so now, if I could get by her a new sensation;
|
|
but I declined. The two women were laying in the reverse direction to
|
|
me on the bed, so that I could see and play with both their cunts, a
|
|
favorite posture with me then. After extolling the sensation of minette,
|
|
she without my consent turned over me, and geting me between her knees
|
|
back up, and so that her bum-hole and cunt were within a few inches of
|
|
my nose, she began; whilst Camille who knew what would fetch me better
|
|
than I knew myself, moved up her backside, so that I might grope her
|
|
more freely. The double cunt feeling, the suction and sight generally,
|
|
was too much for me, and the mouth soon drew my sperm with long
|
|
lingering and half painful pleasure. My tender-tipped prick suffered, as
|
|
it often did indeed when not in the proper receptacle.
|
|
|
|
The act made some impression on me, for I soon after had it repeated by
|
|
the same woman, and she did it that time so that I saw the prick in her
|
|
mouth. I expect it upset me instead of giving me pleasure, for I stopped
|
|
her, and my doodle dropped; but I permitted her to recommence; then I
|
|
felt something press my arse-hole, it tickled and hurt me, I called out,
|
|
"What are you doing?" at the same instant spent. "What have you done?"
|
|
said I. "Nothing," said she winking at me, for Camille was in the room.
|
|
I did not like the business; she had shoved her finger or thumb up my
|
|
bum-hole. I was too young to appreciate that luxury, took a horror at
|
|
her, and never would have her again, nor would I have my prick sucked
|
|
any more. Many years elapsed before I either had my arse-hole felt or
|
|
felt a woman's, after that night.
|
|
|
|
Then I had an old woman. Those she had brought me had mostly dark-haired
|
|
cunts, and her own was black. As cunt was an inexhaustable subject with
|
|
me, we were always talking about it. She said she knew a woman whose
|
|
hair was quite grey. "Is she very old?" "No not above fifty." That was
|
|
older than my mother, and I could not think of it; but the conversation
|
|
was renewed. "She has got as much hair as me, but quite grey, nearly
|
|
white, and she is a nice clean woman; have us both, and you can see
|
|
the black and white together." So a fattish middle-aged woman certainly
|
|
fifty and who seemed to me sixty, came; her hair was nearly white,
|
|
Camille lent her stockings and chemise to make her decent I suppose, and
|
|
the old woman who spoke scarcely a word, but drank furiously, turned up
|
|
to me. She made some objection to showing her grummit, remarking she did
|
|
not know it was to such a young man, but being told if she did not, she
|
|
might go without pay, the sight came off; the cunt-fringe was nearly
|
|
white. She was an English woman. Camille suggested I should have her;
|
|
the old woman demurred, but Camille settled (and I really used to do
|
|
almost what she advised), that I should have her and look at the grey
|
|
cunt at the same time. So it came about; but when half up to spunking
|
|
time, Camille said, "Take it out of me and put it into her." When a
|
|
prick stands and novelty is in the way it rushes at it. Out I pulled
|
|
my prick, and put it up the grey cunt, spent in it, and pulled it out
|
|
almost before I had finished. I never saw the old lady again.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIV.
|
|
|
|
Piddlings.--Posturings.--Breast and arm-pit.--A turn over.--
|
|
Used up.--Wanting a virgin.--Camille departs.--The Major's
|
|
opinion.--Camille returns.--Louise.
|
|
|
|
I have told the most novel fucking bouts I had with, or through Camille,
|
|
excepting the final one; but should say that whatever women she got me
|
|
I turned to her with pleasure again. Sometimes when I had one or two to
|
|
amuse me, I used to give her the preference for the fuck, and she
|
|
always had one of the gruellings, for she was very handsome, understood
|
|
everything, was sensuousness itself, but not vulgar. When I had a fit
|
|
of extra lewdness she got me other women. Of course she got profit out
|
|
of all, a thing I knew nothing about then. Often I had no want but for
|
|
her, and she used to strip herself, or dress just as I wished, put her
|
|
body into some attitude, then lay and read the paper whilst I used to
|
|
sit and read as well, looking up from time to time at her. Then I would
|
|
put her in a new attitude, and go on so for a time; then would make her
|
|
piss, catch it in the pot, piss at the same time in it, stick a dildo up
|
|
her cunt, and have every variety of amusement I could think of. She was
|
|
always willing, never in a hurry, never refused. A charming harlot.
|
|
|
|
Making her piss was a favorite amusement with me, I would keep her a
|
|
whole day without doing it, so that I might have a good long stream out
|
|
of her when looking on.
|
|
|
|
I was most curious about the way a cunt opened and shut in squatting. It
|
|
was the subject of my earnest investigation. I used to put two chairs
|
|
so that they would not slip, nearly close together, and lay down with my
|
|
head between them. Then Camille naked all but boots and stockings would
|
|
stand up on the chairs, one foot on each; the legs naturally a little
|
|
open as the chairs were a little apart, just disclosed the cunt. Then
|
|
she would sit down slowly, so that I could gradually see the gap widen,
|
|
the red nymphoe show, the clitoris jut out, and at length the whole
|
|
cunt-gape ready for the piss. Then she would rise slowly and repeat it
|
|
till I was tired; then still laying down I used to hold a large basin on
|
|
my breast and belly, and squatting above my head she would piss into the
|
|
basin. I would feel the cunt, and if very wet, dry it. In all this she
|
|
was obedience itself; she never moved from one posture till I told her
|
|
to get to another, would answer any question with frankness.
|
|
|
|
I have never lost this pleasure in seeing a woman piss, but at that time
|
|
was too impatient to vary the amusements which a man and a woman can
|
|
have with their piddle. It was reserved to me with other women, notably
|
|
a French woman named Gabriell, and Sarah F--r, to have the fullest
|
|
variety and enjoyment in that particular.
|
|
|
|
I had fucked Camille in every way excepting her arse-hole, I had spent
|
|
between her bum-cheeks, but without the slightest intention of invading
|
|
the bum-hole between them,--indeed then had a great dislike to looking
|
|
at a woman's arse-hole. At last fucked her arm-pits; she had a splendid
|
|
arm, and an unusually large quantity of black hair beneath it which
|
|
I much admired. One day she was poorly, I began fucking between her
|
|
breasts, she suggested another woman, I would not have one; from her
|
|
breasts I got to shoving between her arm and her breasts; then she
|
|
wetted her arm-pit with Castile soap, which is of a soft slimy nature,
|
|
and I fucked and spent between it. After a time we improved on this; she
|
|
would lie in a convenient posture, I would lay a sheet of clean white
|
|
paper on the bed, and just as I was coming, protrude the tip of my
|
|
prick so as to free the pit, and shoot my spunk on to the sheet of white
|
|
paper; or would catch the spunk in my own hand, and before my frensy of
|
|
pleasure was over rub it on her cunt, then fling myself on the bed and
|
|
go to sleep.
|
|
|
|
I used to have her at the side of the bed with her bum towards me; then
|
|
she would gradually twist herself round, and cocking one leg over my
|
|
head, get herself with her back on the bed without uncunting my prick.
|
|
This had to be done very gradually, for a jerk, and my prick used to
|
|
slip out. I used to bet with her about this, and she generally managed
|
|
to twist round and win. "Now push,--keep it well in,--hold on, I am
|
|
going to lift my leg," she would cry at the difficult point, which was
|
|
when she had got her bum sideways to me, and was about to lift her leg;
|
|
then putting my hands well on her hips, I used to draw my belly to her,
|
|
and prick into her, as tightly as I could, whilst she gradually raised
|
|
a leg, and pressing her bum up to meet my pressure, gradually got on to
|
|
her back, with her limbs in a natural easy posture on either side of my
|
|
hips. By that time I had got steam well up, and a shove or two usually
|
|
let me off.
|
|
|
|
At last having done as great a variety of ballocking, and learn more
|
|
baudiness than most men of my age, I was knocked up, fucked out. My
|
|
mother with whom I still nominally lived, was in despair. My guardian
|
|
alarmed at the rate I was spending my money remonstrated, so I left
|
|
Camille and her bevy of women, and went to the sea-side. There I
|
|
renovated, and then spent my time on the sands, trying to see the women
|
|
in the water. As I grew better my randiness returned, I got hold of gay
|
|
women, but my old timidity clung to me, I used to pay them to piss, and
|
|
had a grope up them; but do not recollect having anything more. I came
|
|
back to London, and for two or three days afterwards Camill's cunt had
|
|
no rest. Then I temporarily got into another servant, and ceased to see
|
|
Camille much. She tried all sorts of inducements to continue it on the
|
|
old footing.
|
|
|
|
Then although she knew every incident of my life, she took to asking
|
|
if I had ever had a virgin, saying, "Are you sure, did you see her cunt
|
|
before you had her? Would you not like one again, if I can get you one,
|
|
a young virgin French girl, one sure to be a virgin?"--and so on until
|
|
she made me doubt if I had ever had one. At last I thought that I should
|
|
like to have another. Well, she could get me a young French girl, but
|
|
would have to go to France, it would cost a large sum of money. This
|
|
talk went on for some time, and little by little I agreed to give her
|
|
fifty pounds to pay her journey, and also to keep her lodgings on. She
|
|
postponed the journey for a long time, but at length she went. She made
|
|
me promise to do something for the girl besides paying her,--which meant
|
|
something or nothing,--but I promised to pay the journey of the virgin
|
|
back to France, should she want to go; and also whenever I had the girl,
|
|
to pay Camille a "Victoria," "because," said she, "you will have my
|
|
rooms and prevent my bringing friends home."
|
|
|
|
So I came down with fifty pounds. Off she went in quiet dress, and
|
|
looked a quiet lady or middle-class woman. She advised me to keep myself
|
|
steady, and the very moment before she left, whilst the cab was at the
|
|
door, I turned her with bonnet and travelling dress on, bum outwards,
|
|
and fucked her; she hurrying me all the time for fear she should loose
|
|
the coach, she had not time to piss, or wipe or wash. "It will give me
|
|
good fortune perhaps," said she laughing, "or make you wish me back, it
|
|
is lucky for me."
|
|
|
|
There was but a slow rail to Dover then, nothing but tidal boats, and
|
|
to Paris, the way I thought she was going, no rail at all, and it was
|
|
a long journey. Whether she went to Paris or not I don't know, but from
|
|
later experience think not, that she was a Southern woman, and went
|
|
straight home. She was to be back in a month. It came, but not she;
|
|
another week, another, and I began to think I had been sold; another,
|
|
and I gave her up altogether, and experienced a little relief, for the
|
|
habit of seeing her had so got hold of me, that I could not shake it
|
|
off, and yet I was tired of her, but I wanted the virgin.
|
|
|
|
There was a middle-aged man with whom I chummed much at my Club, a major
|
|
retired, and a most debauched individual. He borrowed money of me, and
|
|
did not repay it. His freedom of talk about women made him much liked by
|
|
the younger men; the older said it was discreditable to help younger men
|
|
to ruin. Ordinarily very careful how I spoke about women ( for my loves
|
|
having lain much in my mother's house, caution had become habitual to
|
|
me). I one night talked about virgins and of getting them. He said such
|
|
things were done; that Harridans got a young lass, if well paid for it,
|
|
but that they generally sold the girls half-a-dozen times over, "and,"
|
|
said he, "they train the young bitches so, there is no finding them out;
|
|
you may pay for one who was first fucked by a butcher boy, and then her
|
|
virginity sold to a dandy; you may pay for it my boy, and not find
|
|
out you have been done." I pondered much over this, and the next night
|
|
returned to the subject. His opinion was that an old stager like him was
|
|
not to be done; but that any randy young beggar would go up the girl,
|
|
and flatter himself he had had a virgin, if the girl was cunning. "When
|
|
you see the tight covered hole with your eye, find it tight to your
|
|
little finger, and then tight to your cock, my boy; when you have
|
|
satisfied your eye, your finger, and your cucumber, and seen blood on
|
|
it, you may be sure you have had one,--and not otherwise."
|
|
|
|
Thought I, "I am going to be humbugged." Another week, no letter, I went
|
|
to her lodings, and found she had taken away everything she had with
|
|
her. That night I told a little of my hopes to the Major, not telling
|
|
him who the kind lady was, or where she was gone; but it made him laugh.
|
|
"You are done brown my boy, done brown; that woman will never turn up
|
|
again." He joked me so, that I avoided him, and kept the subject to
|
|
myself afterwards.
|
|
|
|
Again to the lodgings; the landlady could not keep them vacant any
|
|
longer; I paid the rent, but she got no parquisites, I increased the
|
|
allowance. Then again I went; the landlady said she did not expect to
|
|
see her again. I had now set my heart on having this virgin; ten weeks
|
|
nearly had gone; I said if Camille was not back next week she might
|
|
let the rooms. It passed; a bill was put up in the window, and the next
|
|
morning calling as a forlorn hope, there was a letter for me,--she would
|
|
be back in a week. I was in a state of excitement that week, and kept
|
|
myself chaste, with the idea of the virgin cunt, and Camille's well
|
|
paced roger-ing in anticipation.
|
|
|
|
The day came. I was so impatient, that I was there quite early; she
|
|
arrived some hours earlier than she had said, and seemed surprised at
|
|
finding me; my impression is that she did not want me to be there when
|
|
she came back. She came in a hackney-coach; a stoutish full-sized young
|
|
woman with a funny bonnet and long cloak on, got out of the coach with
|
|
her, and in a free-and-easy way helped the things upstairs. She called
|
|
her Louise. The wench put down a big box, and on my turning round after
|
|
giving Camille a kiss, I saw she had seated herself on it, and hands on
|
|
her knees was looking at me. "Uncord the box," said Camille. Said the
|
|
girl, "I am tired." She uncorded it, again sitting down, and looking at
|
|
me said, "Is that your young man?--he's a good-looking fellow." Camille
|
|
told her to hold her tongue, to go on unpacking, and that I understood
|
|
French, eying her at the same time in a savage way, and looking at me at
|
|
times very uneasily. She was a rough sort of girl, she said, a relative
|
|
of a friend of hers, had come as her servant, and in a short time would
|
|
understand her place; smiling at me in a knowing way as she said that.
|
|
Camille always addressed her servant in French, me in English; but I
|
|
understood French tolerably well.
|
|
|
|
Louise did as she was told, but bounced about in an independent way,
|
|
threw off her cloak and bonnet, and putting her hands on her hips stared
|
|
at me again. I stared at her, thinking of the virginity I was destined
|
|
to break up. Certainly she was appetizing; her cloak off showed a thick
|
|
woolen dress of dark brown striped with blue, a fine big figure, a
|
|
couple of big breasts; her arms naked nearly to her shoulders, as
|
|
French peasants usually wore them, were large, fleshy, and brown; the
|
|
petticoats were half-way up to her knees, and showed the thickest woolen
|
|
black stockings on a stout pair of legs, and feet in thick shoes with
|
|
brass buckles; she had immense gilt earrings, and was in fact in the
|
|
dress of a Bordeaux peasant woman.
|
|
|
|
I did nothing but stare at her, Camille nothing but scold her, talking
|
|
to me at intervals. The girl got the boxes ready for opening, then
|
|
walked about, taking up poker and tongs, chimney ornaments and
|
|
everything in the room with curiosity. Camille and I had so much to
|
|
say, that we took little notice of her; then she threw up the window and
|
|
looked out. As she bent forward her short petticoats showed her legs
|
|
up to her knee-backs; Camille was about to stop her looking out, when
|
|
I winked, and stooping saw a thick roll of stockings just beneath the
|
|
knees, and the flesh just above. Camille understood. "Madame, madame,"
|
|
said the girl, "come here, here is fun." I heard Punch squeaking in the
|
|
streets; she was delighted; her mistress went to the window giving me a
|
|
knowing look, and looking out of the window with the girl, put her hands
|
|
over the girl's petticoats and lifted them slightly. Louise took no heed
|
|
of this being so engrossed with Punch; I dropped on my knees and saw
|
|
half-way up the girl's thighs. I had been chaste for a few weeks, or
|
|
nearly so, the sight of Camille had fired me, the thighs finished me; I
|
|
shoved my hands up Camille's petticoats on to her arse, got her into
|
|
her bed-room, and with her clothes in a lump on her belly, drove up my
|
|
prick, spending directly I got up her cunt.
|
|
|
|
With half my spendings outside, half inside I lay with throbbing prick,
|
|
which only came out when it had spent again. Camille vowed she had not
|
|
had a man for weeks, and took it out of me, perhaps fearing if I went
|
|
away with stiffening left, some other cunt would take it out. The
|
|
ballocking over I went home.
|
|
|
|
I was early there the next day; Louise had been installed in the little
|
|
room leading out of the sitting-room. Camille told me a great deal about
|
|
the distance she had gone, and the trouble and expense she had been put
|
|
to in getting the girl's relatives to let her come; she hoped I would
|
|
pay the additional expenses; and that I did at a cost of about twenty
|
|
pounds. What with that and paying for her journey, and for lodgings
|
|
while absent, Louise had cost me nearly ninety pounds already. Then I
|
|
undertook to pay for the additional room, in which a bed having been
|
|
put, an extra was charged; cooking now being done downstairs. Then
|
|
Louise must have a new gown; then Camille thought I ought to give her
|
|
something for herself, because whilst away for me she had made no money.
|
|
That I refused and blazed up about it; for all that agreed to pay for a
|
|
new silk dress for her, and a lot of little odds and ends on the second
|
|
day of Camille's return, for all of which outlays I had only had a peep
|
|
up the girl's petticoats.
|
|
|
|
Then I had a talk about her. The girl was the daughter of a small
|
|
grape-grower, a friend of Camille's; they thought Camille was in London
|
|
as a dressmaker, making a lot of money, because she sent money home to
|
|
her father. Camille offered to take her, saying she would be sure to get
|
|
on, if not in one way, then in another; that good-looking girls always
|
|
did well in London. The girl was mad to come, and persuaded her parents
|
|
to let her do so; believing that Camille got her living honestly; she
|
|
was to be her servant until she could be put in the way of doing well.
|
|
|
|
"What are you going to tell her now? what are you going to do with her?
|
|
what will she say when she finds out?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
Camille did not know. The girl would find out, and then she must excuse
|
|
herself as well as she could, would say it was better, and jollier, and
|
|
more money making than to make dresses. Besides, the girl could not help
|
|
herself, and would have to make the best of it.
|
|
|
|
When was I to have her? I asked. As soon as I could get her; there she
|
|
was, and I might try when and how I liked; help me more she could not,
|
|
she could not insist on Louise letting me; but no doubt she would in
|
|
time, no one else should have her.
|
|
|
|
I was not so sure of that. Camille was gay, and although I had for more
|
|
than a year excluded most men from the house, yet she did have other
|
|
men there, and I knew they would see the girl, might like her, might pay
|
|
Camille; all the remarks of the retired major came strongly before me,
|
|
and I thought I was going to be sold, and said so.
|
|
|
|
She replied that I was not; she would leave me with the girl when I
|
|
liked; if the girl spoke to her she would advise her to let me, but
|
|
would have nothing to do with influencing her beyond that; and when the
|
|
event came off, she meant to be out, so that Louise's friends could not
|
|
say anything. If she went gay it was no fault of hers, young women would
|
|
have it done to them, it was natural. That was the game she meant to
|
|
play.
|
|
|
|
I saw that I had paid her only for bringing a girl, and must take my
|
|
chance of getting into her; all she would do was to keep the coast
|
|
clear. I don't know what I really did expect Camille to do, but think
|
|
I imagined that she would have got the girl in bed with her some night,
|
|
let me get into bed with them, and helped to make her fuck, if she would
|
|
not. This was dissipated, I was to have the chance I should have had
|
|
with a servant in my mother's house, or less, for this girl I should not
|
|
see so often, and could not be sure she would be so well looked after.
|
|
|
|
So Camille went out, leaving me alone with the servant whenever I
|
|
wished. I expect she went with other men at houses of friends, and so
|
|
got her time paid for twice over, and made a good thing of it; perhaps
|
|
she thought, the longer this lasted the better it would be for her. I
|
|
think now that that was her game.
|
|
|
|
|
|
FINIS VOLUME ONE
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
VOLUME TWO
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CONTENTS.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER I.--Louise sapped.--Suspicions.--Lectures on virginity with live
|
|
illustrations.--Drugged for inspection.--Camille's hesitation.--Absents
|
|
herself.--The house in G.. d. n s.... e.--Baudy prints.--A feel, a
|
|
sniff, and a kiss.--Out shopping.--Garters.--Dinner, and after.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER II.--Undressing.--Silk stockings and garters.--The
|
|
attack.--Foiled on the outside.--A battery.--A breech.--A tough
|
|
virginity.--Triumphant.--Sanguinary proofs.--The second entry.--My
|
|
foreskin.--Twenty-four hours fucking.--Gamahuching.--Six days
|
|
pleasure.--Camille returns.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER III.--Camille at home.--Her little game.--My greenness.--The
|
|
house in O.. d. n street.--The glove-shop.--Louise fatigues me.--Fred
|
|
on the scent.--A cigar-shop.--Three into one.--A clap.--Serious
|
|
reflexions.--The sisters disappear.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IV.--Enforced chastity.--A stricture.--Health restored.--Mrs.
|
|
Pender.--A peep from a hay-stack.--In a cowhouse.---Stable and
|
|
barn.--Mother's satisfaction.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER V.--Aunt at the dairy.--Morning amusements with Pender.--Female
|
|
haymakers.--Mrs. Whiteteeth.--An exhibition of cock.--Against a field
|
|
gate.--A night on the grass.--A sight from the barn-loft.--Robert the
|
|
page.--Molly.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VI.--Joey and nursemaid.--The privy in the
|
|
laurel-walk.--Scared.--Whiteteeth in the ditch.--The nursemaid's
|
|
bed-room.--Robert amusing her.--A lost virginity.--Aunt and
|
|
Joey.--Nearly caught.--Amatory instructions to nursemaid.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VII.--Molly and Giles.--A country ale-house.--Pender's
|
|
history.--How her virginity was taken.--White-teeth's ailment.--Molly in
|
|
the loft.--Interrupted.--Molly tailed.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VIII.--Field-women.--Fred at home.--Smith, the field-foreman.--A
|
|
rape of a juvenile.--Fucking consequences.--Nelly consents.--Fred looks
|
|
on.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IX.--Laura and Fred.--Vauxhall amusements.--A juvenile
|
|
harlot.--A linen stopper.--The hairless and the hairy.--Ten and
|
|
forty.--A snub.--At my aunt's.--Nursemaid and page missing.--Pender with
|
|
child.--Molly and Giles caught.--Mr. Pendler's letch.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER X.--Nelly and Sophy.--The beer-house again.--Sophy's belly.--On
|
|
the road.--Against a tree.--At the baudy house with Sophy.--Her
|
|
narrative. Tom and the three sisters.--Fred on the scent.--Pendler's
|
|
troubles.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XI.--Out shooting.--A female carter.--A feel in the
|
|
train.--Molly in London.--Giles in town.--Fred on the scene.--Molly at
|
|
the Hall.--Copulation in uniform.--A sham illness.--An afternoon with
|
|
Molly.--She turns harlot.--Gets clapped.--Her baby.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XII.--Nelly and Sophy.--Nelly at the Argyle.--In town
|
|
with Fred.--On the sofa with Mabel.--The effect of black
|
|
stockings.--Interference.--In bed.--Mabel's bad habits.--A ladies'
|
|
school.--The bath-room.--My cousins naked.--Marie the curate's
|
|
wife.--Cunt inspections.--Servants washing.--Flat-fucking.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIII.--Fred on flat-fucking.--In town with Laura.--Back at
|
|
the school.--Pictures for young ladies.--Fred's ankle.--Mrs. Maria's
|
|
weakness.--To London alone.--Laura and Mabel.--Three in a bed.--A risky
|
|
poke.--Groping for the pot.--Nearly caught.--Fred joins us.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIV.--My cousin at home.--Pender's belly.--A lawyer's
|
|
letter.--Action for crim-con threatened.--Suspicions.--A
|
|
compensation.--The Penders leave.--Wholesale whorings.--A frolic at Lord
|
|
A...'s.--After dinner.--Newspaper readings.--A strange rape.--Bets
|
|
on pricks.--Pricks felt.--Fred on his head.--Beds on the
|
|
floor.--Free-fucking.--End of the orgie.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XV.--Morning headaches.--An indignant housekeeper.--A
|
|
saucy valet.--Consequences.--Fred leaves England.--Lady A... 's
|
|
invitation.--Laura a widow.--Farewell Laura.--Adieu Mabel.--My
|
|
guardian's remonstrances.--Parental advice.--Ruined.--Reflexions.--My
|
|
relations.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XVI.--Married, and miserable.--Virtuous
|
|
intentions.--Consequences.--Mary Davis--A virtuous child.--Low-class
|
|
fucksters.--A concupiscent landlady.--Reflexions on my career.--the
|
|
sizes of pricks.--My misconception.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XVII.--Irish Kate.--Drink, heat, fleas, and French letters.--The
|
|
bricklayer afterwards.--I give luck.--The lost breast-pin.--The
|
|
cholera's victim.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XVIII.--Costermonger's children.--A small girl, mother, and
|
|
mangle.--A French letter fetched.--Young Callow's exploits.--The
|
|
customers' linen.--A hard-fleshed bum.--Invitation to anus.--A strange
|
|
letch.--One big with child.--Fucked for a sovereign, and pleasure.--A
|
|
Creole.--My misery.--Reflexions.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIX.--My home life.--Heartbroken.--In the parlour.--Maid Mary's
|
|
sympathy.--Don't cry Master.--On the sofa.--Both in lust.--Impotent.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XX.--The next day.--On the door-mat.--On the sofa.--On her
|
|
belly.--Eight hours fucking.--At a brothel.--An afternoon's amusement.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXI.--Preliminary.--Mary's
|
|
seduction.--Flight.--Desertion.--Going to the post-office.--A halfpenny
|
|
signal.--Against an arm chair.--The privy watched.--Nearly caught.--Mary
|
|
suspected.--Dismissed.--In lodgings.--Service again.--My cousin
|
|
sir.--Letters lost.--Mary disappears.--Seven years afterwards.--Sequel.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER I.
|
|
|
|
Louise sapped.--Suspicions.--Lectures on virginity with live
|
|
illustrations.--Drugged for inspection.--Camille's
|
|
hesitation.--Absents herself.--The house in G..d.n Sq..e.--
|
|
Baudy prints.--A feel, a sniff and a kiss.--Out shopping.--
|
|
Garters.--Dinner and after.
|
|
|
|
I went to work to get into Louise, having no compunctions, it seemed to
|
|
me the most natural thing in the world. I had read about the naughtiness
|
|
of seduction, but my associates had taught me, that every girl wanted
|
|
fucking, and was longing secretly for it, high, or low, rich or poor, it
|
|
was the same. As to servants, and women of the humbler class, that they
|
|
all took cock on the quiet, and were proud of having a gentleman to
|
|
cover them. Such was the opinion of men in my class of life and of my
|
|
age. My experience with my mother's servants corroborated it; and so to
|
|
get into Louise seemed both natural and proper.
|
|
|
|
I suppose there is but one way ordinarily of beginning with a woman.
|
|
A man must first make himself agreeable, then successively familiar,
|
|
endearing, coaxing, loose, bold, baudy, determined, then if needs be
|
|
fierce, or even violent. This order comes naturally to man cunt-hunting,
|
|
and ends in fucking. It does not follow that if the early stages pass
|
|
easily, that the last shall ensure success. Occasionally the woman is
|
|
scared, put on her guard against herself, and the man, and the chance is
|
|
lost.
|
|
|
|
This course had become familiar to me at home, and I began. No person in
|
|
the house except Camille and Madame Boileau spoke French; there was no
|
|
other to speak at all, so my conversation was acceptable. At the end of
|
|
a week I had kissed her to her contentment. No strong, healthy woman of
|
|
eighteen is otherwise than gratified by the kisses of a young man. Money
|
|
I knew now told much, and I gave to her who had never perhaps had five
|
|
shillings to call her own. She gave me a kiss in the dark passage, I
|
|
hugged her and pushed outside at her cunt, she ran upstairs angry, but
|
|
had forgot it the next day.
|
|
|
|
Looking at her and longing used to make me randy, then if near,
|
|
Camille's cunt got the benefit of it. The girl used to eye us when we
|
|
went into the bed-room. She had a quarrel with her mistress, and said
|
|
she should go home. Camille said she might; but speaking only French,
|
|
and without money, how could she? Just then, through change of climate
|
|
and living, she fell ill.
|
|
|
|
We were very kind to her. I got her everything. When asleep one day,
|
|
Camille partly uncovered her, and showed me her limbs naked; they were
|
|
so fine, and so excited me, that but for Camille, I think I should have
|
|
ravished her. She soon got well, and I said, that if I did not soon have
|
|
her, I should cease seeing her. "Who hindered?" Camille asked. There she
|
|
was, I might have her.
|
|
|
|
Then I had a suspicious fit. All the old Major had told me about fellows
|
|
being sold, and taken in by women who were not virgins came to my mind.
|
|
The girl was never out but for a few minutes at a time to fetch things,
|
|
yet other men saw Camille, and some might have seen and had the girl.
|
|
Camille had once taken her out in a cab; she might have been to some
|
|
man's. So I said I would not give the money unless I saw her virgin cunt
|
|
first. After a day or two, Camille agreed to it if I would give her ten
|
|
pounds down, and would swear never to disclose it to the girl.
|
|
|
|
I thought still I was to be fooled, so I called upon my old
|
|
schoolfellow, who used to say, "Snatch at her cunt, and show her your
|
|
cucumber." He had been one at the frigging match, and had just been
|
|
appointed assistant-surgeon at a hospital; he was a bachelor and
|
|
baudy-minded as ever. "M...," said I, "have you ever seen a virginity?"
|
|
"Many," he replied, "I have dissected them, and if girls have anything
|
|
the matter with their wombs, or cunts, we get a look, they don't mind a
|
|
doctor. If a girl has piles, I make her turn up, and have opened several
|
|
fine women's virgin cunts, asking questions all the while, if they feel
|
|
this or feel that. They say yes or no, which of course I knew they
|
|
would say, but they think I am very clever for asking. Some like a
|
|
young doctor's fingers on their privates, though they say they object.
|
|
Assistants only get the chance with the poor, the better classes have
|
|
older married men."
|
|
|
|
I asked him to explain one to me on a woman, and he did. We went home
|
|
with the same women; they were astonished, for instead of pulling our
|
|
pricks out, we both merely felt and looked at them, and he gave me a
|
|
full lecture. It was an odd sight to see him explaining the situation of
|
|
a virginity, I holding a candle to see better. One of the girls roared
|
|
with laughter, the others fancied they had some ailments, when they
|
|
found out he was a doctor, and he gave them advice.
|
|
|
|
I don't mean ailments of their cunts. We did not fuck either of the
|
|
women.
|
|
|
|
From reading, his descriptions, his sketches and what he pointed out on
|
|
three different cunts, I felt satisfied that I should know a virgin, and
|
|
told Camille what I had done. She was then good enough to point out to
|
|
me on her own cunt, where her virginity had been, as far as she could
|
|
recollect it. She was quite sure about Louise, and explained that girls
|
|
being with their parents in France were well watched; that the loose
|
|
pricks about a town were all taken by the married women,--which I did
|
|
not believe.
|
|
|
|
One night I was to see it, I waited for a signal from a window, of two
|
|
lights, rushed across the road and was let in by Camille. We went into
|
|
Louise's bedroom. There the girl lay in her night-dress on the bed,
|
|
insensible. "We must be quick," said Camille. Then she threw the girl's
|
|
clothes rapidly up above her naval, gently pulled apart her legs, and
|
|
held open the lips of the girl's cunt. It was such as had been described
|
|
to me. My excitement was fearful. She was a splendid limbed woman,
|
|
looked twenty-five instead of eighteen years old. Her cunt-hair
|
|
jet-black, crisp and thick as on a negress' head, grew up her mens and
|
|
down besides the lips. The vermillion stripe in the midst of it was
|
|
enough to drive any man mad. I put out my hand to touch it, but Camille
|
|
pulled it back. "No, no," she said in a suppressed voice, "you must go,
|
|
you promised me." "Let me fuck then." "No, go at once." She pulled me
|
|
towards the door, the girl was breathing heavily. Wild with lust, I
|
|
pulled out my prick. "Come away, you promised, she must see neither of
|
|
us." "One look more then." Again Camille opened the cunt-lips.
|
|
|
|
As she did so, Louise gave a groan, and turned round on one side opening
|
|
her eyes wide. Camille blew out the light, and pulled me into the
|
|
sitting-room. "You must go," she said. I wanted to fuck her, but she
|
|
would not let me.
|
|
|
|
I met a woman in Regent street, it was raining hard. Much as I still
|
|
hesitated at going with strange, gay women, I went home with her, threw
|
|
her down with her clothes on. The instant I saw her cunt, and almost
|
|
before I could get my prick out I spent over her bum and thighs. She
|
|
remarked, "You did want it, and no mistake." I left, got down to the
|
|
Italian Opera. Crowds of women walked under the Colonade, they often
|
|
then wore low dresses walking. I went to a baudy house with one, and
|
|
fucked her thinking of the black-haired motte and lips between the
|
|
thighs of the unconscious Louise.
|
|
|
|
I never knew what Camille had given the girl. She said she had made her
|
|
drunk with champagne. Louise on a subsequent day said she had got drunk
|
|
with champagne, but she never knew that I had seen her on that night.
|
|
I believe that something else had been given to her to make her
|
|
insensible. There was a convulsive movement in her body as she turned
|
|
round; her limbs before she did so seemed dead, her breathing resembled
|
|
a groan, her breast heaved distressingly, she opened her eyes, but saw
|
|
nothing. The more I reflected, the less I understood the agitation of
|
|
Camille, who usually was so calm.
|
|
|
|
I had seen the girl's virgin cunt, and recollect the look of pussy,
|
|
belly, thighs, and slit. The cunt-hole as I held the candle near it
|
|
seemed to be covered, excepting a little perforation just big enough
|
|
to put a little finger through, corresponding with my surgical friend's
|
|
description; yet I seemed to have less recollection of it than of all
|
|
the rest of her body. It was confused, strange, like the remains of a
|
|
dream on my mind. So much had suspicion taken possession of me, that I
|
|
was by no means now sure I was not being done. I paid Camille the ten
|
|
pounds. When she had got them, she said she expected the fifty pounds
|
|
all the same, that the cunt inspection was a preliminary she had not
|
|
bargained for. I thought I was being cheated, and said so. We had a
|
|
row, but such a fool was I, so much desire had I to get into this
|
|
girl,--simply because she was a virgin,--that at last I agreed to it.
|
|
|
|
The girl could not get up the next day. I saw her in her bed by
|
|
myself; she said she had been ill through eating something, and had had
|
|
champagne. I caressed her, and in spite of her struggles, got my hands
|
|
on her breasts and half-way down her belly, spoke baudy, pulled out my
|
|
prick, was repulsed, and gave her a sovereign. Camille came back and
|
|
I fucked her. I recollect telling Camille, that there was a wonderful
|
|
likeness in face, colour of hair, eyes, limbs, and even in cunt, between
|
|
her and her servant. Camille laughed and said, the two families had
|
|
always been thought to be much alike, and were related.
|
|
|
|
Louise became inquisitive about my intimacy with Camille. "Was I her
|
|
lover? Was I fond of her?" "Yes I had been, but was not now." "Why did I
|
|
come there?" "To see you, my dear."
|
|
|
|
When Louise first arrived Camille was particular in not exposing her own
|
|
legs or breast to me. Before that she used in warm weather to be with
|
|
naked breasts, a chemise and slippers often being her only garments. Now
|
|
she got into slipshot dressing again, and began to talk baudy. She had
|
|
told Louise how she got her living, and talked about making money by
|
|
fucking, so she told me; but she would not let me take any liberties
|
|
with her before Louise. She went out leaving me alone with her, taking
|
|
my money when she returned. It is a wonder to me now how I stood all
|
|
this, felt I was being humbugged, played with, and yet things went on as
|
|
I describe. Three weeks had elapsed, or more, and yet I had never felt
|
|
Louise's cunt. So I told Camille she was humbugging me. Louise got funny
|
|
in her behaviour to Camille, said she would or wouldn't, and one day
|
|
they had a quarrel, in which Louise insolently remarked about something
|
|
she wanted, that Camille would do well not to show the point of her nose
|
|
in the village any more. When alone I said to Camille, I was not to
|
|
have the girl I supposed. Who hindered me? "Help me." "How?" Being in
|
|
a blackguard humour I said, "Make her drunk, and then I will have her."
|
|
No, it should never be said that that happened in her rooms; if a woman
|
|
let a man of her own free will, well and good; if he got into her fair
|
|
and square, good; a woman might do what she liked,--it was natural to
|
|
have a man;--if Louise liked it, it was not her business; but she would
|
|
not have her made drunk.
|
|
|
|
I said she was always in the way. She said she must live there. "You
|
|
would like me to go out of town for a fortnight." Said I, "That is the
|
|
best thing you can do." She said she could not.
|
|
|
|
I insisted, and at length she agreed to go for ten days, I paying her I
|
|
think fifteen pounds for her lodgings. Off she went, and I dare say went
|
|
to a friend's close by, I never knew. She said she was sorry she had
|
|
brought the girl to London. Louise was not to know that I was aware of
|
|
her departure. The last words she said to me were, "I suppose when you
|
|
have her you will leave me." I replied I had no such intention, nor had
|
|
I; but a gay woman is a good judge of the future.
|
|
|
|
I must now describe the lodgings more closely. The ground-floor was
|
|
occupied by a cloth merchant; there was no shop, but in the windows were
|
|
some bales of cloth, a brass name-plate was on the inner door, the
|
|
top of the house was the cloth-dealer's store. The man was rarely in
|
|
England, the entrance to the shop from the hall was always locked, and I
|
|
never saw more than one man enter it.
|
|
|
|
The first floor Camille had. On the second floor was a grumpy old woman
|
|
named Boileau; she took charge of the house. I scarcely ever saw the old
|
|
woman excepting when she opened the door, and then she neither spoke or
|
|
looked at me. Until Louise came, Camille had had a French servant. Some
|
|
years afterwards it turned out that the woolen shop was used by the
|
|
foreigners for forging foreign notes; the cloth business was but a mask.
|
|
Camille had been there two years.
|
|
|
|
Off Camille went. That same day I was at the house. Madame, Louise said,
|
|
had gone for ten days into the country, and had left word that no one
|
|
was to be let in. I went upstairs saying I should come when I liked,
|
|
that as Camille had gone, we could do as we liked. She looked hard at
|
|
me.
|
|
|
|
"I expect Madame has gone off with some man," said I, "she will get a
|
|
good lot of fucking." She had heard me talking baudy, and knew that word
|
|
in English and French. Then we had breakfast together, and I made love
|
|
to her.
|
|
|
|
Louise was as vain as a peacock, and excessively fond of her stomach.
|
|
When she had a glass of champagne, she used to swallow it as fast as
|
|
she could. This weakness and inclination in any woman places her at the
|
|
mercy of a man who will spend his money; and though I did not then see
|
|
the advantages of money as plainly as I see it now, I instinctively used
|
|
it.
|
|
|
|
"This is jolly," said I, "we will go and have dinner, then go to the
|
|
theatre, do what we like afterwards." Her eyes sparkled, but she feared
|
|
to go, for "Madame was such a demon when offended." "Who would know? The
|
|
people in the house would not know what we did," I replied.
|
|
|
|
It was yet only mid-day. "Nobody can interrupt us, let's have luncheon
|
|
here, I will get the wine." A french restaurateur sent in a hot luncheon.
|
|
I fetched champagne, then bethought myself of something which had not
|
|
occurred to me before.
|
|
|
|
Camille had as said a big album full of voluptuous pictures. When she
|
|
went to fetch Louise I asked her to leave it with me till her return.
|
|
She said, "I will pawn it to you for ten pounds." I lent that sum. Since
|
|
her return she had not asked for it, maybe thinking I would ask for my
|
|
ten pounds. I knew now well the effect of baudy pictures in exciting
|
|
lust, so I fetched it. We had luncheon and champagne, she laughed,.
|
|
talked, objected to sit down with me, but at last was thoroughly at home
|
|
with me, and for the first time talked freely of her mistress, whom
|
|
she feared. She disclosed a deal of simplicity and a very great deal of
|
|
vulgarity, for she was an utter vulgar peasant girl; but I didn't mind
|
|
anything to get up her cunt.
|
|
|
|
Good living heats the body and stimulates randi-ness; there is fifty
|
|
times as much danger in leaving a young couple together with their
|
|
stomachs full of good food, than when they are empty. A gentle heat, a
|
|
sense of fullness, a gentle swelling, creeps up the stem of the man's
|
|
prick, the knob feels tender and voluptuous; a gentle moisture distills
|
|
in the woman's cunt, heat and an alloverish feeling, from clitoris
|
|
to arse-hole overcomes her. Both are then ready for fucking, and only
|
|
restrained from going at it by various social reasons, which determine
|
|
our actions in every-day life. Such was our state when kissing and
|
|
laughing we put away the things. Then we sat side by side on the sofa,
|
|
with my arm round her waist.
|
|
|
|
I produced the book, which I had brought with me. I recollected how,
|
|
pouring over it with Sarah or Susan, the pictures in my "Fanny Hill"
|
|
used to throw them into a state of randiness which it was left me to
|
|
appease. Susan used to say, that she only had to look at the pictures
|
|
for a minute, to make her want "to forget herself." I took the book out
|
|
of the paper; it was a large square book, which immediately attracted
|
|
her attention. "What is that?" she asked. "Pictures." "Oh! show me."
|
|
"Come on then." She sat on my knee, I put my left arm round her waist.
|
|
"Give me a kiss." She gave it. "Now let me look." I had placed my right
|
|
hand on her thigh outside her clothes, and was thinking, what a nice
|
|
chance I had for throwing her back on the sofa, but I opened the first
|
|
page. It was a fine, large coloured print (how well I remember it) of
|
|
a bed-room. On the bed knelt two young women side by side, their
|
|
petticoats thrown over their backs, and showing their backsides to their
|
|
waists. Close by stood a middle-aged woman looking at them; through the
|
|
door were the heads of two men peeping at the posterings, lust was on
|
|
their faces. One of the girls had a much fatter bum than the other, both
|
|
cunts were visible, the hair of one black, the other, light. It was
|
|
a bet as to who had the handsomest posterior, the woman to decide was
|
|
saying, "Marie a gagne, ell a la plus vonde et la plus belle."
|
|
|
|
Louise gave a loud "oh!" as if taken by surprise, her face changed
|
|
blood-red, she turned the cover over and burst into a fit of laughter,
|
|
tried to get away from me, but I held her fast, so she put her head over
|
|
my shoulder and laughed, I laughing with her. "You have as nice a bum
|
|
as the dark one," said I. "There is nothing more like that, look through
|
|
it." I opened the book again; under her eyes was a picture of a woman
|
|
undressed, laying at the edge of the bed, her legs open, her middle
|
|
finger on her cunt; by her side a man with trowsers down, his prick out
|
|
stiff and crimson-tipped, one hand on the woman's thigh, and intensely
|
|
looking at her cunt.
|
|
|
|
"I want to do that with you," I said. "Fi donc! c'est villain," said
|
|
she, and pushed the book violently away. It fell on the floor, and at
|
|
the same instant she attempted to rise. I held her tightly, and pulling
|
|
her back on to the big sofa, her legs flying up, I threw up her clothes
|
|
in front, showing her fine pair of thighs, and the next minute I had
|
|
my mouth and nose buried in the hair, kissing and sniffing it, my hands
|
|
roving about wherever I could feel warm flesh.
|
|
|
|
With a shriek,--then another,--she twisted round (in doing so my nose
|
|
rubbed on her clitoris), her petticoats fell down, she got across the
|
|
room to her bedroom, and bolted the door.
|
|
|
|
I stood shouting, "What a beautiful form, what thighs, how dark the hair
|
|
on your cunt, how lovely my nose has rubbed on it; let me see it again,
|
|
let me fuck you, have pity on me." All that suggested itself to a
|
|
man whose prick was ready to discharge in his breeches did I say, but
|
|
fruitlessly, she made no reply. I went back to the sofa and considered
|
|
what to do. Soon I heard her moving, crept to the door, and heard the
|
|
rattle of piddle. "You're piddling out of that dear cunt," said I, "how
|
|
I wish I could feel it." The rattle stopped, and again I went back to
|
|
the sofa.
|
|
|
|
I had told her that I would take her out, and called to her to get
|
|
ready, she never answered. A few minutes afterwards I wanted to shit; it
|
|
was needful to go down-stairs into a yard. Thought I, "If she hears me
|
|
go down she will come out;--ah! if she does, there is the book, I wonder
|
|
if she will look at it." I opened it at a picture she had not seen,
|
|
tearing up little bits of newspaper, I placed them between adjoining
|
|
pages, so that if opened the bits must fall out, then said, "I am going
|
|
downstairs; if you won't go out, I will go without you."
|
|
|
|
I stayed at the shit-house some time, went up quietly, and heard her
|
|
door close as I went up the stairs. When I entered the room I looked at
|
|
the book; it was just as I had placed it, but two of the bits of paper
|
|
had dropped out. "Louise, Louise, you have been looking at the book."
|
|
"You lie," said she quickly. "You have, I put bits of paper in, and they
|
|
have fallen out, so you must have." "I have not," said she.
|
|
|
|
"I wanted to take you to see the shops, to the theatre, if you won't
|
|
answer I shall go alone, and dine alone." "I shan't come then." "Don't,"
|
|
said I in a huff, then went to Camille's bed-room and washed. "I am
|
|
going, will you come? In another minute I shall be gone without you".
|
|
|
|
"Will you promise not to be mechant" (the French term). "I have not been
|
|
wicked," said I. She was yielding; I knew she was wild to go out with
|
|
me. "Will you promise to leave off talking so." "Not for ever; how can
|
|
I when I have seen what I have." "I have no boots, only my thick shoes."
|
|
"Come in those." "Camille has left a pair they are too big, and there
|
|
is a hole in them." But it ended in her putting them on. Dressed, she
|
|
looked an odd mixture of a peasant and a servant, who had got on some
|
|
of her mistress' things. I was ashamed to walk out with her; she saw
|
|
something in the expression of my face which wounded her pride. "You
|
|
don't like walking out with me," she said, and sitting down big tears
|
|
came into her eyes, "but I am handsomer than Madame, my feet are smaller
|
|
although my leg is bigger; my shoes are shameful, she would not let me
|
|
have boots like hers, she said she would send me home; _she_ won't go
|
|
home again, if I tell them about her." Thus she jabbered on in a fume,
|
|
till she had exhausted herself, her pride wounded, excited much by
|
|
feasting, by the baudy book and my kiss on her cunt. She talked so fast
|
|
in her provincial French, that I could scarcely understand what she
|
|
said.
|
|
|
|
I did not care what I spent, so that I could spend up Louise. "I am
|
|
proud to walk with you, and I will buy you a pair of boots." She jumped
|
|
up with delight. "But you shall let me do one thing." "What?" "Let me
|
|
feel your leg, which you say is so big." "Volontiers," said she, "there
|
|
is no harm in feeling a leg; in my country our clothes only just come
|
|
below our knees," and so with joking, kissing, and a promise to let me
|
|
put the boots on, out we went in a cab.
|
|
|
|
I took her to a boot-maker's, and fitted her to perfection; she was
|
|
delighted, and in the cab did nothing but put up her feet to look at
|
|
them. She let me feel her legs, after she had pulled her petticoats
|
|
tight round the knee; I wanted to go higher, "No, no," she said; but I
|
|
pushed up, on to her thighs.
|
|
|
|
I bought her a bonnet, but it had to be altered and was to be sent home
|
|
in the evening; I got out of the cab and going into a shop without
|
|
her, bought (guessing the size) white silk stockings and showy garters,
|
|
without telling her. Then I bought her gloves, a collar, and one or two
|
|
other things, and then we went to dine.
|
|
|
|
As I bought each successive article I told my wants coarsely enough.
|
|
I felt her in the cab, and got so excited, that I pulled my cock out,
|
|
keeping it covered with my handkerchief, removing it from time to time
|
|
as I thought the sight of the cock would excite her. "The omnibus, the
|
|
omnibus" she cried out suddenly. Forgetting myself and all but my wants,
|
|
I had exposed my randy doodle just as an omnibus passed, and as I looked
|
|
up, there was the conductor laughing at me. I went to the N.... n
|
|
hotel, then just opened, and ordered a dinner; there the collars, cuffs,
|
|
gloves, and other things, she fitted on and looked at, and laid them
|
|
down, so that she could see them when dining. Gloves she had never put
|
|
on in her life before. The anticipation of the bonnet filled her with
|
|
delight; it was handsomer she was sure, than any one she ever saw Madame
|
|
wear; did I not think she would be handsomer than Madame, if as well
|
|
dressed? she was wild with conceit, and told me again how Madame had
|
|
refused to buy her things she wished; saying, that a servant could not
|
|
be allowed to wear them. This grievance had sunk deeply into her mind.
|
|
Meanwhile talking, laughing, joking, sometimes saying, "fi! fi! donc,"
|
|
sometimes, "oh! villain!" sometimes giving me a kiss, sometimes saying,
|
|
"be quiet," she ate a good dinner, drank more champagne than she was
|
|
aware of, got more and more talkative, whilst I got more and more lewd.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER II.
|
|
|
|
Undressing.--Silk stockings and garters.--The attack.--
|
|
Foiled on the outside.--A battery.--A breech.--A tough
|
|
virginity.--Triumphant.--Sanguinary proofs.--The second
|
|
entry.--My foreskin.--Twenty-four hours fucking.--
|
|
Gamahuching.--Six days pleasure.--Camille returns.
|
|
|
|
"The bonnet will be home," said I, "let us go." "Allons, allons," so
|
|
off we went. It was dusk when we got in the cab. "I am to put on the
|
|
stockings if I give you a pair, and to feel," I said. "No man has, c'est
|
|
trop fort, you ask too much; you may put on garters below the knee."
|
|
"Why not above?" "Oh! quite different," said she, "in the fields no girl
|
|
minds putting her garter on before all the world below knee; but
|
|
above, sh! that is disgrace." Such is fashion, I have seen an Italian
|
|
market-woman stoop forward and piss whilst talking to a man (a
|
|
neighbouring stall-keeper): she saw no harm. An English woman would
|
|
burst first; yet if the Italian had put his hand rudely up her legs,
|
|
that man might have been stabbed by the woman. Louise saw no indecency
|
|
up to the knees, but above was a disgrace. "Put your boots up," I said,
|
|
up they went. "I may put garter to there?" said I feeling outside.
|
|
"Yes." I shoved my hand up her petticoats on to her thighs, they closed,
|
|
and down went the legs: a squeal, a struggle, but on her thighs I kept
|
|
it until I got to the house.
|
|
|
|
We let ourselves in, the bonnet had not come, Louise opened the window
|
|
to look out for it, although it was dark. A ring came, it was the
|
|
bonnet; down she rushed for it. "Bring lights, bring lights," said she
|
|
taking one in her hand herself, the bonnet in the other; and rushing
|
|
into Camille's room where there were large glasses; she put on the
|
|
bonnet, clapped her hands for joy, and kissed me saying, I was so good.
|
|
She put on her gloves, and collar, turning round to me each time, and
|
|
asking how she looked. "Let me sleep with you, and I will buy you a
|
|
dress to-morrow morning," said I. "Impossible, impossible, was I not
|
|
going now," said she thoughtfully on a sudden. "No," I meant to sleep
|
|
there; and as I had fetched a valise, I pulled out my things, took off
|
|
my boots, put on a dressing-gown. "There," said I, "I shall sleep here
|
|
till Camille comes home." "There will be a row then, and what will I
|
|
do? Madame Boileau (the old woman upstairs) must know, and will tell
|
|
Madame," and she looked hard at me.
|
|
|
|
Then she was attracted by my dressing-gown which was showy, but soon
|
|
began looking at herself again, and took off all her finery with a sigh.
|
|
"I am so hot and thirsty," said she. It was not wonderful, for she had
|
|
fed twice heavily, and been champagning off and on for hours, her hands
|
|
were burning, heat was throughout her frame. "Let's have some more
|
|
champagne," said I, and opened a bottle; I pulled my trows-ers off,--it
|
|
was so hot,--being then in dressing-gown, drawers, and slippers, I made
|
|
up my mind to force her, if I could do it no other way. Then my eye
|
|
caught sight of a white muslin wrapper which Camille wore, it was tied
|
|
down the front with blue bows.
|
|
|
|
"Put on Madame's wrapper, if you are hot, you will look handsomer than
|
|
she does." She went into Camille's room, bolted herself in, and came
|
|
out looking splendid, and had only on beneath the wrapper, her coarse
|
|
chemise, which I could see (as indeed I knew before) just reached below
|
|
her knees. My heart palpitated, I was in my dressing-gown, she with but
|
|
the thinnest garments on.
|
|
|
|
The champagne was before us, we were on the sofa, my arm was round her
|
|
waist; through the thin folds of her light dress I could feel her firm
|
|
haunches and well-moulded body; I talked baudy, squeezed her to me,
|
|
pressed her thighs with one hand, and put the other down her bosom.
|
|
Every now and then there was a scuffle, a cry, and forgiveness; then
|
|
resistance grew fainter, another glass of champagne, and her head
|
|
dropped on my shoulder, subdued by amourousness, and when I asked her
|
|
to let me sleep with her, she only said, "Oh! I dare not. I must not."
|
|
I slipped my hand up to her thighs, she put her hand down stopping its
|
|
progress. "If I could only get her into the bed-room, and on to the
|
|
bed," I thought and went to Camille's room, the candles were still
|
|
burning. "Would you like silk stockings? here they are." "Is it so?"
|
|
said she bounding up. I held them up before her. "Let me put them on."
|
|
"The garters above knee, mind." "Yes, yes," said she impatiently, "Give
|
|
them me".
|
|
|
|
She sat down on the side of the bed, and let me put them on, putting one
|
|
leg up after the other, pulled off her new boots and old stockings, I
|
|
saw her thighs, but she never heeded, so anxious was she to get the silk
|
|
stockings on. I had thrown off my dressing-gown, and knelt in front
|
|
of her as a boot-maker does in fitting on boots. I was so slow, that
|
|
impatiently she said, "Give it me, give it me," pulled it on herself,
|
|
and then put on the boot. I sat down on the floor, lowering my head and
|
|
looking. Her silks and boots engrossed her. My prick came out from under
|
|
my shirt, stiff, standing, and pointing up to her; she never saw it,
|
|
but got up directly one garter was on, contemplated one leg in the
|
|
cheval-glass, laughed with delight, turned round, kissed me; then on
|
|
went the other. As I put that garter on, I kissed the thigh just above
|
|
it, up she got, lifted her robe to see her legs, strutted up and down
|
|
in front of the glass until tired of looking. Her fine limbs looked
|
|
exquisite in the silks and boots.
|
|
|
|
I cuddled and kissed her, put my arm round her. "Do let me dear," I
|
|
said. I got my hand up her clothes and between her thighs, she crossed
|
|
her legs without replying. "I will fuck you, I swear I will," said I as
|
|
I forced my hand still closer in. "Oh! oh!" she said, and nothing more.
|
|
I pulled her backwards on the bed, my cock stiff, standing, was under
|
|
her eyes, drew her lips close to mine kissing rapidly: my fingers rubbed
|
|
the warm slit, her bum began to move uneasily, her breathing was short,
|
|
her thighs unclosed, my finger slipped farther. "Oh! don't hurt me," she
|
|
said sharply. Pressing her backwards on the bed, I lifted her limbs, she
|
|
was yielding, meant fucking. I ripped open at once the slight blue
|
|
bows which fastened the muslin gown, threw up the chemise, saw the
|
|
well-rounded limbs in silk, the bright red garters, the thighs above,
|
|
the black hair of her cunt, rolled on to her, was between her thighs, my
|
|
naked belly on hers, my prick touching the cunt-lips.
|
|
|
|
The accumulators of my ballocks must have been gorged with sperm. Off
|
|
and on all day my prick had been on the stand, I had feared to touch
|
|
it lest it should go off, nor had I put the girl's hand on to it; the
|
|
last-hour my prick had been erect without subsiding. As my belly met
|
|
hers a tremor shook my whole frame. "My God, shall I spend outside?"
|
|
thought I; my prick like an iron rod touched the top of the wet slit and
|
|
slid right down on its passage. Is she virgin? a sharp cry, "Oh! don't
|
|
hurt me," I felt an obstacle, pushed violently again and again, "oh!
|
|
oh! don't," and then throb, throb, throb, with each throb a jet of sperm
|
|
shot out against the mouth of the orifice I had not penetrated, I lost
|
|
my power in the contentment of a copious emission, and the pleasurable
|
|
certainty, that no prick had yet been up the hole against which mine had
|
|
been battering.
|
|
|
|
Next was fear lest she should get up, so rapid had the spend overtaken
|
|
me, that I had not got my hands under her, they were on the side of her
|
|
smooth haunches. To keep her under me until my powers returned, I slid
|
|
one hand under her bum, the other under her waist, and squeezed her to
|
|
me, then gently loosening my belly a little from hers I pushed again
|
|
where my prick laid. With what delight I found it still stiff, with an
|
|
obstacle in its front; I nestled gently in the spermy lips, the heat,
|
|
the smoothness gave me a tittillation as if a spend was again not far
|
|
off, and that I need not have feared my manhood. With pride and power
|
|
I clasped her, feeling sure she was virgin. There she lay in all her
|
|
beauty, submitting to my will, I enjoying my sense of power, wriggling
|
|
gently for a minute, till my prick demanded its right of entry. I
|
|
pushed, a sharp "oh!" a harder push, a louder cry, the obstacle was
|
|
tight and hard indeed, I had never had such difficulty before; my lust
|
|
grew fierce, her cry of pain gave me inexpressable pleasure, and saying
|
|
I would not hurt, yet wishing to hurt her and glorying in it, I thrust
|
|
with all the violence my buttocks could give, till my prick seemed to
|
|
bleed, and pained me. "Oh! mon Dieu! ne faites pas ca, get away, you
|
|
shan't," she cried, "oh! o-o-oh!". My prick moved forward, something
|
|
which had tightened round, and clipped it gave way; suddenly it glided
|
|
up her cunt, still tighter I clasped her, as she moved with pain beneath
|
|
me, my balls were dangling on her bum, my sperm shooting against the
|
|
neck of her womb, and I had finished the toughest virginity I ever had
|
|
yet.
|
|
|
|
The job was done, months of anticipation, hopes, fears, and desire,
|
|
were over; my prick was in the cunt of a French virgin, at a cost of two
|
|
hundred pounds. After my second poke, I had a feeling of pleasure and
|
|
tranquillity, a weight off my mind, a future of voluptuousness before
|
|
me. My cock still lingered in her cunt, I moved it about, excited and
|
|
full of lusty vigor could have gone on fucking; but letting my penis
|
|
withdraw, I lay thinking about her cunt, then with a kiss lifted myself
|
|
off the beautiful creature who lay under me with eyes closed. I saw
|
|
the gauzy dressing-gown lying open, the blue bows torn, a coarse white
|
|
chemise in a well pressed heap, above a navel, an ample belly, finely
|
|
formed thighs, of a slightly brown tint, and on the chemise beneath
|
|
large spots of sperm, patches of blood, and spunk streaked with blood in
|
|
quantity filling and covering the space between the cunt-hole, getting
|
|
off I seated myself by the side of the bed; Louise seemed to awaken to
|
|
consciousness, and with the instinct of a modest woman covered
|
|
herself by drawing down her chemise, carelessly, half-sleepily and
|
|
unconsciously; more as if from habit than of thought to hide her charms.
|
|
Then she drew herself to the edge of the bed, put one leg higher up than
|
|
the other, resting her elbow on it, her head upon her hand, she looked
|
|
at me wistfully without uttering a word.
|
|
|
|
A newly fucked woman rarely looks at the man, sometimes turns away,
|
|
rarely speaks, but avoids a man's eyes. Louise did not speak, but she
|
|
looked as if she was collecting her senses, looked so long and in
|
|
such manner, that it made me uncomfortable, until her fine legs, in an
|
|
attitude I had not yet seen them in recalled me to myself. "What lovely
|
|
legs," said I. She pulled the chemise down lower, but the chemise was
|
|
short, and she was sitting on it; she never took her dark eyes off me,
|
|
but with her head still leaning on her hand, said slowly, "You have
|
|
promised me never to go into the bed-room with my sister again!"
|
|
|
|
"Your sister!" What a revelation! the likeness to Camille. I wondered it
|
|
had not struck me more completely before, the hesitation of Camille to
|
|
let me get the girl, her wish that she had never fetched her, her half
|
|
intention to send her home, the oath she made me take not to disclose
|
|
my having seen Louise's cunt when she was insensible: all struck me at
|
|
once.
|
|
|
|
Louise jumped off the bed in a fright, "No, no, no," she said, "not
|
|
my sister, my mistress; did I say sister? I didn't mean it, it's my
|
|
mistress, don't say I said sister."
|
|
|
|
I was certain she had spoken the truth: the likeness, Camille's anger
|
|
when I suggested making Louise drunk, her desire to be out of the house
|
|
when her virginity was taken, and other things crowded on my mind. "Deny
|
|
it as you like, ma chere, but you _are_ her sister, the very image of
|
|
her."
|
|
|
|
"Don't say so." I swore I would never tell. "She will murder me if she
|
|
knows. She is a demon, you don't know her,--mon Dieu! mon Dieu! what
|
|
shall I do? I must run away."
|
|
|
|
I calmed her, told her no one need know, I would never tell. She
|
|
believed me, seemed comforted, but still kept assuring me she had made a
|
|
mistake: she meant to say mistress.
|
|
|
|
This was a funny episode, a funny conversation between a woman carrying
|
|
her first male spunk in a bloody cunt, and a man with a cock still
|
|
dripping with cunt-juices on to his shirt, sitting by her side.
|
|
|
|
We talked by the side of the bed; then for a minute she put her head on
|
|
my shoulder and cried; it was over-excitement, nothing else, no regret.
|
|
|
|
Was I going? My reply was to put on my nightgown, say I meant to sleep
|
|
all night with her; I showed her my shirt, dabbed with bloody semen, and
|
|
gloried in it, told her her chemise was in the same state. She begged
|
|
me to leave her, and pushed me into the sitting-room, wiped her bloody
|
|
quim, and changed her things. She could not find Camille's night-gowns,
|
|
her own were dirty, so she put on one of Camille's beautiful chemises,
|
|
and over it the white robe. What a difference that entry of my prick
|
|
had made: twelve hours before, a refusal to let me put on a garter, a
|
|
struggle, a fight to do it; now my hand rested tranquilly on the smooth
|
|
thighs, whilst she listened to the pleasures I meant to have with her.
|
|
I drew her towards the bedroom, pulled off her boots and stockings, her
|
|
robe, then her chemise, and she got into bed naked, and I with her. It
|
|
was a hot night, cuddling was close work; lying by her side, my mouth to
|
|
hers, my belly to hers, my doodle pressed close into her thighs, my
|
|
hand on her bum, our legs touching their whole length, I was talking of
|
|
fucking, and she listening lewdly. What a difference! I guided her hand
|
|
to my prick; oh! my delight in that, and hers! how quietly it laid where
|
|
I placed it.--then under my balls, her hand was quite full of them, and
|
|
there it lay, then again round my pego. Again it was beginning to swell,
|
|
she lay with her long black hair floating on the pillow, her eyes closed
|
|
in baudy reverie. "You have got my prick in your hand, it has been in
|
|
your cunt and spent in it." She moved her head close to mine and kissed,
|
|
my cock stood stiff at once.
|
|
|
|
I closed to her, feeling every part of her body, excepting that which
|
|
I had just injured. That came in now for its share: thrusting one knee
|
|
between her legs I lifted hers so as to leave room for my hand between
|
|
them. She prayed me not, she was sore, ill, it hurt her. Hurt her? I
|
|
longed to hurt her, knew I was going to give her pain whilst I lied
|
|
saying that no pain more would she feel, and then with a little gentle
|
|
force, my finger slipping over her clitoris, I felt the cunt-hole
|
|
gently, went up it, she wincing and moving her bum in an inciting
|
|
manner, then up her orifice went my cock again, amidst murmurs and
|
|
prayers to leave her alone, a glorious fuck.
|
|
|
|
Then I dozed, dropping off on one side from her sweet firm body; but
|
|
excitement would not let me sleep, I kept awaking as fast as I fell
|
|
asleep, a burning heat pervaded my penis, my mind dwelt on the day's
|
|
work, her limbs were close to mine, cunt in reach of my fingers, smell
|
|
of her body in my nostrils. The lights were out, she was slumbering with
|
|
quiet regular breath. Up came my prick again, my fingers slid between
|
|
the cunt-lips, felt the signs of my last pleasure, she awakened. "Oh!
|
|
don't." She was ill, sore, very sore, I was unkind; but what woman can
|
|
refuse the cock which has just wetted her. Now was a prolonged fuck;
|
|
then overcome with fucking, worn with excitement, I fell sound asleep.
|
|
|
|
When I awakened the sun-light struggling through the red curtains cast
|
|
a pink tint over every thing. We had slept eight hours, were laying rump
|
|
to rump, naked and touching, for after much fucking, the fondest lovers
|
|
turn their arses to each other. What a sight she was as she lay on one
|
|
side, as sound asleep as a top, there had been but a sheet over us, that
|
|
was off, and she was naked. She had a pretty foot, the leg was perfect,
|
|
thighs and bum thinner than Camille's back-side, and thighs taken on
|
|
fullness at later age, or after one or two years good fucking which
|
|
serves quite as well; her breasts were superb, firmer and handsomer than
|
|
Camille's. On one side I saw the black crisp hair which shaded her seat
|
|
of pleasure; on the other I could, by putting my head on the bed, just
|
|
see the dark hair creeping between her bum-cheeks, her flesh had the
|
|
slightly brown tint common to French women; on the bed lay rounds of
|
|
spunk mixed with blood, a smear of it was on her thigh on the bum-side.
|
|
My prick rose again to stiffness at the sight, I wanted to piss
|
|
violently, but could scarcely accomplish it. I looked at my shirt tail.
|
|
Spunk and blood were thick on it, I found under the bed her chemise; on
|
|
it profusely were the bloody seminal marks of her virginity. I felt a
|
|
pain in my prick, and found the foreskin a little raw. I had paid for
|
|
hurting her by hurting myself; but what did that matter; I was the first
|
|
that had been up that cunt, had torn it open, my spunk was in her then,
|
|
the bloody indications were all around me. I awakened her.
|
|
|
|
She looked at me, then conscious that she was naked, clawed up the
|
|
sheet; in a minute I was close to her. She went across to her own room
|
|
to piddle, then into bed again she got, and in spite of her I put it
|
|
into her. I felt the cunt tightening, looked at her: her manner was
|
|
different, I felt her clasping me, she was doing it involuntarily,
|
|
her breath came quickly, she was spending as my spunk came, her first
|
|
pleasure with me; all before had been pain,--I knew that.
|
|
|
|
Then was more fucking, then she made coffee, we had eggs, bread and
|
|
butter, again to bed, and more fucking. We went without luncheon,
|
|
spending the entire day in bed, feeling, kissing, cuddling, fucking,
|
|
and sleeping. We were both worn out, and perhaps might not have got up,
|
|
excepting that I had to dress, to go downstairs, and then felt hungry,
|
|
so we both dressed, went to the same place as the day previously, had
|
|
a jolly good dinner as fast as we could and directly it was over went
|
|
back. I kept my finger on her cunt when in the cab, both going and
|
|
coming; the instant we returned we went to bed (it had not been made),
|
|
and fucked, and fucked, and fucked, and then slept a dozen hours without
|
|
awaking. A lovely time it was.
|
|
|
|
Next day I was used up, I never could accomplish the wonderful fucking
|
|
bouts I have heard men brag about, but dare say in those thirty hours
|
|
I had fucked her twelve times. She was very tired with it, and was so
|
|
sore; I was also sore, my prick had slightly bled, the foreskin
|
|
was torn, and through that fucking bout my prepuce was easier ever
|
|
afterwards, I could pull it down better than I could before I had torn
|
|
open her virginity.
|
|
|
|
The difference between the ways of a woman and man towards each other
|
|
after they have fucked is wonderful. On a previous night a woman may
|
|
have refused his kisses, and his embraces, and revolted at his hands
|
|
touching her quim. He although longing for her, eager to join his body
|
|
to hers, may have been timid, cautious in his language, hesitating in
|
|
action, and until passion got full sway, might as soon of thought of
|
|
putting out his doodle, and attempting to force it up her, as of
|
|
trying it on his aunt. But what a change a night has made: they sit
|
|
at breakfast he with satisfaction on his face as he looks at her and
|
|
thinks, that her most secret parts have not been strangers to him, has
|
|
felt between her thighs, the lips hitherto untouched by man, has been up
|
|
her cunt, and spent inside it the essence of his blood. "She has given
|
|
me pleasure, I have given her pleasure." She looks at him wondering how
|
|
she came to allow it, how she forgot her resolves, there need be no more
|
|
disguise, nor hindrance in the way of their pleasures, of the pleasures
|
|
she first tasted with him; all that she has been taught to hold most
|
|
sacred from man he has seen, felt, kissed, pierced, violated, and wetted
|
|
in. The virginity she prided herself on he has destroyed, she no longer
|
|
shuns him, but is ready to comply with all his wishes, hopes he will
|
|
compel her soon to yield again. This is the work of a few hours, and as
|
|
she sits drinking her coffee opposite to him she thinks with him, what a
|
|
change has taken place.
|
|
|
|
That was my state of mind with Louise. I had had virgins before without
|
|
pride in having them, they came in my way, but never had I sought them.
|
|
Two certainly had never been breached before, but it gave me no pride
|
|
nor special gratification. This woman I had thought and thought about
|
|
for months, coveted and paid for the sole pleasure of piercing her
|
|
hymen. I had now the delight of experience, of leaving my sperm where
|
|
man had never left it before. This girl of sufficient age, growth and
|
|
form, I had bored with difficulty and pain, to her and myself, she
|
|
had bled, I had bled, I had torn up her cuntal diaphram, had given her
|
|
sexual pleasure, had revelled in her body. Shirt, and chemise, spunk
|
|
and blood slobbered lay there. I was rested, she was fresh, and I sat
|
|
at breakfast with as much complacency and jollity as a man could; yet
|
|
beyond fucking, I felt that I did not care one damn about her, and even
|
|
felt sorry. I cannot explain why I felt that, but recollect it.
|
|
|
|
We had seven days before Camille would return, in those days I more than
|
|
fulfilled my word to the girl, bought dresses, a ring, brooch, umbrella,
|
|
parasol, in fact I don't know what I did not give, and must have paid
|
|
fifty pounds; we dined out, went to theatres, ate, drank, and fucked
|
|
like blazes.
|
|
|
|
French women when they have given themselves up to a man, do so with all
|
|
their heart and soul. One day as luncheon began to operate on her, she
|
|
nothing loth, she strong, healthy, and with passions roused, feeding
|
|
daily in a way she had been unaccustomed to, yielded freely to my
|
|
wishes. I placed her on the bed-side, threw up her chemise, kissed the
|
|
dark crisp hair of her motte; her thighs separated, her limbs went up,
|
|
and I saw the adorable vermillion gap, the ragged tear my penis had
|
|
made. It was a small cunt for so fine a woman. What enticed, and incited
|
|
me I don't know, I never shall know why dozens of women I have had I
|
|
never have done it to, but I was taken with the feeling now. I looked,
|
|
fingered, titillated, kissed it, out went my tongue; it played lightly
|
|
over the clitoris, then baudy frenzy seized me, and I licked and sucked
|
|
her cunt. She wriggled, scarce knowing what I was about, when pushing my
|
|
head away she cried out, "oh! mon Dieu, ah! quelle bete! aho!"
|
|
|
|
I had never done it willingly but to Martha, now the letch seized me
|
|
furiously, every day afterwards I had my mouth to her, and when I was so
|
|
fucked out, that I could come no more, would lay and lick her till she
|
|
was worn out too with spending.
|
|
|
|
We had indeed no other amusement than fucking, talking about it, eating,
|
|
drinking, and sleeping, which was to us all the charm of a honey-moon.
|
|
I think I see her now, making my cock stiff under my direction, her
|
|
amusement at pulling the prepuce up and down was great, I almost feel
|
|
her bum now as she used to sit on my knee, looking at the pictures in
|
|
the baudy book; we used to talk it over until we went to bed, and
|
|
eased our passions, what fun when we did not mind washing each other's
|
|
privates, as we did.
|
|
|
|
We used to lay on the bed with my head between her thighs, licking her
|
|
quim, she playing with my prick, but I never put my pego into her mouth,
|
|
nor did she ever do more than kiss it.
|
|
|
|
On the day but one before Camille returned, we went to bed, had a fuck,
|
|
then a second, her cunt felt funny, and I found her courses had come on,
|
|
or as she called them, her periods. There was an end of my fun, nor was
|
|
I sorry. Not having left her day or night, nor been to my lodgings, nor
|
|
to my mother's, I was fucked out, and so was she,--so that her reds came
|
|
on most opportunely.
|
|
|
|
Next day we were duller, there was nothing in her to make her a
|
|
companion when not in amorous amusements. She became tiresome, and
|
|
annoyed me by putting on her things one after the other, all day long,
|
|
and asking me, how she looked in them, if she did not look better than
|
|
Madame. Then how to tell her mistress she had got the things? what to
|
|
do, if her mistress refused to let her wear them? how was I to see her
|
|
again? At length we resolved to tell rousing lies about everything,--my
|
|
behaviour was in fact most absurd.
|
|
|
|
The following day, a letter came to say Camille would be home that
|
|
night. I took away my trunk and clothes, went to my virtuous lodgings;
|
|
it was a relief to be away from cunt for twenty-four hours, and I could
|
|
not bear a woman with her courses on.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER III.
|
|
|
|
Camille at home.--Her little game.--My greenness.--The
|
|
house in O.. d. n street.--The glove shop.--Louise fatigues
|
|
me.--Fred on the scent.--A cigar shop.--Three into one.--A
|
|
clap.--Serious reflexions.--The sisters disappear.
|
|
|
|
A day or two recruited me, I wrote to Camille who met me in the street,
|
|
she had sent the girl to the theatre with a friend, so I went indoors
|
|
with her. "Have you done it to her?" was the first question, as if she
|
|
did not know, I told her all. She questioned me with strong interest. I
|
|
gave her the fifty pounds. Then she asked me if Louise had told me where
|
|
she came from, and other questions, which I saw were put to see, if
|
|
Louise had told about their relationship. As we talked I looked at her,
|
|
comparing her with Louise, and saw the likeness stronger than ever. "Why
|
|
stare so?" she asked. When she had heard of all our bum frolics she gave
|
|
a sigh and said, "Well, if I had not brought her to London, she would
|
|
have gone to Paris with A------ (mentioning some French name), and have
|
|
had it done to her there,--so it comes to the same thing."
|
|
|
|
Then suddenly, "Are you never going to have me again?" "No," I had
|
|
promised Louise. She looked amorously fascinating. "She won't know it, I
|
|
have never had it since I left." She was half reclining on the sofa, by
|
|
intention or chance her legs raised up on the sofa, one flat, the other
|
|
foot on its heel, exposing the recumbent limbs from foot to knee. "Do
|
|
now," said she. "No," but I moved from the chair to the end of the sofa,
|
|
and began stroking her leg with my hand.
|
|
|
|
She lifted the clothes just above the knee. I saw the large thigh
|
|
nearly up to her quim, my hand involuntarily slipped higher, and began
|
|
smoothing the flesh just above the garter. "Do it now," said she falling
|
|
right on to her back.
|
|
|
|
I thought of Louise, of my promise; I knew the look of both their
|
|
cunts,--of Camille's the best,--desired to see, to compare it. I had
|
|
been feeling Louise's cunt eight days, now thought I should like to feel
|
|
Camille's to feel the difference, I knew her cunt was looser, and more
|
|
hairy, her bum and thighs bigger, yet was I right in my comparison? my
|
|
cock got uneasy, I helped it to rise in my trowsers by giving it a push
|
|
outside.
|
|
|
|
"I won't have her," I thought, "but there is no harm in feeling," and
|
|
began playing with the hair of her motte. "Your hair is longer than
|
|
Louise's." She laughed, "Do it, baisez-moi," said she.
|
|
|
|
My fingers touched the slippery cunt, it was irresistible, the next
|
|
instant they were groping and feeling. "Your bum is bigger than
|
|
Louise's," I said. She laughed again.
|
|
|
|
Sitting where I was, and playing at stink-finger, my position was
|
|
inconvenient. "Come up closer," said she. Then I sat by her hips, on
|
|
the sofa-edge, she lifted her clothes right up: there was the quim, the
|
|
jet-black bush, the fine round thighs, my cock was restive, my hands
|
|
wandering, she unbuttoned my trowsers, gave my prick a squeeze, sending
|
|
up the blood and completed my randiness.
|
|
|
|
"Louise won't know, you shall kiss me," and she raised herself to throw
|
|
her arm over my shoulder. Like a young virgin who says, "no, no," whilst
|
|
she yields, I kept repeating "no, no". The thighs had opened, I was
|
|
pulling open the lips and trying to see the red inside; and still saying
|
|
"no," slid on to her, on to it, up it, and spent before I well knew what
|
|
I was about. "Oh! you are so quick," said she, "you have spoiled me, I
|
|
was just coming."
|
|
|
|
She did not mean to be spoiled, trying her most baudy endearments, she
|
|
held me tight, caressed me, as a French woman knows how,--better than
|
|
any other. Forgetting Louise, my mind fell into its baudy dreams, I
|
|
fucked her again, and then she let me get up.
|
|
|
|
And then to business. "What are you going to do for the girl?" she
|
|
asked. "Nothing, I have given her money and things worth about a hundred
|
|
pounds, and have paid you, when I have her again I shall give her
|
|
money." "You promised to do something more, if not what will become
|
|
of her?" I did then recollect, that she had made me promise, but had
|
|
attached no definite ideas to it.
|
|
|
|
"I relied on you, or would never have brought her; are you going to keep
|
|
her, or let her be gay like me?"
|
|
|
|
I did not like either; to keep her I had no intention, did not even like
|
|
the girl, though I liked plugging her. Said Camille, "We have had a row
|
|
already, she won't work, and says she will wear the clothes she has got,
|
|
although I have only seen a few of them." "What do you expect?" I
|
|
asked. "Set her up in business, selling gloves or perfumes, a small shop
|
|
somewhere."
|
|
|
|
Not liking the aspect of affairs, I left, it was the first time such
|
|
propositions had been made to me. I felt inclined never to go near the
|
|
house again, but had promised Louise to be with her soon, and always
|
|
kept my word, so thought over the matter.
|
|
|
|
Keeping her was out of the question, I had heard that men who kept
|
|
women, did so for other men; besides I had no idea of tieing myself up
|
|
that way. I was not pleased with her: a fine girl, a fine fuck, a fresh
|
|
woman who shivered with delight the instant the prick entered her, who
|
|
was randy-arsed enough to learn anything in the way of copulation; she
|
|
had been delightful to me eight days, and might for more; but she was
|
|
coarse, vulgar, and had not two ideas in her head, was evidently violent
|
|
tempered, and excessively vain. Set her up in business! why she had cost
|
|
me hundreds to get her, why should I?
|
|
|
|
I could not make up my mind, and resolved never to go near her again;
|
|
but two days afterwards, that funny sense of fullness came over my
|
|
cock-knob, then the tingling, then the desire for cunt, then for
|
|
Louise's cunt, the ragged slit made by my cock was before my eyes, and
|
|
instead of quenching my wants in the channel of some other woman, I went
|
|
there. Camille was just outside the door, and we conversed together in
|
|
G.. d.n Sq....
|
|
|
|
She suggested my seeing Louise alone, and paying her (Camille) as I had
|
|
done before. I did not mean to submit to that restraint, nor to keep
|
|
her, but let her go her own way. "What does it matter, she must know you
|
|
will find it all out, so why not at once?" I said.
|
|
|
|
"If she knows that I know it, I must turn her out" ("I don't think
|
|
you would turn your sister out," I thought), "then I must put her into
|
|
lodgings, and she will be gay." "I can't help that." We came to no
|
|
conclusion, I left her, went to the door, rang, and Louise opened it.
|
|
She kissed and hugged me in the passage, a minute afterwards she was
|
|
on my knee grasping my prick, my fingers were on her cunt, our lips
|
|
together; in another with tongues lapping together I was up her; in two
|
|
or three minutes more we were quiet.
|
|
|
|
(I should so like to experience the feeling a woman has as she sits and
|
|
talks with her cunt full of sperm, does it feel so very pleasant sitting
|
|
so?) She poured out her griefs, Camille had asked questions, who had
|
|
been there? how did she get the bonnet, the new boots? she had refused
|
|
to tell anything, Camille had said she had better go. "Why not tell
|
|
Camille?" I said, "if she did not like it she might lump it, as far as I
|
|
was concerned;" but the girl was evidently afraid,--or was it sham?
|
|
|
|
Next day I wrote to Louise who met me, and I took her to a house into
|
|
which I had never been before. For three weeks I met her on writing
|
|
to her, and we spent hours together. She now had frequent rows with
|
|
Camille, each time she came to meet me she put on more of her new
|
|
things; at first she only came with a dress, then with the bonnet and
|
|
something else, and at last with all the finery; she looked a handsome
|
|
swell, but a vulgar one. I ceased paying Camille.
|
|
|
|
One night she said Madame had had no one visit her for a long time, nor
|
|
was she much out but often was all night, where she went she did not
|
|
know; there was one man who came, a gentleman, she thought he was a
|
|
lover of Camille's.
|
|
|
|
We came out of the house in -------- street one night after a surfeit of
|
|
voluptuous pleasures, when a woman stepped across the road, and lifted
|
|
up her veil. "Oh! my God, it's Madame," said Louise, and she got right
|
|
at the back of me where I stood. "So," said Camille, "I have found you
|
|
out, you have been in a baudy house with my old friend." She burst into
|
|
a laugh, turned, and went away without saying another word.
|
|
|
|
I don't know what actuated me in my course of conduct, at that time I
|
|
knew well what I did, but my reasons are not so clear, I cared nothing
|
|
whether Louise knew that her mistress or sister knew I had had her, yet
|
|
I did not go to the house, firstly because Camille wished me not, unless
|
|
she was out, and it did not suit me to be waiting for a girl who was
|
|
burning to let me have her, and also because Louise was in a funk when
|
|
I was with her in the house, and Camille was out. I was convinced they
|
|
were sisters, and had a glimmering, that Camille would not like Louise
|
|
to know she had been got for me by her; yet I thought that it must be
|
|
found out.
|
|
|
|
As Camille walked away Louise began to cry, I could not get a word from
|
|
her; we walked up and down A... street, she was frightened to go home,
|
|
we went back to the baudy house, and there we slept. The next day we
|
|
stopped there, and I went home with her,--Camille was within.
|
|
|
|
"So you have been to a baudy house?" said she, "so you have been fucked,
|
|
fucked by my friend; you are a nice one to speak ill of other people."
|
|
"I am not a whore," said Louise taking cheek. "Ain't you?" said Camille,
|
|
"I don't know that." "Say I am a whore, and I'll hit you," said Louise
|
|
going up to her. "Have it out by yourselves, I am not going to stop for
|
|
a row," said I, "Camille be good to the girl." "If I had not brought her
|
|
from France she would not be what she is." What was I going to do with
|
|
her? "Nothing." "Then the sooner Louise went out the better."
|
|
|
|
Louise sat down, and began silently crying. I hate to see a woman cry,
|
|
and always had one remedy,--could champagne be fetched? Mother Boileau
|
|
condescended to fetch some. We drank, I got communicative, and began to
|
|
tell Camille. She cut me short, wanted to know nothing, we had been in
|
|
a baudy house together, it was enough. What was I going to do? the girl
|
|
would no longer work, and she was going into other lodgings, I might
|
|
take hers for Louise if I liked.
|
|
|
|
It gradually shaped itself to this: I was to take the lodgings, Camille
|
|
to stay rent free, a servant to be got, but one particular friend only
|
|
was ever to visit Camille there; Louise took Camille's bed-room, Camille
|
|
Louise's, I had in fact the pleasure of keeping both. The next night I
|
|
slept with Louise in Camille's bed, slept there several times, and
|
|
one morning Camille said, "You have got the girl with child, I quite
|
|
expected it."
|
|
|
|
This annoyed me. I had been getting tired for some time, did not like
|
|
the girl, who became so jealous of Camille, wanted so much admiration,
|
|
that she quite fatigued me. She wanted to walk in the streets to be
|
|
admired. I had given her more clothes, she got careless, wanted to go
|
|
to theatres, and I took her. The Argyle was just opened, and I took
|
|
her there, she wanted me to go there often. I had seen one or two other
|
|
women I lusted for, but above all wanted to go to France with Fred who
|
|
had returned from India; so her being in the family way bothered me. I
|
|
got it into my head, that it was a plant, and took her to my friend the
|
|
doctor who said it was a fact.
|
|
|
|
Camille asked me to meet her in G.. d. n Sq.. e, for convenience I took
|
|
her to the baudy house; she had got mighty particular, made me go in
|
|
first, and came in afterwards with her veil down,--she always now wore
|
|
a veil. She again asked me what I was going to do. She had got the girl,
|
|
and was sorry for it, at length she said, "I am going to be married, go
|
|
into business, and will take her with me, if you will help, or I will
|
|
get her home again to France, if you will give her money." I agreed to
|
|
think of it.
|
|
|
|
We sat on a sofa. As I looked at her I began to feel a desire for her.
|
|
"Let us have a kiss," said I, "for old acquaintance sake." "No," said
|
|
she, "I am going to be married, am perhaps watched, am frightened of
|
|
being here. I expect my friend back from abroad daily, he may have come
|
|
back now. Madame Boileau knows him, I must be careful."
|
|
|
|
But how can a woman resist a man who has had her often, who knows every
|
|
crack and cranny of her body, has looked at her motte long enough to
|
|
count every hair on it, a few rubs on her clitoris, and back she fell
|
|
on the sofa. We were both dressed, but plunging up her, and grasping
|
|
her ample rump, I was soon enjoying her; when thinking of Louise, and
|
|
I suppose comparing her mentally, I said in the height of my pleasure,
|
|
"Oh! I like fucking you better than your sister after all," or something
|
|
to that effect.
|
|
|
|
"What?" said she with a start as her cunt clipped, and jerked my prick
|
|
out. Cursing, and damning at my interruption I drove it up again, and
|
|
consummated.
|
|
|
|
"What did you say about being like my sister?" said she as I still
|
|
lay with my doodle up her, "what sister?" I replied she looked so like
|
|
Louise, that she must be her sister. "But she is not, although she is
|
|
like me." Then the matter dropped, and she slopped her cunt clean. I
|
|
used to like a woman whom I knew not to wash it, when I was going to
|
|
fuck her again, Camille had humored me in this, and as my lust came on
|
|
for my second poke, used to bring my amatory pastime by looking at the
|
|
cunt with my pleasure signs on it. So Camille washing astonished me. "I
|
|
am going to be married, and must," said she.
|
|
|
|
We had more fucking before we left. She was all anxiety about Louise,
|
|
for I would say nothing. "You will never see me here again," said she,
|
|
"nor have me again, and may do with Louise what you like, I shan't be
|
|
here, you will throw her on the town". Then she veiled closely, and made
|
|
me go out first. I waited at the top of the street ten minutes, out she
|
|
came, veil down, and shot off in the direction of G..d.n sq..e like an
|
|
arrow.
|
|
|
|
I now with perversity longed for Camille, instead of Louise, but never
|
|
had her afterwards, never sent my tallow up her, although I tried once
|
|
or twice.
|
|
|
|
I began going about elsewhere, sleeping with Louise at times; but she
|
|
was always pestering me about being in the family way, which annoyed
|
|
me; and wanted such a lot of ballocking, that that annoyed me also. My
|
|
cousin Fred wanted me to go to Paris with him, Louise said I was going
|
|
to forsake her. One night after dining with her, coming out we met my
|
|
cousin Fred, nothing put him off, and he would walk with us. The next
|
|
day he said in his old unchaste way, which some years in India had not
|
|
improved, "So that is the woman your mother says she fears has got hold
|
|
of you." It was the first time I had heard, that my mother had any such
|
|
suspicion, for although she had spoken to me about my wildness, she had
|
|
never referred to a woman; but she had told my aunt, who told my cousin
|
|
my mother was awfully astonished. For that six years I had shagged all
|
|
our servants under her very nose, yet she had not the faintest suspicion
|
|
of it, my pranks now coming to her ears, shocked her extremely. I told
|
|
Fred, that I had had Louise's first, to which he replied, that he should
|
|
like to rattle his stones against her arse. "Is she a good fuck? where
|
|
does she live?" I did not mean his stones to knock against her arse as
|
|
long as mine did, I replied, "Oh! you are fond of her then?" "No, but
|
|
I preferred her to myself." "Lord, what does it matter?" said he, "white
|
|
women are scarce in India, there was one that all in my regiment were
|
|
fond of, there was not an officer who did not stroke her, none of us
|
|
minded; we say 'the more a cunt's buttered, the better it grinds.'" I did
|
|
not see it in that light, so with the remark from him, that she was a
|
|
damned fine piece, we parted.
|
|
|
|
Two or three days afterwards he spoke of her again, said he knew where
|
|
she lived, so I thought he was hunting after her which annoyed me; not
|
|
seeing that if he had got into her, I could have left her with good
|
|
excuse.
|
|
|
|
I had tried to learn from Louise if she knew where Camille went all
|
|
day, but could learn nothing, one night in bed with her however, whilst
|
|
handling each other's privates, and under the sympathy generated by the
|
|
rub of my fingers on her clitoris; she on my solemn promise of secrecy,
|
|
told me that an old friend of Camille's had opened a glove and lace shop
|
|
in O. f..d street. I saw a small shop, there was a Frenchman in it whose
|
|
face I seemed to know. I waited near it one night, and saw Camille leave
|
|
the shop closely veiled, and take the best way towards G..d.n sq..e.
|
|
Madame Boileau was like an oyster I could get nothing out of her,
|
|
although she took my money. I was sure that Camille went to the shop
|
|
daily, or nearly so, and as no man came to the house, suppose she got
|
|
her cunt plugged in the shop parlour.
|
|
|
|
Afterwards Fred talked so much about Louise, that I said I kept her.
|
|
"There are two there, do you keep both?" "Yes." "Then you are a fool,
|
|
you can't be sure of one woman's cunt if you are not with her always,
|
|
but two together are sure to make a couple of whores,--no wonder your
|
|
tin goes so fast."
|
|
|
|
Meanwhile I went out with him of a night, and we had different women.
|
|
One night three of us went to a cigar-shop kept by two women just by
|
|
------ it was not an unusual thing then for two to have a cigar-shop,
|
|
with a big sofa in a back parlour, one keeping shop whilst the other
|
|
fucked. From talking we got to business without intending it. Fred began
|
|
joking the girls, we went into the back parlour, and had wine, one
|
|
asked my cousin if he did not want to lie down and rest himself. He said
|
|
"yes," but wanted warmth to his belly when he rested. "You may have my
|
|
belly to warm you," said she. "What here?" "Oh! they can wait," said the
|
|
girl, "and your quiet friend can find his tongue with my sister" (the
|
|
other girl). I had not spoken, being at times timid at first with a
|
|
woman, and especially a gay one.
|
|
|
|
We said jokingly, that we had no money. "I will take you all for a
|
|
sovereign," said she, "and the one who I say is the best poke shall give
|
|
me another half-sovereign." It was agreed, we tossed up for the order of
|
|
the fucking, two went outside while the other had his pleasure. My turn
|
|
came last, the excitement in thinking of what was going on made me in
|
|
such a state, that I was no sooner up her than I spent; when I went
|
|
out the other girl said. "You have been in a hurry." My cousin was
|
|
pronounced the best fucker. Whilst the strumming was going on in the
|
|
parlour, people bought cigars, and tobacco--for it was really sold
|
|
there,--little did they guess the fun going on behind that rod curtain
|
|
of the shop-parlour.
|
|
|
|
A night or so after I slept with Louise, I felt uneasy in the tip of my
|
|
prick, and saw unmistakably that it was the clap. It was not Louise's
|
|
gift, for great was her surprise when I saw her twice afterwards, and
|
|
never attempted to have her. She was annoyed, and said she supposed I
|
|
had another friend, and put herself in such luscious attitudes, that
|
|
I got a cock-stand, and could scarcely resist putting it up her, but
|
|
saying I was ill went away. Fred said he should go to Paris without me,
|
|
I was to join him in a fortnight. What with being indifferent to Louise,
|
|
annoyed with her randiness, her vulgarity, and temper, being in fact
|
|
tired of her and the expense, and now having the clap, I determined to
|
|
break off; so wrote to Camille to meet me.
|
|
|
|
I told her I had the clap. "I thought there was something wrong," said
|
|
she, "but Louise I can swear has never had any other man than you, take
|
|
her to any doctor you like." Then she told me, that in three weeks she
|
|
meant to leave England, and Louise must do the best she could, she had
|
|
taken means to bring on the girl's courses, would I send her back to
|
|
France, or must she go gay in London.
|
|
|
|
I could not bear the idea of the girl being gay, so agreed to give her
|
|
money to take her abroad with her, and she accepted. By her advice I
|
|
wrote to Louise, said I had the clap, and feared I had given it to her,
|
|
that she would not forgive me I was sure, and so never meant to see her
|
|
again.
|
|
|
|
I sent a cheque to Louise, it passed through my bankers, and suppose the
|
|
girl had it. Then went to Paris, my illness kept to me, so returned to
|
|
London, got a little better, longed for Louise, stood opposite the house
|
|
one night, nearly crossed over to have her, but resisted, and seeing a
|
|
nice woman in Regent street went home with her. I was so impatient, that
|
|
I pushed her to the side of the bed directly I was in the room, felt
|
|
for her cunt, and spent in her in a minute, she had not taken her bonnet
|
|
off. My spending hurt me, my doctor had told me I could go with a woman
|
|
without fear of injuring her, but that for my own sake I had better
|
|
abstain. She got up, and took off her bonnet, to see if lying down had
|
|
hurt it. "I'll have you again," said I. "Let me wash, you've spent such
|
|
a lot, it's all running down my thighs." Again I fucked her; and next
|
|
morning my ailment came back. My doctor said it served me right.
|
|
|
|
Shortly after "lodgings to let" was posted up in Camille's windows, on
|
|
calling, Madame Boileau came to the door. The two women had left,
|
|
the shop in Oxford street was shut up, and I never heard of the women
|
|
afterwards.
|
|
|
|
I am astonished now, that I was wheedled out of so much money for a
|
|
French virgin. How I could have done much that I did makes me now laugh,
|
|
I must have been very green, and Camille very cunning; but I was also
|
|
rich, and generous, which accounts for much. I see now how largely I was
|
|
humbugged, but cannot explain or reason about it. I am telling facts as
|
|
they occurred, as far as I recollect them, it is all I can do. Certainly
|
|
I had a splendid full-grown virgin for my money, the toughest virginity
|
|
I yet have taken, a regular cock-bender, and had an uninterrupted
|
|
honey-moon. Camille was a most superior harlot, genteel, clever, and
|
|
voluptuous, such as are not usually found; with her and her findings I
|
|
had a year's enjoyment, leaving me lav, blaze, and a half-cured clap.
|
|
What with women, horses, carriages, cards, dinners, and other items, I
|
|
was a few thousands poorer than at the beginning of my acquaintance with
|
|
Camille.
|
|
|
|
It's my fate to have sisters,--how curious I--and thrice to have had the
|
|
clap, and yet not three-and-twenty,--how hard!
|
|
|
|
I was very much used up, and needed rest for body and mind; never had
|
|
I been so much so before. Up to the time of getting my fortune want
|
|
of money curbed my lascivious tastes, and although I had servant after
|
|
servant in my mother's house, the difficulties of getting them, gave
|
|
me frequent rests, and prevented me generally from exhausting myself;
|
|
perhaps I got just enough fucking to keep me in health. The year's
|
|
rioting with Camille and her troupe, would have tried a strong man;
|
|
I never counted them, but think, that in that year I must have poked
|
|
something like sixty, or seventy different women, I poked everyone of
|
|
Ca-mille's acquaintances, I am sure,--so it was time I had a rest.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IV.
|
|
|
|
Enforced chastity.--A stricture.--Health restored.--Mrs.
|
|
Pender.--A peep from a hay-stack.--In a cow-house.--Stable
|
|
and barn.--Mother's satisfaction.
|
|
|
|
My clap brought on a stricture, obliging me to have a bougie passed
|
|
every other day to stretch the pipe often, and causing me to piss clots
|
|
of gruelly blood, about an hour afterwards. I dared not fuck, but once
|
|
frigged, and it brought on the inflammatory stage again. At length I
|
|
got better, but with a gleet which wetted the tail of my shirt through
|
|
daily; doctors advised me to get a change of air, I went to my aunt's
|
|
place in H..tf..dshire where I took cold baths, and did all I could to
|
|
get myself well,--I was forbidden to touch a woman until permitted by
|
|
the doctor.
|
|
|
|
Touch women I did not, think of them I did eternally, and deplored the
|
|
time that I was wasting. I used to look at my female cousins, and long
|
|
for them; my aunt whose flabby, brown-haired, thick-lipped furrow I
|
|
glanced at in my boyhood I used to think about and should not have
|
|
hesitated in getting a pleasure up it, had no other cunt been ready for
|
|
me. I eyed the farm-women (coarse, strong, healthy bitches) with lust
|
|
that made them look beauties in my longing eyes, I was boiling over
|
|
with spunk, at the closet one day my turds were hard, and hurt me; the
|
|
irritation affected my ballocks, my prick stiffened rigidly, I could
|
|
not piss for it, the tip looked dry, as if gleet had ceased, I merely
|
|
touched the top (not frigged), and out shot my sperm as I sat on the
|
|
privy seat. What a relief! but what a loss of pleasure not to have
|
|
injected into some dear little cunt nicked in some smooth white bum! My
|
|
prick seemed quite well, and I wanted to go into the fields to get hold
|
|
of some girl doing field-work, or any woman, old or young, who had a
|
|
cunt available; so I went to town to see my medical man about it. He
|
|
pointed out to me how needful it was to restrain myself, I followed his
|
|
advice, in two weeks was much better, and had determined to go to town
|
|
to see him again about it, when I got well without him.
|
|
|
|
Some years before I had seen a farm-girl whose name was Pender, a fine
|
|
lass with a merry face, and lightish brown hair; she must then I suppose
|
|
have been about seventeen years old. From ogling and laughing, I got to
|
|
kissing, with that she was pleased enough, and often I think put herself
|
|
in my way to get it; a pinch on the bum she did not resent. Thinking all
|
|
safe, I one day poked her near to her notch, and she only saying, "Adun
|
|
now sir, do," my hand went up her petticoats, I struggled with her, and
|
|
we both fell on the grass near a barn, when my fingers touched her cunt.
|
|
She set up a yell, my fingers were stained with her monthlies (not the
|
|
only time that has occured in my life), she sat for a minute crying,
|
|
then walked away, leaving me in fear lest she should tell my aunt.
|
|
She never did, but avoided me, and would not look me in the face. When
|
|
older, I only thought of her when there, or when my memory ran back on
|
|
the quims I had touched in my then short career.
|
|
|
|
Having now nothing to do, but to read, and idle about, I was wandering
|
|
in the farm, fields, stable, cow-houses, everywhere, and soon knew all
|
|
the faces on the estate. Among them was Pender, still so named, she
|
|
having then been married about a year to a man bearing her own maiden
|
|
name, and was then about twenty-three years old; a tall, strapping
|
|
woman, with a bum as big as a washing-tub; brown she was from working in
|
|
the sun, but fucking regularly as I supposed had cleared her complexion,
|
|
she was a good, comely country-woman. Our eyes met, both at the instant
|
|
thought of the day when I got my fingers red up her petticoats; she
|
|
curtsied, and blushed, I laughed with a baudy look I expect, and said,
|
|
"Well you still here."
|
|
|
|
I spoke to her again on other days, her husband worked on the farm, and
|
|
she was dairy-woman. Whenever I saw her my prick stood, and I avoided
|
|
her, for fear of an erection increasing my gleet.
|
|
|
|
There was hay-making,--lolling about with a book I went to look on, it
|
|
was at one or two fields off from a large rick-yard which was near
|
|
to the farm buildings. There was a half-made hay-stack with a ladder
|
|
against it, up which without any object I went idly, and laying down
|
|
went on reading. It became cloudy, the headman calling out said, "We'll
|
|
have rain, cut off all on yer, and get the hay up into cocks, yes
|
|
you,--you,--yes you too" (I did not know who he was talking to.) Men and
|
|
women crossed the rick-yard, and went off in the distance, Pender was
|
|
one, and was well ahead, when he called out, "You had better get the
|
|
dairy-work done though." She turned, and coming slowly back stood still
|
|
a moment, then comfortably squatted, and pissed.
|
|
|
|
I laying half buried in the hay was not visible to her, but seeing her
|
|
piddling, raised myself, and looked.
|
|
|
|
As she finished she gave her clothes that usual hitch against her cunt,
|
|
looked up, and saw me, turned round quickly, went away from the yard,
|
|
and then as if she had forgotten, turned round with her head hanging
|
|
down, and came through the rick-yard. I slipped from the stack, and met
|
|
her at the foot of it,--we were surrounded with stacks.
|
|
|
|
Her face was red. "A comfortable piddle you had," said I stopping her.
|
|
"Adun sir," said she. "A kiss, for old acquaintance," snatching one. "I
|
|
am married," said she. "Don't care, so much the merrier, it's not so
|
|
wet as it was, when I felt it some years ago?" "Oh I lawk don't, I'm
|
|
married."
|
|
|
|
We had moved a little, were by the hay-stack then making, a heap of hay
|
|
had fallen as they had lifted it from cart to the stack. I closed with
|
|
her, kissing and hugging, gave her a push, and we both tumbled into
|
|
a sitting position together on the heap, she half laughing, half
|
|
resisting; then kissing her, suggesting pleasure, pulling out my prick,
|
|
seeing a thick pair of legs in dark stockings, big thighs, a belly, some
|
|
brown hair at the bottom of it, I felt cool flesh, a wet warm split, and
|
|
was on her, up her, and spent in her.
|
|
|
|
I came to myself with a tingling aching sensation inside my prick, the
|
|
stiffness, and spending had hurt the urethra which had been split by the
|
|
bougie. I had a notion that blood must be coming, and still stiff pulled
|
|
it out of her; the little lingering sperm on the tip looked all right,
|
|
she had not spent, for I don't think I could have shoved more than once
|
|
before I had emitted my semen. I threw myself on her to put into her
|
|
again, but she baulked me. "Oh! now for God's sake if my husband caught
|
|
us there would be murder," but I was burning with want, it was more than
|
|
two months since I had clutched a woman's backside, and spent up a cunt.
|
|
Furiously I pulled her back, rolled over her, and fingered her; she rose
|
|
spite of me, and went off. "Pray don't come with me, we may be seen, I
|
|
wouldn't for the world we were seen coming out the rick-yard together."
|
|
|
|
A minute's reflection made me wiser. I got upon the hay-rick again, saw
|
|
men and women in the hay-field a long distance off, I called out
|
|
names of one or two I knew,--no one answered, went into the farm-yard,
|
|
hollowed there, no one answered, thence went into the cow-house,--there
|
|
was she milking.
|
|
|
|
I stood by the cows, pulled my prick out, begged her to let me do it
|
|
again, talked all the baudiness I could, reminded her of when first I
|
|
wetted my fingers in her red-stained cunt, lifted up the cow's tail,
|
|
swore if she did not let me I would put my prick up the cow. It was
|
|
funny to see a woman whose cunt was full of sperm pulling vigorously
|
|
at a cow's teats, whilst a man with his prick exposed was holding up
|
|
a cow's tail showing its cacked arse, and not too clean cunt. What
|
|
absurdity will not a lewd man do?
|
|
|
|
"I must get this done, I am frightened, we shall be seen, we shall be
|
|
caught," said she. I dropped on my knees, and as she went on milking,
|
|
put my fingers up her petticoats, the slit was wet with my leavings. I
|
|
pulled her face towards me to kiss, whilst she kept tugging at the cow's
|
|
teats.
|
|
|
|
When the cow was dry she took the pail across the yard to the dairy,
|
|
emptied it, and came back, looking in all directions, called out some
|
|
name, but all were at the hay-making, heavy drops of rain were falling.
|
|
|
|
"Come to the stable," said I, and laying hold of her pulled her in that
|
|
direction.
|
|
|
|
I partly coaxed, partly pulled her, she looked uneasily round the
|
|
farm-yard, and we entered the cowshed. At one end of it was a cart-horse
|
|
stable, close to that a large barn. With arm round her I led her towards
|
|
the barn, there was straw and hay there; but in the stable in the first
|
|
empty stall was a heap of fresh straw. I pushed her down on to it, the
|
|
next instant I was fucking her, and what a fuck! I shall recollect it to
|
|
the last day of my life, it was delicious. It was two months since I had
|
|
had a woman; here was a stout, fat-arsed, hard-fleshed, healthy country
|
|
woman; rough, dirty with work, but whose thighs were white, and whose
|
|
cunt was a clipper, who was randy, had every capability of giving a
|
|
man delight. No highly fed woman clad in silks and satins, could have
|
|
ministered to me as she did, as replying to my thrusts her cunt sucked
|
|
my prick up her, and we spent together.
|
|
|
|
I raised myself up without uncunting; the straw rustling and crushing
|
|
under us, too excited to lay still, after I had spent. She lay in quiet
|
|
enjoyment, till putting down one hand to feel round our bellies, I
|
|
roused her, then she wriggled, and out slipped my cock. "I must get up,
|
|
for God's sake let me."
|
|
|
|
We got up. I don't suppose that more than twenty minutes had passed
|
|
between my first, and my second poke, still my prick remained stiff. She
|
|
went quickly to the cow-shed, put down the milking-stool, sat down and
|
|
began again tugging at a cow's teats, I again standing by her side with
|
|
my privates hanging outside my trowsers.
|
|
|
|
I wanted to see her limbs, to feel her breasts. The idea of her cunt
|
|
squeezing out its moisture on to her chemise as she sat on the stool,
|
|
the desire to see every part of her, that irresistible want to see all,
|
|
feel all, and satisfy every sense which springs up in the mind of a
|
|
man when a woman has satisfied his voluptuousness for the first time
|
|
overcame me. She tugged at the teats. "Oh! go, pray do,--I won't,--you
|
|
shant,--ye've done me over.--oh! if you are seen here what will be
|
|
said?--don't now get a poor woman into trouble, the milking must be
|
|
done, if it's not what shall I say?" and tug, tug, went both hands
|
|
milking.
|
|
|
|
Said I, No one would come back until they had raked up the hay out of
|
|
harm from the rain. She knew better. "Yes they will if they are kept
|
|
late, some one will go to the Hall for beer, and they come back through
|
|
the rick-yard for cans; go away for God's sake." I went back to the
|
|
rick-yard, and saw a man coming as she had said, did not know which way
|
|
to make off, but the hay-stacks helped me, and I dodged up to the Hall;
|
|
it was about three minutes only from the farm-yard, and led to it by a
|
|
lovely shady walk.
|
|
|
|
Female servants only were in the house, even my aunt and cousins had
|
|
gone to the hay-meadow; soon a man emerged from the Hall with two huge
|
|
cans in his hands: it was Pender's husband. He went off with them filled
|
|
I suppose. I walked across the lawn and pleasure-gardens which the
|
|
fields surrounded, saw him in the distance, then made my way to
|
|
the cow-house again. "He's gone." "I have been so frightened," said
|
|
she,--but did not say it was her husband. She was still at the cows
|
|
teats.
|
|
|
|
I would not be repulsed, nearly upset a pail of milk, and swore I would
|
|
have her again. She refused, prayed me, then promised she would, if I
|
|
would let her take the milk into the dairy. Permitting it, she stayed
|
|
a few minutes, then out she came, looked all round, again called out a
|
|
name before entering the stable. The next minute we were on the straw,
|
|
my hand between her thighs. "You have washed your cunt," said I. "I did
|
|
it in the dairy," said she.
|
|
|
|
I had a grope, tickled her clitoris, got my mouth on to her belly, my
|
|
lips outside her cunt, we fucked, and again she went to her cow's teats.
|
|
All this was in broad day-light, although evening was coming on.
|
|
|
|
She finished milking. "I ought to go to the hay," said she; but I would
|
|
not let her, held her back, and swore if she went I would follow her.
|
|
"What have I done?" said she, "I must be mad." Then she took as was her
|
|
custom, milk up to the Hall, I awaited her return, looking at my cock
|
|
from which to my delight, all signs of gleet had gone.
|
|
|
|
For some time I had had mostly gay women, this was a return to old
|
|
times. It was pleasant to have a fuck on the sly, with a woman who
|
|
showed real pleasure, who shivered with delight, and grasped me like a
|
|
vice. Besides there was the stinging element of adultery. I laughed
|
|
to myself at the idea of her husband's prick going up where I had been
|
|
three times; my prick began to stiffen, and then droop, then rise again.
|
|
I felt sure that, at the feel of her quim I should be all right. "If I
|
|
can once get it up her, once feel her cunt-lips closing round it, get a
|
|
good clip round her buttocks, I am sure I can fuck her again before they
|
|
come back from the hay-field," thought I gently frigging my cock, and
|
|
looking through a crack in the door.
|
|
|
|
She came back. I went at her in the cow-house; the only immediate fear
|
|
now was that a servant might come from the Hall. To make the story
|
|
short, I got her into the barn, where the light was less; and she let me
|
|
do more as I liked. I had a look at a thick brown-haired motte, a belly,
|
|
and a pair of white round thighs a duchess might have been proud of,
|
|
I kissed her cunt, and fumbling about from her navel to her arse-hole,
|
|
fucking her with a long lingering fuck which left us both silent, and
|
|
enervated. My cock lingered up her as I lay quiet, squeezing my belly up
|
|
to hers, my lips still against her rosy mouth, and said, "You will have
|
|
a boy this day nine months."
|
|
|
|
And she did have a boy that day nine months. A second time that prophecy
|
|
had come true alas!
|
|
|
|
With a kiss we parted; men were returning from the fields. I got to the
|
|
Hall. At dinner my aunt said, "Walter you should have given us help, all
|
|
should help hay-making, when rain comes on; but you are too lazy; what
|
|
have you been doing?" "Dear aunt, I have been reading steadily ever
|
|
since." Said she, "How fond of reading you are for a young man of your
|
|
age; how you can like to be so much alone, as you have been lately I
|
|
cannot imagine, it would be better if you took more exercise." She did
|
|
not know the condition my cock had been in. And my mother was delighted
|
|
at my being in the country, thinking I was getting steadier, and away
|
|
from bad company.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER V.
|
|
|
|
Aunt at the dairy.--Morning amusements with Pender.--Female
|
|
hay-makers.--Mrs. Whiteteeth.--An exhibition of cock.--
|
|
Against a field-gate.--A night on the grass.--A sight from
|
|
the barn-loft.--Robert the page.--Molly.
|
|
|
|
I could scarcely sleep that night. Pender seemed to me the most
|
|
delicious woman I had ever poked. What if excitement had brought back
|
|
the clap! what if I had clapped her! I had never after the clap had a
|
|
woman until the doctor said I might. When I awakened, to my joy my prick
|
|
was as dry as a bone; a woman was what I had wanted to complete my cure.
|
|
The next minute my prick was stiff as I thought of Pender's charms.
|
|
|
|
It was a lovely morning, every available hand in house and farm was sent
|
|
off to scatter the hay which on the previous night had been heaped up,
|
|
Mrs. Pender excepted, whose dairy duty kept her at the farm. I caught
|
|
her in the cow-house to her astonishment, for it could not have been
|
|
more than six A.M. To rush up to her, and kiss her was instantaneous.
|
|
She repulsed my wandering hands. "Oh! sir, don't now,--no never, never
|
|
again (married women always say that), Missus will be coming,--no
|
|
never,--I'm a married woman,--now pray,--you shant." I got her back up
|
|
against a wall, my hand on her fringe, my mouth pressed to hers; how
|
|
was it possible to resist? At ten paces was the stable, and the friendly
|
|
hay. What a ballocking I gave her, with the summer sun shining through a
|
|
window on to us, as we lay together in the early morning.
|
|
|
|
She sat down to milking with her cunt full of me. "They be all up at the
|
|
hay," said she, "but Missus comes every fine morning to the dairy (that
|
|
was true), she won't be here for an hour; but if she were, what would I
|
|
do? my husband will be back, he'll take breakfast to the fields, to save
|
|
time, in chance of wet again coming on. Oh! do go." There was certainly
|
|
all those chances. Off I went across the rick-yard, round the belt of
|
|
trees which skirted the house and gardens, so that I seemed to enter
|
|
from the opposite side to that where Pender sat milking.
|
|
|
|
"Is my aunt up?" "No sir, she won't be down till seven o'clock when
|
|
she goes to the dairy." I took a book, sat down till the servant
|
|
disappeared, then running by the path soon to be described, was in two
|
|
minutes in the farm-yard. Pender was in the dairy, resistance was vain,
|
|
and with her back up against the dairy wall we fucked. I cut back to the
|
|
house, and sat outside reading. Soon after aunt appeared.
|
|
|
|
Said she, "What is the matter, that you are up so early?" (I usually was
|
|
asleep at that hour.) "I could not sleep, dear aunt." "It would do you
|
|
good if you always got up early, come with me to the dairy." In five
|
|
minutes aunt and I were there. Lord, how Pender looked when she saw us
|
|
together!
|
|
|
|
Aunt took pleasure in her farm. Every morning if well she walked down to
|
|
it, saw how many eggs had been laid, and if butter-making, etc., went on
|
|
rightly. Pender attended, whilst aunt with spectacles on was looking at
|
|
the cream-pans, and asking questions, I looking as if deeply interested
|
|
in the matter, was pinching Pender's bum as she stood besides my aunt.
|
|
"How hot you are Pender," said my aunt looking at the woman. "It is
|
|
hot ma'am," she replied, perspiration streaming down her face. How very
|
|
uncomfortable she looked.
|
|
|
|
At breakfast aunt said, "What do you think Walter has been to the dairy
|
|
with me." "Lor'!" said my lady cousins, "that is wonderful; he to get
|
|
up so early!" "Have you had that dairy-maid long, aunt?" "Why don't
|
|
you recollect she was housemaid here once?" "No." Then aunt told the
|
|
history, which till then I did not know.
|
|
|
|
At the time of my unsuccessful attempt at a feel, she was engaged to
|
|
a young man; they quarrelled, he left the village to go for a soldier,
|
|
came back; again a quarrel, and again off he went. After a time he wrote
|
|
to say, he meant to marry another girl. Pender was in great grief. Just
|
|
then a head-man on the estate, about fifty-five years old, offered her
|
|
marriage, and in a reckless state of mind, she accepted him. Directly
|
|
afterwards her sweetheart came back, his statement was a false-hood,
|
|
told to try her. It was too late, and he went to America. "She is a very
|
|
nice, steady woman," said aunt, "they lead a quiet life, but I don't
|
|
think she is very happy, twenty-three and fifty-five are not a good
|
|
match."
|
|
|
|
Food was sent to some of the farm-laborers at a meadow half-a-mile off.
|
|
I had the pleasure of seeing my cousins, aunt, and two of the female
|
|
servants in big straw hats, go off to the field. They thought haymaking
|
|
good fun. I promised to join them, and directly they were out of sight
|
|
cut off to Pender, dodged all round the rick-yard to see if I was alone,
|
|
and found her tranquilly churning butter. The stable still appeared
|
|
the best place. Thither we went, and for the first time quietly, so to
|
|
speak, I saw the article, and all its surroundings, which had given me
|
|
several pleasures; and after fucking her I went to join my aunt, as I
|
|
had promised her.
|
|
|
|
I had soon enough of hay-making myself, so laid down in the shade
|
|
watching the hay-makers (nearly all women). As they moved along in rows,
|
|
lewd thoughts occupied my mind. One biggish woman attracted my notice by
|
|
her magnificent white teeth; looking at her short petticoats, and thick
|
|
legs, lewdness increased to a cock-stand. I stared so as she approached
|
|
me, that she could not fail to notice it. "It's hot," said I. "It be
|
|
sir." She stooped with her bum towards me, and lying down as I was, I
|
|
saw nearly to her knees. "What would I give," I thought, "to be close up
|
|
to your bum-cheeks." Dirty linen, dirty clothes, sweaty flesh, none of
|
|
those objections occured to me. Then I moved farther up the field to get
|
|
nearer, for working along the ridges, they had got away from my resting
|
|
place, and again laid down reading a newspaper. I covered my lap with
|
|
it, feeling my prick beneath it, then I pulled my prick out (what
|
|
risk!), and just as she heading the file of women came towards me, and
|
|
began turning round; I again spoke to her. She stopped, the others went
|
|
on; I lifted the newspaper; there stood my prick, red-tipped as a berry.
|
|
She looked at it, at me, and putting one hand up to her mouth as if to
|
|
stop her laughter, turned and followed on the others with her work. Soon
|
|
returning she was again facing me, I saw her white teeth as she smiled,
|
|
and her eyes fixed on me; the other women turned round, she stopped
|
|
for a moment, off went the newspaper, and she gazed at my doodle for a
|
|
second or two again. She was further off then, and I saw her speaking
|
|
to the woman just in front of her, who looked round; I thought she had
|
|
told, and in a funk left the hay-field.
|
|
|
|
In the afternoon in the farm-yard, there were people about, and no
|
|
chance of having Pender. My desire to have her was intense. After dinner
|
|
I went to the farm, Pender had gone home, so I strolled into the lane
|
|
which the farm-buildings abutted on.
|
|
|
|
Between the Hall and farm-yard was a shrubbery path; laurels, hollies
|
|
and evergreens nearly met over head. It joined a belt of walk and
|
|
plantation which skirted the lawns, gardens and a small paddock, and hid
|
|
the farm-yard from the house. It took two or three minutes to walk from
|
|
the farm to the house. The farmyard on the other side opened on to a
|
|
lovely village lane running between fields for a mile or so; on one side
|
|
the land belonged to my aunt, the other to another proprietor. No one
|
|
scarcely went along it but farm people. At one end were the two cottages
|
|
in which I had fucked the two sisters years before; lower down past
|
|
the farm-gates, were one or two other cottages in which lived
|
|
farm-labourers, and in one of them the Pender's. The lane then joined
|
|
the high-road, which led by a half-a-mile to the front of my aunt's
|
|
house, and to the village. The farm-gates were always closed at dark.
|
|
A great bell which when pulled set a dog barking was the way of getting
|
|
in, after dark.
|
|
|
|
Leaving the wicket-gate ajar, I went down the lane, it was darkish, a
|
|
fine summer night, but no moon. I knew where Pender lived, and by cunt
|
|
attraction strolled in front of the cottage, though fearing to be seen.
|
|
|
|
As I left the farm-gate, female hay-makers who had worked till dark,
|
|
passed, curtsying as they recognized me. I thought of Whiteteeth but
|
|
saw her not. Turning back from Penders after I had strolled past the
|
|
cottage, I went up the lane languishing with lust, and leaned against a
|
|
field-gate. I heard a step,--it was the woman with white teeth.
|
|
|
|
"Good night." "Good night sir." "Come here." She stopped, came close,
|
|
I laid hold of her arm, and drew her close to the gate. "Come into the
|
|
field with me, I will give you five shillings."
|
|
|
|
A slight chuckle, the white teeth show. "I dare not." But as she spoke I
|
|
had got her back up against the gate, and my hand on her grummit.
|
|
|
|
"My old man will be waiting me,--I can't." Lifting her clothes I tried
|
|
to impale her as she stood. "No, no,--some one will pass," said she in a
|
|
whisper. I put my hand on the latch, the gate opened, and we were in the
|
|
field; the gate closed with a snap. I led her along by a ditch to a turn
|
|
in the hedge; she made no resistance, in a minute we were buried in deep
|
|
grass, my doodle buried in her cunt, we had spoken in whispers, all was
|
|
silent excepting the insects which chirped in the hot summer's night.
|
|
|
|
How delightful these chance pokes are; there was my prick which had not
|
|
been washed since it had left Pender's cunt, now wetting to its roots in
|
|
the cunt of an unknown woman,--and I'd only just recovered from a
|
|
clap. Not a word had we spoken from the moment we entered the field.
|
|
We copulated in quietness. My prick did not uncunt, but I moved my arse
|
|
outwards, when with tightening grasps, a heave up, and a tightening of
|
|
her cunt, she whispered, "Go on doing it"
|
|
|
|
I could see the white teeth, but indistinctly, there was just sufficient
|
|
light to see outlines, and anything white, but no colour. "I don't think
|
|
I can, I have been doing it all day," I said.
|
|
|
|
"You've had one of the other women," said she in a whisper, "if I'd
|
|
knowed it, you should not have had me," and with a jerk she uncunted me.
|
|
|
|
"No," said I, "it's a joke." She raised herself slightly-to look me
|
|
in the face, but it was too dark. "I thought not," said she; then she
|
|
caught hold of my prick, fell on her back again, I saw indistinctly a
|
|
broad expanse of thigh and belly. "Let's feel,--let's look." Wide open
|
|
were her legs in a minute, I felt a great, cool belly, strong, thick
|
|
crisp hair, my fingers moved easily up the buttered love-trap, I could
|
|
not see the opening.
|
|
|
|
"Hush!" said she, "there is a footstep." Quiet on the grass we lay;
|
|
tramp, tramp it came, past, and died away. "I wonder who it be," said
|
|
she.
|
|
|
|
She had kept hold of my prick, and soon our bellies met. When done
|
|
she hurried me not out of her, seemed to like my indulgence, till she
|
|
whispered, "I must go, keep here till you can't hear my footsteps before
|
|
you come out, we be near the yard, and if I be seen I don't know what
|
|
they will say."
|
|
|
|
"My old man's at the 'Lion,' but I'll go straight home." "Perhaps he'll
|
|
have gone home." "Not he,--they allus sticks at the Public late, when
|
|
they works late." And with her cunt reeking, off she went.
|
|
|
|
I followed, intending to walk round to the front of the Hall. Passing
|
|
Pender's house, to my astonishment she was standing at the door. I went
|
|
up to her. "Oh!" said she, "Pender will be home, I expect him every
|
|
minute." She could hear his footsteps a mile off, but she would not let
|
|
me into the house.
|
|
|
|
Opposite to Pender's was also a field-gate, I persuaded her to come out
|
|
and stand there with me; the hedge hid anyone coming along the lane. "At
|
|
the first sound of a footstep," said I, "I will go into the field, and
|
|
you can cross to your house." I was longing for the woman, but scarcely
|
|
thought I could do it after my day's fucking. The idea of putting my
|
|
prick still wet with Whiteteeth's juices, into Pender's quim, stimulated
|
|
me; my cock stood (in those days if it stood it was sure of doing duty).
|
|
I closed up to her whispering love, and frigging her, she gradually
|
|
getting besides herself with pleasure. At length up went my prick into
|
|
her, and after a quarter of an hour's lamming, finished.
|
|
|
|
Meeting her husband in the lane might have caused suspicion, so into the
|
|
field I went, intending to wait till he passed, laid down, fell asleep,
|
|
awaking when it was broad daylight. I then waited two hours, walked
|
|
round to the Hall, waited in the front till the door was opened, then
|
|
went up to my room, and to bed. The servant saw me go in, and I imagine
|
|
thought I had been out in the grounds without her knowing it,--certainly
|
|
it never was known that I had been out all night.
|
|
|
|
I went to bed to rumple it, then down to breakfast, all the time
|
|
thinking of some lie as an excuse for being out all night. "You were
|
|
tired, and went to bed early I expect," said aunt. "Yes," said I. My
|
|
limbs were aching from exposure to night-air, as I spoke.
|
|
|
|
Three days had made a great change in me. My prolonged abstinence from
|
|
women, and now my recovery, my taking more to animal food, wine, and
|
|
my usual mode of living, the quiet life I was leading, all my physical
|
|
forces at their highest. My cock stood from morning till night, not a
|
|
woman passed me, young or old, without my desiring them. I thought of
|
|
nothing else, and to this perhaps is due the variety of poking I got.
|
|
Luck usually falls to those who look out for it.
|
|
|
|
I have said there was a shrubbery round the grounds connecting with that
|
|
from the Hall to the farm; quite on the other side of the Hall were the
|
|
stables, and the gardener's house. None of the stablemen or gardeners
|
|
were on the farm-side. The servants of the Hall slipped down to the
|
|
farm to gossip, but it was not allowed. The only person who regularly
|
|
traversed the shrubbery was Mrs. Pender, who twice a day took milk, and
|
|
dairy produce to the Hall.
|
|
|
|
Half-way down this shrubbery-path was a path connecting with that which
|
|
went quite round the grounds. Cunningly contrived, and leading out of
|
|
it was one to a large privy, usual in such grounds as my aunt's. A large
|
|
octagonal house covered with ivy, with a door and two glass windows, a
|
|
house devoted to shitting, but large enough to hold a dozen people.
|
|
|
|
One or two days after I had had Whiteteeth and Pender, I dodged about
|
|
after the latter, but there were people about. I went off to the
|
|
hay-making, but there were only men carting hay; so I went sniffing
|
|
about the servants in the house, but nothing came of that. In the
|
|
afternoon I went to the farm-yard, and prowled about to find some
|
|
chance, and place to get Pender, and went up into the big loft in the
|
|
barn over the cart-shed. Why I went up there I don't know, and had not
|
|
been there a minute before I heard a scuffle, and a kiss. "I shant,
|
|
now--you saucy boy," said a female voice. Another kiss, and a scuffle.
|
|
"I must go to the house," said the female. I peeped: it was a nursemaid,
|
|
and my aunt's page. The girl ran off, leaving the page. They did not see
|
|
me.
|
|
|
|
My aunt's male in-door servants consisted but of a middle-aged butler
|
|
who had been in her service many years, a slow, solemn man, a widower,
|
|
and a page taken on when small, who had recently grown rapidly, and was
|
|
a heavy, stupid, gawky lad, between fifteen and sixteen years old, too
|
|
big for his place. My aunt, although always intending to dismiss him,
|
|
kept him on out of kindness, but at length had said, "Page must go, I
|
|
shall not give him a new suit, it will be waste of money." He looked
|
|
stupid as an owl, and as if an idea about cunt would never have entered
|
|
his mind.
|
|
|
|
This boy stood still reflecting, then unbuttoned his trowsers, pulled
|
|
out a stiff, big prick, and after pulling the prepuce down once or
|
|
twice, buttoned it up again; stood still, again unbuttoned, sat down
|
|
on some straw, reflected, and then frigged himself. After wiping his
|
|
fingers on the straw he went off, leaving me wondering at his lust, the
|
|
size of his doodle, and the quantity of spunk he shot. "That lumpish boy
|
|
to do that!" forgetting what I did, when only a little older than him.
|
|
|
|
"Hullo! what are you doing here?" said a voice.--it was Pender's. He
|
|
made no reply. "You'd better be off to the Hall, you've no business
|
|
here." "I was fetching the nurse-maid." "Well she's no business here;
|
|
you cut, they will be ringing for you." When the voices ceased I
|
|
descended, and went to the Hall.
|
|
|
|
The head farm-man had recently died, he, his wife and daughter, had
|
|
lived in the cottage in the farmyard. Pender's husband had taken his
|
|
place, but still lived in his cottage in the lane. The woman whose
|
|
husband had died attended to things in general, the daughter assisted
|
|
in the dairy, and worked very often up at the Hall. A pretty girl of a
|
|
common, rustic style of beauty, and about sixteen years old; she used to
|
|
curtsy to me when she met me, but I had never cast my eyes at her. As I
|
|
skulked out through the rick-yard into the shrubbery-walk leading to the
|
|
Hall I met her, stopped, and had a chat, a joke, and finished by a kiss,
|
|
which she took in very bad part, and wiped away with her hand, as if I
|
|
was quite disgusting. She was an only child, her name Molly.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VI.
|
|
|
|
Joey and nursemaid.--The privy in the laurel-walk.--Scared.--
|
|
Whiteteeth in the ditch.--The nursemaid's bed-room.--Robert
|
|
amusing her.--A lost virginity.--Aunt and Joey.--Nearly
|
|
caught.--Amatory instructions to nursemaid.
|
|
|
|
Lusting worse after the kiss, I went to the house. My cousins were
|
|
out, my aunt taking her afternoon's nap. I rang my bed-room bell for
|
|
something, simply to get a woman near me, in the shape of a housemaid
|
|
who was as ugly as sin. I pulled out my cock when she left, and thought
|
|
of imitating the page, but did not; from my window saw the nursemaid was
|
|
out with the child, and strolled out to meet her. I must mention that
|
|
the child (about four years old), was a married cousin's child who had
|
|
gone to India with her husband; leaving the infant in charge of her
|
|
mother, my aunt.
|
|
|
|
Nursemaid was a dry, plainish little woman whom I had scarcely noticed
|
|
until the previous three days. I talked to the infant, and played with
|
|
him, asked her if she would like a child, if she would let me be the
|
|
father, and got a chaffing reply. Suddenly it struck me from the scuffle
|
|
I had heard in the barn, that she and the page were very intimate, and
|
|
said as a random shot, "You would not mind Robert cuddling you, would
|
|
you now?" She coloured up, looked confused, then said, as if she did
|
|
not recollect, "Robert?--who is Robert?" "Fat Robert the page." "Pough."
|
|
said she, "that big boy!" She took up the child, and walked off,--not to
|
|
the house, but a long way away from it. After a time I followed her;
|
|
she entered a grotto, or very large summer-house which formed part of
|
|
an artificial ruin in the grounds, and which was the scene of an amusing
|
|
adventure with this very child some years later on in my life. There she
|
|
sat down.
|
|
|
|
I saw what a good blind the child was, so went into the grotto to talk
|
|
to him. He was sitting in her lap. In a minute said he, "I want to
|
|
pee-wee." "Hush!" said she, "I will take you for a walk." "I will
|
|
pee-wee," said he, scuffling down from her lap, running outside the
|
|
summer-house; turning round, lifting his petticoats, and pissing in
|
|
front of us.
|
|
|
|
"You naughty boy," said she. "What a little cock he has," said I. She
|
|
snatched up the child, went towards the house, and there was an end for
|
|
the time of my talk with her.
|
|
|
|
I dodged from hay-field to farm-yard, thence to the house, saw Pender,
|
|
saw the young wench (Molly) I have named, looked out for Whiteteeth;
|
|
it was all no go. I had dinner, then strolled down to the village, saw
|
|
Whiteteeth outside the public with her husband. Back to the house,
|
|
saw nursemaid, said in a whisper. "I shall come and sleep with you
|
|
to-night." "That you won't," said she, "Master Joe always sleeps in
|
|
my room." Randy and weary I went to bed, after nearly spending in my
|
|
trowsers as I looked at my cousins' white necks in the drawing-room, and
|
|
thought to myself, "I will go to ------ (the market-town a few miles off
|
|
to which I have before alluded), and have a woman to-morrow." During
|
|
the hot night thought of cunt, cunt, cunt, would not frig myself, slept.
|
|
Awakened again with a stiff one, frigged, and then got repose.
|
|
|
|
The next morning I increased my acquaintance with the young wench Molly,
|
|
chaffed the nursemaid, and besought her to let me sleep with her. Again
|
|
went to the hay-field, but hay-making was finished, the weather dull,
|
|
and further hay-making postponed till finer weather.
|
|
|
|
Keeping a sharp eye on page Robert, I soon saw he was spooning
|
|
nursemaid; detected him kissing her, and putting his hand on her belly
|
|
outside her clothes. She seeing me, gave him a violent slap on the head;
|
|
when I chaffed her, turned up her nose again and said, "A boy like that
|
|
indeed; I beg you won't talk like that to me sir."
|
|
|
|
She slept in a room which was properly entered from the servant's
|
|
corridor, which connected with the best part of the house through
|
|
folding doors. But a door had been made in the room from best part of
|
|
the house, so that my aunt, who had had a large family could more easily
|
|
see how the children when there, were being looked after. This door was
|
|
just by a lobby which led to the W.C; any one going there might seem to
|
|
be either going towards the W.C, or towards the servants' staircase, the
|
|
nursemaid's room therefore could be entered from either door, and on two
|
|
sides.
|
|
|
|
By the door on the servants' side was a house-maid's W.C and the
|
|
servants' staircase which led also to the attics, where some slept, and
|
|
to a lobby with rooms mostly used for lumber, and where the page had
|
|
been put to sleep, away from females, or anyone else. The butler
|
|
slept in a little room adjoining the pantry and plate-room, on the
|
|
ground-floor.
|
|
|
|
Several days passed, I did not get a gay woman, but hunted incessantly
|
|
in hopes of getting Pender, or Whiteteeth, or the nursemaid. Young Molly
|
|
I did not much think of; she seemed too young, so chaste, so looked
|
|
after, that I had no expectation, but do not recollect what my views
|
|
about her exactly were. Then I did not care about young ones. A
|
|
full-grown woman, large-arsed, with a full-sized and fully-haired cunt
|
|
was my greatest delight; above all I liked room inside it for my cock to
|
|
swell out, a tight cunt had no delights to me.
|
|
|
|
After a few days my luck came as it mostly has. I went again with my
|
|
aunt to the dairy. Whilst she was talking to Pender a notion occurred to
|
|
me. I did not go into breakfast, but waited in the turning leading out
|
|
of the shrubbery between the Hall and farmyard; and hiding, saw Pender
|
|
take up the milk; a few minutes later heard her returning, and stepped
|
|
out. I had made up my mind to have her in the privy; have had women in
|
|
similar places before and since, and daresay that other men have.
|
|
|
|
She gave a start. "Come here." "No." But I clutched her. "Oh! now
|
|
pray,--if anyone comes?" "But there won't you know that,--come this
|
|
way," and I pulled her out of the main-walk. "Oh! don't, there's a
|
|
dear gentleman,--hush! perhaps some one is near." "Why they are all at
|
|
breakfast." "I don't know where my husband is."
|
|
|
|
I had edged her down the path, and pushed her into the large privy.
|
|
Pender was randy, that I see now. A woman in fear yields reluctantly,
|
|
but she yields when she wants a man.
|
|
|
|
I locked the door and pressed her up against the wall. "Oh! I am so
|
|
frightened," said she, "later on I'll let you,--oh! if we should be
|
|
found." She was in a funk, but what can any woman do, who feels a man's
|
|
warm prick outside her belly, and his hands fumbling at her clitoris?
|
|
the sensuous touch goes through her like lightning. Soon we were both
|
|
spending.
|
|
|
|
My head was on her shoulder, my prick oozing its last drop of sperm,
|
|
when she clutched me violently with a stare of terror in her face, it
|
|
scared me. "It is he, it's he!" she said in a screaming whisper, "oh!
|
|
my God!" Tramp,--tramp, went a heavy male step in the shrubbery. "Oh! my
|
|
God, I know his step!"
|
|
|
|
My prick flopped down, her petticoats dropped, but we stood close
|
|
against the wall breathless. Tramp,--tramp, nearer, nearer it came, it
|
|
passed the door, and died away in the distance. As he passed I peeped
|
|
through the little red curtains over the window, and saw it was her
|
|
husband's cap.
|
|
|
|
She sat down on the privy-seat, and buried her face in her hands. "My
|
|
God," said she, "What would have happened, if he had found me here? But
|
|
what does he do up this path? he has no business here," she added.
|
|
|
|
After a few seconds I went off in one direction, she as she told me,
|
|
to her cottage, where she found her husband, and they had breakfast
|
|
together; the good man not suspecting, that his wife's cunt was full of
|
|
sperm. Such are the chances of me.
|
|
|
|
I went into breakfast. My aunt was annoyed at my being so late. A female
|
|
cousin,--a pretty girl,--whom it was wished I should marry, poured out
|
|
my tea. I thought, "Ah! my dear girl, if you knew where my prick has
|
|
been a few minutes ago, it would astonish you."
|
|
|
|
I went through the farm-yard a little before midday into the lane, and
|
|
passed Pender without speaking. I met Whiteteeth carrying a mug and
|
|
other things in a basket in the lane. She smiled, I followed to the
|
|
memorable gate, then stopped. "Come into the field," said I. "I can't,
|
|
I'm taking my good man his dinner, some of the women may come this way."
|
|
"I owe you five shillings, I'll make it ten shilling,--come." "I don't
|
|
want your money." "Come for love then." "We must be quick," said she
|
|
following me, and cautiously she looked round. We passed through the
|
|
gates to the place where we had laid down before; now in broad day it
|
|
seemed dangerously near the lane. There was a sinking in the surface
|
|
a little further on where cows had trodden the ground down to get to a
|
|
ditch; there she put down her dinner-basket. Throwing up her petticoats,
|
|
I saw her cunt was dark-haired. We fucked rapidly, no fumbling,
|
|
stink-fingering, or frigging. I gave her ten shillings. "Give it me in
|
|
silver," said she, "if I change it in the village it will be known." I
|
|
took it back, gave her all the silver I had, owing her some. She said
|
|
she would meet me again in the evening, unless her husband was working
|
|
in the same field with her; he was mowing then.
|
|
|
|
I had luncheon, and a cock-stand again, walked round the grounds, and
|
|
saw the nursemaid with the child. A cunning little bitch she was,--I did
|
|
not see that plainly then,--she was rolling on the lawn playing with
|
|
the child, her clothes went up to her knees; it was carelessness, she
|
|
believing herself alone with the boy. She had a thin pair of limbs in
|
|
nice boots. I peeped out from the shrubs, expecting to see higher, but
|
|
did not. The little boy again wanted to piddle, she pulled out his cock,
|
|
and held it. Whilst so interestingly engaged I advanced, she put his
|
|
clothes down. I walked by her side. "You like holding that?" said I. She
|
|
turned away. "Let me sleep with you." "This is my bedfellow," said she
|
|
laughing, and went towards the house, I in the opposite direction of
|
|
course.
|
|
|
|
I waited in the lane in the evening. Whiteteeth came along with others,
|
|
eyeing me with a smile, and there was no opportunity. It was lightish.
|
|
I thought to get Pender in the privy again next morning. It was not
|
|
probable that her husband would pass that way again at that time. I
|
|
went to bed. In the middle of the night was obliged to go to the
|
|
water-closet, and sitting there thought of the housemaid, recollected
|
|
that my aunt had said she would have Joey, who was not well, sleep with
|
|
her that night. "Why, she will be alone that nursemaid, she is a randy
|
|
one," I thought; but was by no means sure I should succeed, having
|
|
known others who would go a long way, but stop short at fucking. If she
|
|
resisted and there was a row, I should be obliged to leave my aunt's.
|
|
All this ran through my mind whilst sitting on the water-closet.
|
|
Water-closets had not long been known, they were quite proud of having
|
|
them in my aunt's house.
|
|
|
|
My cock rose up, as the girl's neat thin legs came before my eyes. Cock
|
|
stiffer I went towards my bedroom, passed her door, heard her moving
|
|
inside, and that settled me. Going to my room I put in the candle, and
|
|
in my dressing-gown went softly back, turned the handle, and pushed her
|
|
door. It opened, and a sight met my astonished eyes.
|
|
|
|
She was lying on the bed, leaning on her elbow, in her chemise which
|
|
was just above her knees, her legs partly up and open, her back turned
|
|
partially from me as I entered. By the bed-side stood page Robert with
|
|
his breeches opened, she was frigging, or feeling his great cock as
|
|
she lay; the page's hand was between her knees, either on her cunt, or
|
|
trying to get at it. They were in the enjoyment of mutual investigation.
|
|
Whether it was going further I can't say. I believe she was frigging
|
|
him, although she always denied that afterwards.
|
|
|
|
I had fairly entered the room before they (so engrossed were they
|
|
with their pleasures) saw me; when with a shriek of, "Oh! my God I am
|
|
ruined!--go (turning to the page), go out sir, or I will scream (to
|
|
me), what's he here for?--what do you here sir?" Without a word the page
|
|
turned and bolted, pulling up his trowsers which fell down to his
|
|
arse as he shuffled out of the room. She turned on one side without
|
|
attempting to hide her legs, or breast, and hid her face crying, "Oh!
|
|
what shall I do?--what shall I do?--go sir go,--I don't know what he did
|
|
here," and other excited, incoherent phrases.
|
|
|
|
I do not recollect saying a word, but bolted the door by which the page
|
|
had gone out, then that by which I had entered; the bolts of that had
|
|
been shot, only they had not quite closed the door before locking. "Be
|
|
quiet, don't be a fool, I'll fuck you,--let's be comfortable," said I.
|
|
|
|
She refused. "Robert has fucked you." "No he ain't." "You were frigging
|
|
him." "No I wasn't,--oh! I don't know what you mean, or what you are
|
|
saying." In her fear, and agitation she had been betrayed into answering
|
|
my assertions. "Oh! dear,--oh! dear!--but you won't tell, will you
|
|
sir?--it will be worse for you if you do," said she with a sort of
|
|
threat, and altering her tone.
|
|
|
|
"I won't tell if you let me,--don't be a fool,--I will have you. If
|
|
there is a row I will say I found you with Robert, and you and he will
|
|
go out neck and crop. If they think badly of me I don't care; I shall
|
|
leave, and in a few months they will overlook it; but you will have no
|
|
character: you have been seen in the cart-shed with Robert." She started
|
|
at that. "It's a story," said she, "who saw me?" and then she began to
|
|
cry.
|
|
|
|
I pulled up my night-shirt, threw myself besides her, and pulled up
|
|
her night-gown. My hand in an instant was on her cunt, her thin thighs
|
|
closed to prevent me, but she was silent. "I will have you," said I
|
|
laying on her, and forcing open her knees with mine. Her resistance grew
|
|
less. "I can't help myself", said she, "you are a blackguard, all the
|
|
women say you are,---don't,--oh! don't hurt me." "Nonsense, you have had
|
|
a prick up it before." "No man has ever touched me." "Let me feel then."
|
|
Her thighs slightly opened, I put a finger on it. "You have a very
|
|
little cunt." "Don't be rough," said she. At length my belly met hers,
|
|
my hand was round her slender bum, my prick on the slit. I pushed, it
|
|
did not enter as I expected, then I felt her cunt roughly, and made her
|
|
cry out. "What a small cunt you have," I said, and with a violent lunge
|
|
pushed up it. She gave a suppressed gasp. "Oh! you hurt, oho." I pushed
|
|
home, fucked and finished triumphantly, for I had had her in spite of
|
|
herself. We had spoken in whispers till she split, and then her cry was
|
|
sharp, and loud.
|
|
|
|
I drew my prick out and myself upon my knees, to see how the cunt
|
|
looked. She did not close her legs. By the light of the small candle I
|
|
could see she had not much more hair on her cunt than a girl of
|
|
sixteen years old. I laid by her side talking to her, then noticing my
|
|
night-shirt said, "You are poorly." "Nothing of the sort." To put my
|
|
fingers up to verify that, and look at them was the work of a moment.
|
|
"Then I have made you bleed." "You have hurt me very much, you brute."
|
|
|
|
I did not like the girl nor her manner, didn't feel kind as I always
|
|
do towards a woman I have had. "You little devil, to hear you talk one
|
|
would think you had never had a man before." "Think what you like, but I
|
|
never have,--go away now."
|
|
|
|
Her tight cunt, her freedom in permitting me to feel it, her sulky
|
|
submission to all I wanted astonished me. I fucked her again, and found
|
|
her cunt very tight still.
|
|
|
|
She was taciturn, and when I said, "I had better go." "Go," she replied,
|
|
"I suppose we shall be kicked out,--what will Robert say?" We agreed
|
|
that she was to tell Robert, that unless he held his tongue he would
|
|
be kicked out without a character; that I was to tell him, that hearing
|
|
conversation I had opened the door; that out of consideration for the
|
|
poor girl would not tell my aunt; but that I should notice him, and if
|
|
I found him misbehaving himself, would tell my aunt that he was not a
|
|
proper person to be in the house. Then I went to my bed-room.
|
|
|
|
I slept but a short time, awakened with a cock-stand, and slipping on
|
|
my dressing-gown sneaked without slippers to her room again; knocked
|
|
gently, heard a sleepy voice say, "Yes ma'am," and the door was opened.
|
|
Spite of her opposition I got into bed with her, another fuck, she
|
|
spent, and we both fell asleep.
|
|
|
|
A violent push awakened me. A knock at the door. "My God it's Missus."
|
|
We were in the dark. Pulling my dressing-gown off the chair I slipped
|
|
with it under the bed, forgetting the door thru which I might have
|
|
escaped. "Let her in," I whispered. Trembling she opened it. It was
|
|
my aunt. "Here," said she, "take Master Joey, he has kept me awake all
|
|
night." The nursemaid put him into the bed, my aunt standing by the
|
|
side, her feet actually against my slippers. "What did you lock this
|
|
door for?" said she, "have I not told you always tor keep this door
|
|
unlocked?" "I felt frightened," said the girl. Away my aunt went, the
|
|
girl sunk on the chair. There was now a light. In a whisper from under
|
|
the bed I said, "Play with the child." She got into bed, took the boy in
|
|
her arms, cuddled and talked to him, whilst I slipped out and regained
|
|
my room. It was not day-light.
|
|
|
|
I had had three women the same day, had washed after neither, their
|
|
lubrications had mixed with mine on my prick-stem and balls. A day
|
|
or two following I had a stock of crabs; were they Pender's, or
|
|
White-teeth's, or nursemaid's, or did I breed them? I had all three
|
|
women afterwards, and never got the crabs again whilst at my aunt's. At
|
|
the market-town I got a remedy, and was soon cured, but had to leave off
|
|
fucking for a little while.
|
|
|
|
I had had the three women at a cost of five shillings; such luck never
|
|
occurred to me before, or since.
|
|
|
|
I don't know when I have had such a jolly month's amusement as then
|
|
followed, in getting first one, and then another of the women. All three
|
|
met my wishes, but there were many difficulties, dodges, manoeuvres to
|
|
get either of them. Nursemaid moving about with the child in all sorts
|
|
of places, came in for the most cock. She was small-boned, skinny, and
|
|
her face had the expression that people have when they have just taken
|
|
medicine. Under other circumstances I should never have noticed her, but
|
|
the extreme smallness of her cunt was a novelty. I thought at first she
|
|
was a regular intriguer, but came to the conclusion that I had had
|
|
the first of her; and that until then she had been a masturbatrix, and
|
|
frigged her flesh off her bones. Rub her clitoris for a second, her eyes
|
|
would open wide and roll with such intense voluptuousness that for a
|
|
moment her face looked beautiful. I used to tell her, that she frigged
|
|
herself thin.
|
|
|
|
I took you may be sure a great fancy to my little cousin Joey, for that
|
|
gave me an opportunity of getting near the nurse. She was always out
|
|
in the grounds with him in fine weather. I would throw the ball for the
|
|
child to run after in the direction of the grotto, then walked round to
|
|
see if any gardener was near, and tip her the wink. In we would go, and
|
|
either against seat, or up against the wall, or more frequently laying
|
|
her with back on the big rustic table, and her legs round my hips, I
|
|
poked her. Once she laid the little child on the table, and played
|
|
with him there, whilst I threw her clothes up behind, and fucked her
|
|
dog-fashion. "Lay hold of his cock," said I as bum-wagging indications
|
|
told me she was coming, and she kissed his little cock rapturously till
|
|
she spent. The little beggar! I wonder if in later years he recollected
|
|
anything he saw. Years afterwards it was my fortune to see him fucking a
|
|
servant in that very summer-house.
|
|
|
|
Whether the child was old enough, or not to notice what he saw, was a
|
|
subject of talk with us. We came to the conclusion, that we were safe.
|
|
After luncheon, when my aunt took a nap, and my cousins went out driving
|
|
(if I could avoid driving out with them, and what lies I told to do
|
|
that), was my most fortunate time; for the servants were lazy after
|
|
their dinner, and the garden excepting from gardeners, quite free.
|
|
|
|
The summer-house, called the grotto, was a big one, there were wide
|
|
seats nearly all round, chairs, and a big table in the middle capable of
|
|
dining a dozen people. I was once frigged in it by a young lady, and two
|
|
different servants did I fuck in it. These adventures will be told in
|
|
their place. There were several summer-houses about the grounds, and I
|
|
had the nursemaid in most of them.
|
|
|
|
Once only I slept with her the whole night, or rather lay fucking her,
|
|
we were frightened to sleep, for fear of being caught. Joey was away.
|
|
She told me the page had been showing her his prick for nearly a year;
|
|
and she let him come to her room that night just to see what he would
|
|
do. "You were frigging him, were you not?" "I was feeling it about."
|
|
Then I told her I had seen him frig himself in the barn. "The servants
|
|
at the Hall wonder at your being so much at the farm," said she. "How
|
|
the devil can they know that?" I thought to myself. It put me on my
|
|
guard.
|
|
|
|
She swore no man had ever touched her before me. "You forced me, and
|
|
made me bleed; I would not have let you, only I feared you would tell
|
|
what you had seen, and I should lose my character." She however took
|
|
now to fucking, and was insatiable in getting me up her; her little thin
|
|
form clung to me in a wonderful way and she loved my penis to push to
|
|
the utmost up her tight little cunt.
|
|
|
|
"So my Fanny's small?" she asked several times, "tell me about other
|
|
women's; are they much larger than mine? I know I have very little hair
|
|
on mine." What nice talk we had.
|
|
|
|
She had been always nursemaid, had frigged herself as long as she
|
|
could recollect, had nursed a girl eight years old who frigged herself
|
|
incessantly, she had to slap her, and tie her hands to prevent it. "Now
|
|
tell me truly, did you ever frig any boy?" "Never," but she had made
|
|
their cocks stiff. She had frigged a girl, and been frigged in return.
|
|
So much for nursemaids. She said she was 27.
|
|
|
|
The morning after I first had her, I told Robert to come to the garden
|
|
directly the breakfast was cleared away. He came. "I heard a noise last
|
|
night as I was passing, opened the door, and caught you; I have a good
|
|
mind to tell your mistress, but the nursemaid has begged, and prayed
|
|
me not; but if I hear you have ever mentioned this, or see you near
|
|
her again, I will have you kicked out the next five minutes, and she
|
|
too.--Be off." Away he went, without a word.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VII.
|
|
|
|
Molly and Giles.--A country ale-house.--Pender's history.--
|
|
How her virginity was taken.--White-teeth's ailment.--Molly
|
|
in the loft.--Interrupted. Molly tailed.
|
|
|
|
I fucked Whiteteeth in the meadow one night again. We selected a field
|
|
further off, which led to another bit of luck. She had left me, and I
|
|
was stepping quietly, so that if met, no one might suppose we had been
|
|
together; when I heard on the other side of a hedge, movements, and the
|
|
voices of a male and female. They sat down within a few feet of where I
|
|
was. I only heard imperfectly, and tell as well as I could gather what
|
|
was said.
|
|
|
|
"I can't stay," said she, "mother will be after me,--she don't know I am
|
|
out of the yard." A kiss,--many kisses,--a scuffle,--"be quiet,"--then
|
|
all was a mumble. Then "I won't,--I won't,--never again,--you shant."
|
|
"Hush!" said he, "suppose some one is near." "Do let's feel it,--let's
|
|
do it," said the male, "do it once, do it twice, it's all the same once
|
|
done." I kept as quiet as death.
|
|
|
|
"No" (here something I could not catch),--"no,--it warn't no pleasure to
|
|
me,--I've been crying ever since,--you won't marry me after all I dare
|
|
say, though I let you do it." "So help me God I will, I'll marry you."
|
|
He swore quite loudly. "Hish!" "Mother won't let us, she hates you." The
|
|
female whimpered, then was mumbling, kissing, soothing, quietness,
|
|
then all of a sudden, "Oh! you're hurting me with your fingers."
|
|
"Hish!--hish!--be quiet!" Then I could hear nothing;--then, "No, I'll
|
|
be getting in a mess like Bess." Said the man half angrily, "She were a
|
|
fool, she needn't a had a child; I knows a mother who can stop any gal
|
|
having a child." "Now don't,--oh! it hurts,--no,--oh!--hoe!" The voices
|
|
sank; kisses came a slight rustling, and all was quiet.
|
|
|
|
Then I heard broken words from both, but in a subdued voice "I'll never
|
|
let you no more," said the female, "you go that way." Kiss, kiss, and
|
|
the cut off, the female towards the gate I had entered the field by, he
|
|
across the fields. She piddled, and waited till he had gone. Dodging
|
|
her I moved after her, and saw her enter the farm-yard, but could not
|
|
identify her. It must be Molly I was sure, no other female at that time
|
|
was likely to enter there. Why Molly has been fucked!
|
|
|
|
Next day I asked nursemaid about Molly. "Oh! that's why you go to the
|
|
farm so often," said she laughing jealously. "She's a good girl, her
|
|
mother looks after her sharp."
|
|
|
|
I had most difficulty in getting Pender. She would not go into the privy
|
|
again. I fucked her once or so in the barn, but at railroad pace;
|
|
both anxious, the fuck barely worth having. "I'll go to mother's next
|
|
Sunday," said she. "If P go to the Red Lion on Saturday night, I'll be
|
|
outside in the lane." We met in the lane, but I could only get a
|
|
feel, and arrange about Sunday. "I'll go to mother's at ------" (the
|
|
market-town), "if the day be fine; P. won't come, he don't like mother,
|
|
or he'll only come in the evening."
|
|
|
|
On Sunday I rode to the town, passing Pender on the road in her Sunday
|
|
finery, went to a lane where was an ale-house and bakery below, a baudy
|
|
house above, and took a room (Fred told me of the place years before).
|
|
Pender went to her mother's, and so soon as people were in church came
|
|
to the appointed corner. I kept well ahead of her, entered the house,
|
|
and after hesitating at the door in she came after me.
|
|
|
|
"How could you be such a fool as to walk about outside like that?" said
|
|
I angrily, for I had feared she would not enter. "I was frightened,"
|
|
she replied, "and oh! I must get back to mother's by dinner-time at one,
|
|
when the Publics and the bake-houses open."
|
|
|
|
It was a delicious day, and beats in my recollection many others of
|
|
fevered enjoyment. Little by little I stropped a tall, fine, stout,
|
|
healthy, country woman, a regular spanker; with white flesh, firm, soft
|
|
satiny and smelling like new milk. She was bashful without affection,
|
|
ashamed to expose her charms, yet proud to do so to me. She was clad in
|
|
snow-white coarse linen, neat and clean from her boots to her head.
|
|
What enjoyment we had! how we spent! I fucked her three times before
|
|
the dinner-hour, my prick or my finger was in her cunt for an hour and a
|
|
half.
|
|
|
|
At half-past twelve off she went; in less than two hours back she came.
|
|
She had said that a friend of hers was ill, and she had promised to sit
|
|
with her (a woman cocking is never at loss for a lie). It was raining.
|
|
The umbrella helped to hide her, but she was nervous about being seen. I
|
|
had dinner at the house, the woman cooked well; the keepers were really
|
|
small traders who did not mind their rooms being used for love-making,
|
|
and had none of the dirty tricks of a London baudy house keeper. He
|
|
fetched me a bottle of good sherry.
|
|
|
|
I got as lewd as could be, and to her astonishment turned her face
|
|
against the bed, threw up her clothes and had her with my belly
|
|
against her rump. I shall never forget the comicality of that fuck,
|
|
her protesting against it, and her wonderment at such an attitude. The
|
|
novelty upset her.
|
|
|
|
I don't recollect much more what I did, but it was an afternoon of baudy
|
|
teaching on my part, of confidences on hers; it was the first time we
|
|
had a chat together on general matters. Speaking of her husband she
|
|
said, "Why you have done it as much almost as he has done since we have
|
|
been married." "What in a year?" "Yes, we were married several weeks
|
|
afore he did it at all, so I told mother, and that's why he don't like
|
|
her."
|
|
|
|
She was warmed with wine, we were on the bed cuddling, my fingers at
|
|
work on her clitoris, we were enjoying each other's nakedness. I pressed
|
|
her to tell me more, and now narrate briefly what I heard of her first
|
|
fuck, her grievances and troubles.
|
|
|
|
"After I spoke to mother, mother said to him, 'You don't want a wife
|
|
much Mr. Pender, I think.' 'Why of course I do, I should not have
|
|
married had I not.' 'Well it don't seem like it', said mother. Then
|
|
Pender said, 'You mind your own business mother, or you'll make it hot
|
|
for your daughter', and with that he went out, and slammed the door.
|
|
Mother did not like to say any more, for fear he would ill-treat
|
|
me. Soon after he said, 'What have you been saying to your mother?'
|
|
'Nothing', I answered. He looked queer, and still he did not do anything
|
|
to me for some time.'
|
|
|
|
"When I was in bed I used to lay and cry, he'd say, 'What are you crying
|
|
about woman?' but I never told.
|
|
|
|
"After that one night he took my hand, put it on his thing and said,
|
|
'Feel that lass.' Then he felt all round me you know', said Mrs. P.
|
|
laughing, 'and he had never done that before,--and with no more ado
|
|
he got atop and said, 'Not don't be a fool', and then he did it,--and
|
|
that's all," said Mrs. Pender describing her first marital poke,--the
|
|
real beginning of her married life,--as she laid side by side by me,
|
|
with my prick in her hand.
|
|
|
|
I was curious,--a man always is in such matters. "Did it hurt you?--did
|
|
he get up you quick?" "I'm sure it was pretty quick, I cried out, and it
|
|
hurt. I was all in a tremble; then he said, 'Well you were all right and
|
|
tight five minutes ago.' I bled a lot."
|
|
|
|
"Perhaps your old sweetheart had done it before?" "He never laid hand on
|
|
me, but to kiss me." "Nor any one?" "Oh! yes, they have tried all round
|
|
I think," said she laughing, "you have,--so has the squire, and lots of
|
|
'em, you can't help that,--if a girl's taken unawares a man can get his
|
|
hand on her thighs, but he won't get more; and I always slapped their
|
|
heads, and there was an end of it." I recollect certainly her slapping
|
|
at mine hard enough.
|
|
|
|
Then she relieved her mind. "He's not a bad man,. he don't get drunk,
|
|
and we don't quarrel; but I don't care for him, and never did." "Ah! you
|
|
lost your young man, and thought you would be fucked by some one." "I
|
|
did not think at all about it, but in a sort of spiteful fit, when he
|
|
asked me to marry him, I said yes. I didn't think about his not doing it
|
|
to me much, till a woman asked me how I liked it, and how often he did
|
|
it; but I told her he did it a lot. Then I talked, and found men did it
|
|
often to their wives, and he does not do it to me once in three weeks.
|
|
So I fretted." "What do you do?" said I. She laughed, I gave her
|
|
clitoris a rub. "That's what you do?" "Yes," said she. "Do you often
|
|
want fucking?" "Every day," said Mrs. Pender frankly and openly. "Did
|
|
you want it the day I had you by the hay-stack?" "I just did." Then she
|
|
added that her husband knew she frigged herself, and usually said to her
|
|
when she intimated that she should like him up her, "Oh! do it yourself,
|
|
if your cunt's so hot, I'm tired."
|
|
|
|
She had married a man much more than double her own age, who poked her
|
|
once in three weeks; this healthy, well-fed woman of twenty-three who
|
|
wanted a nightly roger, and could have spent half-a-dozen times daily
|
|
with ease. She now had got me, liked me, was ready to do anything with
|
|
me or for me as I found out, and was sorry for it.
|
|
|
|
At six o'clock she was obliged to leave. We were both fucked out, and
|
|
parted regretting that a month must pass before she could venture to
|
|
go to her mother's again. I had left her enough to think about, for I
|
|
fucked her in several attitudes. It gave me pleasure to teach her.
|
|
|
|
Next day Molly ran in my head, so I fished about to hook her. She had
|
|
seemed to me so young, that I had taken but little notice of her; liking
|
|
the fat-cunted, biggish-arsed females best. Now I noticed her being so
|
|
plump and fresh, and wondered I had never noticed her previously. When
|
|
I met her, I looked in her face thinking, "Innocent as you look, your
|
|
cunt's been wetted by a man." I longed for her, but she was nearly
|
|
always in the farm-yard, either with her mother or Pender, when not
|
|
assisting up at the Hall; but when a man hunts a woman he is sure to get
|
|
a chance, as will be seen I did.
|
|
|
|
Just after I had Pender on the Sunday, an annoying thing occurred to me.
|
|
Whiteteeth worked in all parts of the parish, and she just now came to
|
|
do something on my aunt's grounds,--weeding I think. Catching her one
|
|
day alone I took some liberty. She resisted sullenly, looked up, and
|
|
nodding her head said, "You gave me a bad illness." "What!" said I.
|
|
"Did you not?" said she. I swore I had not; did she think me such a
|
|
blackguard?--would she see my prick? "Then my damned old man's given it
|
|
me, and he swears I gave it him," said she. She had a clap. I never had
|
|
her afterwards, and was told that lots of men had had her. Fred told me
|
|
soon afterwards, that he had, but that she had been quite steady since
|
|
her marriage, he believed. I didn't undeceive him.
|
|
|
|
When the farm-work was over Molly stood sometimes at the lane-gate.
|
|
Loitering about I saw a man named Giles there, who when he saw me
|
|
moved off. I laid hold of her once or twice, kissed and made the usual
|
|
approaches, at last got a hot fit of lust for her, and felt I would do
|
|
anything to get her once. After two women with well-haired cunts I did
|
|
nothing but picture to myself that she had a small cunt, and but little
|
|
hair on it, like nursemaid's,--and the idea excited me.
|
|
|
|
I have already described the barn, step-ladder, and loft; the chickens
|
|
sometimes flew up the ladder into the loft. I had seen Pender go up, and
|
|
whisk them down. Looking about one afternoon (hay-making was again going
|
|
on), no one seemed about, though Pender was in the dairy. I entered the
|
|
barn from the brickyard side, just as Molly was going up the ladder,
|
|
showing her legs innocently enough.
|
|
|
|
"What pretty legs," I cried. The girl scuffled up as hard as she could
|
|
to get out of sight, I after her. She was chasing some chickens, and
|
|
was as red as a turkey-cock in the face. I caught hold of her, prick
|
|
standing, heart beating, and kissed her. She resisted, I put my hand up
|
|
her clothes, and in the struggle we both rolled on to a heap of loose
|
|
hay; I had felt the flesh of her thighs. "Leave off," said she, "or I'll
|
|
call mother." Her mother was then ill in the farm-house.
|
|
|
|
"Don't be a fool," said I attempting it again. "Don't you do such
|
|
things sir,--I'll call mother,--it's wrong of you" "If you do," said
|
|
I brutally, "I'll tell your mother Giles fucked you in the field last
|
|
week."
|
|
|
|
Never shall I forget the look of the poor girl's face. "Oh!--oh!" said
|
|
she breathless, "you didn't,--it's a story, oh! now pray,--oh! it's a
|
|
shocking story,--I warn't in the field." "Don't.--oh! it hurts," said
|
|
I repeating other words which had been wandering through my brain ever
|
|
since I heard them. "I heard you and the man say that."
|
|
|
|
She began to cry, putting her head in her hands. "Let me do it, and
|
|
I won't tell,--no one will know, and you won't tell Giles, that's
|
|
certain." She ceased crying, and fixed her eyes on me wildly, I got my
|
|
hand up her clothes, her thighs were closed, she kept pushing me away,
|
|
"No,--no,--no." Forgetting where I was, or that anyone might come up the
|
|
ladder, I had my prick out, and with a struggle got my hand on her
|
|
cunt. "You won't tell, really now?" "Not if you let me." A little more
|
|
scuffling, and I had her down. She was quiet, and I was fucking with
|
|
all the delight and energy which a fresh woman gives a man, when I heard
|
|
"Molly, Molly" shouted out. With a violent start she uncunted me, and I
|
|
spent over her motte. "Where are you such a long time Molly?" "There
|
|
is a hen up here," said Molly who had started up, "and I think she has
|
|
laid, but can't find the egg." And Molly disappeared down the ladder.
|
|
"You're wanted up in the Hall," said the voice,--it was Pender's;--their
|
|
voices died away. How pleased Pender would have been had she known the
|
|
condition of Molly's motte!
|
|
|
|
Nothing is so irritating as spending outside a long coveted cunt, when
|
|
another thrust or two would have left the sperm up it,--it is maddening.
|
|
I could think of nothing but the girl; although I had barely felt, and
|
|
had seen nothing of her charms, she seemed to me perfection. For a day
|
|
or two I got no chance, so I wrote on a bit of paper, "You will get
|
|
into a mess, unless you meet me to-night; I'll be in the barn at eight
|
|
o'clock; come in through the wicket,"--or something to that effect. It
|
|
was intended to frighten her, for she avoided me. I pushed the note into
|
|
her hands at the Hall.
|
|
|
|
I walked through the farm-yard, afterwards and saw her, she shook
|
|
her head as I passed. I said rapidly,--Pender was in sight,--"You had
|
|
better." In the evening I hid myself in the loft, allowed the barndoors
|
|
to be closed, and should have had to stay all night there if some one
|
|
had not undone one of the wickets; they fastened them outside.
|
|
|
|
I had been there a long time, it was dark. "I am in here till to-morrow
|
|
morning," I thought, and walked up and down barely restraining
|
|
myself from frigging, such was my state of lust. It was possible that
|
|
circumstances might prevent her from coming, and I had given up hope,
|
|
when the wicket opened, It was she; she came up into the loft; I caught
|
|
her in my arms.
|
|
|
|
"What do you want?--you ain't a going to tell?--you ain't heard anybody
|
|
say anything?" said she. I could not see, but felt her tears, reassured
|
|
her, told her I loved her: who would know but us two? "What harm have
|
|
I done you?" said the poor girl, "Giles is going to marry me, that's
|
|
different,--oh I don't know." I had pushed her on to some hay,
|
|
threatening her one minute, coaxing her the next.
|
|
|
|
I was feeling her. My hand was roving over a plump little bum and belly,
|
|
my finger entered a tight little split on which was a little crisp hair,
|
|
my prick followed my finger, and on the new sweet hay, belly to belly,
|
|
but not mouth to mouth (she would not kiss), my prick revelled in a cunt
|
|
which seemed divine, and was soon drowned in a pond of its own making.
|
|
|
|
"Mother's better, and has gone down the lane to Pender's," said she,
|
|
"if she comes back she will wonder where I am,--let me go." I would
|
|
not, until I had again enjoyed her; and then the lass enjoyed me. She
|
|
unclosed the wicket in the rick-yard which let me out. I got across a
|
|
field into the lane, went past the farm-gates, and there stood Molly
|
|
with her mother. "Good night," said I to the mother, then passing
|
|
Pender's cottage, I went round, and up to the Hall.
|
|
|
|
I thought that having fucked Molly I should be contented; but the little
|
|
cunt, the little hair, the small bum, made me want Molly again. I could
|
|
not get her, she evidently did not wish for me; I had had her against
|
|
her will, and so had her again afterwards. Perhaps only seemingly
|
|
against her will, for though she resisted, and accused me of breaking my
|
|
word, she had spent with me, and was to spend again, perhaps in spite of
|
|
herself.
|
|
|
|
I cannot recollect the name of Molly's swain, though I have tried hard,
|
|
so call him Giles,--it is a bumpkin's name.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VIII.
|
|
|
|
Field women.--Fred at home.--Smith, the field foreman.--A
|
|
rape of a juvenile.--Funking consequences.--Nelly consents.--
|
|
Fred looks on.
|
|
|
|
Strolling into the fields one day, idly smoking my cigar later on in
|
|
the year, groups of girls and women were at work. I talked to the
|
|
field foreman and looked at the girls, especially the younger ones, and
|
|
wondered if they had smaller cunts than Molly; of one whether she had
|
|
any hair on her cunt at all. Some were apparently not more than twelve
|
|
years of age. I longed to see their cunts, and joked with one or two of
|
|
the larger girls; but a decided longing for young cunts had set in on
|
|
me. "Pender," said I one day, "what a lot of fast-looking chits there
|
|
are in the fields." "They are a bad lot," said she, "there is one gal
|
|
there only just fourteen in the family way." I was just going to fuck
|
|
Pender, and daresay finished quickly enough, for at that age if I was
|
|
fucking, and thought of anything very baudy; with a sudden spasm I spent
|
|
right off, even if I had only just got my cock up. Indeed women used to
|
|
say to me, "How quick you are; why did you not wait for me?"
|
|
|
|
What with Molly, Pender, and nursemaid I was so well kept in cunt, that
|
|
I only occasionally went back to London. I had dissipated a large part
|
|
of my fortune; fucking here had not then cost me five pounds, so that
|
|
besides the novelty and delight of the intrigues and the risks I ran,
|
|
it was economical; and things might have gone on so, when back came my
|
|
cousin Fred.
|
|
|
|
A wide-awake fellow was Fred. When my aunt said how delighted they all
|
|
were to see me so steady, and had never seen me enjoy myself so much at
|
|
the Hall before, he stared. "He goes often," said aunt, "with me to the
|
|
dairy." "Yes and pats the cows," said a cousin. Fred winked at me, and
|
|
when we were alone said, "What's your little game Walter, where are you
|
|
cunting now old fellow?" "Cunt," said I, "is of no use, my clap's not
|
|
gone; but thank God I think it's getting all right again." He was quite
|
|
taken in. "You have done the best thing you could," said he "there is
|
|
nothing here much to excite you, no woman worth having, is there?"
|
|
|
|
We wandered daily over the farm and grounds, smoking and talking; he
|
|
had been so much away, that faces were unfamiliar to him. "What a skinny
|
|
bitch that is with Joey." said he (that was nursemaid). "That's a fine
|
|
woman," said I indicating Pender. "Yes," said he, "I recollect before
|
|
she was married trying to grope her, and she nearly knocked me over." "I
|
|
would not mind having her." "No chance for you my boy. Ah! has not that
|
|
little Molly grown," said he with a laugh, "I have often seen the
|
|
little devil's arse, and her cunt too when a child, playing about the
|
|
place,--she is nice: I think I'll have a try on her." "Aunt's partial to
|
|
her," said I. "Don't care." "She is very young." "Tighter cunt, and more
|
|
to teach," replied he,--and I noticed he began to be very sweet to Molly
|
|
afterwards.
|
|
|
|
One morning we walked into the fields, the foreman came up and saluted
|
|
us. He had been on the farm before Fred and I were born. "Well Smith,"
|
|
said Fred, "still at the old games,--any bastards lately?" "Oi am tow
|
|
ould for that now Master." "Perhaps the girls don't like poking now?"
|
|
"Oi they do, but they doon't like me as they did." Smith (my cousin
|
|
told me), had had the credit all his life of poking all the agricultural
|
|
laborers, and had been threatened with dismissal on account of it. "He
|
|
might have had a worse berth," said I, "there are half-a-dozen girls in
|
|
the field I would not mind sleeping with." "Why don't you have them?"
|
|
said Fred. "I don't want to lose my character here." "That be damned,
|
|
you can always have a field-girl, nobody cares,--I have had a dozen or
|
|
two."
|
|
|
|
I turned this over in my mind. We were again in the fields, on the way
|
|
there he gave me a long account of how old Sarah used to wink at his
|
|
having the field-girls; and indeed I had often heard him tell it. "You
|
|
tell him you would like any one, and see what will come of it." There
|
|
was a pretty sun-burnt girl about fifteen years of age that had given me
|
|
a cock-stand. "That's a pretty girl Smith, I'd give a sovereign to have
|
|
her,--is she loose?" "Don't think so yet squire, she be skittish; her
|
|
sister's not fourteen, and they say she be in the family way, when one
|
|
sister takes to it squire, the others generally do." "Where do you pay
|
|
their wages?" I asked. The old fellow leered at me. "Why you be a taken
|
|
a leaf out of young squire's book sir (it was Fred's advice); I pays
|
|
them next at the root-stores," a shed about a quarter of a mile from
|
|
the farm-yard, and in which he had a desk. The women waited outside the
|
|
shed, each being called in and paid in succession. They were paid every
|
|
night, excepting in hay-making times.
|
|
|
|
At pay time I strolled into the shed. One by one he paid. The girl I
|
|
wanted came last. He told her he wanted her to take a parcel to
|
|
the village. "Yes sir," said she. Off old Smith went to fetch the
|
|
parcel,--it was the dodge, Fred told me so afterwards, the old goat
|
|
always adopted to get a girl left alone with him.
|
|
|
|
Very randy but nervous I went out with Smith, then strolled back into
|
|
the shed. The girl had seated herself on some loose straw, she got up
|
|
and curtsied. "Sit down my dear," said I, "you may have some time to
|
|
wait," and talked to her. "You are very pretty,--you will keep your
|
|
sweetheart waiting." Smiling she said. "I ain't got no sweetheart sir."
|
|
Another look or two, and my randiness getting the better of me, I began
|
|
chaffing suggestively, she sat down besides me, then I talked for
|
|
a quarter of an hour warmer and warmer, then kissing, tickling, and
|
|
pinching her legs. This did not seem to affect her, she enjoyed it; then
|
|
out I pulled my prick, and all changed at once. "Oh!" said she rising up
|
|
scared to go. I pulled her back.
|
|
|
|
"Let's do it to you." "I won't." "You've been fucked." "I ain't,--I
|
|
am only fifteen years old (she did not affect ignorance of my
|
|
meaning),--leave me alone." I threw her down, and got my hand up her
|
|
clothes. She loudly screamed, and that is all I recollect clearly; I
|
|
know that I struggled with her, offered her money, told her I knew her
|
|
sister had been fucked, and a lot more. I was so much stronger that
|
|
she had no chance, I rolled over her, she screamed, and screamed again
|
|
(there was no one nearer than the Hall), I exposed her bum, her thighs,
|
|
her cunt, and all she had. I was furious with lust, determined to have
|
|
her; at last she was under me, panting, breathless, crying, and saying,
|
|
"Now don't,--oh! pray don't," but I lunged fast, furiously, brutally,
|
|
and all I heard was, "oh! pray,--pray now,--oh!--oh!--oh! pray," as I
|
|
was spending in her holding her tight, kissing her after I had forced
|
|
her. Her tears ran down. If I had not committed a rape it looked
|
|
uncommonly like one, and began to think so as I lay with my prick up
|
|
her.
|
|
|
|
I got off her, saw for an instant her legs wide open, cunt and thighs
|
|
wet and bloody, she crying, sobbing, rubbing her eyes. I was now in a
|
|
complete funk, I had heard field-women so light spoken of, that they
|
|
were so accessible, that I expected only to go up a road that had often
|
|
been travelled. This resistance and crying upset me, the more so when at
|
|
length rising, she said, "I'll tell my sister, and go to the magistrate,
|
|
and tell how you have served me out."
|
|
|
|
I really had violated her, saw that it would bear that complexion before
|
|
a magistrate, so would not let her go, but retained her, coaxed, begged,
|
|
and promised her money. I would love her, longed for her again, would
|
|
take her from the fields, and every other sort of nonsense a man would
|
|
utter under the circumstances. She ceased crying, and stood in sullen
|
|
mood as I held her, asking me to let her go. I took out my purse, and
|
|
offered her money which she would not take, but eyed wishfully as I kept
|
|
chinking the gold in my hand. What a temptation bright sovereigns must
|
|
have been to a girl who earned ninepence a day, and often was without
|
|
work at all.
|
|
|
|
In an hour and a half I suppose, old Smith came back, he had really got
|
|
a parcel for her to take. She began to cry, and blurted out that the
|
|
gentleman had insulted her. "What, has he kissed you?" "More than
|
|
that,--boo hoo." "What has he done?" "Been dirty with me,--and I'll tell
|
|
my sister, and go to the justice."
|
|
|
|
"Pough child," said Smith, "he arn't done you any harm,--a gent like
|
|
him,--don't make a fuss,--make it up,--it's all fair yer know twixt a
|
|
young man, and a maid,--daresay yer wanted him to be dirty with you,--a
|
|
gent like him, you ought to be proud of sich a one making love to
|
|
you,--here, take this parcel, and be off."
|
|
|
|
"Take the sovereign (she had refused it before), I'll give you more
|
|
another day; it will help to keep you a while,--hold your tongue, and no
|
|
one will know," said I. She hesitated, pouted, wriggled her shoulders,
|
|
but at last took the sovereign, and took up the parcel, saying she would
|
|
tell her sister. Then said the foreman, "None o' that gal, an' I hears
|
|
more on that, you won't work here any more, nor anywheres else in this
|
|
parish,--I knows the whole lot on you, I knows who got yer sister's
|
|
belly up,--she at her age, she ought to be ashamed on her-self, and I
|
|
knows summut about you too,--now take care gal." "I've done nothing to
|
|
be ashamed on," said the girl, "you're a hard man to the women, they all
|
|
say so,--ohe!--ohe!" "Well there," said he dropping his bullying tone,
|
|
"the squire won't harm you; I think you be in luck if he loikes you, say
|
|
you nought;--that be my advice". The girl muttering went her way.
|
|
|
|
I followed her (it was getting dark), was so kind and coaxing, promised
|
|
her so many fine things (I'm not sure I didn't say I'd marry her),
|
|
that as we neared the village, the little lass let me pull her into a
|
|
convenient grassy corner, and fuck her again. She promised she'd say
|
|
nothing to anyone about it.
|
|
|
|
Next morning I had a fear, and was annoyed with myself. If the girl said
|
|
anything it would be all over the parish in the afternoon, and in my
|
|
aunt's ears the next day; all that for a dirty little farm-laborer. I
|
|
had had none of that sensuous delight which both mentally and physically
|
|
is found in getting into a virgin, had never thought of having her as
|
|
one, nor did I recollect much cunt resistance to my penetration; but she
|
|
certainly was a virgin. In my furious lust, and with my unbendable
|
|
stiff prick I must have hit the mark, and burst through it at one or two
|
|
cunt-rending shoves. She had given a loud cry in the midst of it, "Oh!
|
|
pray now,--oh! pray,"--but I had heeded it not. What excited me was her
|
|
youth, her size, and the idea of having a little cunt with but little
|
|
hair on it, something smaller than Molly's. In bed, thinking of, and
|
|
funking consequences, I longed for a girl still smaller, for one with no
|
|
hair on her cunt at all. On further reflection I calmed. She had taken
|
|
the money, and let me do it a second time; it was all right, and I rose,
|
|
and went to the scene of my exploit.
|
|
|
|
The girl was not at work in the fields, and my funk returned. "Smith,"
|
|
said I, "is Nelly (let's call her Nelly) here?" "No, nor her sisters,"
|
|
"Sisters?" "Yes there are two; one a woman called ------ very much
|
|
older, the other younger than Nelly, and the young un they says be with
|
|
kid."
|
|
|
|
I went to the farm-yard, there saw Fred talking to Molly, "Ulloh, you
|
|
have taken a letch there." "I'll have her," said he. Pender went across
|
|
the yard. "I would sooner have her," said I. "Aye, a damned fine woman,
|
|
but coarse, smells strong I should say when she sweats, or is randy, and
|
|
I like them younger." I was jealous about Molly, and walked away. Fred
|
|
joined me, and after dinner, I like a fool told him all about the girl
|
|
ravished in the root-shed in the Twelve-Acre field.
|
|
|
|
"Was she a virgin?--she is a plump little bitch,--you were in luck,--oh!
|
|
never fear there will be no row; the saying down here is, 'They all take
|
|
it by the time they have half-an-inch of hair on their cunts.' She will
|
|
be rather proud you have fucked her than otherwise. Has she much hair
|
|
there?--has she any bubbies?" I told him all I knew, which was but
|
|
little, not recollecting even if she had any cunt-wig at all.
|
|
|
|
Next day the two sisters were at work again. I told Smith that after his
|
|
dinner I wished to speak to the girl. The old cock-bawd told me to wait
|
|
at the root-shed; and the girl came there to fetch his handkerchief which
|
|
he left purposely. When she saw me how she started. No, she had told no
|
|
one, but was not going to let me do what I liked. A kiss. "I don't like
|
|
your hand on my legs,--oh! now you said you would not,--take your hand
|
|
away."
|
|
|
|
My finger was on her cunt, I was feeling what little hair she had, my
|
|
finger went up it, oh! how tight it was! "Now darling let me, I won't
|
|
let you go till you do,--there, what a dear little belly,--let me kiss
|
|
it." "They will wonder why I am gone so long,--my sister will be asking
|
|
questions,--do let me go." "No." "Oh!" I had her on the straw. "Be quiet
|
|
dear,--my prick's up you,--be quiet,--a--h!--ah!"
|
|
|
|
With her cunt well buttered off she ran. I buttoned up. Just then at the
|
|
door appeared Fred holding his sides and laughing. "What's up Fred?" "Oh
|
|
I--oh!--oh!" "What's the fun?" "Oh!--oh!--I've been looking at you fuck
|
|
the little bitch. I saw her go in, and you go to the shed an hour ago,
|
|
but did not know you were there then, so thought I would like the young
|
|
one; it's five days since I've had a woman, and as I was going in heard
|
|
your two voices, listened and looked till you had done the job."
|
|
|
|
"It's a damned unhandsome thing," said I in a rage. "You would have
|
|
looked at me if you had caught me," said Fred. "You leave the girl
|
|
alone, it's my manor." "All right, but I'll have little Molly, I have
|
|
given her a kiss." Off he went, leaving me jealous about that one as
|
|
well. He was treading on my heels a little too much to please me.
|
|
|
|
Four women I had poked now, being like a cock among hens, cared about
|
|
neither, but could not bear the idea of Fred going up them, though
|
|
I knew it was useless to try to prevent the young squire, the future
|
|
master, a fine officer. Pender said to me one day, "The squire means
|
|
harm to Molly; it's a shame for an officer like him to harm a poor girl;
|
|
I caught him kissing her, and putting his hands up her petticoats. I'll
|
|
tell Missus if I see any more of it." "Do," said I, "you tell my aunt."
|
|
|
|
So she did, and aunt requested Fred not to go to the farm-yard, and
|
|
Molly was all but locked up. In a few days Fred said it was damned slow,
|
|
and went to London. I for a change went with him.
|
|
|
|
My departure put Pender in tears, she did all she could to get me up
|
|
her, and before I left I got Molly into the loft on promising never to
|
|
ask her again, and there had my first good look at her belly and cunt,
|
|
and fucked her. Nursemaid I advised to avoid the page, or I would never
|
|
have anything to do with her more. She grinned and said, "What a loss".
|
|
Nelly I caught in the lane, fucked her and she promised to be chaste and
|
|
never let any other man put his finger on her. Then I departed with Fred
|
|
to virtuous London.
|
|
|
|
Before leaving, Mrs. Pender said, "I'm afeard I'm in trouble, my
|
|
poorliness ain't come on for two months now."
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IX.
|
|
|
|
Laura and Fred.--Vauxhall amusements.--A juvenile harlot--A
|
|
linen stopper.--The hairless and the hairy.--Ten and forty.--
|
|
A snub.--At my aunt's.--Nursemaid and page missing.--
|
|
Pender with child.--Molly and Giles caught.--Mr. Pender's
|
|
letch.
|
|
|
|
Theatre every night, heavy lunches, heavy dinners, much wine, and cigars
|
|
never out of my mouth, that was the first few days proceedings. Fred
|
|
was keeping a woman named Laura of whom I shall say more; she was always
|
|
with us. I don't recollect having a woman for a few days, but it may
|
|
have been otherwise. On the fifth or sixth night we went to Vauxhall
|
|
Gardens to a masquerade. It was a rare lark in those days. A great fun
|
|
of mine was getting into a shady walk, tipping the watchman to let me
|
|
hide in the shrubs, and crouching down to hear the women piss. I have
|
|
heard a couple of hundred do so on one evening, and much of what they
|
|
said. Such a mixture of dull and crisp baudiness I never heard in short
|
|
sentences elsewhere. Although I had heard a few similar remarks when I
|
|
waited in the cellars of the gun-factory, it was nothing like those
|
|
at Vauxhall, and it amused me very much. There were one or two darkish
|
|
walks where numbers of women on masquerade nights went to piss, and many
|
|
on other nights.
|
|
|
|
At supper Laura said, "Where have you been the last hour?" I laughed.
|
|
"Tell us." "Hiding in the shrubs where ladies go by ones, twos, and
|
|
threes without men." Laura understood. "Serves them right, they should
|
|
go to the women's closets; but you are dirty." "Well it was such a lark
|
|
hearing them piddle and talk." Fred always coarse said he never knew a
|
|
woman piss off so quickly as Laura. Laura slapped his head. She had
|
|
not been gay, and was very modest in manner and expression; but loved a
|
|
baudy joke not told in coarse language.
|
|
|
|
The signal sounded for fireworks. Off we ran to get good places. I cared
|
|
more about women than fireworks, and lagged behind, seeing the masquers
|
|
and half-dressed women running and yelling ( fun was fast and
|
|
loose then). I passed a woman leading a little girl dressed like a
|
|
ballet-girl, and looked at the girl who seemed about ten years old, then
|
|
at the woman, who winked. I stopped, she came up and said, "Is she not
|
|
a nice little girl?" I don't recollect having had any distinct intention
|
|
at the time I stopped; but at her words ideas came into my head.
|
|
She,--what a small cunt,--no hair on that. "Yes a nice little girl,"
|
|
I replied. "Would you like to see her undressed?" "Can I fuck her?" I
|
|
whispered. The little girl kept tugging the woman's hand and saying,
|
|
"Oh! do come to the fireworks." "Yes if you like,--what will you give?"
|
|
I agreed to give I think three sovereigns, a good round sum for a
|
|
common-place poke then.
|
|
|
|
She told me to go out of the gardens first, get a cab, and stop at
|
|
a little way from the entrance. In three minutes the woman and child
|
|
joined me. At about five minutes drive from Vauxhall we stopped, walked
|
|
a little way, turned down a street, and after telling me to wait one or
|
|
two minutes, she opened the door of a respectable little house with a
|
|
latch-key, went in and closed it. A minute afterwards she opened the
|
|
door, and treading lightly as she told me, I found myself in a parlour
|
|
out of which led a bed-room, both well furnished. Enjoining me to speak
|
|
in a low tone I sat down, and contemplated the couple.
|
|
|
|
The woman was stout, full-sized, good-looking, dark, certainly forty,
|
|
and dressed like a well-to-do tradeswoman. The girl's head was but a few
|
|
inches above my waist, and she certainly was not more than ten years,
|
|
but for such age as nice and fleshy as could be expected. She had an
|
|
anxious look as she stared at me, and I stared at her. The last month's
|
|
constant desire to have a cunt absolutely without any hair on it was
|
|
to be realized, I was impatient but noticed and remarked, "Why you have
|
|
gas!"--a rare thing then in houses. "Beautiful, is it not?" said the
|
|
woman, and in a voluptuous and enticing manner began undressing,
|
|
until she stood in a fine chemise, a pair of beautiful boots, and silk
|
|
stockings. Engrossed with the girl whom I was caressing, I scarcely
|
|
had noticed the woman; but as she pulled up her chemise to tighten her
|
|
garter, and showed much of a very white thigh, I said, "I've made a
|
|
mistake, I did not mean you." "No," said she, "but it's all the same."
|
|
She came to me, pinched my cock outside saying "oho" as she found it
|
|
stiff, and then undressed the child to her chemise. I had white trowsers
|
|
and waistcoat on, and was anxious about rumpling them; At my request she
|
|
drew my white trowsers off over my boots with great care; then divesting
|
|
myself of coat and waistcoat I stood up with prick spouting. "Look
|
|
there,--feel it Mary." The girl not obeying she took her little hand,
|
|
and made her feel it. Sitting down I lifted the girl on to my knees, and
|
|
put my hand between her little thigh.
|
|
|
|
"Give me the three pounds," said the woman. All my life I have willingly
|
|
paid women before my pleasure; but thought I was going to be done so
|
|
demurred, and asked if she supposed I was not a gentleman, took out my
|
|
purse, showed I had plenty of money gave her one sovereign, and promised
|
|
the others directly I had the child,--and then pulled off my boots.
|
|
|
|
We went into the bed-room, she lighted candles, the gas streamed in
|
|
through the open door. "Lay down Mary," said she. "Oh! he ain't going to
|
|
do it like the other man,--you said no one should again", said the girl
|
|
whimpering. "Be quiet you little fool, he won't hurt you,--open your
|
|
legs." Pushing her back, or rather lifting her up, there I saw a
|
|
little light-pink slit between a pair of thighs somewhat bigger than a
|
|
full-sized man's calves; the little cunt had not a sign of hair on it.
|
|
To pull open the lips, to push up my finger, to frig it, smell it, then
|
|
lick it was the work of a minute. I was wild, it was realization of the
|
|
baudy dreamy longings of the last few weeks. I was scarcely conscious
|
|
that the old one had laid hold of my prick, and was fast bringing me to
|
|
a crisis.
|
|
|
|
Pushing her hand away I placed my prick against the little cunt which
|
|
seemed scarcely big enough for my thumb, and with one hand was placing
|
|
it under the little bum, when the girl slipped off the bed crying. "Oh!
|
|
don't let him,--the other did hurt so,--he shan't put it in."
|
|
|
|
"Don't do it to her, she is so young," said the woman in a coaxing tone.
|
|
"Why that is what I came for." "Never mind, it hurts _her_, have _me_, I
|
|
am a fine woman, look," and she flung herself on the bed, and pulled up
|
|
her chemise, disclosing a fine form, and to a randy man much that was
|
|
enticing. "Look at my hair, how black it is,--do you like tassels?" said
|
|
she, and throwing up her arms out of her chemise, she showed such a mass
|
|
of black hair on her arm-pits, as I have rarely seen in other women, and
|
|
rarely in an English woman at all.
|
|
|
|
"What the devil did you bring me here for,--it was for her, not you, I
|
|
hate hair,--I like a cunt without hair."
|
|
|
|
"Have me, and look at her cunt whilst you do it,--here Mary," and she
|
|
pulled the young one to the bed cunt upwards. But disappointed, lewd,
|
|
and savage, I swore till she begged me not to make a noise, and saying,
|
|
"Well,--well,--well,--so you shall,--hold your tongue (to the girl), he
|
|
won't hurt you,--look his cock is not big." She pulled the girl on to
|
|
the edge of the bed again, and brought her cunt up to the proper level
|
|
with the bolster and pillows. Then said the woman, "Let me hold your
|
|
cock, you must not put it far in, she is so young." I promised I would
|
|
only sheath the tip; but she declared I should not unless she held it.
|
|
"Wrap your handkerchief round it," said she. I did so, and that
|
|
left only half its length uncovered. Impetuously I tore the white
|
|
handkerchief into pieces, wrapped round about an inch of the stem of
|
|
my prick with it, which then looked as if it was wounded, and bound up;
|
|
then hitting the little pink opening I drove up it. I doubted whether I
|
|
should enter so small it was. It held my prick like a vise, but up her
|
|
cunt I was, the woman promising the child money, to take her to Vauxhall
|
|
again, and so on, and then put her hand over her mouth to prevent her
|
|
hollowing,--she did not hollow at all really.
|
|
|
|
I spent almost instantly, and coming to my senses held her close up to
|
|
my prick by her thighs,--there was no difficulty so light a weight was
|
|
she. There I stood for a minute or two. "My prick is small now," said I,
|
|
"unroll the handkerchief." "No," said the woman. "I will give you ten
|
|
shillings extra if you do, my prick can't hurt now." The oddity of a
|
|
woman attempting to unroll from a prick a slip of white rag, whilst the
|
|
prick was up a cunt; but out came my prick from the little hole before
|
|
she could accomplish it.
|
|
|
|
Desire had not left me, holding the thighs open I dropped on my knees,
|
|
my prick flopping, and saw the little cunt covered with thick sperm.
|
|
There lay the girl, there stood the woman, neither speaking nor moving,
|
|
till my eyes had had their voluptuous enjoyment. "I will give you
|
|
another sovereign now, and then fuck her again." "All right," said the
|
|
woman. "But she must not wash." "All right". I gave it, then took the
|
|
girl up like a baby, one hand just under the bum, so that the spunk
|
|
might fall on my hand if it dropped out, and laid her on the sofa in the
|
|
parlour, where the gas flared brightly, opened her thighs wide, gloated,
|
|
and talked baudily till my prick stood again.
|
|
|
|
Then I lifted her back on to the bed, and rolled the strip of
|
|
handkerchief round the stem again; but I longed to hurt her, to make her
|
|
cry with the pain my tool caused her, I would have made her bleed if
|
|
I could; so wrapped it round in such a manner, that with a tug I could
|
|
unroll it. The woman did not seem so anxious now about my hurting her.
|
|
|
|
Sperm is a splendid cunt-lubricator, my prick went in easier, but still
|
|
she cried out. Now I measured my pleasure. With gentle lingering pushes
|
|
I moved up and down in her. Under pretense of feeling my prick, I had
|
|
loosened the handkerchief, then tore the rag quite away, and afterwards
|
|
lifted her up, and then with her cunt stuck tight and full with my pego,
|
|
and both hands round her bum tightly, I walked holding her so into the
|
|
sitting-room to a large glass. There seeing my balls hanging down under
|
|
her little arse, I shoved and wriggled, holding her like a baby on me,
|
|
her hands round my neck, she whining that I was hurting her, the woman
|
|
hushing, and praying me to be gentle, till I spent again. I held her
|
|
tight to me in front of the glass, her thighs wide apart, my balls
|
|
showing under her little buttocks, till my prick again shrunk, and my
|
|
sperm ran from her cunt down my balls. Then I un-cunted, and sat down on
|
|
a chair. We were both stark naked.
|
|
|
|
The girl sat down on a foot-stool, the woman sat in her chemise. I gave
|
|
her the remaining money, and to the little one some silver. Although I
|
|
had had her twice, I scarcely had looked at her; both fucks must
|
|
have been done in ten minutes. Now I longed to see the little cunt
|
|
tranquilly. "Let me wash her cunt," said I. "You can," said the old one.
|
|
I took the girl into the bed-room, she left a large gobbet of sperm on
|
|
the stool, which the old one wiped off. I washed her cunt, threw her
|
|
on the bed, and looked at the little quim. It seemed impossible I could
|
|
have been up it; but from that day I knew a cunt to be the most elastic
|
|
article in the world, and believed the old woman's saying, that a prick
|
|
can always go up where a finger can.
|
|
|
|
Then after cuddling her, straddling between her legs and feeling my
|
|
balls hanging between her thighs by passing my hand round her arse,
|
|
I laid her on the bed, took a glance at the little cunt from a slight
|
|
distance, and saw the old one in an exciting posture. She had thrown
|
|
herself on the bed, and resting her head on one hand was watching me.
|
|
Her chemise had slipped from her shoulders showing big white breasts,
|
|
and the black thicket of hair in one arm-pit. Her chemise was up to her
|
|
waist, one leg was bent up, the fat calf pressed against a fat thigh,
|
|
the other extended along the bed, the thighs wide open, the middle
|
|
finger of her left hand on her cunt, whose mass of black hair creeping
|
|
up her belly and along the line of junction with the thighs could not
|
|
be hidden by her hand. She was frigging her clitoris with her
|
|
middle-finger, and she smiled invitingly. "Come and do it to me, I do
|
|
want it so,--I have not had a poke for a fortnight."
|
|
|
|
My love of a fat arse, and a big hairy cunt returned suddenly. I stood
|
|
turning my eyes, first to the little hairless orifice, then to the
|
|
full-lipped split, then to the little pink cunt, and then back again
|
|
to the matured cunt. "Come, do me." "I must go." "Why?" "I came to have
|
|
her." "So you have,--now have me,--you can have her again if you like
|
|
after." "Can I?" "Yes,--oh! come, I am so randy." "It's late." "Stop
|
|
all night." I said I would. Off the bed she got, put a nightgown on the
|
|
child, laid her on the sofa, told her to go to sleep, and throwing off
|
|
her boots and stockings, got on to the bed again.
|
|
|
|
I threw off my socks. "Shall I be naked?" said she. "Yes, it is very
|
|
hot." Off went her chemise, and the next instant cuddling up to me,
|
|
she was tugging at my prick, kissing me, and using every salacious
|
|
stimulant. Though a hot night, naked as we both were we felt a chill, so
|
|
covered ourselves with a sheet.
|
|
|
|
"How old are you?" said I. "Guess." "More than forty." "I am not
|
|
thirty-eight, although I am so stout,--feel how firm my flesh is,--how
|
|
my breasts keep up." I threw down the sheet to see her fully. She was
|
|
delighted, turned round and round, opened her thighs, pulled open her
|
|
cunt, exposed herself with the freedom of a French whore, and by the
|
|
time I had seen all my prick was at fever heat, and I fucked her. Our
|
|
nakedness was delightful.
|
|
|
|
We talked afterwards. She was not the mother, nor the aunt, though the
|
|
child called her so; the child was parentless, she had taken charge of
|
|
her and prevented her going to the work-house. She was in difficulties,
|
|
she must live, the child would be sure to have it done to her some day,
|
|
why not make a little money by her? Some one else would, if she did not.
|
|
So spoke the fat middle-aged woman.
|
|
|
|
I was sleepless. After an hour or two I longed to see them side by side,
|
|
that strange contrast in age and size, to try the difference with my
|
|
finger as I had with my prick. She brought in the child, sleepy and
|
|
peevish, I plunged my prick in the little one, took it out, and put it
|
|
into the woman. It was a delight to feel the difference,--the room in
|
|
one, the confinement in the other's cunt.
|
|
|
|
The aunt annoyed me by putting her hand between our bellies to prevent
|
|
my penetrating too far. It was not the stretching, nor the plugging, it
|
|
was the boring too deeply which hurt the little one, she said.
|
|
|
|
I laid on my back and put the little one's belly upon me; stretching her
|
|
little thighs, I felt round them; and guided my prick up her, then the
|
|
aunt put her fingers round my prick and squeezed my balls. How funny to
|
|
have that little creature on the top of me; how funny to be able to
|
|
feel at the same time a big hairy cunt at my side. Such thoughts and
|
|
emotions finished me, and after spending in the little one, she again
|
|
went to the sofa, then with my arse to the aunt's arse we went to sleep.
|
|
|
|
She was the youngest I ever yet have had, or have wished to have. We
|
|
laid abed till about mid-day. I fucked as much as I ever did in my life,
|
|
and found that a tiny cunt although it might satisfy a letch, could not
|
|
give the pleasure that a full developed woman could. Tight as it was,
|
|
it had not that peculiar suction, embrace, and grind, that a full-grown
|
|
woman's or girl's has. When I was getting drier and drier, the old one
|
|
stiffened my prick, and I put it into the child; but oscillate my
|
|
arse as I might, I could not get a spend out of me; then in the aunt's
|
|
clipping though well stretched cunt, I got my pleasure in no time. A
|
|
fuck is barely a fuck if a man's prick is but half up a girl, it wants
|
|
engulfing. A very young girl never has the true jerk of her arse, nor
|
|
the muscular clip in her cunt; so if a languid prick be put up it, it
|
|
will slip out, unless the letch be strong; whereas a flabby, done-for
|
|
prick, once in the cunt of a grown women may be resuscitated, and made
|
|
to give pleasure to both, if she uses the muscular power which nature
|
|
has given her between bum-hole, buttocks, and navel.
|
|
|
|
We eat and drank, I paid liberally, and with empty ballocks and a flabby
|
|
tool went away. White trowsers and a black tail-coat were then full
|
|
evening dress at Vauxhall; but ludicrous in the day. I recollect feeling
|
|
ashamed as I walked out in that dress in the sun-shine. She would
|
|
not fetch a cab as she was most anxious about noise. She gave me full
|
|
instructions where to write and have the girl again. About a fortnight
|
|
afterwards I made an appointment, but she did not keep it. I went to
|
|
the house and asked for her; a woman opened the door. "Do you know
|
|
her?" said she. "Yes." "She is not here, and I don't know where she has
|
|
gone,--perhaps you're as bad as she is," and she slammed the door in my
|
|
face. A few years passed away before I took a letch for a hairless cunt
|
|
again,--and then I was a poor man.
|
|
|
|
We went to Vauxhall on an ordinary night, and I showed Fred where I had
|
|
heard and seen the girls make water. Laura I got to like, and she to
|
|
like me which led to something at a later date. In about three weeks or
|
|
more I went back to my aunt's, through an indefinable longing to poke
|
|
in a quiet intriguing way, the women I had had there. In London I had
|
|
changed my women twice a day, and fucked every nice French women who
|
|
walked in Regent Street.
|
|
|
|
My mother was again going to see my aunt, and was delighted that I would
|
|
go with her. Fred had gone to Paris with Laura, and wanted me to go, but
|
|
money was getting short with me, for I had been heavily robbed, and as
|
|
ten pounds a day (a large sum then) was the usual cost of Paris to me, I
|
|
declined, and to the old Hall went with mother.
|
|
|
|
I did not see nursemaid or page. "You have a new nursemaid for Joey,"
|
|
said I to my aunt. "We dismissed the other, we found her to be an
|
|
improper character,--and Robert has gone,--he was too big," said she.
|
|
For two or three days I could not get Pender, who looked miserable when
|
|
I met her, shook her head, and looked up to the skies. I went with my
|
|
mother and aunt to the farm one day, Pender for a second stopped behind,
|
|
and said to me in a hurried whisper, "I _am_ in the family way," and
|
|
then ran after my aunt.
|
|
|
|
Next day I saw her for a second. "Meet me next Sunday at------." "I
|
|
must," said she. We had no opportunity of speaking before, for her
|
|
husband or some one was always in the way. To make sure I next day
|
|
slipped an envelope into her hand, in which was one addressed to myself,
|
|
and a scribble asking her to say where I was to meet her. It came back
|
|
by post containing in execrable writing the words, "My dear, same time,
|
|
and place, if he be out, on Saturday night." I did not comprehend, but
|
|
waited outside her cottage that night. She did not show. On Sunday I
|
|
went to ------, and long after eleven she appeared. Soon we were in the
|
|
room over the beer-shop.
|
|
|
|
"I am in the family way, whatever shall I do?" I had thought over this,
|
|
and replied, "Well, you have a husband, so it does not matter." "I don't
|
|
think he will believe it's his." "He can't say it is not, and will be
|
|
proud of it." "That may be true, I did not think of that," said she, and
|
|
until I had fucked her I learn't no more.
|
|
|
|
I referred to the change in the servants at the Hall. "Oh!" said Pender
|
|
eagerly, "there has been a row; do you recollect the nursemaid?--well
|
|
they saw her feeling--hoh! hoh!"--she burst out laughing,--"feeling
|
|
the page's thing,--hoh! ho! ho!" "Feeling his prick?" "Yes,--ho! ho!
|
|
ho!--and Missus turned her and page out the same night,--ho! ho! ho!"
|
|
laughed Pender. "She was a dirty hussy." "Why?" "Why a woman like that
|
|
to be taking liberties with a boy like that, a hobble-de-hoy; poor Molly
|
|
told me that one day when he came here he pulled out his thing before
|
|
her." "What, Molly?" said I, thinking the young girl had had manifold
|
|
temptations. "Yes, poor thing." "Why poor thing?" "Well I am sorry for
|
|
her; I told Missus about the young squire as you told me, and Missus
|
|
told her mother to look sharp after her,--and so she did, and found that
|
|
she used to get out of a night and meet Giles,--you know Giles?" "No I
|
|
don't," said I lying. "He works here sometimes, you must have seen him,"
|
|
said Pender. "No." "Well he works here, is a likely young chap, but
|
|
Molly's mother hates him,--well she watched and watched, till one night
|
|
she caught them, and him on top of her in the large barn,--he had got
|
|
through the wicket on the far-yard wicket." "How could she do that?"
|
|
Pender explained to me what I knew perfectly well.
|
|
|
|
"On the top of her?" "Yes they were a doing it.--and she hit him hard on
|
|
the head with a stick, and nearly stunned him before they knew she were
|
|
there." "Who hit?" "Why her mother, he were nearly insensible."
|
|
|
|
"Then Mrs. Brown asked me what to do, and I said he had better marry
|
|
her, and she said he should not. So she went to Missus, asked her
|
|
advice, and on account of Molly's character to say nothing about finding
|
|
Giles taking liberties with her daughter. Missus said Giles at the end
|
|
of the week was to be sent off,--and he's gone. Mrs. Brown scarcely lets
|
|
Molly out of the house, and when I sees her I laughs to myself. That
|
|
a young thing like that has had it done to her. Her mother told me you
|
|
know,--I have sworn to tell nobody, but I don't mind telling you." "She
|
|
has seen two pricks," said I, "page Robert's and Giles' ". "Yes she
|
|
has."
|
|
|
|
I wondered whether he had spent when he felt the stick on his head. "I
|
|
think he had," said she, "for Mrs. Brown said she found his stuff on her
|
|
child's chemise. Every day there is a row between them, Molly says she
|
|
will go to service, her mother says she shan't, and that she will turn
|
|
out a bunter, and bring her in her age with sorrow to the grave. Poor
|
|
thing."
|
|
|
|
"Pugh," said I, "why make such a fuss about such a natural action?"
|
|
"Well it be natural," said Pender, "but she might have waited, she is
|
|
very young."
|
|
|
|
In the family way Pender was, and by me,--of that I had no doubt. Pender
|
|
thought it was done the first time I had her in the rick-yard. "Did
|
|
he not do it about that time?" I asked. Pender hesitated, and on being
|
|
pressed to reply at length said, "It's funny, I am always thinking about
|
|
it, but it is a fact that he did it that very night; and when you
|
|
have done it, he generally do it also that night. I can't account for
|
|
it,--can't abear him to do it when you have,--can't abear his doing it
|
|
at all now, and he does it more than he used." "You spend with him?" "I
|
|
don't,--I hate him then, I hate him altogether since I have known you."
|
|
|
|
Now for a bit of experience which I write now, and years after I wrote
|
|
this chapter of my narrative. I had a married woman who was fond of me.
|
|
She assured me that whenever I had her, it was perfectly certain that
|
|
her husband would do it to her that night. She thought that my fucking
|
|
acted as a charm to fetch the other man. He neglected her for other
|
|
women, and used, although a young vigorous man, to do it but rarely to
|
|
her; but whenever my sperm had suffused itself in her cunt, his went
|
|
there the same night. "You spend too then?" said I. "I do," said she,
|
|
"I think so much of you, so much of the coincidence and go home so
|
|
wondering whether he will do it or not, that directly he pulls me about
|
|
I think of you, and then fancy it is you doing it to me, not him, and I
|
|
spend. I am angry with myself afterwards, but can't help it."
|
|
|
|
Pender had said her mother was unwell as an excuse to get to------, so
|
|
must be back quickly. She was lying speechless, with eyes closed and my
|
|
prick up her, I silently reposing on her, when the clock struck. Up she
|
|
jumped, uncunting me, saying, "I must go, I am to fetch the dinner from
|
|
the bake-house, then I must get back home, unless P. comes," and rapidly
|
|
off she went scarcely dressed, and without washing her cunt.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER X.
|
|
|
|
Nelly and Sophy.--The beer-house again.--Sophy's belly.--On
|
|
the road.--Against a tree.--At the baudy house with Sophy.--
|
|
Her narrative.--Tom and the three sisters.--Fred on the
|
|
scent.--Pender's troubles.
|
|
|
|
I had some food at an hotel, then returning on foot saw at the end of
|
|
the lane two peasant girls in their Sunday finery. I looked at first
|
|
without recognizing them, but as I got close saw one was Nelly, the
|
|
girl I had raped. She stopped, I smiled. "You here, why?" "Taking a walk
|
|
sir." "Come with me." She hesitated, looked at the other girl. "Never
|
|
mind," said I, "bring your friend with you." Two minutes brought us to
|
|
the beer-house again. "Stay here," said I. I went to the side entrance
|
|
which was up a yard, told the woman who stared when she opened the door
|
|
to me to show the girls up the other way. They came through the shop,
|
|
and stood curtsying when they came into the little sitting room.
|
|
|
|
I wanted Nelly when I saw her, and hence what I did; but was embarrassed
|
|
now, for with the other in the room I did not know how to proceed
|
|
without compromising her; so sent for some spirits. They sat sheepishly.
|
|
I said to Nelly with the view of getting rid of the other, "Perhaps your
|
|
friend would like to call for you presently." "She is my sister," said
|
|
Nelly. Impulsively I cried, "Your sister?"--"why she is the girl who was
|
|
in the family way before she was fourteen."
|
|
|
|
"Oo--h!" said Nelly's sister, "what a lie,--what a shame to say such
|
|
things of a girl,--who said so?" I was disconcerted. "I heard it, but
|
|
can't recollect who." Nelly never spoke, but sat looking at me with her
|
|
tongue out on one side, and a funny expression in her eye. "I'll go,"
|
|
said her sister. "Don't go," said Nelly, "the gent's asked us in, and
|
|
will be offended,--won't you sir?" "Yes," I replied.
|
|
|
|
The liquor came, I dosed them with it, and a letch for the sister came
|
|
over me. "She in family way, that young thing,--is it so?--how I should
|
|
like to see her belly." My conversation got warm, then baudy, the girls
|
|
got warm, and laughed at my smut. From kissing one, I got to kiss the
|
|
other, then to pinch, poke and feel their legs, I spoke about women
|
|
being in the family way, made light of it, wished I was so myself, and
|
|
so on, and they let out as the liquor worked, and I questioned.
|
|
|
|
The younger was a little over fourteen years old, Nelly only eleven
|
|
months older. Said I, "A girl can't be in the family way before she
|
|
is fourteen." "Oh! yes she can," said Nelly. "How do you know?" She
|
|
laughed. I plied the liquor, got the young one on to my knee, and my
|
|
hand up her clothes. A yell, a threat to go, "nonsense," from Nelly.
|
|
Then I shoved my hand up Nelly's petticoats,--which she permitted
|
|
quietly. Then I had a strange whim.
|
|
|
|
"Stand close together with your backs to me, and put your hands behind
|
|
you, and I will give you something before you go; then each shall ask
|
|
the other to guess what I have put in her hand." They did, and expected
|
|
money. I pulled out my prick and balls, one girl's hand I guided under
|
|
my balls, the other's round my prick. They touched at the same time
|
|
and knew what it was, and turning round, "It's his thing," said the
|
|
youngest.
|
|
|
|
"You knew it was a man's prick," said I. "you have felt one, and one has
|
|
been into you,--let's feel your cunt, do,--you are in the family way, I
|
|
know you are."
|
|
|
|
Then I sat between them, talking outrageous baudi-ness with my prick
|
|
out. "Come into the other room," said I, "and let me see if you are in
|
|
the family way, and I will give you this (producing a sovereign); if
|
|
you are, or are not, you shall have it." She refused, but eyed the
|
|
sovereign. Said Nelly, "Well, I wish he would ask me." "So I do, but she
|
|
shall come first, you afterwards." The girl asked, "How will you tell?"
|
|
"My dear I shall lay you on the bed, throw up your clothes, look at
|
|
your belly, and feel your cunt." "I shan't then." "Then you won't get
|
|
a sovereign," and I put it bye. "I'll go with you," said Nelly, but
|
|
I would not accept her offer. There was a pause, the sister sat
|
|
reflecting, her gaiety was gone.
|
|
|
|
Soon afterwards I renewed the request. "Let him," said Nelly, "he won't
|
|
talk, he don't know people in the village." The girl shook her head
|
|
sullenly, Nelly looked at me nodded her head, and put her tongue out.
|
|
I did not know what it meant, at last guessed. "Is she?" I asked. Nelly
|
|
kept on nodding. "Well Nelly says you are in the family way." The girl
|
|
began to cry. "What's the good of crying?" said Nelly, "you can't hide
|
|
it long." The girl kept silently crying. I persuaded, Nelly persuaded,
|
|
and at last she came into the bed-room. I could feel the poor little
|
|
girl's hard belly, lifting her clothes I opened her thighs and looked;
|
|
then she resisted, but a little only. I frigged her, kissed her a
|
|
little, coaxed her, and then fucked her. She spent freely. It's my luck
|
|
to get sisters.
|
|
|
|
"Tell me Sophy all about it,--how long since you were got in the family
|
|
way?--your sister will wait."
|
|
|
|
She counted on her fingers and said, "Four months and about a week."
|
|
"Are you sure?" "Yes." "How can you tell?" "I have never been done but
|
|
on one day." "Nonsense." "It's true." "Do you mean that once putting it
|
|
up you got you in the family way?" "I didn't mean that," said she, "he
|
|
were only once with me, but he did it all night, and nearly all the next
|
|
day." "A dozen times?" "Don't know, I was so ill, so sleepy." "Who is
|
|
the father?" She shook her head. "I can't say,--dare not,--it would
|
|
be worse for me if I did." "What are you going to do?" "Go to the
|
|
work-house if they won't keep me," said the poor girl crying again. She
|
|
was rather watery headed.
|
|
|
|
It was an exciting termination to the day. After frigging her till she
|
|
was in the seventh heaven, I fucked her again. It was the same bed I had
|
|
fucked Pender on.
|
|
|
|
"You've been an hour," said Nelly when we went in, "what have you been
|
|
doing?" "Nothing but examining." The girl stuck to that also. "Oh!
|
|
gammon," said Nelly.
|
|
|
|
"You come now," said I. She would not, was sulky, and another hour went
|
|
away. It was getting late, I pulled Nelly into an open-legged posture
|
|
over mine as I sat on the chair, and lifted her clothes. Her back was
|
|
to her sister. I got my cock between her legs, it rubbed her thighs, but
|
|
she slipped away, turned sulky, and would not let me fuck her, though I
|
|
felt her. They left, and I directly after.
|
|
|
|
When clear of the town, and on the road it got dark, I joined them and
|
|
learnt where Sophy lived, and could be met. Because Nelly would not let
|
|
me I felt a want for her and made baudy requests. She got randy, and
|
|
told Sophy to go ahead. Then I got her up against a large tree, and
|
|
straddling my legs wide to get into her, found it difficult as she was
|
|
short, but was poking her with vigor when we heard footsteps and voices.
|
|
"Oh!" said she, "let me go, it's so and so." Although I held her on my
|
|
peg, grasping her bum, and hoping to spend before they came up, I being
|
|
empty was long about it, so she uncunted me, and slipped away just in
|
|
time. It was two or three men she knew, who seeing girls ahead ran after
|
|
them, I dodging round the tree as they ran past. They over-took the
|
|
girls, I followed at a distance sufficiently near to hear their low
|
|
chaff, their attempts to kiss the girls, and the yells of the sluts when
|
|
they attempted more.
|
|
|
|
When I saw Pender again I heard that her husband had for some reason
|
|
gone to ------ on the Sunday she was there with me. He stayed, and took
|
|
his wife home. "Did he do you?" said I. She colored up. "It be a fact he
|
|
did,--it be most curious. I were hot with running, and fetched the meat
|
|
from the bake-house. After dinner he said, 'Well you do look comely, you
|
|
do today, where 'as you been?', and he pulled me on his knees, and put
|
|
his hands up my clothes,--and in all my life he never had done such a
|
|
thing afore in daytime. Says he, 'Lass we'll have a game at mother and
|
|
father.' Said I, 'Why P., you must have been drinking,' He pulls me down
|
|
on to sister's bed which were in the corner of the room, and I would not
|
|
let him. He says, 'Don't make a row, for I means it', and so I let him
|
|
do it"
|
|
|
|
Such games went on until full Autumn, I was always after one or the
|
|
other as fancy led, or opportunity offered; but was obliged to be more
|
|
and more cunning, for fear I should be found out. Although I had heavy
|
|
fucking at times, yet had good rests between. It was a jolly time, but
|
|
mainly with three of the four women now. Nelly got the most of my cock
|
|
at first, Sophy very soon after.
|
|
|
|
The little one in the family way had taken my fancy. I fucked her in
|
|
the lane and fields, but mainly upright, the grass being now damp. One
|
|
evening we went to the baudy house. I had pleasure in fucking her, but
|
|
she was always crying. "Why do you meet me?" said I. "To get money to
|
|
help me if they turn me out." "When?" "When they find I am in the family
|
|
way." At last but with difficulty, I got out of her much about her
|
|
seducer and give the narrative as near as I can in its order.
|
|
|
|
"Yes it is a big man, a fine, tall man, and quite a man, not old, not
|
|
young.--Oh! I dare not say who, it would be worse for me (a cry),--you
|
|
won't tell Nelly,--how came you to know my sister?--do you do anything
|
|
to her?--now do tell me." "Well tell me your history, and perhaps I will
|
|
tell you about Nelly."
|
|
|
|
"Well he got into bed with me saying, 'It's cold,--and it were,--let's
|
|
lay here, it will be no harm, no one will know.' I said I would hollow,
|
|
but there was no one in the house--Now I am letting out, and I won't."
|
|
She stopped, and would not tell more.
|
|
|
|
Persuasion, kisses, promises, and she answered my questions again. "He
|
|
cuddled me, he was big and strong, and I could not help it; and then he
|
|
pulled up my shimmy, and his shirt was up, and he put his belly close to
|
|
mine." "Then his prick was up against your belly?" "I shan't say," said
|
|
she with a modest fit, no sham. "Was it?--was it just as my prick now
|
|
is?" Her story was exciting me, I pulled her belly up to mine, and my
|
|
prick, a right good stiff one was between us. "I suppose it were," said
|
|
she, "I don't recollect, all seems in a muddle, he hurt me dreadful, I
|
|
screamed, he put something over my mouth, and I don't know no more; but
|
|
he was doing it right up, and I were hollowing,--and then I cried."
|
|
|
|
"Are you sure you cried out?" "I hollowed I know, but I knowed there
|
|
was no one to hear." "Then you were in the house alone?" "Yes." "What
|
|
house?" "I shan't say,--Nelly is always asking, and I _won't_ say,--you
|
|
won't tell her, will you now sir, what I have told you?"
|
|
|
|
"I don't recollect more," she went on, "but he lay on me, oh! a long,
|
|
long time." "Not up you?" "Yes oh! a long time." "Did he keep on
|
|
fucking?" "He kept on a doing it and stopping,--no he never pulled it
|
|
out, at last I fainted or slept I suppose, for when I recollect more he
|
|
was out of bed. Then he got into bed, and he did the same I can't say
|
|
how many times. When it were day I said, 'Ain't you going to work?' and
|
|
he said, 'No. If any one comes they will think I am gone, and if you say
|
|
a word if anyone knocks I will murder you.' Then he got up, and showed
|
|
me his razor, and said, 'Do you see that?--I bloody well mean it, mind.'
|
|
Then he got into bed again, and he did it again."
|
|
|
|
"Did you like it?" "I don't know, I was all pain, but I think I must at
|
|
last; I was so muddled like and ill I could not move. Then he dressed
|
|
and says, says he, 'If ever you tell I'll cut your bloody throat; now
|
|
you say you were ill, and stopped at home from work', and he went away
|
|
to his work." I guessed she had been raped.
|
|
|
|
Another day I had Nelly, and questioned her. She said she wanted to
|
|
know, but did not; she guessed, but dared not say. Sophy had said there
|
|
would be murder if she told who the father was, but she guessed. She was
|
|
only eleven months older than Sophy, who must have been in the family
|
|
way just before she was fourteen, had had her courses when thirteen
|
|
years old, and was "hankering after the chaps" quite early. "Mother
|
|
used to slap her for it." Nelly's courses had only recently come on, she
|
|
said.
|
|
|
|
Sophy although younger and slighter built, had more hair on her cunt
|
|
than Nelly, and gave me the idea of being older. Neither were tall, both
|
|
were larger in their thighs, haunches, and bubbies, than town girls of
|
|
the same age, as far as I can recollect.
|
|
|
|
I can't recollect the order, but only the broader features of this part
|
|
of my amorous history. I think that after the Sunday when I had Pender
|
|
and Sophy I could not get to Pender, for the farm-yard from morning
|
|
to night was full of laborers; so busied myself with Sophy, who two or
|
|
three times the same week met me at ------ and what I have narrated was
|
|
told me there. It delighted me to hear about her virgin offering, it
|
|
made my cock stand. Then I would fuck the little wench, and make her
|
|
arse wag like the tail of a duck that had a thwack with a stone, then
|
|
would question her again. If she said she should say no more, I used to
|
|
remind her of what she had let out on the previous night. What delighted
|
|
my sensuous imagination, was the evident fact that the man was big, and
|
|
with a big prick, and must have kept it up with her without uncunting
|
|
till he had fucked her three times. Her praying him to go, trying to get
|
|
from under him his grasping her to him so that she could not move, his
|
|
laying quiet on her, then commencing his shoves,--all proved it. He
|
|
seems to have began his assault on her about nine o'clock one night, and
|
|
never went out of the bed till two o'clock the next afternoon.
|
|
|
|
"Has he ever done it since?" "Never, he has never had a chance; he has
|
|
tried to catch me coming home, but I always come with some one else; he
|
|
has asked me, but I never would." "I dare say you egged him on; had he
|
|
never made a baudy sign? Never shown you his prick?" "Both Nelly and
|
|
I had seen that," said she, "we looked through the key-hole if we
|
|
heard--." Here she stopped short, and nothing would make her go on, she
|
|
saw she was on the point of giving the key to the riddle.
|
|
|
|
I advised her to get as much money as she could, and then if unkind she
|
|
might snap her fingers at them. She had kept all I had given her. I had
|
|
a feast with her of rump-steak and onions one night; she eat till she
|
|
could eat no longer. I toppled her up with hot spirits and water, and
|
|
then tumbled on to the bed with her. She was very communicative, I
|
|
frigged her about till with a sigh she said, "Oh! let's do it."
|
|
|
|
"Tell me who did it to you then, and I'll give you another sovereign
|
|
to keep you through your confinement; feel my prick, and tell me." She
|
|
reflected, she was so lewd, I knelt on the bed, my prick standing stiff
|
|
in front of her face. "You won't ever tell anybody" said she, "will
|
|
you?" I swore I would not.
|
|
|
|
Rubbing her eyes she hesitated, then said, "Tom." "Who is Tom?"
|
|
"Hester's husband." "Who is Hester?" "My sister,--oh! don't tell, or
|
|
he will murder me." I saw the whole story at once. In another minute we
|
|
were fucking. Afterwards she told me all.
|
|
|
|
There were three sisters, Hester married Tom, a laborer; Sophy
|
|
lived with them, Nelly lived with their mother. Tom and Hester had
|
|
a two-roomed cottage, in one they slept, in the other, which was
|
|
sitting-room and kitchen, was a bed in the corner, where slept Sophy.
|
|
The mother was dangerously ill, Hester went to assist Nelly attending
|
|
her; so Sophy was alone in the house with big Tom, who took the
|
|
opportunity to put his big prick into Sophy's little cunt, get her in
|
|
the family way, threaten to murder her if she ever told, to turn
|
|
Hester into the streets, and do any other amount of deviltry. Sophy was
|
|
frightened of Tom and at first of her sisters knowing about her swelling
|
|
belly, till it was found out. All was quite probable. I believed it
|
|
implicitly. The size of Tom's prick, and the number of times he had done
|
|
her were all described with modesty. I pitied the girl, and resolved to
|
|
help her. Tom bore I found a bad character, and Hester no better, had
|
|
been confined soon after she was married. The child was dead. All three
|
|
sisters now lived with Tom since the mother's death.
|
|
|
|
"You knew all about fucking long before he did it to you." "Of course we
|
|
did. Nelly and I often talked about it, Hester told us what pleasure it
|
|
was; we could hear Tom and Hester doing it. Nelly if sleeping with me
|
|
used to listen. They used to hang a cloth before the door,--there were
|
|
cracks in it,--if they did not, we could see through if there were
|
|
light, and sometimes they forgot. Nelly and I have both seen Tom's cock
|
|
that way. Once he showed it to me as it were by accident; he was in the
|
|
privy, and he called out to me to bring him a leaf. When I took it him
|
|
his cock was out and stiff; he grinned, I looked, he took the leaf, and
|
|
ran a hole in it with his finger, and put his cock through the hole,
|
|
then he said, 'If you tell Hester that, she will turn you out.' So I
|
|
never told, but I told Nelly. He did the same to Nelly one day, but we
|
|
held our tongues."
|
|
|
|
That is all I have to say about Sophy here. I had her from time to time
|
|
until within three months of her confinement, for simple curiosity. I
|
|
had no pleasure in it when her belly got big, but I kept her in money.
|
|
|
|
Nelly I also had. She came a saucy, lewd, low-tongued little bitch; but
|
|
I liked her fuck. I found her larking with men, and stroked her more
|
|
than once in the lanes. One night I caught her by surprise, and saw some
|
|
male going off in the dark as I thought. "That was a fellow with you,"
|
|
said I. "No it was not." But her cunt had a most unusual wetness. I
|
|
hesitated, and said that some one I thought had just wetted her. She was
|
|
confused, denied it, and whimpered at my suspicion. I again felt her,
|
|
and putting my fingers and thumb together was sure it was spunk, and
|
|
turned away; but felt so randy, that I turned back after her, wiped her
|
|
cunt with my handkerchief, made her piss, and then fucked her up against
|
|
a fence.
|
|
|
|
As I relinquished my hold of her bum I heard something fall with a
|
|
chink. "Oh!" said she, "I have lost some money." It was very dark, I
|
|
picked up the money, could not see what it was, but was sure from the
|
|
feel it was gold, and said so. She had got it back before I made the
|
|
remark, and would not let me feel it again. "You told me you hid the
|
|
money I gave you." "I've been carrying it about for fear of its being
|
|
found." I told her she was lying.
|
|
|
|
I had been out that day with my gun. On returning found Fred had come
|
|
down from town, and been there all day; he had had a quarrel with Laura.
|
|
I don't know how it struck me, but I asked, and found he had only just
|
|
come in and said to myself, "He has fucked Nelly, it was his money she
|
|
dropped, it was his sperm." I did not tell him so then.
|
|
|
|
The farm-yard now was never empty, they were thrashing in the barn.
|
|
Molly was scarcely visible, and if in the yard her mother was at her
|
|
back. When I did see her I winked at her and she laughed. She was
|
|
growing wonderfully, and my desires turned to her. I had Pender one
|
|
night or so; but a few hurried words, a smooth of the buttocks, a
|
|
hurried grope with the finger, a silent kiss or two, shove, shove, shove
|
|
like a steam-engine, and a pull out of my prick almost before the spunk
|
|
was well out, was all I could get.
|
|
|
|
I was out shooting most days, and would walk across the farm-yard just
|
|
to see if the coast was clear. After several Sundays had passed I got
|
|
Pender again at the baudy house. P. took her being in the family way
|
|
rather grumpily, and she hated him since she had been with child. She
|
|
loved me, begged me to take her away, where, how, she cared not, so long
|
|
as she knew that I alone could have her; she would live alone if I only
|
|
came to see her once a month, she said.
|
|
|
|
I was sorry for this. What had been pastime to me was going to be misery
|
|
to her. I had to show her the impossibility of my keeping her; then she
|
|
said she would drown herself. Altogether it was not a very comfortable
|
|
meeting apart from the fucking, which was as good as usual I dare say,
|
|
though I don't recollect much about it.
|
|
|
|
Fred went backwards and forwards to London, I did occasionally, but not
|
|
on his days, for he was in my way. I did not tell him now much about my
|
|
little games, and got most of my women when he was absent. My mother
|
|
and sister also went home, and I was glad of that, but it made it
|
|
more needful for me to walk and drive out with aunt and cousins. I
|
|
was constantly scheming and dodging how to get one or the other of the
|
|
women, and that seemed to give zest to the affair; but I think now that
|
|
the pleasure I gave the girls when I had them had much to do with it.
|
|
Sophy and Nelly now came after me, as much as I went after them. Each
|
|
now knew that I fucked the other. "When did you do it to my sister?" was
|
|
a frequent question put by both of them to me.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XI.
|
|
|
|
Out shooting.--A female carter.--A feel in the train.--
|
|
Molly in London.--Giles in town.--Fred on the scene.--Molly
|
|
at the Hall.--Copulation in uniform.--A sham illness.--An
|
|
afternoon with Molly.--She turns harlot.--Gets clapped.--Her
|
|
baby.
|
|
|
|
I was in wonderful condition. Early to bed, out-of-door exercise, good
|
|
plain living, everything to make me so. I felt as if I could fuck all
|
|
day. If one day I had neither of the women, the next day my prick stood
|
|
from morning till I got to sleep at night. When standing quietly in the
|
|
woods waiting for the driving of the game, I used if alone to pull out
|
|
my prick and look at it, and thinking of cunt forgot to fire at the
|
|
rabbits. Once I recollect shooting at a rabbit with my prick out of my
|
|
trowsers.
|
|
|
|
Among the laborers I had seen was a strapping woman with big legs,
|
|
withered face, and parchment skin, middle-aged, yet not actually
|
|
bad-looking. The old foreman had said to me, "She ha been the biggest
|
|
whore in the parish, I bet that there beant a man but what have had she
|
|
when she were young. The first chap as had she, were the banker; she say
|
|
it herself. I be sworn she likes a bit yet when she can get it." She was
|
|
as strong as a horse, if no one were handy, she would groom a horse, was
|
|
often driving a farm-cart, and had the reputation of having whored since
|
|
she was fifteen years of age.
|
|
|
|
Waiting with my gun by a ride one day, my prick throbbing in my
|
|
trowsers; I pulled it out, and felt it, laid down my gun, and in the
|
|
trembling state of erection I was in had determined to frig myself;
|
|
when I heard the wheels of a cart which soon came in sight. I saw it
|
|
was driven by this woman who sat on a shaft with her legs dangling, and
|
|
showing her big calves. Lust made me indifferent to consequences, had
|
|
it been my grandmother I think I should have done the same. There was
|
|
a cunt between those legs, that was enough. I forgot her age, position,
|
|
the risk I ran of beaters coming, and everything else; I only thought of
|
|
how to ease myself.
|
|
|
|
I nodded, "Good morning mother, come and help us a bit," and out stood
|
|
my cock in front of her. She laughed, and jumped off the cart which
|
|
stopped. "Come here." "No," said she standing still and grinning. I
|
|
winked and turned to the left out of the ride, she did the same. Without
|
|
preliminary, almost without a word, I laid her on some grass drier than
|
|
the rest, and had as good a pleasure out of her as I ever had in my
|
|
life, or thought so. She went off with her cunt full, I tipped her. In
|
|
a few minutes I was banging at the rabbits again. I don't think I was
|
|
three minutes about it, and never had her again nor spoke to her, though
|
|
I occasionally saw her and winked.
|
|
|
|
"I hait heard much of your gun squire," said one of the game-keepers,
|
|
"there ought to have been lots o' rabbits pass you in this beat." I said
|
|
I had scarcely seen any,--how could I?
|
|
|
|
Rainy weather set in, Nelly and Sophy were available but al-fresco,
|
|
copulation impossible, and the long tramp or ride to ------ to the baudy
|
|
house not to my taste. I had now no excuse for going to the farm, and no
|
|
Pender. So one morning I set off for London. Just as the train started
|
|
Molly and her mother appeared; she put the girl into a third-class
|
|
carriage. At the first station the train stopped at I got into the
|
|
carriage with Molly, who opened her eyes wide when she saw me. We were
|
|
soon in conversation. Molly was going to an aunt's in London who was to
|
|
meet her at the Terminus. You may guess which way my talk ran. I kept
|
|
whispering lewd things in her ear. An elderly stern-faced woman got
|
|
in at a station, fixed her eyes on us, especially on me, and at length
|
|
said, "Do you know that young woman?" Her coolness nearly settled me,
|
|
but I said I did, kept on talking, and was delighted when about two or
|
|
three stations further on she left with the remark to Molly, "Take care
|
|
of yourself my gal, and don't have anything to say to strange men or
|
|
women."
|
|
|
|
There are tunnels on that line. There were no lights then in third-class
|
|
carriages. In one tunnel I kissed her, and on my kiss being returned,
|
|
got my fingers on her cunt, and kept them there till approaching light
|
|
made me withdraw them. It was a cold foggy day. I sat close to her
|
|
wrapped in a travelling-cloak, and partially covered her with it and
|
|
with my rug. I got her hand under my cloak and with the pretense of
|
|
warming it, gradually introduced my prick into her hand, and there I
|
|
kept it a quarter of an hour, she looking in such a fright all round at
|
|
the people every now and then, but enjoying the warmth of the feel. Just
|
|
before entering London is another tunnel, I had another grope at her
|
|
warm quim, and arranged my clothes.
|
|
|
|
I got her London address, and entered a cab, determined to follow her,
|
|
and see if she was deceiving me. She waited, no one appeared to meet
|
|
her, one or two men spoke to her, and as she told me later asked her to
|
|
go and have drink. Then I got out. "No one is here," said I. "Come
|
|
and have some wine, you can say you waited ever so long should they
|
|
come,--there is some error about meeting you."
|
|
|
|
How could she refuse? Already had her fingers been playing round my
|
|
cock, mine still smelt of her cunt. Telling the cab to wait, and putting
|
|
her bag inside it, in three minutes I had her in a baudy house close by
|
|
the Terminus (I dare say it's there now), and Molly's little cunt was
|
|
again moistened by me. If her mother had known the risks, she never
|
|
would have allowed her the journey to London.
|
|
|
|
When our heat was cooled by two hours dallying, kissing and fucking,
|
|
she got uneasy about being found out. We put our heads together for an
|
|
excuse. The address was Paddington, she was to say she waited an hour at
|
|
the station, then made a mistake, and went to Islington, and not
|
|
finding the street there came to Paddington. The excuse turned out good,
|
|
Paddington and Islington looked much alike on the scrawl.
|
|
|
|
I have often wondered at the rapid success I had with country women
|
|
at that time. With women whom I saw daily, and with whom I had much
|
|
opportunity, such as mother's servants, I was a long time getting my
|
|
aim; but at that period of my life I was often diffident; even with gay
|
|
women, a slight thing would at times make me cease speaking to them. But
|
|
here I no sooner attacked than the females fell to me. I attribute it to
|
|
the suddenness and impetuosity with which I made at times my advances,
|
|
and the boldness with which I proceeded to baudy extremities. When I was
|
|
once lanced, I was so strong, so lewd, that I am sure I communicated my
|
|
lewdness to them by some subtle magnetism, even before I spoke. Then I
|
|
was a London swell, a relative of the lady of the Manor, there was the
|
|
pride which women of the humble class have, in being singled out for
|
|
notice by a London gent, all these told. But my baudy, rapid assaults,
|
|
lustful cunning and an innate power of stirring up voluptuous sensations
|
|
in women when once I spoke, got me them more than anything else. When in
|
|
the country, I was thinking of nothing else, and had nothing else to
|
|
do but to hunt down cunts, and feed myself up for fucking them. When in
|
|
London the game was different.
|
|
|
|
Molly's aunt was a greengrocer. Molly did not keep her promise to meet
|
|
me, so I went to the place, saw her standing in the shop, and beckoned;
|
|
she shook her head. I passed and repassed, on foot, then in a cab, till
|
|
I thought the whole street would know me. At length she came out and
|
|
said, "Aunt won't let me out alone, mother's told her not; I can only
|
|
stay five minutes." She wanted a post-office,--could I find her one? I
|
|
did close by. She slipped a letter into the box, and begging me not to
|
|
come near the shop, went back. I asked her to write me, and arranged to
|
|
send my letters to this post-office. I wrote twice, and got no reply.
|
|
Angry I wrote that I must see her, and had something to tell her; then
|
|
I got a scrawl in reply. She met me, and I took her to a house near her
|
|
aunt's.
|
|
|
|
Molly did not like me. When I got her into the room, she refused to let
|
|
me have her, and begged me to tell her what I had heard. I invented some
|
|
nonsense; and she said that was not what I had to say, she was sure. I
|
|
recollect sitting and talking with my prick out, and she looked at it
|
|
sulkily; but she resisted me. I said, "How is Giles' head?" "What," said
|
|
she, "who told you?" "Nobody knows but me," said I. (It was one of the
|
|
most blackguardly things I did in my life, and am ashamed of it.) She
|
|
shed tears, but no longer refused me. I gave her a sovereign saying,
|
|
"That will be useful when you marry."
|
|
|
|
I made her meet me again, and then she told me she would go to service.
|
|
She went after a good many situations I know. I fucked her whenever
|
|
she went out. She was getting hot-arsed, and she liked the poking. One
|
|
morning I passed the shop, and saw loitering about in the streets in a
|
|
velveteen costume. Giles. She had written to him I was sure.
|
|
|
|
I dodged them in a cab, saw her come out, and as fast as they could they
|
|
went to a low coffee-shop where there were beds. I daresay my money paid
|
|
for their refreshments.
|
|
|
|
Going to the street one day, there to my astonishment I saw my cousin
|
|
Fred walking about. I was in a cab, and he did not see me. I asked
|
|
Molly the next time if she knew if Fred was in town. She said no, seemed
|
|
astonished, and I believed her; but I was sure Fred was after her, and
|
|
could not imagine how he had found out her address. Laura perhaps took
|
|
the starch out of him, for I never saw him in the street again. Molly
|
|
now got fond of money. One day I took her to a baudy house near the
|
|
Haymarket, feasted her, and fucked her till I was empty, and she full.
|
|
Then I went back to the country to see my aunt, and soon again I got
|
|
Pender. Said she among other gossip, "That gal Molly Brown will give her
|
|
mother trouble, she has been after a situation in London, and her aunt
|
|
says has been seen going into a house with a man, Giles has left the
|
|
village, her mother believes he is after her, so she has sent for her
|
|
back." Sure enough in two or three days there was Molly, looking as
|
|
fresh as a daisy, and as modest as a whore at a christening.
|
|
|
|
The mother told no one anything except Pender, and Pender told me. Molly
|
|
then went to the Hall assisting whilst a servant was ill, and then I saw
|
|
her every hour or so. Then Fred came back, and I saw he was making up
|
|
to her, and told him of it. He acknowledged it, remarking it was a pity
|
|
such a nice young girl should not taste the sugar-stick. "Perhaps she
|
|
has," said I. He thought not, there was a country lout she wanted
|
|
to marry, and the mother looked after her closely. "I would give a
|
|
ten-pound note to have her," he said to me one day.
|
|
|
|
Shortly Molly appeared ill and pining; her face lost its bloom, I could
|
|
not understand it. The bad weather keeping people at home had given me
|
|
no chance of having her; if I saw her alone it was only for a minute,
|
|
but I used to pull my prick out and show it to her. I have done it in
|
|
the corridor, my aunt walking in front of me. I tried to get her to come
|
|
out, but she would not, besides Fred always appeared on the scene. My
|
|
delight was to get in the way when I knew there was the best chance of
|
|
his seeing her alone. So we baulked each other.
|
|
|
|
There was some military inspection not far from us, Fred was going in
|
|
his uniform, with my aunt, cousins and self, and all but two servants
|
|
were allowed to go. The carriage was at the door when I was taken short,
|
|
and being in my bed-room ran to the W.C. As I came out, I saw Fred at
|
|
the end of the corridor near the stairs, walking quickly but quietly,
|
|
and heard his footsteps descending to the Hall. "What's up?" thought I.
|
|
He has been dressed a long time, why on the first-floor now? He passed
|
|
his bed-room without going in. A suspicion crossed my mind, and being
|
|
close to it, I put my ear to the nursemaid's door (the one with two
|
|
doors in which I had had the skinny nursemaid), heard a rustling, and
|
|
quickly opening the lobby-door connecting with the servants' stairs, I
|
|
saw Molly looking hot, flushed, adjusting her collar and hair, and going
|
|
downstairs rapidly, she didn't see me. Instinct told me she had been
|
|
fucked by Fred.
|
|
|
|
I rushed downstairs, Fred and all were in the carriage, aunt angry at
|
|
waiting so long for me. I told her my ailment, said I would ride after
|
|
them directly I felt better, so off they drove. The butler and Molly
|
|
were in the Hall, they and the cook the only people in the house. I sent
|
|
off the butler to the village to get me some medicine, and said to Molly
|
|
in a stern way before him, as if I had never seen her, "Are you doing
|
|
the housemaid's work young woman?" "Yes sir." "Arrange my room as
|
|
quickly as you can, for I am not well, and shall lay down there." "Yes
|
|
sir," said she looking so hard at me. "Do the room at once," said
|
|
the old butler. Off she went. I saw him go off on his errand, and ran
|
|
upstairs to my bed-room. There was Molly. I bolted the door, and pulled
|
|
out my prick. Never had Molly resisted me more, she struggled, fought.
|
|
What would happen if some one came? She would be ruined. "No one can
|
|
come my darling, all are out but cook, and if she misses you she will
|
|
think you have ran down to your mothers." But she struggled on, begged,
|
|
implored, she would meet me; she would do anything if I would desist
|
|
then, she was poorly and could not. It was useless. I had been against
|
|
my will chaste for some days. The fascination of the prick overcame her,
|
|
she yielded, I threw her at length on the bed, mounted, fucked, and in
|
|
half-a-dozen thrusts the job was done.
|
|
|
|
I recollect keeping her under me, and with my dawning senses what I
|
|
had seen a quarter of an hour before came through my mind. Prick up her,
|
|
and leaning on one elbow, I looked at her long; the possibility of
|
|
my prick then laying in Fred's spunk mixed with my own, instead of
|
|
horrifying; me as it would have done, had I thought about the matter
|
|
before in a cool state of mind, sent a delightful tittillation through
|
|
me. I grasped her firmly, drove my prick home again, and said looking
|
|
her in the face, "Fred has just fucked you."
|
|
|
|
"Oh!" said she with such a start that she uncunted me, "oh I what a
|
|
wicked story,--let me go." But I was flat on her, she writhed, said I
|
|
was insulting her; but my prick drove on, it hit, and went up. "I
|
|
am sure he has,--shove, shove,--I saw him--shove--leave the
|
|
room--shove--and you came out the other door,--shove, shove,
|
|
shove,--lay quiet,--shove, shove, shove." "Oh! let me go." "I
|
|
shan't,--shove,--wriggle,--shove,--oh! my love,--ah!--ah.--a!
|
|
oh--o!--ah!" Our wet lips met, and the final wriggle settled
|
|
our movements, sighs and conversation. She was quiet enough now,
|
|
tranquillized by her pleasure.
|
|
|
|
"Oh! if some one comes." "I will say you are not here, and no one can
|
|
enter. Fred has just fucked you."
|
|
|
|
"It's a lie," said she rolling off the bed, and going off quickly with
|
|
her cunt full.
|
|
|
|
The butler came back with the medicine, I threw it down the closet, and
|
|
went down to the dining-room. In an hour or so, I rang for some tea (how
|
|
was I to get him out of the way again?). I went to my bedroom, rang;
|
|
up came Molly. "Let us do it again." "I won't, you have insulted me."
|
|
"Bring me a great can of hot water." Then I rang for all sorts of odd
|
|
things, making believe I had a bad attack of colic, showing her my prick
|
|
each time, till she let me do it at the edge of the bed. Her cunt had
|
|
been well washed. We were quiet, afraid of being overheard, a woman
|
|
knows how to avoid being compromised when she has once intrigued,--but
|
|
the poor girl was in an agony of fear.
|
|
|
|
"I've been into the nursemaid's room," said I, "and there is the mark of
|
|
some one having been on the bed-edge." "Well it's not me." She stuck out
|
|
that she had been in the room alone. "Why there at all?" She had only
|
|
passed through the room to piddle.
|
|
|
|
In the afternoon I called the butler, and sent him to the village
|
|
again, to get me another mixture. In the dining-room I rang, and Molly
|
|
answered. "I am going to ring in my room again," said I, "you come." No
|
|
she would not. I went up and rang.
|
|
|
|
The cook answered my bell. What a baulk! but I was equal to it,--the
|
|
cook had no business to come up, it was Molly's place. "Do you think
|
|
that Mrs. Brown or Pender, or some one on the farm has got anything good
|
|
for diarrhoea?" "I'll go and see," said she good-naturedly. I knew she
|
|
must be gone ten minutes, or a quarter of an hour.
|
|
|
|
I followed her downstairs, soon rushed into the kitchen, bolted the
|
|
kitchen-garden entrance, laid hold of Molly, whose horror was extreme at
|
|
the idea of being caught, and I fucked her in the butler's pantry, where
|
|
he slept. With my cock dripping as I pulled it out, I ran up to my room.
|
|
She had just had time to unbolt the door before the cook appeared, and
|
|
she brought me some medicine from Mrs. Pender, which of course went down
|
|
the closet.
|
|
|
|
I went to my bed-room, revelling in the intrigue of the day, and
|
|
wondering how often Fred had had her, and whether that day was the first
|
|
time. Whenever my cock grew stiff I rang for Molly, and showed it to
|
|
her. She grew demoralized at the constant sight of the cock, but there
|
|
was no time for a fuck; I promised her a new bonnet to get me another
|
|
opportunity. In a couple of hours she came, I had a voluptuous caprice,
|
|
turned her belly on the bed, her rump towards me, for a fuck from
|
|
behind. She objected, "What are you going to do? You can't do anything
|
|
like that." "Yes my love, easily." "I don't like my clothes up like
|
|
that." Two or three times I had to turn her round before she was quiet,
|
|
and then we consummated. Molly was astonished. She had never been tailed
|
|
in that attitude before I am sure.
|
|
|
|
It was about eleven o'clock when Fred and the others had set forth; they
|
|
returned to a late dinner. I had fucked Molly five or six times. Then I
|
|
went to bed, my aunt and cousins came up to me, and were so kind. So was
|
|
Fred, who told me all about the inspection, and never suspected my game
|
|
in the least, nor any one else. The last words I said to Molly that day
|
|
were, "Fred has fucked you." Again she swore that he never had. To keep
|
|
up the deception and excuse my staying at home, I had eaten scarcely
|
|
anything all day, and felt I recollect awfully hungry when a bed.
|
|
|
|
The empty pleasure of occasionally showing my doodle to Molly was all I
|
|
could get afterwards. Nelly or Sophy--I forget which--I got to the baudy
|
|
house at------; whichever of the two it was, came half wet through with
|
|
muddy boots and under-linen which so upset me that I did not poke. The
|
|
servant who had been ill came back to the Hall, and Molly left. I had
|
|
Pender (whose belly was then showing its intentions awfully) up against
|
|
the gate opposite her cottage one wet night (but "cock and cunt will
|
|
come together"). Said she in the slight interval between our meeting,
|
|
fucking, and parting, "If that gal Molly is not in the family way,--her
|
|
mother's found it out,--oh! such a row." That accounted for Molly
|
|
looking depressed.
|
|
|
|
Soon Molly went again to London, and I did the same day, but not in the
|
|
third-class carriage. We spoke at the station. "For God's sake go," said
|
|
she, "aunt's coming." "I'll write to the post-office," said I, and did.
|
|
Then she met me, she got a situation directly, but I tempted the girl.
|
|
"Tell your aunt you are wanted a week earlier than you are, and come and
|
|
stop with me." The devil was with me, Molly got into a cab with her
|
|
box, and was set down at a station; there I got her into another, and we
|
|
drove to a small hotel where I had taken a room. She only stayed with me
|
|
five days; I took her to theatres and other places, but not out in the
|
|
day; fed her up, and fucked her and myself out. The sheets were always
|
|
slobbered with spunk and once or twice I made the woman change them.
|
|
Molly had become lecherous, and no doubt reckless, and I had the delight
|
|
of teaching her baudiness (which is the main pleasure a virgin gives you
|
|
over a gay women), but she did not care about me. She was often crying,
|
|
but a little friction on her clitoris usually cured that. On the last
|
|
day I asked her if she was in the family way? She admitted it, and went
|
|
to her situation. "I think it's you who have done it," said she to me.
|
|
I told her it must be Giles.
|
|
|
|
She stopped a fortnight in her situation, then went no one knew where.
|
|
Pender told me when I went back. I was sorry, went to town hoping to
|
|
find her, and wrote to the post-office. By some chance--perhaps to get a
|
|
letter from Giles--she went there. A week afterwards my landlady said
|
|
a young woman had called on me. "A lady?" said I. "Not at all, an
|
|
overdressed young woman." It was Molly, who called again. I went to her
|
|
poor lodgings, she fenced my questions, said she meant to go back to her
|
|
mother's. Pressing her as to how she lived, she said she had the money
|
|
I had given her. "But your bonnet, your clothes,--what do you do of a
|
|
night?" She could not evade it, Molly had turned whore. I never knew who
|
|
had put her up to getting her living by her cunt; but a fellow-servant
|
|
had left with her, and had got the next room to hers.
|
|
|
|
A woman who takes to whoring takes to lying. I could not learn exactly
|
|
how long she had stayed at her situation, or much about her movements. I
|
|
stayed with her the night, she let me pull up her clothes, and open her
|
|
thighs with a freedom she never had done before; from which I inferred
|
|
she had had more than one prick in her split since I had been up her
|
|
last; she was voluptuous, and her cunt was unusually juicy.
|
|
|
|
I went back to my aunt's sorry, for I seemed to have been largely the
|
|
cause of Molly going astray, and did not know then that a gay life is
|
|
as happy as that of the wife of a farm-laborer. Restless I went again
|
|
to London, saw Molly who looked fearfully wretched, would neither let me
|
|
fuck, nor feel her, and then broke out in an agony of tears, saying she
|
|
was ill, something was the matter with her. "With your cunt?" "Yes,"
|
|
said she, "do look." Poor Molly opened her plump thighs, stretched open
|
|
her cunt, and gave me every facility. Her quim was in a high state of
|
|
inflammation, and it had a discharge. A medical student who saw her said
|
|
she had the clap, and gave her medicine. "Oh! do look again, tell me if
|
|
I am very bad,--shall I be worse?--oh! I am so sorry I did not keep at
|
|
my situation," said she.
|
|
|
|
Once in my life since, another girl made me a similar confession, and
|
|
those are the only two who confessed to an illness at the time they had
|
|
the illness on them.
|
|
|
|
I told her she could be cured, but horrified her with the description
|
|
of the disease to which she might be subject, took her to a doctor, paid
|
|
her lodgings, counselled her to go home, to hold her tongue, and refuse
|
|
to tell any one anything, excepting that she had left her situation. She
|
|
promised, but was frightened of her mother.
|
|
|
|
She said she had never been into the streets since I had left her. I had
|
|
a fear of the clap, and did not intend any commerce with her; but lust
|
|
overcame me, and we fucked all that night to the damage of the sheets
|
|
again. I wrote an anonymous letter to her mother, telling where the
|
|
girl could be found. She came up to town and took her back. Molly's cunt
|
|
proved to be all right.
|
|
|
|
A woman is such a fool that she must tell some one everything. Mrs.
|
|
Brown told Pender about the anonymous letter, and Mrs. P. told me; but
|
|
I don't think any of them knew the girl had been on the streets. Molly's
|
|
belly soon afterwards showed, Mrs. Brown thought better of Giles, he
|
|
married her and they went to live a few miles off. She had a child, and
|
|
every one thought it was Giles' begetting. I suppose he knew nothing of
|
|
the girl's pranks, for luckily a cunt cannot speak. Then Mrs. Brown left
|
|
aunt, and Pender and his wife came to live in the farm-yard.
|
|
|
|
When it became known that Molly Brown was delivered of a child, my aunt
|
|
remarked (Fred told me) that she was not married a bit too soon. "I had
|
|
that little devil two or three times," said Fred, "and on the first day
|
|
I was in uniform. Do you recollect Walter, the day you were ill?" And
|
|
he told me how it came about; but I never told him that I had had her;
|
|
I never spoke of having had a woman, if I thought I should injure her,
|
|
whatever my desire or vanity might have been.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XII.
|
|
|
|
Nelly and Sophy.--Nelly at the Argyle.--In town with Fred.--
|
|
On the sofa with Mabel.--The effect of black stockings.--
|
|
Interference.--In bed.--Mabel's bad habits.--A ladies'
|
|
school.--The bathroom.--My cousins naked.--Maria the
|
|
curate's wife.--Cunt inspection.--Servants washing.--Flat
|
|
fucking.
|
|
|
|
I may as well finish about Nelly and Sophy, although the occurrences I
|
|
now narrate happened some time afterwards. Nelly got in the family way,
|
|
told me I was the father, and told Fred he was, for he had had her. We
|
|
both cheeked her, and said that half a dozen might claim the honor. She
|
|
and Sophy left the village. Sophy I never heard of or saw again, that I
|
|
recollect. Two or three years afterwards, I was at the Argyle Rooms. A
|
|
woman looked at me, smiled, and pointed me out to another woman, then
|
|
came up smiling and said, "Don't you know me?" It was Nelly, who had
|
|
become harlot by profession. I was then a poor man, but slept with her
|
|
at Brompton. She had heard I had ruined myself. I had her afterwards
|
|
once or twice, but soon gave her up. Harlotry was successful with her,
|
|
and I could not pay her price. Though she was a swell woman, she did not
|
|
want me to pay at all, but I was proud. She always declared that I had
|
|
had the first of her, but could not say I was the father of the child.
|
|
Mrs. Pender now had a chance. At night there was often no one in the
|
|
farm-yard but her, she could therefore go into the barn when she liked.
|
|
Her husband finding the dark nights dull went frequently to the village
|
|
Public; then I used to enter the big barn from the rick-yard, she having
|
|
left the wicket open, and she had a good bombasting on the straw and
|
|
hay. But I grew tired of her big belly, liked a bed and nakedness, and
|
|
to see and feel in comfort the cunt I was to bestow my attention on.
|
|
Fucking on straw was all very well with a new piece. I could generally
|
|
not tell her face from her arse, excepting by feel, for of course we had
|
|
no light in the barn; so I grew tired, and gave it up.
|
|
|
|
Then Fred and I went to town, he to see Laura, I to get promiscuous
|
|
fucking, and other amusements. Laura who was one of the few women of
|
|
her class whom I have found to be well educated, had a female friend
|
|
stopping with her from her native place Plymouth. Her name was Mabel,
|
|
a pretty modest-looking girl. Laura had given out that she had married
|
|
Fred, and this girl had been entrusted to keep her company. I tell the
|
|
tale as it was told me. I dined with them daily, and in fact all but
|
|
lived there.
|
|
|
|
One night we went to the theatre, and back to Fred's, had a jolly
|
|
supper, and got as merry as sandboys. It was a cold foggy night, I said
|
|
I would not go home as it was about three A.M., and would sleep on the
|
|
sofa. Our conversation had been pretty warm. Fred remarked that I had
|
|
better sleep with Mabel. Laura was surprised at Fred. Mabel laughed, and
|
|
baudy insinuations passed without baudy words. Fred said he should go to
|
|
bed, and off he went. Laura expected Mabel to go to bed, but she put
|
|
it off laughing and joking. Laura got angry, Fred came out in his
|
|
night-gown swearing if Laura did not come, he would go out, and get a
|
|
woman; and off Laura went. Fred wanted a fuck before he went to sleep.
|
|
|
|
Mabel and I sat talking, both heated and randy. It got colder, she got
|
|
sleepy, I would not let her go, so she laid on the sofa. I drew a chair
|
|
to her side, and both drinking whiskey and water time rolled on. "Oh! I
|
|
wish I were Fred," said I. "Why?" "Because he is between Laura's thighs,
|
|
belly to belly, how warm, how delicious this cold night." "Oh! for
|
|
shame!" "Nonsense my dear, quite natural and proper, we are made to keep
|
|
each other warm, and give each other pleasure." "When we're married,"
|
|
said she. "Married,--pough!--then millions would never taste the
|
|
pleasure." My words grew warmer, I kissed, and was kissed, edged myself
|
|
on to the sofa, little by little felt my way from her ankles to her
|
|
thighs, and behold me smothering her with kisses, with my hand on her
|
|
cunt, her hand on my prick.
|
|
|
|
A modest woman will let you take liberties much more readily if you kiss
|
|
her whilst taking them. Sit at the foot of a girl on a sofa, and try
|
|
to force your hand up her clothes, she may resist you; sit close by her
|
|
side, bend over her, kiss her, and at the same time your hand may find
|
|
its way to her cunt, almost without hindrance.
|
|
|
|
So was it now. Mabel was scarcely modest. I recollect the conviction
|
|
coming over me that she was no virgin, and if I had doubts before, the
|
|
way my finger slipped from her clitoris up the love-pit and plugged it,
|
|
confirmed them. She lay with her eyes fixed on me, palpitating gently
|
|
with voluptuousness. Her petticoats up to her knees, I saw legs in black
|
|
stockings, one in wrinkles, the other half-way bagging down the calf,
|
|
and her feet in shabby slippers.
|
|
|
|
I had at that time a horror of black stockings, which affected me at
|
|
times so much as to deprive me of all desire. Once with a gay woman who
|
|
had black stockings I was unable to poke her, spite of her blandishment,
|
|
till she put white ones on. As I now saw Mabel's legs a disgust came
|
|
over me, desire left me, and my prick began to shrink; I may have been
|
|
tired, or had had my sperm drawn too much the night previously; that is
|
|
likely enough, I don't recollect; but know I got nervous, a fear lest
|
|
she should doubt my manhood, a sense of shame overcame me. I tried to
|
|
rally, but in vain, for once that nervousness on me, it vanquished me.
|
|
I ceased to probe her quim with my finger, my prick shrunk out of her
|
|
hand, and the titillation ceasing, Mabel turned away her eyes,
|
|
repulsed my hands, and drew her clothes down, looking at me full. I sat
|
|
speechless.
|
|
|
|
"Are you ill?" said she. "Yes," said I overjoyed with the suggestion, "a
|
|
faintness came over me, and a giddyness,--I shall be better directly."
|
|
|
|
She believed it, gave me cold water, and we sat for a time. I looked at
|
|
her beautifully white neck, thought how white her bum must be, tried to
|
|
get the black stockings out of my head, but could not. It must have been
|
|
past four o'clock in the morning when I asked her to lie down again, but
|
|
she refused; the spell had been broken, the weakness gone, and she said
|
|
she should go to bed.
|
|
|
|
"Is your bum as white as your neck?" said I. "Laura says I am the
|
|
whitest fleshed women she ever saw, all the girls at school used to say
|
|
so."
|
|
|
|
In my mind's eye I saw the white bum and thighs, my lust came back at a
|
|
rush. "Let me see it," I said, and I laid hold of her. The flood-gates
|
|
of my baudi-ness were loosened, and as she afterwards told me, I let fly
|
|
a torrent of voluptuous words, enough to have excited the passions
|
|
of all the women in London. I had forgotten the stockings. She kept
|
|
refusing, denying and evading me. "Hish! hish! Laura will hear you."
|
|
Laura did, and came in her night-gown. "I came to see if you had gone to
|
|
bed," said she. "You need not have troubled yourself," said Mabel. "As
|
|
long as you're here I shall look after you; when you're at home you can
|
|
do as you like." "I'm quite old enough to take care of myself." They
|
|
quarrelled. Mabel resented her interference. Fred roared out from his
|
|
bed-room, "What the devil are you going in there for?" and Laura not
|
|
replying, came in in his night-shirt. After an altercation Fred and
|
|
Laura went back to bed.
|
|
|
|
Then Mabel said she should go to bed, must go up for five minutes, but
|
|
would be down again. "To piddle eh?" Taking off my boots I blew out one
|
|
candle, took the other, followed her, and opened the door. She was on
|
|
the piss-pot. I closed the door, and locked it. Five minutes afterwards
|
|
I was on the bed fucking her with her legs in black stockings, and five
|
|
minutes afterwards uncunting, the first words I said were, "I loathe
|
|
black stockings."
|
|
|
|
"I can't bear them myself," said she, "but I am in mourning." People in
|
|
mourning wore black stockings then.
|
|
|
|
She was anxious for me to go, so that Laura could say nothing positive,
|
|
whatever she might think. I would directly I had her again. We got
|
|
into the bed together, and I had her, and then again. That is all
|
|
I recollect, and that after the fuck we both fell asleep, and were
|
|
awakened by a knock at the door. It was late in the morning, and broad
|
|
daylight, Laura was knocking. I opened the door. Laura looked at me, and
|
|
then at Mabel, and said, "Well the sooner I send you back the better."
|
|
There was a somewhat bitter row between them, short but sharp, in which
|
|
Mabel gave as good as she got. Laura went away. Mabel turned round and
|
|
wept; then we fucked, and went to sleep again.
|
|
|
|
This is the only point in my history with Mabel much worth noting,
|
|
except that when I knew her from top to bottom, and found she got out of
|
|
bed, and washed her cunt after my sperming it, I asked her, "Why did you
|
|
not wash the first night?" "Because it's unlucky," said she, and I never
|
|
got any more out of her; but she had known the sensation of a prick in
|
|
her cunt before mine, that I found out the first night.
|
|
|
|
She was a well-arsed, well-made, plump girl about twenty-one years old,
|
|
and had a wonderfully white skin. She had been fucked before, but I
|
|
believed from all I learnt from her, Laura and Fred, that for two years
|
|
a prick had not entered her. A man who had paid his addresses to her had
|
|
deceived her, then cleared off, I expect after tailing her.
|
|
|
|
I did not profess to keep Mabel after this, but paid for the
|
|
second-floor rooms (Fred had taken the upper part of the house, three
|
|
bed- and one sitting-room), and my share of the living, and slept with
|
|
her almost regularly for a short time, gave her money, dressed her, and
|
|
did all a man does who keeps a woman; but I never cared much about her,
|
|
and was not constant.
|
|
|
|
She like Laura was fairly educated. A few months afterwards she went
|
|
back to her native town, and although she wrote to me, I never saw her
|
|
again, and had some idea that Lord A.... kept her, why I shall tell
|
|
further on. One reason of my being indifferent to her was that she never
|
|
properly washed herself. Her beautiful white flesh never seemed to need
|
|
it, but I did not like a woman who just smeared her face and neck, and
|
|
never below. I told her of it, and she was offended.
|
|
|
|
About three weeks after I first had Mabel, Fred and I went to shoot with
|
|
some friends at----shire; it was towards the end of November, all the
|
|
leaves were well off the trees.
|
|
|
|
As said I had female cousins by several aunts, two of them about
|
|
seventeen or eighteen years of age were at a finishing-school for young
|
|
ladies. It was a large old-fashioned house kept by three ladies of whom
|
|
one had been married a year, although then forty years old, to a curate
|
|
about sixty-five years old. The sisters unmarried were between fifty and
|
|
sixty years old, stern and stiff-rumped. Maris the married one, fat and
|
|
forty, with jet-black hair and merry hazel eyes, had been disappointed
|
|
in her youth, and when this clergyman, whom she had known all her life,
|
|
proposed, she accepted I suppose for companionship, and because it gave
|
|
her consideration in the neighbourhood.
|
|
|
|
The house was originally a very big old mansion, large enough for two
|
|
schools, and had been roughly divided by walls and partitions into two
|
|
houses. The smaller was inhabited by Maria and her husband, and the
|
|
kitchen-garden was attached to it. All access to the pleasure-grounds
|
|
of the other, or school-part of the house, was bricked up. In an
|
|
establishment for young ladies, all of a fuckable age, and none without
|
|
hair on their cunts, it would never have done to leave male access, not
|
|
even to a curate sixty-five years old. The gardeners were elderly men,
|
|
they came round by the house to go to the kitchen-garden, which supplied
|
|
both houses. Mrs. Maria used to go round to the school daily.
|
|
|
|
The air of the neighbourhood was fine, and although not professing to
|
|
lodge people, if any of the female relatives of the young ladies at
|
|
the school desired it, they could go and stop for a week or two at the
|
|
curate's, of course paying for so doing.
|
|
|
|
Fred and I had invitations to shooting not far off, just as my aunt went
|
|
to stay a week at Mrs. Maria's and to see her girl. Our friends could
|
|
accommodate Fred only, and sooner than be separated, and for other
|
|
reasons, we wrote to the old curate to know if he could receive us two
|
|
men,--and my aunt as well,--which he did. We took up our quarters there.
|
|
I had unpacked, and went into Fred's room. "Here is a jolly cupboard,"
|
|
said he opening the door of one big enough for four people to stand in.
|
|
"If a woman were sleeping here, she would always be thinking some one
|
|
was hidden in it; it's a jolly place for boxes and clothes." He was
|
|
hanging up something, when he stopped and listened. "Damned if there are
|
|
not women laughing," said he, "hish!" But he heard nothing more.
|
|
|
|
Two or three minutes afterwards he said, "Here Walter," and both
|
|
listening heard the voices of women, but very indistinctly. Fred lighted
|
|
a candle. Said he, "Here is an old door screwed up, it leads into a
|
|
room. What a lark to get it, open, or a hole through it; nothing I so
|
|
like as to hear what women say, when they think no one hears them."
|
|
|
|
I suggested it was unfair, it might be his sisters' room. "It don't
|
|
matter," said he, "it's all in the family." He went to dinner, and then
|
|
back to his room. He at once got to the closet, undid his gun-case, and
|
|
taking out the gun-screw, tried to loosen the screws of the door, but
|
|
could not. Off he went to the village, came back with a screwdriver,
|
|
and with some labor opened the door. Then we found ourselves in another
|
|
empty place nearly as big, and at the end of it rough boards nailed
|
|
across a frame horizontally, and as we supposed covered over on the
|
|
other side. It evidently had been a passage, and when they separated the
|
|
house, they had screwed up the door into the room of which we did not
|
|
yet know the use, leaving the door at the end next Fred's room as it
|
|
was, and had fixed up some woodwork across the end of the passage, thus
|
|
making the large closet at one end, and the empty space at the other. We
|
|
were dusty with our job.
|
|
|
|
After breakfast next day, aunt, Fred and I went round to see his sister
|
|
and cousin. We saw their bedrooms accompanied by them and aunt. We were
|
|
in fact shown over the house. Fred had previously looked well at the
|
|
outside, to see how the windows ran. "What is that room which is shut
|
|
off?" "Oh!" said his sister, "that is a bath-room; look, such a nice
|
|
one." We entered it; it was the room up to which the passage at the back
|
|
of the closet led. Fred winked at me, and when we got back he roared.
|
|
"Oh! lord, we shall see them naked,--the boards have twisted, there are
|
|
cracks next the bath-room,--we'll run a knife between one, and through
|
|
the canvas and paper; then we will see through,--oho! ho! we shall see
|
|
the girls bathing,--there are two or three damned fine girls."
|
|
|
|
Had it been servants, I should have been delighted at a peep; but to rip
|
|
a hole to spy on young ladies, and one of those his sister, revolted me.
|
|
"Damn it Fred, it's not the thing, one is your own sister." "Pough! you
|
|
have seen their cunts." (It was not the two I had seen.) "Ah! those
|
|
were children." "Well ------ and ------ are only larger, and have hair
|
|
on their cunts, and you need not look." "But if we are found out, we are
|
|
disgraced; if it were at an hotel or elsewhere, I would not mind."
|
|
"It won't be found out." "They will see the crack in the paper." "They
|
|
won't, they will think it split by the boards warping, if they do;
|
|
besides there are cracks and some shelves up, I know exactly the place."
|
|
|
|
Nothing stopped him, and after boring, prodding, and getting a chair to
|
|
stand on to find the right place, he at length made some cracks a few
|
|
inches long with a knife, and we saw day light through the bath, towels,
|
|
clothes-pegs, and a large cane settee or sofa. I would not look at
|
|
first, but so weak is man's nature concerning a woman, that at length I
|
|
did, and a thrill of pleasure shot through me as I thought of seeing the
|
|
naked girls, and strange enough I recollect a feeling of curiosity about
|
|
the figures my two cousin's would cut if they were naked. I thought of
|
|
the quims of his sisters some years before, and wondered what difference
|
|
between these and those.
|
|
|
|
Carefully locking the closet we went out. When we returned Fred peeped
|
|
at every opportunity, but saw nothing that day. The next morning Fred
|
|
awakened me. "Get up, they are going to bathe, a servant is filling
|
|
the baths." It was a cold dark morning. "I shan't." "Don't," and off
|
|
he went. In a minute or two however I was by his side. We saw two
|
|
young ladies enter, strip, and take their baths; the candle-light was
|
|
imperfect, but we saw them rub their bodies dry, and scrub the wet off
|
|
their cunts; we saw their hair above and below, and all their little
|
|
secrets. They were, we afterwards knew, sisters.
|
|
|
|
"I shall burst," said Fred, "how do you feel Walter?" I was maddened by
|
|
desire like him at the sight of the fresh, modest, naked girls cleaning
|
|
themselves so unsuspectingly; all this in whispers.
|
|
|
|
Another girl or two came in, they hurried through the operation as if
|
|
they did not like it. "Here is Carry," said Fred. I peeped and in came
|
|
my two cousins. "Lord what a lot of hair she has got on her cunt," said
|
|
my shameless cousin. "It's a damned ungentlemanly thing Fred." "Well
|
|
don't look then," said he. But I did,--I could not help it; my sense of
|
|
honor was strong, my lust stronger, and I saw both naked. "Holloa! here
|
|
is Mrs. Maria,"--it was. She stripped. A fine round, plump, middle-aged
|
|
woman with a mess of black hair between her thighs, that would have
|
|
sufficed to stuff a sofa-squab. Fred was smitten. "I'll be damned," said
|
|
he, "if I would not sooner have her than all the others." I could not
|
|
get his eyes away to let me have a full look, so much was he taken with
|
|
her. Indeed when she put one leg on the chair, and rubbed the towel well
|
|
round her cunt and arse, showing two big, well-set globes, and round
|
|
arms and thighs, the black hair in her arm-pits, the black hair below,
|
|
she looked in the feeble light not more than thirty years old, and as
|
|
fine an arm-full as a man could desire. "What a pity she has never been
|
|
fucked," said Fred, "I'll swear old ------ can't do it to her,--he can
|
|
only frig her."
|
|
|
|
Only four or five ladies took a morning bath; we saw the same on two or
|
|
three mornings. We were shooting all day. Fred then went to shoot with a
|
|
friend some miles off, I stopped with my aunt at the Rev.------'s house
|
|
till his return, and walked out with them. Fred went away on a Saturday
|
|
afternoon, I went to my bed-room, thought I would have a peep into the
|
|
next house, and went to Fred's room (he had left me the closet key), and
|
|
saw the bath-room quite bright with a large fire. I asked for a fire to
|
|
be lighted in Fred's room which was bigger than mine, observing that it
|
|
was so much better to write in than mine; then making a great display,
|
|
I sat down to write letters, locked the bed-room door, and stationed
|
|
myself at the crack in the closet.
|
|
|
|
Oh! what an evening! It soon became evident that the whole household
|
|
would wash that night. The young ladies came in mostly one at a time,
|
|
sometimes in pairs, the mistress came in from time to time. The ladies
|
|
came in, in loose gowns, a chemise and slippers, all but undressed.
|
|
Everything was quite decorous, the mistress mostly present. Each girl
|
|
would deposit her gown and chemise on a chair, turning her rump to the
|
|
other, and get into the bath. When they left it, they stepped out,
|
|
and came straight to the spot where I could best see them, their cunts
|
|
towards me, and began to dry themselves. Servants came in and emptied
|
|
the baths. Some used only a foot-bath. All was done so quietly and
|
|
demurely that I could scarcely hear a word they said; no girl was
|
|
supposed I think to see either the bum or belly of the other.
|
|
|
|
Once when the mistress left, a pair of girls were together, and threw
|
|
off reserve. One time they got into the bath together, and smacked each
|
|
other's bums. The younger girls had come in first in the evening, the
|
|
elder ones later. The mistress did not come in with the elder ones. This
|
|
pair talked about my cousin and me. They stood in front of the fire;
|
|
one tripped across the room, and bolted the door, then each one in
|
|
succession put a leg on the chair, and they looked at each other's
|
|
cunts. Able to bear it no longer, I frigged myself, and may as well say
|
|
at once that having begun so, I went on. From half-past eight till about
|
|
ten o'clock did bathing go on. I looking, and frigging myself as often
|
|
as my cock stood. I saw in succession nearly all the ladies, and four
|
|
female servants.
|
|
|
|
Most of the girls who took cold baths in the morning did not come in at
|
|
night, my cousins excepted. Every one had hair on her cunt. I knew and
|
|
recollected some for years afterwards, and when I saw them walking out,
|
|
or in the ground from our bed-room window, and when my cousins came in
|
|
to dine with us at the Reverend's house, bringing two of the other young
|
|
ladies with them; I recollected the look of their bums and bubbies, the
|
|
quantity and colour of the hair on their cunts as well as if it had been
|
|
my own prick. I could not converse, my eyes went from one to the other
|
|
of the girls as their charms rose up in my mind, my prick throbbing.
|
|
Aunt noticed my silence, and joking me asked if I was falling in love.
|
|
|
|
It was difficult to hear the conversation; what I did was for the most
|
|
part chaste, and about trifles, the only exception was the two girls who
|
|
looked at each other's quims, and stood near me, half facing the fire.
|
|
It ran something like this: "I wonder if men look at each other's
|
|
things." "I dare say they do." "Boys do, Miss Y.... said she saw two of
|
|
her brothers rubbing each other's things hard." "Law!" "Yes." "Is it not
|
|
funny that the man's things should be put right up ours?" "Lor yes."
|
|
"It seems nasty." "I wish you could ask ------ to let us see that book
|
|
again." "I have, and she has not got it now." "It was fun." "Yes,"--and
|
|
they both laughed. "Make haste, they will wonder why we are so long."
|
|
"Ring the bell." "Yes." "Open the bolt." "Hish! here is some one.".
|
|
|
|
The servants came in two by two, the mistress came in with the first
|
|
pair, and told them to put the fire out, When she had gone, "The old
|
|
skinflint," said one servant, and put coals on after saying 'yes' to her
|
|
mistress. To me it was always more exciting to see a woman in stockings
|
|
and boots, than quite naked. The young ladies had come in undressed from
|
|
their rooms; the servants came dressed, bringing candles with them. They
|
|
were full-grown women, I felt more pleasure in seeing them gradually
|
|
undress and uncover. One, a middle-aged woman, said aloud, "I shall only
|
|
wash my feet, it's so cold." She took water out of the big bath, put
|
|
it into a hip-bath, pulled off her shoes and stockings, tucked her
|
|
petticoats up to her thighs, and washed her feet by the fire. She was
|
|
a big-limbed woman, I could not see her cunt. I had seen a dozen that
|
|
night, yet because I could not see this one's cunt I seemed to long for
|
|
it. The other had stripped, and got into the bath, and I could see her
|
|
naked. She was ugly and middle-aged. I would sooner have fucked any
|
|
one of the young women than her, and yet I recollect feeling the most
|
|
furious baudiness about her, and frigged looking at her.
|
|
|
|
Then in came two strong-looking women, but much younger, "Stir the
|
|
fire,--don't make a noise, or there will be a row about coals," said
|
|
one. "They are all a bed," said the other. Both stripped to their
|
|
chemises, one went to the bath. "I shan't wash after cook," said she,
|
|
and she let off the water. "The water won't be warm, they have drawn off
|
|
so much." "Then I won't wash." she replied. Then one woman stood by the
|
|
fire with her back to it, and lifted up her chemise to warm her arse. I
|
|
saw it sideways as she stood, boots and stockings on.
|
|
|
|
The other came to the fire. "It will take five minutes to run clean
|
|
out," said she. Both drew chairs in front of the fire, sat down and
|
|
raised their chemises, one edged closer to the other, inclined her head
|
|
to the other's thighs, and kissed it, then looked, and placed her hand
|
|
on the cunt. I could not see the cunt, her back hid it, for she had
|
|
turned her back to me; then the other one's hand crossed and the two
|
|
women sat feeling each other. I don't think they said a word, if so I
|
|
could not hear it; their heads were from me. They sat for three or four
|
|
minutes, kissing and feeling each other.
|
|
|
|
"Is the door locked?" said one quite aloud, and getting up went to the
|
|
door, and tried it. Then one laid her clothes on the big settee, and
|
|
laid down on her back, the other threw up her chemise, kissed, and
|
|
perhaps licked her cunt. I only know her head covered the cunt, and then
|
|
she mounted her. I thought it must be fun, for although I had once
|
|
seen a woman on the top of another, and had heard of such things, I
|
|
was incredulous. Now I saw them together like man and woman, sometimes
|
|
between each other's thighs, sometimes with legs interlaced, and hands
|
|
grasping each other's buttocks, the thighs of one raised up round the
|
|
other's limbs, the mouths meeting, the backsides wriggling and twisting
|
|
without ceasing. If they laid so one minute, they remained in each
|
|
other's embraces nearly half-an-hour, sometimes quiet, then wriggling
|
|
again. I heard not a sound, don't recollect hearing kisses, or anything;
|
|
but it was difficult to hear, unless they talked loud.
|
|
|
|
The light went out, there was a glimmer from the hot fire. Said one
|
|
getting off, "Is there no other candle?" "No." "You must get down to the
|
|
kitchen for one, we can't go up without light." Off went one, slipping
|
|
her gown on first. The other gently stirred the fire, sat down, put her
|
|
hand on her cunt, and frigged it. I can't say if she had pleasure, but
|
|
her head fell back, and one side her face was then towards me. I saw it
|
|
all by the flame of the fire, which she had poked. The other came back
|
|
with two bits of candle, and they went away, having put on their gowns,
|
|
carrying their other clothes with them, neither having bathed. Then I
|
|
went off to my own bed-room, frigged out. The loudness with which the
|
|
servants talked, compared with the young ladies, was very noticeable,
|
|
though when on the top of each other on the settee at the end of the
|
|
room, I could not hear a word.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIII.
|
|
|
|
Fred on flat-fucking.--In town with Laura.--Back at the
|
|
school.--Pictures for young ladies.--Fred's ankle.--Mrs.
|
|
Maria's weakness.--To London alone.--Laura and Mabel.--Three
|
|
in a bed.--A risky poke.--Groping for the pot.--Nearly
|
|
caught.--Fred joins us.
|
|
|
|
When I awakened on Sunday, I thought I had been dreaming, the images
|
|
of a dozen and more modest naked women passed through my brain. I could
|
|
think of nothing else, waited at the gate to see the young ladies go off
|
|
to church, and followed at a distance, walking with Mrs. Maria. I tried
|
|
to guess from the backs of the ladies which was which, every now and
|
|
then looked at Mrs. Maria, thinking of the hirsute charms of her cunt
|
|
and arm-pits. At church in an old-fashioned square pew, I could see many
|
|
of the young ladies' faces, and looked at them during the whole service,
|
|
thought at times that I mistook one for the other;--but no, although
|
|
each had a bonnet on, and was in full dress, I recognized each face,
|
|
recollected, bum, bubby, and motte of each. My well-frigged cock stood
|
|
from Psalms to Sermon. I went to church in the afternoon, because a few
|
|
pious girls liked two services. My cousins, and two other young ladies
|
|
dined at the Reverend's, it always was an early dinner, to let him get
|
|
to church. In the evening I again went to church, because the servants
|
|
went; and sat close to the two women who had played at flat-fucking. The
|
|
astonishment of my aunt at my going to church three times was so great,
|
|
that although I told her I went because I did not know what to do with
|
|
myself, she wrote to my mother about it.
|
|
|
|
On Sunday night Fred returned. You may guess we saw on the Monday the
|
|
morning bathings. I told him all excepting that his sister had come to
|
|
bathe. "Did ------ and ------ come?" (naming her and cousin). "No." He
|
|
was satisfied. I told him about the two servants. Why I lied about my
|
|
cousins I cannot think, but was half ashamed of looking at all, and it
|
|
seemed more sinful to have seen my cousins than any one else.
|
|
|
|
Afterwards Fred told me that in India he kept three young girls all
|
|
together in a bungalow; had bought them from their parents as virgins at
|
|
about twenty shillings each. He was conversant with female life there,
|
|
and explained how the women satisfied their leches with each other in
|
|
harems, if they could not get men. His girls, he said, did it, and did
|
|
it before him. I was amazed and wondered, and half thought him lying.
|
|
All my knowledge of women extended to their relations with men, and
|
|
although I had seen twice women on the top of each other, and seen one
|
|
gamahuche another, I still regarded them as baudy tricks got up for my
|
|
amusement; and had never realized the idea of women having leches for
|
|
each other, as men have for frigging each other. The latter had indeed
|
|
passed away from my mind as a boyish habit, no desire to feel a prick
|
|
then entered my mind, I even disliked touching a man. So I heard what
|
|
Fred told me, but remained incredulous, and was approaching middle-age
|
|
before I realized the fact that frigging another fellows doodle was
|
|
agreeable, and that some women find similar pleasures with their own
|
|
sex. The flat-cocking of the two if they were at it, which I now don't
|
|
doubt, left no agreeable or voluptuous impression on me.
|
|
|
|
After breakfast having no shooting, Fred and I went to town to see our
|
|
women. Five minutes after our arrival, both were being fucked. We found
|
|
sitting with Mabel and Laura, the mistress of Lord A------, and will
|
|
call her Lady A.... After we had pumped our sperm out, we all went into
|
|
the sitting-room, Lady A.... was there still. Fred asked me what I had
|
|
been doing, I asked him the same, there was a general warm talk without
|
|
coarse language. Lady A.... told the girls they were lucky, for she had
|
|
not seen Lord A.... for a month, and had not had anything done to her
|
|
for that length of time.
|
|
|
|
Fred then went out, and returned in an hour. Taking me a side he showed
|
|
me baudy engravings, which he meant to throw into the garden of the
|
|
school, where the young ladies walked daily after breakfast if fine. I
|
|
objected that his sister and cousin might find them. He did not care.
|
|
"It will make them all so damned randy, that they won't know whether
|
|
their arses are at their backs or fronts." This was all through my
|
|
telling him what I had heard the two girls in the bathroom say to
|
|
each other; and he actually that night got over the wall, into the
|
|
pleasure-grounds, and laid the prints in a long building, half shed half
|
|
summer-house. From his bed-room window we could see over the wall which
|
|
separated the Reverend's garden from the school-garden. I suggested
|
|
sending them to a young lady by post. "No, she would keep them to
|
|
herself." I must mention that each lady had a separate bedroom; they
|
|
were not allowed to go to each other's bed-room, they met only at meals,
|
|
or in the class-room, or drawing-room, or when out of doors. No,--the
|
|
prints had better be seen by several, they would tell each other, and
|
|
thus all see them. The idea of the girls seeing baudy pictures tickled
|
|
us immensely. I had then wondered why the school-mistresses made it a
|
|
rule that no lady should go into another's bed-room, and once asked my
|
|
female cousin. She said she did not know.
|
|
|
|
Directly after breakfast we saw the ladies in the garden, pulled down
|
|
our blind, and peeped. "There is Carry," said Fred laughing as his
|
|
sister showed among them. We saw a group approach the spot, the next
|
|
instant all their heads were close together, looking at something.
|
|
Every now and then one would stealthily look up towards the house, then
|
|
another would, as if they feared being seen. On being joined by two or
|
|
three others, they all moved out of sight into the shed, and we saw no
|
|
more.
|
|
|
|
Fred was delighted, he did nothing but suggest how such and such a one
|
|
felt at that moment. "I dare say their cunts are as hot as fire, their
|
|
thighs squeeze, their arses wriggle as they walk; they will all frig
|
|
themselves to-night."
|
|
|
|
Fred soon afterwards said he must go to town by the next train. I would
|
|
go too. "I must go to so and so," said he, "so can't be with you much."
|
|
I resolved to stay. Going into the house I saw Mrs. Maria dressed, she
|
|
was going to town. "I will walk with you," said Fred, "to the station,
|
|
we shall go up together." Mrs. Maria went to London to make purchases,
|
|
and do all the business for the school. Neither came back till the
|
|
latest train; I was sitting smoking with the Reverend when his wife
|
|
returned, she looked worn out. Soon afterwards in came Fred, who looked
|
|
as if he had been out all night. Said he to Mrs. Maria in a surprised
|
|
manner, "Have you only just returned?" "Yes," said she in an innocent
|
|
way. "We have both come by the same train then without knowing it," he
|
|
replied.
|
|
|
|
I don't know what thoughts led to it, but the conviction came over me
|
|
that he had seen Maria's thighs closer than he did through the cracks in
|
|
the bath-room partition. I noticed his manner next morning, saw him look
|
|
at her, and she at him at breakfast, and said to myself, "He has fucked
|
|
her."
|
|
|
|
Next day we had shooting. At night Fred went to town. Next day Mrs.
|
|
Maria went, and came home late, Fred not returning till the following
|
|
morning. Mrs. Maria looked so tired that her husband noticed it. "She
|
|
has had her belly-full again," I said to myself. As she took her bath
|
|
next morning (Fred not with me), she rubbed herself dry, put on her
|
|
chemise, and felt her cunt; it was a prolonged feel. I told Fred of
|
|
that. His remarks were evidently intended to mislead me.
|
|
|
|
We wanted to see the Saturday night bathing, though my aunt wanted to
|
|
return home; but as we had shooting on Saturday, she consented to remain
|
|
over Sunday. My cousins again dined with us at the Reverend's, and two
|
|
of my cousins' special friends. What pleasure I had in looking at them,
|
|
knowing the looks of their backs and bellies as well as their faces,
|
|
wondering what they thought of the baudy pictures, at the way in which
|
|
women continue to look so modest, talk softly, look in a man's face, and
|
|
keep a demure demeanor, even if lust be stinging their cunts. It is the
|
|
training in hypocrisy, which is so large a part of female education.
|
|
|
|
On Friday Fred sprained his leg, on the Saturday it was too stiff to go
|
|
out shooting. I did, and returned to dinner. Mrs. Maria had attended to
|
|
him, her husband was at church nearly all Saturday, so perhaps she had
|
|
rubbed a little higher than his ankle. My aunt spent all the time she
|
|
could at the school, or walking out with her daughter and niece.
|
|
|
|
Fred's sprain was an excuse for going to his bedroom whither I
|
|
accompanied him. In the dusty closet Fred's lameness was better. In
|
|
came the young ladies, the younger ones first. It was a pretty sight, a
|
|
decently voluptuous one, to see the dainty white-fleshed creatures throw
|
|
off their dresses, and stand naked, one by one entering the bath, rub
|
|
their flesh dry, and their cunt-wigs free from moisture; to see one with
|
|
her bum towards you, rubbing her back vigorously with a towel pulled
|
|
straight with both hands, whilst her bum-cheeks, loins, and thighs
|
|
quivered with the motion and friction. Another put one leg on a
|
|
chair whilst she rubbed her quim dry. Then came the servants. Again I
|
|
recollect having my lust more stirred at seeing the fuller grown women
|
|
strip, and stand with boots and stockings on; than at seeing the virgin
|
|
ladies naked. I can't account for this at all. I write exactly what I
|
|
recollect.
|
|
|
|
When we saw Fred's sister, he whispered that all his family had a good
|
|
deal of hair on their privates. I saw his prick soon afterwards. He
|
|
spoke as if he were intimately acquainted with the cunts and pricks
|
|
of the whole family. The two young ladies who looked at each other's
|
|
privates did not do so again, the flat-fuckers took no pleasure in each
|
|
other's arms, they soaped each other's backs, and helped to dry each
|
|
other; both rubbed themselves in front of the fire,--a fine couple of
|
|
women. "I want to piddle so," said one just as she finished bathing.
|
|
"Piddle in the bath," said the other, "there is no one else going into
|
|
it." And she did so standing up, then jumped rapidly out, and they both
|
|
laughed.
|
|
|
|
I have seen before and since through key-holes and peep-holes women and
|
|
men wash, but it was with difficulty. Here all was fairly clear. The
|
|
crevice admitted enough sight, to distinguish form, face, feature, and
|
|
colour of hair and eyes. I thought of it for years, but never told a
|
|
man. Oftentimes when fucking, the bathing spectacle came into my mind,
|
|
and fetched my sperm out of me in a moment.
|
|
|
|
The next morning we jobbed a few more holes between other boards, so as
|
|
to make it look as if the shrinking of the wood had cracked the paper in
|
|
more than one place, carefully closed the door and dipped the heads of
|
|
the screws in vinegar to darken them. The whole looked rusty, and as we
|
|
hoped when we had done no one would ever guess the game we had been up
|
|
to. We swept up dust from the carpet, and pushed it under the bottom of
|
|
the door, and I think our prank never was known. The old house is pulled
|
|
down now.
|
|
|
|
I went to church again for the pleasure of staring at the ladies, it was
|
|
rapture to look at them, and think of their virgin cunts, think they
|
|
had seen the baudy prints. My cousin Fred had gone out somewhere, Mrs.
|
|
Maria, who usually went to church with her husband, was ill. In the
|
|
middle of the service a thought came into my head. Feeling sure that
|
|
Fred was after the middle-aged plump lady, I left the church, and went
|
|
back, knocked at the door twice before it was opened, and then by Mrs.
|
|
Maria. Said she, "I let both servants go out." She told me this without
|
|
my asking her anything, her hair seemed a little rough, her manner
|
|
excited. I sat down, told her I had felt faint, and had a cholic in
|
|
church, and so had come home. "Fred has been unwell too," said she.
|
|
"Indeed?--I thought he was out." "He returned, and has been in bed this
|
|
hour." "Oh!" said I. It was clear to me why her hair was rough. Fred was
|
|
abed, but awake. Had Mrs. Maria been fucked on that bed?
|
|
|
|
My aunt and I left the next day, and went to the Manor-House; Fred to my
|
|
astonishment could not get out of bed, so bad was his sprain; so we
|
|
left him there. At the Hall I got so lewd that I went up to London, and
|
|
rushed to Laura's lodgings the next night.
|
|
|
|
"Both abed sir," said the servant who let me in. Finding no one in
|
|
Mabel's room, I went down to the first floor. The women were in bed
|
|
together. Laura opened the door to me, and got into bed again in the
|
|
dark; for company sake they slept together when we men were both away,
|
|
she said.
|
|
|
|
Lewd with prolonged chastity, the two servants in the bath-room ran in
|
|
my mind as I sat chatting in the dark room. After having slipped my
|
|
hand under the clothing on to Mabel's cunt, "Have you been amusing each
|
|
other?--which was man, which woman?" were questions put and answered
|
|
with real or assumed ignorance, but with some giggling. Laura as I have
|
|
said never allowed a baudy word, so I ceased; and Laura I suppose savage
|
|
at Mabel having all the groping to herself, said, "You go first, and
|
|
warm the bed, and Mabel will come up to you." "No, you go and warm it
|
|
for me Mabel." "I won't." "Then I won't." Mabel seemed to me thick in
|
|
speech, muddled in manner, and half asleep.
|
|
|
|
I fetched my candle. The women looked so fresh and handsome. "I'll sleep
|
|
with you both," said I beginning to undress.
|
|
|
|
A slight altercation,--what would Fred say?--the servants think?--no she
|
|
would not permit it,--she knew the games we should be up to. Mabel
|
|
said, "No,--no, it wouldn't do." The more they said no, the quicker I
|
|
undressed, and with prick lifting up my shirt, forced myself into bed,
|
|
by the side of Mabel. Laura jumped out the other side, her white legs
|
|
showing half-way up her thighs as she did so.
|
|
|
|
She stood by the bed-side wrangling, and looking at me as randy as
|
|
possible, spite of herself. I should not stay,--she would not go to bed.
|
|
"Well my dear Laura, go up to our bed." "I shant." Tired of standing in
|
|
the cold she said, "Well will you promise to keep quiet?" "Perfectly."
|
|
"Come on," said Mabel, "Fred won't know." So putting out the light into
|
|
bed got Laura. Perhaps she thought she would like on the quiet to hear
|
|
the amatory talk of Mabel and myself,--hear if she could not see or feel
|
|
our tricks,--who knows?
|
|
|
|
"Turn your back to Mabel,--go to sleep Laura,--now you won't see or
|
|
hear." "You know your promise,--don't you let him Mabel." "How can I
|
|
help it?" said Mabel in a muddled manner. "You are a couple of dirty
|
|
beasts," said Laura turning her rump towards us. We heeded not, for we
|
|
were fucking. Laura spoke not another word, she lay as if asleep. Then
|
|
I fell fast asleep on the edge of the bed cuddling Mabel. It was close
|
|
packing.
|
|
|
|
I awakened cold on one side, hot on the other next Mabel, who lay
|
|
snoring profoundly. The regular breathing of Laura told me she was
|
|
asleep. My prick was stiff, and as I thought of the two women by the
|
|
side of me, it got ungovernable.
|
|
|
|
"How I should like a put into Laura," I thought, but had a high sense
|
|
of honor, and checked the desire. "What, Fred's woman?--for shame
|
|
Walter.--Well (reflecting) he took my two women in the country.--Yes,"
|
|
replied my conscience, "but nothing made them yours,--not completely at
|
|
least, one had had another man, but Laura is _his_ woman, his temporary
|
|
wife, he is fond of her, he keeps her." But my prick kept throbbing with
|
|
desire to be up her.
|
|
|
|
I thought of Fred's description of the thick hair on her cunt, of the
|
|
quickness with which she pissed, of all he had foolishly told me of her
|
|
perfections, until my brain whirled. "There can't be any harm in just
|
|
feeling her flesh,--no one will know." I could only guess where she
|
|
was in the darkness; but carefully stretching my hand over Mabel quite
|
|
slowly, it touched a bunch of night-gown, and then warm flesh. She
|
|
was lying on her back, Mabel had her rump towards her. I raised myself
|
|
gently up to feel further, touched the hips, the thighs, then the smooth
|
|
belly, further on, and my hand laid in the thick hair of her cunt.
|
|
|
|
Up to that time I had my reason, could reflect, pause, control myself;
|
|
the woman of any friend of mine was safe from attack from me, but I had
|
|
had a fancy that there had been once or twice in Laura's look and manner
|
|
towards me, a slight gleam of desire; yet the idea of having her never
|
|
had entered my head, I should have chased it instantly. But from the
|
|
moment my hand lighted on the crisp thicket, reason left me, voluptuous
|
|
desire overwhelmed me: I forgot Fred, almost forgot Mabel.
|
|
|
|
Slowly, inch by inch, I moved myself half up and my arm over Mabel as
|
|
she lay, fearing it would wake her, and slid my finger down between
|
|
Laura's cunt-lips, and gently frigged, listening to Mabel's snoring,
|
|
and Laura's breathing. At length I must have produced a voluptuous
|
|
sensation, she got restless, and opened her thighs, moved, clasped my
|
|
hand, and in a peevish sleepy tone said, "Don't Mabel,--what are you
|
|
doing?"
|
|
|
|
"It's I"; I whispered frigging on. "Oh!" said she pushing my hand away.
|
|
"Oh! if you wake Mabel." She kept repulsing my hand saying "don't," I
|
|
replacing it. My hand frigging her clitoris.
|
|
|
|
She turned her backside towards Mabel, I then fumbled between her
|
|
bum-cheeks; but she was too far off. Slowly I got out of bed, and
|
|
feeling my way round the foot in the dark, I got to Laura's side. She
|
|
heard me. I put my mouth to her ear, "Let me dear," and thrusting my
|
|
hand under the clothes felt her cunt from motte to bum-hole. "Oh! no, if
|
|
Mabel--" Mabel's snoring reassured me. Little by little I uncovered
|
|
her, lifting off the clothes, got on to her, up her, and without a
|
|
word, without a whisper, without resistance or denial we fucked gently,
|
|
pausing at intervals to listen, hiding our emotions and pleasures as we
|
|
spent, Laura's flanks and my hand close to Mabel's rump, my leg almost
|
|
touching Mabel's leg, she still snoring like a pig.
|
|
|
|
"Go," said Laura, her mouth to my ear, and un-cunting me. Quietly,
|
|
without reply, I got off, and back again crept stealthily to Mabel's
|
|
side, and at the very moment that I was lifting the bed-clothes Mabel
|
|
awoke, and said directly, "what are you getting up for?--where are you
|
|
going?"
|
|
|
|
I was for a moment at my wits' end. "Where is the pot?" said I. "Under
|
|
the bed," said Mabel. "Laura!" Laura did not answer, and breathed
|
|
heavily. I pissed, and got into bed. It was a close fit. Mabel took hold
|
|
of my prick. "It's wet," said she drowsily. Down went my hand, the hairs
|
|
were wet and sticky. Mabel was too sleepy to notice what the wet was,
|
|
yet I feared. "Turn on your back dear," said I. She did. I got on her,
|
|
and put my prick in though not stiff. "Don't,--I'm tired,--wait till
|
|
morning,--get off, Laura will hear." "Here is a lark," thought I, and
|
|
got off her, turning my bum towards Mabel's belly, as the best way to
|
|
economize room, and I was soon asleep again. She snored off instantly.
|
|
|
|
Excitement wakened me early. The house was quiet, it was quite dark, we
|
|
all three talked. Laura laid sulking, I reminded her of Fred's remark
|
|
at Vauxhall about her pissing quickly; that only made her sulkier.
|
|
At length upstairs I went with Mabel to our bed-room, to prevent the
|
|
servants knowing anything. When we came down to breakfast, Laura and
|
|
I looked at each other hard. When I got a chance of speaking to her
|
|
privately, she would not hear the deed alluded to; reminded me that Fred
|
|
was my cousin, and a good fellow. After that I never spoke to her on the
|
|
subject for weeks, I felt ashamed of myself; but for all that my cock
|
|
would often tingle, and raise its head when I looked at her. One day
|
|
there she being alone, we fell talking about that night. I had never
|
|
known her so warm; we wondered Mabel had not heard. "And the hair of my
|
|
prick was wet with our spending Laura." "No it was yours." "No yours."
|
|
"Let's try again." She rushed out of the room.
|
|
|
|
The night after poking Laura I took them to the play, at supper Mabel
|
|
drinking rather freely, Laura said that she had better not take as much
|
|
as she had the last night. Then I found she had lushed rather freely,
|
|
which accounted for her sleeping so soundly. She had a strong liking for
|
|
liquors of all sorts.
|
|
|
|
A day or two afterwards Fred arrived, looking as if his prick had never
|
|
left a cunt for a month. I asked him how Mrs. Maria was, he laughed,
|
|
and repeated that he should not mind having her; but said no more. Soon
|
|
after we went back to the country, to spend Christmas at my aunt's. My
|
|
mother, Tom, and one of my sisters also came. They were much in my way.
|
|
|
|
For brevity I compress the events of the next few months; it is a pity,
|
|
but it would print to three the length otherwise. Briefly I was obliged
|
|
to get back once or twice to my aunt's to see Pender privately, though
|
|
I did not want to have her. I was mostly in London. One or two funny
|
|
whoring incidents I must leave out altogether, and for the same reason:
|
|
brevity.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIV.
|
|
|
|
My cousin at home.--Pender's belly.--A lawyer's letter.--Action
|
|
for crim-con threatened.--Suspicions.--A compensation.--The Penders
|
|
leave.--Wholesale whorings.--A frolic at Lord A...'s.--After
|
|
dinner.--Newspaper readings.--A strange rape.--Bets on pricks.--Pricks
|
|
felt.--Fred on his head.--Beds on the floor.--Free fucking.--End of the
|
|
orgie.
|
|
|
|
My cousin came home from school, and when dancing or talking with her,
|
|
I used to think of the look of her bum. One young lady from the school
|
|
whose posteriors I also knew came to stay. Fred and I used to laugh
|
|
about the adventure, and about his sister and cousin as much as about
|
|
the others.
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Pender's belly was like a mountain, her husband I fancied scowled
|
|
at me. Mrs. P. looked scared, and whisking past me in the farm-yard one
|
|
day with a milk-pail, said in a low voice as she passed, "For God's sake
|
|
keep away," and I did, feeling uneasy, In cold weather my aunt ceased to
|
|
go to the farm-yard, our own shooting was over, and I had no reason for
|
|
crossing the farm-yard; but at the end of a week my cock was so much in
|
|
want of amusement, that I made up my mind to have a poke up Pender if
|
|
I could, and way-laid her in the shrubbery-walk. She told me that on
|
|
a particular day her man would go some distance to buy cattle, and she
|
|
would try to meet me in the barn. Chance favored us, we fucked, and
|
|
talked at intervals for two or three hours, she having a poke, then
|
|
going out for a time, coming back again, and so on.
|
|
|
|
I heard that her husband suspected her and me, he was sure it was not
|
|
his child. Some one had seen me and her together in the lane, he would
|
|
not say who. Said Mrs. P., "I don't know what, but I am sure he is up to
|
|
something bad to you or me, and I live in a fright; I can scarcely eat,
|
|
drink, or sleep for thinking about what's to happen."
|
|
|
|
About a month after this, I received a letter from a lawyer in London
|
|
saying he wished to see me. I went, and found that he was instructed to
|
|
bring an action against me for seducing Mrs. Pender. I denied all,
|
|
but it was of no use. I at once went to my solicitor, who after a time
|
|
feared the case could be proved against me. The action would be brought
|
|
for damages (there was no divorce possible then), and there would be the
|
|
scandal, the annoyance to my aunt, and the horror of my mother. The
|
|
only chance of getting a word with Mrs. P. was way-laying her in the
|
|
laurel-walk. When I saw her she looked the picture of misery, her
|
|
husband had refused to sleep in the same bed with her. At about five
|
|
o'clock one evening, it being quite dark, she had given me a signal
|
|
during the day, I went to the privy. There I fucked her, she said how
|
|
utterly miserable she was, and asked me to take her away. Uprighters
|
|
were never to my taste, and now her big belly made it far from
|
|
pleasurable. I got worried, and at length after much legal annoyance,
|
|
agreed to give five hundred pounds, on condition that I had a letter
|
|
from Pender saying that he was very sorry for what he had done, that
|
|
he was convinced he had made a mistake, and was then sure of his wife's
|
|
fidelity, or something to that effect.
|
|
|
|
Before this was quite settled, Mr. Pender got leave of absence, and
|
|
went away somewhere. My solicitor asked me whether I had any reason to
|
|
suspect that Mrs. P. had told her husband. Immediately I became savagely
|
|
suspicious, went to the cottage under pretense of asking for Pender
|
|
himself, although I knew he was away, and insisted she should meet me at
|
|
the town. I thought of nothing until we met, but how I should entrap her
|
|
into a confession, and worked myself up into a belief that the couple
|
|
were making a market of me.
|
|
|
|
She undressed, I caressed her, with hand on her cunt, looked at her and
|
|
said, "Your husband means to make a fortune out of me." "What he,--ho,
|
|
ho, ho," she cried, "the wretch,--oh! I shall be exposed,--ho, ho," and
|
|
was as white as a sheet. When she got better, I told her all, she
|
|
knew nothing about what her husband had done, and begged I would pay
|
|
nothing,--she would drown herself.--and I left, convinced that the poor
|
|
woman was true to me.
|
|
|
|
Pender gave notice to leave, and forfeiting wages left his place, and
|
|
went to the North of England. Months afterwards I received a scrawl
|
|
saying that the child was exactly like me, that P. was not unkind, but
|
|
she was unhappy, would like to see me; and if I wished it she would run
|
|
away, and be as good as a wife to me. There was no name or address to
|
|
it, and I never heard of her afterwards.
|
|
|
|
I thought all settled, and that no one would know about it; but for all
|
|
that it leaked out. Months afterwards being at my aunts, I got into
|
|
one of her servants, and after giving her a good fucking one night, and
|
|
telling her after a fuck not to wash, she said, "I don't want you to
|
|
get me in the family way like Mrs. Pender." She had heard that. How the
|
|
devil did it leak out?
|
|
|
|
After Christmas Fred and I went to see our women, he wanted more than
|
|
I did. I had some harlotting; not being at all faithful to Mabel, I had
|
|
fits of great incontinence, and as many as three different women on the
|
|
same day, at times.
|
|
|
|
Exceedingly nice women were then to be met in the Quadrant from eleven
|
|
to one in the morning, and three till five in the afternoon. I would
|
|
have one before luncheon, get another after luncheon, dine, and have a
|
|
third women. I would at other times go under the Opera colonade, where
|
|
they used to assemble in the summer evenings with low dresses showing
|
|
shoulders and breasts; to see them, even if I did not want a fuck. I
|
|
had an insatiable desire to look at their nudity, would strip them,
|
|
make them piss, feel them all over, leave, and in an hour perhaps have
|
|
another. I had no leches for fancy postures. To see their thighs and
|
|
cunts in free but graceful attitudes was sufficient pleasure. During
|
|
this time the following occurred.
|
|
|
|
An intimate friend of Fred's was Lord A-----he lived with a lady who was
|
|
called Lady A.... I don't think she had been gay, and in that respect
|
|
resembled Laura and Mabel. The three women were much together. We often
|
|
saw Lord A...., and all became friends. Lord A.... was not very true to
|
|
his lady. He lived in B.t.n street, where he had at that time the whole
|
|
of a handsomely furnished house, but only could half occupy it. His
|
|
indoor servants were a middle-aged woman who cooked, a maid who was her
|
|
niece, and his valet, who waited at table as well. A woman who did not
|
|
sleep in the house came daily. He had grooms and a coachman, but not in
|
|
the house. Lord A.... had quarrelled with his father. He had been in the
|
|
Guards, and drank very freely.
|
|
|
|
He invited us one night to dinner, and gave a splendid one. By the time
|
|
we had finished, we were all noisy. It was never our custom to use baudy
|
|
language when in each other's company. Laura had a great aversion to it.
|
|
Mabel liked me to talk baudy to her, but did not talk it herself. Fred
|
|
always after dinner would let out a warm word or so, and was at once
|
|
snubbed by Laura. For all that our conversation after dinner was
|
|
generally warm with _double entente_.
|
|
|
|
On the night in question our conversation got to open voluptuousness.
|
|
Fred and Lord A.... went in for it, Mabel laughed, Laura hished and
|
|
hished, said she would leave, but at last gave way, as did Lady A....;
|
|
then we men got to lewdness. Whenever any sensuous allusion was made,
|
|
my eyes sought Laura's, hers seeking mine; we were both thinking of the
|
|
quiet and quick fuck we had, with Mabel snoring by our side. We compared
|
|
our thoughts on that night, but at a future day.
|
|
|
|
Just at that time a case filled the public journals. It was a charge of
|
|
rape on a married woman, against a man lodging in the same house. She
|
|
was the wife of a printer on the staff of a daily paper, who came home
|
|
extremely late; she always went to be leaving her door unlocked, so that
|
|
her husband might get in directly he came home. The lodger was a friend
|
|
of her husband's, and knew the custom of leaving the door unlocked,--in
|
|
fact he was a fellow-printer.
|
|
|
|
She awakened in the night with the man between her thighs, had opened
|
|
them readily, thinking it was her husband. It appears to have been her
|
|
habit, and such her husband's custom on returning home, or so she said.
|
|
The lodger had actually all but finished his fuck, before she awakened
|
|
sufficiently to find out that it was not the legitimate prick which was
|
|
probing her. Then she alarmed the house, and gave the man in charge for
|
|
committing a rape. The papers delicately hinted that the operation was
|
|
complete before the woman discovered the mistake,--but of course it left
|
|
much to the reader's imagination.
|
|
|
|
Fred read this aloud. I knew more, for the counsel of the prisoner was
|
|
my intimate friend. He had told me that the prisoner had had her twice,
|
|
that she had spent with him; that he had often said he meant to go in,
|
|
and have her, that she had dared him to do it, and that she only made a
|
|
row when she thought she heard her husband at the door on the landing,
|
|
although it was two hours before his usual time of return. His prick was
|
|
in her when she began her outcry.
|
|
|
|
With laughter and smutty allusions we discussed the case. "Absurd,"
|
|
said Laura, "she must have known it was not her husband." "Why?" "Why
|
|
because--," and Laura stopped. "If you were asleep, and suddenly felt a
|
|
man on you of about my size, and his prick up you, very likely you would
|
|
not tell if it were mine or not," said Fred. Laura threw an apple at his
|
|
head. Decency was banished from that moment, a spade was called a spade,
|
|
and unveiled baudiness reigned.
|
|
|
|
"I should know if it were not you," said Lady A... looking at Lord A...
|
|
"How?" "Ah! I should,--should you not know another woman from Laura, if
|
|
you got into bed with two women in the dark?" said she to Fred. "I am
|
|
not sure for the moment if with a woman just her size, and as much hair
|
|
on her cunt," said he. "I tell you what Fred, I won't have it," said
|
|
Laura ill-tempered, "talk about some one else, I won't have beastly
|
|
talk about me." "I'll bet," said I, "that if the ladies were to feel our
|
|
pricks in the dark, they would not tell whose they each had hold of."
|
|
Roars of laughter followed. "I should like to try," said Mabel. "So
|
|
would I," said another. "Would you know, if you felt us?" said one
|
|
women. "If I felt all your cunts in the dark, I'll bet I should know
|
|
Marie's," said Lord A.... "That is if you felt all round and about,"
|
|
said Fred, "but not if she opened her legs, and you only felt the
|
|
notch." "I think I should."
|
|
|
|
"Why?--is she different from others?" Lord A----
|
|
|
|
was going to say something, when Marie told him to shut up.
|
|
|
|
So we went on, the men in lascivious language, the women in more
|
|
disguised terms, discussing the probabilities of distinguishing cunts
|
|
or pricks by a simple feel in the dark. Each remark caused roars of
|
|
laughter, the women whispered to each other, and laughed at their own
|
|
sayings. Lewdness had seized us all, the women's eyes were brilliant
|
|
with voluptuous desire. More wine was drunk, "Call it by its proper
|
|
name," said Lord A.... when Marie remarked that a woman must know her
|
|
own man's thing. "Prick then." "I will bet five pounds that Mabel would
|
|
not guess my prick in the dark, if she felt all of us," said I. "And
|
|
I'll bet," said another. "Shall we try?" said Fred. "Yes," said Mabel
|
|
more fuddled than the rest. Baudier and baudier, we talked, laughed, and
|
|
drank, and at length set to work to make rules for trying, all talking
|
|
at once.
|
|
|
|
One proposed one way, one another. "I can't tell unless I feel balls as
|
|
well," said a woman. "Will they be stiff when we feel?" said another.
|
|
"Mine will," said Fred, "it's stiff already." "So is mine," added I.
|
|
|
|
"How shall we know where to put our hands, if we are in the dark?" said
|
|
Lady A.... "If a man is in front of you, you will find it fast enough,"
|
|
answered some one. Laura had now yielded to the baudy contagion, and
|
|
made no objection, though Mabel and Lady A.... were the most forward.
|
|
Then Lord A... rang the bell, and told his valet he might go out for the
|
|
night, and his house-keeper and maid they might go to bed, which they
|
|
did at the top of the house, as we supposed. The sequel proved that to
|
|
be doubtful, and that they must have had a most edifying night.
|
|
|
|
After lewd squabbles, we arranged that each man was to give the woman if
|
|
she guessed the prick right, ten pounds; the men were to be naked, the
|
|
women to feel all the men's cocks, and give a card to him whose prick
|
|
she thought she knew. The room was to be dark. No man was to speak,
|
|
or give any indication by laughing, coughing, or any other way, under
|
|
penalty of paying all the bets. The women were to lose if they spoke,
|
|
or gave indications of who they were.
|
|
|
|
I took three cards, and wrote the name of a lady on each of them.
|
|
Then each lady took her card, and they went upstairs to the bed-room
|
|
pell-mell and laughing. The women were to stand of a row in a certain
|
|
order against a side of the room, we to follow in an order they did not
|
|
know. They were to feel all pricks twice, each giving her card to the
|
|
man at the second feel, if she knew the prick. We undressed to our
|
|
shirts, took off our rings, so as to leave no indications, and in that
|
|
condition entered the room. The dining-room door we closed, there was no
|
|
light on the first-floor lobby, nor in the bed-room, for we had put
|
|
out the fire there. So holding each other by the shoulder, we entered,
|
|
closed the door, and we were all in the room together in the dark.
|
|
|
|
We lifted our shirts, and closed on the women, each of whom in her turn
|
|
felt our pricks. One felt mine as if she meant to pull it off. On the
|
|
second feeling, we got somehow mixed, a slight tittering of women began,
|
|
some one hished, and the tittering ceased. Two hands touched me at the
|
|
same time, but one withdrew directly she touched the other's hand. A
|
|
card was put into my hand, afterwards another card touched me, and was
|
|
withdrawn. After waiting a minute I nudged the man next me. "Have you
|
|
all given cards?" shouted out the man. "Yes," shouted the three women
|
|
at once. Then we all burst out laughing, and the men went downstairs,
|
|
leaving the women all talking at once like Bedlam broke loose.
|
|
|
|
Looking at our cards, we found that each women had guessed rightly her
|
|
man's prick; but we changed our cards, and called out to the women who
|
|
came rushing down like mad. "Not one of you has guessed right," said I,
|
|
"you have all lost your bets." "I'll swear I'm right," said Lady A...,
|
|
"it's Adolphus that I gave my card to." This set us all questioning at
|
|
once. "What makes you so sure?" "She says it's very long and thin," said
|
|
Mabel, "and so it is." "Hold your tongue," said Marie. "I felt it," said
|
|
Mabel. "They all seemed the same to me," said Laura, "and one of you
|
|
pushed my hand away." "It was I," said Fred, "you wanted to feel too
|
|
much, you nearly frigged me," "Oh! what a lie." Then we told the truth,
|
|
and that each women had won, which caused much noisy satisfaction, then
|
|
we had more wine, we men still with naked legs.
|
|
|
|
I have told all I can recollect with exactitude, but there was lots more
|
|
said and done. Fred pulled up Lord A...'s shirt, his cock was not stiff.
|
|
"That's not as it was when I felt it," said Mabel. "You've guessed
|
|
pricks, but for all that you would not know who fucked you in the dark."
|
|
"We should," cried out all the women. "Let's try," said Lord A... "All
|
|
right," said Mabel. "We are not prostitutes," said Laura. "A little free
|
|
fucking will be jolly, let's take turns about all round," said Fred.
|
|
Then the room resounded with our laughter, all spoke baudily at once,
|
|
every second, "prick," "cunt," "fuck," was heard from both men and
|
|
women,--it was a perfect Babel of lasciviousness.
|
|
|
|
"I'll bet ten pounds a women doesn't guess who fucks her," said Lord
|
|
A... We echoed him. The women laughed, but led by Laura refused, and
|
|
squabbled. All wanted the bet to come off, but did not like to admit
|
|
it. We had more champagne, the men put on their trowsers, we kissed all
|
|
round, and talked over the way of deciding such a bet, the women got
|
|
randier, one showed her leg to another, and at length all the women
|
|
agreed to take part in the orgie.
|
|
|
|
The rest I shall tell as truthfully as I can. The drink and excitement
|
|
I was under makes it difficult; but I will tell nothing I am not quite
|
|
sure of. We arranged a plan with such noise and talking, that God knows
|
|
how it was arranged at all. Where were we to poke?--in the bed-room?
|
|
Impossible, there was but one large bed in Lady A... 's room, and one in
|
|
the back-room.
|
|
|
|
How were we to fuck all together? We all rushed upstairs, took all the
|
|
beds and pillows from both rooms, and from the upper rooms, and put them
|
|
on the floor in the large room, making one long bed, after moving aside
|
|
the furniture. The fire had been put out. All this was done with shouts
|
|
and yells, a fearful lascivious riot.
|
|
|
|
The women were to lie down in an order known to us, Lady A... nearest
|
|
to the door, and so on. There was to be absolute silence. Each man as
|
|
he knelt between the woman's legs was to put a card with a number on it
|
|
under her pillow. We men knew which number each had, the women were not
|
|
to know which man was to have her, directly we had fucked we were to
|
|
return, each woman was to produce her card, and guess who had been up
|
|
her, they were to be in their chemises, we in our shirts. I never
|
|
shall forget the looks of the women as they went upstairs to arrange
|
|
themselves for the fucking, but think that they scarcely knew the rules
|
|
of what they were to do.
|
|
|
|
The women undressed quickly enough, for we had scarcely had time to
|
|
tie up our faces in napkins to prevent our whiskers being noticed (Lord
|
|
A.... had none), before a voice shouted out, "We are ready." Then with
|
|
shirts on only, up we men went. I only recollect kneeling down between
|
|
Lady A... 's legs (we had agreed among ourselves how to change our
|
|
women), giving a card, feeling a cunt, and putting my prick into it,
|
|
then hearing the rustling of limbs, hard breathing, sighing, and moans
|
|
of pleasure of the couples fucking fast and furiously; of my brain
|
|
whirling, of a maddening sensuality delighting me as I clasped the
|
|
buttocks of Lady A..., and fucked her.
|
|
|
|
We must have spent nearly all together, none when we compared after,
|
|
recollected more than his own performance. All were quiet. I was feeling
|
|
round my prick which was still in Lady A... 's cunt, when a light
|
|
flashed powerfully through the room. That devil Fred had risen, and
|
|
lighted several lucifers, which then was done by dipping them in a
|
|
bottle,--they were expensive. What a sight was disclosed at a glance!
|
|
|
|
All three women lay with chemises up to their navels, Lady A... on her
|
|
back, I on the top of her (rising rapidly at the light). Next to her
|
|
Mabel seemingly asleep with thighs wide open. Fred kneeling between
|
|
them, holding the lighted matches, Laura on her back with open thighs,
|
|
eyes closed, Lord A... cuddling, but nearly off of her by her side, and
|
|
his prick laying on her thigh. The women shrieked, and began pulling
|
|
down their chemises. I swore at Fred, the women joined chorus. "Most
|
|
ungentlemanly," said Laura getting up. That got up Lord A... Mabel lay
|
|
still on her back as if ready to be stroked again. But all was said. In
|
|
a minute the lucifers burnt out, and it was dark again. Scuffling up we
|
|
men went downstairs, leaving the women chattering. Soon after down they
|
|
came, looking screwed, lewd, and annoyed that the bets were off, and all
|
|
chattering at once.
|
|
|
|
Mabel was quarrelsome. "You," said she turning to Lady A..., "said that
|
|
your husband's thing was long and thin, you tried to mislead me in the
|
|
bet, you wanted to make me lose." They had evidently been discussing
|
|
their men's pricks.
|
|
|
|
"So you have been telling how each of us fucks," said Fred. Laura denied
|
|
it. "We did," said Mabel. "It's a lie Mabel, if you say it again, I'll
|
|
tell something more than you will like to hear about yourself." Mabel
|
|
retorted, Lady A... chimed in. It was a Babel of quarrelsome lewd women,
|
|
with their cunts full.
|
|
|
|
I feared a row, and that Mabel might after all know more about my having
|
|
had Laura, the night we all three slept in the same bed, than I cared
|
|
for; so I pacified them. Fred said we had better try again, Laura
|
|
objected. "Oh! yes Mrs. Modest," said Mabel, "when you found it was not
|
|
Fred, why didn't you cry out?" "I didn't know," said Laura. "Ah! ah! the
|
|
printer's wife," we shouted, then more baudy talk, recriminations, and
|
|
squabbling. Laura said she should go home, Fred said she might go by
|
|
herself. Lord A... who had half fallen asleep, said it was too late,
|
|
and we had better stop. Some one said we could soon again make the beds
|
|
comfortable in the upper rooms. "That be damned," said Fred, "we will
|
|
all sleep on the floor as they are now." "Free fucking for ever," said
|
|
I. Laura said I was a blackguard, Mabel said she should like it, Lady
|
|
A... said she didn't care, if Adolphus didn't, Adolphus said any cunt
|
|
would suit him. He was reeling drunk as he spoke.
|
|
|
|
All this time we were in shirts and chemises. One woman had thrown a
|
|
shawl over her, one a petticoat, but their breasts flashed out, their
|
|
arms were naked, their legs showing to their knees, the men were naked
|
|
to their knees in their shirts. The scene was exciting, the women hadn't
|
|
washed their cunts, Fred said so. Mabel asked him if he was sure of it.
|
|
No, he would feel. Laura told him he must be drunk, and was a beast.
|
|
"Drunk?" said he, "look here." He turned a sommersault, and stood on his
|
|
hands and head, his heels against the wall, his backside in the air,
|
|
his prick and cods falling downwards over his belly, his shirt over
|
|
his head. Lady A... took up a bunch of grapes, and dashed it on his
|
|
ballocks. Then we chased the women round the room, tried to feel them,
|
|
and they us. It was like hell broke loose, till we agreed to sleep on
|
|
the floor together, any how.
|
|
|
|
No lights; lights and piss-pots were put in the back bed-room,--a woman
|
|
suggested that. "You're frightened of farting," said some one. The women
|
|
went up to make the beds more comfortable, whilst we men fetched candles
|
|
from the kitchen, the others being well nigh burned out. The women had
|
|
washed their cunts, we had more wine, and then we all were pretty well
|
|
screwed, and Lord A... pretty drunk when we went up to them.
|
|
|
|
Up to that time I was sufficiently sober to know all I have written, and
|
|
plenty more. Surely I could tell a lot more of our conversation, but it
|
|
would prolong the tale too much. After the last bottle of champagne
|
|
I was groggy, recollect less clearly, was in a half-sleepy, feverish,
|
|
excited, and baudy state, my sleep was broken by others, but when awake
|
|
my prick stood immediately, and I moved all night from one woman to
|
|
another, fucking, and then dozing.
|
|
|
|
To satisfy Laura, and keep up a sort of appearance, we had said we
|
|
would only have our own women, who were again to lay in a certain order.
|
|
Directly they had left the room, we agreed to change. A... doggedly
|
|
insisted in having Mabel, so I was to take Laura, and Fred Lady A... It
|
|
was such a lark. My prick was up Laura, when she cried, "It's not you
|
|
Fred." Then were simultaneous exclamations, "I'm not Mabel,"--"What a
|
|
lovely cunt!"--"Leave me alone,"--"Feel my big prick," "Damn, a cunt's
|
|
a cunt," hiccupped Lord A... "Oh!--ah!"--"Ha! my love fuck,--my
|
|
darling, oh!"--kiss, kiss,--spending,--"Aha!"--sighs of delight,
|
|
"cunt,"--"fuck,"--"oh!"--"ah! ah!" And I fell asleep on Laura amidst
|
|
this.
|
|
|
|
Awake again. By my side a wet cunt, a heavy sleeper. Turning round, my
|
|
legs met naked legs. I stretched out my hand, and felt a prick, perhaps
|
|
Fred's, I don't know. Getting up I felt my way stumbling over legs to
|
|
the wall to the furthest woman, and laid myself on her. "Don't Adolphus,
|
|
I'm so sleepy," said she. The next instant we were fucking. Others
|
|
awakened. "Where are you?" said some one. Then all moved, one man swore,
|
|
a hand felt my balls from behind. I was spending, and rolled off the
|
|
lady; turning my bum to her. Then I touched Mabel, and put my hand on
|
|
her cunt. A man dropped on her, and touched my hand with his prick.
|
|
Ejaculations burst out on all sides, the couples were meeting again,
|
|
then all was quiet, and the fucking done. Then all talked. All modesty
|
|
was gone, both men and women told their sensations and wants, "You fuck
|
|
me,--Feel me.--No, I want so and so," Laura as lewd as the rest.
|
|
|
|
Again awaking. A hand was feeling my prick. "Is it you Laura?" "Yes." I
|
|
felt her cunt. "Oh! let me go and piddle." But I turned on to her, and
|
|
we fucked. "How wet your cunt is." "No wonder."
|
|
|
|
Again I awakened, some one got up, and fell down. "Hulloa! who is that?"
|
|
"I want to piss, and can't get up," said Lord A... in a drunken voice.
|
|
Some one opened the door, a feeble light came across from the back room,
|
|
we helped him up and he stumbled along with us men to piss. Then he
|
|
insisted on going downstairs. He could scarcely stand, so we helped
|
|
him to the dining-room, we lighted more candles, he swilled more wine,
|
|
tumbled on to the sofa, where we left him drunk and snoring, and found
|
|
him snoring the next morning with the heath-rug over him. We two went
|
|
back to the women. "I've fucked all three," said Fred. "So have I."
|
|
"Laura's a damned fine fuck, ain't she?" Some one shut the room-door
|
|
opposite, as we reached the landing. We pushed it open. Two ladies were
|
|
pissing: Marie and Laura. "Where is Mabel?" "Drunk," replied one. The
|
|
two were past caring for anything, pissed and went back with us to the
|
|
bed-room. I took a light there. Mabel was on her back nearly naked, we
|
|
covered her up, for it was cold. Then I fucked Laura, and Fred Lady A...
|
|
The light we left now on the wash-hand stand, as we looked at each
|
|
other fucking and enjoyed it, and then we changed women. There was no
|
|
cunt-washing, we fucked in each other's sperm, no one cared, all liked
|
|
it, all were screwed, baudy, reckless, Mabel snoring.
|
|
|
|
I awakened after a heavy sleep, chilly, feverish, headaching, and
|
|
thirsty. I drew aside the curtains; it was late, light, but foggy; a
|
|
nasty winter's morning. Fred and the three ladies lay snoring, some
|
|
covered, others partially so, the floor looking as if every article of
|
|
bed-furniture had been thrown down with a pitchfork. I drank water, and
|
|
fucked out as I was, my lubricity was unsatiated. I could not resist
|
|
gratifying it.
|
|
|
|
Moving stealthily I uncovered the sleepers one by one. It was easy
|
|
enough, as the clothes lay loose and in shapeless heaps. I saw Fred's
|
|
prick touching Mabel's haunch, contemplated Laura's thick-haired quim,
|
|
saw spunk on her chemise. She looked lovely. Lady A... on her back,
|
|
her hand over her cunt, red stains about her, and on the sheet which I
|
|
pulled off of her,--her poorliness had come on. Mabel on her back looked
|
|
ready for a man. My cock stiffened, I laid myself on Laura, and awakened
|
|
her. That awakened Fred who mounted Mabel. Both couples took to
|
|
the exercise in the foggy day-light, and a long time we were in
|
|
consummating. "Oh! do leave off," said Laura, "I'm so sore." My prick
|
|
was excoriated, it had not been so for many a day.
|
|
|
|
Never have I been in such an orgie before, never since, and perhaps
|
|
never shall be; but it was one of the most delicious nights I ever
|
|
spent. So said Fred, so said Mabel; and Laura admitted to me at a future
|
|
day that she thought the same, and that since, when she frigged herself,
|
|
she always thought of it, and nothing else.
|
|
|
|
I thought of nothing else for a long time. Nothing has ever yet fixed
|
|
itself in my mind so vividly, so enduringly, except my doings with my
|
|
first woman, Charlotte. At the beginning of my writing these memoirs,
|
|
this was among the first described. The narrative as then written was
|
|
double its present length, and I am sorry that I have abbreviated it,
|
|
for the occurrences as I correct this proof seem to come on too quickly.
|
|
Whereas we dined at seven o'clock, and it was one o'clock I guess before
|
|
we all went to bed together, and the stages from simple voluptuousness
|
|
to riotous baudiness and free-fucking were gradual. At eight o'clock not
|
|
one of us would have dared to think of, still less to suggest, what we
|
|
all did freely at midnight.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XV.
|
|
|
|
Morning headaches.--An indignant housekeeper.--A saucy
|
|
valet.--Consequences.--Fred leaves England.--Lady A...'s
|
|
invitation.--Laura a widow.--Farewell Laura.--Adieu Mabel.--
|
|
My guardian's remonstrances.--Parental advice.--Ruined.--
|
|
Reflexions.--My relations.
|
|
|
|
With headaches, heated, irritable, thirsty, worn out, we arose; the men
|
|
quiet, the women quarrelsome. The women began to dress, some where
|
|
they had slept, some in the other room. We went down to Lord A..., and
|
|
awakened him. He went upstairs, and bawled out to the housekeeper (he
|
|
had rang the bell violently several times without her appearing).
|
|
"Make us some tea directly," said he. She answered, "I shant,--make it
|
|
yourself." "I'll dismiss you if you don't." "I ain't going to make,
|
|
tea for prostitutes," said she, "and we are not going to keep in such a
|
|
house." Fred said the wine was bad, or his head would not ache so.
|
|
A... said Fred knew nothing about wine. Mabel who had heard what the
|
|
housekeeper said, bawled out that she would go up, and tear her eyes
|
|
out. The free-fucking tone was gone, each man seemed jealous, and spoke
|
|
harshly to his woman. At a remark of Marie's, Lord A... told her to go
|
|
to another room. No, she should not till Mabel was out of the house.
|
|
Mabel not quite sober, told me I had better go home with Laura. Fred
|
|
said Laura would go home with him. Laura was quiet, and tried to get
|
|
Fred to leave with her, and told Mabel she would be better if she took
|
|
less liquor. At length we separated. We four were going to the same
|
|
house, but went in separate cabs, then to our own rooms, and had
|
|
breakfast separately there,--a thing we never had done before. We always
|
|
lived in Laura's apartments, and shared the expenses.
|
|
|
|
After breakfast Mabel and I went to bed, late in the day we awakened.
|
|
I was refreshed, for then a long sleep restored me from any excess.
|
|
Although I did not like Mabel's behaviour, and did not care about her
|
|
having had the other men as I thought, yet it annoyed me; but it had the
|
|
effect of giving me a strong lech for her for some time. I used to think
|
|
as I fucked her, of my prick rubbing where Freds and Lord A... 's had
|
|
rubbed. It delighted me to say, "Should you know it was my prick if
|
|
you had just awakened?"--"Did his hurt you, when he pushed like
|
|
this?"--shove, shove,--"Tell me how Fred goes just before he spends."
|
|
We used to fetch each other by talking over that night; but she did not
|
|
recollect very clearly, and declared she was sure I had not had her,
|
|
although I certainly had her once that night, and when the spunk of
|
|
Lord A... and Fred's was in her. It used to horrify me when I thought of
|
|
that, such was my masculine inconsistency then.
|
|
|
|
We all four dined together, but were a little reserved until wine was
|
|
in us, then we laughed about the night; but Laura saying we had better
|
|
forget it, we agreed not to talk about it again, nor did we with the
|
|
women. Fred and I used often to do so, he never seemed so happy as when
|
|
he was asking me, if Laura was not a damned fine fuck, but directly I
|
|
said yes, he was silent.
|
|
|
|
The frolic brought about a great deal of mischief. Lord A...'s
|
|
housekeeper and maid left that day, they would not stop. I dare say they
|
|
had seen and heard enough to tell them the games we were up to, for we
|
|
were not particular about shutting doors. Lord A... regretted the cook,
|
|
because she was such a good one. She told the valet, and soon after he
|
|
was insolent to Lady A..., so Lord A... kicked him out. He summoned
|
|
A... before a magistrate for an assault, and A... was fool enough not to
|
|
compromise it. The man told a lot. The owner of the house gave Lord A...
|
|
notice to quit, he and Lady A... went to lodgings, and the publicity
|
|
embroiled Lord A... still more with his family.
|
|
|
|
Neither was the friendship between us all quite the same. Laura and
|
|
Mabel quarrelled. Lord A... would not let his mistress visit them unless
|
|
he was with her, Laura would never leave Mabel in the room alone with
|
|
Fred. Occasionally we still dined together, and went to the theatre. One
|
|
night when we had had much wine, we joked about the night, and the women
|
|
got quarrelling. Laura said the affair was disgraceful, and had it not
|
|
been for Mabel, it never would have happened. Mabel bounced off to her
|
|
own rooms. Soon after I took separate lodgings for Mabel. There she
|
|
was always in tears, if I left her long, and if away a day or two, she
|
|
wanted to know if I had been with Laura. Lady A... visited Mabel,
|
|
and was frightened to let her Lord know it. Then Lord and Lady A...
|
|
quarrelled, he had the clap, and gave it to his mistress. Fred and I
|
|
were always excellent friends, and at some annoyance through the women,
|
|
suggested we should go to Paris, and leave them alone in London.
|
|
|
|
Before going I met Lady A... walking out, who asked me in, in saying
|
|
Lord A... would be glad to see me. As I had not quarrelled with him, I
|
|
thought a chat might heal our coolness. When indoors, she called out to
|
|
him, and professed to be surprised at his not being there. If I would
|
|
wait, he would be in soon. We got nearer and nearer to each other on the
|
|
sofa, began talking about the free-fucking night, of the good aim she
|
|
had made with the bunch of grapes on Fred's balls, as he stood on his
|
|
head. We got very lewd, I kissed her, she me. Would she know it was I
|
|
who was up her, if I came in in the dark to her? She could not say,
|
|
but should know it was not A..,--a beast. "Beast, why?--have you
|
|
quarrelled?" Then she told me that A... was often drunk, and stayed away
|
|
from her for days. "He has got a disease from a beastly gay woman, and
|
|
hasn't slept with me for weeks." "And not had you?" "Of course not."
|
|
"Oh! don't you want it?" "No wonder if I do." At once I put my hands
|
|
up her petticoats, felt her nice plump thighs, my fingers rubbed on the
|
|
smooth quim. "Oh! don't--I can't bear it." I pulled out a stiff prick,
|
|
and put it into her hand, we toyed with each other's genitals for a
|
|
minute, then she sunk back on the sofa, I on her, and we copulated.
|
|
|
|
I stayed the whole evening with her, fucking at intervals. A... did not
|
|
come back. I am sure she knew he would not, and had asked me in because
|
|
she wanted me to have her. She did not tell me she had had the clap, nor
|
|
I her,--it was Mabel who had told me.
|
|
|
|
She hinted she should like to meet me again, and I made some half-sort
|
|
of promise, but never did. Mabel became more and more expensive,
|
|
discontented, lusty, and quarrelsome, and she was not clean. She would
|
|
feel my wet prick after it had left her cunt, and then cut bread and
|
|
butter without washing her hands. We had rows, and I left her, giving
|
|
her a handsome sum of money. Laura said she had gone back to Plymouth
|
|
with Lord A..., who had left Lady A... Then Fred, I and Laura were just
|
|
as we used to be. He seemed to have forgotten everything, and I never
|
|
presumed on having poked Laura. We went to Paris, leaving Laura in
|
|
London with her sister, who came up to stay with her,--a nice girl.
|
|
|
|
Though short of money now, Fred and I at Paris took no heed, but rattled
|
|
away as if our purses were inexhaustable. His furlough was nearly up. We
|
|
had no end of women. "Old ------ (naming a relative) will leave you all
|
|
his money," said he, "he's fond of you, and has no one else to leave it
|
|
to." I and all my family thought that; my mother had repeatedly warned
|
|
me that he was discontented with my goings on; but I counted on his
|
|
love for me, love since I was a baby; so I played at Paris a jolly game,
|
|
regardless of money.
|
|
|
|
When I came back from Paris, I tried to retrench, but found it all but
|
|
impossible. I got rid of Mabel, spent five shillings for my dinner,
|
|
where I used to spend twenty, went to live with my mother, put down
|
|
my horses and carriage, and discharged my man and grooms. But as I
|
|
diminished my amusements and extravagances generally, so I seemed more
|
|
and more to need women. My cock stood all day, and half the night.
|
|
Women I had by dozens. I tried to reduce their fees, and did to a
|
|
little extent, but for some years I had been accustomed to a liberal
|
|
expenditure in that article and though to a country girl I could give
|
|
five shillings, to a Londoner I could only give gold, and never refused
|
|
more if they pleased me, and were not satisfied.
|
|
|
|
Fred then went abroad to his regiment. He made arrangements for Laura to
|
|
have a small income, not a tenth of what she had had, but enough to keep
|
|
her in a quiet way. I at first was to pay it to her. She was to have it
|
|
as long as she remained steady, and he hoped she would go home, hoped
|
|
she would keep steady till his return,--his return which was not
|
|
probable in less than seven years at the least.
|
|
|
|
One night when together, we laughed at the absurdity of expecting it.
|
|
"Walter, is it probable that a fine woman like that will be content
|
|
with frigging herself?" "No." "She will be fucked,--I would if I were
|
|
she,--it's a shame to wish her to go without fucking. If I were married
|
|
to her, she would go with me, but a man can't take a mistress to India,
|
|
he could not live with her, and all the regiment would be smelling at
|
|
her tail,--she will be fucked, and I can't help it." Tears stood in his
|
|
eyes. "You give her a grind old boy, if she must have it, I'd rather you
|
|
did it than any one, and it will keep her quiet. You have had her,--do
|
|
you recollect that night?--oh! God, what a spree! I never had such a
|
|
spree before in my life, and never shall again." I said I would take
|
|
care of her as if a sister, as to having her, he might dismiss such an
|
|
idea from his head, and I meant what I said. He went abroad, and was
|
|
killed in battle. I loved him.
|
|
|
|
Laura went into humbler lodgings, I saw her often, but never made the
|
|
slightest advances. Soon she could not make her money do. Her mother
|
|
came up to stay with her, and she had then partly two to keep. She
|
|
dressed plainer, sold or pawned her best things, told me all, and how
|
|
it was impossible to make the money do. Then I made her a present, she
|
|
kissed me, and that set my blood boiling. Her mother wanted her to go
|
|
back to the country, I advised it also; it was agreed she should, and
|
|
her mother went back. A day or two afterwards I called on her, she got
|
|
me a chop for dinner, and sent for wine. We talked about Fred, she cried
|
|
about him, I kissed her to comfort her, she kissed me again as we sat on
|
|
the sofa, my arm went round her, I pulled her hand on to my shoulders;
|
|
and that spree at Lord A... 's came into my head.
|
|
|
|
"You miss a bed-fellow Laura, don't you?" "Oh! no, but I miss poor Fred,
|
|
he was so kind." "Do you recollect that night?" "Don't mention it, I am
|
|
ashamed of it,--oh! don't look at my boots, they are so shabby now." I
|
|
had began at the ankles, as I always did, it was on the road. "You are
|
|
not so stout as you were my dear." "There is not any difference in me."
|
|
I pinched her thighs outside her clothes. "Ah! I'm no thinner there I'm
|
|
sure." "Let me feel." "Oh! now don't,--it's a shame." "My darling, you
|
|
are as smooth and plump as ever,--I know the feel of those beautiful
|
|
thighs, I've laid on them." Soon my hand was between them, my finger
|
|
on the clitoris. "Poor Fred," said she still crying, her head on my
|
|
shoulder. In another instant her hand was round my prick, her thighs
|
|
open, my hand restless, and roving all about her cunt. "Lay down."
|
|
"I won't." "It won't hurt him poor fellow, he is far away." For a few
|
|
minutes we coaxed and fondled, kissed and cried, saying it was not
|
|
fair, and we never would. Then cock and cunt getting hotter and more
|
|
sensitive, I pushed her flat on the sofa, and we fucked ecstatically.
|
|
Rising she sat looking at me, her clothes half-way up her thighs, I
|
|
looking at her with my wet prick hanging its head. Then we hugged,
|
|
kissed, and did it again.
|
|
|
|
"It was to be," said she (as if poking her was fate). "Quite true dear,
|
|
but let's go to the bed, the sin is no greater if we do it ever so many
|
|
times." Into bed we got, and there I think we laid for sixteen hours.
|
|
Laura was a lovely bed-fellow. I had a good look at the hair on her
|
|
cunt, it was very long, curled round, and completely hid her cunt, even
|
|
when standing with her legs slightly open; and when she pissed, she left
|
|
drops of piddle on the hair. On her that bush was handsome, but very
|
|
long hair is not generally handsome on a cunt, and I have disliked, it
|
|
on others; but it is not often found. I am describing here what I saw
|
|
more coolly, and often on future occasions rather than what I saw and
|
|
recollect of her cunt, on that night of exhausting pleasure.
|
|
|
|
I had now but little money to spare, but gave her a little from time
|
|
to time, and a great deal of bum-basting. One day she said, "I'm in
|
|
misfortune again." She was in the family way, had been so before by
|
|
Fred, but had managed a miscarriage. She now got one, but was seriously
|
|
ill, and sent for her mother, and when she got better she went home. I
|
|
sent Fred's money to her there for some time, then she wrote me to send
|
|
it to a post-office, and afterwards to send no more, at she was going
|
|
to be married. She hoped I would never tell Fred, that I would burn her
|
|
letters, and if I ever saw her, would not notice her. I never saw her
|
|
again. She wrote to Fred about her marriage, and he was delighted at it,
|
|
as well as at saving his money. I have finished her history, so far as
|
|
it was connected with me; and must now take up my narrative at a time
|
|
before this.
|
|
|
|
Friends were going to Paris, I went with them, and a jolly loose time we
|
|
had for a few weeks. I made acquaintance with six or eight of the best
|
|
baudy houses, and had women galore. Theatres, excursions, high-feasting,
|
|
unlimited whoring were the characteristics of my trip. I returned empty
|
|
in pocket, and knocked up with copulating, yet had had none of the
|
|
excitants, with women that I have had there since. I rushed at cunt
|
|
directly I saw it; my physical enjoyment was so intense, that I could
|
|
not dally with my prick, but let it satisfy itself as soon as it liked.
|
|
The varieties that Camille had given me left no taste for them. Cunt,
|
|
belly, and thighs, seen, felt, and fucked in regular fashion, was my
|
|
delight. Heaps of bills met me on my return. The thought of becoming
|
|
bankrupt horrified me. I disposed of my remaining property, paid all,
|
|
and was left with a few hundred pounds. I pass now over a short time of
|
|
which there is nothing to be said, but that I was economical in all but
|
|
women.
|
|
|
|
My remaining guardian and my mother had been always at me with advice,
|
|
which I entirely disregarded, and flung away money in all directions.
|
|
Had I only spent it on women it would have lasted years longer. That
|
|
which women had I do not regret, they have been the greatest joy of my
|
|
life, and are so to every true man, from infancy to old age. Copulation
|
|
is the highest pleasure, both to the body and mind, and is worth all
|
|
other human pleasures put together. A woman sleeping or waking is a
|
|
paradise to a man, if he be happy with her, and he cannot spend his
|
|
money on anything better, or so good.
|
|
|
|
Soon after, almost dependent again on my mother, who did nothing but
|
|
upbraid me, my hopes centered in my old relative, who had promised to
|
|
make me his heir. He was not so gracious to me as he used to be; he
|
|
murmured at my extravagance, and supposed that any money I had would go
|
|
down the same sink, by which he meant women. He died suddenly, just as
|
|
he was in greatest wrath with me, and left me nothing.
|
|
|
|
All hopes were dashed to the ground. Laura was my consolation till she
|
|
left. For a year of my life I was needy and discontented, but not so
|
|
miserable as I was fated to be. I pass over that period, there was not
|
|
much in the amatory line to tell of. Fucking is a commonplace thing,
|
|
the prince and the beggar do it the same way, it is only the incidents
|
|
connected with it that are exciting. Voluptuous, reckless, youth and
|
|
beauty together, make the vulgar shoving, arse-wagging business poetical
|
|
for the time, but it is animalism.
|
|
|
|
Then I committed a more fatal error than spending a fortune in jollity;
|
|
what it was will be guessed, it is only referred to here to connect my
|
|
history. I was then in my twenty-sixth year.
|
|
|
|
I add a few observations which on reading this written many years ago,
|
|
seems now needful to explain even to myself.
|
|
|
|
Most of my relatives lived in the provinces, and were wealthy. We
|
|
visited each other periodically, but distance (there were few railways
|
|
then) prevented them from entering into my daily life, still less my
|
|
secret life. Fred's mother was nearest to us, and as the episodes
|
|
show, she and her family were most mixed up with my affairs. An aunt in
|
|
London, childless and rich, gave me most money, and afterwards left me
|
|
a good sum. I cared but little about those living at a distance. With
|
|
a cousin from the North I had some rousing debauches, which were at the
|
|
time known to many of my family. He is still alive, but pious, and with
|
|
a large family, and would not like to know I am writing this. Jolly old
|
|
Ben, I won't narrate our sprees, for you may live to read this,--who
|
|
knows?
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XVI.
|
|
|
|
Married, and miserable.--Virtuous intentions.--
|
|
Consequences.--Mary Davis.--A virtuous child.--Low class
|
|
fucksters.--A concupiscent landlady.--Reflexions on my
|
|
career.--On the sizes of pricks.--My misconception.
|
|
|
|
My life was now utterly changed; married. I was quite needy, with a
|
|
yearly income (and that not my own) not more than I used to spend in a
|
|
month, sometimes in a fortnight. Every shilling I had to look at, walked
|
|
miles where I used to ride, and to save a six pence, amusements were
|
|
beyond me, my food was the simplest, wine I scarcely tasted, all habits
|
|
of luxury were gone, but worse than all I was utterly wretched. I tried
|
|
to make the best of my life and could when by myself be cheerful, even
|
|
in the recollection of the past fun; but there was that about me now
|
|
which brought sorrow over to me. The instant I saw her, she checked my
|
|
smile, sneered at my past, moaned over my future, was a nightmare to me,
|
|
a very spectre.
|
|
|
|
I tried to like, to love her. It was impossible. Hateful in day, she was
|
|
loathsome to me in bed. Long I strove to do my duty, and be faithful,
|
|
yet to such a pitch did my disgust at length go, that laying by her
|
|
side, I had wet dreams nightly, sooner than relieve myself in her. I
|
|
have frigged myself in the streets before entering my house, sooner than
|
|
fuck her. I loving women, and naturally kind and affectionate to them,
|
|
ready to be kind and loving to her, was driven to avoid her as I would a
|
|
corpse. I have followed a woman for miles with my prick stiff, yet went
|
|
to my wretched home pure, because I had vowed to be chaste. My heart
|
|
was burning to have an affectionate kiss, a voluptuous sight from
|
|
some woman, yet I avoided obtaining it. My health began to give way,
|
|
sleepless nights, weary days made me contemplate suicide. It seemed as
|
|
if I never could have happiness again, yet my physical forces, or
|
|
so much of them as lay in my generative organs, seemed unimpaired. I
|
|
neither drank nor debauched, and my prick stood incessantly; neither
|
|
random frigs nor night-dreams stopped it.
|
|
|
|
My only relief from misery was in thinking over the pleasures I had had,
|
|
yet all seemed such a long time past, that it was like a dream. Then
|
|
a desire to have other women became invincible. I had no means to get
|
|
those I had been accustomed to, and seemed to have no idea of going
|
|
economically to work for my pleasures, but at length began to walk
|
|
through streets inhabited by very poor gay women, in a neighbourhood I
|
|
had known in my early youth. Then I found out other poor quarters,
|
|
and one night with but a few shillings in my pocket, after thinking of
|
|
throwing myself into a canal, I found myself at a spot where women of
|
|
a somewhat better class lived in its centre, and on its outskirts very
|
|
poor harlots.
|
|
|
|
"I will,--have I the money?--can't help it,--if one won't another
|
|
will," and I slunk into a street, half ashamed of entering it. Saw girls
|
|
standing at doors, never paused for selection, nor to see if one looked
|
|
nicer than another, it was cunt I wanted. The moment I turned the corner
|
|
of the street, I cared not who or what, as long as she had a petticoat
|
|
and what it hid from sight. I took the nearest.
|
|
|
|
"Will you let me have you for five shillings?" was all I uttered. I
|
|
recollect it as well as possible, hanging my head, ashamed of my offer,
|
|
and not looking at the girl, ashamed of being seen in the neighbourhood.
|
|
|
|
"All right," said she turning round. I followed her through the little
|
|
narrow passage of a four-roomed house into a little room with a bed
|
|
on one side of it. I looked at her, and she at me for an instant only.
|
|
"Here are the five shillings," said I. "Shall I undress?" "No." "Shall
|
|
we get on the bed?" "No, at the side,"--and whilst speaking I had half
|
|
lifted her on to it. Laughing with a peculiar chuckle she fell back,
|
|
pulling up her clothes. I saw plump thighs, dark hair, felt giddy, could
|
|
not see, recollect opening the lips, and began to spend as the tip of my
|
|
prick touched her cunt. Following the spunk as it shot up the passage as
|
|
it opened its way, with one thrust I was up her, and had finished.
|
|
Fifty times in my life up to the time I pen this, has a similar rapid
|
|
ejaculation occurred to me when randy.
|
|
|
|
"Didn't you want it!" said she. They were the first words I recollect
|
|
being uttered as I bent over her. How divine she seemed. "Let me do
|
|
it again." "Oh! you ought to give me a little more." "I'll give you a
|
|
shilling, it's all I have I fear; but more if I have it." "Very well
|
|
then," said a soft voice. Oh! what a heavenly few minutes they seemed
|
|
to me,--they still seem to me,--as I fucked her again. First and second
|
|
fuck must have been all over in five minutes. I had not un-cunted.
|
|
|
|
"Pull it out," said she after an interval, my cock still keeping in her;
|
|
but I kept close to her, and up her. "Be still dear, do pray,--I'll see
|
|
what money I have." My hat and my great-coat were on, it was cold, I had
|
|
only unbuttoned my trowsers enough to get out my prick. Keeping still up
|
|
her, I thrust my hand into my trowsers pocket, pulled out all the money
|
|
I had, and put it on the bed beside her. "See, it is all I have, every
|
|
farthing, a little more than I said,--let me do it again,--there is more
|
|
than seven shillings,"--and pressing well on to her haunches, I began
|
|
wriggling my prick.
|
|
|
|
She turned her head, looked at the money, but did not touch it. "Very
|
|
well," said she in a low voice, "but take it out,--don't make my chemise
|
|
in a mess, I have not another clean,--don't make a mess on the bed if
|
|
you can help it." "I shan't." "Yes you will, you have spent such a lot,
|
|
it's running out now."
|
|
|
|
I withdrew. She took a towel which was close at hand, wiped her cunt and
|
|
spread another for her bum. I threw off hat and coat. Soon now we were
|
|
both on the bed, I up her, and leaning on my elbow for the first time
|
|
really looked at her. Up to that moment cunt, cunt, nothing but cunt
|
|
was in my mind. Now I saw that her eyes were blueish, her hair dark and
|
|
wavy, I recollect our staring in each other's faces for a minute or two
|
|
without speaking. A candle on a little table close to the bed showed a
|
|
strong light on us sideways; then we both fucked with vigor, and Mary
|
|
Davis spent with me,--she spent with me, that poor little gay woman.
|
|
|
|
"You are a nice poke," said the girl. I got off the bed, sat on a chair
|
|
by the fire, and looked at the merry face of the little gay woman as she
|
|
smiled at me whilst washing her quim. The pleasure I had just had,
|
|
the entrancement of the carnal pleasure contrasted so strongly with my
|
|
misery at home, that I burst into tears, and sobbed like a child. She
|
|
rubbed her quim dry, then silently came up to me, put her hand on my
|
|
shoulder, and stood without uttering a word till my passion was over.
|
|
"Are you unhappy?" said she in a gentle tone. Yes I was. "Never mind, I
|
|
dare say it will be over some day--we have all got unhappiness."
|
|
|
|
Her kind voice and manner--she a gay woman who owed me no kindness--so
|
|
contrasted with the coldness elsewhere, that it made me worse and again
|
|
I sat sobbing, and taking no notice of her; she still standing with her
|
|
hand on my shoulder.
|
|
|
|
"Have something to drink," said she. "Yes,"--but recollecting myself,
|
|
"No, I have no money, I have given you every farthing I have." "Never
|
|
mind,--do you like gin?--I do." "Yes." She called out to the landlady,
|
|
"Fetch me a shilling's worth of gin, and mind you don't take any,--mind
|
|
a shilling's worth fills this bottle to here (giving the landlady a
|
|
large medicine bottle), don't take any, and I will give you a little.
|
|
I'll pay for the gin," said she turning to me.
|
|
|
|
I sat looking at the fire. "You have not washed yourself," said she.
|
|
"No, are you unwell?" "No, I think I am all right, but we can't always
|
|
say you know, and it's best to wash after us,"--and I washed.
|
|
|
|
I took hot gin and water, and got cheered, even began to smile when she
|
|
said, "You are a gentleman, ain't you?" "Yes I think so." "I am sure you
|
|
are by your manner, but you are poor I suppose." I told her the entire
|
|
truth, my heart was so full, I told this strange gay woman all my
|
|
trouble, all my misery, wanted more gin and water, and having in my
|
|
pocket a gold pencil-case, a gift of an aunt's, "Get some more gin,"
|
|
said I, "take this and pawn it, for I have no money." She would not. "I
|
|
am sure, if you say you will bring me the money, that you will. I will
|
|
pay for more gin."
|
|
|
|
So sitting, talking, and drinking gin and water, she sitting opposite to
|
|
me listening whilst I told my troubles, and my burst of troubles over,
|
|
relieved by my confidences, I became aware that she was plump, fleshy,
|
|
good-looking, and had a mild sympathetic eye. Up to that time cunt alone
|
|
had fascinated me, now I thought of the woman, and a liking for her
|
|
because she seemed kind stole over me; desire to have her, caress her,
|
|
spend in her on that account, rather than a desire for her cunt alone,
|
|
thrilled through me as I looked at her sitting half facing me by the
|
|
fire; her clothes slightly raised, that the warmth might reach her
|
|
limbs, one elbow on her knee, the hand supporting her face turned
|
|
towards me full of interest. And so an hour or more ran away.
|
|
|
|
"I want you again so, but I have no more money." "Never mind, you may
|
|
have me,--shall I undress?" "Oh! do,--do,--how round and plump you
|
|
are,--but I have no more money." "Never mind,--give me more when you see
|
|
me again. Come into the bed,--see the sheets are quite clean,--no one
|
|
has slept in them, I take the clean ones off every night, and put on
|
|
others before I go to bed,--stop with me all night." We both undressed,
|
|
and jumped into bed together. I was frantic with pleasure as I cuddled
|
|
up to her plump warm body, and felt her from her neck to her knees;
|
|
rolled over her, and kissed her, till I settled down between her thighs;
|
|
and then Mary Davis and I fucked, and laid still, and then fucked again,
|
|
and so on, till I could do it no longer.
|
|
|
|
It was three in the morning. "Stop all night," said she, "I will give
|
|
you a nice breakfast in the morning." I would not, had a strong desire
|
|
to keep up appearances of propriety and happiness at home, if I had not
|
|
the reality; so with a sigh rose, and dressed, borrowed a shilling of
|
|
her, and went out into the street. Silent and dirty it was, and raining
|
|
hard as I walked home to my miserable bed.
|
|
|
|
At dusk next day with impatience I went off to Mary Davis', gave her
|
|
what I had promised, and money for that evening besides, and when I had
|
|
had her, we sat down and talked again.
|
|
|
|
She was a short woman about nineteen years old, plump without fat, but
|
|
as nicely covered as any woman I ever saw; had a big bum, large thighs,
|
|
plenty of room between them, and dark hair on her cunt which had
|
|
strongly developed lips, it was large outside in proportion to her size.
|
|
She had a soft, kind face, beautiful grey eyes, nearly black hair which
|
|
draped naturally, and was altogether as nice a little woman as one could
|
|
have wanted. I have wondered often how she could have settled down in
|
|
a neighbourhood of coster-mongers, and taken five shillings for her
|
|
person, when she might as well have been a two-sovereign woman, had she
|
|
tried elsewhere. I put her up to trying at a future day, but she never
|
|
would.
|
|
|
|
Her room was about twelve feet square. A large bed took up one third
|
|
of it, a table next the only window, two chairs (one easy), little
|
|
cupboards in the recesses by the fire-place, on which stood china and
|
|
glasses, a small wash-hand stand, a chest of drawers, with slop-pail,
|
|
coal-scuttle, and looking-glass completed the furniture. All was
|
|
scrupulously clean, the bed-linen white.
|
|
|
|
Having broken my virtuous resolution, I never regained it, and for a
|
|
week fucked Mary from six in the evening till two the next morning. My
|
|
week's amusement cost me about two pounds, but then that modest sum
|
|
was too much for my pocket, so I left off for a while, and gave Mary a
|
|
chance of keeping her other friends. They were mostly poor clerks, she
|
|
told me, and married men better off, who gave her a pound, or at times
|
|
paid her rent if in arrear. She paid I think but twenty-five shillings a
|
|
week for her board and lodging together. My too exclusive attentions for
|
|
a week had prevented her regulars from coming. There was lots of cheaper
|
|
cunt in the neighbourhood so to send them away with full balls was
|
|
dangerous.
|
|
|
|
The house was kept by an old man and woman, he a carpenter almost too
|
|
old, yet who went to daily work. He used to fetch gin and beer for us.
|
|
There was no lodger in the house. They were a decent couple, and after a
|
|
time I used to talk to the old woman, and when Mary once went away ill,
|
|
she got me a beautifully shaped girl, I had offered her money to get me
|
|
a girl of about fourteen years of age, a virgin. The streets about there
|
|
swarmed with girls and boys who played about at night, I could hear
|
|
their smutty language as they ran after each other yelling, laughing
|
|
and quarrelling. She tried, but never could; she was not a woman who
|
|
undertook that sort of thing, but the money tempted her. "There are lots
|
|
of girls about," said she, "their mothers don't care what they do, but
|
|
you want a virgin,--Lor! where's she to be found?--when they's about
|
|
thirteen or fourteen years old they won't be kept in, they is about the
|
|
dark streets at night, and Lor! if you heard what I have in the streets
|
|
where the costers' barrows is, of a night!" And so the old woman
|
|
intimated that all the young girls of that select neighbourhood, were
|
|
got into by the coster boys, and that a virginity was a rarety at
|
|
fourteen years old. I afterwards groped several young girls in those
|
|
dark streets, and there was certainly no obstacle to my fingers
|
|
searching their cunts.
|
|
|
|
"I thinks I knows a steady little gal, whose mother's just died, her
|
|
father ain't no good, and you and Mary must ask her in; I can't have
|
|
nothin to do with it except gettin her here." One day afterwards she
|
|
told me she had asked the girl to tea, and that she was as curious as
|
|
could be to know all about it (meaning fucking). "She knows as much as
|
|
we do," said the old woman with a chuckle. "Was far as talking goes and
|
|
she would like to know as much as them as does it as well, but she is
|
|
timid; there is three of them, she is the eldest, the father leaves her
|
|
in charge, you shall see her." Mary Davis had gone home ill. The girl
|
|
was brought in, I sent out for gin, a nice little girl she was, and she
|
|
drank some of it. The old woman then left with a wink. The girl took my
|
|
kisses very well, never said a word, so getting on by degrees I talked
|
|
to her about naked people, and getting children, felt her ankles and
|
|
legs, then told her I would give her a shilling if she would feel my
|
|
cock. She did not say a word, but stood still, my arm round her waist,
|
|
whilst I pulled out my stiff prick. Then she bent forward curiously,
|
|
whilst I put her little hand round it, and guiding it, pulled the
|
|
foreskin down from the tip. Then I put my hand up her clothes, and felt
|
|
her thighs and bum; but on bringing my hand to the cunt, she broke away
|
|
in tears saying, "Oh! no sir,--I would rather not sir,--I'm much obliged
|
|
to you sir for showing it me, and the shilling; but I would rather not
|
|
sir,--oh! let me go, let me go,--Mrs. Smith,--Mrs. Smith." The old woman
|
|
was listening, and came in instantly. "Oh! what are you doing to
|
|
her?" said she in a whining tone, "what is the matter my dear?--don't
|
|
cry,--oh! you should not sir,"--and winking at me, away she went with
|
|
the girl; then came back, said the girl was scared, and she feared it
|
|
was no go. "But if you heared her talk, you would think she would let
|
|
any man do anything with her."
|
|
|
|
Half-an-hour afterwards the girl had composed herself, and came back.
|
|
I had more gin, the old woman again left us, the girl had another
|
|
shilling, and again she felt me. I began talking to her about the
|
|
parsley-bed out of which children come, and generally on the subject of
|
|
generation and its working tools. "Now dear don't be alarmed (she seemed
|
|
as timid as a hare), you know what a cunt is?" "Yes," said she, "it's
|
|
a nasty word,--poor mother told father he was a beast cause he said it
|
|
when drunk." "Well my dear, something comes out of a man if he puts this
|
|
up a cunt, and that gets children,--lay hold of my prick, and you will
|
|
see,"--and guiding her little hand I frigged myself with it. But she
|
|
cried out when I attempted to feel her cunt, and I never had her. The
|
|
old woman said she was frightened to bring her again, that she and Mary
|
|
Davis might manage it together, and when Davis came back I wished her
|
|
to try, but she refused to have anything to do with it. The lech passed
|
|
away, for it was but a whim. At that time I liked large well-haired
|
|
cunts.
|
|
|
|
I am anticipating, for this took place nearly two years after I first
|
|
had Mary Davis. That girl got fond of me, and I liked her. I got a
|
|
little better off, and used to give her more money; but she always took
|
|
what I gave her contentedly. The only thing I can remember out of the
|
|
common course of lecherous events in such acquaintances, is that I took
|
|
one for spending over her, used to fuck up to spending-point, then pull
|
|
out my prick, and frigging it, emit my semen on to her belly, breasts,
|
|
or thighs; then I began fucking again, almost directly I had discharged
|
|
and looking at my spunk lying on her flesh. When my pleasure came on
|
|
again, I would put her hand on to my spunk; and directly her fingers
|
|
touched it, it fetched me, and she as well, although she always said it
|
|
was a dirty trick. But I only did this a few times. I began also to use
|
|
French letters, for reasons she advised me to do so.
|
|
|
|
The neighbouring streets were full of poor gay women. She heard that I
|
|
had been seen going into a house in the neighbourhood, and cried about
|
|
it. Her health got bad, her womb began to fall, and the doctor said she
|
|
was not strong enough for a gay life. She told me she was the daughter
|
|
of an under game-keeper, that a young tradesman kept company with her,
|
|
she liked him, and he said he meant to marry her. Bringing her home one
|
|
evening when she had got out on the sly, they felt each other's privates
|
|
on the road. Very soon after she and one of her sisters were allowed
|
|
to go to some village-dance. Her sister walked off with her sweetheart;
|
|
Mary's young man took her to some cottage, did it to her twice, and then
|
|
walked home with her. She did not know whose fault it was; his or hers,
|
|
for from the night they had felt each other, she thought of nothing else
|
|
till she had his prick up her. Her father found it out, she ran away to
|
|
London, became gay, and had never lived in any other house but the one
|
|
I visited her in. "Whenever I saw him after he had felt me" (her lover)
|
|
she would say, "I felt in a flurry all over, and could think of nothing
|
|
else, I longed to feel his hand on my thing again,--she soon did."
|
|
|
|
She went home ill, came back, her womb got worse, she went to a
|
|
hospital, got thin and fretted, again went home, and I never heard more
|
|
of her. I had great pleasure in her society, it was my greatest solace
|
|
to tell her all my misery, for she was a complacent kind creature. It
|
|
was wonderful to see how clean everything was in that little square
|
|
room, yet with the exception of the fire-place, she cleaned everything
|
|
herself. At about two o'clock in the day she was dressed, and standing
|
|
at the door, to catch passers by. She never spoke to them unless they
|
|
spoke to her. She was to me at first a novel experience but I soon had
|
|
plenty of experience of the poor class of women in adjacent streets.
|
|
|
|
I found it not wise to go into the streets well dressed, so put on old
|
|
things, drew my hat over my eyes, assumed a slouching gait, and walked
|
|
along slowly, talking to the women till I found one I liked. Their
|
|
salutation usually was, "Come here dear,--come and see what I have got
|
|
to show you." "What?" "Such a nice cunt,--such a lot of hair." "Such a
|
|
fat arse," would say another. "How much will you let me for?" "What you
|
|
like,--come in." "I have not much money,--let me look at your cunt for
|
|
a shilling." "Come in then." Another would say, "Make it two, and I'll
|
|
strip." Many a cunt I have seen for a shilling. If I did not like it, I
|
|
went further on, or into the next street.
|
|
|
|
The street-doors were usually open, the women when dressed lolling just
|
|
inside them, with head out, but dropping back if they saw a likely man,
|
|
and addressing him as he passed in loud or low tones, according to their
|
|
cheek. If a woman I had had and expected to see was not visible, my way
|
|
was to step inside the passage, and listen at the door; if through the
|
|
key-hole I saw a light, or heard voices, there was business on. If in
|
|
the evening the outside shutters of the room were closed, I knew the
|
|
woman was engaged for a long time, perhaps her own man, a cab-man, a
|
|
costermonger, or some man of similar class was with her, if late. The
|
|
women there though about the same price, or cheaper, had quite different
|
|
manners from the Waterlow road ones. There were rarely more than one
|
|
woman in a house, and always on the ground floor, the landlord or lady
|
|
living in the back room, or upstairs. The rooms were mostly let to
|
|
working people, who seemed quiet enough.
|
|
|
|
Lots of children were about, who played in the streets at day, but
|
|
disappeared if quite young towards dusk. If a man stopped and talked
|
|
to a gay woman at the door, the children of the house usually went in,
|
|
always did if more than about ten years old. They drew back as if they
|
|
knew that a bargain for fucking was to be struck, and I believe knew
|
|
all about it. They were mostly girls who sleeping in the same room with
|
|
their parents, I dare say had seen the game of mother and father played
|
|
often enough. The bigger girls frisked about the streets of an evening
|
|
with boys of the same age, or not much older.
|
|
|
|
If a woman could get you to enter the passage, she almost pulled you
|
|
into her room. "Come in,--don't stand there,--come out of the way of
|
|
the lodgers,--I'll tell you if you come in,--well make it
|
|
half-a-crown,--I've got such a nice cunt,--such a fat arse,--feel my
|
|
bubbies,--look here,--come in, and let me feel your prick."
|
|
|
|
This was all said rapidly, and according to the inducements the woman
|
|
had to offer. It generally ended in my going in, and the bargain was
|
|
completed inside. "I'll frig you,--do anything you like,--look here
|
|
(showing rapidly her breasts, and covering them up again),--here is a
|
|
big pair of legs (pulling her clothes up),--yes you may fuck me how
|
|
you like,--oh I yes I want to piss bad." I have heard this hundreds of
|
|
times. Once inside I never came out without paying something. The women
|
|
always said or did just enough to wet my appetite for knowing or seeing
|
|
a little more, so I paid, and often enough was disappointed, and left;
|
|
but saw a lot.
|
|
|
|
In these streets about seven in number, during a period of two or three
|
|
years, I had many women, even whilst I visited Mary Davis. I dare say
|
|
fifty women I fucked, and felt as many more before I ceased going to
|
|
the neighbourhood. Two or three of the adventures there are alone worth
|
|
writing. At one house I was robbed of a pin whilst actually fucking the
|
|
woman.
|
|
|
|
A tall broad-built woman of about thirty, was loll-at a door one night.
|
|
I do not recollect having seen her before, for I knew many women by
|
|
sight, even though I had not had them. She looked like a coster's wife.
|
|
I should have passed on, but for the lewd way in which her eyes met
|
|
mine. I stopped, she instantly looked rapidly up and down the street,
|
|
went back inside the door-way saying very loudly, "You want my lodger,
|
|
but she has left here," but as she said this, she stepped inside the
|
|
front room, and beckoned me in both with hand and head, her eyes wide
|
|
open, and looking anxious. Slowly I followed in. She was so big that I
|
|
thought I should like a feel, and if I liked that would pay more, and
|
|
have more. "I'll give you a shilling to feel your cunt." "Very well,"
|
|
said she standing still, and not attempting to lift her clothes slightly
|
|
as most of the women used to do. I got my hand on her thighs, she pushed
|
|
it away, retreated towards the bed and sat on it. I took out a shilling,
|
|
and as usual put it on the mantel-piece. "There is the money,--let me
|
|
now." She no longer resisted, I felt her, and she opened her legs to
|
|
facilitate my groping. She put her hand on my shoulder. "Is your cock
|
|
standing?" said she in a whisper. "Yes feel it," said I unbuttoning. She
|
|
grabbed at it as if she meant to pull it off.
|
|
|
|
Her manners struck me as uncommon, and I began to feel uncomfortable;
|
|
but under the squeezing of my cock, and the feeling of her cunt the
|
|
usual desire to leave one's sperm up her came over me. "Let me fuck
|
|
you,--I'll give you two shillings more." Without reply she fell back
|
|
on the bed, I began to throw up her clothes. "Oh! no I can't let you
|
|
do that." I had when with strange women just then been using French
|
|
letters, and the fear of infection came over me when she would not
|
|
submit herself to my inspection. "You have got something the matter with
|
|
you, and I shan't, I said.
|
|
|
|
"Nothing of the sort," said she angrily, "I'm not gay,--I'm the
|
|
landlady,--I am married, and have three children,--they are abed in the
|
|
next room,--you may see them if you like. My lodger's gone,--you've been
|
|
here afore to see her,--I've seen you afore,--but I'm not gay, and can't
|
|
have anything the matter with me,--it's impossible." All this nearly
|
|
in a whisper. Astonished I laughed. "Don't make a noise," said she,
|
|
"I don't want the lodgers to know I am in this room, they know it's
|
|
empty,--come on," and grasping my prick again, she surrendering herself
|
|
more freely to my investigations.
|
|
|
|
"Where is your husband?" "Away on a job in the country; I haven't seen
|
|
him for three months, and have not been touched for that time, so help
|
|
me God; you may do it without fear,--there then look, if you must,"
|
|
said she, letting me throw up her clothes, and look well at her cunt,
|
|
which I opened. "I'm a quiet woman." Then she turned round, twisting
|
|
herself so that she could get hold of my cock as I stood pulling her
|
|
about. "Come on my dear." The next minute I was spending up her.
|
|
|
|
"Go on, you were so quick,--go on," said she in spasmodic utterances,
|
|
jerking her bum, clutching me to her, and using the same endearments
|
|
as any other woman,--women are all the same, from the princess to the
|
|
peasant. I had spent quickly, but shoved on as well as I could, and in a
|
|
second or two with a sigh, her cunt relaxed.
|
|
|
|
I moved out of her quickly, for fear of the ladies' fever haunted me
|
|
a little. She lay with her clothes up to her navel, till I had washed
|
|
myself. "There is no towel or soap," I said. Then she moved. "I'll get
|
|
you some,--but don't afear me,--hush!--don't make a noise,--wait five
|
|
minutes for me, lock the door, and put out the light." I stood aghast at
|
|
this request; it was in a low neighbourhood, costermongers, tramps, and
|
|
even a nest of thieves I had heard was not far off. "What the devil does
|
|
she mean?--what game is up?" came across my mind. "I won't put out the
|
|
light," I said. "Well hide it in the cupboard, lock the door, and if any
|
|
one knocks don't answer,--perhaps my late lodger's friends may come, not
|
|
knowing she has gone,--I don't want any one to know any one is in the
|
|
room." This was all said in a whisper; she went out, shut the door
|
|
gently, and walked to the back of the house, leaving her three
|
|
shillings. I heard her footsteps, and faintly afterwards the sounds of
|
|
talking in the back room,--the partitions in the poor houses were thin.
|
|
|
|
I dried my tool with my shirt and sat on the bed, looking round at the
|
|
poor room, wondering what dodge was up. She did not return, and thinking
|
|
over the incidents, came to the conclusion that she was not a gay woman.
|
|
There was just that difference in manners, in getting on to the bed,
|
|
in taking her pleasures, and in her whole behaviour about the fucking,
|
|
which there always is between a woman however loose she may be, but who
|
|
does not fuck professionally, and the regular trader in her charms. I
|
|
saw it then, and I see it still clearer writing about it now.
|
|
|
|
Nevertheless I began to think of leaving, feeling uneasy as she did not
|
|
return for more than ten minutes. With my hat on, I was just about to
|
|
run off, after hearing a man's footsteps pass along the passage, when I
|
|
heard a voice cry up the stairs, "Mrs. Brown, Mrs. Brown, I'm going out
|
|
to get a mouthful of fresh air,--if the children cry, will you see to
|
|
them?" A shrill voice replied, a female step passed my door, into the
|
|
street. A second afterwards the door slowly opened (I had unlocked it as
|
|
I heard what I supposed were her footsteps going along the passage). In
|
|
she came, holding up her finger for silence, then quietly closing and
|
|
locking the door, she stood smiling at me. "Don't make a noise, they
|
|
think I am out," she said.
|
|
|
|
I looked fully at her now, my lust satisfied. She was a big woman of say
|
|
thirty years of age, coarse, common, but clean; she had a dress on which
|
|
opened in front like that of a woman who suckles, and some sort of cap
|
|
on her head. I did not know what to make of it, for she stood as if
|
|
waiting for me to speak. I did not, and taking the candle, she put it
|
|
down on the floor by the side of the drawers, or something of the sort,
|
|
and remarked, "They won't see the light through the crack of the door
|
|
now." Again a man's heavy footstep was heard. "That's my upstairs
|
|
lodger," said she when she noticed my listening.
|
|
|
|
"You are really not gay?" said I. Then she repeated what she had said
|
|
before, and sat on the side of the bed by me. "You have big breasts," I
|
|
remarked. "Yes I was a fine woman, every one said before I married." It
|
|
is impossible to be near a woman without wishing to ascertain her hidden
|
|
charms. In the hurried embrace with her I had thought of nothing but
|
|
cunt. At that time of my life, to see a woman, to long for her, to make
|
|
my bargain, and to fuck her, was often an affair of not much more than
|
|
ten minutes; it was only after the fuck that I looked well at the female
|
|
I had pieced.
|
|
|
|
"Let me feel them," I said. She hesitated, but I undid the dress, and
|
|
felt two breasts large and white, and pulled one out. "My nipple is
|
|
spoilt with suckling," said she, "I've not yet done giving milk." "Let's
|
|
have you again." "Yes,"--and she got on to the bed. "Let me see your
|
|
cunt." "Oh! no,--don't,--I won't." My suspicion came back; with my prick
|
|
out I still hesitated. "I've not washed myself since you did me," said
|
|
she. "Well wash your cunt." She took my basin, and washed herself. Then
|
|
I had a look at her cunt, and again fucked her. Lord how she enjoyed it,
|
|
and so did I, that big coarse woman; but she would not let me look long
|
|
at her belly, perhaps marked through child-birth. She had thickish,
|
|
lightish brown hair on her quim; it was a cock-squeezer too, and how wet
|
|
it got in our copulation. I remarked it to her. She said, "I'm wet, and
|
|
no mistake."
|
|
|
|
I lay on her afterwards, my prick dangling against her cunt, and talked.
|
|
Her husband was an artizan away on a job, she kept the house, and let
|
|
lodgings; her husband was half his time away. "You've seen the girl who
|
|
was in this room,--I recollect you,--I've seen you in the street more
|
|
than once,--You've been with the woman opposite. I didn't mean anything
|
|
till you spoke and stopped, but I'd been dying for it, been wishing
|
|
almost I were gay; the gal opposite had just gone in with a man, and I
|
|
was wondering what my husband was doing, and just then you stopped and
|
|
looked, and I thought I'd let you. Do it again," said she slipping her
|
|
hand between our bellies, and grasping my bal-locks. And I did it again,
|
|
as soon as I could.
|
|
|
|
"I've never had another man but you and my own man I'll swear,--ask in
|
|
the street, they will all say I'm respectable,--but don't tell on me. I
|
|
frig myself almost every day, if you must know, but that don't satisfy
|
|
me, a woman who's had three children,--if I'm in the family way now, I'm
|
|
in a mess, but I'm not so much to blame, am I?--think, three months away
|
|
from your own man I--but I tell you as you spoke to me I was a dying for
|
|
it,--the girl who was here in this room used to say, 'Well Mrs. ------
|
|
you are a fool to pass your life almost without a you know what.' Well
|
|
I was a dying for it, and she and lodgers would always tell me what the
|
|
men did to them; and yet I never have had but you." So we lay talking
|
|
for a time, she answering my questions, and sometimes volunteering
|
|
remarks; but never leaving go of my prick, and every now and then
|
|
saying, "Ain't you a fine man!--you just are a fine young man!"
|
|
|
|
There were noises at the street-door, men were talking, a smell of
|
|
tobacco reached us. "It's the upstairs back," said she, "he will
|
|
stop there till he have smoked two pipes, so for God's sake don't
|
|
leave,"--and she sunk her voice lower. "Oh! I must put out the light."
|
|
Saying so, off the bed she got, blew it out, and got on to the bed
|
|
again. There we lay quite another hour, speaking in whispers, feeling
|
|
each other's privates, never washing, the spunk drying up as our hands
|
|
fumbled about each other, I talking baudy, and telling her what
|
|
gay women would do, she telling me she knew all about it, for her
|
|
ground-floor lodgers were always gay. I asking questions about herself,
|
|
heard that my cock was about the same size as her husband's. Wondering
|
|
at the tightness of her cunt, as she had had three children, she said
|
|
that the size was the same as before she had had a man. If she got in
|
|
the family way she would be in a mess; she did not think she should,
|
|
as she had not quite done suckling. She did not know how she managed to
|
|
keep so firm and plump, for she had meat only twice a week. "What then?"
|
|
"Potatoes and herrings,"--did not know what she would do, if she did not
|
|
get another lodger soon to pay the rent,--she often could not pay for a
|
|
meal.
|
|
|
|
About two o'clock in the morning there were lumping boots going
|
|
upstairs. The lodger had gone to bed. We lighted the candle, I washed
|
|
(there was still no towel), and no sooner had I washed than she laid
|
|
hold of, and kissed my prick, stooping to do so,--and then we fucked
|
|
again.
|
|
|
|
We parted, she took my money. "I will keep this," she said, "it will
|
|
help me." I said it was for her. She let me quietly out, begging me
|
|
never to mention what had taken place between us to any gal in the
|
|
street. "Though they won't believe you if you do, for I have a good
|
|
character. I've seed you often go in with them." I had fancied no one
|
|
ever saw me in that low street, and wondered if any other person had
|
|
recognized me there.
|
|
|
|
I never had her again. Once or twice I saw her at the street-door, but
|
|
so soon as she saw me she rushed in-doors, and I had too many fresh and
|
|
younger women at hand to care about her. Here was a case of a woman who
|
|
could not restrain herself, owing to the long absence of her legitimate
|
|
doodle, and gave way to her uncontrollable passions for that night. That
|
|
was the only conclusion I could come to.
|
|
|
|
Then soon afterwards I had the clap. Mary cried, and declared she had
|
|
not given it me, and I am sure she had not. Then almost for the first
|
|
time I began to use cundums, or French letters, as they are called.
|
|
I did not like them, but had suffered so much from gonorrhoea, that I
|
|
carried them in my purse in readiness.
|
|
|
|
My experience with this poor class of women was soon considerable.
|
|
Satiated, sick of them, yet I continued to frequent them for the simple
|
|
carnal pleasure of coition. There was no sentiment about it, no liking
|
|
for the women, for though their manners sometimes amused me, they more
|
|
frequently shocked me, and the poverty of some distressed me; but I had
|
|
no money for choicer entertainment. My vigor was great, my pleasure in
|
|
copulation almost maddening, a cunt was a cunt, and I got my pleasure
|
|
and relief up it, whatever its owner might have been. A sensuous
|
|
imagination aided me. When once my prick was up a woman she was for the
|
|
time more or less invested with charms, and her imperfections forgotten.
|
|
I used to shut my eyes, and fancy I was stroking a houri with the finest
|
|
limbs and ivory flesh, and could fancy all this up to the moment of
|
|
ejaculation, I fancied thighs and cunt which were not those of the woman
|
|
who was at that moment doing her best to please me.
|
|
|
|
There were occasions when the women when naked revolted me, my prick
|
|
refused to stand, and I departed without copulating, but those occasions
|
|
with this class of women are not worth noting. I have been subject to
|
|
this sudden revolt and prostration, sometimes even when the woman was
|
|
most beautiful. Nervousness, fear, some sudden dislike, and even most
|
|
ridiculous reasons have caused it.
|
|
|
|
I should have mentioned that gradually it had taken hold of my mind
|
|
that my prick was a very small one. How this notion first arose I cannot
|
|
quite trace, I certainly had it in a degree when a youth, and it became
|
|
stronger owing to the remarks of some French women. The men I saw
|
|
fucking at Camille's had very large pricks, and no doubt they were
|
|
selected on that account for exhibition; but I did not know that then,
|
|
and used mentally to compare mine with theirs, and also with those of
|
|
some of my former schoolfellows, and to my disadvantage.
|
|
|
|
With many harlots of both high and low class I had talked about size;
|
|
each told me of men who had big pricks, rarely of those who had small
|
|
ones. Experience has since taught me that harlots like talking about big
|
|
pricks, for size affects their imagination agreeably. Of ridiculously
|
|
small ones they make mention for a laugh, the average sizes pass without
|
|
their notice. I used to ask them how mine compared with the big ones
|
|
they spoke of, and got at last into my head the erroneous opinion about
|
|
my own machine. At times I would produce it with an apologetic remark.
|
|
"My prick's not a very big one, is it?"--and was much pleased when the
|
|
woman's reply was complimentary. I know now from the inspection of many
|
|
men's, that mine compares very favorably with the average, and is larger
|
|
than most; but for many years I was of a very different opinion, and at
|
|
times was almost ashamed of my prick, so much so that when a woman said
|
|
it was as large as most, and many said that. I did not believe them,
|
|
still less did I believe them when they said it was a handsome prick;
|
|
then I thought they were hum-bugging me.
|
|
|
|
Now as I add these few words written years after the foregoing, and
|
|
after having seen some dozens of pricks, both languid and erect, I know
|
|
what they said was true, and I know that there is a size, a form, a
|
|
curve, and a colour in pricks which makes some handsomer than others,
|
|
just as undoubtedly there are ugly and handsome cunts.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XVII.
|
|
|
|
Irish Kate.--Drink, heat, fleas, and French letters.--The
|
|
bricklayer afterwards.--I give luck.--The lost breast-pin.--
|
|
The cholera's victim.
|
|
|
|
One hot night in summer I slouched along one of the streets, and stopped
|
|
in front of a woman who stood lolling against the door-post. I recollect
|
|
her and my first sensations perfectly well, her white face, and dark
|
|
hair hanging behind her in a net, her low dress, low in front,--showing
|
|
a luscious neck and bust as white as her face. Her dress was of a very
|
|
light colour, so her neck and face must have been white indeed to look
|
|
so white by contrast. The street-door was close to a street-lamp, which
|
|
shed a strong light on her face as it was turned upwards, and with
|
|
her hand and arms folded behind her she lolled, her back against the
|
|
doorpost. She was a full-sized woman, but young, and exactly what
|
|
pleased me then; black and white, young and full of flesh. I stopped,
|
|
and gazed at her. She fixed her eyes vacantly on me, but neither moved
|
|
nor spoke to me.
|
|
|
|
There were gay women standing at doors not far off, common men also at
|
|
some stood smoking. They understood the habits of the neighbourhood, and
|
|
never took any notice when a strange man and woman talked together at
|
|
a door. I did not like to speak to a woman if others, or men were near,
|
|
and would at times walk about till the coast was clearer. But this girl
|
|
struck me with strong lust suddenly. "I'll give you a shilling to feel,"
|
|
said I. No answer, but she kept staring at me. "Half-acrown then,"
|
|
thinking my offer too small, and stepping inside the passage to get
|
|
out of sight. "Come in," I said. She made no reply, never took her back
|
|
quite from the wall; but turning herself round, continued looking at me,
|
|
her head slightly moving about as if she did not understand.
|
|
|
|
Staggered at this behaviour I was coming out again to leave, but her
|
|
lovely look fixed me. "I'll give you five shillings," said I, "to have
|
|
you." "Have me," said she, "have me what?" Her voice was thick and
|
|
broken. She turned into the passage. "Will you let me have you?" "Come
|
|
and fuck," said the husky, thick voice. She passed me, stepped heavily
|
|
into the room, staggered to the bed, and then I saw she was drunk. I
|
|
had not noticed it before, being absorbed in her fleshy beauty, and the
|
|
desire to see her cunt, and all of her, and join my body to hers.
|
|
|
|
There was a single candle in the room, fluttering, and needing snuffing,
|
|
but no snuffers. I snuffed it with my fingers. The room was in disorder,
|
|
the pot full, water in the basin, the bed unmade, the whole place the
|
|
picture of disorderly, drunken, harlotry. A nightgown was, lying on the
|
|
floor, clean linen on a little table. It looked so miserable, that I
|
|
thought I would go away at once, so took out five shillings, and laid
|
|
it down. "There is the money," I said, "I shant stop." "Come and fuck,"
|
|
said she in reply, rolling on to the bed, and pulling up her clothes.
|
|
She had but a gown on, nothing else. Thighs and legs as white and fat
|
|
as her neck came into sight, and a thicket of hair at the bottom of her
|
|
belly as dark as the hair on her head. The sight altered my intention,
|
|
I walked to the bed, and placed my hand on her cunt. "Fuck me," she
|
|
blurted out in her drunken voice again. I felt wild with voluptuous
|
|
delight, as my eyes gloated on the big breasts and thighs to where her
|
|
garters and stockings hid the flesh from view. All was dazzling white
|
|
except a nearly crispy-haired cunt in the middle of it. The contrast was
|
|
exquisite, was absolutely dazzling.
|
|
|
|
A strange train of ideas (how oddly they spring up at such times) came
|
|
into my head. "You've just had a man," I said, "your cunt's wet,--you've
|
|
just been fucked." "He ain't fucked me for three days,--we have been
|
|
a drinking gin, we have,--he paid, he hain't fucked me,--you fuck me,"
|
|
said she making a grab at my prick which was buttoned up yet,--"fuck
|
|
me,--you shall fuck me." All this was said in a hoarse, drunken,
|
|
incoherent manner, but the "fuck me" with a sudden violent energy, as
|
|
if she suddenly felt a stinging desire to have her cunt stretched.
|
|
"Fuck,--I'm bloody randy,--where's your prick?"
|
|
|
|
I took the light, pulled open her thighs, almost put the candle in
|
|
her cunt. She let me do just as I liked repeating, "Fuck me." She was
|
|
beautiful, her white firm flesh, her big round thighs, the lovely
|
|
globes of her arse would have excited the dead. "Pull off your gown." "I
|
|
shant." "You shall." I helped her up into a sitting posture, and
|
|
pulled it off in an instant. Then she fell back naked, showing peeps of
|
|
black-haired armpits. The next instant I was up her, and injected her.
|
|
How beautiful she seemed as I moved my prick up and down in that cunt,
|
|
spite of the drunken manner, and the miserable surroundings.
|
|
|
|
A most violent letch for her took hold of me. The women in the streets
|
|
I have described had fine women among them, but for the most part they
|
|
were plain in face, indifferent in form somewhere, and hideously coarse
|
|
in manner; but the beauty of this woman was so great, I forgot all
|
|
her coarseness. When I came to myself after my pleasures, she was
|
|
fast asleep. She had perhaps spent, that and the liquor called gin
|
|
overpowered her, and she forgot her business. Then the biting of fleas
|
|
worried me for half-an-hour, I spent my time in hunting for them, and
|
|
scratching myself, snuffing with my fingers the only tallow candle, and
|
|
now and then holding it over her to look at her beautiful face,
|
|
naked body, and unwashed cunt. The heat was intolerable. To be cool I
|
|
gradually took off all clothing but my shirt, at last took off that, and
|
|
then sat at the edge of the bed naked. I pulled open her legs, each lay
|
|
just as I placed them, wide apart. I held the candle between her thighs,
|
|
and opened her cunt-lips. Masses of thick sperm lay over her cunt, and
|
|
hid the entrance of the prick-hole. I played with it as my baudy fancy
|
|
dictated, frigged her, dipping my finger in the spunk below, and
|
|
then rubbing it on to her clitoris till it was dry, twisted down her
|
|
cunt-hair till it was wetter, and played every trick which a lascivious
|
|
fancy dictated. Gradually I stiffened under this exciting amusement, and
|
|
throwing my naked body on to hers, fucked her again. God only knows if
|
|
she knew I was fucking her, or not,--I don't. She awakened after I
|
|
had spent, turned on her side, and when I tried to get her on her back
|
|
again, she swore.
|
|
|
|
Whether the slight dozing had relieved her brain, or whether the fumes
|
|
of the liquor had evaporated, I don't know, but she soon became more
|
|
conscious, and though stupid, yet more awake. Her voice had still the
|
|
thick utterance, her answers still those of a person only partially
|
|
understanding what was said to her. I expect I had excited her passions
|
|
by my fingers, and not by what I said, for after awaking she again
|
|
blurted out, "Fuck me,--I want a fuck." A grab at my prick showed that
|
|
she knew where to find the means of giving herself pleasure, and I gave
|
|
it her. Then I dozed.
|
|
|
|
Knocks at the door aroused me, and a shrill voice cried out, "Kate,
|
|
Kate." I listened, "Are you alone?" said the voice. I shook Kate, and
|
|
awakened her a little. "Some one is knocking at your door," said I. "Oh!
|
|
damn,--arseholes," said she turning on her side, and dozing again.
|
|
|
|
"Kate,--knock, knock,--Kate, are you alone?--I'm going to bolt the
|
|
door,--they are all in," said the voice.
|
|
|
|
Kate made no reply, I was dressing, so opened the door. "I'm here, and
|
|
am going directly." "Is she drunk?" said the woman. "I think she
|
|
is." "Do you know her?" "No." "Well I will leave the door open." "I'm
|
|
going,--wait." There lay Kate dozing. When dressed I said, "I have left
|
|
five shillings on the table." "Awake her," said the woman (for I heard
|
|
and saw it was one). "You had better." "Kate, Kate", sung out the
|
|
woman. I shook Kate, who turned, opened her eyes, and said, "Oh I
|
|
damn,--don't." "Come in," said I to the woman. She did, and shook Kate.
|
|
"Oh! arse-holes. She's been lushing for three days," said the woman.
|
|
"Mind there are five shillings," said I, and disgusted I left, resolving
|
|
never to go near the drunken beast again.
|
|
|
|
But the woman had made a great impression on me. I was always, even
|
|
quite early in life, taken with a crummy woman, quite as much as with
|
|
a pretty face; and although so low a woman, I longed for her again,
|
|
and before many days sought her. It was on a blazing hot afternoon of a
|
|
summer's day, the sun shone brightly on the front of the houses on one
|
|
side of the street, the other was in shade. A street with perhaps a
|
|
dozen carts and wheel-barrows through it in a day, where children played
|
|
in the roadway, and women sat on the footways. I went along slouching on
|
|
the shady side, slowly looking, and not quite recollecting the number of
|
|
the house, and saw Kate sitting on a chair on the footway by her door.
|
|
|
|
She looked up vacantly as I got close to the house, with that look which
|
|
a low-class woman has who thinks the man above her, and not likely to
|
|
take her. "Come in," I said turning into the open door, and she followed
|
|
me, bringing her chair. "I'll give you five shillings," said I.
|
|
"All right." "Take off your dress." "All right, but give me the five
|
|
shillings first." I gave it her. She began undressing, her gown off left
|
|
but her chemise. "You don't want my chemise off?" "No,--lay at the
|
|
side of the bed." She laid herself down, threw up her chemise, and
|
|
the lovliest pair of thighs, belly, and cunt that ever man saw were
|
|
disclosed. To look, to open its lips, and thrust my prick up her were
|
|
the work of a minute. I roared as I touched her. I am told by women
|
|
that at that time of my life, when thoroughly randy and I saw the cunt
|
|
I liked that I gave a low roar as I closed on it with my pego. Kate told
|
|
me that I did so this time, when my prick first neared her thighs. I did
|
|
not then talk when in a woman's embraces; but fucked in silence.
|
|
|
|
I pulled out my prick, "Lay still,--keep your thighs open,--let's see
|
|
your cunt," said I trying to keep her in her position. "Oh! arseholes,"
|
|
said she closing her thighs, and getting up, and looking at me.
|
|
|
|
"Did you get your five shillings the other night?" said I, "you were
|
|
drunk." "Lor! are you the gent?" said she breaking out in a laugh, "I
|
|
didn't know you,--now I see you are like him,--yes I was lushy,--so
|
|
you've come agin.--Lor!" and she laughed. "How often did you fuck me?"
|
|
I told her. "Sit down, and talk," said she, and we both sat down on her
|
|
little cane-bottomed chairs.
|
|
|
|
"So you fucked me four or five times,--I don't know if I spent or not,
|
|
damned if I do,--think of your lying there, and being bitten by the
|
|
fleas,--the room was washed out yesterday, there ain't no fleas now.
|
|
So you pulled me about,--what a beast, rubbing your spunk about on my
|
|
cunt.--but Lor! a cunt's the proper place for it." After a few minutes
|
|
similar conversation she suddenly said, "Let's fuck agin." "Well let's
|
|
strip," Off went her chemise without reply. Gloating over her I stripped
|
|
naked, and was soon on her, and up her. She had not washed. She enjoyed
|
|
it. How we hugged each other's nakedness! The first words she uttered
|
|
afterwards were, "You are a bloody fine fucker,--where did you learn to
|
|
fuck so well?" giving me a vigorous kiss, and squeezing her cunt up to
|
|
me as she said it.
|
|
|
|
I washed, and wanting soap (she had none), she went to the door, and
|
|
called out for some. The woman brought it. Then there was no towel,
|
|
and again standing naked at the half-opened door, she called out to the
|
|
landlady to lend her one "I shant," said a voice, "you have now got
|
|
two of mine." "Oh! arseholes," bawled out Kate slamming the door, "the
|
|
bugger won't let me have one,--here dry your prick with my chemise, it's
|
|
quite clean."
|
|
|
|
Kate stood naked looking at me as I rubbed myself dry with her chemise,
|
|
bending slightly forward, holding her fingers under her cunt. "What a
|
|
lot you've spent," said she putting down the basin with my water in it,
|
|
and beginning to wash. "That's not clean," I remarked. "Oh! it's all the
|
|
same spunk," she replied, and afterwards, "You may look at my cunt if
|
|
you like," and she threw herself on the side of the bed, thighs wide
|
|
open. She was faultless. I pulled a chair to the side of the bed, and
|
|
contemplated her cunt at my leisure. The dirty white blind down in the
|
|
window only just mellowed the light, it was as light as day, I could
|
|
have hunted crabs, had there been any in her motte-thatch.
|
|
|
|
She asked me to give her gin. Some was sent for, then we sat drinking,
|
|
she taking it neat, I mixed with water. "Let's fuck," said she again,
|
|
and we fucked. More gin, more fucking, she was quicker to want fucking
|
|
than I was. It was getting dusk, then she said, "You're going, ain't
|
|
you? I want to make a few shillings to-night,--my rent's due to-morrow."
|
|
I gave her another five shillings, made her piss in the basin, and we
|
|
fucked again. I was fucked out, and at last she spent twice to my once,
|
|
our bodies were sticking together with sweat as we fucked. Then for
|
|
a few minutes we went to sleep. "You are a gent," said she, "I likes
|
|
you,--I hopes you'll come agin, and see me,--I likes a real gent."
|
|
|
|
As I went out I saw a man standing on the other side of the road looking
|
|
like a bricklayer. Turning back after I had gone a hundred feet or so,
|
|
I saw him cross the road, and go into the house. I went back, the
|
|
street-door was as it always was, open. Stepping inside I heard a male
|
|
voice through Kate's door, a woman came out from the back. "Who do you
|
|
want?" said she. "Kate." "Oh! she has got a friend with her,--shall I
|
|
knock?" "No," I replied, and went my way. I didn't like the idea of
|
|
her having a working-man after me, or before me. I was not then a
|
|
philosopher, "But what does it matter?" said I, "a man's a man."
|
|
|
|
I saw Kate next day, and told her she had had a man after me. "Yes
|
|
directly,--a chap I knows had been awaitin an hour, and he come in in
|
|
a hurry. 'I'm done', says I, but he would,--he's a rough un, and he'd
|
|
fucked me before you was at the end of the street." "Why you had not
|
|
washed your cunt." "No," she laughed, "the bugger went right into
|
|
your spendings,--he never knowed, and I had a good un of a cove
|
|
after him,--you brought me luck. I've got two new chemises, and four
|
|
towels,--let's fuck,--let's fuck," said she laying hold of me, and
|
|
unbuttoning my trows-ers. My balls hung over her bum in no time.
|
|
|
|
I visited her at intervals for about a year. She had the whitest flesh I
|
|
ever saw, and was very beautiful in face; the hair grew exceedingly
|
|
low on her forehead, yet it did not disfigure her, from her neck to her
|
|
calves her form was perfectly voluptuous, but she had big feet, and her
|
|
hands were large. I could not bear to see her feet in great boots, and
|
|
when looking at her lovely form used to keep my eyes from them. Her cunt
|
|
was perfectly beautiful and small; black, white, and carmine were never
|
|
more exquisitely blended.
|
|
|
|
She was revoltingly coarse in her talk, and even when sober her voice
|
|
was rough. That I did not like, but her language disgusted me. To
|
|
anything she did not like she said "arseholes," said it more frequently
|
|
than any other word until I stopped her. "Give me some gin," she would
|
|
say. "No you have had enough." "Oh! arseholes." Every body also was a
|
|
bloody bugger, or a bloody shit. She was lewd on me for a time, and made
|
|
me fuck her more than I wanted, but as I checked her foul language she
|
|
became indifferent to me. "Oh! I'm obliged to hold my tongue I suppose,"
|
|
then she would sulk, and then, "Well let's have another fuck," and all
|
|
would be right till I stopped her foul tongue again.
|
|
|
|
Half her time she was drunk. I would go there, not see her at the door,
|
|
then call out to the woman, "Is Kate in?" "Yes she's drunk, I ain't
|
|
seen her since the morning." Sometimes her door was locked, nothing then
|
|
roused her, and away I went. At other times she was in the bed, or
|
|
on it, and all but insensible. Several times I fucked her, put five
|
|
shillings in her pocket, and left without her knowing I had had her
|
|
until afterwards.
|
|
|
|
I had now fits of timidity, and used French letters at times, even when
|
|
she was quite sure she was all right. One day when she was very drunk, I
|
|
had her with a letter on, and as my cock dwindled out I eased the letter
|
|
off it, and with my finger pushed it well up her cunt, and went away
|
|
without paying her. I should like to have known what she thought when
|
|
she found the French letter up her. I never alluded to it, and she never
|
|
did. Why I behaved so I don't know, it is a wonder to myself. That night
|
|
I had entered her room, and left unobserved by any one.
|
|
|
|
When she was a little drunk only, she got spoony, and I could not get
|
|
away from her, she would lay hold of my prick, and keep to it. "I can't
|
|
do it again Kate." "Get on me, and I'll make you,"--and she usually did.
|
|
Then as liquor overtook her she ceased to wash her cunt after fucking,
|
|
would turn on her side, and go to sleep. I left her often snoring with
|
|
her cunt full, the money on the table.
|
|
|
|
It always was a wonder that she kept such a beautiful skin and look, but
|
|
she did; and always was cool, fresh, and healthy-looking, even if she
|
|
had been drunk for twenty-four hours previously. Her breath and body
|
|
were as sweet as milk, yet she never had a bath as far as I know, but
|
|
performed all her ablutions in a little basin, throwing the water into
|
|
the street when she had done with it. I have seen her wash from head
|
|
to foot that way in a quart of water, and a wet rag, and when done she
|
|
looked like ivory.
|
|
|
|
She was called Irish Kate, why?--I never knew, nor did she. She was not
|
|
Irish.
|
|
|
|
I had words with her one day, having lost a diamond pin. She had been
|
|
pulling me about that night, but the same night I had been into a house
|
|
with two women, and had felt their quims. I offered more than the value
|
|
of the pin, but never got it back. After that I did not go near her
|
|
again for a long time, but at length so longed for her that I did. She
|
|
cried with joy, and kept me fucking till my back.was well nigh broken.
|
|
|
|
Then I was for some time out of England. On my return, burning with
|
|
desire, I went one night to her house. She had died of cholera, which
|
|
was then raging.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XVIII.
|
|
|
|
Costermongers' children.--A small girl, mother, and mangie.--A French
|
|
letter fetched.--Young Gallows' exploits.--The customers' linen.--A
|
|
hard-fleshed bum.--Invitation to anus.--A strange letch.--One big
|
|
with child.--Fucked for a sovereign and pleasure.--A creole.--My
|
|
misery.--Reflections.
|
|
|
|
Close by Kate's was a street with a carriage way, at one end narrowing
|
|
to a footway only. On one side a row of small houses, on the other a
|
|
very high blank wall. Costermongers' barrows and carts stood in the
|
|
carriage way at night; clothes-lines with ragged garments hung across
|
|
the street in the day. One dark night prowling about, cunt-feeling young
|
|
girls and baudying generally, I went up this street. I had been up it
|
|
before, and loved to hear the boys and girls chivying each other among
|
|
the carts, hinting baudiness as they caught the girls, and kissed them,
|
|
the girls squealing when liberties were taken with them. Occasionally
|
|
standing in the shadow of the carts, I listened whilst a man would
|
|
stealthily go up against the blank wall, a woman follow him. I would
|
|
stand feeling my prick till I saw them come away (in two or three
|
|
minutes usually), and rush into Mary Davis' or Kate's to get a relief
|
|
for my excited ballocks. There was but a feeblish light in the street,
|
|
and in one part of it none.
|
|
|
|
As I passed I saw a small girl standing inside the door of a house,
|
|
and thought I would like the little one. Sometimes I wanted the biggest
|
|
woman I could get, sometimes the smallest. She took no notice of me, I
|
|
repassed, and there she still stood. "Is she gay?" I wondered, "she does
|
|
not look it." Lots of girls and women not gay stood in a similar manner
|
|
in those streets. Again I passed, and stopped. "Will you let me come in,
|
|
and give you a kiss?" "Yes sir," said she stepping back.
|
|
|
|
I stepped in after her, one or two steps down. The room was below, and
|
|
entered direct from the street. A miserable place; on one side a
|
|
mangle, on another a poor dirty bed, a tile floor, dirty walls, wooden
|
|
furniture, all miserable. Had I known, I should have been horrified at
|
|
entering such a hole, but in my lust I thought of nothing but the young
|
|
girl, of the probable hairless cunt, of her little bum, her smallness
|
|
and freshness. She looked fifteen years of age, and was quite short.
|
|
|
|
She closed the door, and looked. I looked at her. "I'll give you five
|
|
shillings." "All right sir." "Let me look at your quim." "All right
|
|
sir," said she getting on the bed. I pulled up her clothes, and saw
|
|
the little thighs, and the little cunt with a very small quantity of
|
|
lightish brown hair on it. How tight it was to my finger! I took the
|
|
guttering candle. "I'd like to fuck, but am frightened,--let me look
|
|
well at your cunt." "I'm all right," said she putting her fingers down,
|
|
and stretching open the lips, "quite clean indeed sir." "When were you
|
|
fucked last?" "It must be a week." "Arn't you every night?" "I don't
|
|
get the chance," still laying on her back, and stretching her cunt-lips
|
|
open, "I only go to the door quite late, when the neighbours have gone
|
|
in, cause they ain't gay close here." The house was the last in the
|
|
street where it narrowed to a footway.
|
|
|
|
I raised her up, laid her lengthways on the bed, and put my pego into
|
|
her hand, but fear came over me, and it would not stand. "I must do it
|
|
to you, but play with it a little." She laid hold of my prick. "It's not
|
|
stiff." "No my dear, frig it." She began. "Do you like feeling a prick?"
|
|
"I likes feeling men's things," she replied, "they are such funny
|
|
things, first little, then big, then little again."
|
|
|
|
"How old are you?" "Over fifteen, mother says." "Where is your mother?"
|
|
"In the back room,--look it's getting bigger, I did not think it would
|
|
be so big,--don't hurt me with your nail sir please," said she frigging
|
|
away clumsily, and when it was stiff leaving off, but looking earnestly
|
|
at my pego. I kept probing her cunt with my fingers, wondering at its
|
|
smallness.
|
|
|
|
A desire came to make her youthful mouth utter baudiness. "Say cunt
|
|
dear." "Cunt." "Say fuck." "Fuck." "You know what fucking is?" "Putting
|
|
that into this," said she with a chuckle, "ain't you going to do
|
|
it?--I'm quite clean." "Let me look again." Again the little hand down,
|
|
and stretched the lips. I prepared for action, again fear seized me, and
|
|
down my doodle drooped. "No dear, lay still, and I'll frig myself over
|
|
you,--turn on your belly,--let me see your bum,--there that will do." I
|
|
put some spittle on her bum, and rubbed my prick against it, but longed
|
|
for the hole between her thighs. "Have you got a French letter?" "I'll
|
|
ask mother," said she going into the adjoining room.
|
|
|
|
In came a woman of middle age suckling a baby. "She will fetch one, give
|
|
her the money,--make haste now,--never mind your bonnet,--run,--run. She
|
|
won't be long," said the woman to me.
|
|
|
|
"Your daughter?" I said to the woman who stood suckling her baby, and
|
|
staring at me. "Yes sir." The baby took to howling. Swinging it about to
|
|
quiet it, she went on in a whining tone, "We are so poor, we are almost
|
|
starved, we are,--what was I to do for a living?--I've nearly lost all
|
|
since my husband's left me, and can't afford to keep a big gal like
|
|
that; if she will go wrong I can't help it, I can't send her out,--I
|
|
catched her with a young Gallows, and the mischief were done, it were, I
|
|
knowed it, and I knowed it would be, so I did,--I could not keep her in,
|
|
and the chap were allus arter her,--she must live, and she's better at
|
|
home doing that, than doing it away from me,"--and much of the same sort
|
|
in a whining, apologetic tone without stopping, without my asking.
|
|
|
|
"Has she been gay long?" "Bless you sir, it ain't more nor two months
|
|
since I catched her with young Gallows,--he is in qued,--serve him
|
|
right; but he'll be after her agin when he is out, he will." "Where is
|
|
your husband?" "Oh! the vagabond's gone off with a hussey, and left me
|
|
with three children,--this here's the last. Drat you," said she shaking
|
|
the infant which would not leave off howling. "Oh! here she is."
|
|
The girl entered the house with the cundum, and the mother and baby
|
|
disappeared.
|
|
|
|
The affair was not enticing, my cock was flabby again, but the little
|
|
wench's naked belly stirred and stiffened me. I prepared the letter.
|
|
"Did you ever see one before?" "Yes a gent had one here one night, but
|
|
he did not put his thing into it." "What did he do then?" "He blew it
|
|
out, and popped it off," said the girl. "Oh! you wet it,--let me see how
|
|
you do it,--does it not feel cold?--it's a nasty thing. Indeed I'm
|
|
all right,--gals has diseases from doing it I know, but I
|
|
ain't,--look,"--and again the girl distended her cunt-lips without any
|
|
modesty or affectation.
|
|
|
|
Fearful, but (as often was the case with me and French letters), my cock
|
|
and the letter would not agree. My cock stiff without it, drooped its
|
|
head directly the wet flabby sheep's-gut touched its tip. At length it
|
|
was over my doodle, and shoved up the little cunt after much trouble.
|
|
"It don't feel nice," said the girl. A few shoves more, and I lost all
|
|
prudence, pulled it off, and drove my naked prick with such a thrust up
|
|
her little quim, that she cried out. Her cry of pain gave me pleasure,
|
|
and fetched me.
|
|
|
|
No one can lay so close up to you as a thin girl, two stout people can't
|
|
stick together like two lean ones. As I came to myself the little girl
|
|
was wriggling under me. "Oh! dear, just as it was beginning to feel
|
|
nice,--why did you do it so quick?" "Do you want it?" "Oh! I do,--do
|
|
shove a little,"--and the little cunt squeezed itself up to my belly,
|
|
and wriggled my doodle in her. I accepted the invitation, the girl
|
|
spent, and I had a second pleasure up her, after I had pulled my prick
|
|
out for a minute or two, to inspect it.
|
|
|
|
She brought me a basin, soap, and a napkin of beautiful quality and
|
|
white. "Ulloh! is this yours?" "It's something we had to wash and
|
|
mangle," said the girl. "It's a table napkin." "Yes sir."
|
|
|
|
"Don't you make a living by washing and mangling?" "No," said she,
|
|
"we have lost our business, father ran away, took linen, and sold
|
|
it,--people won't trust us,--none of those who lost their linen,--others
|
|
don't know us. Thank you sir," as I gave her the five shillings, "we
|
|
don't have as much sometimes in two days." "Wash your cunt my dear." She
|
|
went out of the room, and came back saying she had washed it. I felt it,
|
|
and she had. Then I talked for an hour with her.
|
|
|
|
I was curious. "Tell me who first did it to you." "I shant." "It was a
|
|
coster lad, your mother has told me." "She has not." "She has." "Yes
|
|
it was a coster I knowed, he's been locked up for a row, and break-ing
|
|
windows,--he is seventeen." "When did he first do it to you?" "I shant
|
|
tell you," said the girl laughing, "mother's listening, I know she is."
|
|
I had the poor girl on my knee, was pulling her pretty tight little cunt
|
|
about. "I'd like to do it again," said I. "You may, and welcome," said
|
|
the girl. "Ain't you fucked every night?" "No, I wish I were,--to get
|
|
money." "Where is the five shillings?" "Mother's taken it, she always
|
|
does." I fucked her again, gave her a trifle more, left, and never had
|
|
her after.
|
|
|
|
Then I had a woman of a singular build: she was shortish, and had the
|
|
hardest flesh on her bum I ever felt, it was impossible to pinch it.
|
|
She was a very large bummed woman, it was quite out of proportion to
|
|
her size, so were her breasts. She was as near as I can recollect about
|
|
twenty, but had the form of a woman of thirty, her cunt was almost
|
|
hairless, and had no lips, the lappels and clitoris showed when she
|
|
was standing up with thighs closed; when her thighs were open her cunt
|
|
looked as if the lips had been cut off, she had lightish brown hair
|
|
and almost colourless eyes. Her room was ragged, and I always found her
|
|
cooking, she wore garters of ragged ribbon below her knees, and ragged
|
|
slippers. For all that I went to see her I suppose a dozen times, and
|
|
nearly always fucked her from behind, dog-fashion. The arse-cheeks were
|
|
so firm, that I delighted to feel, and slap them as I fucked; and spite
|
|
of her big bum I recollect no woman whose cunt I got further up in that
|
|
position, as I did hers.
|
|
|
|
One day she said whilst I was fucking her, "I thought you were going to
|
|
try the other hole." I looked, and her arsehole was as plainly visible
|
|
in the rear as her split was visible in the front. I can't tell now
|
|
how it came about, but know we began talking about that hole, and its
|
|
pleasures. One night from talking I got to action, she said she would
|
|
like her bum-hole broached. Such things were not to my taste, but egged
|
|
on by her talk I tried; then she said she was afraid it would hurt, and
|
|
although we talked more than once about it, and she always asked me to
|
|
try, it always ended in nothing, and I avoided her soon after.
|
|
|
|
In the next street a woman after I had done her said, "You have got me
|
|
in the family way." Something led to my remarking that I should like
|
|
to fuck a woman in the family way, and her saying that she knew one
|
|
who would be confined in a fortnight, a nice woman, a fine woman, her
|
|
sister, the wife of a mechanic, but badly off just now. I can't tell
|
|
what had made me take such a desire, but I said I would give a sovereign
|
|
to see her cunt and big belly, and fuck her, and would give five
|
|
shillings if she would get this for me, not believing she was a married
|
|
woman, or her sister, although the wench said so.
|
|
|
|
Asserting that it was no gay woman, and that a sovereign would be a
|
|
great help; she would go and see about it, if I would wait. Returning
|
|
she said that if I would really give a sovereign her sister would let
|
|
me, but that I could not stop long, for fear of her husband. We went
|
|
into an adjacent street of poor houses, but evidently with a different
|
|
class of tenants. She entered one, I waited close by till she beckoned
|
|
me in, then I found a decent young woman with an enormous belly who
|
|
asked me to show her the sovereign first, then to give it to her first,
|
|
which I would not. She dallied, and put off the affair, and I thought I
|
|
was hum-bugged. At length she got on to a clean although humble bed, the
|
|
other woman pulled up her clothes, I smoothed her belly, and with much
|
|
trouble got her legs open, and tried to see her cunt.
|
|
|
|
She resisted, but gave way under the persuasion of the other woman who
|
|
kept saying, "Do now,--what did you say yes for, if you meant no?--a
|
|
bargain is a bargain,--don't make a fool of me,--well if you are ashamed
|
|
now, you should abin afore," and so forth. At length I had had a good
|
|
look at her cunt.
|
|
|
|
Then I longed for a fuck, indeed took a letch for it, pulled out my
|
|
prick, and asked her to let me have her. "Not she," said the sister,
|
|
"you have seen all, and must be off, her man may come home at any
|
|
minute." The big-bellied one was much more quiet, laughed, I took out my
|
|
sovereign, wetted it with my spittle, and balancing it on the top of my
|
|
prick, told her to take it off, which she did in a very clever way; for
|
|
instead of taking it off with one hand, she shut one hand against the
|
|
other, enclosing my prick and the sovereign too in her hands. Both women
|
|
laughed, and the gay one said, "Well Mary, you've had more than one
|
|
man's in your hand now at all events,--you'll never tell Jack I'll
|
|
swear,--now go sir,--her man don't like _me_ here, and he won't like
|
|
_you_, I'll swear."
|
|
|
|
My letch overcame me, I forgot how poor I was, and would have given my
|
|
clothes off my back for a poke up the cunt beneath that hard big belly,
|
|
so asked her again, and stood with my prick out, both women laughing. I
|
|
prayed her to let me again feel, and she consented. She was then sitting
|
|
down, I had to put my hands up her clothes, and stoop to do it, my back
|
|
was to her so-called sister. She laughed, and looking at her sister
|
|
whilst I felt her, caught hold of my prick, gave it a grasp, and
|
|
immediately relinquished it. Her sister did not see this done.
|
|
|
|
I dallied a few minutes with her cunt, and fancied that if the other
|
|
woman was out of the way the big-bellied one would be complaisant. So
|
|
I asked if there was good gin to be had. It was a bait that the sister
|
|
took at once. Yes there was. I gave her money to fetch gin, and to buy
|
|
a bun and a bottle of ginger-beer; a move to keep her out of the way as
|
|
long as I could.
|
|
|
|
I had buttoned my trowsers up, and ceased feeling and asking; but the
|
|
instant she was gone, out I pulled my stiff-stander. "Let me fuck you."
|
|
"Oh! she won't be long." "I won't be a minute." I flew to the door, and
|
|
locked it, the woman got up from the chair; made no resistance, raised
|
|
her bum with difficulty on to the bed, opened her thighs and we fucked
|
|
in a jiffy. It seemed that I no sooner was cunted than we both spent.
|
|
I unlocked the door, and by the time the other woman returned, not six
|
|
minutes had passed. The two sat gin-drinking a few minutes, and then the
|
|
harlot and I left together.
|
|
|
|
As I uncunted I whispered, "When your sister is gone I'll come back."
|
|
"Very well." The gay woman made off at the end of the street in the
|
|
direction of her house. Waiting a minute I returned to the big-bellied
|
|
one, who was at the door, we went in, and I locked the door. "My man may
|
|
be home at any minute," said she, "so we must be quick." I threw her on
|
|
the edge of the bed again, her cunt was still covered with my sperm, and
|
|
turning her arse towards me we fucked dog-fashion. She enjoyed it.
|
|
The instant my prick was out I was off. I never saw her, or her sister
|
|
again.
|
|
|
|
Both women were tallish, and spoke with a strong Northern accent. I
|
|
quite believe the one with the swollen belly was not gay.
|
|
|
|
These are the most noticeable events which occurred during the period of
|
|
my narrowest means. In that time I must have seen the privates of fifty
|
|
women, and copulated with nearly that number. Had it not been for their
|
|
pleasures, coarse as they were, I think I should have made away with
|
|
myself, so miserable was I. How I accommodated myself to the class I
|
|
can't imagine; for although a few were nice, prettyish, healthy women,
|
|
the majority were low coarse creatures, living in poor single rooms
|
|
which were often not clean; but both rooms and women were as good as
|
|
could be expected for the few shillings I gave for their pleasures.
|
|
|
|
My strong animal wants carried me through, and added to that perhaps was
|
|
a certain amusement in noticing the difference in manner between them,
|
|
and the highly paid Bonarobas, whose silks, satins, and laces I had
|
|
helped to pay for at the rate of a sovereign an hour, and often higher.
|
|
Besides as already said, my imagination helped me. When my prick was
|
|
up one of the ill-favored ones, and I was clasping a flabby backside,
|
|
I used to shut my eyes, and fancy some charming creature whom I had had
|
|
elsewhere. I cultivated these dreams in copulating.
|
|
|
|
Up to this period I had tailed a neighbourhood of free cunts, as far
|
|
as trifling sums would get them me. A shilling a feel, or a look at
|
|
the nudity, and for half-a-crown to five shillings at the outside for
|
|
complete enjoyment was a tariff generally accepted.
|
|
|
|
Then a remnant of my former fortune which had been in litigation was
|
|
settled in my favour, and I had a little ready money. Immediately I
|
|
left off frequenting the poor Doxies of whom I have told, and went to a
|
|
higher class, in a better neighbourhood. My money was soon gone, for I
|
|
had debts among other things to settle out of it. Whilst it lasted I
|
|
had some very nice women, among whom I shall always recollect a tall,
|
|
superbly shaped creole, with dazzling white teeth (a feature in women
|
|
which always has had a great attraction for me), and who was one of the
|
|
most voluptuous women in her embraces I ever yet have had; but she was
|
|
plain almost to ugliness. In the rest of my amours there was nothing to
|
|
need special notice, they were all fugitive, and the women were changed
|
|
frequently.
|
|
|
|
It is difficult to narrate more without divulging my outer life. I would
|
|
fain keep that hidden, but it is impossible, I shall however tell as
|
|
little as may be and obscure it, but without falsifying or distorting
|
|
any facts relating to my amorous pranks, some of which were not sought
|
|
by me. I fain would have led a steadier life, and wished a home with a
|
|
woman I could love; but I had an unquiet home, and a woman there whom
|
|
I hated in bed and at board. I tried at times to overcome my antipathy,
|
|
abstained from women for weeks at a time, so that sexual want might
|
|
generate a sort of love, but it was useless, without reward, and a life
|
|
of misery was before me. I broke out under it, wonder I did not break
|
|
down, and should have done so, had it not been for whores. Cunt came
|
|
to my rescue, and alone gave me forgetfulness, a relief far better
|
|
than gambling or drinking, the only other alternatives I could have had
|
|
recourse to.
|
|
|
|
And now I pass over a short period, in which I did much the same as I
|
|
have just written of, until a lucky sympathy brought me a happier change
|
|
in my amours.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIX.
|
|
|
|
My home life.--Heart-broken.--In the parlour.--Maid Mary's
|
|
sympathy.--Don't cry master.--On the sofa.--Both in lust.--
|
|
Impotent.
|
|
|
|
I was still poor, but had got into an employment, and was living in a
|
|
small eight-roomed house. I kept one servant only, but was pinched to
|
|
keep up appearances. None of the outside world could have known how much
|
|
I was pinched. I went home regularly, sat for hours by myself reading,
|
|
brooding, fretting, and even crying bitter tears, at the time I take up
|
|
my narrative.
|
|
|
|
Our servant was named Mary. A tall woman about twenty-one years of age,
|
|
splendidly built, stout of form, and with big breasts and haunches. Her
|
|
face was lovely, her eyes almost the most beautiful hazel I ever saw,
|
|
its expression dove-like, her complexion as clear and bright as a rose.
|
|
She looked as if she ate three meals a day, shit regularly, slept eight
|
|
hours, and was fucked nightly, and was in brief a most lovely creature,
|
|
and the picture of health. She had a mouth filled with lovely teeth, one
|
|
of which was missing, and showed its absence when she laughed, it was
|
|
the only defect visible about her. Another handsome woman whom I have
|
|
had since, had also lost two front-teeth, which showed in a similar
|
|
manner, but that lady always smiled, and rarely laughed, so as to avoid
|
|
showing the defect. False teeth were a rarity in those days, and quite
|
|
beyond the means of poor people.
|
|
|
|
She had been with us about three months. There was mystery about her,
|
|
like a former servant of my mother's, she scarcely ever wanted to go
|
|
out. At times we heard her singing, at others sobbing, and it used to be
|
|
remarked that she was moping. I thought my wife knew more about her than
|
|
she said, but to her I spoke as little as possible about anything. Mary
|
|
was an indifferent but willing servant, was said to have come from the
|
|
country, to have been living with an aunt a short time in London, and
|
|
that ours was her first place. She was with us pretty well worked and
|
|
scolded, but not by me.
|
|
|
|
I had been struck by her beauty and her ways, which were winning,
|
|
friendly, and unlike a servant's, yet without being presuming, and I was
|
|
as kind to her, both in manner and word as I dared to be; but I had
|
|
been annoyed and suspected for speaking kindly to servants, and to avoid
|
|
strife was cold, even harsh to them in manner. Mary was witness of
|
|
the sullen domestic misery in which I lived. I had seen a pained,
|
|
sympathetic glance at me at times when she heard our wrangles, and was
|
|
confident that she pitied me.
|
|
|
|
Nevertheless I had no sensual intentions towards her, holding it as
|
|
fitting carefully to respect my home, whatever I did out of it. I might
|
|
have thought about her hidden charms and probably had had that tingling
|
|
in my prick which a pretty woman often gives a man however virtuous he
|
|
may be. But it went no further.
|
|
|
|
My last clap may have made me abstinent, or want of money had, or
|
|
perhaps other motives which beset a man who wished a different order of
|
|
things in his home affected me, for I know that for weeks I had barely
|
|
had an emission, excepting by nocturnal dreams; and though dying for a
|
|
genial fuck, yet avoided it, and worked at my occupation to get money
|
|
and forget my troubles. This woman changed all my resolves, and launched
|
|
me again into sexual pleasures. I may remark also, curious as it may
|
|
seem, that instead of fattening, and getting strong by abstinence, I got
|
|
just the reverse. Every time I spent involuntarily on my night-shirt,
|
|
I awaked fatigued, agitated, nervous. I lost appetite, got thinner and
|
|
thinner, and more and more miserable the less I had women.
|
|
|
|
One fine summer's afternoon I came home before my usual time, it was
|
|
about four o'clock P.M. Mary opened the door, she was alone in the
|
|
house. I went to my room, then came down into the parlours, and for a
|
|
time sat there looking into my garden and smoking. Grief overcame me as
|
|
I looked round at the home in which there was no one to welcome me, so
|
|
I walked into the garden, and saw the maid doing some work at the back
|
|
kitchen door. "Your mistress is out?" I had never on any day asked that
|
|
before, as far as I can recollect, not caring to know; and she might
|
|
have been upstairs. "Yes sir." "Did she say when she would return?" "No
|
|
sir, but it will be I dare say about the usual time." "When is that?"
|
|
"Half-past five, or six o'clock, perhaps later." I again turned down the
|
|
garden, and as that did not relieve my dullness, returned to the house.
|
|
I could not read though I tried, sat down on a chair by the dining-room
|
|
table, laid my head on my hands upon it, and thought of my unhappy home
|
|
till I cried bitterly.
|
|
|
|
A hand laid on my shoulder, a voice said, "Don't you take on so
|
|
Master,--don't you now,--she's not worth it,--cheer up,--don't you take
|
|
on so." I looked up, it was Mary looking full at me, her eyes full of
|
|
tears.
|
|
|
|
I started up astonished. "I beg your pardon," said she looking
|
|
uncomfortable, "I couldn't bear to see you so unhappy." Her interest in
|
|
me struck me to the heart, without premeditation I threw my arms
|
|
round her, pressed her mouth to mine, it unresistingly met it, and we
|
|
passionately kissed for two or three minutes; kissed till I recovered
|
|
my senses, my tears still running down, and then said, "Mary you
|
|
_are_ kind,--you are a dear, good girl,--a good, affectionate, loving
|
|
creature,--I am unhappy, miserable, but how do you know that?" "How
|
|
could I be off of knowing?--how could you be anything else with
|
|
her?--but don't take on so Master,--she beant worth it,--and you so
|
|
good, and so kind,--I hate her when I look at her, and then look at you.
|
|
Oh! I beg your pardon sir,--don't say anything,"--and as if astonished
|
|
at herself, she disengaged herself, and stood looking at me. I closed
|
|
with her again, folding her tightly to me, and we kissed till we could
|
|
kiss no longer. My tears fell on her face, and hers ran down my cheeks,
|
|
so close were they together.
|
|
|
|
The parlours divided by folding doors mostly open, ran from back to
|
|
front. A sofa was close by the dining-table. "Sit down," said I. She
|
|
did. I put my arm round her neck, pulled her face to mine, and kissed
|
|
again that divinely pink and velvety cheek. Then her arm went round my
|
|
waist, and lips to lips, each instant we kissed, and sat and talked of
|
|
my miseries; yet as far as I recollect not the slightest desire to have
|
|
her had then come into my head, all was delight at my trouble being
|
|
shared, at a kind, soft, pretty woman commiserating me.
|
|
|
|
After long talking and kissing, and looking at her, a sense of her.
|
|
great beauty suddenly struck me, just as if I had never noticed it
|
|
before. I recollect telling her so.
|
|
|
|
Then a thrill of desire shot through me and staggered me. I trembled as
|
|
the want overtook me, and drew her closer to me, kissed more fervently,
|
|
and sighed. She sighed. My lust had kindled hers, and yet I had not
|
|
spoken of it. My hand went on to her knees, I felt the thighs gently,
|
|
felt their plumpness through the summer clothing, slowly my hand dropped
|
|
lower kissing her all the while, and bending her forward with me, as I
|
|
bent forward, with my dropping hand.
|
|
|
|
A long pause. I scarcely knew why, and then my hand went still lower,
|
|
till it touched her ankles, still kissing her, and bending her with me
|
|
(oh! how well I recollect it), then my right hand went quite slowly
|
|
up her clothes to her knees, and there I stopped, frightened at my
|
|
advances. Opening her eyes she gently repulsed me, and murmured, "Oh!
|
|
Master,--Master,--what are you doing,--pray don't." Her eyes were filled
|
|
with soft passion, her resistance physically would not have moved a
|
|
butterfly, but morally she affected me. I became conscious of what I was
|
|
driving on to un-premeditatingly.
|
|
|
|
I desisted, removed my hand, but passion now controlled me. I kissed
|
|
again. "Let me feel, oh! let me dear feel you," bending her forward
|
|
with me, I replaced my hand. "Oh! Master pray don't,--think what you
|
|
are doing,--of who I am," said she lovingly. "Oh! I won't," said she
|
|
sharply,--but too late, my fingers were on her clitoris, I had begun
|
|
that gentle twiddling which always ends in fucking. "Oh!--no,--oh!--
|
|
pray." Voluptuousness had overcome her, her mouth was glued to mine, her
|
|
eyes fixed on mine; gently they closed, then opened, always looking
|
|
into mine. Her breathing was short, she was past thought, she was mine.
|
|
Gently pressing her back on the sofa, she raised her limbs, I lifted her
|
|
clothes, and tearing open my trowsers threw myself on her. My fingers
|
|
for an instant touched her cunt, a rapid probe, and then my prick! My
|
|
God! it was not standing, not a bit of swell or stiffness was in it, it
|
|
was as a sucked gooseberry, a mere bit of dwindling, flexible, skinny
|
|
gristle, a piece of loose, flabby flesh, and nothing more.
|
|
|
|
I had been occasionally, but rarely suddenly unequal to love's duty
|
|
as already told, had gone home with gay women, my prick standing as I
|
|
entered their houses, then suddenly it had shrunk, something about them
|
|
having upset me. Occasionally it was a sudden fear of the ladies' fever,
|
|
or something looked less inviting when their petticoats were off, than
|
|
I had imagined when drapery hid their charms, or else the fear that my
|
|
prick would be thought small. At other times I could not account for it
|
|
at all. I told my doctor of it. He said that it was nervousness, but the
|
|
knowledge that I had once been so affected, affected me often afterwards
|
|
when I went indoors with girls. "Shall I be able to fuck?" I used to
|
|
think, I who had already fucked two hundred women. But so it was, a fear
|
|
of inability brought on inability. The power often returned to me a few
|
|
minutes afterwards, yet sometimes not for hours.
|
|
|
|
There was nothing to account for it now, I had more or less abstained
|
|
for weeks, there lay one of the choicest female forms ever presented
|
|
to man's eyes, a dark-brown crispy-haired cunt with a tiny bit of pink
|
|
clitoris showing between a large pair of thighs like ivory, and a sweet
|
|
face above turned on one side with eyes closed, and blushing a yielding
|
|
up to me. And I liked the woman, felt mad for her, yet as my prick
|
|
rubbed against her pleasure-pit, it became useless. I got up, looked at
|
|
her as she lay motionless with thighs extended, stood almost frantic,
|
|
frigged my prick, probed her, and again threw myself on her as I
|
|
stiffened; but no sooner had my prick touched her beautiful cunt, than
|
|
as if bewitched, it shrunk from entering it, I could not even thumb it
|
|
up.
|
|
|
|
I broke into a sweat. "My God what will she think of me?" I dreaded
|
|
to get off, and look her in the face, feeling so ashamed, I kissed her
|
|
taking her head in my hands, again got off, kissed all round her cunt,
|
|
and smelt its inciting aroma, asked her to be still, said I should be
|
|
all right directly. So time wore on, she never moving excepting to push
|
|
her clothes down as I rose and exposed her, nor opening her eyes, nor
|
|
uttering a word. "My God what is the matter with me, I don't know but I
|
|
can't," I said at last. Then she put quite down her clothes, and sitting
|
|
up on the sofa gave me a kiss, said, "I must go, and see about laying
|
|
the things for dinner," and off she went.
|
|
|
|
I did not stop her, but was glad when she left the room, being so
|
|
ashamed that I could not look at her. It was a relief not to have to
|
|
speak, to excuse, to explain. I was reeking with sweat from exertion and
|
|
nervous anxiety sat thinking and frigging, felt sensation of pleasure
|
|
without stiffness, and only stiffened after half-an-hour's rubbing. With
|
|
prick out and in hand, downstairs then I went, she was boiling potatoes.
|
|
|
|
"Mary come up, come, I am all right,--let me." She would not. "I can't
|
|
Master, I can't,--what will Missus think if she finds nothing ready?" Nor
|
|
could I induce her. I incited her by talk, she kept on ejaculating "oh!"
|
|
to my baudy remarks, and blushing like a rose; but I could get no more.
|
|
"If Missus comes home, and sees you through the area, what will she
|
|
say?--Pray go up Master." Yielding under the fear of being surprised, at
|
|
length up I went to the parlour.
|
|
|
|
I knew she would be up to lay the cloth, waited in the parlour till she
|
|
did, keeping my prick in hand, and trembling with anxiety. When she
|
|
had laid it, "Now," said I, "look here." "No,--no,--no,--Missus may be
|
|
home,--pray think of me." But a stiff prick close to a randy woman is a
|
|
great persuader. "Come dear, come," and I pulled her. Again she was down
|
|
on the sofa, again that divine belly was under me, again as I opened the
|
|
lips of her cunt my prick dwindled to nothing. "Hush! there's Mistress'
|
|
step,--there is the front-gate slamming. Get up,--get up, oh! let me
|
|
get up." Upstairs I rushed to my own sitting-room as I heard a knock at
|
|
the door, and had only time to button up my disgraced doodle before I
|
|
heard the woman tramping upstairs to our bed-room above. How I loathed
|
|
her!
|
|
|
|
Half-an-hour after that I sat down to dinner, having composed myself.
|
|
Mary brought up the dishes. The instant I saw her my cock stiffened,
|
|
it kept stiff all the evening, I could not sleep for it, was tempted to
|
|
fuck, or frig myself, but did neither, feeling sure I should have Mary,
|
|
and would not spend a drop of my sperm till I did. "What does she think
|
|
of me?--will she believe I am a man?--will she let me again?--when shall
|
|
I get the chance?--what enervated me so at the critical moment?--oh! my
|
|
God if she lets me, and I am seized so again, what shall I do then?"--and
|
|
so on ran my thoughts. I lay planning how to get her the whole night,
|
|
and awakened haggard and unrefreshed in the morning.
|
|
|
|
Then I reflected less nervously. "My finger has been up her cunt," I
|
|
thought, "no pain, no recoil,--how quiet she laid,--then she has been
|
|
fucked before,--then what must she think of me?" and so on ran my
|
|
thoughts till I was in an agony of disgrace. My haggard look was
|
|
noticed. I was worried, and should not be home to dinner. "Why?" That
|
|
was my business. Well then she would spend the afternoon with Mrs.
|
|
-------- would I fetch her? Yes at half-past ten o'clock. She wanted to
|
|
come home earlier. Then she might come by herself. Well then she would
|
|
wait for me till half-past ten.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XX.
|
|
|
|
The next day.--On the door-mat.--On the sofa.--On her
|
|
belly.--Eight hours fucking.--At a brothel.--An afternoon's
|
|
amusement.
|
|
|
|
Instead of being late I went home about two P.M., just after luncheon
|
|
time. "Is Mary alone, or not?" I thought, and had arranged for that. I
|
|
waited in a cab, told a boy to take a letter to No.--but not to give it
|
|
unless the lady was at home; if she were not, to bring it back to me,
|
|
and he should have a shilling when he returned to me. If asked, he was
|
|
to say he had been told to leave it, but not to say by whom. The letter
|
|
was properly addressed, but inside was a sheet of blank paper only. Back
|
|
he came with the letter,--the lady was out.
|
|
|
|
Even then I was not sure, so drove up and down two or three times in
|
|
front of my house, to see if I could discover any signs of Mary not
|
|
being alone, and then I dismissed the cab. My prick had been standing on
|
|
and off all day, I was in a fearful state of nervous erotic excitement.
|
|
When I thought of her beautiful belly my prick nearly lifted me off the
|
|
seat, the next minute I had fears of being taken as I had been the day
|
|
previously. Would she let me now?--would she be in the mood?--would she
|
|
not laugh at me, instead of putting her arms around my neck, and her
|
|
eyes fill with tears? My heart beat audibly with these tumultuous
|
|
thoughts as I knocked at the door. To my horror I felt my prick
|
|
shrinking as I stood on the landing feeling it through my trowsers
|
|
pocket.
|
|
|
|
Mary opened the door, surprise in her eyes, and a slight look of fear.
|
|
"You sir!" "Is your Mistress in?" "No sir." To step inside, close the
|
|
door, place my arms round her, and kiss her rapturously was the work of
|
|
an instant. She kissed me, and I her for a minute, and glory to God
|
|
my prick was like a rod of hot iron standing up against my belly, and
|
|
throbbing to emit its juices up the dear girl's cunt, against which its
|
|
poor little tip not twenty-four hours before had dangled and rubbed so
|
|
uselessly.
|
|
|
|
A stoop, a struggle. "Adun now--Master,--you shant,--oh! you musn't,"
|
|
and again I was upright, my lips on her sweet lips, my finger on her
|
|
clitoris, her face scarlet with modesty, her eyes closed. What woman can
|
|
long withstand that irritating, voluptuous, restless movement, of the
|
|
male finger on her cunt? Soft words now, "Oh! don't," as I stooped down
|
|
to lift her petticoats, and she pushed them over my hand. Another slight
|
|
struggle, again our lips meet, again my finger rubs the smooth clitoris,
|
|
now her hand grasps a hot prick, and with her lips to mine she
|
|
stands with her back up against the wall of the passage close to the
|
|
street-door on the door-mat. So we stand kissing and feeling, I don't
|
|
know how long, for who can count time in such delights.
|
|
|
|
"Come to the parlour, come." "No, no,--oh I pray." I edged her along,
|
|
one hand still up her petticoats, she trying to push them down. "No I
|
|
won't,--there now." "Do Mary dear,--let's do it,--I'm a man,--let's do
|
|
it,--look, look how my prick throbs for you,--it will spend." Removing
|
|
my hand from her cunt, I seized hold of both her hands with mine, and
|
|
began gently dragging her along the passage to the parlour, she leaning
|
|
back gently resisting, I leaning back tugging her, my prick red-tipped,
|
|
stiff, and throbbing standing out in its randy glory between us.
|
|
|
|
I got her into the parlour, a flood of sunshine struck full on us from
|
|
the back window as we did so (windows both back and front in the long
|
|
room). There she seemed half unconscious. Kind of heart, pitying,
|
|
liking me, her splendid healthy physique, her fully-developed passions,
|
|
passions of which she had tasted the full pleasure, but which had been
|
|
for a long time ungratified, were roused to intensity by the feel of my
|
|
prick, by my groping her cunt, by the excitement of the position; all
|
|
had relazed her nervous system, and absorbed her in voluptuousness.
|
|
What did she think? Did she think at all?--did she ever know? How can
|
|
I recollect what I thought in that maddening moment of fierce desire to
|
|
have her? I grasped her round the waist, and pushed her to the sofa. No
|
|
resistance, not a word was said. My arse knocked hard against the table,
|
|
and hurt me. She is down on the sofa, her petticoats up, I see the
|
|
creamy flesh, large round thighs, the dark hair on her cunt for a
|
|
second, I am on her, up her, a slight sob as my prick goes up with the
|
|
thrust of a giant, and we are spending in each other's embraces, mouth
|
|
to mouth, belly to belly, prick to cunt, ballocks to bum-cheeks, almost
|
|
the instant I had covered her, and grasped her smooth fat buttocks. I
|
|
have no sense of time, all is oblivium and elysium at the same time.
|
|
|
|
Our sighs of pleasure are over, there is no uncunt-ing, no stopping;
|
|
but with rigid prick still up to its roots in her cunt, on again we
|
|
go fucking in earnest. Now is the higher pleasure. The first was a
|
|
maddening desire for each other, a fuck finished before it was begun.
|
|
Now we are fucking with soft pleasure, and the thoughts of the greater
|
|
pleasure to come, of my spunk to spurt, of her juices to ooze to meet
|
|
it, in a cunt already flooded. I recollect smoothing her hair back from
|
|
her forehead as I fucked, of kissing and meeting her tongue with mine,
|
|
and spending with rapture, then waking from a doze, and finding her half
|
|
asleep, I on the top of her, my cock still up her. My trowsers not let
|
|
down had ridden up, and were cutting me tightly under my balls with a
|
|
painful sensation, and all this was on a narrowish sofa, a modern cheap
|
|
bit of furniture unlike the grand big one in mother's house, on which
|
|
many a servant had had her cunt basted by me.
|
|
|
|
She lay with her beautiful head on one side, with eyes closed, with her
|
|
long hair falling loose, and her cap tumbled off. As I lay I loosened
|
|
my braces, and little by little took the strain off my testicles, and my
|
|
balls fell down into their natural position. I put my hand down to feel
|
|
how my prick lay, the sperm was oozing out all round it. I wanted to see
|
|
her quim, and pulled out, then putting my hands against the sofa-squab,
|
|
I pushed myself gently up, rose on to my knees between her thighs, and
|
|
looking down saw the sperm between her cunt-lips.
|
|
|
|
She opened her eyes, pushing gently down her clothes; but the glance had
|
|
been enough. With prick still stiffish down I fell on her, and was up
|
|
her again in the twinkling of an eye, lodging my prick in preparation
|
|
for another fuck.
|
|
|
|
Now all is clear, our lust assuaged. "I've fucked you,--I'm a man you
|
|
see," I cried triumphantly. She closed her eyes, my prick came out,
|
|
I pushed it back, again out, again up, and so on for a time. A long
|
|
business was fucking now, long friction, no result, then a long rest,
|
|
our genitals joined, their hairs glued together, yet no fear of a
|
|
failure. My machine went on ramming, moans of pleasure at length came
|
|
from her, her hands clasped me tightly, and with a heave and cry of "Oh!
|
|
my darling," she again spent with me, my prick aching with its labour of
|
|
love.
|
|
|
|
Then I dozed an instant on her, she seemed asleep, I was squeezed
|
|
uncomfortably next the wall, my prick satisfied with its duty, at the
|
|
first movement left her cunt. I moved her to get off, my trowsers had
|
|
dropped to my knees, entangled my legs, and I gently fell on to the
|
|
floor, catching at her outer thigh, and pulling it off the sofa as I did
|
|
so to break my tumble. Up she sat dazed, her petticoats above her knees,
|
|
I at her feet, looking intently where her closing thighs hid the seat of
|
|
our pleasures from me.
|
|
|
|
"Oh! my gracious!" said she starting up, and letting down one
|
|
front-blind quite, and half of the other (there were two windows that
|
|
side of the room). The brilliant sun had lowered, and came into the room
|
|
in a flood of radiance from the Back-window, and the room was light and
|
|
bright throughout its long and narrow length. Although in a very wide
|
|
street, the neighbours from the houses opposite could easily have
|
|
seen right into our room, could have seen us on the sofa. Usually when
|
|
sitting in the room at that hour of the day, we kept down the blind
|
|
of the back-window to prevent this. Worse than that, the steps to the
|
|
street-door were so close to, one front-window, that by stretching
|
|
forward (very much it is true, but I had done it), any one could see
|
|
into the room, even on to half of the sofa on which Mary and I had been
|
|
amusing ourselves. What an awful risk we had run.
|
|
|
|
We looked at each other anxiously. "Oh!" said she, "if any one saw us!"
|
|
I looked through our blind. Every blind in the houses opposite was drawn
|
|
down to shut out the sun. Then I sat by her side, did nothing but look
|
|
at her for a time, so delighted and satisfied was I at having vindicated
|
|
my manhood, until she rose to go. That aroused me, and I stopped her.
|
|
|
|
"Let me go." "No." "If Mistress comes home--" "She won't." "She may."
|
|
"No,--I've fucked you,--you thought I was not a man, did you not?" "Do
|
|
let me go." "Come up again then." "Well presently." "You are going to
|
|
wash your cunt." "Hush Master." "You shant go." "Now let me." "Kiss
|
|
me then." We kissed and kissed. Could I do it again? The idea of her
|
|
moistened cunt inflamed me, I pulled her back, thrust my fingers on to
|
|
her cunt spite of her resistance, and never shall I forget the feel
|
|
of that and her thighs. "It's dirty of you," said Mary, and disengaged
|
|
herself she rushed downstairs. I followed her into the back-kitchen,
|
|
were she washed her quim in a wooden bowl, but did not dry it. I chaffed
|
|
her, then we went into the front-kitchen, sat down, and looked at each
|
|
other without speaking, like two amorous cats, she blushing, and turning
|
|
down her eyes as if she guessed what was in my mind. At length I blurted
|
|
out what was there, I always did it till much later in life, and I had
|
|
grown wiser. "You've had it done to you before to-day." "Oh!" said
|
|
she starting up, then sitting down again, and bursting into tears, "Of
|
|
course I have,--poor fellow,--poor fellow,--why did he leave me!"
|
|
|
|
Embarrassed and sorry at such a consequence of my speech, I tried a few
|
|
words of comfort. She dried up her tears, and began her household work.
|
|
I followed her about, talking, kissing, and putting my hand up her
|
|
clothes, until in due time we adjourned to the parlour, and then again I
|
|
fucked her, this time on the hearth-rug, the sofa-squab under her head,
|
|
the sofa was too small for comfort.
|
|
|
|
Time was before us, all seemed delicious, the domesticity of the amorous
|
|
amusements, the passion with which she returned my embraces, her
|
|
modesty and enjoyment were all so like the days when I fucked my mothers
|
|
servants. The difference between her sensuous embraces and the matter of
|
|
fact fucking at five shillings a head I had been so long accustomed
|
|
to, overwhelmed me with gratification. We had tea. Then as I had had no
|
|
dinner, and there was none for me, I ate bread and cheese, and opened a
|
|
bottle of port-wine, and in an hour we fucked again, and again. At nine
|
|
o'clock she had supper, and we fucked after it. She sat on my lap, I
|
|
played with her cunt, she with my prick, and we kissed till our lips
|
|
were sore. But nothing would induce her to let me see her limbs, nor do
|
|
more than feel her cunt, and take my pleasure in it.
|
|
|
|
From two in the afternoon till ten at night was I feeling her quim,
|
|
kissing, and fucking. We were both exhausted. I got into bed intending
|
|
to say I had come home ill, took a pill to open my bowels, and begged in
|
|
a pot that night to keep up the sham (there was no closet in the house).
|
|
As the street-door bell rang I was in my night-shirt, standing by
|
|
her side, trying to frig my prick up to standpoint. In bed I jumped,
|
|
downstairs bolted she. In ten minutes it was, "Don't make that noise,
|
|
I have a billious headache." I never closed my eyes that night, could
|
|
scarcely believe what had occurred, and tossed and tumbled, thinking
|
|
of the pleasure I had had. Though we had been nearly eight hours doing
|
|
nothing else, it seemed not an hour. How often I fucked her I don't
|
|
know, it seemed as if I was at least half of the eight hours up her
|
|
cunt, which is absurd; but it was one of my greatest feats in the
|
|
fucking line, the longest and most pleasureable.
|
|
|
|
Next morning, haggard, jaded, worn out, the billious attack got the
|
|
credit of it, I laid abed all the morning, and went out late. When at
|
|
business I fell asleep, unable to work, came home at about the same time
|
|
as on the previous day with no idea of chance favouring me, but it did.
|
|
Mary was alone, and we fucked as hard as we could. She laid the cloth
|
|
and dinner-things my sperm dripping from her cunt. I had just spent up
|
|
her as the street-door bell rang, buttoned up my trowsers, turned on my
|
|
side on the sofa, and shammed sleep. "Is your Master home?" "Yes Mamm,
|
|
he seems quite ill." "Where is he?" "On the sofa, fast asleep I think
|
|
Mamm." Again the billious attack had all the credit of it. I had pulled
|
|
down the blinds which covered the window through which the room could be
|
|
partly seen from the landing outside. Five minutes after I was sitting
|
|
at dinner with the smell of Mary's cunt on my fingers, my prick sticking
|
|
to my shirt, for I had never washed it, nor piddled since it had left
|
|
Mary's body.
|
|
|
|
Luck helped me for a day or two. The illness of a relative took the
|
|
other person interested in this out of the house at unusual times, and
|
|
Mary and I did all we could in an hour or two. It was more exciting now
|
|
than ever to see a woman bolt downstairs directly she had been fucked,
|
|
to cook potatoes, or to eject me from her cunt, and leave the fuck
|
|
undone, because there was a ring at the bell. It was old times come
|
|
again, but with greater risk, more serious consequences if found out,
|
|
yet with greater zest and enjoyment.
|
|
|
|
Then luck ceased, the house was never left, and all I could get was a
|
|
stray kiss, and a slight feel of her quim. But oh! the delight of
|
|
that rapid feel round the warm, smooth bum and thighs, and the push up
|
|
between the warm, moist cunt-lips when I got it.
|
|
|
|
Then came her holiday. We went to a baudy house in E.. t. r street.
|
|
She had a large paper parcel in her hand when I met her. "What's that?"
|
|
"Cherries,--I know you are fond of them, so bought some."
|
|
|
|
What a jolly afternoon we spent. Although I had had her many times, she
|
|
had not willingly let me see her person, I had had glimpses, and no more
|
|
now. In a trice she had stripped to her chemise, I to my shirt. What
|
|
lovely breasts, what splendid limbs, what thighs and arse-globes. In an
|
|
instant I was on the bed with her. After a fuck we fell fast asleep,
|
|
she had done so similarly at my house on the sofa, and on the floor. She
|
|
always did after a spend. I never met such a woman in that respect. As
|
|
regularly as she copulated she went to sleep after, and said she could
|
|
not help it. When awakened she asked for cherries, and we lay and
|
|
dallied, and ate cherries at intervals. There was now no reticence, all
|
|
her charms were open to my sight and touch. "Why did you not let me
|
|
at home Mary?" "My linen warnt clean," I remember that well. "How many
|
|
times did we fuck that first day." "Don't you know? I've been trying to
|
|
recollect, and can't," she replied laughing.
|
|
|
|
She was a lovely woman, had firm, smooth, creamy flesh, was as plump as
|
|
a sucking-pig, a fat cunt of my favorite style then, and the loveliest
|
|
coloured hair on it I ever saw; but it was ample, both inside and
|
|
outside, I had experience enough to know that even then, though its grip
|
|
of the prick was heavenly. Her form and figure was if anything, what may
|
|
be called thick, the ankles and wrists were thick, but neither feet or
|
|
hands were large, her breasts and bum were faultless. Take her all in
|
|
all she was a superb creature, and had such a complexion!
|
|
|
|
I sent for wine and biscuits, for we got thirsty and hungry, and then
|
|
amidst amorous dalliance we chatted. She astonished me not a little
|
|
about her career. I was always curious with a woman whom I had poked,
|
|
and till I had heard something about her was not satisfied. Whether lies
|
|
or truth I always got a history of some sort out of a woman of Mary's
|
|
class, and usually got the main facts truly. I have tested them. But not
|
|
so with gay women, they mostly lie heavily.
|
|
|
|
"Master (she always addressed me so in country fashion and dialect),
|
|
you know." "I?" "Yes." "No." "You do." "What nonsense." "Ain't she told
|
|
you?" "No." "Why she knows all about me, she caught me crying one day,
|
|
spoke kindly, it made me open my heart, and I told her all!--yet she
|
|
has never told you?" "Never, and if you have told her anything about
|
|
yourself that you had better have kept to yourself, you will regret it."
|
|
"I fear I shall." Then little by little, amidst tears and caresses,
|
|
she told me her history, and again did on future days, and I saw her
|
|
letters, rings, jewellery, silks, and other proofs, I knew the town
|
|
she lived in, know some of the people in it whom she mentioned, and was
|
|
satisfied with the truth of every part of her story. One gentleman she
|
|
named was to have married one of my sisters,--how strange!
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXI.
|
|
|
|
Preliminary.--Maid Mary's seduction.--Flight.--Desertion.--
|
|
Going to the post-office.--A halfpenny signal.--Against an
|
|
arm-chair.--The privy watched.--Nearly caught.--Mary
|
|
suspected.--Dismissed.--In lodgings.--Service again.--My
|
|
cousin sir.--Letters lost.--Mary disappears.--Seven years
|
|
afterwards.--Sequel.
|
|
|
|
The daughter of a small inn-keeper at the town of B.. t. n, she was at
|
|
a public hall. A young gentleman danced with her, afterwards paid
|
|
attentions to her, and induced her to run off with him. "Oh! I was just
|
|
as bad as him, poor fellow! When he got me into the room I felt sure
|
|
what he was after, knew it was wrong, knew he would want me, and that I
|
|
should let him. I wanted to let him do it, to be all to him, I did not
|
|
want it done to me for myself, not that I recollect, I dare say I might,
|
|
but don't recollect _that_; but I wanted him to do with me what he
|
|
liked, anything he liked, anything he wanted to do me. I would have let
|
|
him do anything that would make him happy, and seem as if I belonged to
|
|
him entirely, and he to me for ever."
|
|
|
|
"And he did it?" "Yes. I stopped out all night and next day, and then
|
|
went home frightened. I was father's favorite, he had been hunting for
|
|
me like mad all over the town, and letting people know I was not at
|
|
home. He hit me,--there was such a row!--my sister spat at me, and
|
|
called me a whore. I never slept all night, and hadn't slept the night
|
|
before, what with his a pulling me about and doing it, and my fear of
|
|
being found out. I was ill, and father kept me locked up in my room a
|
|
week, because I would not tell him where I had been and with who. I
|
|
said I had been to an aunt's, he went to her, and found I had fibbed.
|
|
At length he let me out, because he wanted me to attend to his
|
|
business, and the first man I saw in the bar was my dear boy,--I nearly
|
|
fainted."--These were as nearly as possible her own words describing
|
|
her seduction, they are so unlike the confessions I have had from other
|
|
women, that the very words sank deep into my mind.
|
|
|
|
After that he used to go and drink at the bar, her father talked with
|
|
him, not knowing he was the man who had broached his daughter. She was
|
|
watched till life was unbearable, her sister worried her (she had
|
|
no mother), neighbours who had thought well of her began to sneer, a
|
|
country swain who liked her was saucy to her, one or two swells in the
|
|
neighbourhood who had been accustomed to see her about, and admired her
|
|
beauty, were now free in their behaviour. One took liberties with her,
|
|
and in the public-house began asking her smutty questions. Weary with
|
|
all this, liking the man whose sperm had wetted her virgin cunt, perhaps
|
|
longing to have more (although she always declared to me that she had
|
|
no recollection of that desire affecting her), one night she ran away to
|
|
London with him.
|
|
|
|
They lived in London nine months. Then came grief. He was the son of a
|
|
West-India planter who had sent him to London to pass as barrister. His
|
|
father's agents found out the connection with Mary, and wrote to the
|
|
father that he was spending his money, but not advancing his career. His
|
|
father objected, then threatened, and then his allowance was stopped.
|
|
They lived on what they had, until penniless. He wrote that he was
|
|
going to marry Mary, and his father replied that if he did he need
|
|
never return and might starve. He was a gentleman, and could not get his
|
|
living, he tried but failed. Then the father wrote, requesting him to
|
|
return, and saying he would provide for Mary. Misery stared them in the
|
|
face, and he consented to go home.
|
|
|
|
His father remitted money. The first thing he did was to take all Mary's
|
|
jewelry and clothes out of pawn, and then to arrange for her to live. He
|
|
promised to come back, and marry her, and some sort of such promise was
|
|
made by his father's agents. He begged her to go home, but she would
|
|
not. Then he put her to lodge with a small middle-class woman whom he
|
|
bribed to give Mary a character as a servant, for he declared he would
|
|
remain, and ruin himself for ever, if she neither would go home, nor go
|
|
to service. Mary remained there a couple of months, dressing plainly,
|
|
and only going to see him in his lodgings at night, or to meet him at
|
|
places where it would not be known. Then he went to India. Repeated
|
|
threats of his father, and his want of money would let him stay no
|
|
longer.
|
|
|
|
The father arranged that Mary should be paid fifteen shillings a week,
|
|
and they paid it for some time. She wanted to write to her lover, but
|
|
had mislaid his address, the agents said that their instructions were to
|
|
stop the weekly payment if she corresponded with him; but _he_ wrote to
|
|
her, _she_ replied, and then their payments ceased. Her lover then sent
|
|
her money; but his father found that out, and kept him penniless.
|
|
She was in London now alone, knowing not a person, again he sent her
|
|
trifling sums, but begged her to go out to service, or she would become
|
|
a gay woman (I have seen his letters). She used to go out, sit down on
|
|
a green close by, and cry all day. One day a middle-aged woman accosted
|
|
her, she told a little of her grief to her, it was something to tell her
|
|
grief, even to a stranger. The woman told some plausible story, and she
|
|
went to see her (I had the address). There the woman asked to see her
|
|
partly undressed, and told her that with such legs and breasts she might
|
|
have silk dresses and jewelry galore, in fact incited her to be a gay
|
|
woman. True to her lover, she did as he advised. The female with whom
|
|
she lived gave her a character as a servant, and with that she came into
|
|
our house.
|
|
|
|
The way in which the old bawd got to see her legs was amusing, I often
|
|
thought of it; not knowing a bawd's dodges then. She asked her if she
|
|
wanted to piddle, took her to a bed-room, and as in sitting down she
|
|
showed a little leg, the woman broke out into ecstacies, and asked her
|
|
to show more. Much flattered she did, and then came the old woman's
|
|
suggestions.
|
|
|
|
"From the time he left you till the other day, had you never been
|
|
poked?" "Never, by all that is good.--I would not have injured him,--I
|
|
was shocked when the old woman told me about getting money by my legs.
|
|
I hoped he would come back, and always thought he would. But he never
|
|
answers my letters now, although some money came for me the other day,
|
|
and I know it must be from him, although the writing is not his; even
|
|
when you threw me on the sofa that day, I thought I was wronging him for
|
|
a moment, till I forgot everything but you.
|
|
|
|
"But oh! I have had a weary life since he left, father I hear has
|
|
failed, what sister's doing I don't know,--sister I heard tells
|
|
everybody it was all my fault, and that the old man never held up his
|
|
head after I ran away,--perhaps it's true," said she with a flood of
|
|
tears, "but I was a good gal to him, till my poor Alfred took me away."
|
|
|
|
I have never before or since heard anything more simple or touching than
|
|
that girl's tale, as told me in the baudy house. I could almost swear
|
|
that every word was true. We stopped at the house till time for Mary
|
|
to leave. I had paid for the rooms two or three times over, being still
|
|
inexperienced. When we came out we were famished, having eaten nothing
|
|
but cherries and biscuits nearly all day. I bought buns, and we ate in
|
|
the cab, I feeling her cunt at intervals, and once making a fruitless
|
|
attempt at a fuck. The smell of her cunt on my fingers at that time I
|
|
dare say gave a relish to the buns, for I liked her. She went in first,
|
|
ten minutes afterwards I did. What a look we gave each other as she
|
|
opened the door! Old times again, and this time as charming as those in
|
|
every particular.
|
|
|
|
For some time afterwards it was impossible to have her, for we never
|
|
were alone, our only chance of exchanging whispers or a kiss was on the
|
|
stairs, or when the other woman went to the privy. In those few minutes
|
|
we used to stand whispering, kissing and feeling each other. Then at
|
|
table I used to feel her legs with my toes, putting my feet out of my
|
|
slippers as she put things on the breakfast or dinner-table, and looking
|
|
the other woman in the face all the time. This was so pleasant to me,
|
|
that I came down in the morning without socks, saying the weather was so
|
|
hot, and when I could get the naked toe up just to touch her thigh,
|
|
my prick would stand at the instant. But this was poor pleasure, and I
|
|
resolved on a course which I had actually to write to tell her of, so
|
|
little opportunity had I of conversing with her for the time.
|
|
|
|
Our old-fashioned house was one of a row with a narrow frontage, and
|
|
four stories high, had a long narrow garden, and a privy about thirty
|
|
feet from the back-door, hidden by some evergreens, the common mode of
|
|
building in London at that time. On the first floor was my own little
|
|
sitting-room and a drawing-room, and above two bed-rooms, the back one
|
|
serving as a dressing-room for me, above those a servant's attic. With
|
|
one servant only we helped ourselves a good deal as may be supposed. One
|
|
bath sufficed, one of us took it first, the other using the same water,
|
|
it was a not very big flat tub. I usually took it first, then went
|
|
downstairs, and read till breakfast-time, and so got my five or ten
|
|
minutes opportunity. But she began to take her bath irregularly, or not
|
|
at all, and came down at times so quickly after me, that I was
|
|
cautious, and so the opportunities with Mary were lost. She was probably
|
|
suspicious, but I never knew.
|
|
|
|
The scullery or back kitchen-door led up to the garden by a little
|
|
flight of steps, and in the summer it was always wide open. Anything let
|
|
fall out of the back-window would fall just in the doorway. This gave me
|
|
the means of signalling. It was arranged that if Mary heard a penny drop
|
|
on to the stones by the door, she was at once to go up quietly to the
|
|
parlour, the ground-floor room as said, was divided by folding doors,
|
|
in the front was the dining-table and the auspicious sofa, in the back a
|
|
small table where we breakfasted.
|
|
|
|
One morning dressed I waited till the woman stepped into the bath, and
|
|
then looking out of the window, dropped a penny. It fell just where Mary
|
|
stood cleaning my boots. Then downstairs I cut, and there was Mary in
|
|
the parlour waiting. She resisted me, but she wanted it as badly as I
|
|
did, and sticking her back against the partition close to the door, so
|
|
that we could catch the first sound of any one coming downstairs, we
|
|
fucked. My God what a rapid fuck it was, but what enjoyment! it was the
|
|
old trick again of but a very few years before in mother's house. Mother
|
|
still lived there.
|
|
|
|
This we did several mornings, then I lost even that opportunity, after
|
|
being nearly caught in the act, and with prick throbbing to let out
|
|
its sperm, I had barely time to subside into a chair, and take up a
|
|
newspaper. That so scared Mary that she would not come up again when I
|
|
dropped a penny out of the window.
|
|
|
|
Then she asked to go out to buy some things, which being granted, again
|
|
we spent a jolly hour or so at the baudy house in E.. t. r street. That
|
|
night I sat her on my prick, and did her in the cab, I never did so to
|
|
her but once. I put her up to asking to go to the post-office with a
|
|
letter, it was at about five minutes walk from our house. Close by was
|
|
a lane leading to large vegetable market-gardens, and there we took our
|
|
pleasure, and were nearly caught at it by a man passing by. I went home
|
|
first, and when the door was opened was answered, "The girl has gone to
|
|
the post-office, she must have gone somewhere else, for she has been a
|
|
long time." Then in came Mary. "Where have you been such a long time?
|
|
Your Mistress says you have been half an hour." She got a scolding, and
|
|
the Mistress went up to bed. I told Mary to come into the garden, it was
|
|
a dark night and cloudy, and half-way down the garden I put into her,
|
|
up against the wall, then she went in, and upstairs to bed. I followed
|
|
soon, and said, "What keeps that girl up so? I have been walking in the
|
|
garden, and she has only just gone upstairs." "She ought to have come up
|
|
directly I did," said the other. I locked all the doors of the house at
|
|
night, and was the last up.
|
|
|
|
Several other risky incidents occurred in a few weeks, and then from
|
|
some suspicion I imagine, I never got a chance of having her. When I
|
|
came down to break-fast the girl was rang for to go upstairs, going out
|
|
was refused her, she was told in the middle of the day, "If you have any
|
|
letter to post, go out now, you can't go out this evening." The Mistress
|
|
seemed to stay a shorter time even in the privy than usual, and often on
|
|
some pretext sent the girl upstairs or somewhere just before she went to
|
|
the poopery. I was evidently suspected.
|
|
|
|
One day she did not. No sooner had she gone out of the back-door than I
|
|
called up Mary. "Let's do it." "I will." "I don't care if she does catch
|
|
us," said I furiously, "lean forward, look out into the garden, I will
|
|
do it dog-fashion." There was a lowish-backed easy-chair which I usually
|
|
sat in by the breakfast-table, up against which I pushed it. Anyone
|
|
stooping over it, and looking could just see through the window the head
|
|
of any one coming away from the privy. My impetuousity prevailed, I
|
|
threw up her clothes over her backside, and plugging her cunt, was soon
|
|
in ecstacies, Mary in a funk, submitting, and with me looking whilst we
|
|
fucked, out of the window for her Mistress' head, which as I have said,
|
|
we could not fail to see. But our pleasure came on, and in our joint
|
|
delight we only thought of the lubricity of our position. "Look out
|
|
darling." "Yes--I am." "Oh!--a--h!--are." "You're loo--k--look--ing?"
|
|
"Yes--oh!--ah I--be--qu--quick,--ah!--a--h!" I had spent, my belly
|
|
was still squeezed up against her bum, my prick still up her, my hands
|
|
rubbing her flesh, when I heard a footstep at the back-door. To pull
|
|
out my prick, drop my dressing-gown over it, let fall the clothes over
|
|
Mary's posteriors was the work of an instant. Rushing towards the door
|
|
I met her Mistress just as she entered it. Passing her I rushed out
|
|
towards the privy saying, as if ready to shit myself, "What a time you
|
|
have been there. I thought you were going to stay there all day." It had
|
|
been raining, the ground was wet, and just inside the back-door she had
|
|
paused to wipe her feet on the mat. Had she not done so she would
|
|
have caught us in the posture, for we had both spent, and lost all
|
|
consciousness for the minute, I was dreaming leaning over Mary when I
|
|
heard the feet rubbing on the doormat.
|
|
|
|
I stopped a sufficient time at the privy to show that I really wanted to
|
|
go there. When I went back to the house I found Mary had fainted right
|
|
off in the parlour, and dropped a tray. The shock of fear at being
|
|
caught had been too much for her nerves, and she rolled on the floor
|
|
showing her legs. My wife jealously told me to leave. I did, but in a
|
|
funk for I saw on one of her stockings unmistakeable stains of spunk
|
|
mixed with poorliness.
|
|
|
|
We talked over it afterwards, wondering if it had been noticed; but I
|
|
never knew. Mary recovered and got up just as I went out of the room.
|
|
Her Mistress afterwards remarked that she was a fine-made, but coarse,
|
|
strong woman, she called all stout, well-filled women coarse.
|
|
|
|
Her Mistress asked her what she had bought the day she had gone out
|
|
shopping, and she showed her some things, which most unfortunately she
|
|
had shown before, then her Mistress said it had been merely a pretext
|
|
to get out. She told me of it, and when Mary's regular holiday came she
|
|
refused to let her go. Mary insisted, there were words, I was consulted,
|
|
and said she ought to be allowed to go. "You always take a servant's
|
|
part." "It's a lie," said I. "and I won't come home till time to go to
|
|
bed." "I shall be alone in the house then.". "Serve you right"--and off
|
|
I went. Mary met me an hour or two after the proper time whilst I kept
|
|
anxiously waiting and fuming, either under the portico of the lyceum,
|
|
or about there. Then we spent the rest of the afternoon and evening in
|
|
voluptuous delight.
|
|
|
|
I kept out for an hour after Mary's return that night, and had a row for
|
|
the Mistress was sitting up. Next day I had a latch-key put on the
|
|
door, and told her she need not sit up, then went home at three in the
|
|
morning, and found her sitting up. Then I told her if she did that again
|
|
I would stop out all night. Again she sat up awaiting me, so I went off
|
|
and did not go home till the next night. That settled it.
|
|
|
|
|
|
"I'm in the family way," said Mary with a sigh. "My God are you?--how
|
|
unfortunate!--are you sure?" "Yes, I knew I should be." "What is to
|
|
be done?" "What I have done before." "You have been in the family way
|
|
then?" "Yes twice, he wanted me to have the child, but I would not
|
|
unless I were married."
|
|
|
|
Mary took medicine and was ill, another monthly holiday came, and was
|
|
spent at the house. A few days afterwards Mary was looking blank. Her
|
|
Mistress told me she had dismissed her. "Why?" I asked. "She was no
|
|
good, and not a good servant." Mary was sacked at the end of the week,
|
|
I could not of course interfere without injuring the poor woman, and
|
|
implicating myself,--no good to either of us.
|
|
|
|
So soon as she had left our house I was told all that Mary had told me
|
|
of herself, the Mistress evidently feared that Mary might seduce me, or
|
|
go astray somehow. That is what the poor girl got for telling her true
|
|
history to her. Said she also, "She has been taking strong medicine, and
|
|
I believe it was to bring on her courses." She knew they had stopped.
|
|
Her sister had advised her not to keep a female in the house who had
|
|
diamond rings, a gold watch and chain, and silk dresses. It was evident
|
|
to me that the poor girl's history had been told to more than one
|
|
person.
|
|
|
|
Mary broken-hearted took lodgings in a cottage close by, and did
|
|
needle-work. "Nothing," said she, "shall make me go to service again, I
|
|
only did it to please him, hoping he would come back to me, but I hate
|
|
service, and don't care what becomes of me." She was always at home. I
|
|
visited her regularly for two or three months, giving her what little
|
|
money I could, but she was reckless and would spend money in comfort,
|
|
though not in show. She came out with me not in her silk dresses, but
|
|
her plainest ones, and little by little pawned her dresses, rings, and
|
|
all her finery. Then she worked harder and harder, besought me to give
|
|
her just enough to keep her, however humbly, for go to service she would
|
|
not again. Again she got with child.
|
|
|
|
All this time of course our fucking was regular, but although I liked
|
|
her, and more than liked her, I never had a strong affection for her.
|
|
When her money-was gone, and she was poor in clothes, she was still
|
|
cheerful. I gave what I could, but could with difficulty keep out of
|
|
debt, and insisted on her going to service. "Then we shall never see
|
|
each other," said she, and begged me to go on, allowing a trifle; I
|
|
did so, being content with her, never finding her out, never having a
|
|
suspicion of her having another man, and feeling much anxiety about her.
|
|
|
|
But none of my money was my own, and what use as a beggar could I be to
|
|
her?--so yielding to my solicitations at last she again went to service
|
|
at a short distance from my house. Then I found out a convenient
|
|
house close by, she got out as often as she could, and we had stealthy
|
|
meetings and pokings in a hurry. The old lady and her middle-aged son
|
|
with whom she lived liked her, and indulged her; so we often got two or
|
|
three hours together, yet the difficulty of meeting became irksome, she
|
|
got restless, would go as a bar-maid (she understood the business),
|
|
go to America, go anywhere so as to get away from service. Then
|
|
circumstances prevented my meeting her for two or three weeks; when I
|
|
did again she reproached me, and hoped I had not got any one else.
|
|
|
|
Soon after she told me her sister was in the family way, having been
|
|
seduced by the young man who was to have married her, I saw the letter
|
|
describing this. "I am glad of it," said Mary, "for she was hard on
|
|
me." The sister came to town, I wanted to see her, but Mary would never
|
|
arrange it, though I saw her letters frequently. Then I made one or
|
|
two appointments with Mary which were not kept, went to the house one
|
|
evening, and whilst Mary was whispering to me at the street door, her
|
|
Master appeared, and asked who I was. Mary said I was her cousin.
|
|
Then he ordered her in-doors, saying they did not allow their servants
|
|
callers.
|
|
|
|
Then her Mistress began to treat her harshly; and we thought some of my
|
|
letters had been intercepted. I was obliged to go abroad for a time, and
|
|
wrote to tell her. On my return I found letter after letter from her at
|
|
the post-office. She was about to leave, wanted my advice, would I allow
|
|
her ten shillings a week, she would make it do; be faithful to me, and
|
|
live close by me; go to service again she would not, she would sooner go
|
|
on the streets, her sister had done so. Again an upbraiding letter,--she
|
|
never thought I would have neglected her so, I who was so kind and
|
|
affectionate, I whom she loved so much,--if I did not reply it was the
|
|
last I would hear of her.
|
|
|
|
I dressed myself up shabbily, and at dusk went to the place she lived
|
|
at. The Master opened the door but did not know me again. She had left,
|
|
had gone he knew not where. "Why?" did I ask. Then I tried all possible
|
|
places, but I never heard of her for years, and greatly feared she had
|
|
gone gay; but although I haunted gay places to find her, I never saw her
|
|
there.
|
|
|
|
Some seven years afterwards I met her. She had gone to service again,
|
|
and had written to tell me where. I never had that letter. There was
|
|
again a bachelor son in the house, who made advances to her, and finally
|
|
kept her. Meanwhile I had moved my residence, and oddly enough opposite
|
|
to the house in which her protector had lived for many years with his
|
|
mother. Mary actually knew everything about my domestic affairs almost
|
|
as well as if she had lived opposite to me herself, for my neighbours
|
|
knew a good deal about me. He kept her at a nice little house some miles
|
|
off.
|
|
|
|
It was opposite the National Gallery that we met in the dusk of the
|
|
evening. I went to J... s' street with her, and to bed, and fucked her
|
|
with rapture till I brought on her poorliness in floods.
|
|
|
|
Her protector had just married, parted with her, and given her
|
|
money. She was going home to her native place,--what to do I don't
|
|
recollect,--she was still lovely, although somewhat broken. I never saw
|
|
her after that night. About five years afterwards she wrote to say she
|
|
was badly off, would I send her a trifle. I sent her two pounds, she
|
|
thanked me in a letter, and said in it, that she often cried when she
|
|
thought of me, and past time,--and I never heard of her afterwards.
|
|
|
|
I could tell a lot more about my doings with this lovely creature, for
|
|
everything connected with her is as fresh in my memory as possible; but
|
|
must go back to that time when coming back to England I found she had
|
|
left her last situation, and I could not find her whereabouts.
|
|
|
|
But I must add something which was omitted when I abbreviated the
|
|
manuscript for printing. I revelled as said in the smell of a nice
|
|
woman; with the poor cheap women I had for some time had, their smell
|
|
offended me, I avoided kissing them even, why I can't say. With Mary
|
|
this delight returned, her aroma overpowered me, and added to my
|
|
voluptuous delight in her embraces. On every possible opportunity I
|
|
used to lift her petticoats, and smell her flesh, it intoxicated me, and
|
|
instantly made me wild with lewdness.
|
|
|
|
|
|
FINIS, VOLUME TWO
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
VOLUME THREE
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CONTENTS:
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER I.--Straightened circumstances.--Promiscuous whorings.--The
|
|
garden privies.--Our neighbor's daughters.--Effects of a hard
|
|
turd.--Masturbation.--Bum-trumpeting.--Seeing and hearing too much.--A
|
|
pock-marked strumpet.--A neighbour's servant.--Don't wet inside.---On
|
|
the road home.--Cheap amusements.--Bargains.--Watching brothels.--Cunt
|
|
in the open. Clapped again.--French letters, and effects.--Income
|
|
improved.--Piddle in the bye-streets.--An uprighter.--My pencil-case.--A
|
|
female bilker.--A savage frig.--A silk dress soiled.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER II.--Preliminary remarks.--A dress-lodger.--Lucy.--Sweet
|
|
seventeen.--An impudent demand.--A row.--The bawd.--My watch
|
|
requisitioned.--Exit barred.--Bill.--Funking.--Determination.--The
|
|
poker and window.--Vici.--Apologies.--A cautious retreat.--My
|
|
revenge.--Lucy scared away.--Brighton Bessie.--Washing by
|
|
fire-light.--Friendly intimacy.--The house in B..w Street.--Lascivious
|
|
evenings.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER III.--A change in taste.--A small cunt longed for.--Hunting
|
|
in the Strand.--Yellow-haired Kitty.--Her little companion.--Oh!
|
|
you foule.--The house in E.. t. r Street.--Double
|
|
fees.--Kitty's pleasure.--Objections to washing.--Have the other
|
|
gal.--Cleanliness.--Home occupations.--I ain't gay.--Kitty's males.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IV.--Little Pol consents.--Arsy-versy.--Broached, and howling.
|
|
--Kitty's vocalization.--A cheap virginity.--Two hours after.--Love's
|
|
money lost.--The street-gully.--Kitty pleases. Pol tires.--Kitty's
|
|
habits.--Friendliness and frankness.--Sausage rolls.--Confessions of
|
|
lust.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER V.--Kitty's antecedents.--The fishmonger's.--Jim the shopman.
|
|
--Betty the maid.--Females in bed.--Mutual curiosity.--Letchery and
|
|
frigging.--Educated in coition.--Against the kitchen-wall.--Jim in
|
|
bed.--Betty's cunt washed out.--A look in the basin.--Cousin Grace,
|
|
and cousin Bob.--Bob on the spree.--A scuffle.--Topsy-turvy.
|
|
--Arsy-versy.--Bob's semen.--A masturbating duet.--Caught in the
|
|
act.--Kicked out.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VI.--Sausage-rolls, and consequences.--Kitty's home.--The
|
|
little ones.--A saucy cabman.--Catamenia.--Fucking economies.--Changing
|
|
money.--Pol and the bargee.--Kit implicated.--A black eye and
|
|
bruised rump.--A little boy's cock.--Preparation for travel.--Kit's
|
|
regret.--Bessie in tears.--Amusements abroad.--Home again.--Kitty a
|
|
strumpet.--An evening at B.. w Street.--Kitty's eight months doings.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VII.--Brighton Bessie.--Change irresistable.--Bessie
|
|
in quod.--Lewd effects.--Spooning.--Her home.--Her
|
|
cabman.--Reflexions.--Two years after.--Five years later on.--The
|
|
mouse's promenade.--Bessie disappears.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VIII.--Washerwomen.--Matilda and Esther.--A peep over a wall.--4
|
|
Eaves dropping.--A girl's wants.--Shaking a tooleywag.--A promenade by
|
|
a barrow.--Disclosures.--A snatch and a scuffle.--An assignation.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IX.--Returning home.--In the churchyard.--Two female
|
|
laborers.--Among the tombs.--A sudden piss.--An arse on the weeds.--Torn
|
|
trowsers and a turd.--In front of the public house.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER X.--The washerwoman's lane.--An intention frustrated.--A slap on
|
|
the face.--Choice language and temper.--A dinner in the Haymarket.--The
|
|
rocking-chair.--A lucky shove.--Up, and out in a second.--A quarrel, and
|
|
flight.--An enticing laugh.--The house in O...d.n Street.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XL--Esther meets me.--Vaux-hall.--Ex-harlot Sarah.--Esther
|
|
succumbs.--Big-arsed and bandy-legged.--Periodic fucking.--Matilda
|
|
invincible.--I part with Esther.--Her fortune.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XII.--Preliminary.--My taste for beauty of form.--Sarah
|
|
Mavis.--Midday in the Quadrant.--No. 13 J..s Street.--A bargain in
|
|
the hall.--A woman with a will.--Fears about my size.
|
|
Muck.--Cold-blooded.--Tyranny.--My temper.--Submission.--A revolt.--A
|
|
half-gay lady.--Sarah watches me.--A quarrel.--Reconciliation.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIII.--Sarah's complaisance.--Mistress Hannah.--About
|
|
Sarah.--Sexual indifference.--After dinner.--Stark naked at last.--Her
|
|
form.--The scar.--Hannah's friendship.--The baudy house
|
|
parlour.--The Guardsman.--Sarah's greed.--A change in her manner.--A
|
|
miscarriage.--Going abroad.--I am madly in love.--Sarah's history.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIV.--Poses plastiques.--Sarah departs.--My despair.--Hannah's
|
|
comfort.--Foolscap and masturbation.--Cheap cunt.--A mulatto.--The
|
|
baudy house accounts.--Concerning Sarah.--The parlour.--The gay ladies
|
|
there.--My virtue.--Louisa Fisher.--A show of legs.--The consequence on
|
|
me.--Effect on Mrs. Z.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XV.--Louisa Fisher.--Chaffing.--Her form and fucking.--A
|
|
supper in bed.--A lascivious night.--Meeting
|
|
afterwards.--Hannah's legs.--Intruders in the bed-room.--Louisa's
|
|
voluptuousness.--Enciente.--Her husband.--Her gentleman friend.--About
|
|
herself.--Illness.--Mrs. A.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XVI.--A friend's maid-servant.--Jenny.--Initial familiarity.--A
|
|
bum pinched.--Jenny communicative.--Her young man.--An attempt, a
|
|
failure, a faint, a look and a sniff.--Restoratives.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XVII.--When are women most lewd.--Garters, money and
|
|
promises.----About my servant.--The neckerchief. Armpits felt.--Warm
|
|
hints.--Lewd suggestions.--Baudy language.--Tickling.--Fanny
|
|
Hill.--Garters tried.--Red fingers.--Struggle, and escape.--Locked
|
|
out.--I leave.--Baudy predictions, and verification.233
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XVIII.--Fanny Hill sent to Jenny.--My next visit.--Thunder,
|
|
lightning, sherry, and lust.--A chase round a table.--The money
|
|
takes.--Tickling and micturating.--A search for Fanny Hill.--A chase
|
|
up the stairs.--In the bed-room.--Thunder, funk, and
|
|
lewdness.--Intimidation and coaxing.--Over and under.--A rapid
|
|
spender.--Virginity doubtful.--Fears, tears, and fucking.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIX.--My soiled shirt.--Jenny's account of herself.--Fucking
|
|
and funking.--Poor John!--Of her pudenda.--Its sensitiveness.--Erotic
|
|
chat.--Startled by a caller.--Her married sister's unsatisfied
|
|
cunt.--How she prevented having children.--Doubts her husbands
|
|
fidelity.--Jenny taught the use of a French letter.--Hickery-pickery and
|
|
catamenial irregularities.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XX.--A Saturday afternoon.--Copulation interrupted.--Retreat
|
|
cut off.--Under the bed.--Enter sister.--The new dress.--Heat
|
|
and sweat.--Undressing.--Jenny's anxiety.--Sweating much,
|
|
and stripping.--Nature in its simplicity.--Nature in its
|
|
vulgarity.--Delicious peeps.--A cunt near my nose. Erotic
|
|
recklessness.--Fist-fucking.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXI.--Further undressing.--Slippers wanted.--Toilet
|
|
operations.--The effects of hash and beer.--A windy escape.--Feeling for
|
|
the pot.--Sisters exeunt.--A crushed hat, and soiled trowsers.--A narrow
|
|
escape.--My benevolent intentions towards Jenny's sister.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXII.--The Sunday following.--Chaste calculations.--The sister
|
|
alone.--My embarrassment.--Ale fetched.--Warm conversation.--Stiffening.
|
|
--Bolder talk.--An exhibition of masculinity.--A golden promise.--Lust
|
|
creeping.--Baudy dalliance.--Cock and cunt in conjunction.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXIII.--Jenny's bed-room.--The money hidden.--On the bed.--Fears
|
|
of maternity.--Inspection of sex.--The use of a husband.--Another
|
|
Sunday.--Regrets and refusals.--Resistance overcome.--Jenny's
|
|
ignorance.--Her Master returns.--Difficulty in getting at Jenny.--Her
|
|
sister waylaid.--Against a fence.--Jenny's marriage, and rise in life.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER I.
|
|
|
|
Straightened circumstances.--Promiscuous whorings.--The
|
|
garden privies.--Our neighbour's daughters.--Effects of a
|
|
hard turd.--Masturbation.--Bum-trumpeting.--Seeing and
|
|
hearing too much.--A pock-marked strumpet.--A neighbour's
|
|
servant.--Don't wet inside.--On the road home.--Cheap
|
|
amusements.--Bargains.--Watching brothels.--Cunt in the
|
|
open.--Clapped again.--French letters, and effects.--Income
|
|
improved.--Piddle in the bye-streets.--An uprighter.--My
|
|
pencil-case.--A female bilker.--A savage frig.--A silk dress
|
|
soiled.
|
|
|
|
I felt such a void, that I came to the conclusion that I had fondly
|
|
loved Mary, and missed greatly her kind, sympathetic association. For
|
|
a long time I could think of nothing but her, even when I fucked other
|
|
women, and got so miserable about her, that I rushed into indiscriminate
|
|
cheap whoring again. I had still not money for the best class of women,
|
|
and did not like baudy houses; but there was no help for it, and so
|
|
whoring I went, and largely in the Strand, for at that time in E..t.r
|
|
and C. t...e Streets there were many and nice brothels at all prices.
|
|
|
|
But I for some time abstained from women, and had wet dreams. My mind
|
|
ran constantly on Mary, and when I saw a nice girl, used to wonder if
|
|
her cunt was like Mary's, and this specially of two girls about nineteen
|
|
and twenty years of age, daughters of one of our next-door neighbours.
|
|
|
|
The privies of the houses in our terrace were built in pairs, the garden
|
|
wall divided them and partly the cess-pool which was common to the two.
|
|
I used to take pleasure in watching to see these girls go to the privy,
|
|
and although the idea of a female evacuating revolted me, yet used to
|
|
try to get to our privy when one of the girls went to theirs, and would
|
|
stand smoking just inside the passage by the back-steps of my house,
|
|
tip-toeing to catch a glance of their heads, and stopping myself from
|
|
bogging sometimes, so that I might get there at the same time. Directly
|
|
I saw a head off I followed quietly, and if the weather was quite still
|
|
we could hear footsteps in each other's gardens too well.
|
|
|
|
The cess-pool had at the time I write of just been emptied, the turds
|
|
dropping and flopping down could be heard, it was not nice, but it did
|
|
not shock me. I liked to hear the girls' piddle splashing, and used to
|
|
push my prick back, and sit back on the seat, so that my piddle might
|
|
drop straight, and make much noise. It pleased me to hear the joint
|
|
rattle and splash we made if we pissed at the same time. I did this so
|
|
constantly, that I could tell which girl was there, for the piddle of
|
|
one always made twice as much splash as the other's. Up would stand my
|
|
prick, and often I could not piss for its stiffness, directly I heard
|
|
the girls splashing.
|
|
|
|
One day I had a hardish motion, and was randy that morning almost to
|
|
pain. One of the girls was there. I strained, my cock got stiff, and
|
|
began to throb violently, and shot out its spunk as I strained. I
|
|
went back to the house, and just entering it saw the other daughter
|
|
go towards the privy. Back I went and sitting down frigged myself as I
|
|
heard her evacuations drop, so randy and charged with sperm was I.
|
|
|
|
After that I occasionally frigged myself at the privy, and used to
|
|
picture to myself the girls sitting there, their clothes up round
|
|
their rumps, and slightly up in front showing their limbs, and piddle
|
|
squirting, but I always thought of both girls as having cunts like
|
|
Mary's. After a time we knew a little of the girls, and when talking to
|
|
them I used to think of the same thing. The idea used to fascinate me,
|
|
and they used to say (I am told), that I was a strange man, for I always
|
|
stared at them as if I had never seen a woman before. They little knew
|
|
what was in my mind when I was staring.
|
|
|
|
Just after the emptying I could not only see their wax as it fell to the
|
|
bottom, but the paper with which they wiped their bums, and could hear
|
|
them fart. Sometimes the two came together. One day by a sudden whim
|
|
I let a fart as loud as I could, and heard a suppressed titter, they I
|
|
think never knew I could hear, for usually I tried to be as silent as
|
|
possible. I never coughed when there, and used to pull open my arse-hole
|
|
to lessen the noise of my trumpet, and singular as it may seem did this
|
|
out of a feeling of delicacy. Soon the cess-pool was half-filled, with
|
|
water, and I could only indistinctly hear. Then I grew tired of the
|
|
game, and again let off my sperm up cunts instead of spilling it on the
|
|
privy-floor, for sorrow always came over me as I saw it on the floor. A
|
|
few months after this I took a dislike to the girls through thinking of
|
|
what I had seen and heard of them, it seemed to shock my sentiment of
|
|
the beauty and delicacy of a woman.
|
|
|
|
A confused number of random whorings and miscellaneous fuckings took
|
|
place about this time, I cannot tell to a month or two, but it began
|
|
directly after Mary had gone. I tell of one or two of them.
|
|
|
|
At the back of the Lowther Arcade one night I took a poor little girl
|
|
seemingly about sixteen years old to a house. She had a nice but thin
|
|
form, and was as white as driven snow. When I had had her, I wanted to
|
|
see her face more clearly, but she held a handkerchief to it, and half
|
|
turned it away from the light, her privates she allowed to be inspected
|
|
as I liked.
|
|
|
|
She was marked badly with the small-pox, and was nevertheless handsome,
|
|
but with that sad expression which the pock-marks often give. Gents did
|
|
not like it, she said. It was a dreadfully sloppy, snowy night. "Don't
|
|
go yet", said she, "it is so warm here." So I sat a while feeling her
|
|
quim and talking. "Do me again, I want it now, I did not when you did
|
|
it before." So we fucked again. "Do I please you?" said the girl putting
|
|
her hand to my face. "Yes my dear." "Will you see me again?--do." I was
|
|
always careful about promising that, and hesitated; but at length said
|
|
yes. Again I rose to go, again the girl asked me to stay, it was so
|
|
warm. "Pay the woman again and say you are going to stay till ten
|
|
o'clock." There was such simplicity about her that I consented. The woman
|
|
put coals on the fire, and we sat by it warming ourselves.
|
|
|
|
After a time she said, "I don't think you like me." "Why?" "Because you
|
|
don't feel me about." I laughed, and said I had been feeling her. Time
|
|
ran on. "Won't you do it again?" "I can't dear." "Let me try to make you."
|
|
"You may, but I can't." She came to me, knelt down, played funnily,
|
|
but awkwardly with my cock till it stiffened, and again we fucked.
|
|
"You won't see me again, though you say you will." "Why not?" asked I
|
|
wondering at her sad manner. "They all say they will, but they never
|
|
do,--it's the small-pox marks they can't bear, I know it is,--I'm tired
|
|
of this life." Then suddenly she laughed and said she was only joking.
|
|
|
|
I never did see her again. Such a young, white-fleshed girl, and so fond
|
|
of the cock, or else she had had but little of it, I have rarely met
|
|
with. She said she had only been out two months. "The other girls tell
|
|
me what to do with men, and the old woman where I live tells me; but I
|
|
always does what a gentleman asks me, I can't do more, can I?" said she.
|
|
"Other gals say they have regular friends, I haven't." I shall never
|
|
forget that poor little girl.
|
|
|
|
On a cold evening a week or two after this, I saw a shortish, dark-eyed
|
|
girl going along the Strand. She walked slowly, and looked in at almost
|
|
every shop. I could not make up my mind if she were gay or not. She was
|
|
warmly wrapped up, her style that of a well-to-do servant. I passed and
|
|
repassed her, looked her in the face; her eyes met mine and dropped,
|
|
then she stopped and looked round several times after unmistakeable
|
|
gay women as they passed her, then went on again. Opposite the Adelphi
|
|
she paused and looked at the theatre for a long time, a gentleman spoke
|
|
to her, and seemed to importune her, she took no notice of him, and he
|
|
left her. After walking on for a minute quickly she loitered and looked
|
|
in the shops again.
|
|
|
|
Near Exeter Hall my cock which was in want of relief giving me
|
|
impudence, and liking her looks I spoke to her about the things in the
|
|
windows. At first I got no reply, and she walked on. "Come with me, and
|
|
I'll give you a sovereign." "You can buy it then." What it was I don't
|
|
recollect. She seemed uneasy and wavering, yet made no reply. I repeated
|
|
my offer (it was just then money beyond my means, but I had hot desire
|
|
on me). She looked up the street in both directions, and asked, "Will
|
|
it be far?" I took her at the instant for a sly gay one. "You know I am
|
|
sure, it's close bye." "It's getting late, I'm in a hurry." Looking both
|
|
ways quickly and uneasily she placed her arm in mine, and hanging her
|
|
head down pressed close to me. We walked quickly, and soon were in a
|
|
snug room in a house at the back of Exeter Hall.
|
|
|
|
"This is not a public-house", said she looking round. "No, but you can
|
|
have a drink if you like." "A little warm brandy and water then." I
|
|
ordered it. "Take off your bonnet and cloak." She hesitated. "Tell me
|
|
the exact time." I did, and then she took them off, sat down, and soon
|
|
sipped brandy and water looking at me. Thought I, "You must be a servant
|
|
after all."
|
|
|
|
I began to caress her, and got my hand on her thighs asking her to come
|
|
to the bed. "I must go soon, let me go soon." "I will, but let me see
|
|
your legs, and feel them." She let me pull the clothes up to her knees,
|
|
then pushed away my hand but I thrust one up, and just felt the cunt.
|
|
She gave me a shove, and nearly pushed me over, for I had dropped on to
|
|
my knees, a favorite attitude of mine at such times.
|
|
|
|
Savagely I got up. "Don't be a fool; if you mean to let me do it come
|
|
to the bed." She hesitated. "Give me the money first." "Oh!" thought
|
|
I, "she is a whore diseased, and a bilk," so I refused. "You really will
|
|
give it to me, won't you?" "Of course, but I'm not to be done that way."
|
|
Then I got her on to the bed, and threw up her clothes. She resisted.
|
|
"What do you take me for?" "Why a whore", said I savagely. It was a word
|
|
I rarely used _of_ a woman, still rarer _to_ a woman. She pushed my hand
|
|
angrily away and sat up.
|
|
|
|
"I am not, and wish I had not come here, and would not, only I want
|
|
money for my poor mother, I thought you a gentleman,--I'm not the sort
|
|
of a woman you say, I'm a servant, I am indeed." "Well if you are, you
|
|
have been fucked." "That's neither here nor there, but I'm not what you
|
|
call me",--and she pouted. "Lay down dear,--let's fuck if you mean it,
|
|
if not let's go,--let me feel you, and you feel me." I pulled her back
|
|
on to the bed, laying down by the side of her, and put my prick into
|
|
her hand. It was persuasive, for soon I was having that delicious rub,
|
|
probe, and twiddle. Then I got a sight of all but the cunt itself, the
|
|
inspection of that she resisted. A fine pair of limbs, a fat backside,
|
|
lots of hair on her split I could feel. My friction told, she began
|
|
grasping my prick like a vise,--she was going to spend.
|
|
|
|
Nice to her that, but I wanted my pleasure. Again I got savage. At
|
|
length quietly, and feeling my prick all the time she said, "Promise me
|
|
something." "What?" "Don't you wet inside if I let you." I promised,
|
|
and turning on to her belly fucked her, and forgot my promise, even if
|
|
I ever meant to keep it. We were soon near the crisis.
|
|
"Don't--now,--oh!--wet."
|
|
|
|
"No dear." "T--aake--care." "I'll pull it out just as it comes dear."
|
|
"Don't--we--wet, oh!--ah!--wet", she gasped out as clutching her arse my
|
|
prick went fiercely up her, and spent every drop against her womb-tube,
|
|
my spend made doubly pleasurable, because she did not wish it in her
|
|
cunt.
|
|
|
|
Said she with a long-drawn sigh, "You've done it all inside,--you should
|
|
not." "I could not help it, you are so charming, I could not pull it
|
|
out and make your clothes or bum wet", said I ramming on, and keeping my
|
|
prick tight up her lubricated cunt, "Let me get up." "Not yet." "Oh!
|
|
do, I'm in a hurry." "Lay still dear." "No, I'm in such a hurry,--what
|
|
o'clock is it?--do tell me what o'clock it is,--it will make me lose my
|
|
place if I'm very late."
|
|
|
|
I uncunted, told her the time, and she washed her cunt. "Let us do it
|
|
again." She was wanting it. "I've such a long way to go." "Where?" She
|
|
told me, and it was on my way home. "I will take you home in a cab." On
|
|
the bed she got, I overcame her scruples, kissed her knees, her thighs,
|
|
all the way up to her cunt. The thighs opened widely, a second's
|
|
inspection of a cunt at that time of my life made me think of immediate
|
|
pleasure, and after promising not to wet in her again, she reminding me
|
|
of that, till she lost all care or heed in her pleasures. I spent up her
|
|
as before.
|
|
|
|
We went home in a cab, and felt each other all the way, she said she
|
|
was keeping her mother who was poor, she feared dying. At the end of the
|
|
road she got out begging me not to follow her. I did not, and never saw
|
|
her again. She had hazel eyes, spoke with a country accent, and I quite
|
|
believe was a servant.
|
|
|
|
Although soon after this a little better off, I had difficulty in
|
|
keeping out of debt, and the cost of amatory amusements prevented my
|
|
having women as often as I otherwise should have done. I used to try the
|
|
cheap women at times, and often successfully. Would walk backwards and
|
|
forwards between Temple-Bar and Charing Cross for hours, looking at the
|
|
women, thinking which I should like, and whether I could afford one.
|
|
Sometimes I would follow the same woman, stop when she stopped if a man
|
|
spoke to her, cross over, and wait till she moved off by herself, or if
|
|
with the man, would follow them to a brothel, return to watch for her
|
|
coming out, and wait 'till she did so. This pleased me much.
|
|
|
|
Then I began to feel women in the streets; they frequently came out
|
|
of the E.. t. r Street-houses, and round by the side-entrance to
|
|
Exeter-Hall. That end of the street then was all but dark.
|
|
|
|
Stopping a woman. This was a frequent dialogue. "A nice night dear."
|
|
"Yes." "Been taking a walk?" "Yes." "Been to piddle?" "Yes." They
|
|
usually when I knew they had come out of a house, said they had been to
|
|
piddle if I asked them. "A shilling to feel your cunt." "All right, give
|
|
it me." With the left hand I gave the shilling with the right I fingered
|
|
their quims. "Open your legs dear,--a little wider,--let me feel
|
|
up,--have you been fucked to-night?" "No." It was always no. I delighted
|
|
in hearing them tell that lie. "Come with me." "How much?" "Give me a
|
|
sovereign." "No." "Ten shillings then." "I can't afford more than five
|
|
shillings." "No, not for that"; but they more often said yes. Sometimes
|
|
I went with them, more frequently not. The lesson I learned was that
|
|
most woman denied that they had fucked more recently than the day
|
|
before, (it was always the day before), and that a little bargaining
|
|
reduced the price of their pleasures.
|
|
|
|
If intending to have a poke I waited for a girl known by sight, and then
|
|
often could not find her, then I saw those so dressed that I could not
|
|
offer them a small sum. On other nights I went up to the girl with the
|
|
fattest legs, and made advances. In this way I shagged many of all sorts
|
|
and sizes, many of them poor creatures, others plump, fine, strong,
|
|
healthy women, whom I was surprised took the small sum for their
|
|
professional exertions. The end of this promiscuity was that again I
|
|
took the clap, which laid me up some weeks, and made it again needful to
|
|
open my piss-pipe by surgical tubes.
|
|
|
|
Then I was timid, used French letters, and took to carrying them in my
|
|
purse again, but always hated them. Often my cock stiff as a boring-iron
|
|
would shrink directly the wet gut touched it, and compelled me to frig
|
|
up to near the crisis before I could insert it in the skin. Sometimes it
|
|
would not stiffen completely till up the women. I used to drop my tool
|
|
in a state of partial rigidity into the letter, then thumb it slowly up
|
|
the lady's orifice; then the warmth, the clip, the buttocks wagging, and
|
|
the look at the belly and thighs between which I was working brought
|
|
it to the proper stiffness. I usually had the ladies at the side of the
|
|
bed, when wearing these cundums.
|
|
|
|
Sometimes my passions overcame my prudence, and a fair lady for her
|
|
favors got her price. Then I was filled with regrets, and had to content
|
|
myself with a feel for some time, or wait days till I could afford the
|
|
full gratification of my senses with another woman, because I had not
|
|
the money. Then I fell again on my five shilling offers. About this
|
|
cunt-feeling there was something very peculiar in me: unless I liked the
|
|
look of the woman I did not like to feel up her cunt, and after I had
|
|
been groping used to spit on my fingers, and rub them dry, and the smell
|
|
off of them on to my handkerchief.
|
|
|
|
Some little time after my clap however I came into a better income
|
|
through the death of a relative. It was small, but made a difference
|
|
to me of great importance. I spent it all on myself, that is to say on
|
|
cunt, and although some of my country relatives must have known I had
|
|
come into the property, those most interested in knowing it I believe
|
|
never did. I now longed for nice women whom I could talk and spend the
|
|
money with. The rapid business-like fucking in the baudy houses was
|
|
not to my taste, I had scarcely gone to the Argyle Rooms, then not many
|
|
years opened, for fear that my taste for nicety of manner and something
|
|
more than mere cunt might lead me into an expenditure still far beyond
|
|
my means.
|
|
|
|
It used to wound my pride to hear a woman jeer at my offer, or say,
|
|
"What the devil do you take me for", or walk away wagging her rump with
|
|
offended dignity when she heard five shillings named, or say she would
|
|
frig me for the money. Now I could offer more I was more happy in my
|
|
mind; but there are a few adventures to be told before the time when an
|
|
easier pocket enabled me to have better female companions.
|
|
|
|
The angle of the street named as leading out of the Strand was dark of
|
|
a night and a favorite place for doxies to go to relieve their bladders.
|
|
The police took no notice of such trifles, provided it was not done in
|
|
the greater thoroughfares (although I have seen at night women do it
|
|
openly in the gutters in the Strand), in the particular street I have
|
|
seen them pissing almost in rows, yet they mostly went in twos to do
|
|
that job, for a woman likes a screen, one usually standing up till the
|
|
other has finished, and then taking her turn. Indeed the pissing in all
|
|
bye-streets of the Strand was continuous, for although the population
|
|
of London was only half what it now is, the number of gay ladies seemed
|
|
double there. The theatre-side of the street from Trafalgar-Square to
|
|
Temple-Bar was nightly for some hours one large flock of them, and there
|
|
was not a street or court on the whole line named, and on both sides of
|
|
the Strand in which there was not a baudy house. I have been in a dozen.
|
|
|
|
I used to prowl about to see the girls pissing, and when I had cheek
|
|
enough, stand and piss by the side of them. That delighted me much.
|
|
One night I saw two women go up a court, one directly squatted, and I
|
|
followed. When one had done I asked her to let me feel her. She did.
|
|
Randy but poor that night the feel of her wet cunt made me reckless. As
|
|
I gave her a shilling I remarked how I should like to have her, but that
|
|
I had but five shillings to give.
|
|
|
|
"You won't have me for five shillings, but you will get some one who
|
|
will,--you have lots of cheek to offer it." "I am sorry, but I can't
|
|
help it if I have not more." Had I not ten shillings? No, only enough
|
|
for the room. All this time I was feeling her. Then her hand went
|
|
outside my trowsers, feeling at my cock. I slipped it out, she took it
|
|
in her hand. "Have you not been a long time in the Strand to-night?"
|
|
said she. I had, and wanted a woman, only I had so little money. I did
|
|
not know the form or face of this woman, for we were in the darkest
|
|
place, and the night was dark and cold, but I felt that she had a silk
|
|
dress on, lots of hair on her cunt, and a large arse. "You may do it
|
|
here for five shillings", said she. I had never done it in the open in
|
|
such a place, but consented. Groping in my pocket I found and gave the
|
|
money, and then she stepped away from me,--a bilk I thought.
|
|
|
|
It was not so. She went up to the other woman who was standing at the
|
|
corner, and telling her to look out for the police, came back to me,
|
|
and again placing her back up against the wall, I fucked her. "Wasn't it
|
|
nice!" said she dropping her petticoats. And then we stood and talked.
|
|
|
|
"Stand a drink", said she, "you've got some silver." I did not mind, and
|
|
was curious to see her. She called her friend, and all three went to a
|
|
public-house, the lady with all my emission in her cunt. I found she was
|
|
a full-grown woman of about thirty with dark hair, dark eyes, and with
|
|
a bold expression in them. We had mulled port-wine, then something else,
|
|
and stood drinking till all my money was gone. Her companion left us
|
|
saying she had not gained a farthing that night, and must do so.
|
|
|
|
My woman then got pleasanter, and wanted more liquor, my money was gone,
|
|
but I had a pencil-case, and asked the bar-man if he would lend me a few
|
|
shillings on it. He did, and I then spent more on liquor, then we went
|
|
out together again into the cold street; she pissed, saying the cold and
|
|
the liquor had made her leaky. "I wish you would let me again", said I.
|
|
Well she would, and up against a wall again we fucked heartily. With my
|
|
spunk in her we walked together into the Strand. She said she would like
|
|
to see me again, but I never did. Whilst fucking her the second time she
|
|
shoved her tongue almost down my throat, and breathed so hard. I never
|
|
fucked a woman in the street who did so, either before or since. A few
|
|
nights after I got my pencil-case back from the beer-man.
|
|
|
|
One night a nice, strong-built woman about thirty years of age
|
|
seemingly, took my five shillings, and went to a house with me. She was
|
|
dressed in black silk, neat but shabby. She sat down on a chair, and
|
|
pulling up her clothes rearranged both her garters, showing what I
|
|
expected, and what I had engaged her for; a pair of fat legs. Then down
|
|
went her clothes. I began feeling her, she pushed her bum back on
|
|
the chair, but her thighs and the hairy ornaments I could feel. I
|
|
was awfully randy, my prick was raging. "Let's feel _you_", said she.
|
|
Willingly I let her grasp it, then she moved her arse forward, and I had
|
|
the pleasure of just feeling a moist clitoris from which I was diverted
|
|
by a painful squeeze she gave my prick. She was squeezing no doubt to
|
|
see if I had any ailment. The effect of the squeeze, which made me call
|
|
out, was to make me mad with randiness. "Take off your things, and let
|
|
me do it." "Where is the five shillings?" I placed them in her hands,
|
|
she pocketed them, and got up. Lifting her petticoats I pressed her
|
|
towards the bed where she was standing when she had spoken, but she
|
|
pushed down her petticoats, and moved away.
|
|
|
|
"Not likely I'm going to take off my things for five shillings",
|
|
said she as the money slipped down into her pocket, "give me fifteen
|
|
shillings more, and I will,--I'm a fine-built woman",--and she pulled
|
|
her clothes clean up to her waist, turned round like a tetotum, and
|
|
after showing both arse and belly, slow-ly dropped her clothes again.
|
|
|
|
"Come to the side of the bed." "No I shan't, you've had a feel for five
|
|
shillings, give me fifteen shillings more, and I'll give you pleasure I
|
|
know,--I'll do all you want me."
|
|
|
|
"I can't." "Then I can't." I had not a pound in my pocket, but if I had,
|
|
am sure indeed I should have given it to her, but I could not. "Give me
|
|
ten shillings, and I'll pay for the room then", said she. "I didn't know
|
|
what house I was at, but generally they asked at those places the price
|
|
of the room first.
|
|
|
|
"Just as you like", though I was dying for a fuck. "Then I will go." "I
|
|
have paid you,--if you choose to bilk me I can't help it." "I don't want
|
|
to bilk you, but I never let a man have me for five shillings, and I
|
|
never will,--give me five shillings more."
|
|
|
|
"Let me feel you, if you won't let me poke you." "You may do that."
|
|
Leaning her bum against the side of the bed, I began groping; she
|
|
complaisantly moving one leg up on to a chair, so as to open her thighs
|
|
well, got hold of my prick, and began frigging it. "Give me another
|
|
five shillings", said she coaxingly, and under the influence of the
|
|
masturbating process I gave it to her. She gave my penis the most
|
|
delicate titillation whilst I was searching in my pocket for the money,
|
|
but she would not let me after she had got the five shillings. She went
|
|
on frigging me, repeating that she never let any one have her unless she
|
|
had a pound given her.
|
|
|
|
I was annoyed, and hated frigging. Here was a well-formed woman, a cunt
|
|
at hand, and yet I was to spunk out on to the floor, was being made a
|
|
fool of. Stopping I said, "You don't mean to let me, whatever I give
|
|
you." "Yes I do, for a sovereign." "Frig me then." She took my tool in
|
|
her hand, and frigged. "Let me spend against your cunt." "No." "Against
|
|
your thighs." "No." "Oh!--ah!" Finding it was coming she left off.
|
|
"Give me five shillings, and I will", said she, but I would not, began
|
|
frigging myself, and spite of her pushed one hand up on to her thighs,
|
|
and frigged away with the other. "Take care of my dress", said she. The
|
|
savage delight of doing what she wished me not, came over me. Turning
|
|
my prick I shot my sperm copiously over her silk dress, and finished
|
|
by flinging from my fingers what remained of it towards her face.
|
|
"You damned dirty beast, you did it on purpose." "Serve you right, you
|
|
cheating whore", said I putting on my hat, and leaving her with a towel
|
|
wiping off my sperm, and cursing me as she did it. I don't know when I
|
|
felt so spiteful against a woman as I did against her. My discharge was
|
|
quick and copious, I saw it on her waist downwards. I have been bilked
|
|
before and since, but have mostly pardoned the woman, for sometimes I
|
|
have thought the poor things had their courses on, or some ailment or
|
|
deformity; but I still seem to hate this one.
|
|
|
|
I may add that at the time these doings took place there were but three
|
|
theatres in the Strand.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER II.
|
|
|
|
Preliminary remarks.--A dress-lodger.--Lucy.--Sweet
|
|
seventeen.--An impudent demand.--A row.--The bawd.--My watch
|
|
requisitioned.--Exit barred.--Bill.--Funking.--
|
|
Determination.--The poker and window.--Vici.--Apologies.--A
|
|
cautious retreat.--My revenge.--Lucy scared away.--Brighton
|
|
Bessie.--Washing by fire-light.--Friendly intimacy.--The
|
|
house in B.w Street.--Lascivious evenings.
|
|
|
|
I have read through the two volumes in print. There are typographical
|
|
errors, the names of women and places are once or twice wrongly given
|
|
or spelt, but the context corrects that, and it matters not. What is
|
|
important is; that owing to the brevity with which some occurrences are
|
|
told, they almost seem improbable; this is the result of not printing my
|
|
narrative all through exactly as I wrote it. In the manuscript, items of
|
|
conversation, and numerous details of the behaviour of myself and female
|
|
partners in my amours, were written down just as they occurred, and
|
|
showed how the climax was reached; how little by little man and woman
|
|
inclined to each other, how one pressed, and the other yielded, how from
|
|
modest talk and chaste kisses our chastity gradually was lost, how by
|
|
touch and sighs and yielding to the swooning lust which coursed stronger
|
|
and stronger through our veins, our genitals inflamed, swollen, and
|
|
sweating, drove us to contact with each other, till the carnal coupling
|
|
ensued, and prick and cunt revelling and wallowing in each other's
|
|
juices, drowned both wants and senses in voluptuous oblivion.
|
|
|
|
These details also gave studies of character, and specially of my own
|
|
character, and as I now read the narratives in print after the lapse of
|
|
so many years they seem to me to be needed to explain myself, even to
|
|
myself. It is too late. The manuscript is burnt, that printed in its
|
|
stead must be taken as truth or not, as scepticism or faith prevails in
|
|
the reader, if ever there be one but myself.
|
|
|
|
Nor can I less abbreviate even now and in the future I fear, for the
|
|
full narrative would entail too much expense in printing, and prolong
|
|
the time of completion. Yet what pleasure I had in the wordy veracities
|
|
as I wrote them, childish, fantastic, ludicrous, as some of the doings
|
|
and sayings now seem! How unlike the doings of the couples in erotic
|
|
books which I since have read, books written with no other object but to
|
|
stimulate the passions,--no object that of mine in writing this.
|
|
|
|
The narratives were written in the present tense, but in print have been
|
|
altered to the past, which gives them an air of a studied composition,
|
|
written as a man might write a novel; but the writing extended over well
|
|
nigh forty years, and barely a word has been altered, excepting those
|
|
due to omissions.
|
|
|
|
There are however a few remarks added here and there to explain the
|
|
circumstances and connect the incidents; these are needful to explain
|
|
lapses of time, and to show the continuity of the history, for all the
|
|
amours were written separately; yet often I had two or three women in
|
|
hand at the same period. So in arranging them chronologically a few
|
|
additions and observations were needful to explain, and these are of
|
|
them.
|
|
|
|
|
|
One muddy night in the Strand there was an exceedingly well-dressed and
|
|
very short-petticoated (they all wore them then) girl of about seventeen
|
|
years of age; her legs especially pleased me, they were so plump and
|
|
neat, and her feet so well shod. After my offer had been accepted,
|
|
we went to a house in a court just by Drury-Lane Theatre, and to a
|
|
top-floor front-room very handsomely furnished. She lived there, and
|
|
was a dress-lodger as I found afterwards. She was beautifully clean,
|
|
had fine linen, and was no sham in any way; a fresh, strong, plump,
|
|
well-made young girl with lovely firm breasts, and a small quantity of
|
|
brown hair on her cunt. Cunt and breasts looked only seventeen years,
|
|
backside, thighs, arms, calves looked twenty. She stripped, and with but
|
|
one feel and a stretch of her pretty cunt-lips, and a moment's glance I
|
|
plugged her, and recollect now my enjoyment of her. Then I dressed,
|
|
and so did she. Though so young, she was a well trained whore, had much
|
|
pleased me by her freedom in manner, even to the way in which she washed
|
|
her cunt and pissed after her fuck. I was not with her I should say
|
|
twenty minutes if so long; my lust for her had been so strong.
|
|
|
|
"What's this?" said she disdainfully as I gave her half-a-sovereign.
|
|
"What I promised you." "Oh! no you did not, I expect five pounds." I
|
|
expostulated. "Look at this room, look at my dress,--do you expect me to
|
|
let a man come here with me for ten shillings?" "Its all I promised, had
|
|
you refused I should not have come with you." Then I put on my hat, and
|
|
moved towards the door; she placed her back against it. "You don't go
|
|
out of here till you give me three sovereigns." It must be added that I
|
|
had paid for the room what appeared to me then a large sum.
|
|
|
|
I was in for a row, had not as much as two pounds about me, and was
|
|
fearful of exposure, just then a row in a baudy house would have injured
|
|
me if known.
|
|
|
|
I gave her ten shillings more, she took it, but refused to let me go,
|
|
she did not believe I had so little money,--I was a gentleman, let me
|
|
behave as such,--no I should not go till I gave her what she asked. I
|
|
tried to pull her from the door, but could not, then sat down on the
|
|
chair, saying that if I must wait, why so I must.
|
|
|
|
She tried coaxing, I told her I was entitled to another fuck for
|
|
my other ten shillings. Well I might if I gave her another twenty
|
|
shillings. I put hands up her petticoats, and fingers up her quim,
|
|
thinking she was giving way,--but no. I had forgotten my fears in my
|
|
randiness which came on again by fumbling about her rump and cunt, and
|
|
pulled out my prick stiff again. She bent over me, and gave it two or
|
|
three frigs. That so excited me, that verily I believe I should have
|
|
given her the money if I had had it, for the pleasure of having her
|
|
again; but putting my hand into my trows-ers, found silver only to
|
|
something like a pound in value, and told her that. Then losing her
|
|
gentility she said, "I'm damned if you do go, you bugger, till you have
|
|
paid me properly."
|
|
|
|
Fear of exposure came over me, but I hid it, and sitting down looked at
|
|
her as she stood against the door in her petticoats, her handsome limbs
|
|
showing bright in their silks, and her plump breasts just squeezing the
|
|
bubbies over the top of the stays. Laying hold of my tool I pulled it
|
|
out. "Stand there as long as you like, you look lovely,--as you won't
|
|
let me fuck you, I'll frig myself." Suiting the action to the word I
|
|
began fist-fucking, not meaning however to finish so. It was but chaff,
|
|
for indeed I was funky.
|
|
|
|
She stood looking till I said, "I'm coming,--I'm spending,--lift up
|
|
your petticoats, and let me see your cunt." Then unlocking the door and
|
|
opening it quickly she bawled out, "Mrs. Smith, Mrs. Smith, come up,
|
|
here's a bilk, come up quickly."
|
|
|
|
I was now near spending as may be guessed, but buttoning up, went
|
|
towards the door. She heard me, turned round, came in, shut the door,
|
|
and stood with her back to it till a woman came in; and then she told
|
|
her I had given her ten shillings.
|
|
|
|
The woman was incensed, was I a gent? she was sure I was, why not pay
|
|
properly then?--a beautiful young girl like that,--just out,--look at
|
|
her shape, and her face,--she had written to a dozen gents who knew her
|
|
house, and they had all come to see this beauty,--all had given her five
|
|
pounds, some ten pounds, they were so delighted with her,--and much of
|
|
the same talk. The girl began to whimper, saying she never had been so
|
|
insulted in her life before.
|
|
|
|
I told her that I had only promised ten shillings, but had given more;
|
|
that the girl was certainly beautiful, and the room elegant; but I was
|
|
poor, and would not have come at all had I known the cost. I had not the
|
|
money, and therefore could not pay. Then the bawd's tone changed. She
|
|
was not going to have the poor girl insulted in that manner, she knew
|
|
better about my means of paying, and I should not go till I paid more.
|
|
|
|
We went on wrangling until the bawd said, "Well if you have not money
|
|
give us your watch and chain, we will pawn it, and give you the ticket,
|
|
and you can get it out of pawn."
|
|
|
|
I had hidden my watch,--nearly always did so then when I went with
|
|
whores whom I did not know,--but saw in this a threat, and was getting
|
|
more funky, yet determined to resist whatever came of it; so said I had
|
|
no watch, and if I had, that I would see her damned first, before I gave
|
|
it up. "Oh! won't you", said she, "we will see if you won't,--we don't
|
|
allow a poor girl to be robbed by chaps like you in our house,--call up
|
|
Bill", said she to the girl. I saw that a bully was about to be let on
|
|
me, and my heart beat hard and fast; but give up my watch I made up my
|
|
mind I would not unless they murdered me. I had an undefined suspicion
|
|
that they would illtreat and rob me, and prepared for the worst,--my
|
|
pluck got up then.
|
|
|
|
But fear of exposure was before me. "Look", said I, "I have no watch,
|
|
I have given her twenty shillings, here is every farthing I have about
|
|
me", and emptied my purse (there was but a shilling or two in it)
|
|
before them, and put all the money I had loose in my pocket on to the
|
|
chimney-piece. There was I think about seventeen shillings in all.
|
|
"Look it is every farthing I have,--you may have that you damned
|
|
thieves,--take it and let me go,--see my pockets are empty",--and I
|
|
turned them inside out.
|
|
|
|
"You've got more", said she, "be a gent, give her three pounds, she
|
|
never has less,--look at her, poor thing!" The girl stood whimpering,
|
|
she and the woman stood with their backs to the door, I with my back to
|
|
the two windows of the room which looked out on to the public court; the
|
|
fire-place was between us, the foot of the bed towards it; the fire was
|
|
burning brightly, the room was quite light. There they stood, the
|
|
clean, fresh, wholesome-looking lass, and besides her a shortish, thick,
|
|
hooked-nosed, tawney-colored, evil-looking woman,--the bawd,--she looked
|
|
like a bilious Jewess.
|
|
|
|
The woman kept repeating this, for a minute or two. I refused to give
|
|
any more, and grew collected. "Come now, what are you going to do?" said
|
|
the woman, "you are wasting all her evening." I took up half-a-crown
|
|
off the mantle-shelf, and pushing the rest along it, "I must keep this",
|
|
said I, "but take all the rest, I have no more,--I have no watch,--let
|
|
me go." The woman laughed sneeringly, and did not touch the money,
|
|
turned round, opened the door, and called out "Bill, Bill, come up."
|
|
"Halloh!" said a loud male voice from below.
|
|
|
|
I turned round, and with a violent pull, tore aside the red
|
|
window-curtains, and throwing up the window, and putting my head
|
|
out beneath the white blind, I screamed out,
|
|
"Police!--police!--murder!--murder!--police!--police!"
|
|
|
|
Beneath the very window stalked a policeman; heard me he must, the whole
|
|
alley must have heard me, but the policeman took no notice, and stalking
|
|
on turned round the corner out of sight. Then the fear came over me
|
|
that he was bribed, I feared they might be coming behind me, and turned
|
|
round; the woman was close to me, the girl at her back. "What are you
|
|
doing?" yelled the woman, "what are you kicking up a row for?--shut
|
|
the window,--go if you want, who is keeping you?--this is a respectable
|
|
house, this is."
|
|
|
|
A tumult of ideas and fears rushed through my mind, I feared Bill was
|
|
close at hand, and pushing the woman back with one hand I seized the
|
|
poker with the right one. "Keep back, or I will smash you", said I
|
|
flourishing it, and again I shouted out, "Police!--police!" but not
|
|
with my head out of the window this time.
|
|
|
|
The old woman backed and shut the door again, the young one came
|
|
forwards speaking in a hurried tone, the old one dropped her voice to
|
|
a whine; she did not want to keep me if I wanted to go. "Shut the
|
|
window,--let her shut it,--give the poor girl two pounds then, and go."
|
|
Her house was a respectable house, the police knew it, why did I come to
|
|
such a house if I had no money? The girl cried, I blustered, swore, and
|
|
all three were speaking at the same time for two or three minutes.
|
|
|
|
"Let me go." "Who stops you?" said the old woman, "give me the money."
|
|
"Open the door, and go out first then." "I shan't", said the woman with
|
|
a snap and a look like a demon. I turned round, and with the poker made
|
|
a smash at the window. The curtains had swung, the white blind was down,
|
|
but I heard the glass shiver and crash, a shout of "Hulloh!" from some
|
|
one in the court. I raised the poker again against the looking-glass.
|
|
"Get out, or I'll smash this, and you, and everything else in the room",
|
|
striking a chair violently, and breaking it. I now did not care what
|
|
I did, but was determined to fight Bill, or any one else, and not be
|
|
robbed.
|
|
|
|
The women were cowed, they cried out, Pray drop the poker,--they
|
|
meant no harm,--the girl always had three pounds at least,--if I would
|
|
not,--why I would not,--they never have had such a row in the house
|
|
before,--to have her twice, and give her ten shillings was shameful. "A
|
|
lie you bloody bawd, I have only had her once, and she has had twenty
|
|
shillings." "Well, there's a good gentleman, go, and don't make a noise
|
|
as you go downstairs,--look at her, poor thing, how you have frightened
|
|
her,--she will let you have her again, if you like,--won't you
|
|
Lucy?"--"well come along then, but don't make a row,--leave the poker,
|
|
--what do you want that for?" whined the woman. I would not relinquish
|
|
the poker, they should go out first. The woman went, the girl waited
|
|
behind to put on her frock. As she did so the little bitch lifted her
|
|
petticoats to her thighs, showed her cunt, jerked her belly, winked and
|
|
nodded her head in the direction of the old woman. I did not know nor
|
|
heed what she meant by her nod and wink. "Get out,--get on,--get out,--I
|
|
won't have you behind me." She made a farting noise with her mouth, and
|
|
dropping her clothes went out. I followed her, looked at the doors on
|
|
each landing as I passed, fearing some one might come out behind me, and
|
|
edged downstairs sideways, looking both up and down. One door slightly
|
|
opened and closed again; at the street-door the old woman said she was
|
|
so sorry, it was all a mistake, and hoped to see me again. My blood
|
|
was roused, I would have smashed woman or man who stood in my way, and
|
|
eyeing the girl said, "Look at me well, if you meet me in the Strand
|
|
again, cut away at once, get out of my sight, or I'll give you in
|
|
charge for annoying me, or robbing me, you bloody bitch, look out for
|
|
yourself." Then dropping the poker on the mat I went out, glad enough to
|
|
be away from the den.
|
|
|
|
About a fortnight afterwards I saw the girl in the Strand, followed her
|
|
for a quarter of an hour, saw her speak to various men, saw that an old,
|
|
common, low servant followed her at a distance, occasionally stopping
|
|
to speak with her, and turning up a street for that purpose. There was
|
|
a fascination about looking at the girl; she was showily but handsomely
|
|
dressed, her legs looked lovely. I longed to fuck her again, but without
|
|
any intention of gratifying my lust, for I loathed her whilst lusting
|
|
for her. She turned up C. t...e Street, stood over the gutter and pissed
|
|
standing, the old woman talking to her and partly hiding her whilst
|
|
she emptied her bladder. I waited till she had done. It was only about
|
|
half-past nine o'clock.
|
|
|
|
She came towards me thinking I wanted her. I moved back close to a lamp,
|
|
and raised my hat. "Look at me you damned whore, you attempted to rob me
|
|
the other night, go out of the Strand, or I'll tell the next policeman
|
|
you have picked my pocket." She turned on her heels and bolted without
|
|
uttering a word, the old woman after her, cursing.
|
|
|
|
A month or two afterwards I saw her again, she was speaking to a group
|
|
of gay women. Said I, "That bitch attempted to rob me the other night at
|
|
------ Court." "It's a lie", said she, but again turned round, and ran
|
|
up a side-street as fast as she could. I don't recollect seeing her
|
|
afterwards.
|
|
|
|
I often used to go and look at the house when that way, it was such a
|
|
needy-looking house outside with a narrow steep staircase starting close
|
|
to the street-door. No one would have imagined it was so handsomely
|
|
furnished inside (although I only saw the top-room). Two or three years
|
|
afterwards there was a row there, a man tumbled down the stairs (or
|
|
was pitched down), and was picked up dead. The owner of the house was
|
|
transported. I don't know if it was the same man who was called Bill,
|
|
but suspect it was, and that many a visitor had been bullied out of his
|
|
money in that house.
|
|
|
|
One night about this time I saw a well-grown, stout woman who looked
|
|
four-and-twenty. "What a thigh she must have," thought I, "can I afford
|
|
her?" and I felt in my pocket. Ten shillings with the room besides was
|
|
too much for me that night. I passed her again looking her in the face,
|
|
and longing for her, until she knew me and smiled. She had a bright
|
|
laughing eye. Summoning courage I gave her a signal, and she followed me
|
|
up a bye-street.
|
|
|
|
"I have only five shillings." "Lord! you do want it cheap,--make it ten
|
|
shillings." "I can't." "Well _I_ can't." "Three half-crowns, and then
|
|
with the room I shan't have a shilling in my pocket." I used to speak in
|
|
that frank way to them. She laughed. "You are an odd sort of chap,--well
|
|
come along,--what house are you going to take me to?" "Where you
|
|
like,--I don't know them." "Oh! yes you do," said she, "you know well
|
|
enough with that eye of yours." We turned into a house which we both
|
|
knew, not one of the most expensive.
|
|
|
|
I was exceedingly pleased with her manner, and in her house still more
|
|
pleased with her face. Her eye was one of the merriest, she was bright,
|
|
and fresh-colored, yet the general color of her flesh was slightly
|
|
brown. Her plumpness made me so randy I could scarcely wait to feel or
|
|
look at her, I wanted to push on to the fullest pleasures at once.
|
|
|
|
She eyed me pleasantly, and made some remark about the smallness of the
|
|
sum, which made me uncomfortable. She saw it, and laughing showed a set
|
|
of beautiful small white teeth. I gave her her money at once, and
|
|
then began preliminaries. The room I recollect well. There was a
|
|
large four-post bed, a large wire screen three feet high all round the
|
|
fire-place, like those in nurseries. The house-woman flattened the fire
|
|
down, and took away the poker,--to prevent the fire being stirred I
|
|
suppose. There was but one candle, and the room was dark, there was
|
|
scarcely gas in any of the houses in those days.
|
|
|
|
I drew her to me, my hand roved about her bum, belly, and notch, I asked
|
|
her to undress, desire increasing by the feel of her thighs made me
|
|
inquisitive. She would not undress, was in a hurry, some other night
|
|
perhaps, not now. Impatient so that I might begin, I placed her on the
|
|
edge of the bed, putting a chair for one of her feet. She lifted up her
|
|
clothes freely, and I saw her cunt.
|
|
|
|
It was surrounded, though not in great quantity, with fine chestnut
|
|
brown, soft, thick hair, her thighs were large, round, fat, and firm,
|
|
the split looked small, was small outside, and I found it to be small
|
|
inside as well. A large bum squeezed together by the position in which
|
|
she was lying closed up almost the cuntal opening, so that just where
|
|
the prick must intrude itself, the hole could scarcely be seen, her
|
|
flesh had the slightly brown tint of her face. How is it that at a
|
|
glance all this was seen, and remembered ever since? What fascination a
|
|
cunt has! Strange that a mere gap close to an arse-hole should have such
|
|
power.
|
|
|
|
In admiration of her cunt and its surroundings I held a candle for a
|
|
moment between her thighs. "Hold your quim open,--do,--do." Her hand
|
|
came down, the fore and middle-finger went on either side of the split,
|
|
and distended the lips, showed the red lining, a clitoris, small, and
|
|
nice-looking, and small nymphae sloping down to the narrow carmine
|
|
darkness, closing up gradually and tightly between her bum-cheeks,
|
|
squeezed up and closed by the weight of her body pressing up her bum the
|
|
bed.
|
|
|
|
"I can bear being looked at", said she. "Then open your legs
|
|
wider,--wider dear." Wider they went. Candle in one hand I pushed the
|
|
finger of the other up her cunt. Then all delight of the eye was merged
|
|
in the maddening desire to fuck. Putting the candle somewhere it fell
|
|
down, and was extinguished; at the same moment slipping my prick to the
|
|
opening, with a smooth glide up it went. Before I had moved my prick
|
|
half a minute I was spending, before I had had a wriggle in her, before
|
|
I had well clasped her buttocks, I was leaning over her sighing, and had
|
|
finished before I had well began. I now think I feel my sensation up
|
|
her as I write this, of the rapturous smoothing of her buttocks as I
|
|
finished. Some women make me recollect them thus.
|
|
|
|
"What a bore", said I squeezing my belly close up to hers, "I hate to be
|
|
quick." I heard her laugh, but could not see her face. She did not hurry
|
|
me out of her, but at length nature caused me to withdraw, and we got
|
|
the candle lighted.
|
|
|
|
Washing herself whilst I stood talking and regretting my haste, holding
|
|
my unwashed prick in front of her, she laughing and saying I must take
|
|
my time another day, emptied the basin, and turning round asked if she
|
|
should wash me. Years had elapsed I think since a woman had done so to
|
|
me, then it was by a French woman. The offer comes to me now as having
|
|
been an unusual one. Delighted I let her. Delicately handling my doodle
|
|
she soaped and washed it, making complimentary remarks about it as she
|
|
did so.
|
|
|
|
The operation excited me, I stiffened. "Oh! I do so want you again,--let
|
|
me." "No its late,--if I don't make money before twelve I never do
|
|
afterwards,--see me another night,--besides you can't do it again yet."
|
|
"Let me feel you then only for a minute." She approached me, one hand I
|
|
put to her cunt, the other thrusting between her fat bum-cheeks met the
|
|
tip of the fingers on the other hand. "My prick's standing so." "It's
|
|
not." "Feel it." She put her hand down and felt, I stiff to the utmost
|
|
kept asking her to let me again. "Well get on the bed then", said she
|
|
after feeling me quietly for a minute,--"see the candle has burnt down,
|
|
it won't last long." By the time she had said this she was lying down
|
|
with her clothes up above her navel.
|
|
|
|
We were fucking with intensity, the candle went out, I felt her kisses.
|
|
"Oh! what a lovely cunt you have." "You've a nice prick,--who taught
|
|
you to poke so nicely?" Our tongues met,--silence, sighs, short shoves,
|
|
spunk,--and all was over. "Let me wash your cunt." "Very well." "You
|
|
wash my prick." "Yes." The mutual washing over we separated, I promising
|
|
to see her again. We had washed by the fire-light alone.
|
|
|
|
Next night at the same time we fucked again. I stripped her, and was
|
|
enamoured of her body if not of herself. She made no sign of wanting
|
|
to leave me, but rather wanted to keep me. I had not since I lost Mary
|
|
tasted a woman's mouth, with this woman I was delighted in doing so,
|
|
though with the ordinary gay women I could not bear their tongues.
|
|
Whilst we were fucking they knocked at the door saying they wanted the
|
|
room. Bessie swore, "Damn her", said she, "for interrupting us,--and
|
|
the money I have brought her." This increased my pleasure, and Bessie
|
|
participated in it. After fucking her twice we sat by the fire and
|
|
talked, she warming her bum, her petticoats up to her knees, my hand on
|
|
her quim, and airing my balls. "If you want me another night, and can't
|
|
see me, ask the woman about,--ask for Brighton Bessie,--there are two
|
|
Bessies, so mind,--Brighton Bessie", said she as we parted.
|
|
|
|
I found I could talk to this woman. Whilst doing so she would sit on my
|
|
knees and feel my prick, and I feel her privates. I had long wanted
|
|
such a free-and-easy acquaintance, for nothing annoyed me like the sham
|
|
modesty of doxies, their shuffling out of showing me their cunts, their
|
|
hurry to get me up them, and away afterwards. Bessie had none of this.
|
|
Like Camille, Mary, and all women I ever kept to long, she let me do
|
|
absolutely as I pleased, and without hurry would copulate, then sit and
|
|
talk till we were ready again
|
|
|
|
for the exercise. But they did not at the house in------
|
|
|
|
Street fancy our staying so long at their busy time; so she arranged to
|
|
meet me at B. w Street one night, and took me to a house there which was
|
|
dearer, but where she said they rarely interrupted couples.
|
|
|
|
It was nearly opposite to the Opera-House, since built. It had a very
|
|
large frontage, six or seven windows of a row I think, a dingy-looking
|
|
building that most people would have passed without noticing, or would
|
|
have thought it a dwelling-house of poorish people. The knowing ones
|
|
would have guessed that it meant something hidden and convenient. There
|
|
was no light outside, but if you pushed the door by night or by day, it
|
|
opened into a darkish lobby, then passing through a glass door with a
|
|
glimmer of light at the back, a woman met you, and conducted you to
|
|
a chamber, big or small, handsomely or poorly furnished according to
|
|
price. In it there must have been twenty rooms, and there was more
|
|
bum-wagging, more seed spent, more sighs of pleasure in that house
|
|
nightly, than in any other house in London I should think.
|
|
|
|
It was dearer; but if you stayed for hours no one ever interrupted you.
|
|
There were in Winter good large fires, the rooms were a good size, there
|
|
was no gas, two candles were given, if you wanted more you paid extra.
|
|
Wine and liquor of fair quality was got for you. The furniture was
|
|
somewhat dingy, but all the rooms had sofas on which two could lie, and
|
|
beds large enough for three with clean linen always. It was one of the
|
|
most quiet, comfortable accommodation-shops I ever was in, and with
|
|
Brighton Bessie, I passed there many voluptuous evenings.
|
|
|
|
I took a bottle of champagne with me there one night, the first time I
|
|
ever did so to a baudy house when I met a gay woman; but I wanted that
|
|
night a long, quiet evening with a free woman, and had one with her
|
|
quite after my own fashion.
|
|
|
|
I had Bessie often for about two years, and at intervals for two or
|
|
three years after that, the last was about ten years after I had first
|
|
met her. I never had a passion for her, nor did I keep only to her; but
|
|
through the Winter of this year, as nearly as I can recollect, I had few
|
|
but her. After next hot weather my lust ran riot, I got also better
|
|
off, and treated my pego to variety, but we then frequently met at B.w
|
|
Street. Poor Bessie fell in love with me, and was fond of liquor as I
|
|
shall tell, now will only tell of the way our evenings, and at times
|
|
afternoons were passed together.
|
|
|
|
If warm enough we used to strip, and lay outside the bed; if not got
|
|
into bed. As she was beautifully shaped I first took my delight in
|
|
contemplating her, then I laid along the bed, my head near her knees,
|
|
she the reverse way, and again I inspected. Sometimes she twiddled my
|
|
cock, and I her clitoris, but generally the time was spent in putting
|
|
her in every voluptuous posture, and fucking in all sorts of positions.
|
|
She liked it. "It's all my eye", she used to remark when we talked on
|
|
the subject saying, "I don't like it,--I like fucking and baudiness,
|
|
it's the best thing in life,--a short life and lots of fucking is my
|
|
motto,--women who say they never spend with men are liars,--they all
|
|
like it as much as I do." She was but twenty-one years old, although her
|
|
stoutness made her look older. And now I leave her for a time.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER III.
|
|
|
|
A change in taste.--A small cunt longed for.--Hunting in the
|
|
Strand.--Yellow-haired Kitty.--Her little companion.--Oh!
|
|
you foule.--The house in E...t.r Street.--Double fees.--
|
|
Kitty's pleasure.--Objections to washing.--Have the other
|
|
gal.--Cleanliness.--Home occupations.--I ain't gay.--Kitty's
|
|
males.
|
|
|
|
I don't know why my erotic fancies took the desire for a young lass,
|
|
but they did. My taste had for the most part run upon the big, fleshy,
|
|
fat-cunted, and large-arsed; now perhaps for contrast, perhaps from
|
|
sheer curiosity, the letch took possession of me. A small cunt, tight
|
|
and hairless perhaps,--I wondered how it looked, felt, and if pleasure
|
|
would be increased by it, and though my prick swelled when spending
|
|
until I have groaned under the grip, even of a large cunt, I longed for
|
|
quite a little one. I had never had a very young girl,--excepting the
|
|
little child,--Nelly and Sophy had both a little hair on their mottes,
|
|
so I would try for a youthful quim and one if possible with no hair on
|
|
it.
|
|
|
|
I was not versed in the walks and ways of little ones, and looking about
|
|
at night saw none. Talking about it at my Club, I heard they were to be
|
|
seen mostly in the day-time, so I looked out in the Strand for what I
|
|
wanted, and during day-light.
|
|
|
|
On a blazing hot afternoon in June I walked about a long time thinking
|
|
of youthful harlots, but saw none, or if I did could not distinguish
|
|
them. At length I saw two young girls idling about, looking in at the
|
|
shop windows on the other side of the way. One was dressed all in black,
|
|
and was taller and stouter than the other. They were not got up in any
|
|
showy way, but looked like the children of decent mechanics.
|
|
|
|
They took no notice of any one, nor any one of them, they stopped at a
|
|
shop, and I noticed that the biggest had the largest legs. A plump form
|
|
had as said attractions to me almost superior to face. Crossing to the
|
|
other side of the way I passed them, looking them full in the face.
|
|
The taller one was good-looking, white-faced, and had goldenish hair,
|
|
a colour I could not bear. They looked at me, but there was nothing to
|
|
indicate fastness. Returning I met them again, the same stare, the same
|
|
indifference. Thinking of their little cunts, and getting randy and
|
|
reckless I determined to try. They stopped at a sweetmeat-shop; going
|
|
to the side of them, and looking into the shop, not at them, so as to
|
|
prevent my being noticed, "I'll buy you whatever you want if you will
|
|
come with me", I said. The bigger of the two edged away from me, after
|
|
looking up in my face, whispered something to her companion, and they
|
|
both moved along the street without noticing me further.
|
|
|
|
I was disconcerted, and went over to the opposite side of the way again
|
|
watching them, they went to a print-shop, and looked in; the big one
|
|
looked in the direction of a lolly-pop shop, and up and down the
|
|
street. She was looking after me evidently, so I crossed over, met them
|
|
full-face, and as I passed said without stopping, "Come with me, and
|
|
I'll give you money."
|
|
|
|
I turned a corner, and looked, they were at another shop, the bigger
|
|
girl with her arm round the smaller one's neck. I again passed them,
|
|
going back to do so, and saying, "I'll give you three and sixpence."
|
|
That was the exact sum, and then turned up a street which led to baudy
|
|
houses, and waited at the turning into the street.
|
|
|
|
The two girls turned the corner, stopped, and talked, the bigger laid
|
|
hold of, and slightly pulled the smaller, and seemed to be persuading
|
|
her. Failing apparently she left her, but turned back, spoke to her
|
|
again, and both came on together. Then I turned into the back-street,
|
|
the two girls appeared at the corner of that, and then stopped and
|
|
talked for a minute. Tired of waiting I thought I had made a mistake,
|
|
and going slowly back heard the bigger one say, "You _are a foule_."
|
|
"Oh! you _foule_." "Come he wants us." "You _foule_."
|
|
|
|
"I don't want her," said I, "but you,--come,"--and returning entered a
|
|
baudy house, the outer-door of which stood open, thinking the bigger one
|
|
would follow, and sure now that she was a harlot. I then passed through
|
|
the inner door which as usual then had a glass window covered with a red
|
|
curtain.
|
|
|
|
A minute elapsed, the baudy house-keeper had been spoken to, but the
|
|
girl not coming, I opened the door to look out. The bigger girl was
|
|
just inside the outer door, and was pulling in the other one. "Come you
|
|
foule,--you said you would,--he'll give you money as well as me, and
|
|
I'll give you some of mine too,--well you are a foule," quite bawling it
|
|
out. There was not much secrecy needed in such things at those times, in
|
|
those streets.
|
|
|
|
"I don't want _her_," said I hurriedly, "it's you,--come in, or I won't
|
|
wait." She came in, the other girl disappeared, and we were soon in a
|
|
bed-room together.
|
|
|
|
It was the first house at that end of the street, had been newly opened,
|
|
and was furnished in a style not like a baudy house; no show, neat and
|
|
clean, but cheaply; no bed-hangings (and in those days most baudy houses
|
|
had bed-hangings), the blinds were new and white, the beds quite clean.
|
|
The top-floor room where I went for economy was two shillings and
|
|
sixpence. The woman of the house was tall, comely, and middle-aged. As
|
|
I paid her I noticed she had fat red cheeks. How curious that I should
|
|
recollect those red cheeks. She had a white apron on, and was a civil
|
|
sort of creature.
|
|
|
|
The girl stood still staring at me. Sitting on the edge of the bed
|
|
I stared at her, filled with baudy curiosity and the appreciation of
|
|
novelty. "Why won't you have the other gal?" said she. "I don't want
|
|
her, nor want two,--and she is a dirty little imp." "No she ain't dirty,
|
|
she washes herself like me,--let her come up." "No,--come you here."
|
|
"She is quite clean,--I wash her myself sometimes." "No, come here I
|
|
tell you."
|
|
|
|
The girl came to me dawling. I put my hands up her clothes. A fleshy
|
|
little bum met my hand, then in the front a smooth belly, a motte almost
|
|
hairless as it seemed. She said not a word, but gave a sort of jerk of
|
|
her body, and as my hand touched her bum it jutted forwards, and as I
|
|
drew my hand round to her belly she drew her belly back. It did not seem
|
|
like shame. She did not utter a word. "Take off your things", said I.
|
|
|
|
She drew away from me, and took off her bonnet, then stood still. "Off
|
|
with your things," I said throwing off some of mine. "I can't take them
|
|
off,--if I do I can't fasten them again, they are in a knot." "Take
|
|
them off." "If I do you will have to fasten me." "So I will." Slowly she
|
|
stripped to her chemise. "Take that off." "I won't." "Come here then."
|
|
She came. Laying hold of her I lifted her bodily, and threw her with her
|
|
back on the bed, throwing up her chemise and stretching open her legs
|
|
quickly. She gave a suppressed "hoh!" put her hand down to her cunt, and
|
|
felt her mons nervously.
|
|
|
|
"Take away your hand dear." She took it away, then I pulled open her
|
|
little thing. Such a delicious little gap it was, with the smallest
|
|
possible quantity of golden hair just showing on it; such a smooth white
|
|
belly and thighs, and all so plump, that I was wonder-struck at a young
|
|
girl being so round and fine. I had not expected under that shabby black
|
|
clothing anything so nice. I was charmed with her head also; in a big
|
|
black and shabby bonnet I had seen nothing but a white face and large
|
|
blue eyes. Her hair was golden in tone, bright and flowing.
|
|
|
|
Whilst pulling off my trowsers she sat up and asked, "Is it big?" For
|
|
the instant I did not quite know what she meant. "What's big?" "Your
|
|
thing,--measure it." I went up to her pulling out my pego. "It is
|
|
big," said she. "It's little," said I. "It ain't,--it's big." "No."
|
|
"Yes,--don't push hard sir,--will you now?" "No my dear I won't,--Is it
|
|
bigger than other men's pricks?" "I shan't tell you." "Well lay down and
|
|
open your thighs,"--again I lifted her on to the bed. "Don't you do it
|
|
hard," said she getting up again, "or I won't let you." "Then I won't
|
|
pay you." Back she fell, I wetted my prick, put it to the notch, and
|
|
with a shove or two was well up her. She gave a "oh,--oooh!" and then
|
|
laid quiet. Grasping her fat little bum I fucked, then stopping pulled
|
|
out my prick, and looked at her cunt. "What are you a going to do?" said
|
|
she in an astonished way.
|
|
|
|
"Get quite on to the bed dear." Slow at obeying I helped her into the
|
|
posture, and got on to her, and brought my pleasure to an end, lying on
|
|
the top of the pretty little girl.
|
|
|
|
I lay on her long afterwards, and tried by the muscular contraction
|
|
of my arse-cheeks and ballock-roots to stiffen my pego again. She laid
|
|
quiet all the time with my prick up her, but I could not manage it, my
|
|
prick shrunk.
|
|
|
|
A second erection without uncunting being impossible, I got into a
|
|
kneeling posture between her open legs, and checked a slight movement
|
|
on her part saying, "Now lie quiet,--don't move." There was I kneeling
|
|
between her thighs; looking down I saw her half-opened cunt with the
|
|
gruelly tide issuing from it, took my prick in hand half its potential
|
|
size, flabby and wet, pulled back the skin, and out rolled a large drop
|
|
of sperm on to her thigh. She lay quite quiet, looking at me, her yellow
|
|
hair falling all around her head as it lay on the pillow. Now I was
|
|
astonished at her beauty, I had not noticed it fully before.
|
|
|
|
"You are very handsome,--how old are you?" "Fifteen and a little." "You
|
|
must be more." "I don't know, but mother says so." I looked at her cunt,
|
|
the hair on it was not an eighth of an inch long, scarcely any of it,
|
|
and of course showing no intention of curling, but her form was so round
|
|
that I could not believe she was so young. "Fifteen and a little," she
|
|
repeated, her aunt and her mother had been disputing the day of her
|
|
birth; her mother was out of her mind when she gave birth to her. "Aunt
|
|
says I ain't fifteen."
|
|
|
|
"Give the other gal a shilling,--do," she broke in whilst I was
|
|
questioning her about age, and kneeling between her thighs. "What are
|
|
you so anxious about the other girl for?" "She lives over us, and is my
|
|
friend,--will you give her a shilling?--do." "Why?" "Do,--if you don't
|
|
I shall give her a shilling of mine, and give her some of mine
|
|
anyhow,--you said you'd give me three and sixpence, didn't you?"
|
|
|
|
Curiously amused I laughed. "I'll give you a shilling for her, if you
|
|
let me do it to you again." "Oh! _do_," said she.
|
|
|
|
It was hot, I had not reposed after my pleasure, so quitting my kneeling
|
|
position I laid down besides her, and began feeling her breasts. She
|
|
turned her head towards me. "You have not washed yourself," said I after
|
|
a minute's amusement with her bubbles. "It ain't no good if yer ar going
|
|
to make a mess in it agin,--when you've done it I'll wash it all out
|
|
together." I thought from that speech she was not an old one at the
|
|
game, yet after all she only behaved as every young girl I have had
|
|
usually behaved, they have mostly objected to washing their cunts
|
|
directly after a poke, I think they rarely wash it until requested.
|
|
There must be some sweet tranquillizing pleasure which a man's sperm
|
|
gives to a woman's cunt, and makes her undesirous of washing it out. It
|
|
is only when a woman knows it is good for her health if she be gay, that
|
|
she ever does it. No married woman washes the sperm out of her cunt, yet
|
|
in the morning after a night's fucking you never find the sperm if you
|
|
feel in the cunt for it,--where does it go?--it is absorbed I suppose.
|
|
|
|
We lay thus and talked. "How old are you really?" "Fifteen and two
|
|
months, as I told yer,--I always was fat, but ain't so fat as I was
|
|
though,--father used to say I should get fat on gruel." I should have
|
|
guessed her full sixteen had it not been for the little hair there was
|
|
on her motte, and the delicate pink small cut, and tight prick-hole.
|
|
"How long have you been gay?" "I ain't gay," said she astonished. "Yes
|
|
you are." "No I ain't." "You let men fuck you, don't you?" "Yes, but I
|
|
ain't gay." "What do you call gay?" "Why the gals who come out regular
|
|
of a night dressed up, and gets their livings by it." I was amused.
|
|
|
|
"Don't you?" "No, mother keeps me." "What is your father?" "Got none,
|
|
he's dead three months back,--mother works, and keeps us.--she is a
|
|
charwoman, and goes out on odd jobs." "Don't you work?" "Not now," said
|
|
she in a confused way, "mother does not want me to, I takes care of the
|
|
others." "What others?" "The young ones." "How many?" "Two,--one's a
|
|
boy, and one's a gal." "How old?" "Sister's about six, and brother's
|
|
nearly eight,--but what do you ask me all this for?" "Only for
|
|
amusement,--then you are in mourning for your father?" "Yes, it's
|
|
shabby, ain't it?--I wish I could have nice clothes, I've got nice
|
|
boots,--ain't they?"--cocking up one leg, "a lady gived em me when
|
|
father died,--they are my best."
|
|
|
|
"Are you often in the Strand?" "When I gets out I likes walking in it,
|
|
and looking at the shops,--I do if mother's out for the day." "Does she
|
|
know you are out?" The girl who had been lying on her back with her
|
|
head full towards me, turned on her side, and giggling said in a sort of
|
|
confidential way, "Bless you no,--she'd beat me if she knew,--when
|
|
she be out I locks them up, and takes the key, and then I goes back
|
|
to them,--I've got the key in my pocket, and shall be home before
|
|
mother,--she is out for the whole day."
|
|
|
|
"Do the children know you're out?" "No, I says to them, 'You be quiet
|
|
now, I'm going to the yard.'" "What's the yard?" said I not reflecting.
|
|
The girl thought a minute, chuckled, turned her head, and was silent,
|
|
she was actually blushing. "What's the yard?" Suddenly it struck me,
|
|
"Going to the privy?" She burst out laughing. "Yes that's it, I say I'm
|
|
going to the privy, and then I comes out with her, and they can't get
|
|
out, so they are all right, and we go back together if she's with me; if
|
|
she ain't I go back by myself,--there,"--and she stopped satisfied with
|
|
her explanation. "They may set fire to themselves," said I. "There ain't
|
|
no fire after we have had breakfast, I puts it out, and lights it at
|
|
night if mother wants hot water."
|
|
|
|
"What do you do with yourself all day?" "I washed both of them, I gives
|
|
them food if we've got any, then washes the floor and everything, and
|
|
then washes myself, then I looks out of the winer." "Wash yourself."
|
|
"Yes I washes from head to foot allus." "Have you a tub?" "No we've only
|
|
got a pail and a bowl, but I'm beautiful clean,--mother tells every one
|
|
I'm the beautifullest clean gal a mother ever had,--I wash everything,
|
|
mother's too tired. Sometimes we all go out and walk, but that's at
|
|
night; sometime I lays abed nearly all day."
|
|
|
|
She was beautifully clean in her flesh, her linen was clean, its color
|
|
awful; but what could be expected from a pail, a bowl, and one room to
|
|
dry things in. "You can't always be washing." "No, I do all the mending
|
|
and making,--look how my finger is pricked," said she showing it.
|
|
|
|
I had been smoothing and feeling her all over, her unwashed cunt had
|
|
come in for its share of my attentions, I had been twiddling it till
|
|
outside it was dry. Recurring to the never-failing, and always charming
|
|
theme, I got close to her, kissed her, my fingers sought the innermost
|
|
recesses of her tight little orifice. "Don't you like fucking?--does it
|
|
give you pleasure?" "It never gived me much pleasure that I know on,"
|
|
she replied. "But you don't dislike it?" "Not if they don't hurt me."
|
|
"Do they ever?" "One or two have, if they push hard,--but I shan't say
|
|
no more,--there."
|
|
|
|
There was a frankness, openness, and freshness about this girl which
|
|
delighted me. Question after question I put, and would be answered;
|
|
if evaded I put it in another shape, but she seemed willing mostly to
|
|
reply. I put into her little head things she had never dreamed of,
|
|
and all the time kept rubbing her clitoris, probing her little quim,
|
|
distending it, tickling it, and exciting her till she wriggled her
|
|
little fat bum.
|
|
|
|
"Do I hurt you?" "Oh! no,"--"let me then,"--"oh! don't sir,--I wish you
|
|
would not." "Did you never enjoy the prick up you?--never enjoy a fuck!
|
|
--you shall enjoy it with me." "Don't now," said she turning herself
|
|
round as I frigged on. "Feel my prick dear." She did not need a second
|
|
invitation. "Is it not stiff?" "Yes, and big." "Yes,--yes,--but oh!
|
|
don't sir,--take away your hand,--ah!" I talked on, frigging and
|
|
tickling, my prick throbbing, but restraining myself, for instinct told
|
|
me she was about to enjoy a pleasure she had never enjoyed yet. All at
|
|
once she relinquished my prick, a slight heaving of her belly, and her
|
|
eyes closed, then I knew she was ready to discharge.
|
|
|
|
I ceased to frig, her eyes opened, her thighs which had closed opened
|
|
again. I joined my body to hers, and we were one, I fucked,--_we_ fucked
|
|
now, for the little lass in a minute or two was dissolving in pleasure
|
|
whilst I was pissing my sperm up her, groaning as the tightness of
|
|
her little cunt squeezed my sensitive prick. If Kitty was not a harlot
|
|
before, she was from that minute she had her spend with me.
|
|
|
|
She laid quite quiet till nature dissolved our fleshy union by uncunting
|
|
me, then I laid by her side, she on her back, her thighs wide open, her
|
|
eyes closed.
|
|
|
|
"Don't it give you pleasure?" After repeating that half-a-dozen times
|
|
she said, "I don't know." "Yes you do,--did you spend?" "I don't
|
|
know what a girl's spending is," said she. "Did my prick give you
|
|
pleasure,--tell me Kitty?" At length she said yes, and she had never had
|
|
pleasure with men before. (Two years afterwards she repeated that the
|
|
first pleasure she ever had with a man was with me.) "Wash yourself."
|
|
"I'll wash when I go home." "Wash now you little beast." "What does
|
|
it matter to you?" "Wash you little devil." She washed carefully, and
|
|
whilst doing so, "Piddle," said I. "I can't abear to piddle before a
|
|
man,--what a funny man you are." "Piddle my dear," and the little dear
|
|
piddled.
|
|
|
|
Wiping herself dry she stopped in the middle of the operation and asked,
|
|
"Why wouldn't you have the other gal?" "What do you want me to have her
|
|
for?" "She's very poor." "What do you do with your money?" "Buy things
|
|
to eat,--mother's very poor, we often ain't got enough to eat." "Then
|
|
you get a little money by being gay." "I ain't gay I tell you." "Well
|
|
your friend is I suppose, and gets money." "No she doesn't,--she
|
|
isn't gay either,--no man ain't ever done it to her, she's such a
|
|
_foule_,--but she would a come in to-day with you, she said she would,
|
|
and she were just a comin when you sent her off,--she promised me, she'd
|
|
let yer if you wanted,--but she is a foule though."
|
|
|
|
"I don't believe that." "It's God's truth though, she ain't, she says
|
|
she ain't; she knows what men want gals for, but she's never let any
|
|
one,--I know she ain't, she is frightened." "Have you looked at her
|
|
cunt?" "Often," said Kitty. "And she's looked at yours?" "Of course she
|
|
has,--she lives over us I tell you, I go up to her, and she comes down
|
|
to me when mother's out,--I wash her." "You seem fond of washing." "I
|
|
likes things clean." I thought for an instant, "It may be true, I should
|
|
like to see her cunt if she's never been poked,--what object has this
|
|
little lass in pressing this so?" Then said I, "Tell me the truth, and
|
|
I'll give you another shilling,--don't lie,--I shall soon tell whether
|
|
you're lying or not," and getting up, "here is three and six (I had it
|
|
on the mantle-piece), here's a shilling for her, and there is another.
|
|
If you answer truly, I'll see you again; but I'll never see you again if
|
|
I find you are making up lies,--come here." And I sat down.
|
|
|
|
She came forward, I pulled her between my naked legs, her naked thighs
|
|
met mine, her little cunt was close to my prick, I put my hand round her
|
|
fat little bum, and looked her in the face, pressing her belly close to
|
|
mine.
|
|
|
|
"What do you want me to have her for?" "Only cos she's so poor,--why
|
|
she only gets sixpence a day,--she works at sack-making,--oh! isn't it
|
|
hard!--and her hands if you seed em, are hard and brown, stained with
|
|
the string, and what the works with,--mother wants me to work at them at
|
|
home, but I won't--I tells her I'd run away first,--she is so little she
|
|
can't carry the sacks home as other gals do; so a strong young woman who
|
|
works at sacks carries them home for her, and charges her twopence for
|
|
it,--they car-ries them home on the top of their heads; but she is too
|
|
little, she is." (At that time women worked at sack-making, and carried
|
|
them home on their heads.)
|
|
|
|
"Can she put her finger up her cunt?" "I shan't tell you all that," said
|
|
she turning nasty. "Is her cunt as open as yours?" "No it ain't." "Then
|
|
she can't get her finger up." "Oh! you are a rum cove, you are,"
|
|
said she breaking away from me, "I never seed the like of you. I must
|
|
go,--tell me what time it is." "Half-past four." "I'll go,--I give the
|
|
children something to eat about this time." "Come here, or I won't give
|
|
you the shillings." We resumed our positions. "Are you sure she has
|
|
never had a man?" "Never, she's such a _foule_,--she says she'd like to,
|
|
and she'd like the money, and yet she won't,--she is _such_ a _foule_."
|
|
"How long have _you_ done it?" "Only since we have lived this side of
|
|
the water, after father died." "How many men have you had?" "I shan't
|
|
say,--I don't recollect,--it arn't no business of yourn,--you don't
|
|
like me." "Yes I like you, but I won't tell,--no it isn't a dozen,--I
|
|
shan't say who first did it,--I shan't then,--it isn't a dozen,--yes I
|
|
am quite sure, I don't think it's ten, but it may be about that, I think
|
|
it's eight,--they didn't all do it to me, no they didn't,--one on em
|
|
only put his hands up my clothes, and went off in a minute; another
|
|
pulled up my clothes, and looked at me, and then he--" She stopped, and
|
|
I could not get her to say what, so promised her another shilling. "I
|
|
don't know what he did." "Frig himself?" "I don't know what you call
|
|
it,--yes he did that," said the girl bursting into a roar of laughter
|
|
when I showed her the operation. "I looked at him, and he went away
|
|
without speaking,--he only gave me half-a-crown; but an old gentleman
|
|
one day gave me a gold bit of ten shillings." She began counting on her
|
|
fingers. I thought she was reckoning her gains, she was a long time at
|
|
it, doing it over and over again; at length, "It's seven," said she.
|
|
"What?" "Gentlemen,--you make eight."
|
|
|
|
"Your little friend is too young," said I. "She is fourteen, but shorter
|
|
than me." "Has she any hair on her cunt?" "You can just see some coming,
|
|
and it's black." "She is dirty." "No she ain't, but she was till she
|
|
knew me,--she can't help her clothes being dirty, but she mends em,--how
|
|
I wish I had nice clothes like the gals about at night, and like
|
|
gentlefolks!" said Kitty in a sort of ecstacy, and then tossed up
|
|
half-a-crown, and caught it.
|
|
|
|
I began to long for the other girl, and told her she might bring her the
|
|
next day, that she should have three and sixpence, and her friend the
|
|
same, and more if I did it. Kitty went off agreeing to meet me with her
|
|
if their mothers were out, but if not, the day after, all depended on
|
|
their mothers' absence. She would listen to the church-clock, and as it
|
|
struck three she would leave; it was only by listening that she knew the
|
|
time. She would put by a penny for the bridge-toll; generally she went
|
|
round by Westminster bridge to avoid paying the penny. Then we left.
|
|
Her little friend I found was loitering close by. They went into a
|
|
pastry-cook's, and I watched them both eating together as they went
|
|
along towards Waterloo bridge, Kitt and Pol.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IV.
|
|
|
|
Little Pol consents.--Arsy-versy.--Broached, and howling.--
|
|
Kitty's vocalization.--A cheap virginity.--Two hours after.--
|
|
Love's money lost.--The street-gully.--Kitty pleases.--Pol
|
|
tires.--Kitty's habits.--Friendliness and frankness.--
|
|
Sausage rolls.--Confessions of lust.
|
|
|
|
On the appointed day I saw Kitty but alone, she followed me to the
|
|
house, and soon by my pego her sweet little cunt was distended. I had
|
|
her all the afternoon, and tailed her to the extent of my powers. The
|
|
girl was delighted, her eyes sparkled with lewdness. Was fucking nice?
|
|
"Oh! yes, yes," she replied, it was nicer than she thought, nicer
|
|
than gals told her it would be. This was after I had called her at our
|
|
meeting a little humbug, for not bringing her friend. The excuse was
|
|
that Pol's mother was at home. I did not believe it, but was so content
|
|
with her sweet little form, the ease with which I handled her, the
|
|
enticing look of the cunt, its tightness, and her pleasant, frank
|
|
manners, that I forgot all about the other little one, till going
|
|
away, then said, "Mind you bring your friend, and I'll give you five
|
|
shillings, but you know you won't, you little storyteller." "I will,--I
|
|
shall,--I'll make her come,--she wants, but she is such a foule,--and
|
|
she's frightened of her mother."
|
|
|
|
Another blazing hot day. The two were looking in at the pastry-cook's,
|
|
the taller with her arm round the neck of the other. I watched them for
|
|
a minute, Kit often looked around anxiously, and seeing me, moved off
|
|
quickly towards the street. I followed on the opposite side of the way,
|
|
then stopped. The small one stood with her back against a wall, Kitty
|
|
was gesticulating. I went on passing without noticing them. As I passed
|
|
I heard, "You are a _foule_,--you're a _liar_,--you said you would."
|
|
"I shan't then." Turning the corner I looked back. There they still were
|
|
standing as on the first day I saw them. Thought I, "She can't persuade
|
|
the little one," so walked on to W..l....n Street, to the Lyceum
|
|
portico, and back again in a fever of expectancy. As I got near the
|
|
house they both turned the corner, so in I went and waited till both
|
|
girls appeared, and soon heard two pairs of feet after me on the same
|
|
staircase, two young voices whispering, the Mistress following us all.
|
|
|
|
"Why five shillings?" "You have _two_ young ladies to-day, double price
|
|
you know sir." I did _not_ know, for it was the first time I had had two
|
|
women together in a house. Excited and anxious I had got to fucking-heat
|
|
in anticipation of a small unprobed cunt, paid the money, and there was
|
|
I with the two little ones face to face, two young cunts at my disposal,
|
|
a novelty, and a charming one. The woman closed the door, casting a
|
|
queer look at the girls and me. I locked it.
|
|
|
|
I put my hand up Kitty's clothes, the other girl, an ugly little imp
|
|
in a bonnet as big as a coal-scuttle, and with boots which looked as if
|
|
they were her mother's, stood and stared with eyes wide open,--they were
|
|
dark, and her hair nearly black. "Come here my dear." "Come to him,"
|
|
said Kitty. The girl drew near, I took her on my knee. "So you are the
|
|
friend of Kitty, and we are going to play with each other naked, aren't
|
|
we?--I'm going to look at your cunt, and you are going to feel my cock."
|
|
She made no reply. "I'm going to look where your piddle comes out,
|
|
aren't I?" "_No_," said the girl sullenly after reflecting a minute, and
|
|
hanging her head on one side, "I shan't."
|
|
|
|
"Yes he is you foule,--oh! you _are_ a foule," burst out Kitty, "I wish
|
|
I didn't know you, you are _such_ a foule,--she said she would sir,
|
|
she knows all about it, she does, she knows what she has comed for, she
|
|
does,--now don't be a foule (in a threatening manner), I won't speak to
|
|
you agin, nor gi yer nothink (Kitty's English was awful),--you may get
|
|
yer belly filled, I won't help fill it." All this over and over again,
|
|
in anger.
|
|
|
|
The girl looked at Kitty humbly. "Well I will then." I put my hands up
|
|
her petticoats on to a lean pair of thighs. "Take off your things." "Yes
|
|
_take_ them off," said Kitty helping her off with her bonnet, and to
|
|
undress. "Are you going to take off yours Kitty?" said she. "Yes when
|
|
you have," and without more ado she stripped the girl to her chemise,
|
|
and herself likewise. I took off all but my shirt and socks. It was a
|
|
sweating hot day.
|
|
|
|
The girl was not very inviting, was heavy and lubberly, and looked as if
|
|
she had not enough to eat; but there was in her a virgin cunt, so I was
|
|
told, although even then a little sceptical about what a female told me
|
|
on that point. My tooleywag was standing at the idea, I shook it before
|
|
them, and calling both to me held them round their naked bums, and made
|
|
them feel me. The pair of little fists anxiously feeling from the root
|
|
of my balls to the tip of the piercer soon rendered me impatient for
|
|
action. I was near the side of the bed facing the windows, and through
|
|
the white blinds came the strong light of a summer's afternoon. Lifting
|
|
the fresh one from my knee I put her on her back on the bed, and lifted
|
|
her scanty chemise. Close went her legs together, I opened them, she
|
|
resisted, I grew angry, Kitty called her a foule. Coaxed and bullied
|
|
at the same time she yielded, I pulled the legs wide open, and kneeling
|
|
threw one over my shoulder, the other I pressed outwards, and with my
|
|
other hand opened her cunt-lips wide; then she kicked her legs over me,
|
|
and turning arse upwards got up. A little row, again she yielded, again
|
|
served me the same trick. I damned her for a bitch, and Kitty reviled
|
|
her. "She is a fool Kitty,--show her what I want." Kitty hesitated
|
|
a moment, then throwing herself on to the bed opened her thighs, and
|
|
pulled her cunt-lips apart. The young one gradually persuaded let me
|
|
do for her what Kitty did for herself, after she had carefully studied
|
|
Kitty's quim for a minute.
|
|
|
|
I saw with speechless excitement the girl's cunt, which seemed at first
|
|
glance as if a prick had entered it; but looking more closely saw that
|
|
the perforation was too small. I thrust gently my finger up it,--a
|
|
cry,--a howl. "Don't,--you're a hurting," and again the little devil
|
|
was arse upwards on the bed. Again I coaxed, promised, lied, and Kitty
|
|
bullied; again I saw the cunt, that it was not like cunts that had been
|
|
fucked: the hairless lips, a little black tint just above the notch,
|
|
a little hole. My eyesight failed me, the demon of desire said, "It's
|
|
fresh, it's virgin,--bore it,--bung it,--plug it,--stretch it,--split
|
|
it,--spunk in it," and I laid hold of her thin backside mad with lust,
|
|
kissing and sniffling at her cunt.
|
|
|
|
"Let's lay on the bed, and all strip quite naked,--it's so hot." "Yes
|
|
do," said Kitty. She stripped the girl of her pea-soup coloured rag,
|
|
and we both stripped. There we were in a minute all three naked, close
|
|
together, with but little room, the girl in the middle. I pressed to
|
|
her, put her hand round my prick, talked baudy. Kitty said, "Now let
|
|
him." The girl said no. I put one leg over, and worked myself between
|
|
her little thighs, partly holding myself up on my elbow and pattering
|
|
baudy which Kitty kept repeating. "It won't hurt dear." "No it won't
|
|
hurt," said Kitty. "Just let me touch it with his prick." Kitty in her
|
|
anxiety slipped right off the bed, and getting herself up stood by the
|
|
bedside repeating the baudy words I uttered.
|
|
|
|
The girl lay quiet, Kitty telling her not to be a fool; but _I_ was a
|
|
fool, for the notch being small I did not hit it well. Putting my prick
|
|
down to where my fingers underlied the split, I pushed towards the goal,
|
|
not pressing her with my body, but keeping my weight off by leaning on
|
|
my right elbow, for it seemed that if I laid on her I should crush
|
|
and frighten her, the girl seemed so slim. My tool struck hard at the
|
|
orifice, she howled. Fearing to miss my game I then fell with the
|
|
full weight of my body on her, grasping her thin buttocks, and nearly
|
|
stifling her on that hot afternoon, determined to have her if I killed
|
|
her. The girl gave howl after howl, and I rammed with all my might
|
|
the more. "Hish!--hold your tongue you foule," said Kitty. As the girl
|
|
wriggled violently, and cried.
|
|
|
|
"Damn you, if you are not quiet I'll rip your dress into ribbons, and
|
|
you may go home, and tell your mother what you like,--damn you I'll
|
|
murder you,--I'll give you ten shillings." "You fool he'll give you ten
|
|
shillings." I heard no more, oscillating my arse, and driving with all
|
|
my force between her legs, I knew not how, I knew not where. Still the
|
|
girl howled, and Kitty kept hushing.
|
|
|
|
"The woman will turn us out of the house you foule,--she won't let me
|
|
come in again,--oh! you foule," said Kitty. In my blind battering I
|
|
at last lodged the tip well between the lips. The next instant with a
|
|
cunt-splitting thrust I was up the howling little bitch who wriggled
|
|
like an eel; but I held her skinny arse up to me like a vice, kept my
|
|
peg fixed and un-moveably up her in spite of her. Her wriggles alone
|
|
would have kept it stiff enough, and fetched me. "Be quiet,--I am up
|
|
you,--I can't h--hurt--you--now,--ah!"--and my spunk was up the virgin
|
|
quim of the ugly little devil.
|
|
|
|
She laid quiet, but whinning, "Oh! you said you would not hurt
|
|
me,--ho!--hho!" she sobbed, then laid quite still with my prick up her,
|
|
snottily whimpering, "o--oho!"--and all was tranquil, I nearly asleep.
|
|
|
|
"Is it in her?" said Kitty in a whisper, "is it in yer Pol?" Having got
|
|
no answer from me. "Oh! what a foule you are." "I've done it," said
|
|
I. "Let her get up," said Kit. I don't recollect having been up such a
|
|
tight cunt, not that it gave me pleasure, but the extreme tightness was
|
|
such a novelty. "I will do it again." "Have you done it really?" said
|
|
Kitty. "Put your hand and feel," said I opening my legs a little to
|
|
let Kitty feel under my testicles, "my prick's right up her cunt
|
|
now,--feel."
|
|
|
|
"Have you done it really?" "Yes,--feel." "Ri--tol--lural--li--do!"
|
|
said Kitty setting off in a happy dance all round the room. I went on
|
|
fucking, keeping the girl quiet, I could pull her little form up to me
|
|
as tight as wax, and coaxing and promising all sorts of things I fucked
|
|
her again without uncunting.
|
|
|
|
"Have you really done it?" said Kitty again. "Yes twice,--put your hand
|
|
up under my balls and feel." Kitty thinking better of the suggestion
|
|
this time did so, and satisfying herself that my prick was out of her
|
|
touch, set off dancing again with a "ri--too--ralooral--ledo!" I got
|
|
off the girl, the hair of my prick saturated with blood and spunk. "She
|
|
is bleeding." The girl began snivelling worse than ever when she heard
|
|
that, and began feeling her cunt.
|
|
|
|
"What are you crying for you foule?--did he hurt you much?--let's look
|
|
at it,"--and Kitty looked at the little quim bunged up with sperm mixed
|
|
with blood. "Oh! ain't he done it!--ritollooralado, ritolloolra-lado,"
|
|
and she capered again. "What are you dancing and singing for?" I asked.
|
|
"She's had it done,--oh! look what a mess is on the bed, the woman will
|
|
kick up a row."
|
|
|
|
"Get up and wash it you fool, and don't cry." "It hurts." "Wash it."
|
|
"It will hurt." "No it won't you foule." Here Kitty put a basin on the
|
|
floor, pushed the girl towards it, and made her wash. Then we got her on
|
|
to the bed, and both of us took a long, long look at her split. It was
|
|
bleeding freely, I saw the ragged edge my intrusion had made, and not
|
|
feeling inclined for more fucking gave the girl half-a-sovereign in
|
|
gold, Kitty five shillings, and went off leaving them still naked, Kitty
|
|
from time to time looking at her friend's wounded orifice, and saying it
|
|
would soon be all right, that her thing had bled also. I had fear that I
|
|
might be in trouble through my voluptuousness, although a girl of twelve
|
|
years is competent to judge of her own fitness for fucking, and many not
|
|
a month over that age are plugged daily in London.
|
|
|
|
I had to go to the Temple that afternoon, returning along the Strand an
|
|
hour afterwards, not thinking of my afternoon's amusement, for I had had
|
|
a disagreeable interview with solicitors, when just at the end of C-----
|
|
Street was a slight crowd, in the middle of it the two girls, and the
|
|
one I had fucked an hour before crying. Some man gave her money. "Oh!
|
|
Lord," thought I, "here is a row about what I have been doing," so got
|
|
into a cab, and drove off. When a mile away I began to reflect, and felt
|
|
more comfortable, but still uneasy, and determined not to meet them the
|
|
next day as I had promised. The day after I saw Kitty walking by
|
|
herself, that funked me again, so I cut away without her seeing me.
|
|
Thought I, "There will be a row about that ugly little lump having been
|
|
pierced, I will go no more." But the letch was so strong that I could
|
|
not resist, and on the third day driving past in a cab I saw the two
|
|
girls as usual looking in at shops. Alighting I winked as I passed,
|
|
heard one say, "Here he is," and three minutes afterwards we were all in
|
|
the house again.
|
|
|
|
To strip the two, and examine their cunts was an affair of five minutes,
|
|
then laying the little one open-legged I looked at hers tranquilly, and
|
|
saw how the slit was completed. The girl whose name I forget, but will
|
|
call Pol, put her finger down, and indicated where, she felt a
|
|
difference had been made in the shape. I fucked the lass at the side of
|
|
the bed, proping up her skinny rump with pillows, Kitty with her face
|
|
about a foot off admiring the prick as it shoved in and out the little
|
|
red orifice. It was a novelty to her to see it done.
|
|
|
|
Kitty was an odd girl. "Don't hurt her now," she kept saying. The little
|
|
one had objected to my probing her again with my prick, but saying I
|
|
should otherwise not give her a farthing she consented. My delight
|
|
was increased by the power I found I had of making her howl whenever I
|
|
shoved vigorously, and I nearly knocked my prick through into her womb I
|
|
imagine. The more she howled the more I banged my prick up her, the more
|
|
I enjoyed her.
|
|
|
|
When it was over I asked how she had spent her money. Out burst the
|
|
little animal into tears. "She made me drop it, I didn't spend any of
|
|
it sir, I lost it." "You dropped it yourself," said Kitty. "You lie."
|
|
"I don't." "She does,"--and so on, and I got at the facts when Kitty had
|
|
vigorously slapped the face of her friend, and called her fifty times a
|
|
_foule_.
|
|
|
|
Going into the Strand the girl had the money in her hand, Kitty told her
|
|
to put it into her pocket. She refused. Kitty said she would lose it,
|
|
and just then she dropped it close by a sewer-grating, down which the
|
|
half-sovereign went. The girl cried, the two quarrelled, and there was
|
|
soon a crowd round them. Kitty said that the girl's mother had given her
|
|
a half-sovereign to buy some bread with, and she had lost it. Some one
|
|
gave the girl sixpence, the crowd dispersed, and Pol lost the fruits of
|
|
her first fucking. Never was lost a virginity so poorly rewarded. I did
|
|
not make up her loss, but gave her half-a-crown with which she was well
|
|
contented. I certainly was in luck to get all this fun for such trifling
|
|
sums, I being still in poorish circumstances. Five years before I would
|
|
have given thirty pounds for the same, and had paid two hundred for
|
|
Louise.
|
|
|
|
Giving Kitty three and six, and beginning to put on my drawers she said,
|
|
"Oh! do it to me, you have done it to her." "Do you want it?" "Yes."
|
|
"Feel my cock." Kitty grasped it eagerly, we got on to the bed, Pol
|
|
watched now the graceful manipulation, insertion, and wriggles of
|
|
pleasure of her friend, for Kitty was fast learning fucking, though
|
|
quite innocent of the art of frigging. I never knew such a bungler as
|
|
she was at her first attempt at that.
|
|
|
|
I grew tired of ugly little Pol when I had bored her a few times, and
|
|
would not have her again. Kitty I continued to see, she was a most
|
|
amusing girl. Too young on the town to have learnt the tricks and
|
|
cunning of a harlot, naturally frank and truthful, with some liking for
|
|
me (for she looked forward to our voluptuous dallyings), she gave me for
|
|
a long time much amusement, and I heard the incidents of her short life.
|
|
She would jabber like a magpie about them when she knew me well, which
|
|
she soon did, and began to look to me regularly for her supply of money.
|
|
|
|
She used directly she caught sight of me, to walk as fast as possible
|
|
towards the house, and get in before me. She was in the room waiting and
|
|
grinning when I got there. "Shall I take off my things?" "Yes." Off
|
|
they went, and on to the bed the plump white-skinned little girl rolled
|
|
whilst I undressed at leisure. "Open your legs Kit, and let's see your
|
|
cunt." How she clutched my prick the moment I was by the side of her. It
|
|
really was very nice.
|
|
|
|
She said, "I buy things to eat, I can't eat what mother gives us, she is
|
|
poor, and works very hard, she'd give us more, but she can't; so I
|
|
buys food, and gives the others what mother gives me, they don't know
|
|
better,--if mother's there I eat some, sometimes we have only gruel and
|
|
salt; if we have a fire we toast the bread, but I can't eat it if I am
|
|
not dreadful hungry." "What do you like?" "Pies and sausage-rolls,"
|
|
said the girl smacking her lips and laughing, "oh! my eye ain't they
|
|
prime,--oh!" "That's what you went gay for?" "I'm not gay," said she
|
|
sulkily. "Well what you let men fuck you for." "Yes." "Sausage-rolls?"
|
|
"Yes, meat-pies and pastry too."
|
|
|
|
"What did you let the first man do it to you for?" "I don't know, he
|
|
came up to me and told me he'd give me some money, if I would go to
|
|
a house with him,--he only wanted to talk with me, and I was then so
|
|
hungry. He took me to No. 4, just opposite here, and did it to me."
|
|
"What did he give you?" "Five shillings." "You had never had it before?"
|
|
"Never." "I don't believe you." "I never had, I'm only fifteen and
|
|
a little,--he met me in the Strand near where you did," she cried
|
|
indignantly. "Did he hurt you?" "Yes, and made me bleed,--I was upset,
|
|
and didn't think much about it till I got home and found my shemmy
|
|
bloody. I washed it, and put it on again quite wet, so that mother
|
|
mightn't know."
|
|
|
|
As she talked she would feel my cock, every now and then raise her head
|
|
to look at it, fall back again as if satisfied, and go on feeling it and
|
|
talking.
|
|
|
|
She was intensely curious about my prick, would lay and examine it for
|
|
half-an-hour at a time silently. One day after feeling it she asked
|
|
if she might do what she liked with it. Certainly. She moved on to her
|
|
knees (we were both stark naked on the bed, and had fucked not long
|
|
before), and began feeling it, skinning, then covering the tip, looking
|
|
under the balls and smelling it. "How smooth and red it is," said
|
|
she,--"Does that hurt?" and she rubbed her finger over the tip orifice.
|
|
"A little,--wet your finger," She did. "Shall I wet it with my tongue?"
|
|
"Do." She licked it, and bit by bit put it into her mouth, asking me
|
|
occasionally if she hurt me. I laid amused with the sexual promptings of
|
|
her nature. She took it out of her mouth, put it in again, then it got
|
|
stiff, then she laughed. "Isn't it funny?" said she, "how smooth and red
|
|
it is,--first it's flabby, then it's stiff,"--and she relinquished it,
|
|
laying down across me, and contemplating it quite silently.
|
|
|
|
"Did you do that to the other gentleman?" I asked. "Oh! no, never,--I
|
|
didn't think about it,--only one on em stopped long,"--and she told me
|
|
about all of their doings. She could never make out but seven, though
|
|
she always asserted there were eight who had had her before me.
|
|
|
|
I did not like either cock-sucking or cunt-licking at that epoch, and
|
|
stopped Kitty who was bent on stiffening it with her mouth. She had no
|
|
idea however of giving me a pleasure that way, it was simply curiosity
|
|
and novelty. Often she did the same thing, indeed always had a quarter
|
|
of an hour at it.
|
|
|
|
I saw her about twice a week, sometimes more, it was all she could
|
|
manage "in dodging her mother." I gave her three and sixpence each time,
|
|
which made her quite happy and contented, and it was a very economical
|
|
pleasure to me. She learnt much from me, in six weeks blushed at
|
|
nothing, and was impatient to be fucked. "Do that afterwards," would she
|
|
say if I dallied long in the preliminaries, then quietly, "Oh! ain't
|
|
it pleasure!" she added in an artless satisfied way. Then somehow she
|
|
persuaded her mother that she might go out if fine for a little time in
|
|
the afternoon, and she was let out occasionally when the mother was
|
|
at home, but which rarely was the case; and then I saw the pretty lass
|
|
almost daily, but always in the afternoon; and her impatience to have
|
|
the pleasure of fucking became almost comical.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER V.
|
|
|
|
Kitty's antecedents.--The fishmonger's.--Jim the shopman.--
|
|
Betty the maid.--Females in bed.--Mutual curiosity.--
|
|
Letchery and frigging.--Educated in coition.--Against the
|
|
kitchen-wall.--Jim in bed.--Betty's cunt washed out.--A look
|
|
in the basin.--Cousin Grace, and cousin Bob.--Bob on the
|
|
spree.--A scuffle.--Topsy-turvy.--Arsy-versy.--Bob's semen.--
|
|
A masturbating duet.--Caught in the act.--Kicked out.
|
|
|
|
I questioned her many a time, and put together here consecutively what
|
|
she said. She was as much pleased to gossip about it as I was.
|
|
|
|
She was the daughter of a carpenter, had been kept at home to help
|
|
her mother, till six months previously to my meeting her, when growing
|
|
restive, and I dare say her animal vigor inciting her to go forth into
|
|
the world, she went into a situation at a fishmonger's who wanted some
|
|
girl to nurse a little child, his wife being ill.
|
|
|
|
I believed she had told me most things about herself from the time the
|
|
doodle had first penetrated her: yet why had not such a big girl been
|
|
put to earn her living? she said that her mother was always in the
|
|
family way, or a child was ill, so she being the biggest helped at home.
|
|
|
|
But she had been in service, about all of which she told me one hot
|
|
afternoon. Ice was then a luxury, they charged two pence extra for a
|
|
bottle of gingerbeer iced. She was fond of gingerbeer, we had some iced
|
|
with sherry, and lay on the bed drinking it as she told me her story
|
|
bit by bit. This is an account of my doings, and not of tales told me by
|
|
others, but I must tell _her_ tale, for I believed every bit of it, and
|
|
it is almost part of my own, and this is how it came out.
|
|
|
|
"If you never spent with a man till you did with me, you had frigged
|
|
yourself." "I never did till the gal at the fishmonger's did it to
|
|
me,--we slept together." "Then you had been in service?" "Only two
|
|
months, I went to mind a little child."
|
|
|
|
The fishmonger was a little struggling tradesman, in a house with a
|
|
shop on the ground-floor, and a little back-parlour, and kitchens, and a
|
|
cellar below where they kept fish-baskets.
|
|
|
|
Over the shop were two rooms, one was the fishmonger's bed-room, and two
|
|
bed-rooms above. The wife was confined to her bed, and her husband slept
|
|
alone in the back-room which was usually the female servant's; so the
|
|
servant was put into a bed on the top-floor. This maid cooked, cleaned,
|
|
did everything, and had an eye as well to the shop if her Mistress was
|
|
ill, and when Master and his man were out; but she could not mind the
|
|
child as well. The fishmonger asked the carpenter if he knew of a strong
|
|
steady lass, the carpenter named his own girl, and Kitty went for grub,
|
|
lodging, and one and six a week. She was to sleep with the maid on the
|
|
top-floor over the rooms where Master and Mistress slept. The servant's
|
|
name was Betty.
|
|
|
|
The fishmonger drank. A young man named Jim went with him to market, and
|
|
sometimes without him if he had been very drunk over night. Jim opened
|
|
the shop, harnessed the horse and cart, and every night when the Master
|
|
went to bed, Jim went to the underground kitchen, opened a cupboard,
|
|
pulled down something called a bed, and slept there.
|
|
|
|
Jim was up first, and to bed but last, could not go to bed till the
|
|
maid-of-all-work was out of the kitchen. Jim pissed in the sink, and
|
|
made his own bed every morning as soon as he got up, which was done
|
|
by turning it up somehow into the cupboard, and then he called up his
|
|
Master and the maid. The privy was in the yard.
|
|
|
|
Kitty took charge of the child, and the first night as she was going to
|
|
bed and took her things off Betty said, "Where is your night-gown?" "I
|
|
ain't got none," said Kitty, "I sleep in my shemmy." Betty tossed up
|
|
her head. Kitty cried. "Father's a poor man," said she, "but he's
|
|
respectable, and though I sleeps in my shemmy I am very clean, I washes
|
|
all over every day,--look at my legs and my neck,--but with my first
|
|
week's wages I'll buy a night-gown."
|
|
|
|
"Never mind," said Betty, "you _are_ clean, and you're fat,--your
|
|
dad gives you lots of grub,--don't cry, I only said, 'where's your
|
|
night-gown?'--Lord you are fat for your age!--how old did you say you
|
|
were?--why what a big bum you've got for your age!"
|
|
|
|
Kitty had been staring at Betty, and the hair on the bottom of her
|
|
belly. "She was so hairy," said Kitty to me, "I had never seen a woman
|
|
naked before, and the hair on her belly made me look." "Say on her cunt
|
|
Kitty." "Well on her cunt,--such lots, and so black,--I had seen gals'
|
|
things, my cousins used to show me theirs, and I showed them mine to see
|
|
how our hair was coming; but I did not think a woman could grow such a
|
|
lot there."
|
|
|
|
It was a cold night, the girl and the woman were in bed. "Come closer,
|
|
we will be warmer." Kitty got closer, then Bet began feeling Kitty. How
|
|
smooth, how soft she was, how plump, and not quite fifteen?--what a
|
|
bum,--why her thighs were quite large. "Oh! don't mind I want to warm my
|
|
hand, between your thighs, put your hand between mine,--there,--you've
|
|
just a little hair coming on your thing,--feel mine, it's like the hair
|
|
on your head, isn't it?--I am only twenty-five,--but when you are
|
|
twenty you will have as much Kitty. Your hand is cold, put it between
|
|
my thighs, we will warm each other there. What a nice little thing your
|
|
cunt is," said Betty feeling the little one's.
|
|
|
|
Soon the very first night they felt each other's flesh, Kitty wondering
|
|
at the cunt and hair of the grown woman, Betty thinking perhaps of what
|
|
I can only guess at. Kitty went to sleep with one hand between Betty's
|
|
thighs, and awaking in the night felt Betty again who was asleep and
|
|
snoring. She was a stout, big-built, fat-arsed, black-bristle-cunted
|
|
woman (that is from Kitty's description), but she must have been older
|
|
than she said, for the hair was thick and black in her armpits, and she
|
|
had slight hair on her lips besides.
|
|
|
|
Betty got more free next night. "You've a sweetheart, and you let him
|
|
feel this little thing,--the men call it cunt." Kitty said she had not,
|
|
and had not been felt. "I know better, you let him put his cock up it."
|
|
Kitty did not. "What never been fucked?--that is what men call it,--let
|
|
me feel." "No." Betty felt Kitty's cunt, and hurt her. "Well I don't
|
|
believe you have,--you are a stupid,--it's half the pleasure of
|
|
life,--feel my cunt,--give me your hand,--there your fingers are on
|
|
it,--oh! it don't hurt, you may feel right up."
|
|
|
|
Kitty was overwhelmed and ashamed. "I did not like it, but yet I felt so
|
|
curious that I let my fingers go where she placed them, and I felt all
|
|
about her thing." "Cunt Kitty." "Well about her cunt."
|
|
|
|
So gradually at night the elder led on the younger, by talking, feeling,
|
|
and telling the little one all she knew, explaining the pleasures of
|
|
fucking, the male mysteries, and male tastes and habits, although she
|
|
was what was called respectable, and worked hard for her living as
|
|
maid-of-all-work.
|
|
|
|
Betty pushed matters further. "I don't quite believe you are a
|
|
maid,--let me look,--would you not like to look at me?--show me yours,
|
|
I'll show you mine." Curiosity to see the cunt of a full-grown woman
|
|
took possession of Kit.
|
|
|
|
On Sunday Jim had a holiday, the shop was shut, Allwork cooked the
|
|
dinner, then the fishmonger had grog, and went to lie down, Betty went
|
|
up to clean herself, Kitty and the child went up with her then Kitty
|
|
showed her cunt, and Betty showed hers. "It was big, and such lots of
|
|
hair,--I'd never seen one before," said Kitty, "she pulled it open wide,
|
|
afterwards she pulled mine open, and we looked at each other over and
|
|
over again. I'd seen my little sister's and cousin's, and two or three
|
|
other gals' things, but they were all young; I'd never seen a big
|
|
woman's."
|
|
|
|
Kitty getting bolder asked if she had ever let a man do it to her. Yes,
|
|
she had been married, and knew all about it. "You never had a child?"
|
|
"Never you little fool, there are lots of ways of stopping that,--oh!
|
|
I love it, I wish I had a nice young man with a big prick here.--I wish
|
|
you were a man." She took Kitty in her arms, and put her on the bed.
|
|
"There, lay still on your back, open your legs, and I'll show you how a
|
|
man gets on." Kitty did. Then she pulled Kitty on to her, and made her
|
|
play the man. "There, move,--push your cunt up against mine,--up and
|
|
down,--quick,--there, that's how the man moves when he is fucking till
|
|
he spends,--then Lord! ain't he quiet!"
|
|
|
|
Within a week the experienced woman talking to the girl about fucking,
|
|
had described its pleasures, explained its mysteries, acted and the mode
|
|
and manner of the doing, until Kitty felt wild to see, feel, and act it
|
|
for herself.
|
|
|
|
"Don't you ever frig yourself?" said Bet. "No." "You know what it is?"
|
|
"Yes." Betty told of the pleasure a finger could bring her, but Kitty
|
|
was not forward in sexual wants, and she had not frigged herself or
|
|
known sexual pleasure in her cunt up to that time, though she had
|
|
fingered herself.
|
|
|
|
"I'll frig you," said she. Kitty objected, but the talk of prick, of the
|
|
delight of the male and female in feeling and rubbing each other upset
|
|
Kitty, who was growing older, and whose animalism was perhaps rampant
|
|
that night. She left a lovely sensation all over her as Bet rubbed her
|
|
cunt, and she spent. Betty then took Kit's fingers, and rubbed her own
|
|
cunt. "What with _your_ fingers?" "Yes Kitty's fingers," and rubbed them
|
|
on her clitoris, and frigged herself with them, Kit supposed.
|
|
|
|
That same night alying sleepless under the excitement of the novel
|
|
pleasure whilst Allwork snored, Kitty frigged herself. The next night
|
|
they frigged together. Betty said, "It's poor pleasure,--I likes a man,
|
|
and you'll like a chap,--some one will fancy you soon,--you let him do
|
|
it. When you have a great stiff cock up your cunt poking and poking,
|
|
and poking away,--oh! it's delicious, and you won't like frigging after
|
|
that."
|
|
|
|
One night the fishmonger was out, Kitty put the child to bed (he had
|
|
the child to sleep in his bed usually). Bet and Kit were in the
|
|
shop-parlour, and Jim in the shop. Betty went down to the kitchen, Jim
|
|
soon afterwards told Kit to give an eye to the shop, and call him if
|
|
wanted, and down he went. Kitty who had been sharpened in three weeks,
|
|
who had seen Jim kissing Betty, and giving her funny pokes when he
|
|
thought no one was looking, went to the kitchen-stairs, and going down
|
|
a few steps slowly and peeping; saw Betty with her back up against the
|
|
wall, Jim close up to her and his hands round her, and his bum moving in
|
|
a funny way. She knew they were fucking, and fearful of being detected
|
|
came softly into the shop again; but she made a noise. Up came Betty,
|
|
the Master came home, and told Betty to go to bed, and Jim to shut up.
|
|
Soon after Betty washed her cunt. That seems to have been an operation
|
|
that Kitty never had seen her perform excepting on Sundays. Kitty then
|
|
felt sure that she had caught Bet at the pleasant exercise, for she had
|
|
heard how something thick and white came out of the man's cock, and how
|
|
it was wise to wash the cunt out afterwards.
|
|
|
|
Betty seems to have been suspicious, for she began asking why she had
|
|
come down the stairs. To call Jim, a customer having come--but he had
|
|
gone away she replied. Betty was too clever to take that in. Did she see
|
|
her, she asked. Kitty had seen her and Jim standing close up in front of
|
|
her, "and he was moving about, and I told her," said Kitty.
|
|
|
|
Kitty on being pressed said she thought they were doing what Betty had
|
|
said men and women did. "Fucking me?" "Yes." He was doing nothing of the
|
|
sort, that she would swear; but they did it sometimes, for he was going
|
|
to marry her soon, and after making Kitty promise not to tell, they went
|
|
to sleep. "If you tell," said the knowing older one, "you will lose your
|
|
place."
|
|
|
|
Next night Betty said, "You be quiet, Jim is going to marry me soon,
|
|
only he don't wish it known, he is coming up when Master's asleep, and
|
|
going to lay down by the side of me,--you sham to be asleep." Kitty
|
|
remarked, "He can't lay here all night." No, when he had had his
|
|
pleasure he would go. Kitty had fear come over her, but promised, then
|
|
fell asleep, but awakened, and heard Jim say in a whisper, "She sleeps
|
|
like a top." Then was a rustling and rumpling about, and Jim cried, "Oh!
|
|
cunt," Betty said, "hush!" they kissed, sighed, and Jim crept softly
|
|
away, Betty got out and washed her cunt in the dark, and found Kit was
|
|
awake.
|
|
|
|
This went on for several nights, Betty had oiled the lock and hinges of
|
|
the door, and when she heard the Master go up to bed, would softly open
|
|
the door, and leave it ajar. When Jim had emptied his ballocks he would
|
|
leave and close the door gently, Bet would light the candle, and wash
|
|
her cunt. One night she said to Kitty, "Come and see the stuff that
|
|
comes out of a man's prick." Kitty jumped out of bed, saw the seminal
|
|
sediment that Betty had washed out of her, and stood looking at Jim's
|
|
spendings at the bottom of the wash-stand basin. "Look how thick it is,"
|
|
said Bet. "We have no thick stuff, have we?" Then she felt it. "You are
|
|
a beast," said Kit. "Wait till you have a sweetheart," said Bet.
|
|
|
|
"Why," said I to Kit, "I asked you before if you had seen any one frig,
|
|
and you said only your cousin." "Yes," replied she, "my cousin Grace,
|
|
you didn't ask me about any one else, but I did see a young man once do
|
|
it to himself," added Kitty, "it was my cousin Bob."
|
|
|
|
I made her tell me all about that. She had cousins male and female, one
|
|
named Grace her friend, and a cousin Bob, who used to go and see them;
|
|
he was a favorite of Kitty's mother, a lad of sixteen, a carpenter.
|
|
Grace must have been about a year older than Kitty.
|
|
|
|
Kitty's parents lived in two rooms, and had the right to use a
|
|
wash-house. I am sure from all she said they were steady working-people.
|
|
The mother went out sometimes charring, leaving Kitty at home to mind
|
|
the children. She was useful at home, mended and made their linen. Grace
|
|
often used to help her at needle-work.
|
|
|
|
Before Kit went to the fishmonger's she was at home one day mending, and
|
|
Grace with her. Grace was always talking about what she knew, and had
|
|
frigged herself before Kit. Kit had tried to frig, but got nothing but
|
|
a pleasant sort of feeling, nothing approaching the luscious crisis that
|
|
she felt when Betty tried her middle-finger on her clitoris.
|
|
|
|
A knock at the door. "Who is there?" "Bob." Kitty had been forbidden
|
|
under pain of having her ears boxed, to let Bob or any one else in when
|
|
her parents were out. "You can't come in," she cried. "Let's in for a
|
|
minute, I've got something to tell you." "Tell me through the door." "No
|
|
they will hear upstairs." "No." Bob began rapping a tune with his fists
|
|
on the door. Grace said, "The lodgers will tell your mother." Bob who
|
|
seems to have been a little fresh said, "Oh! won't you be sorry," and
|
|
tramped downstairs.
|
|
|
|
A noise outside. "Why there he is again." "Is that you Bob?" No reply.
|
|
"See if it's some one else." There was a shuffling outside. Grace got
|
|
up and cautiously opened the door peeping. A big foot was thrust in, and
|
|
she couldn't close it, then pushing the door wide open, and himself into
|
|
the room comes Bob. Probably with the instinct of what might follow Kit
|
|
had thrust the two children into the bed-room. Females are strange and
|
|
cunning animals; even at an early age, cunt is always ready, always
|
|
inciting, and preparing them for cock; knowing or unknowingly, whether
|
|
for intrigue, or objectless, or for the delight of doing what is
|
|
forbidden; cunt is always inciting the female to help the male, for
|
|
"cock and cunt must come together," as poor Fred said.
|
|
|
|
Bob was making a half-holiday, had had enough beer to elevate him, and
|
|
was of an age at which a prick has a habit of getting inconveniently
|
|
stiff. If you can't afford to pay for cunt, or don't know a cunt which
|
|
will take you up it for love, your prick is a restless article, which
|
|
will insist on the buttocks pushing it somewhere or somehow, till the
|
|
stiffness is taken out of it.
|
|
|
|
A frisky youth with restless cods was in the room with two girls, one of
|
|
whom was also frisky, and the younger inquisitive. They got joking, he
|
|
kissed them, they tickled him, till he threw himself on the floor, and
|
|
rolled about as the girls tormented him, and thought they were getting
|
|
the best of him. He suddenly caught hold of them both, pulled them on to
|
|
the floor in a heap, one on the top of him one by his side, and holding
|
|
one one way, and the second another way, managed to put his hand on to
|
|
one's cunt, turned the other over, and lifting up her clothes slapped
|
|
her naked backside; they struggling and crying out at the attack on
|
|
their sacred privates, he fighting, overturning, and exposing the limbs
|
|
of the lasses, until, as Kitty said, "he's seed all we'd got to be seen
|
|
over and over again."
|
|
|
|
This quieted Kitty and Grace. When released they called him a
|
|
blackguard, and told him to go out of their room. "I'll tell my mother,"
|
|
said Kitty. "Tell her," said Bob, "tell her you saw this," pulling out a
|
|
stiff prick, "as stiff as yours," said Kitty, who was laying at the side
|
|
of the bed feeling my cock about whilst telling me.
|
|
|
|
"We turned away, then turned round, it was still out, he had got it in
|
|
his hand, and was grinning. Grace said, 'Let's go to the children',
|
|
and burst out laughing, so did I, because she did." Kitty stopped her,
|
|
saying, "Don't let the children see him, they may tell mother." After a
|
|
time they turned round again, the fascination of the prick was on them,
|
|
both wanted to see it. Grace winked at Kitty. "Go away Bob," said Grace,
|
|
"you'll get Kitty's ears boxed if it's known you have come in." "Don't
|
|
care," said Bob, "show me your cunts, and I will. Cocky, cunty, cocky,
|
|
cunty," he sang out, "look here,--come and feel it."
|
|
|
|
"I don't know what you mean," said Grace turning round again. (Kitty
|
|
said that Grace told her afterwards she wanted to see as much of his
|
|
thing as she could.) "Show us the crack between your thighs." "You
|
|
beast, I've a good mind to hit you," said Grace. "Come on," said he.
|
|
"You go." "Feel my prick first." "I won't." "You Kitty." "I won't you
|
|
beast." "But," said she, "I was curious like to feel it for all I said
|
|
'no' to him, and so was Grace."
|
|
|
|
Bob ran at Grace, and catching her, pulled up her clothes, and felt her;
|
|
then running after Kit, he did the same, the whole three were yelling,
|
|
Bob with his prick out promising to go if they felt him, they frightened
|
|
of the mother coming home.
|
|
|
|
They were much agitated now, the children in the bed-room were crying
|
|
at the row, and both girls threatening to call the lodger upstairs.
|
|
"Let me," said he, "let me put my cock just on your naked thighs,--do,
|
|
--do,--do,--only for a minute." "Shan't you beast." "Oh! I must do it,"
|
|
said Bob, "I must,--hooo," and then sitting down on a chair, Bob
|
|
closed his eyes, frigged away, and saying, "Oh! it ought to be in your
|
|
ck--ck--cunt," spent, the two girls looking at him and at the sperm
|
|
jetting out on to the floor.
|
|
|
|
They stood looking, never uttered a word, and fear came over them lest
|
|
Kitty's mother should come home, and catch him there with his cock out,
|
|
and his sperm on the floor. "Go, there is a good young man,--mother will
|
|
be home directly,--oh! that's her footstep,--run upstairs, and wait till
|
|
she's in." Bob whose nervous system was I dare say a little shaken by
|
|
his frig, buttoned up his trowsers, and ran out of the room. The girls
|
|
locked the door and listened,--it was not the mother, then they began to
|
|
talk.
|
|
|
|
"That's it on the floor,--that's what comes out of a man's cock when he
|
|
puts it up a woman's thing," said Grace,--"it's that which gets a woman
|
|
in the family way,--it's that which gives them both pleasure when they
|
|
do it together, when _his_ thing is up _her_ thing."
|
|
|
|
Grace told all she knew, that when her mother was "lying in," she once
|
|
peeped through a key-hole, and saw her father frig himself. They talked
|
|
of the pleasure they had heard it gave the woman to have that warm
|
|
injection up her. Grace frigged herself, Kitty tried but got no
|
|
pleasure, they sat opposite each other on chairs, Bob's spunk still on
|
|
the floor. That was the only time she had ever seen spunk till she
|
|
saw Jim's in the wash-hand basin. "Should you like to see mine Kitty?"
|
|
"Shouldn't I!" said she. "You shall some day,"--and one day she frigged
|
|
me.
|
|
|
|
Kitty was quite artless when she told me this, she had taken a liking to
|
|
me, though I did not then know it, and was delighted to tell me all, it
|
|
seemed quite a relief to her to do so. She had never spoken to any one
|
|
else about it. To a man? she should think not,--it was not likely, and
|
|
though I asked her often and often about it at times she never varied
|
|
the account. I believed it implicitly, and that is why I narrate it
|
|
here.
|
|
|
|
Several nights Jim served Betty so, till one night Kitty sneezed. "The
|
|
girl's awake," said Jim. "Who is that?" said Kitty shamming, though she
|
|
knew full well. "It's Jim,--you won't tell, will you?" said Betty. "I
|
|
have told her you are going to marry me,--have I not Kit?" Jim went on
|
|
tailing his mistress, but now that he knew Kit was awake he put out his
|
|
hand and felt Kitty's bum whilst fucking. "Did you tell Betty that?"
|
|
said I. "No," said Kit laughing.
|
|
|
|
Next night Betty who seems to have taken delight in debauching Kit, made
|
|
her feel Jim's prick, she pulled her hand to it. "I thought I liked to
|
|
feel, but I shammed that I did not." "Was it big?" "It seemed bigger
|
|
than yours, but I didn't see it."
|
|
|
|
This went on for a fortnight or so, Kitty feeling always afraid that
|
|
they would be found out, and so it came to pass. Illicit fucking in a
|
|
house not your own is sure to bring trouble.
|
|
|
|
The Mistress' sister came to nurse her, and slept in her room. Betty
|
|
said the sister gave a lot of trouble, and was always poking her nose
|
|
where she had not business to poke it. Jim did not come up for one or
|
|
two nights, he had heard some one moving either in the Master's, or
|
|
in the sick woman's room. Kitty was glad of it. Jim I suppose at last
|
|
randied out of his prudence one night, and Betty reckless for want of
|
|
fucking, told him to come, and up he came. Then a violent knock at the
|
|
door came just as he was fucking Betty.
|
|
|
|
"Who is that?" "Me." "Wait a minute sir." "Open it, or I will break the
|
|
door open." "Wait sir, I'm not dressed." In came the door with a crash.
|
|
Jim was just by the bed, Kitty standing by Betty, for both got up.
|
|
At the door was the Master and his sister-in-law. "You damned whoring
|
|
bitch," said the Master to Betty, "at day-light out you go from my
|
|
house."
|
|
|
|
The sister-in-law turned down the bed, looked at it, and then at Kitty.
|
|
"Please Maam it's no fault of mine," said Kit. "You dirty little hussy,
|
|
why did you not tell what was going on,--your father shall hear of
|
|
this." "Dress yourself," said the fishmonger to Betty. "Leave them alone
|
|
till the morning," said the sister-in-law,"--and both left the room. Jim
|
|
half-dressed, without speaking a word, had crept downstairs whilst the
|
|
talk was going on. The Master did not speak to him at all.
|
|
|
|
"They will sack us both," said Betty. Kitty began to cry. "You are a
|
|
fool, there are lots of places. I hope old Vinegar-Chops liked the look
|
|
of it," said Betty lifting up the towel (there were the drippings from
|
|
Betty's cunt on it),--"I dare say the sour-faced beast knows what it
|
|
is,---don't you cry, you will get a living if your father does turn you
|
|
out, any girl can so long as she has a good face, and something warm
|
|
between her thighs." That was Betty's comfort to Kitty.
|
|
|
|
After breakfast the Master put Betty outside the door, Kitty's mother
|
|
was sent for, who boxed her ears all the way home, and the father
|
|
knocked her down when he came home. "If I thought you'd turn a whore,"
|
|
said he, "I'd murder you." She told her mother the truth entirely, but
|
|
only got her ears boxed still more,--she should have told her Master,
|
|
the mother said. After this she was again kept at home, a short time
|
|
after her father died, her mother changed her quarters, keeping her
|
|
indoors to take care of the children, and had no idea that her daughter
|
|
was getting fucked to enable her to buy sausage-rolls, as well as for
|
|
the pleasure of having a male.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VI.
|
|
|
|
Sausage-rolls, and consequences.--Kitty's home.--The little
|
|
ones.--A saucy cabman.--Catamenia.--Fucking economies.--
|
|
Changing money.--Pol and the bargee.--Kit implicated.--A
|
|
black eye and bruised rump.---A little boy's cock.--
|
|
Preparation for travel.--'Kit's regret.--Bessie in tears.--
|
|
Amusements abroad.--Home again.--Kitty a strumpet.--An
|
|
evening at B.w Street.--Kitty's eight months doings.
|
|
|
|
One day I took some sausage-rolls to the baudy house, she clawed hold
|
|
of one directly. "Ain't they prime!" said she, and never ceased till
|
|
she had finished them all--such a lot,--then she turned pale. "I must go
|
|
home," she said. "Why?" She began putting on her things. "What is your
|
|
hurry?" "I can't wait." "Are you ill?" "Yes,--yes,--I must go." "Then I
|
|
won't pay you." "I'm not well." "How,--you want to go to the privy!" "I
|
|
do," said the girl hanging her head. I rang the bell, told the woman to
|
|
show the lass where to ease herself. When she came back I could not
|
|
get her to look me in the face, and thinking of her operation gave me
|
|
a distaste for her that day, so I let her go without doing anything.
|
|
Ridiculous that of course, but I tell things just as they occurred.
|
|
|
|
When it rained, and she could not meet me, how angry she was. "If I buy
|
|
an umbrella mother will wonder where I got it." Once she nearly got wet
|
|
through, and I did not see her that time, because I did not expect her
|
|
to be out.
|
|
|
|
She told me where she lived, and I arranged that if it rained I would go
|
|
to the front of the house in a cab. I did that once only, and the cabman
|
|
insolently demanded about five times his fare when I got down at E----r
|
|
Street, saying I had enticed a young girl into the cab. "Yer haught to
|
|
be glad to be let orf with ten bob," said cabby, "think yerself lucky a
|
|
peeler don't drop on you for taking a young gal like that,--yah! you're
|
|
a swell, ain't yer?--yah!--yah!--poop!"--and off he drove.
|
|
|
|
She began to deplore her poor dress, bought a pair of white stockings,
|
|
and I kept them for her, because she was afraid of taking them home.
|
|
"Oh! ain't I kept under," said she, "I hate it,--I have a good mind to
|
|
bolt." "Then you will turn gay." "Well I would like to dress nice, and
|
|
do as I like, instead of minding children and working." I persuaded her
|
|
not.
|
|
|
|
"Have you had no other man but me for the last two months?" "Only one,"
|
|
she said, "but I'm never out if it rains, and I can't get out of nights
|
|
cause of mother, and I wash and mend,--so how can I?" "I'll go and ask
|
|
for some one else at your room, to see if you're in or not." "Do,--if I
|
|
don't open the door, mother will, on Monday I'll take the brats into the
|
|
Waterloo road for a walk." She did, and I saw her. How short her clothes
|
|
were! a carman as he passed stooped down, and gave her legs a pinch. Her
|
|
mother was at home.
|
|
|
|
The girl grew fast, each week she seemed bigger than the week
|
|
previously, the sausage-rolls agreed with her, the hair on her cunt
|
|
lengthened,--she was so pleased when I remarked it,--her desire was to
|
|
have as much hair on her quim as Betty had. Then she began to get heavy,
|
|
dull, and drooping. One day I had her on the side of the bed, just for
|
|
variety sake, for sometimes I found it delightful to see my prick up to
|
|
its roots in her, and the next instant its tip. Her cunt felt very wet,
|
|
looking at my half-uncunted prick it was covered with blood. I pulled
|
|
it out, a red stream followed running all over her chemise. I had never
|
|
seen such a sight before when fucking, and only once I think since,
|
|
though I have poked women in that state.
|
|
|
|
"What is the matter?" said I startled for the moment, "you're poorly?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh!" cried out the girl, "I must go to mother,--ohl let me go." I tried
|
|
to comfort her, she took no notice of me, but dressed and ran out of the
|
|
house quickly, white with terror and without her money. That night I
|
|
had Brighton Bessie, and told her about it. Bessie said the dirty little
|
|
bitch ought to be flogged by the hangman; if she had her way all such
|
|
young bitches should be sent to prison, and the men who had them ought
|
|
to be punished as well.
|
|
|
|
Kit's first poorliness had come on, that accounted for her dullness, she
|
|
had no idea of what was taking place in her, her mother had not warned
|
|
her. Of course, the girl knew of the ailment common to her sex, but
|
|
her monthlies had taken her by surprise. I never knew a girl more
|
|
unaffectedly modest than Kitty was the next time she met me after her
|
|
accident, as we called it.
|
|
|
|
Said she one day, "Give me a sovereign for this silver (savings out of
|
|
the money I had given her), I don't know where to put it, it jingles in
|
|
my pocket,--I am afraid of dropping it, and mother finding it out."
|
|
|
|
She had put it in a crack between the skirting and the inside of a
|
|
cupboard lining as near as I could make out, until it was a pound's
|
|
worth. "What a pity I can't buy some nice clothes, is it not?" said she.
|
|
Poor Kitty was amusing, but I saw she was brewing mischief after she had
|
|
had her monthlies, or was what she called "a full woman." Several times
|
|
as she took my money she said it was no good to her, as she could only
|
|
buy things to eat. She was getting restless. When I told her I should be
|
|
in the Strand one day, if it were not wet. "Oh! do come, if it's wet or
|
|
not,--I _will_ meet you." "But your mother?" "Don't care,--if she says
|
|
anything I'll tell her I'll run away."
|
|
|
|
Said she one day, "Hasn't Pol got it? her mother has nearly murdered
|
|
her,--oh! Lor she is bruised all over." Then she told me that the little
|
|
dark girl I had had was caught in the privy with a man,--"oh! such a big
|
|
un, he is much taller than you,--she was standing on the privy-seat with
|
|
her legs wide open, and he was trying to do it to her." The mother had
|
|
suspected, had the little imp watched, and caught the man in the
|
|
act. "How he could do it I don't know," said Kit, "but he is a
|
|
bargeman,--such a big man!--and the little beast stood on the privy-seat
|
|
too." Kitty was scandalized at that.
|
|
|
|
It was some days before I saw her again, then she was slovenly and had a
|
|
black eye, and began to cry. "It's mother," she sobbed, "look here." She
|
|
pulled off her things, and showed me wales and bruises. "Mother did it,"
|
|
said she sobbing, "my bottom's bruised,--she held me down, and hit me
|
|
with a brush,--look," said Kitty turning up her lily-white arse for me
|
|
to see.
|
|
|
|
Her young friend who had not long before had my prick up her cunt, and
|
|
then the bargeman's, had sought to excuse herself by saying Kitty was as
|
|
bad. Mother told mother, Kitty was battered by her mother, and had been
|
|
locked up, there had been row after row, till Kitty would not eat, nor
|
|
wash, nor mend,--she fought her mother, she threatened to run away, and
|
|
to turn gay. Said the mother, "Your father always said you would, he
|
|
would turn round in his grave if he knew what you are saying.
|
|
|
|
"I made my brother's cock stiff," said she one day as she was playing
|
|
what we called cherry-bob with my prick, i.e. taking the tip in her
|
|
mouth when it was limp, and shooting it out again, just as you see
|
|
children do with cherries. "Your little brother?" "Yes,--I washed him,
|
|
pulled it backwards and forwards, as if I were washing him, so that he
|
|
should not know what I was about." "Did it get stiff?" "Quite, and he
|
|
seemed to like it," said she, "he asked me to go on doing it."
|
|
|
|
During all this time I had occasionally seen Bessie, for a youthful
|
|
cunt never did give me full physical enjoyment, nor fetch me like a
|
|
full-grown one, although as an occasional letch it was delicious. After
|
|
her monthlies had arranged themselves I fancied Kitty was more luscious,
|
|
and her discharge more copious, yet I often used to think of the
|
|
spanking posteriors and full crisp-haired cunt of Bessie whilst
|
|
operating on Kit. A light-haired quim I also never liked, it was the
|
|
artlessness, frankness, and freshness of Kitty which kept me to her so
|
|
long.
|
|
|
|
I was going abroad. When I told Kitty this she broke into tears. "Oh!
|
|
what shall I do!--don't go," said she. The little lass was fond of me;
|
|
a thing I never had dreamed of. She promised me to go to service, and
|
|
leave off fucking; but she never did.
|
|
|
|
Then I told Bessie, and she began to cry, and said, "It's always the
|
|
way,--directly I like a man I lose him." I thought she was shamming, but
|
|
the last night I had her, she would take no money, said if I gave it to
|
|
her, she would throw it into the streets.
|
|
|
|
Glad to be from England, alone,--alone, I hoped to be sent to------,
|
|
but got no further than------. There I had women enough. All women
|
|
there were examined by medical men weekly, just as they are at------,
|
|
and many a fine Spanish woman, and coarse but well-built English woman
|
|
I had for half-a-crown a piece. I was recalled after seven months, and
|
|
within a few days was in the Strand, but saw no Kitty until one night in
|
|
early Summer. "Oh! it's you,--I'm so glad," said a female. It was Kitty,
|
|
delighted. I did not know her for the instant, but in ten minutes we
|
|
were fucking. How glad she was to see me; she was a well grown young
|
|
woman, and lovely, her breasts were well developed, her calves and bum
|
|
as well, although she was not seventeen.
|
|
|
|
She had quarrelled with her mother, left, and set up as harlot. It
|
|
was wonderful what harlotry had done in giving her taste in dress,
|
|
deportment, style of walking, and even in language. She had learned the
|
|
value of her cunt, it was no longer three and six, but twenty shillings.
|
|
"I don't want _your_ money," said she, "let's talk of old times." We
|
|
spent several evenings together. One man almost kept her, she thought he
|
|
was going to keep her altogether, and hoped so.
|
|
|
|
I had taken her to the house in B.w Street, quietly there we talked all
|
|
things over; we laughed over the affair of Pol and the coal-heaver, the
|
|
sausage-rolls, the lost ten shillings, the afternoon her poorliness came
|
|
on. "So you are gay,--do you like the life?" She really did, got lots of
|
|
money, and now kept her mother who had been disabled by rheumatic fever.
|
|
I saw her daily for a week or two afterwards, and we fucked to our
|
|
hearts' content. Her motte was delicately hairy now, and of dark golden
|
|
colour, slightly brownish. Then I went to the sea-side. When I came back
|
|
to London, looking for her everywhere, I could not find her, and though
|
|
I longed for her very much, was obliged to render myself happy with
|
|
others.
|
|
|
|
To complete her history I must go forward two or three years when I had
|
|
been madly in love with a gay woman as I shall tell, but had quarrelled
|
|
with her for presuming on my love, and resolutely abstained from seeing
|
|
her, doing however great violence to my affection and inclination. I
|
|
used to go to the baudy house in J...s Street (not yet mentioned), and
|
|
cry to its Mistress who would ask me to let her send to the lady of my
|
|
affection (Miss M...s),--but of this more presently.
|
|
|
|
After reading over this part of my narrative relating to Kitty written
|
|
full thirty years ago, I add these few words.
|
|
|
|
My secret life was written for my own pleasure, and to be a narrative of
|
|
what I myself saw and did, and nothing else. I have pretty well adhered
|
|
to that, but my fun with Kitty took place within a few years after I
|
|
began to write, and describe the amatory episodes as leisure inclined
|
|
me, and as they seemed to me unusually amusing or illustrative. I
|
|
arranged them in order afterwards. Nothing at that time had been so
|
|
piquant in my acquaintance with harlots as Kitty's had been. I had
|
|
not then had much to do with lasses as young as she was, the novelty
|
|
therefore I suppose made me write out her narrative intermixed with my
|
|
own, at the length it has reached.
|
|
|
|
Besides Kitty was really quite original, her freshness, frankness, and
|
|
truthfulness impressed me much, and after much experience since in the
|
|
ways of frail ones, I believe now that what she told me was mainly true,
|
|
and am sure she was delighted to get a confident in me, to whom she
|
|
could unbosom herself unreservedly.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VII.
|
|
|
|
Brighton Bessie.--Change irresistable.--Bessie in quod.--
|
|
Lewd effects.--Spooning.--Her home.--Her cabman.--
|
|
Reflexions.--Two years after.--Five years later on.--The
|
|
mouse's promenade.--Bessie disappears.
|
|
|
|
I met in the Strand one night Bessie, who put her arms round me. I
|
|
repulsed her, she saw her mistake, and followed me to a baudy house.
|
|
Inside she began kissing me excitedly, and said she was so glad to see
|
|
me back, that she did not know what she was about. It was not our usual
|
|
house, I was in a hurry, so after I had fucked her was going away. "What
|
|
one fuck only!--you have not had me for a year nearly,--I'm damned
|
|
if you go till you have given me another,--that dear old prick, I've
|
|
thought of it fifty times when I have been poked." So I fucked her
|
|
again, and afterwards resumed seeing her, for she was much to my taste
|
|
sexually. I had many voluptuous amusements with her which she liked and
|
|
invited, although I have no recollection of playing any of those curious
|
|
erotic tricks which gratified me later on in life, nice attitudes being
|
|
then for the most part enough for me. My balls were running over with
|
|
sperm in those days, and if I could control myself for a few minutes
|
|
when my prick was stiff, it was as much as I could do. Bessie was
|
|
full-blooded, and loved to take her fucking with me, kissing me
|
|
furiously as her pleasure came on. We used again to pass hours at the
|
|
house in B.w Street, reading, drinking, talking, and copulating at
|
|
intervals.
|
|
|
|
Yet I went after other women for all that, for fresh cunt was
|
|
irresistable. Once when I had been away I missed her for a few days,
|
|
then I saw her coming out of a public-house. "Oh! I'm so glad,--I've
|
|
been locked up,--it's a damned shame," she cried out, "I was marched off
|
|
without having said a word by a police-man,--blast him!--and all because
|
|
I would not let the bugger fuck me one night up in ------ Street,--I'd
|
|
never let a policeman touch me,--damn them all." She spoke loud to a man
|
|
and two or three sympathizing women, a mob began to gather round her, so
|
|
noisy was she.
|
|
|
|
I turned as quickly as I could up a side-street, she following me. "Oh!
|
|
come my dear, come,--how glad I am to see you,--I did nothing but think
|
|
of you whilst I was locked up,--oh! God I'm dying for a fuck,--a whole
|
|
fortnight I've not had it, and I did nothing but think of you when I
|
|
frigged myself." There was a roar of laughter from half-a-dozen women
|
|
who had followed her. "Shut up," said some one. "Ain't she a letting
|
|
out!" said another. "Ain't you ashamed of yourself?" said a third. "It's
|
|
one of her men," said another. "She is a nice woman," said some one
|
|
else. "It was a damned shame," said another. "I know him," said a voice,
|
|
"he wants every woman in the Strand, and if he don't get them he walks
|
|
them off." "Yes the bugger." "She is just out." "Yes, and he quodded
|
|
Mary Summers last night." "And he is a married man with a large
|
|
family,"--and so on. I felt overwhelmed, and inclined to run away. She
|
|
turned into the first house which had a door open, and I was glad when
|
|
the friendly red-curtained door closed behind me, she galloping upstairs
|
|
in front of me, showing her fat calves. I followed Bessie into a
|
|
bed-room.
|
|
|
|
"Five shillings," said the woman to me. "It's all right,--you go,--he's
|
|
an old friend of mine,--don't bother," said Bessie pushing the servant
|
|
out of the room, and slamming tie door, then throwing her bonnet on
|
|
a chair she caught hold of me, gluing her lips to mine, feeling at my
|
|
trowsers front she cried out, "Let's fuck,--come and fuck me,--I'm dying
|
|
for you,--a fuck from you,--oh! put your prick up." She had got it out,
|
|
threw herself on the bed opening her thighs wide, and showing her cuntal
|
|
beauties, calling on me to fuck her. I mounted her immediately, it was
|
|
impossible to withstand her randy impetuousity; contagious lewdness
|
|
coursed through my veins.
|
|
|
|
"Oh! my God," said she as my prick drove home, "I'm coming,--oh!
|
|
my God,--fuck,--fuck,--oh! I'm spending,--oh! my
|
|
darling,--fuck,--spend,--oh!--oooh!" I never had a woman in a higher
|
|
state of randiness, she would not let me go till I had fully eased her
|
|
passions, she lavished expressions of love and tenderness on me. "Don't
|
|
pull it out,--there dear, there,--lay still on me, I'll keep it up, it
|
|
will be stiff again,--there it's stiff now." I stopped with her some
|
|
hours. A policeman on the beat she said, had taken a fancy to her, had
|
|
asked her to let him do it to her up against the dark wall at the back
|
|
of E.... r H.. l. She would not, he threatened, still she refused, so he
|
|
took her to the station one night on the plea of her annoying gentlemen,
|
|
and the magistrate gave her a fortnight in prison. She had come out that
|
|
very day, and was rather tight.
|
|
|
|
In a few weeks Bessie got more and more friendly. I was the first to
|
|
leave, and she to ask what was my hurry. When I thought I had been
|
|
detaining her too long for my moderate compliment, she would say, "Oh!
|
|
never mind, I'll make ten shillings do,--I'm not in debt,--before the
|
|
theatres are over I dare say I'll get engaged." It was impossible to
|
|
avoid seeing she was getting affectionate. She would sit or lay talking,
|
|
feeling, or kissing me for hours, whilst her expressions of pleasure
|
|
when I was stirring up her vitals equalled those of any woman who has
|
|
ever loved me or enjoyed my embraces.
|
|
|
|
One night I was charged twice for the room, for stopping long, and
|
|
said something about not being able to afford it. That brought forth a
|
|
proposition, one of the most curious I ever had in my life.
|
|
|
|
Said she, "It's a lot of money to spend on the rooms,--come to my rooms;
|
|
they would be too humble for you, but they are clean and nice,--drop me
|
|
a line, and I will always be at home,--and you would be more comfortable
|
|
than at these houses, and have nothing to pay." Then after hesitation,
|
|
and as if reflecting, she said she lived in the New North road where she
|
|
had either a small house or rooms in one, I don't quite recollect which.
|
|
"It's paid for by a friend of mine, he gives me ten shillings a week.
|
|
Now don't think little of me because I tell you this,--he is only a
|
|
cabman, he sleeps with me nearly always, he's a nice clean, steady man,
|
|
and behaves well to me; but I don't like him since I've known you. You
|
|
can come when you like, and sleep with me when you like,--I'll give
|
|
him up, he shall never come near me again, and I'll always be there for
|
|
you,--you will see what a large comfortable bed I've got,--but you must
|
|
pay for the rooms, I must feel sure of a roof over me,--I don't care
|
|
about anything else,--then you can see me when you like, give me what
|
|
you like,--nothing if you have not got it,--I don't want your money,
|
|
I'll get that as I now do."
|
|
|
|
She said all this in a humble way looking at me, tears half filled her
|
|
eyes, her tone was sad; it was in its way a clear but simple declaration
|
|
of affection for me. I saw it, felt it, but shunned it; for a strange
|
|
dislike to a gay woman loving me came over me, some sort of undefined
|
|
idea that I should be a species of fancy-man, a man whom I always
|
|
thought at that time was a baudy house bully; and the offer of Bessie
|
|
oppressed me.
|
|
|
|
I told her she was very kind, that I appreciated it, but it was a long
|
|
way off,--I would not think of it,--I did not wish her to give up a
|
|
friend for me,--that there were obstacles to my accepting which I could
|
|
not tell her of, and so on. I scarcely knew what to say in refusing
|
|
without wounding her feelings.
|
|
|
|
"I am sorry I told you, for you won't think as much of me as you
|
|
did,--it's the simple truth,--you don't believe me?--only come up and
|
|
see me." But I could not then think of displacing a cabman, I did not
|
|
even like to think of my prick having taken its pleasure in the cunt
|
|
which had wriggled the prick of a cabman. My experience in life might
|
|
have told me, had I thought about it, that the possibility was that my
|
|
prick might have rubbed up the same channel that a burglar's had. I
|
|
only saw that I was asked to displace a common man in the affection of
|
|
a street-doxy, I appreciated the affection which prompted the offer of
|
|
exchange, felt gratified and sorry at the same time, especially when I
|
|
saw tears in the poor woman's eyes.
|
|
|
|
I again said I would if it were not such a long way off, but perhaps I
|
|
would, and so on. I never did go to her house, but saw her from time to
|
|
time, until I fell madly in love with a lady of pleasure and would have
|
|
given almost my life for her to have loved me. So Bessie was avenged,
|
|
for I had fallen in love with a doxy after all.
|
|
|
|
When this infatuation occurred I ceased seeing Bessie. Then in my
|
|
trouble a year or two afterwards I sought her again, and told her my
|
|
trouble. "Ah! you would not love me when I was fond of you, but you love
|
|
her, and she plays on it,--don't you let her fool you," said Bessie,
|
|
"she has got a man,--all you give her he will get, I know it from what
|
|
you tell me." Bessie was right, but Sarah after a time as I shall tell,
|
|
did not deceive me about the matter.
|
|
|
|
Then I missed Bessie for a year or two, then found her again in the
|
|
Strand, she was much altered. "I don't think I ever liked a man to fuck
|
|
me as I do you," said she one night as she enjoyed me, "if you had but
|
|
come up to my little home you would have saved me a lot of trouble." But
|
|
I could not get out of her what she meant by that.
|
|
|
|
Full five years afterwards, when roaming about not far from the
|
|
Haymarket one night I met her, and scarcely knew her. She stopped short,
|
|
"You Bessie!" "Ah! yes it's Brighton Bessie, but I'm sadly altered, sure
|
|
enough." "And you knew me?" "Know you!--I should know you by your eyes,
|
|
if I saw nothing more of your face but your eyes,--I should know you to
|
|
the last day of your life," said she. She was always talking about my
|
|
eyes. She had seen me several times, but had not dared to accost me she
|
|
said. I told her she always might.
|
|
|
|
I took her to what had become my favorite baudy house. It was a hot
|
|
night, and we fucked on the sofa. She had become flabby, and said she
|
|
had ill health, but I could glean nothing from her about her career,
|
|
excepting that for some years she had not been gay. We stripped naked,
|
|
and had just finished fucking her on the sofa when I felt something
|
|
running over my legs, bum and back over my shoulder, on to hers. It was
|
|
instantaneous. Then I saw a mouse which had run over us, and went fast
|
|
up the wall into some red curtains where it was lost,--it made her
|
|
shudder, and me too. That is one of the odd events by which I shall
|
|
always recollect the last time I had Brighton Bessie. "You won't see me
|
|
again I dare say," said she in a plaintive tone, and a tear in her
|
|
eye as we parted. I said I dare say I should. "No you won't,--good bye
|
|
dear." With a sigh the poor woman left me, and I never saw her again.
|
|
|
|
It was whilst I was frequenting Bessie, and occasionally other doxies
|
|
that the following adventure occurred.
|
|
|
|
I was frequently now at my mother's house, my brother was away, and both
|
|
my sisters married. I used to stop with her for days together, finding
|
|
that a relief from home misery, and also agreeable company to her, who
|
|
was now so much alone. I also at times stopped with one of my sisters
|
|
whose husband I liked; the other lived some distance from London.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VIII.
|
|
|
|
Washerwomen.--Matilda and Esther.--A peep over a wall.--
|
|
Eaves dropping.--A girl's wants.--Shaking a tooleywag.--A
|
|
promenade by a barrow.--Disclosures.--A snatch and a
|
|
scuffle.--An assignation.
|
|
|
|
I went to see my mother one day in Summer, and after luncheon walked
|
|
to the end of the garden often mentioned. At one side of it was a
|
|
road which gave access to a gentleman's house, and on the other to my
|
|
mother's. There the carriage-road stopped, and a foot-path began. At the
|
|
junction was a mews wide enough for a cart, which ran at the end of our
|
|
garden and those adjoining. Our entrance to it had been disused, _we_
|
|
having one in the side-wall opening on to the road, and the neighbours
|
|
rarely used their back-entrances. The mews was grass-grown. On the
|
|
opposite side to our garden-walls was the wall of very large grounds. A
|
|
gate not locked, formed of open bars was at the end of the mews next to
|
|
the road.
|
|
|
|
The footpath mentioned passed between walls of large gardens, and the
|
|
between fields, until it joined a road on the other side of which was
|
|
the village church-yard, through which the footway passage continued
|
|
till again a high-road intervened. This continuous footway formed
|
|
a short cut to a distant part of the parish. It was not much used
|
|
excepting on Sundays, and by lovers who walked there on summer nights. I
|
|
had found out years before that the mews at the back of our house was an
|
|
occasional pissing-place, it being round the corner, and out of sight.
|
|
I used to peep over the wall in hopes of seeing a female at that
|
|
operation, mounting to do so by the gardener's ladder. When I saw a
|
|
woman piddle it was great delight to me, but I more frequently saw men
|
|
whose cocks had no attraction for me. On Sunday nights after church, the
|
|
splash and rustle of petticoats could be heard, but not seen; the sight
|
|
was however rare at any time, for few people had the boldness to push
|
|
open the gate, and enter the mews.
|
|
|
|
I never saw copulation, the greatest fun I had was once seeing a female
|
|
bogging, who turned round and gathered two or three of the largest
|
|
leaves from the lime-trees in our gardens which overhung the wall, wiped
|
|
her arse with them, and left them sticking on the top of her turds; but
|
|
she never noticed a youth peeping just over her head. One reason why I
|
|
was never detected watching was that women always turned their bums to
|
|
our wall, and so I was at the back of them. Charlotte and I have both
|
|
looked over the wall.
|
|
|
|
The wall was mostly covered with our ivy, which fell down in thick
|
|
masses on the mews side; lime-trees at intervals completed the screen.
|
|
Any one peeping down from above could be sufficiently hidden if he
|
|
put his head carefully above the wall at places, and pushed aside the
|
|
boughs. On the day I speak of, I walked round the garden thinking of old
|
|
times, of how Charlotte and I used to see if the cook was talking to
|
|
the gardener before we began our amourous play, of the pranks Fred and
|
|
others played there, and all the occurrences of my youth, which had
|
|
taken place in the house and garden.
|
|
|
|
The gardener was away. I thought I would look over the wall; so placing
|
|
the ladder got up, and looking down saw two girls sitting on the handles
|
|
of a barrow on which were baskets filled with linen. One looked about
|
|
sixteen, the other a little older. It was a dreadfully hot day, the
|
|
barrow was at the angle of the mews. They were talking, and I moved the
|
|
ladder to get a place nearer to them and not to be seen; for to watch
|
|
and hear women who thought themselves unobserved and unheard, was always
|
|
a delight to me. If you ever hear two women talking on amorous subjects,
|
|
their disclosures you will find are always charming to a man.
|
|
|
|
At the angle of our garden, and just where the road joined the mews, a
|
|
large notice-board had been put up for some purpose since I had lived
|
|
there; it was just outside and higher than our wall. Between the back of
|
|
it and the wall was a space of a few inches. Our ivy had grown up it
|
|
at places, and filled up most of the space, but enough was left at
|
|
the angle to let me look down on the barrow which was just outside the
|
|
mews-gate, out of the way of what small traffic there was, the gate of
|
|
the mews being wide open. Then of all my eaves dropping I have never yet
|
|
heard anything so amusing as I did then. The air was solemnly quiet in
|
|
the hot summer's afternoon and though the girls spoke quite softly, I
|
|
heard them well.
|
|
|
|
"I should like to feel what it is like," said the youngest whose face
|
|
was towards me. There was a mixture of fun, audacity, curiosity and
|
|
lewdness on that girl's face. "Hish! some one will hear you," and
|
|
something else I could not hear, said the other. "_Fuck_--there then,"
|
|
said the young one saucily and laughing. The older gave her a slap. "Now
|
|
you may take the things home alone,--I won't help." "If you don't I'll
|
|
tell mother." "Don't care." "Yes you do,--what did you say it
|
|
for?" "Didn't _you_ say it?" "I didn't bawl it out you fool."
|
|
"_Fuck_,--there,--there," said the younger going off. "There it may stay
|
|
then," said the older angrily, and she moved also off round the corner.
|
|
They were both out of sight in a second, but I heard their voices
|
|
quarrelling, the barrow and clothes-baskets were unattended just outside
|
|
the mews-gate.
|
|
|
|
A labouring man came along in the opposite direction. Seeing the barrow
|
|
he stood and looked round in all directions, turned into the mews, and
|
|
I think he was going to steal, but thought better of it. I had peeped
|
|
quite round the board, but had dropped into the old place again, the
|
|
man turned to the wall, and pissed just under me, his head turned, and
|
|
looking at the clothes-baskets all the time, then he drew the foreskin
|
|
backwards and forwards when he had finished, till his prick was
|
|
standing, an article any man might have been proud of; he played
|
|
with it, and might have been going to frig himself had he not been
|
|
interrupted.
|
|
|
|
The girls came back round the corner just then still wrangling, they
|
|
stopped as they came on the man, who turning round shook his tooleywag
|
|
at them, and moved out of sight, but not out of my hearing. "This is the
|
|
sort of thing that would please you," said he wagging it. "Go along you
|
|
beast, I'll call a policeman." "You wouldn't call out if it was up your
|
|
cunt,"--and he walked off laughing. The girls were quiet for an instant,
|
|
and then laughed. "Hish!" said one, "he is not gone." The other looked
|
|
round the corner, and said he had; then they laughed loudly.
|
|
|
|
"Was it not big!" "Did you see it?" "Yes, and stiff,--ha--ha--ha."
|
|
"He--he--he." "It looked as if it would split any one," said the little
|
|
one who sat down on the barrow-handle again. "Sarah says the bigger it
|
|
is the better it is," said the other, and then they laughed. "Hush!"
|
|
said the bigger one, "some one may hear us." Turning her rump to the
|
|
wall she pissed just where the man had. The little one did the same,
|
|
then off they went, one trundling, the other holding the baskets steady.
|
|
They took the heavy work in turns I found.
|
|
|
|
I rushed to the house, then out, and followed the girls, a desire to
|
|
show them _my_ prick was on me. As I followed my intentions cooled,
|
|
fearing they might tell a policeman. I had not the experience then that
|
|
I now have, or should have feared nothing of the sort, for girls tell
|
|
no one but each other if they see a man's prick. I overtook them in the
|
|
church-yard (they were resting again on the barrow-handles), and entered
|
|
into conversation with them, delighted at their demure faces, knowing
|
|
that they had just seen a prick, that one had said "fuck," and that
|
|
I had seen both piss. A notion of getting the younger one by herself
|
|
restrained me from blurting out what was in my mind, but my delight
|
|
really was in looking at, and talking with them, thinking that fucking
|
|
might and probably was in their mind at the moment I accosted them.
|
|
|
|
They were coarse, middle-sized, well-fed, sturdy-limbed, dark-eyed
|
|
wenches, unmistakeably sisters. Excepting for one being shorter than
|
|
the other you would scarcely have known there was a difference in their
|
|
ages; both had bare arms, one had her frock well pinned up behind over
|
|
her petticoats, both had short petticoats, thick ankles and strong
|
|
boots, a washerwoman was then not ashamed of showing what she was, and
|
|
they always wore dazzling white stockings,--and these girls did. I
|
|
asked where they lived, they answered readily. I knew the lane well, all
|
|
the washerwomen in the village were there.
|
|
|
|
In my lewdness I forgot everything but the pleasure of speaking to the
|
|
girls. A middle-aged lady passed us accompanied by two or three very
|
|
young women, who stared hard at me. The barrow-girls stood up and
|
|
curtsied as they passed, and naming them. I knew them, and a few years
|
|
before had romped and played with the young ladies, then children.
|
|
The last time I had seen them there was not a hair on any one of their
|
|
cunts; I expect that now their cunts were full-wigged, and well frigged
|
|
into the bargain. They had recognized me, as I heard from my mother
|
|
afterwards, I did not recognize them, they having grown from children to
|
|
women. I was seated on the barrow-handle as they passed.
|
|
|
|
"So you wash?" No, their mother did, they ironed, took home, and
|
|
fetched the things. What was their name?--would they meet me? and so on.
|
|
They would perhaps,--where did I live?--they did not know me. Getting
|
|
friendlier and friendlier I learned all about them, it was done in a
|
|
joking, chaffing way. I told them I lived far off, and was only on a
|
|
visit at a house close by.
|
|
|
|
They must go on really,--would I get up? No, unless they gave me a kiss.
|
|
I chivied one after the other, and caught and kissed both, they were
|
|
not difficult to catch. Then they trundled on the barrow, I walking with
|
|
them, the people we met (very few) staring at a dandy walking by the
|
|
side of two washgirls; but I took no heed then of any one who passed us,
|
|
nor cared.
|
|
|
|
We crossed the high-road into another part of the lane, and again we
|
|
stopped; more and more randy got I. "What do you think of, when you
|
|
iron the tail of a man's shirt?" "Nothing." "You know it wraps round
|
|
something different from that which a chemise does." "Does it?" said
|
|
the little one who had twice the cheek of the elder. "Yes,--it makes you
|
|
think when you iron them." No it did not,--what did I mean?--they did
|
|
not know in the least.
|
|
|
|
(What delight some girls have in their randiness in declaring they
|
|
don't understand a man's baudy chaff, the "What do you mean?" "I don't
|
|
understand" are only incitements to the man to declare his meaning in
|
|
broad, strong, baudy words; and then it's, "Oh! oh! the beast!" but
|
|
their cunts tighten with a squeeze of lust, they go off and think of it
|
|
all, and perhaps frig themselves under the recollection. But this is a
|
|
reflection the result of matured experience, and was not written at the
|
|
time this part of my narrative was.)
|
|
|
|
They turned up the high-road, and at their earnest request I fell
|
|
behind, they left the linen at a house, and brought back other baskets,
|
|
then I recommenced chaffing. When we were in the lane bounded on one
|
|
side by a wall, on the other by a ditch and corn-field. They stopped and
|
|
begged me to go, for so many people knew them on the road. Prudence told
|
|
me we had better separate, but my mind full of the idea of getting the
|
|
younger girl, I asked them to have a drink. No,--they would be seen.
|
|
Would they meet me? Yes. When? They could not say,--but I had their
|
|
address.
|
|
|
|
I am not clear why, but up till then I had not said what I had heard and
|
|
seen, but I kept it to myself, although dying to let it out. I again sat
|
|
at the edge of the barrow, and refused to get up till they both kissed
|
|
me. They could not go without the barrow, and after a little sham I
|
|
kissed them both. Then the devil took all control off of me, and as I
|
|
kissed one I felt outside her till she wriggled away from me. This in
|
|
the open lane.
|
|
|
|
"Now," said she, "Mr. Impudence, I've a good mind to slap your head for
|
|
doing of that." "I'm sure you liked it,"--and I went towards her. She
|
|
ran ahead, and took up a stone. "I'll heave this at you," said she
|
|
looking as if she meant it. I desisted, and went back to the barrow,
|
|
"What's he done?" said the sister who had been standing a little
|
|
distance off. "I'll tell you bye and bye,--come on." The younger began to
|
|
handle the barrow, but I sat down on a handle, some one came along. "You
|
|
will do us harm," said one of the girls.
|
|
|
|
"Tell your sister what I did." "Shan't,--get up." I then, forgetful of
|
|
my intention, blurted all out, imitating their voice and manner.
|
|
"Fuck,--hish! some one will hear,"--a slap. "Fuck,--there then."
|
|
|
|
The younger stood like a statue, her mouth opened wide, her lower jaw
|
|
almost seemed dropping off; the elder stared at me, her eyes nearly
|
|
out of her head. "Sarah says the bigger it is the better she likes it."
|
|
Their faces got blood-red, they stared at each other, then one said, "I
|
|
wish you'd get up, and let me have my barrow."
|
|
|
|
"I saw you both piddle," then I looked up and down the lane in both
|
|
directions, I was bursting. "Look," said I pulling out my prick, "it's
|
|
as thick and stiff as his, isn't it?" No one was in sight still.
|
|
|
|
"I wish there was a policeman," said the elder, "oh! you beast,--we'll
|
|
tell the police." One appeared just then in the lane, but the girls
|
|
appeared to be in no hurry to tell him, but I rose, they wheeled off the
|
|
barrow as fast as they could, I walking with them. I was a little afraid
|
|
of the policeman.
|
|
|
|
We had got to a spot where the lane was crossed by a village-road in
|
|
which were many good houses. "Oh! pray leave us, we go down here, we
|
|
have customers in the road." "Will you meet me?" "Yes,--but don't follow
|
|
us." I did not want to be seen, so we parted, after some arrangements
|
|
about meeting.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IX.
|
|
|
|
Returning home.--In the church-yard.--Two female laborers.--
|
|
Among the tombs.--A sudden piss.--An arse on the weeds.--
|
|
Torn trowsers, and a turd.--In front of the public-house.
|
|
|
|
They went off, I crossed the road into the churchyard, through its
|
|
posts at the entrance to prevent cattle passing, and over which with
|
|
difficulty the girls had got their barrow and baskets. It was a huge
|
|
churchyard, half of it mere field; at one end the rich were buried,
|
|
and there were rows of tombs and monuments, the rest was only partially
|
|
filled with tomb-stones of all sizes. As I entered it two women passed
|
|
me; they were tall, stout, and dusty, had very short petticoats, and
|
|
thick hob-nailed boots, dark-blue dresses hung over big haunches, little
|
|
black shawls no larger than handkerchiefs over their backs. They had
|
|
big black bonnets cocked right upon the tops of their heads, and seemed
|
|
women who worked out of doors, agricultural laborers perhaps, or perhaps
|
|
the wives of bargemen, for there was a canal through the village. They
|
|
had the strong steady walk, and the body well balanced from the hips
|
|
that you see in woman engaged in outdoor occupations; perhaps they
|
|
carried strawberries to the London markets in large baskets on their
|
|
heads, and they walked as firmly as soldiers.
|
|
|
|
They went past me towards the monuments, both looked at me, and they
|
|
quickened their pace as they went off. I was dying with want of a fuck.
|
|
"They are going to piss," I thought. I knew the spot. We when boys,
|
|
and I when a youth years before, had laid in wait to see nursemaids and
|
|
their little charges turn up among the tombs to ease themselves, so I
|
|
stopped and looked after them.
|
|
|
|
They heard my footsteps cease, turned round, looked at me, and walked on
|
|
again. I followed slowly, they walked slower, so did I; they stopped,
|
|
so did I; one turned round. "Well young man, what do you want following
|
|
us?" This abashed me for the instant, but my prick standing gave me
|
|
confidence.
|
|
|
|
"You are going to piddle, and so am I." They burst out laughing, then
|
|
checked themselves, and one said, "Well I'm blessed if you ain't well
|
|
cheeked young man." "Arn't you?" "It's no business of yourn what we're a
|
|
going to do,--go your way, and we'll go ours." "I'll piddle by the
|
|
side of you,--I like doing it where a woman does it," I replied. I was
|
|
baudily reckless now.
|
|
|
|
"I'm damned!--did you ever hear such cheek!--go on young man,--or let
|
|
us." On they went, I followed; they stopped, so did I; they muttered
|
|
together half-laughing, and turning their heads round every minute,--and
|
|
I went on chaffing about piddling.
|
|
|
|
They had got to a spot where there was a break in the row of tombs, and
|
|
a length of turf with grass a foot high, burnt up, and almost made hay
|
|
in the sum-mer sun. "I'd give each of you a shilling to piss before me",
|
|
said I. They had turned into this cross-passage between the tombs, and
|
|
one could see them from the footpath through the church-yard.
|
|
|
|
"Oh! Lord," said one before I had got the words out of my mouth, "I
|
|
can't wait",--and squatting she began pissing whilst I made my offer,
|
|
and laughing said, "Well if ever I heard the like,--well young man,
|
|
give it,--I'll never be paid again for getting rid of my water, I'll
|
|
bet,--you do it Sarah." Sarah said, "I shan't." "Don't be a fool, take
|
|
his bob." The other looked at me, the splash of the other woman's piddle
|
|
fell on her ear. When any one wants to piss, and hears another doing it,
|
|
the desire to piss becomes strong. Down Sarah squatted laughing, and her
|
|
splash began, before the other had finished pissing.
|
|
|
|
I wanted to piss, but the rigidity of my prick prevented me; it wanted
|
|
to evacuate its sperm before it got rid of the thinner liquid. I pulled
|
|
it out in front of their faces as they squatted side by side, stiff and
|
|
red-tipped; it throbbed, and knocked up and down in its randiness under
|
|
every effort I made to turn on the water. One said I was a blackguard.
|
|
"I want a fuck so bad,--let me have you,--I'll give you five shillings."
|
|
To which of the two I don't know, for I had no choice, one cunt was as
|
|
good as another to me at that moment, and I pushed my prick towards one
|
|
of them, who laughing put it aside with her hand.
|
|
|
|
"There is a chance for you," said one to the other (they were both up
|
|
then). "What do you take me for young man?" said the other, "if my man
|
|
were here he'd knock your bloody head off." But both stood looking at
|
|
my prick and me. I kept on asking, and offering the money,--no one would
|
|
see us,--one could watch,--and so on.
|
|
|
|
"Do you live about here?" said one. "No, I am going to see a friend at
|
|
------" (naming a place about two miles off.) "Weren't you never up here
|
|
before?" "Never in my life,--here is your shilling,"--and I gave it her.
|
|
"Here is yours." She would not take it. "Take it Molly." She took it.
|
|
"Oh! let me have you," said I selecting that one now for my addresses.
|
|
|
|
"This is a bloody lark," said she, "_what do you take_ us for young
|
|
man?" "Let me fuck you." Both stood still looking at me and my prick.
|
|
"Some one will catch us," said one moving out from the tombs, and
|
|
looking up and down the pathway to see if any one was near, and
|
|
then came back. I had got close to the other. "Now Molly," said one
|
|
anxiously, "what are you about?" "Oh! he's made me all overish." "Well
|
|
if you'd been three months away from your old man as I have, there would
|
|
be some excuse." "Never mind,--you won't blab,--you stand there, and
|
|
call if you see any one." "The grave-digger will catch you." "No I saw
|
|
him right over by the church." "Come away." "No,--you go and watch." And
|
|
so we talked for a few seconds, but I never put my prick out of sight.
|
|
|
|
"Well," said the other moving out of sight into the narrow path between
|
|
the monuments, "you'll get into a mess." "No I shan't,--I'll let him for
|
|
the lark of the thing."
|
|
|
|
The instant she had gone round the corner the selected one laid hold of
|
|
my prick. "Do it quick,--some one may come," said she as she grasped it.
|
|
"Lie down". "No I won't,--it's dirty." "No it's dry,--the grass is quite
|
|
hay." I stripped off my coat, made it into a bundle, and placed it for
|
|
her head. "There,--there," I said, and pulled her down. She made no
|
|
resistance. I saw white thighs and belly, black hair on her cunt; and
|
|
the next minute I was spending up her.
|
|
|
|
"Shove on," said she, "I was just coming,"--and she was wriggling and
|
|
heaving, "go on." I could always go on pushing after a spend in those
|
|
days, my prick would not lose its stiffness for minutes afterwards; so I
|
|
pushed till I thought of doing her a second time; but her pleasure came
|
|
on, her cunt contracted, and with the usual wriggle and sigh she was
|
|
over, and there were we laying in copulation, with the dead all around
|
|
us; another living creature might that moment have been begotten, in its
|
|
turn to eat, drink, fuck, die, be buried and rot. Suddenly she jerked up
|
|
her arse, and pushed me.
|
|
|
|
"Oh!" said she uncunting me, "there is some one,"--and up she jumped.
|
|
There stood the other woman. "How you frightened me," said she. "There
|
|
was no one coming,--well it's a rum afternoon's job this," said she.
|
|
"Don't you blab." "Not I."
|
|
|
|
I had hidden my prick, but now my bladder insisted on its requirements
|
|
being attended to, and I went to the spot which the two ladies had
|
|
moistened, and pissed on it. The woman who had watched us fucking had
|
|
dark eyes, she had looked at me without ceasing from the time I had got
|
|
off from the other, and began pissing. My prick nearly at fucking size
|
|
still, was pouring forth a copious stream whilst I was feeling its
|
|
stem which the moisture from the other's cunt had saturated. Seeing
|
|
her looking I pulled out balls and all, and finished by shaking my
|
|
tooleywag. She laughed a low laugh. "I feel all overish myself now."
|
|
Her eyes looked like fire at me, fierce, lewd. "I'll give _you_ five
|
|
shillings,--let me fuck _you_ too,--she will wait and watch for us."
|
|
|
|
"Oh!--o!" said the one whom I just had fucked, twitching about, and
|
|
suddenly pulling up her petticoats, and looking up them, "there is
|
|
something crawling up me." She felt up her petticoats, shaking them, and
|
|
flourishing them about. "Oh!--oh!--just lift them up, and look Sarah."
|
|
|
|
Her companion lifted her clothes. "Go away young man, you've had your
|
|
game I think." "Oh! not there,--oh! it's biting." "Don't make that
|
|
noise." "Oh! it's here,--there,--just there." Slowly the companion
|
|
lifted the petticoats, first one side, then the other, showing thighs
|
|
and rump, and a great ugly crawling black thing dropped; it had crawled
|
|
up her petticoats whilst she was lying on the ground. I had drawn near,
|
|
and was gloating over the display of charms. "Ain't he had a treat
|
|
Molly!" said she.
|
|
|
|
This sight finished me by making me as stiff as I had been five minutes
|
|
before; the other one still kept looking at me. "I'll give _you_ five
|
|
shillings," said I. "I've a good mind" said she. "Lor let him,--who'll
|
|
know?" "How stiff it is!" "Let him." "Feel it," said I. The woman put
|
|
her hand on it. "I'll go and watch," said the other moving away. "I
|
|
shan't." "Don't be a fool,"--and she moved out of sight, leaving us two
|
|
alone.
|
|
|
|
Not a word more was said, I pushed her up against the upright railings
|
|
enclosing a monument; a slight stone-lodge going all round the monument
|
|
put her about an inch above me, I lifted her clothes, for an instant
|
|
only saw another dark-haired cunt, and drove my prick up it. She felt
|
|
pleasure the very first shove that I gave her. "Oh!--oh!--did she do it
|
|
with you?--did she spend?" she gasped in whispers, looking me full in
|
|
the face. "Yes she spent."
|
|
|
|
That fetched her. "Oh! I'm coming,--oh! it's a coming," she gasped, and
|
|
laid her head over my shoulder. I felt her bum and belly wagging, and a
|
|
perfect torrent of cunt-liquor ran down on to my balls. I had not long
|
|
began my fuck, so was slower than with the first woman, and had fetched
|
|
her a second time before I had finished her standing up against the
|
|
railings. Then we stood, pressing our bellies together, keeping our
|
|
genitals coupled, and looking in each other's faces without speaking,
|
|
one or two minutes.
|
|
|
|
"You don't know these parts?" said she whilst we still were coupled.
|
|
"I've never been here in my life before," I replied. "How hard your bum
|
|
is,--are you married?" "Yes." "Is she?" "No,--let me go, she is coming."
|
|
Down flopped my tool, and down fell her petticoats.
|
|
|
|
The first-fucked came round the corner, then we talked. I had given the
|
|
first woman her five shillings directly after I had done her, and before
|
|
she found the reptile in her petticoats; I forgot to pay the other.
|
|
"Well young man, you've made a pair of us go crooked," said one. "Aye
|
|
that he have,--we've played high jinks." "Give us a kiss," said one. I
|
|
kissed them both, and off they walked. "Hulloh!" said I, "I forgot the
|
|
five shillings." "Lord so had I," said my creditor,--and I gave it her.
|
|
|
|
"Don't come our way, the grave-digger knows us,--go straight across
|
|
there, and round the church." I watched them going along with their
|
|
steady step; who could have known from their look and manner, that both
|
|
had just been fucked! Who can tell the state of any woman's cunt, whom
|
|
you may meet anywhere!
|
|
|
|
I went to my mother's, the hair on my prick was gummed flat on my belly
|
|
and balls, I found I had torn a hole in the knee of my trowsers, and a
|
|
lump of turd was sticking to my coat, that I had made her a pillow with,
|
|
the ground must have been hard and flinty, and some one had shit in the
|
|
high grass.
|
|
|
|
What were the women?--certainly not gay. Did they fuck with me for fun,
|
|
for letch, or for money? I often have thought of it, and came to the
|
|
conclusion that both were lewd, that my baudy suggestions made them
|
|
worse, my prick upset them, and the money finished it; but that wanting
|
|
a fuck was the main cause; that one whose old man had been away three
|
|
months, how she looked at me and at my doodle, after I had fucked the
|
|
first one!
|
|
|
|
Towards dusk I went to meet my washerwomen. Near the corner of the lane
|
|
in which they lived was an old-fashioned public-house well back from the
|
|
road, in front of it were two large elm-trees, beneath them seats where
|
|
poor people sat drinking and enjoying themselves in Summer. I stopped
|
|
and looked. Quite at the back sat the two women whom I had fucked; they
|
|
had pewter pots in front of them, and recognized me at once. Both got
|
|
up, and rushed inside the public-house rapidly. Funk was on their faces,
|
|
they seemed to struggle who should get inside the door first. I never
|
|
saw them afterwards, but at the sight of them my cock stood rigidly, and
|
|
I would have had them again had it been possible. Many a time since I
|
|
have been to that churchyard to look at the place among the tombs where
|
|
we three had our pleasures, and my prick always stiffened when I was
|
|
there. Such impromptu copulations have a wonderful charm.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER X.
|
|
|
|
The washerwoman's lane.--An intention frustrated.--A slap in
|
|
the face.--Choice language and temper.--A dinner in the
|
|
Haymarket.--The rocking-chair.--A lucky shove.--Up, and out
|
|
in a second.--A quarrel, and flight.--An enticing laugh.--
|
|
The house in O... d. Street.
|
|
|
|
Down the lane was the washerwoman's cottage, it had a little garden in
|
|
front of it. Through the window I saw the girls ironing by candle-light,
|
|
I walked about till quite dark, then knocked at the door. The short one
|
|
opened it, and seeing me shut the door saying, "Oh! you musn't call." So
|
|
I went away.
|
|
|
|
Then I wrote asking them to meet me, and got no reply; but I persevered.
|
|
I was constantly thinking of the girls' baudy talk when sitting on the
|
|
barrow. I went to the house again, after writing to say when I would be
|
|
at the end of the lane, and found them standing there,--by accident they
|
|
said, they declared they had not had my letter. That was a lie I knew. I
|
|
began smutty talk, which they cut short by both going to their cottage.
|
|
|
|
I wrote letters to the short one again, asking her to meet me, but
|
|
nothing came of that. At the end of their lane were market-gardens, I
|
|
saw Esther one evening at that end which joined the high-road, and was
|
|
close to the public-house where I had seen the women sitting whom I had
|
|
poked in the village church-yard. It was dark. I asked her to come for a
|
|
walk, she promised in a few minutes to come to me by the market-garden.
|
|
"If I don't," said she, "it will be because mother is at the door." But
|
|
she came.
|
|
|
|
I swore I was in love with her, which was true to the extent of her
|
|
cunt, and wanted her to meet me elsewhere,--we would dine, and go to the
|
|
theatre together. No she could not be out late without a row. I kissed
|
|
her, which she took to in the darkness kindly enough. I whispered, "I
|
|
should like to fuck." "If you say that again," said she, "I'll slap your
|
|
chops." I did, and she gave me a slap in the face, and ran off. I was
|
|
hurt, and so annoyed, that I did not follow her, but bawled out, "You'll
|
|
split your cunt into your arse-hole if you run like that." Directly
|
|
afterwards a voice like as of an oldish female in the darkness said,
|
|
"Get along you drunken blackguard, the likes of you ought to be locked
|
|
up." Insulting the girl by foul-mouthed remarks had not improved I
|
|
feared my chance of broaching her, and for a while I desisted.
|
|
|
|
But the letch was strong on me, I went to stay with my mother to
|
|
be nearer my game, and passed my time in playing billiards at the
|
|
public-house, and nightly I hunted the girl; so that at length under
|
|
promise to take her to Vauxhall she agreed to come and dine with me, or
|
|
as she said, have supper at eight o'clock with me. I usually then went
|
|
to Vauxhall at ten o'clock.
|
|
|
|
I went to a French restaurant in the Haymarket, ordered a sitting and
|
|
bed-room, and a good supper. Thought I, "With a feast and champagne with
|
|
you by myself for a couple of hours, my cock and your cunt will make
|
|
acquaintance."
|
|
|
|
To my annoyance she came with her sister. "I could not stop out late
|
|
without her," said she. I made the best of it, though very angry on the
|
|
quiet at seeing my game baulked.
|
|
|
|
"I'll kiss you at once because you have brought your sister unasked, and
|
|
you Matilda because you came unasked,"--and I kissed both to my heart's
|
|
content. They liked it. They were dressed in the vulgarest style of
|
|
their class, and I felt ashamed of going to Vauxhall with them,--and did
|
|
not they gorge! Champagne they had never tasted before and they lapped
|
|
it up like milk. "It gets into your head, don't it?" said one. "No my
|
|
dear, champagne gets into your tail,--you'll want to piddle soon."
|
|
"Oh! for shame!" "Never mind there are plenty of chamber-pots in the
|
|
bed-room." "If you talk that way we'll go," said they laughing, but we
|
|
went on talking and drinking.
|
|
|
|
Supper over, the waiter out of the room, both girls half-screwed,
|
|
half-screwed myself and wholly lewd, they both came and sat by me on the
|
|
sofa. Sisters again,--what fatality!
|
|
|
|
The conversation was soon suggestive. Which did they like best, washing
|
|
a shirt or a chemise? They let out, checked themselves, checked each
|
|
other. "Lord Esther what _are_ you saying?" "Well Matilda I'm ashamed
|
|
of you." "Well that's pretty conversation for a gentleman,--let's
|
|
go,--promise you won't say anything like it again." "I won't,--but tell
|
|
me one thing,--how did you feel Esther, when you sat on the barrow and
|
|
said, '_fuck_'?" "You're a blackguard, I never said anything of the
|
|
sort,--did I Matilda?" "We'll go if you keep on so."
|
|
|
|
Matilda got jealous. "It's my turn now," said she after I had been
|
|
kissing Esther. The wine got more into all our heads, and we laughed
|
|
and shouted. "Why did you come Matilda?" "Mother don't let Esther out
|
|
alone,--besides I didn't know what you two might be up to alone." "What
|
|
did you think we might be up to?" "Oh! that's tellings." This talk went
|
|
on for a time, gradually getting warmer and more suggestive; all were
|
|
thinking about fucking, though no one said so.
|
|
|
|
By the sofa was an American rocking-chair, the first I ever recollect
|
|
having seen. Matilda began rocking herself in it, I rocked the chair
|
|
violently for her and then as far as it would go, back and held it
|
|
there, then rapidly I pushed one hand up her petticoats. Her legs were
|
|
distended somewhat as legs usually are when people are rocking, and my
|
|
fingers went on to her cunt. She lay back for the moment, helpless, then
|
|
managed to close her legs, but being almost on her back she could not
|
|
get free; she struggled to get up, and yelled out, "Oh! pull him off
|
|
Esther,---don't you beast."
|
|
|
|
Esther was on the sofa. She got up, pulled me back, and the chair came
|
|
forwards, but not till I had lifted Matilda's clothes far above her
|
|
knees. She sulked, my blood was up, and pulling Esther down on the sofa
|
|
kissing her, I pushed my hand up her clothes, and on to _her_ cunt. She
|
|
screeched, then Matilda pulled me away. There had been much laughing and
|
|
yelling, but now they sulked. "We will go," said they. "I've felt both
|
|
your cunts," said I.
|
|
|
|
Their bonnets were in the bed-room, and I would not let them get them,
|
|
put both fingers to my mouth, and kissed them saying, "That's touched
|
|
your cunt Matilda, that's touched yours Esther." Then I pulled out my
|
|
prick, and putting both fingers on it's tip said, "That's nearly the
|
|
same as if my prick had touched your cunt.
|
|
|
|
"Call the waiter Esther," said Matilda angrily. I had gone too far, so
|
|
I desisted, begged pardon, promised never to do it again, to give them
|
|
both new bonnets, and I dare say anything else, and they sat down, but
|
|
for a long time sulking, and almost silent.
|
|
|
|
But my humility and regrets overcame them, there was more chatting, more
|
|
laughing, more champagne. I got smutty again and now, they laughed at
|
|
it. "What nice legs, and what beautiful white linen you have Matilda."
|
|
"Mine is as white," said Esther. "Your legs are not as plump." "Yes they
|
|
are." I pinched their arms, then their legs, we all kissed, they were
|
|
both as randy as the devil, and incited me to smutty talk, though
|
|
affecting not to understand me. Then the champagne overcame us all.
|
|
|
|
"You want to piddle?" "Ooh!--oh! no." "Really? then you want to see
|
|
if your bonnets are all right, that's all,--I want to piddle though."
|
|
Saying that I went into the bed-room, pissed, and came back, taking the
|
|
key out of the door. Laughing the girls then went into the bed-room, and
|
|
closed the door. They were very noisy, and groggy, the eldest worse than
|
|
the other.
|
|
|
|
I listened at the door. "Lock the door Ess." "There's no key." "Stand
|
|
there, and hold it,--I'm bursting." "Don't he go on!--make haste, or
|
|
I'll pee myself." I pushed open the door suddenly, one was pushing her
|
|
clothes against her quim to dry it, the other on the pot, she let a loud
|
|
fart just as I opened the door. "Oh!" said she rising with difficulty.
|
|
"I'll wait till the music is over," said I going out,--but I returned
|
|
the next minute, and pulled out my prick again. "I'll fuck you both,"
|
|
said I, and tried to put my hands up their clothes; when I got one the
|
|
other pulled me off, then I turned to her, and so on. We upset chairs,
|
|
we shreiked with laughter, it was Bedlam broke loose. I caught Matilda,
|
|
and threw her on her back on the bed. "Leave off now,--pull him away
|
|
Essie,--you're a going on too far,--oh! don't tickle,--oh! I can't bear
|
|
tickling." But I kept on.
|
|
|
|
The tickling made her screech. I threw up her clothes, for she was still
|
|
on her back on the bed, I didn't see her cunt, for I was between her
|
|
legs, and bent over her, lifted her legs, and pressed hard down on
|
|
her belly, her clothes on it which met mine, I gave a shove, having no
|
|
thought of doing anything but lewd mimickry of the act of copulation,
|
|
whilst Esther was tugging at my coat. Matilda shrieked, for my prick
|
|
went up her cunt, and out again before I knew where it was,--another
|
|
furious shriek. Frightened I had let go of her, she rolled off the bed,
|
|
and sat on the chair maudlin, and crying.
|
|
|
|
"What's the matter?" said Esther, "what's he done?" "Oh!" sobbed
|
|
Matilda, "where's my bonnet?--let's go,--I will go." "Stay,--be quiet."
|
|
"I won't,--I will go." The waiter just then came into the room begging
|
|
us not to make so much noise, as people were noticing it. Matilda crying
|
|
and angry, Esther questioning, Matilda telling Esther to put on her
|
|
things, or she would go without her, whilst there stood the French
|
|
waiter and a chamber-maid, wondering what the row was all about,--if
|
|
they had not heard, and did not guess it.
|
|
|
|
The girls were frightened, and I could not stop them. They had their
|
|
things on, and were out of the house in a few minutes, I went down with
|
|
them saying we would go to Vauxhall. The landlord stopped me. "Your bill
|
|
sir." I paid it, and when I got out could see the two girls nowhere. I
|
|
took a cab, drove here, there, and everywhere, but they were gone.
|
|
|
|
I came back towards the Haymarket, took the first woman I met, and went
|
|
to a house in C... d. n Street. Half-an-hour afterwards I went with
|
|
another; whilst with her I heard a merry-voiced woman in an adjoining
|
|
room, and without seeing her took a fancy to her. I dismissed my second
|
|
woman after fucking her, and enquired of the servant how long the lady
|
|
who was laughing had been in the adjoining room. She knew nothing, so I
|
|
waited door ajar, till I saw the woman leave, followed, and brought her
|
|
back, fucked her, and had not enough money to pay for riding home.
|
|
|
|
The more I think of that adventure the more extraordinary it seems; from
|
|
the time I threw Matilda on to the bed, till my prick had entered her
|
|
cunt, and got out again, I don't believe it could have occupied more
|
|
than a few seconds. She was heavy, I only just could lift her, and her
|
|
petticoats seemed but half-way up. She laughed loudly as I did so, and
|
|
when I leant over her with my prick out, I had not the remotest idea of
|
|
broaching her, nor that my prick might touch even her thighs; but she
|
|
must have been in the exact position, and her struggles brought her
|
|
notch down to the level, and my prick by mere chance drove a little way
|
|
up the hole; then her bum-wriggle threw me out instantly, and her yell
|
|
frightened me. Whether she was a virgin or not, or whether I hurt her
|
|
or not, I cannot say; could not even swear that my prick had entered her
|
|
cunt, but it felt like it; and why did she yell, then sulk, and go away
|
|
in a temper, if I had not somehow touched that slippery orifice?
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XL.
|
|
|
|
Esther meets me.--Vauxhall.--Ex-harlot Sarah.--Esther
|
|
succumbs.--Big-arsed and bandy-legged.--Periodic fucking.--
|
|
Matilda invincible.--I part with Esther.--Her fortune.
|
|
|
|
I wrote to Esther, who met me in the lane, she was in her airs. I
|
|
had quite forgotten myself she said, and had made them both drunk
|
|
purposely,--it was not like a gentleman,--I had acted very improper; she
|
|
would not recollect where my hand had been did not believe I had felt
|
|
her thighs, she was tipsy. That was the line the cunning jade took in a
|
|
dark lane. "Now don't be foolish, and run away when I tell you." "Well
|
|
I won't." Then I said something suggestive, and she got cosy with me.
|
|
"What was it you really did to Tilda?" "Nothing." "You did." "Ask her,"
|
|
"She won't tell me, and she will never speak with you again." Truthfully
|
|
or not Esther declared she did not know what I had done to make her
|
|
sister holler out so.
|
|
|
|
"I'll give you a bonnet, and we will go to Vauxhall,--don't let your
|
|
sister know." I gave her the money, she agreed to meet me again, and
|
|
did, and again asked me what I had done to her sister. I would tell some
|
|
night when I slept with her. Then she would never know, for she would
|
|
never be in bed with me, or any one else, till she was married.
|
|
|
|
I progressed in the usual way, praised her big bum, guessed she had
|
|
fat thighs, etc. "You know I did feel them." No, she did not recollect.
|
|
After talking thus one night my prick was in stiffish form, and I put
|
|
her hand round it. She laid hold of it innocently, then snatched her
|
|
hand away violently. Then I did the old, old trick, promised a pair
|
|
of garters, if she would let me put them on,--in the dark of course.
|
|
"No,--no." "So help me God, I won't do more than put them on." Two
|
|
minutes after that my finger was on her split. This was all in the dark
|
|
lane.
|
|
|
|
I wonder what a girl of that class thinks of, hopes, expects when she
|
|
meets a gentleman on the sly. Does she expect he will fall in love, and
|
|
marry her?--does she know that he wants to fuck her?--does she like to
|
|
meet a man who has that intention, and long to hear smutty suggestions,
|
|
and baudy talk?--does she like the lustful feeling creeping over her,
|
|
as she stands by a randy man who is making lewd remarks? I imagine that
|
|
like the man, she is randy and wants to hear his baudy talk, to feel his
|
|
lips on hers, to hug him, to feel his hand wandering about her hidden
|
|
parts, that she meets him really for that purpose, just as much as he
|
|
meets her for the purpose. But they differ in this: he means to get her
|
|
if possible; she has made up her mind that whatever she may permit, he
|
|
shan't fuck her,--but she generally makes a mistake in that.
|
|
|
|
We went to Vauxhall, she told her mother she was going to the theatre
|
|
with Sarah and her husband (the woman who had said the bigger it was the
|
|
nicer it was), I was to take her to Sarah's when Vauxhall was over. I
|
|
gave her a lobster and champagne supper, she got spoony, I talked baudy,
|
|
she said it was abominable, this was all the Gardens. At length her
|
|
modesty broke. "Don't you want to piddle?" "I really do bad," said she
|
|
without hesitation. I took her to the ladies' place, and soon we left.
|
|
There were nice little houses not far from Vauxhall. I had been in the
|
|
afternoon, and paid for a room for the night to be sure of it, and took
|
|
her there. She would not go in till I said it was only to have another
|
|
glass of wine; but I believe she guessed what she was going in for. Then
|
|
I persuaded her to stop all night, the woman of the house was to call
|
|
us at six o'clock, so that she might get home early. She had made up her
|
|
mind to consent, and had no sham about it. I undressed her, tore my own
|
|
things off, threw myself on her, and with the first shove or two had
|
|
finished her virginity,--my prick went up with little difficulty.
|
|
|
|
We fucked all night, I revelled in her cunt. She was healthy,
|
|
full-blooded, randy-arsed, and spent like fun; we did it several times
|
|
before sleeping, then in the night, and awakened about eleven o'clock
|
|
next day. "Oh! my God," said she, "what will mother say,--I'm ruined."
|
|
"Well it's no use crying, you are in for it." A few tears, then a fuck,
|
|
a piddle, a wash,--and then refreshed we go through the ceremony, of
|
|
inspecting privates, and so fucking, looking, smelling, frigging, and
|
|
finger-stinking we lay till devilish hungry. Then we got up, and after
|
|
going to a chop-house and having food, I put her into a cab to go home.
|
|
I enjoyed myself much that night, a fresh cunt is always charming, and
|
|
there is such delight in killing modesty in a woman who has never been
|
|
fucked before; the struggle to get her to open her thighs to let you see
|
|
her cunt is in itself a delicious treat.
|
|
|
|
On the bed spunk lay in all directions, and over her chemise as well,
|
|
and there was the least smear of blood. I had pushed through something
|
|
tight to get into her, but it was an easy business, so easy that I
|
|
thought she had had cock before; but she was large cunted, the very
|
|
jagged, ragged tear was full size; her cunt-hair was dark, her bum was
|
|
one of the biggest for her height I have seen, it was out of proportion.
|
|
Her privates did not fascinate me, and when I had had her two or three
|
|
dozen times I grew tired of her. She was also bandy-legged, a thing I
|
|
never could bear in a woman.
|
|
|
|
She went to Sarah's that day, and remained there, her mother sent to
|
|
know why. Sarah said that Esther had had bowel attack after they came
|
|
home from the theatre, and her mother then went to see her. A girl
|
|
always looks ill after her first poking, and Esther had been fucked out,
|
|
so her mother was taken in. Her sister Matilda said she did not believe
|
|
it.
|
|
|
|
Sarah I found had been gay, and said she now was married; they did not
|
|
believe that, though they kept their disbelief to themselves, and only
|
|
Esther knew she had been gay, although all knew she had run away from
|
|
home. Sarah got her living by washing for Esther's mother. I heard some
|
|
funny things about her afterwards.
|
|
|
|
I could not get Esther to stop out again all night, but she met me often
|
|
enough, and became a baudy little bitch whose cunt much wanted feeding.
|
|
She told me the awful state of mind she and her sister were in at my
|
|
first overhearing them with the barrow; they had been talking of fucking
|
|
all that day, Sarah had begun it. Taking hold of some linen, "Oh! my,"
|
|
she said, "look here, ain't they been a doing it!---here is
|
|
waste." There was spunk on the linen. I heard a good deal of choice
|
|
washerwoman's talk from Esther afterwards, and found that it was not an
|
|
unusual thing for laundresses to joke about the semen they found on the
|
|
linen of their customers, and that if they found suspicious signs on
|
|
the man's linen, to give the lady of the house a hint to look after
|
|
her husband. Many a husband has I am sure been discovered to have had
|
|
illicit pleasure, or to have the ladies' favor through the hints of an
|
|
officious laundress.
|
|
|
|
I made Esther liberal presents, but didn't take her much to Vauxhall or
|
|
theatres, although she was constantly asking me to do so. I had taken
|
|
her to Vauxhall one night after I had first had her, and saw some one
|
|
there whom I should have been sorry to have seen me with Esther. We went
|
|
to the little snug, quiet accommodation house which had been the scene
|
|
of the slaughter of her virginity, and there fucked; sometimes we
|
|
walked instead of riding home, and when near the village, turning down
|
|
a secluded street, or lane, I set her back up against a fence, and had
|
|
her; then with her cunt buttered home she went alone. I took her once or
|
|
twice to the theatre, and for fear of being seen had a box; but I could
|
|
not afford those extravagances. Although not a bad-looking girl, and one
|
|
who would stir up sensations in a man's ballocks when he looked at her,
|
|
she was vulgar in appearance; and neither bonnets nor dress made any
|
|
improvement in her,--she was a washerwoman all over.
|
|
|
|
After she was well acquainted with two or three baudy houses I grew
|
|
tired of her, and quarrelled with her. One night I went to my mother's
|
|
who was ill; and as I passed the end of the lane where Esther lived saw
|
|
one or two young men and women larking. She and her sister sometimes
|
|
came to the end of the lane when their work was done, to see the people
|
|
going along the high-road, and to chat there with neighbours. The men
|
|
were chivying the girls, and Esther was one of them. I watched them from
|
|
a safe distance, heard laughing and screeching, and every now and then
|
|
one of the girls chased by a man darted down the dark lane, and I heard
|
|
a shriek. There was no light in the lane, and not much even in the
|
|
high-road from the feeble oil-lamps. I thought also that I saw Esther
|
|
kissed, she yelled and got away, but it seemed to me she much liked it.
|
|
For some reason all the wenches suddenly disappeared, and the men,
|
|
who were of the laboring class, leaned against the railings of the
|
|
public-house, and talked. I walked slowly by them, and heard one say,
|
|
"I felt her cunt the other night, so help me Gor." I did not know who he
|
|
spoke of, but I made up my mind it was Esther.
|
|
|
|
I wrote Esther to meet me, and then told her she had let a man feel her
|
|
cunt, and what I had seen and heard. She denied all cheekily, but got
|
|
confused when I told her what the man said. "I was in the lane," said I
|
|
afterwards, "and quite towards that end where I have felt you often,--I
|
|
hid, and I know he was feeling you there." It was a bare-faced lie of
|
|
mine, because I had gone away; but it was a hit. "He didn't," said she,
|
|
"though he tried." "I heard him say you felt his prick," said I lying
|
|
away again, "he went up the lane, and told that tall young man that, 'so
|
|
help his God', you had." "He wanted to make me, but I didn't,--he is
|
|
the greatest liar in the place. It was sneaking of you to be hiding like
|
|
that, and watching me," said she.
|
|
|
|
I wanted to fuck her, but she would not let me. She slanged me, said
|
|
I had deceived her, had said I would keep her, and lots of other
|
|
things,--and off she went. I took no notice for a fortnight, then went
|
|
to the lodgings of Sarah, and had a talk with her. Sarah said that
|
|
Esther was mad with me for not writing nor going to see her, and blamed
|
|
me for not "behaving handsome". "No other man has ever touched Esther,"
|
|
said she, "you don't seem to care about her,--but there's plenty who
|
|
do,--there are two or three gents about who would be glad to be in your
|
|
place."
|
|
|
|
I had her again, then had a desire to get into her sister, and tried
|
|
several times to see Matilda, caught her standing with Esther in the
|
|
lane once or twice, but she bolted off directly I went up to her. Once
|
|
she opened the door to me at her cottage, and slammed it in my face.
|
|
I had not told Esther what had made Matilda cry out till that day,
|
|
and then I did. "It's a lie," said she, "you went up my sister
|
|
Matilda?--what a crammer!" "She might tell her sister," and she did.
|
|
Matilda said I was a liar, and that what I had done was to shove my
|
|
finger violently up her, and hurt her very much. Esther believed
|
|
her sister. Matilda was going to be married to the potman at the
|
|
public-house close by, I then heard.
|
|
|
|
After that Esther met me a few times, and her sister seemed much on her
|
|
mind; for she unvariably after she had felt my prick for a minute would
|
|
say, "And you mean to tell me it went right into Tilda?" "Yes right in."
|
|
"Oh! what a story,--it could not have been." I grew tired of her, and
|
|
she of me,--probably some other man had taken a fancy to her, so I gave
|
|
her ten pounds one night, told her I was going abroad, and would see
|
|
her on my return, but I never did. I saw her near my mother's house
|
|
two years afterwards with quite a genteel well-dressed young man, she
|
|
looking nice and fresh, but very vulgar. She saw me. Her eyes had a
|
|
painful expression in them, partly like fear, partly as if she were
|
|
going to cry; and then she dropped them. They passed me, I of course
|
|
not taking the slightest notice, but had a cock-stand, and felt jealous,
|
|
--such a funny thing is male nature. I never saw her afterwards, but saw
|
|
Sarah the washerwoman and ex-harlot, and gave her five shillings for a
|
|
chat about the two girls. Esther had gone off with a gent, Matilda had
|
|
married the potman, who had taken to drink, and used to "whop her." And
|
|
that is the end of my acquaintance with the two girls.
|
|
|
|
I had great difficulty in keeping Esther from knowing too much about me,
|
|
and used a false name, had letters sent to a post-office, and had to do
|
|
much lying. The oddest thing was that though so near my mother's house,
|
|
and though I passed her one day when walking with one of my married
|
|
sisters, she did not know I was often living there, and close by her
|
|
home; but she found it out just before I parted with her. She knew quite
|
|
well that the conversation when sitting on the barrow could only have
|
|
been heard from one of the garden-walls close by the barrow; but I would
|
|
not at first tell her which. My real name I don't think she ever knew,
|
|
though I am not sure of that..
|
|
|
|
Curiosity made me call on ex-harlot Sarah, who lived in one room, and
|
|
whilst talking I put my hand up her petticoats, on to her cunt. She
|
|
laughed, opened her thighs wide, and said, "I knowed yer would," and she
|
|
looked as if a fuck would have gratified her,--but I did not attempt it.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XII.
|
|
|
|
Preliminary.--My taste for beauty of form.--Sarah Mavis.--
|
|
Midday in the Quadrant.--No. 13 J... s Street.--A bargain in
|
|
the hall.--A woman with a will.--Fears about my size.--
|
|
Muck.--Cold-blooded.--Tyranny.--My temper.--Submission.--A
|
|
revolt.--A half-gay lady.--Sarah watches me.--A quarrel.--
|
|
Reconciliation.
|
|
|
|
I must go back a year or more before the night when I last had
|
|
Kitty with the yellow hair and yellow motte, to tell the story of my
|
|
acquaintance with a woman of whom I have little to tell, considering
|
|
that she more or less is included in the history of my amours for nearly
|
|
four years, and who will appear more than once some years after that. A
|
|
word about my sensuous temperament first.
|
|
|
|
I had early a taste for beauty of female form. Face had for me of course
|
|
the usual attraction, for beauty of expression always speaks to the soul
|
|
of a man first. A woman's eyes speak to him before she opens her mouth,
|
|
and instinctively (for actual knowledge only comes to him in his maturer
|
|
years) he reads in them liking, dislike, indifference, voluptuousness,
|
|
desire, sensuous abandonment, or fierce reckless lust.
|
|
|
|
All these feelings can be seen in a woman's eyes alone, for they express
|
|
and move with every feeling, every passion, pure or sensual. They can
|
|
beget in the male pure love as it is called, which is believed to be
|
|
so till experience teaches that however pure it may be, it cannot exist
|
|
without the occasional help of a burning throbbing, stiff prick, up
|
|
a hot, wide-stretched cunt, and a simultaneous discharge of spermatic
|
|
juices from both organs. The rest of a woman's body, the breasts and
|
|
limbs, can move lust unaccompanied by love, and if once admiration of
|
|
them begins lust follows instantly. A small foot, a round, plump leg and
|
|
thigh, and a fat backside speak to the prick straight. Form is in fact
|
|
to most, more enticing, and creates a more enduring attachment in men of
|
|
mature years, than the sweetest face. A plain woman with fine limbs and
|
|
bum, and firm, full breasts will (unless her cunt be an ugly gash) draw
|
|
a man to her where the prettiest-faced Miss will fail. Few men, unless
|
|
their bellies be very big, or they be very old, will keep long to a bony
|
|
lady whose skinny buttocks can be held in one hand. I early had a
|
|
taste for female form, it was born with me. Even when a boy I selected
|
|
partners for dancing because they were what I called crummy, and admired
|
|
even at one time a fat-arsed middle-aged woman who sold us bull's eyes,
|
|
because I had caught her exhibiting large legs when squatting down to
|
|
piss. For years I had had at the period named, two friends, one of whom
|
|
was a sculptor, who alas! drank himself to death; and one a painter
|
|
still living as I write this. I had been in their studios, seen their
|
|
naked models, heard their opinions on both male and female beauty,
|
|
and had the various points of female perfection shown me on the
|
|
lady-sitters. I had them explained in two instances by the ladies
|
|
themselves, in private sittings, and with them I had sexual pleasures
|
|
which they said the artists had neither got out of them nor given them.
|
|
I had myself sketched from the nude, and was thought a not bad hand
|
|
at it, and had therefore by training, instinct, and a most voluptuous
|
|
temperament become a good judge of beauty of female form.
|
|
|
|
I did not write the above paragraphs, when I wrote what follows about
|
|
Sarah Mavis, they are added now many years afterwards, when I am
|
|
wondering at what I did in those early days, marvelling at my judgment
|
|
in selection, and seeking the reasons which guided me then in getting
|
|
for my sexual embraces, as many modes of female beauty of form, as
|
|
perhaps any one Englishman ever had,--short of a prince.
|
|
|
|
One Summer's morning about midday, I was in the Quadrant. It had been
|
|
raining, and the streets were dirty. In front of me I saw a well-grown
|
|
woman walking with that steady, solid, well-balanced step which I even
|
|
then knew indicated fleshy limbs, and a fat backside. She was holding
|
|
her petticoats well up out of the dirt, the common habit of even
|
|
respectable women then. With gay ladies the habit was to hold them up
|
|
just a little higher. I saw a pair of feet in lovely boots which seemed
|
|
perfection, and calves which were exquisite. I fired directly. Just
|
|
by Beak Street she stopped, and looked into a shop. "Is she gay?" I
|
|
thought. "No." I followed on, passed her, then turned round, and met her
|
|
eye. She looked at me, but the look was so steady, indifferent, and with
|
|
so little of the gay woman in her expression, that I could not make up
|
|
my mind as to whether she was accessible or not.
|
|
|
|
She turned back and went on without looking round. Crossing Tichborne
|
|
Street she raised her petticoats higher, it was very muddy there. I then
|
|
saw more of both legs, my prick stood at the sight of her limbs, and
|
|
settled me. I followed quickly, saying as I came close, "Will you come
|
|
with me?" She made no reply, and I fell behind. Soon she stopped
|
|
again at a shop, and looked in, and again I said, "May I go with
|
|
you?" "Yes,--where to?" "Where you like,---I will follow you." Without
|
|
replying a word, and without looking at me, without hurrying, she walked
|
|
steadily on till she entered the house No. 13 J...s Street, which I
|
|
entered that day for the first time, but many hundreds of times since.
|
|
Her composure, and the way she stopped from time to time to look at
|
|
the shops as she went along astonished me: she seemed in no hurry, nor
|
|
indeed conscious that I was close at her heels, though she knew it.
|
|
|
|
Inside the house she stopped at the foot of the staircase, and turning
|
|
round said in a low tone, "What are you going to give me?" "Ten
|
|
shillings." "I won't go upstairs then, so tell you at once." "What
|
|
do you want?" "I won't let any one come with me unless they give me a
|
|
sovereign at least." "I will give you that." Then she mounted, nothing
|
|
more being said. Asking me the question at the foot of the stairs
|
|
astonished me, I had been asked it in a room often before, and in the
|
|
street; but at the foot of a staircase,--never.
|
|
|
|
We entered a handsome bed-room. Turning round after paying for it, and
|
|
locking the door, I saw her standing with her back to the light (the
|
|
curtains were down, but the room was nevertheless light), one arm
|
|
resting on the mantle-piece. She looked at me fixedly, and I did at her.
|
|
Then I recollect noticing that her mouth was slightly open, and that she
|
|
looked seemingly vacantly at me (it always was so), that she had a black
|
|
silk dress on, and a dark-colored bonnet. Then desire impelled; I went
|
|
close to her, and began to lift her clothes. She pushed them down in a
|
|
commanding way saying, "Now none of that."
|
|
|
|
"Oh! here is your money," said I gutting down a sovereign on the
|
|
mantle-piece. She broke into a quiet laugh. "I did not mean that,"
|
|
she remarked. "Let me feel you." "Get away," said she impatiently, and
|
|
turning she took off her bonnet. I then saw she had thick and nearly if
|
|
not quite black hair, and recollect that I noticed these points just
|
|
in the order I have narrated them. Then she leaned her arm on the
|
|
mantle-piece again, and looked at me quietly, her mouth slightly open,
|
|
and I stood looking at her without speaking, my sperm fermenting in
|
|
my balls; but I was slightly bothered, almost intimidated by her cold
|
|
manner,---a manner so unlike what I usually met with in strumpets.
|
|
|
|
"You have beautiful legs." "So they say." "Let me see them." She laid
|
|
down on the sofa, her back to the light, without uttering a word. I
|
|
threw off coat and waistcoat, and sitting at the foot of the sofa threw
|
|
up her dress to her knees; higher I tried, but she resisted. Then
|
|
my fingers felt her cunt, and the delight of the feel and sight of her
|
|
beautiful limbs overwhelmed me. "Take off your things,--let me see you
|
|
undressed,--you must be exquisite." My hands roved all about her bum,
|
|
belly and thighs, and just seeing the flesh above her garters I fell
|
|
to kissing it, and kissed upwards till the aroma of her cunt met my
|
|
nostrils, and its thicket met my lips and mingled with my moustache,
|
|
which I then wore, though so few men then did. I fell on my knees by
|
|
the side of her, kissing, feeling, and smelling; but she kept her thighs
|
|
close together, and pushed her petticoats over my head whilst I kissed,
|
|
so that I saw but little of her beauties.
|
|
|
|
Then excited almost to madness by my amusement I rose up. "Oh! come
|
|
to the bed,--come." She lay quite still. "No,--do it here,--leave me
|
|
alone,--I won't have my clothes pulled up,--I won't be pulled about,--if
|
|
you want it have me, and have done." "Well get on to the bed." "I
|
|
shan't." "I can't do it on the sofa." "Well I'm going then." "You shan't
|
|
till I have had you,--only let me see your thighs." "There then,"--and
|
|
up went her clothes half-way. "Higher," "I shan't." Now my prick was
|
|
out. "Get on the bed,--I won't do it here,--take your things off."
|
|
"I shan't." "You shall." All was said by her in a determined way, but
|
|
without signs of temper.
|
|
|
|
She rose without saying another word, I think I see now as I write, her
|
|
exquisite legs in beautiful silk stockings as they showed when getting
|
|
off the sofa, and getting on to the bed. "But I want your clothes off."
|
|
"I won't take them off, I'm in a hurry,--I never do." "Oh! you must."
|
|
"I won't,--now come and do what you want to do,--I'm in a hurry." She
|
|
lifted her clothes just high enough to show the fringe of her cunt, and
|
|
opened her thighs a little. I thrilled with lewd delight as I saw them,
|
|
and mounted her, laid between them, and inserted my prick. Ah! at my
|
|
first shove almost I was spending in her.
|
|
|
|
"Oh! lay quiet dear, I've only been up you a second." "No,--get off,
|
|
and let me wash." I resisted, but she uncunted me, and got off the bed
|
|
quickly. "Now don't come near while I wash,--I can't bear a man looking
|
|
at me washing myself." I insisted, for I was longing to see the form I
|
|
had scarcely yet had a glimpse of. Putting down the basin she pulled the
|
|
bed-curtains round her to hide her whilst she slopped her quim. I would
|
|
not be rude, and saw nothing. Then on went her bonnet. "Are you going
|
|
first, or I?" said she. "I shall wait as long as you will." "Then I will
|
|
go first,"--and she was going away when I stopped her.
|
|
|
|
"When will you again meet me?" "Oh! when out at all, I am up to one
|
|
o'clock in Regent Street." "Where do you live?" "I shan't say,--good
|
|
bye." "No,--wait,--come to me this afternoon." "I can't." "This
|
|
evening." She hesitated. "I can't stay long if I do." "Well an hour and
|
|
a half." "Perhaps." "Will you take off your clothes then?" "No,--good
|
|
bye, I am in a hurry." "Meet me at seven o'clock to-night.--do." "No."
|
|
"At eight then." "Well I will be here expecting you,--but I shan't stop
|
|
long." "Will you let me see your form up to your waist?" "Oh! I hate
|
|
being looked at,"--and off she went, leaving me in the room.
|
|
|
|
I dined at my Club, and was in a fever of lust all day. "Will she come?"
|
|
for she had only half promised. Half-an-hour before the time I was at
|
|
the house, and had the same room again. It was handsome throughout, had
|
|
a big four-post bed with handsome hangings (this was thirty years ago
|
|
mind) on one side of the room on another side by a partition was a
|
|
wash-hand stand of marble, against the wall on the opposite side a large
|
|
glass just at the level of the bed; at the foot of the bed a large
|
|
sofa opposite to the fire; over the chimney-piece a big glass sloping
|
|
forwards, so that those sitting or lying on the sofa could see
|
|
themselves reflected in it; in the angle of the room by the windows a
|
|
big cheval-glass which could be turned in any direction, two easy-chairs
|
|
and a bidet, the hangings were of red damask, two large gas-burners
|
|
were over the chimney-piece angles. It was the most compact, comfortable
|
|
baudy house bed-room I have perhaps ever been in, although by no means a
|
|
large room. They charged seven and six for its use, and twenty shillings
|
|
for the night. Scores of times I have paid both fees. I noticed all
|
|
this, and that a couple could see their amatory amusements on the bed,
|
|
on the sofa, or anyhow in fact, by aid of the cheval and other glasses.
|
|
I was delighted with the room, but in a fever of anxiety lest the lady
|
|
should not come. I walked about with my prick out, seeing how I looked
|
|
in the glasses, laid on the bed, and noticed how it looked in the
|
|
side-glass, squatted on the sofa, glorying in the sight of my balls and
|
|
stiff-stander. Then I had a sudden fear that she would think my prick
|
|
small; what put it into my head I never could exactly say, I used when
|
|
at school to fancy mine was smaller than that of other boys, and some
|
|
remark of a gay woman about its size made me most sensitive on the
|
|
topic. I was constantly asking the women if my prick was not smaller
|
|
than other men's. When they said it was a very good size,--as big as
|
|
most,--I did not believe them, and I used when I pulled it out, to say
|
|
in an apologetic tone, "Let's put it up, there's not much of it." "Oh!
|
|
it's quite big enough," one would say. "I've seen plenty smaller," would
|
|
say another. But still the idea clung to me, that it was not a prick
|
|
to be in any way proud of,--which was a great error. But I have told of
|
|
this weakness more than once before, I think.
|
|
|
|
I recollect well that night fearing she would think my prick
|
|
contemptible, and it pained me much, for I was hooked, although I did
|
|
not know it. I brushed my hair, and made myself inviting with a desire
|
|
to please her, without thinking that I was taking the trouble to do so
|
|
for a woman who was going to be fucked for twenty shillings, and whom I
|
|
now know did not then care how I looked, or who I was, long as she
|
|
got her money as soon as she could, and got rid of me to make way for
|
|
another man, or to go and spend what she had earned.
|
|
|
|
She did not keep her time. I kept listening, and peeping out as I heard
|
|
footsteps and saw couples bent on sexual pleasure going up the stairs,
|
|
and heard them overhead walking about. This and the excitement at the
|
|
recollection of my instantaneous spend between her magnificent thighs,
|
|
my pulling about my prick and contemplating it in the glass, the moving
|
|
about of the various couples made me in such a state of randiness that I
|
|
could scarcely keep from frigging. A servant who had noticed my peeping
|
|
came in, and begged I would not look out, for customers did not like it.
|
|
Did they know where my lady lived? and would they send for her? They did
|
|
not. Then the servant came to say I had been an hour in the room,--did I
|
|
mean to wait any longer? I knew what that meant, and was about to say I
|
|
would pay for the room twice, when I heard a heavy, slow tread, and the
|
|
lady's face appeared.
|
|
|
|
I grumbled at her delay, she took my complaints quietly, she could not
|
|
come earlier, was all she said. She pulled off her bonnet, put it on the
|
|
chair, turned round, leaned her arm on the mantle-piece, and stared at
|
|
me again in a half-vacant way with her mouth slightly open, just as in
|
|
the morning. I gave her very little time to stare, for I had my hand on
|
|
her cunt in no time, and nearly spent in my trowsers as I touched it.
|
|
She tried the same game,--she would not be pulled about,--she would not
|
|
let her cunt be looked at,--if I meant to do it, do it, and have
|
|
done with it. My blood rose. "I'd be damned if I would,--nor pay, nor
|
|
anything else unless she took her gown off. So she took it off laughing,
|
|
and laid down on the sofa. Not on the bed. No she would not. Then damned
|
|
if I would do it (though I was nearly bursting). Again she laughed, and
|
|
then got on to the bed. I saw breasts of spotless purity, and exquisite
|
|
shape, bursting out over the corset, threw up the petticoats, saw the
|
|
dark hair at the bottom of the belly, and the next instant a thrust,
|
|
a moment's heaving,--quietness,--another thrust,--a sigh,--a gush of
|
|
sperm,--and again I had finished with but a minute's complete sexual
|
|
enjoyment only.
|
|
|
|
"Get up." "I won't" "Let me wash the muck out." "No."--and I pinned
|
|
her down, squeezed to her belly, grasped her haunches. "I've not done
|
|
spending." "Yes you have." A wriggle and a jerk, and I was uncunted
|
|
and swearing. She sat down on the basin, I stooped down, tore aside the
|
|
curtains, and put my hand on to her gaping cunt. She tried to rise, and
|
|
pushed me,--I pushed her. She tilted on one side, her bum caught the
|
|
edge of the basin, and upset the water.
|
|
|
|
"Damn you," said she,--then she laughed and got up. I pushed her against
|
|
the side of the bed, and again got my fingers on the cunt,--slippery
|
|
enough it was. "You're one of those beasts, are you?" said she.
|
|
|
|
"I've never felt your cunt properly, and I will." "Well let me wash it,
|
|
and you shall." She did so, I felt it, and then begged for another fuck.
|
|
|
|
"You are not in a hurry." "Yes I am." "You said you would give me an
|
|
hour and a half." "Yes, but you have done me, and what is the good
|
|
of keeping me?" "I mean to do it again." "Double journey double pay."
|
|
"Nonsense,--you so excited me, that I've never had a proper poke yet."
|
|
"Well that is no fault of mine." She laughed, and turned questioner. "Do
|
|
you often have the women from Regent Street?" "Yes." "Do you know many?"
|
|
"Yes, I vary so." "Ah! you are fond of change,--I thought so,"--and she
|
|
got talkative after that. I had thought her almost a dummy.
|
|
|
|
Meanwhile I was gloating over her charms, her beautiful arms, the lovely
|
|
breasts I now played with, the lovely limbs I saw, for she had sat down
|
|
in the most enticing position with the ankle of one foot resting on
|
|
the knee of the other leg. I wanted to pull the clothes higher up the
|
|
thighs, she resisted, but I saw the beautiful ankles, the tiny boots
|
|
and feet, the creamy flesh of the thigh just above the garter, thighs
|
|
thickening, folding over, squeezing together, and hiding her cunt from
|
|
view when I tried to look up.
|
|
|
|
I had hid my prick, the fear had come over me of her thinking it small,
|
|
and that prevented it standing again. An hour ran away. "I'm going,"
|
|
said she rising. My prick stood at the instant. "Let me." "Make haste
|
|
then." As she stood up I put my hand up her petticoats. She put her hand
|
|
down, and gave my prick a hard squeeze. I hollowed,--she laughed.
|
|
|
|
"I've a good mind not to let you,--you've been so long,--but you may do
|
|
it." She got on to the bedside. "Oh! for God's sake don't move,--that
|
|
attitude is exquisite." One leg was well on the bed, the petticoats were
|
|
squeezed up, and the leg on the ground from the boot-heel to about four
|
|
inches above her garter was visible. She was half turning round, her
|
|
lovely breasts, or rather one of them showed half-front, and with
|
|
her head looking round at me as she was moving, it altogether made a
|
|
ravishingly luscious picture. I put my hands up from behind between her
|
|
thighs. That broke the spell, she moved on to the bed directly,--I on to
|
|
her.
|
|
|
|
"Oh! God you are heavenly, lovely,--oh! God my darling,--oh!" I was
|
|
spending and kissing her too quickly again; lust almost deprived me of
|
|
my pleasure. In a dozen shoves I was empty. It was all over.
|
|
|
|
"How quietly you stood in that attitude," said I. "I can stand in an
|
|
attitude nearly five minutes without moving, almost without showing that
|
|
I am breathing, without winking an eye." I thought nothing of this at
|
|
the time, excepting that it was brag.
|
|
|
|
"Give me five shillings, for I have been a long time with you,--I've a
|
|
reason,--I won't ask you again." I gave it her. "Shall you be in Regent
|
|
Street to-morrow morning?" "Yes."
|
|
|
|
I was in Regent Street, met her, and had her you may be sure, and
|
|
repeated these meetings for a week daily, and sometimes twice a day; but
|
|
got no more than the shortest time with her, the quickest fuck, a rapid
|
|
uncunting. She did not spend with me, and showed no signs of pleasure,
|
|
scarcely took the trouble to move her bum, would not undress, would not
|
|
let me look at her cunt. I submitted to it, for I was caught, but did
|
|
not know that then,--she did. That is she knew that I was damnably lewd
|
|
upon her, and used that knowledge to suit her convenience. I had no
|
|
right to grumble at it. I need not have had her, had I not liked upon
|
|
those terms. But I did. At length I grumbled, and at last almost had a
|
|
quarrel. "I won't see you again," said I. "No one asks you," said she.
|
|
|
|
As my means were not large, and my purse grew rather empty, I was glad
|
|
to keep away a few days. Then again I saw her in Regent Street; and
|
|
after giving her the wink followed her. She walked on, but instead of
|
|
going to the house, passed the end of the street. On she went, I went
|
|
close to her, it was the second time I had spoken to her in the street.
|
|
"Oh! I did not understand you," she said, "besides I'm in a hurry." "Oh!
|
|
do come." "Well I can't stop five minutes." "Nonsense." "Well then I
|
|
can't,"--and she went on walking. My prick got the better of my temper.
|
|
"Well come back." She turned round, and bent her way to J...s Street,
|
|
saying, "Don't let us go in together."
|
|
|
|
When in the house she got on to the bed without a moment's delay. I
|
|
had her, and she was out of the house again in less than ten minutes,
|
|
leaving me in a very angry state of mind; but she promised to meet me
|
|
the following night if she could, and to stay longer with me.
|
|
|
|
She came an hour late, and found me fretting and fuming in the bed-room.
|
|
They did not hurry me now at that house, I being already known there,
|
|
and gave me whenever they could the same chamber. "I'm in a great
|
|
hurry," were the first words Sarah said. "Why you told me you would stay
|
|
longer." "Yes,--I am sorry, but I can't." "You never can,--but take
|
|
off your gown." "I really can't,--have me at the side of the bed,--you
|
|
wanted it so the other day." "No I won't." "Then I'll get on the
|
|
bed,"--and on she got.
|
|
|
|
I tried to open her legs, to turn her round to see her bum (I had
|
|
never seen it yet properly). No she would not undress, she would do
|
|
nothing,--I might have it her way, or leave it alone and go. How green
|
|
it was to submit to all this.
|
|
|
|
I lost my temper, for my delight I saw was in her lovely form, in her
|
|
physical beauty; whilst she seemed to think that the only joy I could
|
|
have was to spend in her cunt as fast as I could. "I won't have you at
|
|
all," said I getting resolute at last. "All right," said she getting off
|
|
the bed, "I'm really in a hurry,--another night I will." "Another night
|
|
be damned--you are nearly a bilk,--there,"--and I threw the sovereign on
|
|
a table, and put on my hat. "Are you going?" "Yes, I'm going to get some
|
|
woman who is not ashamed of her cunt." "Go along then." Off I went.
|
|
When halfway down the stairs I heard her calling to me to come back, but
|
|
savage I went off.
|
|
|
|
I walked up Regent Street savage with her, and with myself too, for not
|
|
having had my fuck, even if she had gone away a minute afterwards. Randy
|
|
as the devil I saw a woman at the corner of the Circus, and accosted
|
|
her, she turned away, I accosted her again. "Will you come with
|
|
me?" "Yes if you like." "Do you know a house about here?" "No I'm a
|
|
stranger." Then I took her to J... s Street, had her two or three times
|
|
and toyed with her a long time, stopping till she would stop no longer,
|
|
saying she should be locked out if she was not off. She was only
|
|
half-gay I think, and wanted a fuck. I had just offered myself in time.
|
|
She was a biggish woman of about thirty years of age. After I had fucked
|
|
her the first time, we laid on the bed together; she played with my
|
|
prick till it was stiff again, and then turning on to her back said,
|
|
"Come on,--let's have it again."
|
|
|
|
I thought much of my fine-limbed Sarah Mavis, but it was with anger. A
|
|
fuck for ten shillings was all very well when randy, but even when in a
|
|
hurry I never was satisfied till I had pulled the cunt open, and given
|
|
it a general inspection, although it was generally but a rapid one in
|
|
those days. If I had the same woman again another day, it was because
|
|
I liked her and liked to talk to her, for I always found them more
|
|
complaisant the longer I knew them. But here had I been having a woman
|
|
daily, and sometimes twice a day, mainly because she was so exquisite in
|
|
form (for I had some idea even then that her cunt was not a good fit
|
|
to my prick;) yet I had never seen her cunt; nor her backside, nor her
|
|
bubbies, nor her arm-pits,' nor her navel, nor anything properly, and so
|
|
I determined not to have her again, and to dismiss her from my mind. But
|
|
I was hooked.
|
|
|
|
To economize I again went with cheap women, and seemed to get just as
|
|
nice women for ten shillings as I did for twenty; but I had taken a
|
|
liking for the house in J...s Street, which was an expensive one, and
|
|
liked the best room, and took my cheap women to my dear room. One
|
|
woman said, "Well you might give me a little more, and have a cheaper
|
|
room,--the room gets nearly as much as you give me." And I saw a woman
|
|
there one night pocket the comb, and a piece of soap,--she stole them.
|
|
I heard in pleasant conversation afterwards, that soap and combs were
|
|
often stolen by women,--especially soap.
|
|
|
|
About a fortnight afterwards I saw my Venus again, and again was
|
|
closetted with her. I could resist my desire for her no longer, for
|
|
having never ceased thinking of her even when fucking other women. She
|
|
was just as calm, but there was a little, quiet spite about her. When
|
|
she had taken off her bonnet, and looked at me for a minute with her
|
|
mouth open as usual, she said, "I suppose you have been having other
|
|
women." I can't tell why it was, but I lied, and said "no." "What did
|
|
you go upstairs with one for?" said she, "the night after you left
|
|
me,--I was in the parlour, and peeping through the door saw you and
|
|
the woman who stumbled at the foot of the stairs" (which was the fact).
|
|
"Well I did," I replied, "and saw her cunt,--and that's more than I ever
|
|
saw of yours." "You've seen as much as you will." Putting on my hat
|
|
in rage, "Then I may as well go,--here is your money,"--and I
|
|
turned towards the door. "Don't be a fool," said she, "what _do_ you
|
|
want?--what _do_ all you men want?--you are all beasts alike,--you're
|
|
never satisfied." She was angry. "Don't be in a hurry, and let's see
|
|
your precious cunt." I recollect saying that very distinctly, being
|
|
angry,--and that up to that time I had been chaste in my remarks. I was
|
|
at that time of my life not at all lewd or strong in word with women
|
|
when we first met, but was somewhat less so so soon as I warmed, and
|
|
only when randy to the highest degree or by fits and starts, spiced my
|
|
conversation highly with lewd expressions.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIII.
|
|
|
|
Sarah's complaisance.--Mistress Hannah.--About Sarah.--
|
|
Sexual indifference.--After dinner.--Stark naked at last.--
|
|
Her form.--The scar.--Hannah's friendship.--The baudy house
|
|
parlour.--The Guardsman.--Sarah's greed.--A change in her
|
|
manner.--A miscarriage.--Going abroad.--I am madly in
|
|
love.--Sarah's history.
|
|
|
|
She laughed. "Well I will,--but don't make me undress,--I'm in a hurry."
|
|
"Of course,--you always are." She laid on the sofa, and pulled up her
|
|
clothes,--she was yielding. "No,--come here." She came, and laid on the
|
|
side of the bed. At length I saw those glorious thighs open wider, the
|
|
dark-shaded crack with the swelling lips showed itself more freely than
|
|
I had ever seen it before. I dropped on my knees, and propping up one of
|
|
her feet with my hand, lifted the leg so that the thighs distended, and
|
|
a large bit of crimson nymphae began to show, the faint but delicious
|
|
odour of her cunt stole up my nostrils, my lips closed on her gap, and
|
|
kissed it lecherously, my brain whirled as my nose rubbed in the thicket
|
|
of dark hair, and my lip touched her clitoris. I know nothing more
|
|
excepting that I was up her as she laid there, and spending as quickly
|
|
as ever, before I had in fact well plugged her. "Are you satisfied?"
|
|
said she as she looked up from washing her cunt by the side of me. "No,
|
|
it's so quick,--you fetch me so quickly." "That is no fault of mine."
|
|
She had said so often before. I recollect all these apparently trivial,
|
|
these various feelings and circumstances, as well as if it were
|
|
yesterday, for she had made her mark on me.
|
|
|
|
I had partly conquered, and saw my victory. "I like seeing you so,"
|
|
said I, "but won't see you, or any other woman who won't let me see her
|
|
charms, and who is always in such a hurry,--it would be all very well if
|
|
I saw you for the first time--(why you have a new black silk dress on."
|
|
"Yes, I bought it with your money," said she),--"but for a regular friend
|
|
as I am, it is unsupportable." I conquered more, and subsequently, told
|
|
her that I might be in Regent Street one day, but I did not go there
|
|
(I had made no promise). She said she went out against her will to see
|
|
me,--could I write to say when she was to meet me? No,--but I could
|
|
write to the baudy house, and they would send on the letter. I called
|
|
there one morning, and left a letter. The Mistress was a shortish
|
|
sandy-haired woman about thirty years old, with a white face; she looked
|
|
very fixedly at me, and smiled. She would send on the letter to Miss
|
|
Sarah Mavis which I found was the name she went by; but Sarah never came
|
|
to my letter, and I paid for the room for nothing. Then I sent for the
|
|
Mistress; had a bottle of champagne with her, and she opened her heart
|
|
a little, she was soon a little screwed, and this was what she told me.
|
|
Her name was Hannah.
|
|
|
|
She had not known Miss Mavis long,--only a month or so before she had
|
|
come in with me,--did not often see her now excepting with me. Mavis had
|
|
been asking if I had been seen in the house with any other woman, "and
|
|
of course I did not tell her," said Sandyhead. She thought her a nice
|
|
woman, and had struck up acquaintance with her. Now she often came
|
|
into the parlour to chat with her when I had left, or before she came
|
|
upstairs to me, when I was at the house before my appointed time.
|
|
|
|
Things went on thus for a little time longer, Sarah doing much as she
|
|
liked, but certainly becoming more complaisant. She stopped longer, we
|
|
began to talk; I was of course curious about her, she about me, I dare
|
|
say she got much out of me, I but little out of her. What I mainly
|
|
learned was that she only came on the streets occasionally, and from
|
|
about eleven to one o'clock in the day,--never afterwards; and when she
|
|
had sufficient money to "go on with," as she said, she came not out at
|
|
all. "I hate it," said she, "hate you men,--you are all beasts,--you're
|
|
never satisfied unless you are pulling a woman about in all manner of
|
|
ways." "It pleases us," said I, "we admire you so." "Well it does not
|
|
please me,--I want them to do what they have to do, and let me go." "Why
|
|
don't you go out in the afternoon or evening?" "No, I get my money in
|
|
the morning, and have other things to do the rest of the day."
|
|
|
|
She had not been gay long,--not more than a month before I had met
|
|
her,--was taken to the house in J... s Street by the first man who met
|
|
her in the streets, and had been there often since. No she never had
|
|
been gay before, she would swear, and often wished she were dead rather
|
|
than have to come out, and let men pull her about, and put their nasty
|
|
muck into her,--"nasty muck" was always the pleasant way in which she
|
|
spoke of a man's sperm.
|
|
|
|
"One would think you never cared about a poke,--I wonder how often you
|
|
spend." "Oh! it's all the same to me whether I have it, or whether I
|
|
don't,--if I do it once a fortnight it's as much as I care about,--you
|
|
beasts of men seem to think of nothing else, and you leave us poor women
|
|
all the trouble that comes from putting your muck into us." "What the
|
|
devil do you care about?" said I after a chat with her one day, in which
|
|
she had just said what I have narrated. "Oh! I don't care about anything
|
|
much."
|
|
|
|
Another day she said, "I like a nice dinner, and then a read in an
|
|
arm-chair, till I go to sleep, or a nice bit of supper, and to get into
|
|
bed,--I'm so tired of a night, I like to get to bed early if I can." We
|
|
went on talking about eating and drinking; she told me what she liked,
|
|
and what she disliked with much gusto and earnestness. "I'll give you
|
|
a good dinner", said I, "and we will come here afterwards." "Will you?"
|
|
"Yes,--but I won't unless I have you three hours here." "Impossible,--I
|
|
dare not be out after half-past ten." "Come early." "I can't come very
|
|
early, for I must be home in the afternoon." There were all sorts of
|
|
obstacles,--so many that I gave it up, not going to be humbugged. But
|
|
_she_ would not give it up, and it was arranged that if she might name
|
|
the evening, she would be with me at six o'clock, and stay with me till
|
|
ten,--an immense concession,--it was the dinner that did it. I saw she
|
|
was fond of her stomach, and that made me offer the dinner as a bait.
|
|
|
|
She would not come in after me to the restaurant, I was to meet her at
|
|
the corner of St. Martin's lane in a cab, and go with her,--and so it
|
|
came off. We went to the Cafe de P..v...e in Leicester square, I had
|
|
already ordered a private room, and a nice dinner. My God how she
|
|
enjoyed it! "It's a long time since I've had such a good dinner", said
|
|
she, "but never mind, better times are coming again for me, I feel
|
|
sure." She ate largely, she drank well, and to my astonishment when I
|
|
got up to kiss her, she kissed me in return, and gave my piercer the
|
|
slightest possible pinch outside my trowsers. "Let's feel you," said I.
|
|
Equally astonished was I when she said, "Bolt the door, the waiter may
|
|
be in,"--and then I had a grope, and she felt my prick. "Let's go--let's
|
|
go,--I am dying for you." Off we went arm in arm. Directly we were well
|
|
away from the Cafe she let go my arm. "You go first, and I will follow."
|
|
I thought she was going to cheat me. "I dare not be seen walking arm in
|
|
arm with a man,--but I will follow." In five minutes we were in the room
|
|
together. Sarah Mavis was just in the slightest degree elevated, and
|
|
perhaps more than slightly lewd.
|
|
|
|
To pull off my things, to help her off with hers partially was the work
|
|
of a minute. "I must piddle first,--champagne always makes me want to
|
|
piddle so." "Does it make you randy?" "Oh! Lord it does sometimes; but
|
|
it's such a time since I tasted it before tonight, I almost forget."
|
|
"Are you so now?" "Oh! I don't know,--come on the bed," said she. She
|
|
opened her thighs wide, she let me grope and smell, and kiss, and see.
|
|
"Come on,--do." Instinct told me she wanted it, I embraced her, and
|
|
was enjoying her, when she clasped me firmly, sought my mouth. "Oh! my
|
|
darling, I'm co---com--h--hing," said she spending as she cried out, and
|
|
fetched me at the same instant. It was the first time she had ever spent
|
|
with me.
|
|
|
|
We laid in heavenly quietness, prick and cunt in holy junction,
|
|
distilling, slobbering, and bedewing each other's mouths and privates,
|
|
whilst the soft voluptuous pleasure was creeping through our limbs,
|
|
bodies, and senses. She was in no hurry to wash out the muck. "Oh! I'm
|
|
chocking," said she after a time, "get off." "I won't." "Oh! do,--my
|
|
stays choke me when I lie down after food,--I'm almost suffocated." I
|
|
held fast. "If I get off, you won't let me do it again." "Yes,--yes I
|
|
will." She jerked my prick out of her cunt, I got to the side of the
|
|
bed, she sat up, and was about to get off, when I stopped her, and
|
|
together we undid her stays, and took them off. "Let me wash now." "No
|
|
you shan't,--I've never yet fucked with my first sperm in you,--let me
|
|
now, there is a darling." She laughed, and fell back; then for a few
|
|
minutes we kissed and toyed. Her magnificent breasts were now free, I
|
|
buried my face between them, and kissed them rapturously; her moistened
|
|
quim I felt, and it drove me wild with desire; so gluing my mouth to
|
|
hers I mounted her, and we were soon in Elysium again, Sarah enjoying
|
|
her fuck in a way I thought from her cold-blooded manner previously
|
|
she was quite incapable of,--and there we laid, nestling cock and cunt
|
|
together, till a slight sleep or doze overtook both of us.
|
|
|
|
In a minute or two Sarah sprang up, and rushed to the basin. I lay
|
|
still, contemplating her, and saying I would not wash my prick for a
|
|
week, so that I might retain in the roots and its moistened fringe our
|
|
mixed juices, the remnants of our first spend together. When she had
|
|
washed she laid down by the side of me. "Let's have a nap," said she.
|
|
The wine seemed to be getting into her head more and more, though she
|
|
was but in the slightest degree fuddled.
|
|
|
|
I could not sleep. The sight of her breasts relieved from her stays, the
|
|
free manner in which she let her petticoats lay half up her thighs, the
|
|
delight at finding her take pleasure in my embraces, exulted me beyond
|
|
measure. I joked and tickled her. "Let's see you naked." "You shan't."
|
|
"Well stand up, and let me see your limbs naked,--take off your
|
|
petticoats, even if you keep your chemise on." She was yielding, took
|
|
petticoats off, but would do no more. I had seen more than any other
|
|
man, and she would do no more, she said. The wine had evaporated, and
|
|
she was herself again, quiet, composed.
|
|
|
|
Maddened with desire. "I'll give you a sovereign," I said, "to take
|
|
the chemise off." "Will you!" "Yes." "No I won't." "I'll give you two."
|
|
"What can you want to see more for?" "Hang it, take the money, and
|
|
let me, or I'll rip it off without paying." I closed with her, and
|
|
struggled, pulled the chemise up above her haunches, pulled it down
|
|
below her breasts, tore it. "Now don't,--I won't have it," said she
|
|
getting angry, "it won't please you if I do,--you will not like to see
|
|
me half as well afterwards, I tell you." "Yes I shall,--here is the
|
|
money,--now let me see you naked, I'll give you three sovereigns."
|
|
|
|
She pushed me away, and sat down. "Where is the money?" said she. I
|
|
gave it her. "I've got an ugly scar,--I don't like it seen." "Never
|
|
mind,--show it." Slowly she dropped the chemise, and stood in all her
|
|
naked beauty, and pointing to a scar just below her breasts, and about
|
|
four inches above her navel, "There," said she, "is it not ugly?--does
|
|
it not spoil me!--how I hate it!"
|
|
|
|
I told her no,--that she was so beautiful, that it mattered not. Yet
|
|
ugly it was. A seam looking like a piece of parchment which had been
|
|
held close to a fire and crinkled, and then glazed, star-shaped, white,
|
|
and as big as a large egg lay between her breasts and her navel. It was
|
|
the only defect on one of the most perfect and beautiful forms that God
|
|
ever had created.
|
|
|
|
"There," said she covering it up, "you won't want me naked again,--now
|
|
I dare say you don't like me as much." Yes I did. "Do you?" "Yes." She
|
|
came and kissed me. I often had her as naked as she was born afterwards.
|
|
|
|
"What is the time?" "Ten o'clock." "I must go." "Another poke." "Make
|
|
haste then." We had it. "Oh! now don't keep me,--if I'm not home by
|
|
half-past ten I shall be half murdered." She had let expressions like
|
|
that drop more than once; but I got no explanation excepting that she
|
|
lived with her father and mother,--and at that time I believed it.
|
|
|
|
At the next meeting she had her old quiet manner, her old "keep your
|
|
distance" was attempted; but it was impossible. A woman must always
|
|
give again what she has once given, she cannot help it. Then came more
|
|
dinners, but she was more cautious now in what she ate and drank, less
|
|
reckless in her embraces of me; but we were closer acquaintances than
|
|
we had been; she let me pull her about more freely and as a matter of
|
|
course, washed her quim without hiding herself for that operation, and
|
|
so on,--yet still she held me at a great distance, and was reserved. She
|
|
conquered me, in a degree.
|
|
|
|
In fact she did pretty well what she liked with me; saw me when she
|
|
liked, stopped with me as long as she thought proper, let me fuck her
|
|
just as often as she liked, and no more (and it was rarely she let me
|
|
do that more than once a day), see to her knees, or to her cunt, or pull
|
|
her about just in the degree she for the time thought fit to permit. I
|
|
grumbled, said I would see more complaisant women. "Well I might if I
|
|
liked,"--but I did not. Her indifference to sexual pleasure chilled and
|
|
annoyed me and for a reason I never could understand, her cunt never
|
|
seemed quite to fit me, nor fetch me with the voluptuousness that scores
|
|
of other women have done. Yet I saw her almost exclusively for three
|
|
years, and when she gave herself up to pleasure with me, my delight was
|
|
unbounded; when she let me have her with her cunt unwashed after our
|
|
first copulation, I thought of it for days afterwards. Altogether
|
|
she had her way with me in a manner I did not see, and have only
|
|
comprehended since.
|
|
|
|
This went on for some months. Whether she had other male friends or not
|
|
I don't know, but I never found her in Regent Street or other places
|
|
where I had once been able to find her, after I began to see her
|
|
regularly, and have reason to think that she ceased casuals after she
|
|
had me, and perchance another, that is all. Hannah said often at a
|
|
future day that I was her only friend.
|
|
|
|
I have not yet described her. She was of perfect height for a woman, say
|
|
five feet seven, her form from her chin to her toe-nails was faultless,
|
|
if anything inclining to too much flesh, and to too great a backside;
|
|
but then I liked flesh, and a woman's bum could not be too big for me. I
|
|
used to rub my lips and cheeks over her bum for a quarter of an hour at
|
|
a time, when she condescended to turn it upwards for so long a time for
|
|
that worship. Handsome her face certainly was, but it was of a somewhat
|
|
heavy character: her eyes were dark, soft, and vague in expression which
|
|
together with the habit of leaving her lips slightly open, gave her a
|
|
thoughtful, and at times half-vacant look. Her nose was charming and
|
|
_retrousse_, her mouth small, with full lips, and a delicious set of
|
|
very small white teeth, her hair was nearly black, long, thick, and
|
|
coarsish dark hair in large quantity was in her armpits, and showed
|
|
slightly when her arms were down, her arms and breasts were superb. Her
|
|
cunt was thick-lipped, and with largish inner lips which showed well
|
|
in nearly the whole length of the split; her mons was very plump,
|
|
and covered well, but not widely with crisp black hair. She looked
|
|
twenty-six, yet was not more than twenty-two, and she looked most
|
|
handsome when lying asleep.
|
|
|
|
If I were asked the most perfect thing about her, I should say her feet
|
|
and legs up to her notch--they were simply perfect; I have seen them as
|
|
handsome in smaller women, never in one of her height. I must add that
|
|
her cunt was large both outside and inside, and that she was not a
|
|
voluptuous poke to me, but why I can only guess at now; I did not know
|
|
it whilst I was acquainted with her.
|
|
|
|
"A little of that satisfies me," she would say of poking, "once a
|
|
week,--once a fortnight, excepting at times,--you men are beasts, all of
|
|
you." She at first refused my mouth, never moved her bum, and laid like
|
|
a log. "Here I am,--do what you like,--do it, and get it over,--or
|
|
leave it," was her common mode of meeting my grumbling. Her first sexual
|
|
pleasure with me was I believe the night she dined with me; afterwards
|
|
she took pleasure with me more frequently, but un-cunting me, and
|
|
rushing out of bed to wash the instant I had spent, before I had indeed
|
|
done spending; until a sudden change in her took place which I shall
|
|
tell of, and then she was kinder, more lustful, or perhaps I might
|
|
say more loving, and more reckless; letting me enjoy her after my own
|
|
fashion, and abandoning herself to enjoyment as much as it was perhaps
|
|
in her nature to do so.
|
|
|
|
I found that she often now was with the keeper of the house, or rather
|
|
she who represented her,--Hannah. So I got acquainted more closely with
|
|
Hannah, would go into her parlour, and talk with her before Sarah came.
|
|
This began one day when I was awaiting Sarah by her asking me if I
|
|
would cast up a column of figures, nearly the whole of which was in five
|
|
shillings and seven and sixes. I did it once, then I did it a second
|
|
time. Going in one day just afterwards she stepped out from her parlour,
|
|
and thanked me. I stepped into the parlour, and got into the custom
|
|
of doing so,--if ladies were not in there,--but there was a good
|
|
introduction business done, as will be seen, and oftentimes ladies were
|
|
waiting there till their swains arrived.
|
|
|
|
One day she cooked a luncheon for me, once a breakfast, the latter was
|
|
during the time I had quarrelled with Sarah, and took another woman to
|
|
sleep with me there. I complimented her on her cooking, she was half
|
|
groggy (as she often was), and was very talkative. "Lord," said she,
|
|
"you have tasted my dinners many a times." "Nonsense." "Yes you have."
|
|
|
|
"Where?" "Do you recollect a ball at------, where all the servants were
|
|
allowed to look at the table before supper, and your coming down with
|
|
Mr.------, and we all scuffling back?" "Perfectly." "Well I cooked that
|
|
supper." Then it turned out that she had been cook at a house where
|
|
I was a constant visitor, she had recognized me at once, but did not
|
|
recollect my name, or so she said,--indeed it was not probable that she
|
|
knew it. She had been caught with a soldier in the house, and had been
|
|
kicked out.
|
|
|
|
Now by chance of fortune she was keeper of a baudy house, and her
|
|
soldier visited her there when in London,--he was a Guardsman,--and she
|
|
supplied him with money, and lots he had, for she robbed her Mistress
|
|
wholesale of the baudy house profits.
|
|
|
|
Hannah had two sisters; one a married woman with a bad husband, and
|
|
several children. She often came and assisted at J.... s Street,
|
|
sometimes acting as chambermaid,--and about two years after this period
|
|
of my history, a second one appeared who had been a housemaid, and who
|
|
had I suppose also lost her character. A pretty blue-eyed girl about
|
|
twenty years old with a cast in her eye, and a lovely leg up to within
|
|
a few inches of her cunt. I never saw higher, and shall have more to
|
|
say about her hereafter. Her name was, Susan--a sailor was said to be in
|
|
love with her.
|
|
|
|
Sarah at the end of some months asked me to give her five pounds, and
|
|
soon afterwards ten pounds. She was going to make up a sum of money to
|
|
buy a business for her father. She had been dressing very shabbily I
|
|
noticed, and said she knew I did not mind that, and it was all because
|
|
she was trying to save money,--to quit that life she hoped,--and I
|
|
believed it. I could not get her for several days, yet could have sworn
|
|
I had heard her voice one day in loud altercation with a man in the
|
|
parlour when I was waiting for her upstairs. I rang and asked for her;
|
|
the servant came, and asserted that Miss Mavis was not there, and
|
|
I never saw her that night. Next day I made an appointment (through
|
|
Hannah) for eleven a.m., and waited a long time before she came up. She
|
|
looked ill. "You've been crying." "I have not." "Yes you have,--your
|
|
eyes are red,--aye, and wet now." She asserted she had not, and then
|
|
burst out sobbing saying she was unwell. I was distressed, and sent for
|
|
wine, Hannah came up and comforted her (I saw Hannah knew all about it).
|
|
Then we were left to ourselves. "I've never been abed all night," said
|
|
Sarah. "Come to bed now." To my extreme astonishment _into_ bed she
|
|
came, after looking at me in a very earnest manner.
|
|
|
|
I had often asked her before, and she never would; saying she never
|
|
had been in bed but with one man, and never meant. I was enraptured,
|
|
stripped to my skin, and was soon pressing every part of her body to
|
|
mine. She gave herself up to me entirely, her tongue met mine as we
|
|
spent. "Don't throw me out now dear." "Very well." Oh! miracle, I
|
|
thought, and there we lay, prick and cunt soaking together, till we had
|
|
another fuck, then she dozed off in my arms, and I soon afterwards. We
|
|
slept more than two hours, then my fingers sought her cunt directly;
|
|
and awakened her. I told her the time, she sighed saying, "It's no
|
|
matter,--it serves them right." It was a day of miracles, Hannah sent up
|
|
food, we ate it in bed, we fucked again and again. I was delighted with
|
|
the spunk we left on the sheets; then we dined at the Cafe, and went
|
|
back to the baudy house,--more fucking, no cunt-washing, all was free
|
|
baudy, abandonment.
|
|
|
|
Hannah came up to us about the time Sarah usually left me, and told her
|
|
it was time to go. Sarah said she did not care a damn, Hannah begged
|
|
her to go,--she would go home with her. She agreed to go, kissed me, and
|
|
said I was a kind fellow. I waited outside, and tried to dodge her home;
|
|
but was unsuccessful; the two discovered me, stopped, and upbraided me,
|
|
and came back to the baudy house. Then she made me promise not to follow
|
|
her, and went out to piddle as she said. Hannah followed, I waited five
|
|
minutes for them, and then called to the servant. She came in with a
|
|
demure face, and said "Lor sir they have both gone out five minutes
|
|
ago."
|
|
|
|
For weeks after that Sarah was changed, and with the exception of not
|
|
stripping entirely did as freely as I wished, she did everything I
|
|
wanted, but sleep with me all night; she kept out later, but away
|
|
at night she went; she embraced me, enjoyed her fucking, and in fact
|
|
treated me like a husband. Then she said one day, "I'm some months gone
|
|
in the family way." "Who's the dad?" "You perhaps." "No I'm not,--it's
|
|
some man you are fond of, not me." "I am fond of no man," said she. Then
|
|
she was ill, and away for three weeks, she had had a miscarriage. I was
|
|
in despair, and sent her money all the time of her illness, but could
|
|
learn nothing from Hannah, excepting that Sarah was a dear good woman,
|
|
and too good for him. That was said before the sister, who cried out,
|
|
"You shut up Hannah." So I came to the conclusion there was some other
|
|
man in the way.
|
|
|
|
Another day I pumped Hannah, but she was an old bird, and not easily
|
|
caught. "She is fond of a man," I said. "She is not a fond sort,--if she
|
|
is fond of any man at all it's you,--but she has got her duty to do."
|
|
"What's that?" "Ask her,--I don't know her business. Now you get out,
|
|
there are some ladies coming here directly, and Miss Mavis won't like
|
|
your being here with them." "I'm not her property." "Pretty nearly you
|
|
are,--at all events go, there is a good gentleman. Whilst Sarah was away
|
|
I did get acquainted with three or four ladies, and two of them I had.
|
|
Sarah had then either gone abroad or I had had a desperate quarrel with
|
|
her.
|
|
|
|
When Sarah met me again she was still miserably ill, and thanked me for
|
|
my kindness warmly. We resumed our meetings, and again she was cautious,
|
|
but no longer bounced me. She spent with me, enjoyed me, but entreated
|
|
me. "Oh! let me wash out the muck,--now do pull it out,--I am so
|
|
frightened of being ill again." So I let her have her way. She refused
|
|
to say anything about her illness, excepting that it was I who had
|
|
caused it; but I did not believe her. She usually now gave way to
|
|
pleasure with me; at the end of the month I gave her twenty pounds to
|
|
make up a sum, then she got still more exacting about money. "Oh! I do
|
|
stop a long time with you,--give me more money,--do,--I want to make
|
|
up a sum," etc., etc.,--and then of course came a lie. At length she said
|
|
one bright sunny morning it was, I had poked her, and was laying on the
|
|
sofa afterwards, she sitting on the easy-chair, her lovely breasts
|
|
out, one beautiful leg over the other showing slightly the flesh of her
|
|
thighs, "You won't see much more of me,--we are going abroad."
|
|
|
|
I started as if I had been shot at. "You?--nonsense,--never." "I am
|
|
indeed,--I'm sick of this life, and will go anywhere, do anything to get
|
|
out of it."
|
|
|
|
I sank back on the sofa sobbing, it came home to me all at once that
|
|
I was madly in love with her. I was dazed with my own discovery,--I in
|
|
love with a gay woman! one whose cunt might have had a thousand pricks
|
|
up it! who might have sprung from any dung-hill!--impossible! I felt mad
|
|
with myself,--degraded!--impossible,--it could not be,--and for a time
|
|
I conquered myself. I tried then to draw her out about herself. It
|
|
was useless. Her quiet way of asserting that she _was_ going at length
|
|
brought home the conviction that she spoke the truth. Then I laid and
|
|
sobbed on the sofa for half-an-hour. "Oh! you will soon get another
|
|
friend," said she. "No, no,--I can get a woman, but not one I shall
|
|
like,--Sarah my darling, Sarah I love you,--I dote on you,--oh! for
|
|
God's sake don't leave,--come with me,--you shan't lead this life,--we
|
|
will go abroad together."
|
|
|
|
"That is impossible,--if I did you would leave me, and then what should
|
|
I do?--come back to this life,--no." "You are going with somebody
|
|
else,--who?" "I can't say,--I'll tell you when I am gone." "When are you
|
|
going?" "Perhaps in a fortnight, perhaps a little later on."
|
|
|
|
I calmed for a time, a fortnight might give me a chance of persuading
|
|
her, and I began it at once; but it was all, "No,--no,--no,--it's all
|
|
for the best for both of us,"--and again I fell into deep despair, my
|
|
heart felt breaking, I had been so happy with this woman for months, she
|
|
had so filled my thoughts, so occupied my spare time, that I had half
|
|
forgotten my home life. Now I felt alone again, I had told her some
|
|
of my troubles,--not all,--now I poured them all out, and offered
|
|
everything,--all I had,--to go that next day abroad, and never return;
|
|
that I would make her love me though she did not now, I promised all men
|
|
could promise,--and meant it.
|
|
|
|
"No,--no,--impossible,"--and again I fell back on the sofa sobbing like
|
|
an infant, I have almost the deadly heart-ache now as I write this. She
|
|
sat looking at me for some time, then she arose, stooped over me, and
|
|
kissed me. I turned round, and--how strange that in my despair I noticed
|
|
it, and now recollect noticing it!--as she stooped her chemise opened,
|
|
and as I put my arm round her, her breasts touched my face, and as I
|
|
moved to kiss them I saw her whole lovely form down to her feet, the
|
|
dark hair of her motte, the bright white scar; and all in the soft
|
|
subdued light which is on a woman's body when enveloped in a thin
|
|
chemise,--and my prick stood whilst kissing her and sobbing, and she
|
|
was soothing me.
|
|
|
|
"It's of no use your loving me," she said, "and it's of no use my loving
|
|
you,--don't take on so,--perhaps when I am gone you will be happier at
|
|
home,--I can't love you, although I like you very much, for you have
|
|
been a good, kind man to me,--I nearly do love you I think,--if I were
|
|
with you I'm sure I should,--but it's of no use, for I am a married
|
|
woman, and have two children, and am going with them and my husband."
|
|
|
|
I was amazed, and doubted it. "I'll bring you my children to see," said
|
|
she, "it was to get them their dinners and tea that I always left you
|
|
at times as I have." "And at night?" "I always go home before he comes
|
|
home." "You always go home to your husband?" "Yes."
|
|
|
|
How I loathed that man!--my loathing rose to my lips. "That miserable
|
|
contemptible cur lives by your body,--a dirty vagabond." "No he's
|
|
not,--poor fellow, he would earn our living if he could, but he can't."
|
|
"I don't believe it,--a man who lives by a woman is barely a man,--I
|
|
would empty cesspools to keep a woman I loved, rather than another man
|
|
should stroke her,--no good can come of it,--he'll leave you for some
|
|
other woman some day." Sarah turned nasty, said she was sorry she had
|
|
told me so much, that all I said against him only made her like him the
|
|
more; and so leaving me in sorrow she went away.
|
|
|
|
Now that I felt sure she was going away, I could not see too much of
|
|
her; morning, noon, and night I had her. She brought her two children to
|
|
me, and very proud she was of them. How it was I never noticed the marks
|
|
of childbirth on her before I know not, but I never had. I spoke of
|
|
that now. "I took good care you should not," said she smiling, and I
|
|
recollected that when I had her by the side of the bed, when I looked at
|
|
her on the sofa, it was nearly always with her back to the light; when
|
|
laying on the bed, and I tried to gratify my passion by opening her
|
|
thighs, and gazing on her hidden charms, she nearly always half-turned
|
|
towards the window, and her belly was in shadow. "I don't like to be
|
|
pulled about,--I won't have it,--if you want me have me, and have done
|
|
with it,--get another woman if you like who will do it, or allow it,--I
|
|
won't." These and similar answers always settled me, and I submitted,
|
|
for I was under her domination, and in my folly I had actually feared
|
|
that if I persisted, she would not come to see me.
|
|
|
|
She brought her children in the morning to me at J...s Street, and I
|
|
had her that afternoon. Now she was free enough, pointed herself to the
|
|
marks of childbirth (very slight they were), and voluptuously held
|
|
her cunt-lips open,--she had never done so before. From that day and
|
|
afterwards she allowed me to see her in every way or manner, if not
|
|
to let me do what I wished. The mystery was over, I knew most if not
|
|
all,--certainly all about her person.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIV.
|
|
|
|
Poses plastiques.--Sarah departs.--My despair.--Hannah's
|
|
comfort.--Foolscap and masturbation.--Cheap cunt.--A
|
|
Mulatto.--The baudy house accounts.--Concerning Sarah.--The
|
|
parlour.--The gay ladies there.--My virtue.--Louisa Fisher.--
|
|
A show of legs.--The consequence on me.--Effect on Mrs. X..i.
|
|
|
|
|
|
I dined with Sarah repeatedly until her departure, she was now often in
|
|
low spirits, and drank very freely of champagne; then would fuck with
|
|
a passion and energy which did not seem natural to her, for by look and
|
|
general manner one would have sworn she was even tempered, and without
|
|
much passion,--had I not found that out by experience? One night soon
|
|
after she had brought her children to me, she seemed wild with lust.
|
|
What was the matter with me I don't know, but I had no desire for her,
|
|
and could scarcely stiffen for the embrace; yet she was in ecstacies
|
|
with me as I fucked her. "Do it again," said she. "I can't." "You must
|
|
do it,--I've not washed." "I can't." "Yes,--yes.--I'm mad for you,"
|
|
said she,--and we kept on fucking till early the next morning. "I am in
|
|
the family way again I think," said she as she left, "and if so will
|
|
jump over Westminster Bridge." But she was not, and after that night she
|
|
persuaded me not to spend in her, but to withdraw just as my emission
|
|
took place. "It will spoil all my plans if I am in the family way," said
|
|
she, "all I have done will be of no use if I cannot act." "Act?" "Yes, I
|
|
am an actress." "Does not your husband spend in you?" "No one has spent
|
|
in me but you, since my miscarriage,--I won't let him, and he doesn't
|
|
want me in the family way."
|
|
|
|
"You an actress!" "Yes,--have you never seen me?" "No." "Are you sure?"
|
|
"Yes." "Did you ever see the Poses plastiques and Madame W...t.n?" "Yes,
|
|
two or three years ago." "Well I was one of her troupe." "God God!--and
|
|
what do you do now?" "Nothing,--but we have a troupe going on the
|
|
Continent,--I am the principal--I am Madame W...t.n now."
|
|
|
|
Then she told me she had in her youth been a model for artists, had sat
|
|
to Etty and Frost, hers was the form which had been painted in many of
|
|
their pictures,--and then she would say no more.
|
|
|
|
I grew sadder and sadder as the time came for her departure; so did she.
|
|
She said I worried and unsettled her; she wondered sometimes if she
|
|
were doing the best thing for herself and children or not. She was so
|
|
frightened lest she should get in the family way, that as already said
|
|
she made me withdraw before the critical moment, spending my sperm on
|
|
her thighs or on the crisp hair of her motte. I got an idea into my head
|
|
(a stupid one enough), that if she were to get in the family way by me
|
|
she would stay in London; and one night after we had dined, and she had
|
|
had pleasure in my groping, and as usual had said, "Now don't do it in
|
|
me," I plunged my prick up, and spent a full stream in her cunt. "I hope
|
|
to God that sperm's all up your womb," said I. Her own pleasure had so
|
|
overcome her, that she could not move for a minute; then jumping up she
|
|
washed herself with a sponge,--she recently had used one. I never had a
|
|
spend in her again for months afterwards.
|
|
|
|
Then for hours I used to look her over and over from head to foot, as if
|
|
I wished to recollect every part of her person for ever afterwards: the
|
|
roots of her hair, the ears, the way the hair grew on the nape of her
|
|
neck; the way it grew on her cunt, and in her arm-pits, and every other
|
|
part I used to look over as if searching for something; the only part of
|
|
her which escaped my investigations was the bum-furrow, which was to me
|
|
an uncomfortable part in all women, and in my wildest sexual ecstacies
|
|
and aberrations I neither felt it nor saw it, and don't know whether the
|
|
hole was round or square; red or brown.
|
|
|
|
After she had told me she had sat as a model, she brought me a small
|
|
oil-painting of herself made by an artist of some rank. She was proud of
|
|
it, and so was her husband. I offered such a price for it, that placed
|
|
as she was she could not resist, and I bought it. She gave me one day a
|
|
photograph of herself; both had the characteristic opening of the lips
|
|
well shown. It is only recently that I have destroyed these mementos of
|
|
a dead affection.
|
|
|
|
When I saw that nothing would keep her in England I did my best to
|
|
help her enterprise, gave her money freely, paid for dresses, boots,
|
|
travelling cloaks, children's dresses, and in brief for everything.
|
|
During the nine months I had known her she in fact ran me dry, and in
|
|
debt. I spent upon her more than I could have lived on for four years
|
|
at the rate I lived at just before I met her. But I was now in better
|
|
circumstances than I had been for years, and the money was my own.
|
|
|
|
As the time approached, I could neither sleep nor eat, and used to be
|
|
at J... s Street hours before I knew she could come; would wait any
|
|
time for her, treating Hannah and the ladies, and doing nothing but talk
|
|
about Sarah. Sometimes I used to think about following her abroad. When
|
|
she came to the house, I used to spend my time in crying, and she after
|
|
telling me not to be foolish, would cry too. Then, "Oh! let me see you
|
|
naked." "There then." Then came kisses all over her body. "Oh! now for
|
|
God's sake don't spend in me." Then came a delicious fuck; then crying
|
|
and moaning recommenced. She left a week at least before she had said
|
|
she should, and did so to prevent me the pain of parting with her,--I
|
|
must give her that credit. Hannah told me so.
|
|
|
|
I had arranged to see her one morning, and was as usual there before
|
|
my time. Hannah stepped out from the parlour. "Has Sarah come?" She
|
|
beckoned me into the parlour. "Why they all sailed this morning,--my
|
|
sister went to see them off,--did you not know?" I staggered to the
|
|
sofa dizzy, speechless, then senseless. When I came to myself Hannah was
|
|
standing besides me with brandy and water and a spoon with which she was
|
|
putting it into my mouth.
|
|
|
|
"Don't take on so," said she, "don't think any more about Sarah,--she is
|
|
a fine woman, but there are lots as good,--I know a dozen, and any one
|
|
would be glad to know a man like you,--have some brandy and water,"--and
|
|
she took a great gulp herself. "There now," said she bending over me.
|
|
"would you like to see Mrs.------, she who met you the other night in
|
|
here with Sarah,--she has taken quite a fancy to you,--don't cry. Sarah
|
|
will come back, and if she don't you'll get another woman whom you will
|
|
like as well. There is Mrs.------, a splendid shaped woman who only sees
|
|
one gentleman here,--she took quite a fancy to you, though she only saw
|
|
you once." But I was desperate, and rushed out of the house. Where I
|
|
went to, I don't even recollect, but went home at last very drunk,--an
|
|
extraordinary occurence for me.
|
|
|
|
For some days I was prostrate in mind, and almost in body, but at length
|
|
recovered sufficiently to attend a little to my affairs which had gone
|
|
altogether to the bad for a month, and had been going bad for many
|
|
months. I resolutely set myself against going to J... s Street, and
|
|
would not have women; indeed scarcely knew where to lay my hand on
|
|
a shilling, so necessity had perhaps as much to do with my virtue as
|
|
anything else; but I was generally in a weak, low state of health, and
|
|
really believe, though it seems to me almost incredible now, that it was
|
|
well nigh three weeks before I touched or saw a cunt after Sarah left.
|
|
|
|
Then one Sunday I had erections all day long. After dinner lust drove me
|
|
nearly mad; so I went to my room, took a clean sheet of white paper,
|
|
and frigged myself over it. My prick only slightly subsided, I frigged
|
|
again, and then as the paper lay before me covered with sperm-pools I
|
|
cried, because it was not up my dear Sarah's vagina, laid my head on
|
|
the table where the paper lay, and sobbed with despair, jealousy, and
|
|
regrets, for I thought some one would fuck her if I did not, that it
|
|
would be her hateful husband whom she had helped to keep with my money.
|
|
|
|
I may say here that on several occasions of my life I have frigged
|
|
myself over a clean sheet of foolscap paper; it was mostly done for
|
|
curiosity, to see what my sperm was like, whether it was as thin, or
|
|
as thick, or as large in quantity as at the last time I previously had
|
|
masturbated.
|
|
|
|
I could not after that Sunday keep away from J...s Street, and went
|
|
there the next day. "I don't expect she'll write to you," said Hannah,
|
|
"even if she said she would,--what will be the use?--it will only make
|
|
you miserable." But I felt sure she would, and kept away from women
|
|
still for some time after that,--I was stumped for money among other
|
|
reasons. Then I began to spend involuntarily in the night, which to me
|
|
was more hateful than frigging myself; so one night I went out for a bit
|
|
of cheap quim. Whether I saw Brighton Bessie or not I can't say, but I
|
|
think I did, and did later on.
|
|
|
|
I went first into the streets near a large well-known tavern at a
|
|
spot where several big thoroughfares meet, and where there is a large
|
|
traffic, and picked up my cheap women there. But the women, their
|
|
chemises and petticoats, and their rooms shocked me more than they used,
|
|
and kept me chaster than I otherwise might have been.
|
|
|
|
One night I went home with a tall straight woman who would not take my
|
|
fee. "No," said she, "I've got two nice little rooms of my own." If you
|
|
get a woman for five shillings you have to pay for the room besides, and
|
|
ten shillings is only a small sum; so I went with her for ten shillings,
|
|
and saw her at intervals for a few months.
|
|
|
|
She was about five feet nine high, was not stout, was as straight as a
|
|
lath, yet not thin, had very firm but quite small breasts, and a
|
|
biggish bum. She had Mulatto blood in her veins she told me, and was
|
|
brown-skinned, had a large mouth and _very_ thick lips, the Negro blood
|
|
showed there plainly; her hair was dark, and so were her eyes; her cunt
|
|
was a pouter: it was small, but the lips pouted out more thickly I think
|
|
than those of any woman I ever yet saw, yet they were not flabby, but
|
|
protruded largely like two halves of a sausage; the hair was black,
|
|
short, and intensely crisp and curly; it felt like curled horse-hair.
|
|
I used to think her a plain woman, one of the plainest, but she was a
|
|
glorious fuckster; her cunt was tight inside, and yet so elastic as not
|
|
to hurt or pinch (and I was at that time when just at spunking point as
|
|
often said before tender-pricked). The hair of her head was coarse yet
|
|
straight, her large mouth was filled with teeth of a splendid whiteness,
|
|
and when she smiled she showed the whole set. It was seeing her large
|
|
white teeth that first attracted me before I could distinguish any other
|
|
feature of her face; you could see them at night right across a road,
|
|
they were dazzling, and almost made one forget the great thick-lipped
|
|
orifice which opened to expose them. I have before told of women who
|
|
attracted me by their teeth, and particularly of a Creole.
|
|
|
|
This _Mulatto_ as I called her, amused me with her letcherous postures;
|
|
she was as lithe as a willow branch, and was willing to please. I was
|
|
fond of making her kneel on the bed with bum towards me, and her legs
|
|
nearly close together, and then the backward pout of her cunt was
|
|
charming to me, so much so that I took to poking her dog-fashion.
|
|
|
|
One night when I was full of sperm I made her remain in the exact
|
|
posture until all my spunk had run out of her cunt, and sat holding a
|
|
candle towards her rump till I was satisfied with the sight; and more
|
|
than once I kept her in that position, looking at the gruelly lips until
|
|
I fucked her a second time.
|
|
|
|
She had such a very remarkable steady walk that she scarcely seemed to
|
|
move, she glided; her feet were so nicely carried forward, and her body
|
|
so evenly balanced from her hips. In this respect she resembled a tall
|
|
dark woman named Fletcher, whom I knew quite recently. There must have
|
|
been something in the arrangement of their thighs and hips which caused
|
|
this. Women who are accustomed to carry heavy loads on their heads
|
|
always walk straight, and never roll from side to side as most people
|
|
more or less do; but I don't know that either of the women named had
|
|
carried baskets on their heads,--I knew the walk of that class of women,
|
|
having been born in the neighbourhood where they worked.
|
|
|
|
She I imagine had a liking for my doing it naked with her, for she
|
|
was always suggesting that we should strip; but she could not bear my
|
|
fucking her dog-fashion. When I stripped and got into her on her belly,
|
|
she would twist her legs right into mine in quite a snaky fashion,
|
|
and sometimes lift her legs up till her heels were almost up to my
|
|
blade-bones. She also like a few others I have poked seemed to have
|
|
the power of holding my prick in her cunt quite tightly after I had
|
|
spent,--perhaps because she had not spent herself, for about her
|
|
pleasures in the copulation I am not sure, though she always impressed
|
|
me as being a hot-cunted one.
|
|
|
|
After I had once been to J... s Street again I went more and more
|
|
frequently. Hannah was always nearly screwed,--champagne or brandy
|
|
pleased her best.
|
|
|
|
When she was so, she would at times gradually let out much that she
|
|
knew,--and this is what she let out one day.
|
|
|
|
"Bah! her husband indeed!--she is not married,--he's got a wife besides,
|
|
and Sarah knows it,--he's blackened his wife's eyes more than once when
|
|
she has been annoying them; but that don't pay, for she is his lawful
|
|
wife; so he allows her something, and it keeps her quiet, and she won't
|
|
last long, for she is drunk from daybreak till night. Sarah's a real
|
|
good one to keep the lazy beggar,--she keeps them all poor thing, ever
|
|
since he could not get any engagement; there's she, and their children,
|
|
and her sister, who lives with them, and then there is her old mother
|
|
who she keeps, and his wife as well,--she has enough to do poor thing."
|
|
This came out one day after Hannah had dined; I had brought her a bottle
|
|
of specially fine brandy, and we were sitting in the parlour drinking it
|
|
together mixed with water.
|
|
|
|
I had long been getting into Hannah's good graces. I stood wine and
|
|
brandy, was always respectful to her and the gay ladies I met in her
|
|
parlour, and never used coarse, rude language to them, nor in speaking
|
|
of them or of ladies of their class. Hannah told me I was a great
|
|
favorite with several of them, as indeed I found to be the case. I may
|
|
say that all my life I never spoke disrespectfully to, or of gay ladies,
|
|
so long as they behaved themselves; they have been mostly throughout my
|
|
life, kind and true to me after their fashion, they gave me pleasure,
|
|
and I treated them as if I was grateful for it.
|
|
|
|
But I was moreover serviceable to Hannah. Once or twice as told she had
|
|
brought me some figures to cast up, and when Sarah had left, she brought
|
|
me others on various little scraps of paper. She asked me never to
|
|
mention my having done so to her sister, and I did not. I became curious
|
|
at finding the items were all in five shillings, seven and sixpence, ten
|
|
and twenty shillings; at last it struck me what it was, and taxing her
|
|
with it found it was the takings of the baudy house, she told me so with
|
|
a laugh. She could not write herself.
|
|
|
|
The takings were put on slips of paper by the servants, and by some
|
|
process of her own which she could not explain, she got a rough sort of
|
|
check on the servants to prevent them robbing her. She had to account to
|
|
the real owner of the house,--and how she did it she alone knows. This
|
|
is certain (she once admitted it), that from the takings she put a pound
|
|
a day into her own pocket. Whether she robbed the owner to that extent,
|
|
or whether it was her admitted share I never knew. She was well dressed,
|
|
had excellent food, allowed her Guardsman money, her sister's husband
|
|
money, and others too I rather think. But after she'd taken her three or
|
|
four hundred pounds a year, there was a splendid income handed over to
|
|
some one. This house had but eight rooms, and two more closets to let
|
|
out for fucking; they often took twenty pounds a day, and sometimes much
|
|
more.
|
|
|
|
I did this arithmetic pretty regularly, and she became my fast friend.
|
|
She told me all about Sarah that she knew (what Sarah at a future day
|
|
told me agreed with it), and much about the habits of other loose ladies
|
|
which will be partially narrated in due time, and a good deal about
|
|
baudy house management.
|
|
|
|
And now more about Sarah's antecedents. A new species of entertainment
|
|
had sprung into existence a few years before this time, called "Poses
|
|
plastiques," in which men and women covered with silk fitting tightly to
|
|
their naked limbs and made quite white, placed themselves on stages in
|
|
classical groups to the sound of music. Women and men of great physical
|
|
beauty formed these groups, they were in fact actors of that class.
|
|
Madame W...t.n known as a splendid model first got them up; her husband
|
|
was a splendid man, Sarah was her niece, and also had a beautiful form
|
|
which ran in the family; she was poor, and Madame W...t.n took her to
|
|
live with them, and at seventeen years of age she appeared as Venus.
|
|
|
|
At nineteen she had a child by Madame W...t.n's husband, at twenty a
|
|
second. Madame found out the father, and kicked Sarah out. Mr. W...t.n
|
|
then kicked Madame out, and went to live with Sarah, rows ensued, other
|
|
companies of "Poses plastiques" came into competition, the thing got
|
|
overdone, he could not get his living; he knew a trade, but was I expect
|
|
too lazy to work at it; so Sarah took to letting herself out as model,
|
|
and that being poor pay, to letting out her cunt to get their bread; she
|
|
had just began it when I first met her. They seem during a year or more
|
|
to have parted with all their goods, before she took to showing her
|
|
belly-parting for money.
|
|
|
|
So beautiful a form of course succeeded, and for a time I became the
|
|
principal milk-cow. Then a proposition was made to form a troupe to go
|
|
to the Continent; there seemed to be a grand opening, and with Sarah's
|
|
money (most of it got from me), the apparatus, costumes properties, and
|
|
troupe were got together.
|
|
|
|
Off they had gone. She and her husband were the exhibition-managers,
|
|
speculators, and chief actors.
|
|
|
|
Hannah made a mouth when I asked what sort of a man Mavis was. She
|
|
did not think much of him,--why did he not work--he had a trade?--no,
|
|
because he was no longer able to get on as an actor, he preferred to let
|
|
Sarah get the living for the whole of them. "Ah! you'll see her back,
|
|
mark my words,--they won't succeed,--and then what will take place?
|
|
--you'll see,--is she poor thing to work and do everything, that he may
|
|
lay a bed, dress as a gentleman, and do nothing but take her out for a
|
|
walk on a Sunday; she is as proud of his taking her out for a walk on a
|
|
Sunday as if he kept her a carriage." After much reflexion I came to the
|
|
conclusion that Sarah had only just turned harlot about the time I had
|
|
first met her that she did it to keep her man and her family, and he got
|
|
accustomed to his woman getting his living for him.
|
|
|
|
I kept on calling at J... s Street, always expecting to hear of Sarah.
|
|
Hannah was glad to see me, for now I cast up her accounts weekly. I got
|
|
acquainted with two or three ladies there who came at intervals to meet
|
|
their friends. They were very nice women, none were ever to be seen in
|
|
the streets, they had either their own acquaintances whom they met at
|
|
J... s Street, or Hannah had introduced them to gentlemen there. They
|
|
were not a bit like whores in dress, appearance or manner, and my
|
|
acquaintance with them opened my mind to the fact, that there is a large
|
|
amount of occult fucking going on with needy, middle-class women, whose
|
|
mode of living and dressing, is a mystery to their friends, and who
|
|
mingle with their own class of society without its being suspected;
|
|
that their cunts are ever wetted by sperm which lawfully may not be put
|
|
there.
|
|
|
|
I began to stand wine when I met them, and was introduced as a friend of
|
|
Miss Mavis who had gone abroad. I was I found well known by name and
|
|
a character for kindness, and I expect also for being a fool. All the
|
|
women were shy at first, Hannah's sister (the servant) I overheard
|
|
telling Hannah that the ladies did not like my being in the parlour.
|
|
Hannah at times would ask me to leave, as a lady wanted to come into the
|
|
parlour and wait there, and so on. But gradually Hannah would say, "Who
|
|
is it?--oh! she knows him,"--or "Oh! she won't mind,--let her come in."
|
|
So by degrees I became intimate with these privately gay ladies, and
|
|
several of them on more than one occasion joined their sweet bodies to
|
|
mine in the game of under and over.
|
|
|
|
I had never had a woman in the house since Sarah had gone; firstly
|
|
because I did not then pay more for the girls than I did for the room
|
|
alone at J... s Street, and because, I feared if Sarah came back Hannah
|
|
would tell her,--as if it would have mattered to Sarah in any way
|
|
excepting that another woman would get the money she might have had.
|
|
Still I had that stupid idea about the matter, and although I had
|
|
longed for one or two of the other ladies, and although they had looked
|
|
languishingly at me. I never had then proposed a private interview
|
|
upstairs.
|
|
|
|
One day Hannah said she had heard from Sarah who had asked after me.
|
|
"They are (Sarah and the troupe) getting on well," said Hannah, "if she
|
|
says so I suppose they are,--but we shall see." Suddenly, "Have you had
|
|
another woman since she left?" The question startled me. "No." "Oh!
|
|
I don't believe it,--if you haven't you're a nasty man." Then I
|
|
confessed, and told her what I had done. "Why don't you have Mrs.
|
|
Fisher?" said she. "I'm poor, and can't,--I'm not going to do what I did
|
|
with Sarah." "Lord she won't mind,--she'd like you I know,--but don't
|
|
say I said so,--she's got a lovely leg,--she's a fine woman,--nearly as
|
|
fine made as Sarah Mavis, and she is taller,--she never gets it done at
|
|
home." Hannah was unusually muddled with liquor that day, and let out;
|
|
her sister was not there to check her with, "Now then Hannah you'd
|
|
better shut up,"--and Hannah described Mrs. Fisher's hidden charms till
|
|
my cock stood.
|
|
|
|
I would pass hours sketching from recollection Sarah Mavis' limbs and
|
|
form, her bum and cunt being the most favorite subjects; then so randy
|
|
that I did not know what to do with myself, I would rush out into the
|
|
streets to prevent my frigging myself,--and erotic night-dreams were
|
|
frequent.
|
|
|
|
"Why don't you see Mrs. X.. i," said Hannah to me, "she likes you, and
|
|
would come up any day if I wrote to her (I had supped two or three times
|
|
with that lady),--I would not fret about Sarah, although she is a fine
|
|
woman,--you let her see you have another woman, and she will come round
|
|
if she comes back." But I did not for a time.
|
|
|
|
One afternoon however being in the parlour, Mrs. X.. i was there, a
|
|
splendid woman about twenty-six years old. Also there was a young woman
|
|
who had two children by a man with whom she was about to go abroad, and
|
|
she was a lovely woman. The two ladies had just had a two o'clock dinner
|
|
with Hannah, I had just come from my Club after luncheon, and sent for
|
|
champagne. All our talk got frisky,--all knew Sarah, my love. If I could
|
|
get any one to talk with me about her, I was delighted, and began at
|
|
it. Said the Mistress, "Well she is a splendid-formed woman
|
|
certainly,--splendid, but there are lots of others,--I've got a good
|
|
leg to my knee, so has Mrs. X.. i, and Mrs.------," (meaning the other
|
|
whose name I forget).
|
|
|
|
"Show us your leg," said one. "There," said Hannah pulling up her
|
|
clothes, "now show yours." They all showed their limbs, one after
|
|
another. "You might fancy you had Sarah's legs round your thighs, if you
|
|
had Mrs. X...i's there," said Hannah. I was nigh bursting for a fuck.
|
|
Mrs. X...i pulled her clothes up higher, and stood up to show the leg
|
|
better; the other ladies did the same. I felt my pleasure coming, and
|
|
objecting to wet my shirt, began to unbutton. "Oh I can't bear it," I
|
|
cried, "oh! my God I'm coming,"--and the instant my prick was free from
|
|
my trowsers I spent copiously, the three women their petticoats still up
|
|
nearly to their cunts, looking and laughing. I had not frigged, it was
|
|
fullness, and the voluptuous delight at seeing the limbs of the three
|
|
fine women which fetched me. "There is lots of stuff in him," said one.
|
|
Ashamed of myself I begged their pardons, and sent for more wine. "He
|
|
had better have given one of you ladies that good spunk," said the
|
|
Mistress. I overcame my bash fulness, they laughed about what Sarah
|
|
Mavis had missed, one professed to feel annoyed at my behaviour. "Oh!
|
|
you are damned modest," said Hannah.
|
|
|
|
Mrs. X...i soon afterwards went upstairs into the bed-room to a
|
|
gentleman she had come to meet. The Mistress said she should lay
|
|
down,--she always did after her dinner, and slept for two hours,--she
|
|
was fuddled, and indeed always was. The mother of the two children and
|
|
I were alone; from the instant I had spent she had never taken her
|
|
eyes off me,--never. I recollect the look of her dark eyes and their
|
|
expression quite well. Hannah snored almost directly. "Let us have
|
|
a kiss," said the lady to me, "I know you are fond of a well-formed
|
|
woman,"--and she pulled up her clothes a little. She was sitting on
|
|
the sofa, my prick rose, I bolted the door, and we fucked whilst the
|
|
Mistress kept snoring.
|
|
|
|
Mrs. X... i came down. "What you here still?--what have you been doing?"
|
|
The mother replied, "He has been smoking, and talking about his dear
|
|
Sarah." The woman was actually sitting at that very moment with a flood
|
|
of my sperm up her cunt, for she had neither wiped, nor washed, nor
|
|
pissed since I had fucked her. Then they talked about X... i's friend who
|
|
was a clergyman. X... i was the wife of a man who lived with her, but
|
|
never had her (so she said); she hated him, he had clapped her once.
|
|
|
|
The mother went out of the room, and came back, Hannah awoke, we had
|
|
tea, I paid, it was my rule then to pay for everything for the ladies
|
|
whenever I was in the baudy house parlour. I rose to go, shaking hands
|
|
with the two ladies. The one whom I had embraced put a bit of paper
|
|
privately into my hand. Outside the house I read it. "Wait outside," it
|
|
said. I had been delighted with her pleasure, and did so. She came out,
|
|
we walked quickly off. "You go to the top of the next street," said she,
|
|
"and I'll meet you,"--and she went another way, and met me at the top.
|
|
"I did that in case X... i came out," said she, "let us go and have
|
|
dinner together." "I have not enough money," said I. "Never mind, I
|
|
have." We went to the Cafe de P..v...e, and dined; I fucked her again
|
|
and again on a sofa. She was a charming woman. As we sat on a little
|
|
sofa dallying after dinner, she said she had not had it for a month,
|
|
her friend had gone to Germany, where they were going to live, to make
|
|
arrangements, he would return in a few days; then he, she, and the
|
|
children were going to Germany with him. "I liked you," said she, "but
|
|
when I saw what you did before us this afternoon, I could scarcely stop
|
|
myself, I wanted it so badly,--I dare say I'm in the family way,--oh!
|
|
don't look,--it's full,--it's dirty,--you shan't." The next instant I
|
|
was up her again; afterwards she washed, and I saw her cunt. I paid
|
|
for the dinner partly, she the rest,--I had not a sixpence left. "I'm
|
|
sorry," I said to her, "that I have no more money." "I did not come here
|
|
for money," said she. "Let me leave you half a dozen pair of gloves at
|
|
No. 11." "No, I've lots of gloves." "Then give me a kiss." She stood
|
|
putting her tongue in my mouth for a minute, then giving me a hearty
|
|
kiss off she went. I never saw her, nor had her again. Hannah told me
|
|
she was in Germany, and very happy there.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XV.
|
|
|
|
Louisa Fisher.--Chaffing.--Her form and fucking.--A supper
|
|
in bed.--A lascivious night.--Meetings afterwards.--Hannah's
|
|
legs.--Intruders in the bed-room.--Louisa's voluptuousness.--
|
|
Enceinte.--Her husband.--Her gentleman friend.--About
|
|
herself.--Illness.--Mrs. A... y.
|
|
|
|
I began to meet a Mrs. Fisher at the house very frequently; why she was
|
|
more frequently there I did not know, and knew it was but of little use
|
|
asking questions why.
|
|
|
|
I rather liked this lady. She came usually at one o'clock, and had
|
|
dinner with Hannah. At three o'clock she went upstairs, was there about
|
|
two hours, then came down and went away. At times she waited, had tea,
|
|
and sometimes early supper; this was when she was expecting some one
|
|
who did not come. I was told confidentially by Hannah it was a rich
|
|
middle-aged clergyman. The ladies name was Mrs. Louisa Fisher,--her
|
|
christian name I have written truly, the surname is not. I do this lest
|
|
she be alive still, and should read somehow this result of my doings
|
|
with her at J...s Street; she can't mistake if she reads these pages who
|
|
it was.
|
|
|
|
After what Hannah had told me I could not help taking a great deal of
|
|
notice of this lady, and began to lust for her, and of course took to
|
|
talking to her about Sarah. She was nothing loth, and asked me curious,
|
|
and at last down right indecent questions about her, but not in smutty
|
|
language. Hannah when there used to laugh at the questions and my
|
|
replies; they made my cock stand, which perhaps was what Louisa
|
|
intended, or it may only have been curiosity without any hidden
|
|
intention.
|
|
|
|
I imagine that the erotic incident in the parlour had been told to a
|
|
good many gay ladies; it certainly had to Louisa Fisher, for one night
|
|
after that I had been to enquire if Hannah had heard again from Sarah,
|
|
and Hannah had mentioned Louisa, the following occurred. I had dined
|
|
early, it was about half-past six, Louisa Fisher was there. "Stand us
|
|
a glass of wine," said she. "Do," said Hannah. "Do," said another
|
|
lady. "Have you had dinner Mrs. Fisher?" said I. "No, my friend's not
|
|
been,--I'm hungry, and Hannah is just going to cook me a chop." I myself
|
|
fetched a bottle of sherry, the chop came, Louisa ate it, and drank
|
|
sherry; then I sent for brandy, we drank it mixed with water, and Hannah
|
|
took some neat. I had began about Sarah as I always did. "Well she was
|
|
a beautiful model," said Hannah, "but Mrs. X... i's leg was better to my
|
|
mind." "Look how he's blushing," said Louisa. "Why should I blush?" They
|
|
both laughed. "Oh! oh! oh! don't I know what you did when you saw her
|
|
legs." I was then that odd mixture of baudiness and modesty, that I was
|
|
just as likely to be bold as to be shame-faced, when a woman spoke to me
|
|
about anything carnal; and now was confused and half-ashamed. "Lord
|
|
how he's blushing," said Hannah, and she left the room to look after
|
|
business, she usually put her head out when the street-door opened, if a
|
|
servant was not in the way on the ground-floor.
|
|
|
|
Louisa laughed. "I know all bout it," said she, "she was a fine woman."
|
|
After I had got over the stupid bashfulness which I had for the moment,
|
|
I went (as usual with me) to the extreme of baudy boldness. "Yes," said
|
|
I laughing, "I wish it had been spilt in her cunt, instead of on the
|
|
carpet." "Oh! for shame," said Louisa, "well it was waste, was it
|
|
not,--it might have made two people happy,--did you really spend without
|
|
frigging it?" "Yes I did."
|
|
|
|
I got close to Louisa on the sofa to speak with her about the event, to
|
|
hear from her lips what had been told her. She said not a word, but my
|
|
face was close to hers, we looked into each other's eyes for a minute,
|
|
lust was on both. I put my arm round her, pulled her towards me, and
|
|
kissed her. She returned it, our lips were glued together. "You've got
|
|
a fine leg Hannah says." "Does she?" "Yes,--let me see it." "No."
|
|
"Yes." "You only care about Sarah." I made no reply, but went on kissing
|
|
letcherously, put one hand down, and going on kissing pulled her clothes
|
|
up to her knees. She stopped me there. "Oh! how round, how nice,
|
|
how lovely your leg is." "Now be quiet, Hannah will be in." I ceased
|
|
looking, but my hand slipped higher up, my fingers were inside the
|
|
satiny wet lips, and my mouth was glued to hers, as Hannah came back.
|
|
|
|
We resumed a decent posture. Hannah laughed, "Lord why don't you two
|
|
go upstairs?" said she, "you want each other,--why don't you go?--the
|
|
first-floor front's empty." "Come," said I to Louisa pulling her. She
|
|
rose instantly. Hannah was a really good soul, she liked to make people
|
|
happy, and to set them fucking; I have seen it in a dozen instances.
|
|
|
|
Without another word we went upstairs, I threw her on the bedside,
|
|
pulled up her clothes, and opened a magnificent pair of thighs. "Let's
|
|
go to bed," said she. "Very well." We both undressed like lightning
|
|
without a word passing, and stood, she in chemise, I in shirt in a
|
|
trice. "Let's get in naked." Without reply she drew off her chemise as
|
|
I pulled off my shirt, and the next minute naked in each other's arms we
|
|
were fucking in a warm bed, not a word of conversation passing till we
|
|
had spent, those moments are so soul-absorbing in their lasciviousness.
|
|
|
|
"Oh! how quick we've been,--lay still." With mutual consent we kept
|
|
together in fleshy conjunction, I nestled my balls up her, she tightened
|
|
her cunt to stimulate my shrinking organ. But little stimulus was
|
|
needed, our spend had only made us want it again, we had scarcely rested
|
|
ere we recommenced fucking, and again we spent before my prick had
|
|
uncunted. How lovely, how exquisite is the reminiscence! What equals
|
|
the pleasure of a man and woman pleased with each other, thrilling with
|
|
lust, when prick and cunt are joined, and they spend in each other's
|
|
arms!
|
|
|
|
Still she would not let me out of her, crossing her limbs over my
|
|
thighs, drawing me closer to her by her hands, grasping my arse-cheeks,
|
|
pulling the cheeks almost open, squeezing her cunt up to me, she kept me
|
|
up her, kissing me, shoving her tongue towards mine, and saying I was a
|
|
lovely poke, the first baudy words that dropped from her, I rubbing
|
|
my belly up against hers till my balls almost lay between her fat
|
|
cunt-lips, swabbing up the oozings of the sperm which ran out from her.
|
|
And so we lay, kissing, tongue-sucking, and talking the stinging words
|
|
of love and lust.
|
|
|
|
Then as repose became a pleasure, and nature severed us. "Oh! my God how
|
|
wet you have made me," she said, "it's all on the sheet." "Let me feel."
|
|
I felt on my side, she turned on hers towards me, and threw one leg over
|
|
my haunch, I placed my hand on her cunt, and felt the sperm, wetting
|
|
my hand, whilst she grasped my slippery prick. "Feel how wet your prick
|
|
is," I put my hand there, and every hair on my prick was plastered
|
|
against my belly; then hand on cunt, and hand on prick we both dozed
|
|
off.
|
|
|
|
When I awakened we were still face to face, Louisa asleep with a hand
|
|
under my balls. I pulled down the clothes to look at her naked body: the
|
|
gas was burning brightly, I saw splendid breasts; down went my hand to
|
|
her cunt, I groped it, she awoke, and without a word turned on to her
|
|
back, and I on to her belly. Whilst couched easily on to that broad
|
|
belly, and lying between her ample breasts, and steadied by her large
|
|
thighs, my prick lying down against her gap, kissing and sucking each
|
|
other's mouths, she glided her hand down, and introduced my pendulous
|
|
doodle to her randy cunt, and again we fucked. We were mad for it,
|
|
neither of us uttered a word, till she cried out, "Oh! I'm coming,--my
|
|
God,--ah!" And then we spent, and went fast asleep again, exhausted with
|
|
the pleasure.
|
|
|
|
We were awakened by a knock. "Who's there?" "Hannah." "What do you
|
|
want?" "Are you going to stop all night?" "No," said I jumping out of
|
|
bed, "what o'clock is it?" "It's half-past twelve." "Come to bed," said
|
|
Louisa. In I jumped. "Oh! I'm so hungry," said she, "how I should like
|
|
some oysters." "So should I,--get up, and we'll go and have some before
|
|
the shop closes." "No, stop here, Hannah will get them." I agreed,
|
|
ordered them, and we went on twiddling each other's privates, I
|
|
recollect the feel of hers at this very moment,--it was like a
|
|
paste-pot.
|
|
|
|
I had never seen her person yet. The throwing her on to the bed, and
|
|
lifting her clothes, her stripping, and jumping into bed had been so
|
|
rapid, and so randy had both of us been, so anxious to copulate, that I
|
|
had had no time to look, to contemplate, to enjoy her with my eyesight.
|
|
Now off went the bed clothes. "Let's look at your cunt." "I won't till
|
|
I've washed." "No now." I pulled one thigh. "No you dirty dog,--it's
|
|
not nice." She jumped out of bed, and washed her quim, I my prick, we
|
|
pissed, and then she threw herself on the bed, and delivered her body up
|
|
to me. When I had had a quarter of an hour's investigation, she amused
|
|
herself with looking and pulling my prick about, waiting for our supper.
|
|
|
|
She was a very fine tall woman, stout and well-built. She said she was
|
|
twenty-four, but I believe she was thirty. She looked less stout with
|
|
her clothes on than when she was undressed, for I was much surprised to
|
|
see how very big she was when naked. She had a very big arm, her thighs
|
|
and legs were very big as well. Hannah was right about it, the entire
|
|
legs were grand, but had not the exquisite curves of Sarah Mavis'. Her
|
|
bum was proportionate to her thighs, her waist was not nearly small
|
|
enough, her breasts were very large, and beautifully placed, and
|
|
beautifully solid; her face was large and common-place, she had
|
|
grey eyes, and lightest auburn hair,--immense in quantity, which was
|
|
pleasing, though not handsome; it was not a face which in the streets
|
|
would have attracted me. Her teeth were good.
|
|
|
|
The hair on her cunt, which was thick-lipped and pouting, was also of a
|
|
lightish auburn, not by any means a colour to my taste when between the
|
|
thighs,--so many women's cunts are furnished with that colour. It was
|
|
thick, longish, soft in feel, large in quantity, and spread half-way up
|
|
to her navel, and square across her belly to the line of her thighs. I
|
|
guessed it a thirty year old cunt from that. She was a lovely fucker,
|
|
and though her cunt was a large one inside and out; the prick was well
|
|
clipped by it, and kept in when its business was done. There was such
|
|
room to lie on her between her thighs, and all seemed so well placed
|
|
to hold a man, that I often thought of her in after time when fucking
|
|
Sarah, who was the very reverse; who always made me bend my back when
|
|
fucking, and from whose quim my prick would always slip, unless we both
|
|
made some effort to retain it after I had spent. Sarah rarely did that,
|
|
hating the muck. Indeed when Sarah was randy, and wagged her arse as she
|
|
did violently, all of a sudden just before she spent, she often threw my
|
|
stiff prick out, which set me off damning and cursing till it was up her
|
|
again.
|
|
|
|
The oysters came, and champagne with them, we went to bed again, and sat
|
|
in chemise and shirt to eat them, said I, "let's have another fuck naked
|
|
again," for the touch of her large fleshy body to mine had entranced
|
|
me, and thus we fucked. Another doze. "Ulloh! why it's three o'clock,--I
|
|
must be off." "Don't go dear,--stop all night." "I can't,--they will
|
|
think I am ill." "So they will me, but I can't go home, I live too far
|
|
off,--do stop all night with me, there's a darling," said she.
|
|
|
|
Instead of a doze we had slept two hours. I at times stopped out all
|
|
night, and never without saying I intended to do so, but I was tired and
|
|
sleepy. "Oh! don't go." I put on my shirt. "Well let's have another
|
|
poke before you go,--the champagne has made me so randy." It had also
|
|
operated on me. I looked, there were her breasts naked just peeping
|
|
above the bedclothes, one arm out, the hand under her head, the big
|
|
white fleshy arm, and the thick sandy brown hair in the armpits. "Come,"
|
|
said she uncovering to her knees. Off went my shirt, and jumping into
|
|
bed the thighs received me, the voluptuous tongue and round, soft,
|
|
wet lips glued themselves on to mine again, and heaving gently we were
|
|
already on the way to another spend. My God what work, what prolonged
|
|
pleasure!--I forgot Sarah Mavis, and every other woman that night
|
|
in the arms of Louisa. In baudy amusement we passed the whole night
|
|
together, and I awakened at ten the next morning with the need of going
|
|
as fast as I could to shit.
|
|
|
|
I came back, washed, and we fucked again; then she went as she said to
|
|
speak to Hannah, whom I knew was a bed at that time; she went I knew to
|
|
empty herself, but I asked no questions. We had ham and coffee in bed,
|
|
and more fucking, and about one o'clock we rose and left. My finger must
|
|
have smelt of cunt I should think for twenty-four hours afterwards, for
|
|
I had scarcely left Louisa's cunt for eighteen hours; if my prick was
|
|
not up her my fingers were, when not asleep. Whether spunk was in it
|
|
or not was all the same, there was no objecting, she gave way to my
|
|
insistance, and we lay at intervals, she feeling my prick, one of
|
|
her legs placed over mine, and my hand between her thighs, both of us
|
|
kissing, tongue-sucking, and scarcely talking. I barely recollect our
|
|
talk at all,--it was one long baudy night; how many times we fucked I
|
|
can't say, but it was one of my great exercises. She was tired, and so
|
|
was I, yet at the last moment, "Let's try it again," I said: "No, I'm
|
|
sore, and in pain," said she. I sometimes think my prick must have been
|
|
nearly a dozen times up her, and when ramming stiff for a long time
|
|
without spending she murmured, "Oh! pray dear leave off."
|
|
|
|
We fucked in no other fashion than belly to belly, we were naked the
|
|
whole night, and did nothing outside the bed. When I had paid for the
|
|
room, supper and breakfast, I only had a few shillings left. I told her.
|
|
"Never mind," said she, "you shall give me some money some day when I am
|
|
hard up;" so I paid her nothing then.
|
|
|
|
I recollect all this distinctly, I always do the incidents of a first
|
|
night with a female. When I am accustomed to them, the more striking
|
|
circumstances of our acquaintance remain in my memory. It seems to
|
|
me that first night's incidents will always remain fresh in my
|
|
recollection, excepting the number of fucks; I recollect up to about
|
|
half-a-dozen, then I lose count, there my memory of a first night alone
|
|
fails me.
|
|
|
|
I took a liking for Louisa. For nearly a year I had borne with the
|
|
frigidity of Sarah and her tyranny, "You shall only do it once,--I
|
|
won't,--I can't wait,--well go," were commands I had got accustomed to
|
|
obey, had bowed to refusals to allow her secret charms to be looked
|
|
at time after time, to have my prick ejected before the last injecting
|
|
throb had been given. I liked the woman, doted on her exquisite form,
|
|
liked the domesticity of sitting and reading to her, and at the same
|
|
time just feeling her cunt whilst she laid on the sofa, because I liked
|
|
her conversation, and because I was at times rewarded by rapturous
|
|
delight when she abandoned herself body and soul to me, I submitted to
|
|
all this. But I often rebelled, wished it was otherwise, and made up
|
|
my mind to leave her for other women, yet did not. I have said all this
|
|
before.
|
|
|
|
Now to have a splendidly made woman, who had as much pleasure with me as
|
|
I had with her, was overwhelming. I forgot Sarah for a time, and longed
|
|
for the repetition of the baudy, voluptuous hours I had had with the
|
|
big-armed, big-thighed Louisa, and counted the days till we met again.
|
|
The instant I set eyes upon her we went upstairs. "Let's get into bed."
|
|
Then it was a race who undressed the first. "Naked?" "Yes naked." She
|
|
laughed. "Look at your thing," said she as sitting down she pissed. It
|
|
was stiff as a poker; the next minute I was laying bedded on that soft
|
|
fleshy form, and we were spending. What a fat, luscious, and grand cunt
|
|
she had, though three fingers went up it easily.
|
|
|
|
Then to my delight she threw up her limbs a little, and crossing them
|
|
over me pressed her cunt close up to my willing cock-roots; and there
|
|
we lay, my prick in her, my balls covering her arse-hole; whilst now
|
|
and then she gripped my prick by muscular cuntal action. When her tongue
|
|
touched mine, she sometimes ran her lithsome tongue over my teeth, or
|
|
under my lips, and along my gums,--it was a peculiarity of hers. Then
|
|
she would glue her wet lips to my wet lips, till our salivas mingled,
|
|
and ran profusely, stimulating our lusts. Thus we enjoyed each other's
|
|
bodies, till another fuck dissolved us, and separated our spunk-soaked
|
|
genitals; and she got up, washed, and went away sometimes in a great
|
|
hurry.
|
|
|
|
Soon I grumbled at her going so, and she promised to stop a longer
|
|
time. "Have a shoulder of mutton," said she, "and onion sauce,--I love
|
|
it,--Hannah will cook it beautifully,--we will dine at two o'clock,
|
|
Hannah with us." So it came about; we three sat down to a shoulder.
|
|
Louisa liked sherry, Hannah brandy; I brought both of fine quality, we
|
|
gorged, Hannah got slightly tight, observing Louisa and I caressing.
|
|
"Ah!" said she, "I envy you, you two going to bed." "Why where is Jack?"
|
|
"Oh! at Windsor, and I shan't have a bit for a month at least." "You'll
|
|
have to frig yourself," said I joking. "That's better than nothing, but
|
|
I like the wetting best." Louisa laughed, and used afterwards to say to
|
|
Hannah, "Has Jack given you a wetting?" Later on some other free ladies
|
|
took up the joke, and Hannah's "wetting" became a bye-word among the
|
|
circle of free, mercenary lovers.
|
|
|
|
Dinner over we hurried upstairs, and we went naked to bed. This was
|
|
about half-past three; there we lay till eleven o'clock at night, and
|
|
had an oyster supper in bed. Hannah came up, and ate oysters with us
|
|
whilst we were in bed together. We ate them out of the shells, and drank
|
|
champagne, heard happy couples over head, and joked about it, talked
|
|
about fine limbs, about Sarah's fine legs. "Show us yours Hannah," said
|
|
Louisa. Hannah without a word cocked one leg up against the bed, and
|
|
drew up her petticoats to the top of one thigh. "There," said she, "I am
|
|
not ashamed of it." She had a fine leg, but was a very plain woman. She
|
|
had shown her leg to me on the day of the leg-show, when I had spent
|
|
involuntarily, as I have already told. We laughed and praised her leg.
|
|
"Oh! I'm ashamed of you both," said Hannah dropping her petticoats,
|
|
laughing, and hurrying out of the room. "I know where his fingers are."
|
|
She was right, Louisa was sitting up in bed, her legs half up, but
|
|
covered, I half reclining by the side of her, had thrust my hand under
|
|
the thighs, and was feeling her cunt.
|
|
|
|
Hannah left the room. We began fucking, I was on the top operating when
|
|
the door opened, and a couple showed themselves. We heard a voice crying
|
|
out, "Not there Maam, it's occupied," and Hannah's sister rushing in
|
|
ejected a man and woman who had entered before they saw a couple were in
|
|
the bed. We were too far advanced to mind, I uncunted with the object
|
|
of closing the door, but the servants having done so, we consumated
|
|
and dozed off; nor was it till the servant came to say we ought to be
|
|
careful, that I got up and bolted the door.
|
|
|
|
Then began a regular meeting once a week, and sometimes twice. Money
|
|
seemed no object to Louisa, she took what I gave, and never asked for
|
|
more; once or twice she said, "I want a bonnet dear,--give me one,"--or
|
|
a new pair of boots, or was hard up for a trifle, and then I gave her
|
|
all I could; but she had not in a couple of months as much as at the
|
|
last period of my acquaintance with her, Sarah had from me in three
|
|
days. But she let me spend money in oysters and champagne suppers, and
|
|
early dinners, Guardsman Jack who had come back from Windsor, used often
|
|
to get his fill. I once saw Jack in bed with Hannah, and his scarlet
|
|
uniform on the chair; he turned himself round with his face to the wall
|
|
when I entered. He had a thick head of black hair, which is all I saw.
|
|
|
|
Louisa was a voluptuous poke, and enjoyed the fun as much as a woman
|
|
could. I think, (but recollection on that point is not clear, when I
|
|
come to comparison), that she was the nicest woman to lay on I ever
|
|
had. I was slim, though far from a skeleton, and as I laid naked on her
|
|
between her large breasts, and between her thighs slightly elevated (for
|
|
she usually raised her legs, after we had fucked and she had recovered
|
|
from her pleasure, or when I mounted her for preliminary dalliance), I
|
|
could scarcely roll off of her without an effort. She had also when her
|
|
pleasure was increasing, a movement of her whole body, and not of her
|
|
cunt and backside alone; her breasts quivered with a gentle, perfectly
|
|
natural motion, and I could feel her flesh moving and rubbing against
|
|
mine from belly to neck in a way which stirred lust in me from the hair
|
|
of my head to the soles of my feet; I seemed to feel all over her body
|
|
at once, and it was most delicious. She had a lovely lasciviousness with
|
|
her tongue. If my tongue was in her mouth when she spent, she almost
|
|
sucked it out of me, and the clipping of her cunt after my prick had
|
|
been relieved from its stiffness I have already mentioned. Her length
|
|
of arm enabled her to squeeze my balls when in various positions, and
|
|
no woman ever let me pull her about and look at her cunt, whether it
|
|
was clean or spunky, more freely than she did. With many it is evidently
|
|
business, with her it seemed pleasure. She took a delight in all I did,
|
|
even when I washed her cunt.
|
|
|
|
(My pleasures however with her were of a simple kind. I had none of the
|
|
varied erotic pleasures that I now know, the bum-hole and mouth were
|
|
reserved for the enjoyment of my more matured years.) I should have
|
|
seen her more frequently, but she would only come at the outside twice
|
|
a week. No it was impossible,--she lived too far off. I tried to get
|
|
out of Hannah some knowledge about her, but could not. One day only when
|
|
fuddled she asked if I had heard she was married. "You mean," said I,
|
|
"living with a man." "No really married, and been so for years,--oh!
|
|
don't you tell her,--she'll cut the house if you do."
|
|
|
|
At the end of perhaps three months I was in bed with her; we had poked,
|
|
reposed, and were in amorous dalliance, lying face to face, she with one
|
|
limb over my haunch, so that I could feel her cunt well, she twiddling
|
|
my somewhat exhausted prick. "I have a surprise for you," she said. "For
|
|
me,--what?" "I'm in the family way." "The devil,--whose fault is that?"
|
|
"No one's fault, and perhaps no misfortune,--would you like a child?"
|
|
"I?--why?" (I had a presentiment of what was coming.) "Because it is
|
|
yours." "Nonsense." "It is my dear,--I have felt certain of it for some
|
|
time past, but waited to be quite sure before telling you." "Are you
|
|
quite sure?" "As certain as I am that I shall die."
|
|
|
|
I was flabbergasted, felt distressed, as if I had done her some harm
|
|
that I could not repair, that I had injured her, and should cause
|
|
her pain and annoyance. It was succeeded by a fear that I should have
|
|
trouble through it, and expense that I could not afford. Then came the
|
|
idea that she was selling me, putting a plant on me; that if she were
|
|
with child it was another man's, not mine. Then came a belief over me
|
|
that what she said was true, that her pleasure in my embraces was so
|
|
real, so unlike that of the ordinary gay women, that the result might
|
|
be due to me. Overwhelmed I lay quiet, confused with the tumultuous
|
|
thoughts and feelings which rushed through my brain.
|
|
|
|
At length I said, "Are you sure?" "Yes." "It may be your husband's" (for
|
|
Hannah's hints came to my mind). "He!--he!--the miserable, contemptible
|
|
little wretch!--he?" She left off feeling my cock, raised herself on her
|
|
elbow, and looking at me said, "Who told you I was married?" "No one."
|
|
"Some one has." "No one,--but I have more than once fancied you were
|
|
married by the difficulty I have in getting you to come to meet me when
|
|
I want." "Some one has told you." "No one has." "I'm a damned fool,"
|
|
said she, "I dare say you know more than you say,--what do you know?"
|
|
"Nothing." "It's your child, and no one else's,--I'm sorry I have told
|
|
you,--say nothing more about it,"--and she turned on her back. "Are you
|
|
married?" "Of course not, or I should not be in bed with you." "Some man
|
|
is keeping you perhaps." "No one is keeping me either," said she.
|
|
|
|
I could not keep quiet, so much was I excited, and thought of the man
|
|
she met at J... s Street still, although she tried to hide that. I did
|
|
not like to suggest it, for I had found out that any reference to
|
|
him annoyed her, and I always avoided giving pain to any woman I had
|
|
connection with; but the matter seemed so grave that I could not keep
|
|
what was on my mind to myself, and as delicately as I could suggested
|
|
him.
|
|
|
|
"It's not," said she fiercely, "it can't be." "Why?" "You are the only
|
|
man who has spent in me for years." "What," said I incredulously, "no
|
|
one had you?" "No one has spent in me but you for years,--no one." I was
|
|
staggered, but returned to the subject. "Nonsense Louisa,--how can you
|
|
tell?" "I've told you why." "Why if you've a husband, and if you have a
|
|
friend who meets you, how can you be sure it's me?"
|
|
|
|
"I have no husband, and it's no friend,--if you don't believe it, I tell
|
|
you on my oath, on my body and soul, and may I go to hell when I die, if
|
|
it be not true, that no man has spent in me for years but you." "No
|
|
man has fucked you!--what do they do then?" "That's no concern of
|
|
yours,--but no man's stuff has ever been up me for quite two years but
|
|
yours,--I'm not going to say any more about it,--my business is not
|
|
yours,--nobody has asked you to keep the child,--you need not trouble
|
|
yourself,--I'm sorry I told you." She turned her bum to me, and began to
|
|
cry; I tried to comfort her.
|
|
|
|
"That will do," said she, "give me some oysters and champagne." I
|
|
ordered them, then wanted another fuck. "No you shan't have it,"--nor
|
|
would she let me. The oysters and champagne made her more complaisant,
|
|
but she was angry and snappish. After another fuck she got up and left
|
|
me before her usual time, and I went away wondering at this, and at the
|
|
number of women who had been, or who said they had been with child by
|
|
me.
|
|
|
|
Soon after she was loving, sad, and serious, was sorry I would not have
|
|
liked the child, for it was certainly mine, but she would get rid of it.
|
|
Then in the familiarity of a lewd man and woman naked in bed together,
|
|
she told me a lot about herself.
|
|
|
|
She _was_ married, she lived with him and her mother, but loathed
|
|
her husband. "He,--he the miserable wretch,--he touch _me_, the
|
|
dirty beast!--I'd sooner die than let him," she cried, "if he wanted
|
|
even,--but he does not want _me_,--what he wants he gets elsewhere, not
|
|
with _me_," said she with strong emphasis. If she left him, she would
|
|
have to support her mother alone,--perhaps it would come to that some
|
|
day,--she was quite prepared for it. They ate and drank together when
|
|
he was at home, but had not slept together for years. He kept the house
|
|
comfortably enough,--perhaps he would so long as she took trouble about
|
|
it, for he did not care so long as he got his food good. Yes she did
|
|
meet a friend. It got her luxuries she could not get any other way; her
|
|
husband knew she got money elsewhere, for she dressed in a way he must
|
|
know his money would not enable her to do. He asked no questions, and
|
|
did not care nor heed, nor seem to notice. That was pretty well all I
|
|
ever got out of her. Hannah drunk, and talking to me one day said he was
|
|
a very little man, and a brewer's clerk, "a hop o' my thumb," she called
|
|
him. "Never mind what my friend does," said Louisa, "I've known him some
|
|
years,--he does something of course, he does not meet me for nothing,
|
|
but I tell you he has never spent in me,--no man has spent in me for
|
|
years but you." "Do you frig your friend?" "If you like, anything else
|
|
you like, it's all the same,--I'm not going to say; but neither he
|
|
nor any one else has spent in me,--no man's seed has been up me for
|
|
two years or more. The first night you had me I spent first, you spent
|
|
after; the next time as your seed touched me, I felt a shiver run right
|
|
through me, and I got in the family way at that very instant, I'm sure."
|
|
Louisa was particular in her language, she never said "spunk,"--thought
|
|
it a nasty word,--she always said "seed," or "stuff" when she spoke of
|
|
my sperm,--Sarah called it "muck".
|
|
|
|
Though I had had such lots of women, and had heard of most things,
|
|
yet simple, straightforward fucking had engrossed me, I rarely had
|
|
out-of-the-way lusts and letches, and I never thought to ask if her
|
|
friend buggered or sucked her, or if she sucked him, or what little
|
|
amusements they were up to. At all events she must have satisfied him
|
|
some way, for he had known her she said some years. A man was likely to
|
|
stick to Louisa, for she was a magnificent piece of flesh, from her neck
|
|
to her ankles.
|
|
|
|
So I believed Louisa, and felt interested in her belly beginning to
|
|
swell, but did not want the young one, or the troubles of paternity, or
|
|
to get her into trouble; besides I had no affection for her, though I
|
|
liked fucking her better and better.
|
|
|
|
Louisa then was away ill; I saw her again when her womb was cleared out,
|
|
and we took to fucking as usual. One day in baudy vagaries we had been
|
|
posturing, and she straddled across my face, bringing her cunt right on
|
|
to my mouth, and my nose to her bum, she had been asking me if I ever
|
|
kissed Sarah in any way but the straight one. She began kissing my pega
|
|
as she lay on the top of me, I kissed her buttocks, but took no hint, if
|
|
any were intended. She was very heavy, and I noticed for the first time
|
|
a strongish odour from her cunt which annoyed me; afterwards I used
|
|
often to fancy she had a strong smell about her quim, and was fool
|
|
enough to tell her so, which offended her? but we made it up.
|
|
|
|
After a little time she began asking me if I had not forgotten
|
|
Sarah,--did I love her as much?--did I long to have her again?--did she
|
|
(Louisa) not give me as much pleasure as Sarah? I had then got over my
|
|
desolation a little, and only thought of Sarah and her exquisite form
|
|
with a sigh, was annoyed that she had not written to me, and I began to
|
|
confess to myself, that for fucking, Sarah was not to be compared with
|
|
Louisa. Then I began to wonder at my having been so infatuated, and
|
|
let it out to Louisa one night. She said she wished I would keep
|
|
_her_,--three pounds a week, and she would make it do, and so on; and I
|
|
began to think seriously about the matter, for the expenses at the baudy
|
|
house were nearly that amount; and although my delicate senses had began
|
|
to revolt at the strong smell of Louisa, yet her voluptuousness was
|
|
enticing, and was making me actually constant to her. I had quite left
|
|
off my Mulatto, Brighton Bessie, and one or two others of my queens.
|
|
|
|
Louisa was again taken ill,--the consequence of her miscarriage, and of
|
|
the measures taken to bring that on I was told. She got worse and worse,
|
|
and was in great danger; she never wrote to me, but often to Hannah, and
|
|
her letters which I saw always referred to me affectionately; above all
|
|
she wanted to know what ladies I had at J...s Street. Hannah winking at
|
|
me used to say, "I'd like to know where you put it away now,--it's put
|
|
somewhere." I had taken no women to that house; but laughing said I was
|
|
chaste. Hannah did not believe that, so I said I frigged myself. "You
|
|
don't spill it about in that way," said she, "let me feel it,"--and she
|
|
put her hand outside my clothes on to my tool. "Oho!--oho!--oho!" said
|
|
she, for I stiffened. Then she brought me her accounts to cast up, and
|
|
when it was done, "I shall take a nap," said she, "you go now, for I
|
|
expect Mrs. ------ and a strange lady" (I had looked in casually that
|
|
morning),--and getting on to the bed she laid down showing her legs
|
|
liberally, and looking at me all the time. "Good bye," I said, and left;
|
|
but have thought since that Hannah wanted me to have her. She never
|
|
before or since looked at me in that way, nor behaved with such freedom
|
|
when we were alone.
|
|
|
|
Her bed was as I have I think already told, in the front-parlour in
|
|
J...s Street, and in an alcove, as many beds are in French hotels and
|
|
houses; and when the curtains were drawn across it, the bed was entirely
|
|
hidden.
|
|
|
|
And then when without a woman at my command, and with a frequent need
|
|
for one, another piece of luck befell me. The way had been paved for it
|
|
before Louisa was so ill.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XVI.
|
|
|
|
A friend's maid-servant.--Jenny.--Initial familiarity.--A
|
|
bum pinched.--Jenny communicative.--Her young man.--An
|
|
attempt, a failure, a faint, a look, and a sniff.--
|
|
Restoratives.
|
|
|
|
I knew an elderly couple who were childless, and lived in a nice little
|
|
house in the suburbs with, a long garden in front, and one at the back
|
|
as well; they were in comfortable but moderate circumstances, and kept
|
|
two servants only. Every year they went to the seaside, taking one
|
|
servant with them, and leaving the other at home to look after the
|
|
house; and usually some one to take charge of it with her. This year
|
|
they asked if I would when I passed the house (as I frequently did) call
|
|
in, and see if all was going properly, for the housemaid left in charge
|
|
was young, and her sister, a married woman, usually only stopped the
|
|
night with her, leaving early each morning for work in which she was
|
|
daily engaged. She was an upholstress.
|
|
|
|
I knew the servant whose name was Jane. She had been with the family
|
|
some months. I often dined at the house; and once or twice when she had
|
|
opened the garden-gate (always locked at nightfall), to let me out, I
|
|
had kissed her, and tipped her shillings. She was a shortish, fat-bummed
|
|
wench. Not long before this time I gave her bum such a hard pinch one
|
|
night, that she cried out. A day or two afterwards I said, "Was it
|
|
not black and blue?" "I don't know." "Let me see." "It's like your
|
|
impertance," she replied.
|
|
|
|
After that I used to ask her when I got the chance, to let me see if
|
|
the finger-marks were there, at which she would blush a little, and turn
|
|
away her head, but nothing further had come of the liberty.
|
|
|
|
When I called at the house I had no intention about the girl, as far as
|
|
I can recollect. She opened the door, and heard my errand and questions.
|
|
Yes all was right. Did her sister come and sleep there? Yes. Was she
|
|
there now? No, she would not be there till nearly dark. I stepped
|
|
inside, for then I thought of larking with her. "I am tired, and will
|
|
rest a little," and stepped into the parlour, sat down on a sofa, began
|
|
questioning her about a lot of trifles, and in doing so thought of the
|
|
pinch I had given her bum, and my cock began to tingle. Then I thought
|
|
she was alone in the house. "Oh! if she would let me fuck her!--has she
|
|
been broached?--she is nice and plump." Curiosity increased my lust, and
|
|
unpremeditatingly I began the approaches for the attack, though I only
|
|
meant a little amatory chaffing.
|
|
|
|
"Is it black and blue yet Jenny?" She did not for the instant seem to
|
|
recollect, for she asked me innocently enough, "What sir?" "Your bum
|
|
where I pinched it." She laughed, checked herself, coloured up, and
|
|
said, "Oh! don't begin that nonsense sir." I went on chaffing. "How
|
|
I should like to have pinched it under your clothes,--but no I would
|
|
sooner kiss it than pinch it." "Oh! if you're a going on like that I'll
|
|
go to the kitchen." I stood before the door, and stopped her going out.
|
|
"Now give me a kiss." I caught and kissed her, then gave a lot, and got
|
|
a return from her. "I won't--Lor there then,--what a one you are,"--and
|
|
so on. "Well Jenny one kiss, and you may afterwards kiss whenever you
|
|
want you know." And so she seemed to think, for I got her to sit down
|
|
on the sofa, and we gossiped and kissed at intervals, till my cock got
|
|
unruly. "What a fat bum you have," said I. Then she attempted to rise, I
|
|
pulled her back, we went on gossiping, and kissing at intervals. She got
|
|
quite interested in my talk as I sat with one arm round her waist, and
|
|
another on her thigh, outside her clothes of course.
|
|
|
|
So for a while; but I was approaching another stage, was getting randy,
|
|
and reckless. "Lord how I'd like to be in bed with you, to feel that fat
|
|
bum of yours, to feel your c--u--n--t," spelling it, "to f--u---c--k it
|
|
I'd give a five-pound note," said I all in a burst, and stooping, got
|
|
my hand up her clothes on to her thigh. She gave a howl. "Oh! I say
|
|
now,--what a shame!--oh! you beast." I shoved her back on the sofa
|
|
upsetting her, got my lips on her thighs, and kissed them. Then she
|
|
escaped me, and breathing hard, stood up looking at me after her
|
|
struggle. "Oh! I wouldn't have believed it," said she panting with the
|
|
exertion. What a lot of women I have heard say, they would not have
|
|
believed it, when I first made a snatch at their privates. I suppose
|
|
they say what they mean.
|
|
|
|
Begging her pardon, "I could not help it," I said, "you are so pretty
|
|
and nice,--I'd give ten pounds to be in bed with you an hour." "Well I'm
|
|
sure." "Think what it is not to have a woman you like." "Well I'm sure
|
|
sir, you are a married man,--you've got a partner, and ought to know
|
|
better,--Missus would not have asked you to call if she'd a know'd
|
|
you,--she thinks there's no gent like you,--what would she say if I tell
|
|
her?" "But you won't my dear." "She thinks you a perfect gentleman, and
|
|
most unlucky," the girl went on to say, "and she is sorry for you too."
|
|
|
|
"Oh! she does not know all, but you've heard, have you Jenny?" I tried
|
|
to make her sit on the sofa again, and promising that I would not forget
|
|
myself any more she did so. We kissed and made it up, and talking I soon
|
|
relapsed into baudiness.
|
|
|
|
The quarrelsome life I led with the oldish woman at home was I knew well
|
|
understood by the old couple. "I lead a miserable life," said I. "Oh!
|
|
yes I know all about it," said the girl "Master and Missus often talk
|
|
about you,--but you're very gay, ain't you?" Then I told this girl a
|
|
lot. "Think my dear what it is not even to sleep with a woman for two
|
|
months,--for two months we have never slept together,--I've never seen
|
|
her undressed,--never touched her flesh,--you know what people marry
|
|
for,--I want a woman,--you know what I mean don't you,--every night what
|
|
am I to do?--I love laying belly to belly naked with a nice woman, and
|
|
taking my pleasure with her,--so of course I can't keep from having
|
|
other women at times,--you don't know what an awful thing it is to have
|
|
a stiff prick, and not a nice woman to relieve it." She gave me a push,
|
|
got up, and made for the door at the word prick. Again I stopped her.
|
|
She had sat staring at me with her mouth wide open, without saying a
|
|
word, all the time I had been telling the baudy narrative of domestic
|
|
trouble, as if she were quite stupefied by my plain language until she
|
|
suddenly jumped up, and made for the door without saying a word.
|
|
|
|
I was as quick as she, caught her, put my back against the door, and
|
|
would not let her go, but could not get her to look me in the face,
|
|
I had so upset her. There we stood, I begging her to sit down, and
|
|
promising not to talk so again, she saying, "Now let me go,--let me
|
|
out." "No,--sit down." "No." But in about a quarter of an hour she did,
|
|
and then again I told her of my trouble, avoided all straighforward
|
|
allusion to my wanting other women, but hinted it enough. She got
|
|
interested, and asked me no end of questions. "Lord why don't you
|
|
separate,--if I quarrel with my husband so, I'm sure I will,--I tell my
|
|
young man so." "Oh! you have a sweetheart." Yes she had,--a grocer's
|
|
shopman,--he lived at Brighton, came up third class to see her every
|
|
fortnight, starting early, and going back late. She was flattered by
|
|
my enquiries, told me all about him and herself, their intention to
|
|
get married in a year; and I sat and listened with one hand outside her
|
|
clothes on her thigh, and thinking how I could best manage to get into
|
|
her.
|
|
|
|
"He goes with women," said I to make her jealous. "He don't I'm
|
|
sure,--if he did, and I found it out, I'd tear his eyes out, and break
|
|
off with him, though he says Brighton is a dreadful place for them
|
|
hussies." She got quite excited at the idea. "When he comes up, you and
|
|
he enjoy yourselves,--his hands have been where mine have to-night." "No
|
|
he hasn't,--if he dared I'd--now I don't like this talk,--you said you
|
|
wouldn't,--leave me alone,--you keep breaking your word." Another
|
|
little scuffle, a kiss, and a promise. "Why should you not enjoy
|
|
yourselves?--who would know anything about it but yourselves,--it's so
|
|
delicious to feel yourselves naked in each other's arms, your bellies
|
|
close together." "Get away now,"--and she tried to get up. I got my hand
|
|
up her clothes, pulled her on to the sofa, and holding her down with
|
|
one hand, pressed myself sideways on her, and kissed her, pulling out my
|
|
prick with the other.
|
|
|
|
Then she cried out so loudly that I was alarmed, for the window at the
|
|
back was open. "Hush,--be quiet,--there,--I've touched your cunt." I
|
|
pulled one of her hands on to my prick. "Oh! for shame Jenny you touched
|
|
my prick." Again she got up, and made for the door; so did I, and stood
|
|
there with my back to it, and my poker out in front of me. "Come and
|
|
open the door my dear, and you will run against this." She turned her
|
|
head away, and would not look. "Why don't you come on?--if you run up
|
|
against it, it won't hurt you,--it's soft though it's stiff." "I'll
|
|
write to my Mistress to-night," said she, and turned away. "Do my
|
|
pet,--tell her how stiff it was, and the old lady will want to see it
|
|
when she comes back." "It's disgraceful." "No my dear, it's to be proud
|
|
of,--why you're looking at it I can see."
|
|
|
|
Then she turned quite away. "That's right dear,--now I can see where I
|
|
pinched your bum,--it was not far from your little quim,--oh! if that
|
|
could talk, it would ask to be introduced to this,--it's hot, isn't it
|
|
Jenny?" I said, this and a lot more. She had walked to the back-window,
|
|
and stood looking into the garden whilst I rattled on. "You're laughing
|
|
Jenny." "It's a story," said she, "I'm insulted,"--and turned round with
|
|
a stern face. I shook my tooleywagger. "How ill-tempered you look,--come
|
|
and feel this, and you'll be sweet-tempered at once." She turned round
|
|
to the window again.
|
|
|
|
"I _will_ write my Missus,--that I _will_." "Do dear."
|
|
|
|
"My sister will be here directly." "You said she comes at dusk,--it
|
|
won't be dark for three hours." "I wish you would go,--what will people
|
|
say if they know you're here?" "Don't be uneasy,--they will know no more
|
|
than they know of your doings with your young man." "There is nothing to
|
|
know about, but what is quite proper."
|
|
|
|
So we stood. She looking out of the window, and turning round from time
|
|
to time. I standing by the door with my prick out; then I approached
|
|
her quietly. "Feel it Jenny,--take pity on it." "Oh! for God's sake
|
|
sir, what are you doing?" She turned and pushed me back, then retreated
|
|
herself, keeping her face to the window as she stepped backwards. "Oh!
|
|
there is Miss and Mrs. Brown walking in the next garden." Sure enough
|
|
there were two ladies there; they could have seen everything close to
|
|
the window over the low wall which separated the gardens; and had they
|
|
been looking, must have seen Jenny, me, and my prick. "Oh! if they have
|
|
seen, they will tell my Missus, and she'll tell my young man, and
|
|
I shall be ruined,--oh!--oh!--oh!" said she sinking back into an
|
|
arm-chair with a flood of tears,--half funk and shock, and perhaps
|
|
randiness, causing it.
|
|
|
|
I was alarmed. "Oh!" she sobbed, "if they saw you,--hoh!--ho!--and it
|
|
was no fault of mine,--you're a bad man,--oho! oho!" She sat with
|
|
her hands to her face, her elbows on her knees. I dropped on my knees
|
|
imploring her to be quiet, was sure no one had seen me, and tried to
|
|
kiss her. The position was inviting, I slid my hands up her clothes
|
|
between her thighs, she took no notice, was evidently in distress, not
|
|
even conscious of the invasion. A bold push, and my fingers touched
|
|
her cunt. I forgot all in the intensity of my enjoyment, at feeling my
|
|
fingers on the edge of the soft, warm nick. No repulse I I looked up,
|
|
she sank back in the chair, seemingly unconscious and deadly white.
|
|
|
|
I withdrew my hand, then came a mental struggle; my first impulse was to
|
|
get cold water, the next to look at her cunt. I went towards the door,
|
|
turned round to look at her. Her calves were visible, I ran back, and
|
|
lifted her clothes, so that I could just see her cunt-hair, gave her
|
|
thighs a kiss, and then rushed downstairs, got water, and as I entered
|
|
the room she was recovering. She knew nothing or next to nothing of what
|
|
had occured, nor that my fingers had touched her clitoris, though she
|
|
had not actually fainted.
|
|
|
|
"I wish I had some brandy," she said, "I feel so weak." "Is there any
|
|
in the side-board?" "No." "I'll go and get a little." A few hundred feet
|
|
from the house down a side-door, was a public-house. As I was going,
|
|
"You will let me in again?" I said. "If you promise not to touch me."
|
|
She looked so pale that I fetched brandy, but put the street-door key
|
|
in my pocket as I went. "If she don't let me in," I thought, "she shan't
|
|
have the key,--and what will she tell her sister about that?" It was
|
|
a key almost as big as a shovel; she never noticed that I had taken it
|
|
away. She thought by her dodge that she had got rid of me, and told me
|
|
so afterwards.
|
|
|
|
I brought back the brandy and knocked. "Let me in." "I won't." "Then you
|
|
shan't have the street-door key." This was spoken to each other through
|
|
the closed door. A pause, then the door opened. "You are coming Jenny."
|
|
We went downstairs into the kitchen, she had brandy and water, and so
|
|
had I. It was a hot day, the pump-water was deliriously cool, I made
|
|
hers as strong as she would take it,--it was an instinct of mine. She
|
|
got her colour back, and became talkative, we talked about her fainting,
|
|
but she tried to avoid talking about it, and did not want me to refer to
|
|
what had led to it. I did, and was delighted to think that it was owing
|
|
to what is called "exposing my person."
|
|
|
|
"I don't think the ladies saw it, so you need not have been so
|
|
frightened Jenny,--but you saw it, did you not?" No reply. "I saw you
|
|
looking at it." "It's a story." "Why did you faint?" "I always feel
|
|
faint if I am startled." "What startled you?" "Nothing." "You saw it,
|
|
and you put your hand over it to hide it, and you touched it." "It's a
|
|
story,--I wish you'd go." "You ungrateful little devil, when I've just
|
|
fetched you brandy." "It's through you that I felt ill." "Why?" No
|
|
reply. "Don't be foolish,--it was for fear that the ladies should have
|
|
seen my prick so near you,--now look at it,"--and I pulled it out, it
|
|
was not stiff. "It was twice the size when you saw it,--feel it, and it
|
|
will soon be bigger."
|
|
|
|
The girl rose saying she would go and remain in the forecourt till her
|
|
sister came, if I did not leave, but I prevented her going out of the
|
|
kitchen. She began to cry again, and had a little more brandy and water.
|
|
My talk took its old channel.
|
|
|
|
"Do you know how long you were fainting?" "I didn't faint, but only a
|
|
minute or so." "Do you know what I did?" She was sitting down, then got
|
|
upright, looked at me full in the face, her eyes almost starting out of
|
|
her head. "What did you do!--what?--what?--what?" She spoke hurriedly,
|
|
anxiously, in an agitated manner. "I threw up your clothes, kissed your
|
|
cunt, and felt it."
|
|
|
|
"It's a lie,--it's a lie." "It's true,--and the hair is short, and
|
|
darker than the hair of your head,--and your thighs are so white,--and
|
|
your garters are made of blue cloth,--and I felt it, the dear little
|
|
split,--how I wish my belly had been up against it I--what a lovely
|
|
smell it has!" (putting my fingers to my nose).
|
|
|
|
"Oho!--oho!--oho!" said she bursting into tears, "what a shame to take
|
|
liberties with a poor girl when she can't help herself,--oho!--oho!--you
|
|
must be a bad man,--Missus had no business to send you to look after
|
|
me, as if she could not trust me,--she don't know what sort of man you
|
|
are,--and a gentleman too,--oho!--and married too,--it's a shame,--oho!
|
|
--oho! I don't believe you though,--oho--o--o." And when I told her
|
|
again the colour and the make of her garters, she nearly howled. "You
|
|
mean man to do such a thing when I was ill."
|
|
|
|
I kissed her, she let me, but went on blubbering. "I've a good mind to
|
|
tell my young man." "That will be foolish, because you and I mean to
|
|
have more pleasure than we have had,--and he'll never be any the wiser
|
|
but if you tell him, he'll think it's your fault."
|
|
|
|
This had occupied some hours, it was getting dark, but it seemed only as
|
|
if I had been there some minutes, so deliriously exciting are lascivious
|
|
acts and words. The charm of talking baudily to a woman for the first
|
|
time, is such, that hours fly away just like minutes.
|
|
|
|
I got her on to my lap and kissed her. She was so feeble that I put my
|
|
hands up her clothes nearly to her knees before she repulsed them. Then
|
|
I feared her sister coming home; she promised to hide the brandy, and we
|
|
parted. She kissed me, and let me feel to her knees to induce me to go.
|
|
"Oh! for God's sake sir, do go before my sister comes." My last words
|
|
were. "Mind you've felt my cock, and I've felt your cunt." "Pray
|
|
go"--and I departed, leaving her tearful, excited, and in a state of
|
|
exhaustion which seemed to me unaccountable.
|
|
|
|
Probably had I persisted a little longer I should have had her, such
|
|
was the lassitude into which she had fallen; but I felt that I had made
|
|
progress, and went home rejoicing, and forming plans for the future.
|
|
When I had had some food, and thought over the matter, I came to the
|
|
conclusion that I had been a fool in leaving her, and that had I pushed
|
|
matters more determinate at the last moment, I should have certainly
|
|
fucked her before I had left. I was mad with myself when I reflected on
|
|
that, and the opportunity lost, which might not occur again.
|
|
|
|
Jenny had not fainted quite, but though unable to speak, resist, or
|
|
indeed move, she must have been partially conscious. I think this from
|
|
what I know of her nature afterwards.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XVII.
|
|
|
|
When are women most lewd.--Garters, money, and promises.--
|
|
About my servant.--The neckerchief.--Armpits felt.--Warm
|
|
hints.--Lewd suggestions.--Baudy language.--Tickling.--
|
|
"Fanny Hill".--Garters tried.--Red fingers.--Struggle, and
|
|
escape.--Locked out.--I leave.--Baudy predictions, and
|
|
verifications.
|
|
|
|
I have a confused recollection of thinking myself the next day an ass,
|
|
for having missed a good opportunity of spermatizing a fresh cunt; yet
|
|
for some reason or another it must have been three days before I went to
|
|
try my luck again.
|
|
|
|
I had about this time of my life began to frame intentions, and
|
|
calculate my actions towards women; although still mostly ruled by
|
|
impulse and opportunity in love matters. My philosophy was owing to
|
|
experience, and also in a degree to my friend the Major, to whom some
|
|
years before I had confided my having commissioned a French woman to get
|
|
me a virgin. He was older, poorer, and more dissolute than ever, "He is
|
|
the baudiest old rascal that ever I heard tell a story," was the remark
|
|
of a man at our Club one night. Ask him to dinner in a quiet way by
|
|
himself, give him unlimited wine, and he would in an hour or two begin
|
|
his confidential advice in the amatory line, and in a wonderful manner
|
|
tell of his own adventures, and give reasons why he did this or that,
|
|
why he succeeded with this woman, or missed that girl, in a way as
|
|
amusing, and instructive to a young listener, as could be imagined.
|
|
|
|
"If you want to get over a girl," he would say, "never flurry her till
|
|
her belly's full of meat and wine; let the grub work. As long as she is
|
|
worth fucking, it's sure to make a woman randy at some time. If she is
|
|
not twenty-five she'll be randy directly her belly is filled,--then go
|
|
at her. If she's thirty, give her half-an-hour. If she's thirty-five let
|
|
her digest an hour, she won't feel the warmth of the dinner in her cunt
|
|
till then. Then she'll want to piss, and directly after that she'll
|
|
be ready for you without her knowing it. But don't flurry your young
|
|
un,--talk a little quiet smut whilst feeding, just to make her laugh
|
|
and think of baudy things; then when she has left table, get at her. But
|
|
it's well," the old Major would say, "to leave a woman alone in a room
|
|
for a few minutes after she has dined, perhaps then she will let slip a
|
|
fart or two, perhaps she'll piss,--she'll be all the better for the wind
|
|
and water being out. A woman's cunt doesn't get piss-proud like a man's
|
|
prick you know, they're differently made from us my boy,--but show any
|
|
one of them your prick as soon as you can, it's a great persuader. Once
|
|
they have seen it they can't forget it, it will keep in their minds.
|
|
And a baudy book, they won't ever look at till you've fucked them!--oh!
|
|
won't they!--they would at church if you left them alone with it." And
|
|
so the Major instructed us.
|
|
|
|
About three days afterwards, taking a pair of garters, two small showy
|
|
neckerchiefs, and _Fanny Hill_ with me, I knocked at the door. "Oh!
|
|
you!" said she colouring up. "Yes,--is everything right?" "Yes! all
|
|
right, what should be the matter sir?" She stood at the street-door
|
|
holding it open, though I had entered the hall. I turned, closed the
|
|
door, and caught hold of her.
|
|
|
|
"Now none of that pray sir, you insulted me enough last time." "I could
|
|
not help it, you're so lovely, it's your fault,--forgive me, and I won't
|
|
do so any more,--here is a sovereign, take it, kiss me, and make it
|
|
up." "I don't want your money," said she sulkily. "Take it, I give it
|
|
with real pleasure,--what I had the other day was worth double."
|
|
|
|
"I won't be paid for your rudeness, if that's what you mean." "Lord my
|
|
dear I've no occasion to pay for that, I took it without pay,--I wish I
|
|
could get what I told you yesterday,--I'd give ten times the sum." "You
|
|
are going on again." "Don't be foolish,--take it, buy a pair of silk
|
|
stockings." "Your plump legs would look so nice in them,"--and I forced
|
|
her to put the money into her pocket.
|
|
|
|
Then I got her to the parlour, to sit down, to allow me to kiss her,
|
|
and then to talk about me and my "Missus," as she called her, a subject
|
|
which seemed to excite her, for she began asking me question after
|
|
question, and listened to all I said with breathless attention about my
|
|
daily habits, rows, and fast doings. Once I stopped at some question.
|
|
"I won't tell you that." "Oh! do,--do." "No it's curious." "Do,--do." It
|
|
was about a pretty servant-girl whom I had noticed in my house. "It will
|
|
offend you if I do." "No it won't." "Well give me a kiss then."
|
|
|
|
She kissed me. She had stood up a moment, now she sat down again by me
|
|
on the sofa. I went on with my story, every now and then I stopped till
|
|
she kissed me, it came to a kiss every minute, as I sat with my arm
|
|
round her waist, talking.
|
|
|
|
Said I, "It was a servant whom my wife turned out at a day's notice,--a
|
|
pretty girl,--I had taken to kissing her, and then I nudged her
|
|
somewhere you know. One night when she opened the door, I saw by the
|
|
light that my wife was in our bed-room. 'Is your Mistress upstairs?'
|
|
'Yes sir.' 'And the cook?' 'Yes.' Then I closed with her. 'Don't sir,
|
|
Missus will hear.' I hugged her closer, shoved her up against the wall,
|
|
got my hand on to her cunt, felt her, and gave her half-a-sovereign. How
|
|
delicious it was to get the fingers on to the wet nick of that pretty
|
|
girl, and say, 'How I should like to fuck that Mary.'" I told it in
|
|
words like that to Jenny, and she sat listening. At the word "fuck" up
|
|
she got.
|
|
|
|
"You are a going on rude again." "You asked me." "Not for that." "But
|
|
that's what I had to tell, what you kissed me to tell." "I didn't think
|
|
you would say rude things." "Sit down, and I'll tell you without rude
|
|
words." And so I did, telling all over again with additions, but instead
|
|
of saying "cunt," "fuck," and so on, said, "I got my hand you know
|
|
where,"--"and then she let me you know what,"--"she was frightened to
|
|
let me do, you guess what I wanted."
|
|
|
|
"Luckily though she foolishly told her fellow-servant, she did not say
|
|
who had been feeling her. That sneak told my wife, who told me about it,
|
|
or all she knew, and said she could not keep such an improper girl in
|
|
the house as that. 'But the other servant may have told a lie to spite
|
|
her.' 'Perhaps, but I'll turn her out too',--and so she did, both left."
|
|
|
|
Thus I talked to Jenny till I expect her quim was hot enough; then said
|
|
I, "Here is a pretty neckerchief,--put it on." "Oh! how pretty." "I
|
|
won't give it you unless you put it on." She went to the glass and
|
|
unbuttoned the top of her dress, which was made to button on the front.
|
|
I saw her white fat bosom, she threw the kerchief round the neck, and
|
|
tried to push it down the back. "Let me put it down,--it's difficult."
|
|
She let me. "You are not unbuttoned enough,--it's too tight." She undid
|
|
another button, I pushed down the kerchief, and releasing my hand as I
|
|
stood at the back of her, put it over her shoulder, and down in front,
|
|
pushing it well under her left breast. "Oh! what a lovely breast you
|
|
have,--let me kiss it."
|
|
|
|
A shriek, a scuffle; In the scuffle I burst off a button or two, which
|
|
exposed her breast, and getting my hand on to one of the globes began
|
|
feeling and kissing it. Then I slid my hand further down, and under her
|
|
armpit. "Oh! what a shame,--don't,--I don't like it." "How lovely,--kiss,
|
|
kiss,--oh! Jenny what a lot of hair I can feel under here."
|
|
"Oh!--screach,--screach,--oh! don't tickle me,--oh!--oh!,"--and she
|
|
crouched as women do who can't bear tickling. I saw my advantage. "Are
|
|
you ticklish?" "Yes,--oh!--(screach,--screach),--oh! leave off."
|
|
|
|
Instead of leaving off I tickled harder than ever. She got my hand out,
|
|
but I closed on her, tickling her under her arm, pinching her sides, and
|
|
got her into such a state of excitement, that directly I touched her she
|
|
screached with wild laughter; the very idea of being touched made her
|
|
shiver. We were on the sofa, she yelling struggling whilst I pinched
|
|
her, she trying to get away from me, but fruitlessly; I buried my face
|
|
in her breasts which were now largely exposed, and she fell back I with
|
|
my face on her, and holding her tight. Then I put one hand down, feeling
|
|
outside for her notch; that stopped her screaching, and she pushed me
|
|
off as she got up.
|
|
|
|
I soothed her, begged pardon, spoke of the hair in her armpits, wondered
|
|
if it was the same colour that it was lower down. Now she shammed anger,
|
|
boxed my ears, and we make it up. I produced the garters. "Oh! what a
|
|
lovely pair." "They're yours if you let me put them on." "I won't." "Let
|
|
me put on halfway up." "No." "Just above the ankle." "No, my stockings
|
|
are dirty." "Never mind." "No." Then she made an excuse, said she must
|
|
see to something, and left the room. I thought she was going to piddle.
|
|
|
|
She came back. I found afterwards she had been out to lace up her boots,
|
|
they were untidy. It was coquettishness, female instinct, for she wanted
|
|
the garters, and meant to let me try them on, though refusing. "Where
|
|
do you garter, about knee?" "I shan't tell you." "I've seen,--let me put
|
|
them on below the knees." "No." "Then I'll give them to another woman
|
|
who will let me." "I don't care." I threw the garters on to the table
|
|
after some fruitless attempts. I was getting awfully lewd with our
|
|
conversation.
|
|
|
|
"Do you like reading?" "Yes." "Pictures?" "Yes." "I've a curious book
|
|
here." "What is it?" I took the book out. "The Adventures of Fanny Hill"
|
|
"Who was she?" "A gay lady,--it tells how she was seduced, how she had
|
|
lots of lovers, was caught in bed with men,--would you like to read it?"
|
|
"I should." "We will read it together,--but look at the pictures,"--this
|
|
the fourth or fifth time in my life I have tried this manoeuvre with
|
|
women.
|
|
|
|
I opened the book at a picture of a plump, leering, lecherous-looking
|
|
woman squatting, and pissing on the floor, and holding a dark-red,
|
|
black-haired, thick-lipped cunt open with her fingers. All sorts of
|
|
little baudy sketches were round the margin of the picture. The early
|
|
editions of _Fanny Hill_ had that frontispiece.
|
|
|
|
She was flabbergasted, silent. Then she burst out laughing, stopped and
|
|
said, "What a nasty book,--such books ought to be burnt." "I like them,
|
|
they're so funny." I turned over a page. "Look, here is she with a boy
|
|
who sold her watercresses, is not his prick a big one?" She looked
|
|
on silently, I heard her breathing hard. I turned over picture after
|
|
picture. Suddenly she knocked the book out of my hand to the other side
|
|
of the room. "I won't see such things," said she. "Won't you look at it
|
|
by yourself?" "If you leave it here I'll burn it." "No you won't, you'll
|
|
take it to bed with you." There I left the book lying, it was open and
|
|
the frontispiece showing. "Look at her legs," said I, for we could see
|
|
the picture as we sat on the sofa; and I began to kiss and tickle her
|
|
again.
|
|
|
|
She shrieked, laughed, got away, and rushed to the door. I brought her
|
|
back, desisted from tickling and lewd talking, though I was getting
|
|
randier than ever. "Now have the garters,--let me put one round the
|
|
leg, just to see how it looks,--just half-way up the calf." After much
|
|
persuasion, after pulling up my trowsers, and showing how a garter
|
|
looked round my calf, she partly consented. "Promise me you won't tickle
|
|
me." I promised everything.
|
|
|
|
I dropped on one knee, she sat on the sofa. "Put one foot on my leg."
|
|
She put one foot there, and carefully raised her clothes an inch or
|
|
two above the boot-top. "A little higher." She raised it holding her
|
|
petticoats tight round the leg, and I slipped the garter round it. "It's
|
|
too loose, raise a little more." "I won't any higher,--I can see how it
|
|
looks." "Won't they look nice when they are above the knee? and won't
|
|
your young man be pleased when he sees them there." "My young man won't
|
|
see them any more than you will." "Let me slip on the other." The same
|
|
process, the same care on her part. She bestowed all her care on the
|
|
limb I was gartering, lest I should slip the garter higher up. The
|
|
remainder of her clothes were loose round her other leg. Then I pushed
|
|
my hand up her clothes and herself back on the sofa, relinquishing the
|
|
leg I was gartering.
|
|
|
|
Rapidly my hand felt thighs, hair, cunt, How wet! What is this which
|
|
catches my fingers?--what is it they are gliding between? With a yell
|
|
she pushed me away, and got up as I withdrew my fingers. She had a
|
|
napkin on, my fingers were stained red. "Oh, you beast," said she
|
|
bursting into tears. I caught hold of her, and began to tickle her; she
|
|
pushed me violently away, and escaping, rushed downstairs, slammed the
|
|
kitchen-door in my face, and locked herself in. I have been accustomed
|
|
to this behaviour on similar occasions.
|
|
|
|
I stood outside begging pardon, talking baudiness, I tried to burst open
|
|
the door, and could not. I was not fond of poorliness in women, had a
|
|
keen nose, and oftentimes could smell a woman if poorly, even with her
|
|
clothes down; how it was I did not smell _her_, considering how near
|
|
my nose had been to her split and her breasts, I can't say, but suppose
|
|
randiness overcame my other senses. I played with my prick which was in
|
|
an inflammatory state, feeling it made me much randier, I called through
|
|
the door how I wanted to fuck her, how my prick was bursting, how
|
|
I would frig myself if she did not let me. "What a hard-hearted
|
|
girl,--I'll give you ten pounds to let me,--who will know it, but you
|
|
and me?" and a lot more; but it was of no use, and at length I went
|
|
upstairs, determining to wait, and thinking that in time she might
|
|
follow me.
|
|
|
|
On the sofa I sat thinking of what I had done. There lay one garter,
|
|
I took it up, and rolled it round my pego. I rubbed the tip with it,
|
|
thinking it might be a spell. I took up _Fanny Hill_, got more excitedly
|
|
reading the book, looking at its salacious pictures, and feeling my
|
|
prick at the same time. Then the sense ol pleasure got beyond control,
|
|
and laying down the book on the floor just beneath me, where I could
|
|
see a baudy picture, I turned on my side on the sofa, and frigged till a
|
|
shower of spunk shot out.
|
|
|
|
Then down I went. The door was still locked, my senses were calmed, but
|
|
I talked baudy, and offered her money without a reply; growing tired,
|
|
I bawled out, "I'm going,--you will let me in a day or two, and get the
|
|
ten pounds towards the new shop,--you won't be so unkind when I come
|
|
again." "I'll take good care never to let you in," said she. They were
|
|
the only words I could get out of her. I went upstairs, took a slip of
|
|
paper, and wrote on it, "I have wrapped the garter round my prick, it
|
|
is a charm. Directly you put it on I shall know, for my prick will
|
|
stiffen,--you will put it on I am sure; and directly my prick stiffens,
|
|
your cunt will long to have it up it, even if I am miles away. You will
|
|
put the garter on, for you can't help doing so,--I'm sure to fuck
|
|
you, neither you nor I could avoid it if we would. Why should we deny
|
|
ourselves the pleasure,--no one will know it, and you will be ten pounds
|
|
the richer." I wrote that or something nearly like it, and charmed with
|
|
my own wit, rubbed the garter over the top of my prick till I left the
|
|
smell on it, then laid it on the table over the paper I had written, and
|
|
went away, taking _Fanny Hill_ with me.
|
|
|
|
It is a positive fact, that about two hours afterwards I had a violent
|
|
randy throbbing in my prick, and found out later on that just at that
|
|
very time she had put that garter on.
|
|
|
|
(And now for the complete understanding of what follows, it must be
|
|
stated that the house was in plan nearly like that which I inhabited
|
|
when I had my beautiful servant Mary. Kitchens in the basement, two
|
|
parlours with folding doors between them, nearly always open; and rooms
|
|
back and front over the parlours; and that my absent friend did with
|
|
those rooms whilst absent at the seaside, what was not unusual with
|
|
people of their class in those days, lock most of them up, leaving only
|
|
sufficient for the servant, or caretaker, to inhabit.)
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XVIII.
|
|
|
|
"Fanny Hill" sent to Jenny.--My next visit.--Thunder,
|
|
lightning, sherry, and lust.--A chase round a table.--The
|
|
money taken.--Tickling and micturating.--A search for "Fanny
|
|
Hill".--A chase upstairs.--In the bed-room.--Thunder, funk,
|
|
and lewdness.--Intimidation and coaxing.--Over and under.--A
|
|
rapid spender.--Virginity doubtful.--Fears, tears, and
|
|
fucking.
|
|
|
|
I waited a few days to ensure her poorliness being over. I had not left
|
|
her _Fanny Hill_, but why I cannot tell, for I knew how baudy books
|
|
excited a woman. The night before my next attack, I wrapped up the book,
|
|
directed it to her, gave a boy sixpence to deliver it, hid myself by a
|
|
lilac which was in the front-garden close to the road, and saw the boy
|
|
give it to her, and go off quickly as I had told him. It was just dark,
|
|
and too dark inside the passage of the house to see; for Jenny stepped
|
|
outside the house so as to get light, and stripped off the envelope.
|
|
I saw also that she opened the book, closed it, looked rapidly on both
|
|
sides, then stepped inside, and closed the door. I expect that her cunt
|
|
got hot enough that night. I saw her sister who slept with her nightly,
|
|
going through the front-garden soon afterwards, and Jenny open the door
|
|
for her. I had then moved off to a safe distance, the other side of the
|
|
road.
|
|
|
|
Jenny was fond of finery, and I had heard the old lady of the house
|
|
declaiming about it. Her pleasure at the showy neckerchief and garters
|
|
was great, so I bought a pretty broach, and filling my purse with
|
|
sovereigns determined to have her at any cost, for my letch for her had
|
|
got violent. The next day I had a good luncheon, went to the house just
|
|
after her dinnertime, and took with me a bottle of sherry. I recollect
|
|
the morning well. It was a sultry day, reeking with moisture; it had
|
|
been thundering, the clouds were dark and threatening, the air charged
|
|
with electricity. Such a day makes all creation randy, and you may
|
|
see every monkey at the Zoological Gardens frigging or fucking. I was
|
|
resolute with lustful heat, the girl was I expected under the same
|
|
influence, and taking her as I did after a lazy meal, everything was
|
|
propitious to me. "How shall I get in?--if I knock she may not open; and
|
|
if she sees me go up the front-garden she won't open." But I had to try,
|
|
so walked up to the door, and gave one single loud tradesman's knock.
|
|
|
|
There was a little porch and a shelter over the street-door. Standing
|
|
flat up against the door, so that I might be hidden from her sight if
|
|
peeping, I heard an upper window open. She looked out, but where I was
|
|
she could not see me. There was delay, so again I knocked, and soon the
|
|
door began to open, I pushed it and stepped in. The front-shutters on
|
|
the ground-floor to my wonder were closed.
|
|
|
|
"Hoh! sir--you," said Jenny amazed, "what do you want?" I pushed the
|
|
door to, and caught hold of her. "I've come to have a chat and a kiss."
|
|
She struggled, but I got her tight, and kissed as a randy man then
|
|
kisses a woman, it is a magnetizing thing. "Oh! there it is again,"
|
|
she cried as a loud thunder-clap was heard; "oh! let me go,--oh! it do
|
|
frighten me so."
|
|
|
|
"Where are you going?" "Oh I into the parlour,--I've closed the
|
|
shutters." The girl was in a panic, and did not know what she said. The
|
|
parlour-door was open, the room nearly dark, which suited me. She went
|
|
just in, and then turned round to go out, but I pulled her to the sofa.
|
|
A flash of lightning showed even in the darkened room, the girl cowered
|
|
and hid her face with her hands. I took her round the waist. "Shut your
|
|
eyes, and lean your head against me." Mechanically she did, she was
|
|
utterly unnerved. I felt down with my right hand the form of her thighs
|
|
and haunches through her clothes. My prick began to stand, pulling
|
|
it out, and taking her near hand I put it round my prick just as the
|
|
thunder roared. She kept her hand unconsciously on it for a time, then
|
|
with a start took it away and jumped up. "Oh! it's wicked," said she,
|
|
"when God Almighty is so angry,"--and just as she got to the door a
|
|
terrific flash made her turn round again. I caught her, and sitting
|
|
down on a chair pulled her on to my knee; she hid at once her face on my
|
|
shoulder in terror.
|
|
|
|
Coaxing and soothing, and exciting her, in her fear she listened at
|
|
times twitching and oh-ing. I was sorry I had touched her cunt the other
|
|
day I said. "Oh! now don't." "Feel my prick again,--do dear." "Let me
|
|
go,--you've no business here." Another flash came, I put my hand up her
|
|
clothes, the tip of my fingers just touched her quim. She struggled and
|
|
got away, and in doing so upset the chair which fell down and broke.
|
|
"Oh! now what will my Missus say!" said she. Then a screech, and she got
|
|
to the other side of the table.
|
|
|
|
This went on a little longer, a gleam of sunshine came through the
|
|
shutters. Then she opened one shutter, and said if I did not go she
|
|
would open the window and call out. The light showed my pego, stiff,
|
|
red-tipped and ready. "Look what your feeling has done for this Jenny,"
|
|
said I shaking my tooleywag at her.
|
|
|
|
But her resoluteness daunted me, so I promised not to do so again. "Here
|
|
is some sherry that I was taking home to taste,--let's have a glass,--it
|
|
will do both of us good after this thunder,--you look white, and as if
|
|
you wanted a glass." I had got out of her on a previous day that
|
|
she liked sherry. "I'll go and get you a glass," said she. "No you
|
|
shan't,--you will lock the door," said I,--I know that was in her mind.
|
|
No she would not. "We will go together then."
|
|
|
|
We did, and returning to the parlour under my most solemn promise
|
|
of good behaviour, down she sat, and we began drinking sherry. One
|
|
glass,--two, then another she swallowed. "No I dare not, it will get
|
|
into my head,--no more." "Nonsense,--after your fright it will do you
|
|
good." "Well half a glass." "Isn't it nice Jenny?" "It is." "Does not
|
|
your sweetheart give it you?" "At Christmas, but only one glass." The
|
|
sherry began to work. "Only another half-glass,"--and I poured it out
|
|
nearly full. Soon after I got up after filling my own, and standing
|
|
before her again filled up hers which she had sipped without her seeing
|
|
me. "Finish your glass dear." "No I can't,--it's making me so hot."
|
|
"Just another half-glass." "I won't." But she began to chatter and told
|
|
me again all about her young man, of their intending to open a grocer's
|
|
shop when they had two hundred pounds; that he had saved a certain sum,
|
|
and when he had a little more his father was to put fifty pounds to it.
|
|
She also had put money in the savings bank. I got closer to her, and
|
|
asked for a kiss. "Well I'll kiss you if you promise not to be rude
|
|
again." A kiss and a promise. She was one of the simplest and most open
|
|
girls I have ever met with, and once a half-feeling of remorse came over
|
|
me about my intentions, whilst she was talking on quite innocently about
|
|
her future; but my randy prick soon stopped that.
|
|
|
|
"What nonsense dear, your young man won't know that I have felt your
|
|
thighs, and you my thing, nor any one else what we do,--I have
|
|
thought of nothing else since I touched you,--kiss;--now let me do it
|
|
again,--just feel it,--only where my hand's been before,--I swear I
|
|
won't put my hand up higher, just above your garters,--have you got
|
|
those garters on?" "No." "Oh! you have." "Well I have." "Let me just
|
|
see." "I shan't." "I'll give you a sovereign to let me." "Shan't."
|
|
I pulled out the sovereign, put it on the table and spite of her
|
|
resistance pulled up her clothes just high enough to see one garter;
|
|
then clutching her round the waist I pushed my hands up, and touched a
|
|
well-developed clitoris. She struggled, but I kept my hand there, kissed
|
|
her rapturously, and frigged her; her cap fell off in her struggle. "Oh
|
|
I--can't--bear--it--now--sir;--I don't--oh!--like it,--oh!" Then with a
|
|
violent effort she got my hand away, but I held her fast to me.
|
|
|
|
"What a lovely smell your cunt has," said I putting the fingers just
|
|
withdrawn from her thighs up to my nose. I had always noticed that
|
|
nothing helps to make a woman more randy than that action; it seems
|
|
to overwhelm them with modest confusion; I have always done that
|
|
instinctively to a woman whom I was trying.
|
|
|
|
"Oh! what a man,--oh! let me pick up my cap." Just then I noticed her
|
|
hair was short, and remarked it. She was annoyed, her vanity hurt,
|
|
turned her thoughts entirely. "Yes," she said, "I had a fever two years
|
|
ago,---but it's growing again." "Well it has grown enough on your cunt
|
|
dear,--did it fall off there?" "Oh! what a man!--oh! now what a shame!"
|
|
My hand was on her thighs again, and I managed another minute's frig,
|
|
and kept her close to me.
|
|
|
|
The heat had become excessive. What with struggling, and the excitement,
|
|
sweat was on both our faces. Her thighs by her crack were as wet as if
|
|
she had pissed them, her backside began to wriggle with pleasure, which
|
|
I knew I was giving her; but again with a violent effort she freed
|
|
herself from me, and as I put my hand to my nose she violently pulled it
|
|
away. The sherry was upsetting her wisdom.
|
|
|
|
"There is the sovereign," said I as she stood looking at me, "that will
|
|
help you." "Don't want it." Seeing where her pocket-hole was I pushed
|
|
it into it. "Oh! what a lucky sovereign, to lay so close to your cunt
|
|
Jenny,"--and pushing my hand into her pocket I touched the bottom of her
|
|
belly through the linen. Again a struggle, a repulse, then she put her
|
|
hand into her pocket. "You're feeling your cunt Jenny," said I. "O--oh!"
|
|
said she taking it out quickly, "I was feeling for the money,--I won't
|
|
have it."
|
|
|
|
Then I kissed her till the sweat ran off my face on to hers. "Oh! my
|
|
goodness," said she as it grew darker, "it's going to thunder again."
|
|
"Have another glass." "No it's gone into my head already." But she took
|
|
a gulp of mine. "Let's fuck you Jenny dear." "What?" "Fuck." "Shan't."
|
|
"Oh! you know what I mean." "No I don't, but it's something bad if it's
|
|
from you." I pulled out my prick, and tried to push her on the sofa.
|
|
She got away, and then with my prick out I chased her round the table.
|
|
"Leave off," said she, "a joke's a joke, but this is going too far."
|
|
She was getting lewd, and was staring at my prick which showed above the
|
|
table as I chased her. Quick as me she managed to keep just on the side
|
|
of it opposite to me.
|
|
|
|
"I'll swear I won't touch you again if you will sit down." "I won't
|
|
trust you,--you've been swearing all the afternoon." "So help me God I
|
|
will," said I, and meant it. "Well then not when you are like that." I
|
|
pushed my prick inside my trowsers, and then she sat down. What a
|
|
long time this takes to tell, what repetition! but there are not many
|
|
incidents I recollect more clearly.
|
|
|
|
Then I took out ten sovereigns, all bright, new ones, laid them on the
|
|
table, and then the broach. "Do you like that Jenny?" "Yes." "It is for
|
|
you if you will let me, and those ten sovereigns also." "You are a bad
|
|
man," said the girl, "and would make me forget myself and be ruined,
|
|
and without caring a bit,"--and she began rocking her head about, and
|
|
rolling her body as she sat beside me, and looking at the money. "Who
|
|
will know?--you won't tell your young man,--I shan't tell my wife,--let
|
|
me." "I shan't,--never,--never,--never,--never, if it was fifty pounds,"
|
|
said she almost furiously. "He won't find it out." "Yes he would."
|
|
"Nonsense,--half the servants do it, yet marry,"--and then I told her of
|
|
some I had who had married. "No,--no,--no," she kept repeating, almost
|
|
bawling it out, as I told of Mary So-and-so who married a butler, and
|
|
Sarah So-and-so who married my greengrocer, though I'd fucked them over
|
|
and over again. "No,--no," looking at the money; then suddenly she took
|
|
up the broach, and laid it down again.
|
|
|
|
Before running round the table after her, I had thrown off my coat and
|
|
waistcoat. "It's so hot, I've a good mind to take off my trowsers," I
|
|
had said; but I had another motive. She seemed weaker, and was so,
|
|
for gradually she had got inflamed and lewd by heat, the electrical
|
|
condition of the atmosphere, the titillation of my finger on her seat of
|
|
pleasure, and the sight of my stiff penis. She had I expect, got to
|
|
that weak, yielding, voluptuous condition of mind and body, when a woman
|
|
knows she is wrong, yet cannot make up her mind to resist. Just then it
|
|
came into my mind to tickle her; and then followed a scene which is one
|
|
of the most amusing in my reminiscences.
|
|
|
|
She shrieked, and wriggled down on to the floor. I tried to mount her
|
|
there. She kicked, fought, so that though once my prick touched her
|
|
cunt-wig, I could not keep on the saddle. She forgot all propriety in
|
|
her fuddled excitement, and whilst screaching from my tickling, repeated
|
|
incoherently baudy words as I uttered them. "Let me fuck you." "You
|
|
shan't fuck me." "Let's put it just to your cunt." "You shan't,--you're
|
|
a blackguard,--oh! don't,--leave me alone,--wee I will feel it,
|
|
if you'll let me get up,--oh!--he! hi! hi!--for God's sake don't
|
|
tickle,--hi!--I shall go mad,--you shan't,--oh! don't,--oh I if you
|
|
don't leave off." "I shall,--I must." "Oh! pray,--you shall if you leave
|
|
off tickling then,--oh! don't pray,--oh! I shall piddle myself,--he!
|
|
he!" She was rolling on the floor, her thighs exposed, sometimes
|
|
backside, sometimes belly upwards with all its trimmings visible. "Oh!
|
|
it's your fault," and as she spoke actually piddle began to issue. I had
|
|
my hand on her thigh, and felt and saw it.
|
|
|
|
Randy as I was I burst out laughing; and she man-aged to get up, began
|
|
to push in her neckerchief which I had torn out of the front of her
|
|
dress, and arranged her hair.
|
|
|
|
"Oh! look at me,--if any one came, what a state I am in," said she
|
|
looking in the glass, and there she stood her breast heaving, her eyes
|
|
swollen, her mouth open, and breathing as if she had just run a mile,
|
|
but attempting nothing, saying nothing further, awaiting my attack. What
|
|
randy, pleasureable excitement she must have been in, though unconscious
|
|
of it, whilst only thinking of how to prevent my fucking her against her
|
|
will.
|
|
|
|
"You began piddling." "Didn't." "I felt the piddle on my hand." She made
|
|
no reply, but passed on, and wiped her face. When I said more she merely
|
|
tossed her head. "Don't be a fool Jenny,--let us,--you want it as bad
|
|
as me." Then I rattled out my whole baudy vocabulary, "prick," "cunt,"
|
|
"fuck," "spunk," "pleasure," "belly to belly," "my balls over your
|
|
arse," "let my stiff prick stretch your cunt,"--everything which could
|
|
excite a woman; to all of which she merely said, "Oho!--oh!" and tossed
|
|
her head, and never took her staring eyes off me, nor ceased swabbing up
|
|
her perspiring face, and at the same time looking at my throbbing, rigid
|
|
cunt-stretcher.
|
|
|
|
Finding she took to yelling, and even hitting me, I desisted a moment.
|
|
"Where is the book I sent you last night?" I had till then forgotten
|
|
it. That opened her mouth. "Have not had a book." "I saw the boy give
|
|
it you, and you open it." "He didn't." "He did." "I burnt it,--a nasty
|
|
thing,--I would not let my sister see it." An angry feeling came over
|
|
me for the moment, for I thought it probable, and should have had
|
|
difficulty in replacing it. Then came an inspiration to help me,--a man
|
|
always gets somehow on the right track to get into a woman if he has
|
|
opportunity. Nature wills it. The woman was made to be fucked, and the
|
|
sooner for them, the better for them.
|
|
|
|
"You have not burnt it,--I'll bet it's in your bedroom,--in your box."
|
|
"It isn't." "I'll swear it's there,--you have been reading it all
|
|
night,--I'll go up and see." She started as if electrified into life as
|
|
I made for the door. She got there before me, and stood before me. "You
|
|
shan't go,--you've no business up there,--I've burnt it,--it's not
|
|
there." "It's in the kitchen then." "No, I've burnt it," she went on
|
|
rapidly and confusedly. "I'll go and see," said I pulling her from
|
|
the door, she screeching out, "No you shan't go up,--that you
|
|
shan't,--you've no business there." Then I pulled up her clothes to her
|
|
belly, she got them down, but still she kept her back to the door.
|
|
I kept pulling her till her cap was off again, and felt sure she was
|
|
getting weaker and weaker.
|
|
|
|
Then she turned round suddenly, opened the door, and ran up the stairs
|
|
rapidly like a lapwing, I after her. Once she turned round, "You shan't
|
|
come up," said she, and tried to push me back; and then again on she
|
|
went, I following. I stumbled, that gave her a few steps ahead; I sprang
|
|
up three steps at a time, recovered the lost distance, and just as she
|
|
got into the bed-room, and slammed the door to, I put my foot in it,--it
|
|
hurt me much. "Damn it, how you hurt my foot,--I will come in"--and
|
|
pushing the door my strength prevailed; the door flew open, I saw her
|
|
running round the bed, and there on the very pillow of the unmade bed
|
|
lay _Fanny Hill_, open at one of the pictures. I threw myself across
|
|
the bed, and clutched the book. She then stood motionless, panting and
|
|
staring at me, she had clutched at it, and failed just as I caught it.
|
|
She would have got it, but for having to go round the bed.
|
|
|
|
I laughed. "Have you not had a treat Jenny dear!" Her face was a picture
|
|
of confusion. I was stretched half across the bed, and now went right
|
|
across. Then to escape me she ran away, and had nearly reached the door
|
|
when throwing myself over the bed again, I grasped her petticoats under
|
|
her arse, and managed to pull her back. "Damned if I don't fuck you,"
|
|
said I, "by God I'll shove my prick up your cunt if I'm hanged for
|
|
it,"--and pushing a hand up behind I clasped her naked buttocks. She
|
|
turned round, I pulled her petticoats clean up, she yelling, struggling,
|
|
panting, imploring. I dropped on my knees, kissed her belly, and buried
|
|
my nose between her thighs. The petticoats dropped over my head, her
|
|
belly kept bumping up against my nose and lips, which were covered with
|
|
her cunt-moisture.
|
|
|
|
I rose up, pushed and rolled her against the bed, my hand still up her
|
|
clothes. "Oh! don't, don't now,--you are a great gentleman they say,
|
|
and ought to think of a poor girl's ruin,--oh! if it was found out I
|
|
should be ruined." "It won't darling." I had got my fingers well over
|
|
the whole slit. "Pray don't,--well I'll kiss you,--there." "Feel it."
|
|
"Will you let me get up if I do?" "Yes." "There then," and she felt me.
|
|
|
|
"Oh! I must fuck you." "Oh! pray don't,--oh! let me go now, and I'll
|
|
let you another day,--I will indeed sir,--oh! you hurt,--don't push your
|
|
fingers like that." "Kiss me my darling." "You shan't." "There there."
|
|
Another struggle. "Oh! I can't--be--bear it." Her arse began to twist
|
|
again, her head sank on my shoulder, her thighs opened; then with a
|
|
start, "Oh! my God it's lightning (it began to thunder and lighten
|
|
badly),--oh! I'm so frightened,--oh! don't,--another day,--it's wicked
|
|
when it's lightning so,--oh! God almighty will strike us dead if you are
|
|
so wicked,--oh! let me go into the dark,--oh! don't,--I can't--be--bear
|
|
it." Her arse was shaking with my groping and frigging.
|
|
|
|
"Now don't be a fool,--damned if I don't murder you if you are not
|
|
quiet!" "Oh! oh!" I had got her somehow on to the bed, she was helpless;
|
|
with fear, liquor, and cunt-heat. I threw myself on to her. A feel
|
|
between thighs reeking with sweat, with her cunt in a lather, with the
|
|
sweat dropping in great drops from my face, with sweat running down
|
|
my belly on to my prick and my balls; I shoved. One loud "aha!" and my
|
|
prick-tip was up against her womb-door. A mighty straight thrust; and
|
|
the virginity was gone at that one effort.
|
|
|
|
Right up there with but a shove or two as far as I recollect, and
|
|
without trouble, my sperm spouted directly my tool rubbed through the
|
|
wet, warm cunt-muscles. Then I came to my senses; where was I? has she
|
|
let me, or had I forced her violently.
|
|
|
|
She laid quietly under me with closed eyes and open mouth, panting; I
|
|
was upon her, up her, pressing heavily upon her rather than holding her;
|
|
then thrusting my hands under her fat bottom I recommenced thrusting and
|
|
fucking. She lay still, in the enjoyment of a lubricated cunt, distended
|
|
by a stiff, hot prick. Soon she was sensitive to my movements, her cunt
|
|
constricted, a visible pleasure overtook her, her frame began to quiver,
|
|
and the soft murmurs of spermatic effusion came from her lips. She
|
|
spent. On I went driving as if I meant to send my prick into her womb,
|
|
fell into a half dreaminess, and became conscious of a great wetness
|
|
on my ballocks; it was her discharge more than mine, the most copious I
|
|
recollect, excepting from one woman. Then I dropped off on her side. She
|
|
lay still as death, the thunder rolled over us unheeded by her in the
|
|
delirious excitement and delight of her first fuck.
|
|
|
|
She turned on her side slightly, her thighs and backside were naked, she
|
|
hid her face, and shuddered at the thunder unheeding her nakedness, then
|
|
buried her face in a pillow, and so we both dozed for a minute or two.
|
|
Her backside was still naked, when I looked at her in all ways as she
|
|
lay, and saw traces of sperm on her thighs and chemise. A little lay on
|
|
the bed, but no trace of red, no signs of a bloody rupture of a virgin
|
|
cunt. My shirt and drawers were spermed, but had not a trace of blood.
|
|
The light fell full on her backside, I could see lightish brown hair
|
|
in the crack of the parting of her buttocks; a smear of shit on
|
|
her chemise. Her flesh was beautifully white. She had on nice white
|
|
stockings, and the flashy garters; she dad a tolerable quantity of hair
|
|
on her quim on the belly side. I sat at the side of the bed, got off
|
|
boots, trousers, and drawers; then laying down gently inserted my
|
|
longest finger and delicately began rubbing her clitoris which I could
|
|
see protruding of a fine crimson color. Then she moved; she was not
|
|
asleep, but dazed by the fuck, fear of the lightning, the excitement,
|
|
the heat, and the fumes of the wine combined.
|
|
|
|
She stared at me, pulled down her clothes, and tears began to run down
|
|
her cheeks. What a lot of women I have had cry at such times "Don't cry
|
|
my darling." She turned on to her face, and hid it. For a quarter of an
|
|
hour, I talked, but she did not answer. I told her she had spent, that
|
|
I knew she had had pleasure. Then I pushed my fingers up her cunt; still
|
|
she did not speak, but let me do just what I liked, keeping her eyes
|
|
shut. So soon as my rammer was up to the mark, up her it went fucking,
|
|
and again I felt it's stem well wetted. She was a regular streaming
|
|
spunker.
|
|
|
|
After that, "I am going downstairs," said she. "I'll come." "No don't."
|
|
"You only want to piddle." "Yes," said she faintly. "Piddle here,--what
|
|
will it matter?" "I can't." "I'll go out if you won't bolt the door."
|
|
"It's no good bolting the door,--you have ruined me." I went outside,
|
|
closed the door, and heard the rattle in the pot. When I re-entered she
|
|
was sitting at the side of the bed crying quietly; she did nothing but
|
|
look at me, but without speaking. "Arrange yourself in case any one
|
|
comes to the door." "No one will come." "The milkman?" "He will put it
|
|
down inside the porch." She sat down the picture of despair. Never had
|
|
I felt more lewd, I was mad that day with lewdness. "Let's feel your
|
|
cunt," said I. "I have spent in it three times." "I don't care what you
|
|
do, you may do what you like,--it's of no consequence." I felt up her
|
|
cunt, she hung her head over my shoulders whilst I paddled my fingers in
|
|
the wet. "Don't hurt me," said she. "I have not hurt you."
|
|
|
|
"Yes you have." "Let's look." That roused her. "Oh! no,--no,--no,--you
|
|
shan't." "Wash your cunt" I fetched the sherry, but she had not washed
|
|
her cunt. "You should wash it out." "Oh?--oh!" said she, "if I should be
|
|
with child I shall never be married."
|
|
|
|
She drank more sherry, and promised to wash. Then I went downstairs,
|
|
fetched up the broach and the ten sovereigns, and gave them to her. "How
|
|
shall I say I got it?" "Does he know how much you have saved?" "Yes."
|
|
"Is it a year's wages?" "Yes,"--and she began to cry again. "What shall
|
|
I say about the broach?" "That you bought it,--let's lay down and talk."
|
|
She yielded instantly, I threw up her clothes, she pushed them down.
|
|
Then I lay feeling her quim, and got out her bubbies, she submitted,
|
|
laying with her eyes closed, till my rubbing on her clitoris made her
|
|
sigh. Then up her, I felt her wetting my prick-stem, and shot my sperm
|
|
into her at that intimation of her pleasure.
|
|
|
|
It was about seven o'clock, I had been nearly five hours at my
|
|
amusements, and was tired; but had that day an irrepressable prick. It
|
|
began to stiffen almost directly it left her cunt. I went down with her
|
|
to tea, there I pulled her on to my lap, and we began to look at _Fanny
|
|
Hill_. I could not get a word out of her, but she looked intently at the
|
|
pictures. I explained their salacity. "Hold the book dear, and turn over
|
|
as I tell you." Then I put my fingers on her cunt again. How sensitive
|
|
she was. "Let's come upstairs." "No," said she, reluctantly, but up
|
|
we went, and fucked again. Then she groaned, "Oh! pray leave off,--I'm
|
|
almost dead,--I shall have one of my fainting fits." "Lay still darling,
|
|
I shall come soon,"--but it was twenty minutes hard grinding before my
|
|
sperm rose.
|
|
|
|
Then she laid motionless and white through nervous exhaustion,
|
|
excitement, and loss of her spermatic liquid, which I kept fetching and
|
|
fetching in my long grinding. She told me afterwards that she could
|
|
not tell how often she spent. I had never been randier or stronger, nor
|
|
enjoyed the first of a woman more.
|
|
|
|
She was a most extraordinary girl. After the first fuck she was like
|
|
a well-broken horse; she obeyed me in everything, blushed, was modest,
|
|
humbled, indifferent, conquered, submissive; but I could get no
|
|
conversation out of her excepting what I have narrated. She cried every
|
|
ten minutes, and looked at me. After each fuck she laid with her eyes
|
|
closed, and mouth open, and turned on her side directly, putting her
|
|
hand over her quim, and pulling her clothes just over her buttocks.
|
|
Then after I had recovered and began to talk, a tear would roll down her
|
|
cheek.
|
|
|
|
About nine o'clock she said. "Do go, my sister will be here,--and the
|
|
bed wants making." At the door I put her against the wall and rubbed
|
|
as well as I could my flabby cock between her cunt-lips. She made no
|
|
resistance. "We'll fuck again to-morrow Jenny." "I'll never let you
|
|
again," said she, "for you shan't come in,"--and she shut the door on me
|
|
with a slam.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIX.
|
|
|
|
My soiled shirt.--Jenny's account of herself.--Fucking and
|
|
funking.--Poor John!---Of her pudenda.--It's
|
|
sensitiveness.--Erotic chat.--Startled by a caller.--Her
|
|
married sister's unsatisfied cunt.--How she prevented having
|
|
children.--Doubts her husband's fidelity.--Jenny taught the
|
|
use of a French letter.--Hickery-pickery, and catamenial
|
|
irregularities.
|
|
|
|
When I got home I looked at my linen; never had it been in such a mess
|
|
after female embraces. I had taken no care about it, it was be-spunked
|
|
in an unusual degree, and lots of thinnish stains were on the tail which
|
|
made me think that one or both of us must have spent copiously. Then I
|
|
recollected that Jenny's cunt seemed very wet to me when I felt it after
|
|
I had spermatized her. There were no signs of blood, and taking stock of
|
|
the sensations I had experienced, "Jenny has had it before," I said
|
|
to myself. Then came a fear that her discharge was from a clap, but I
|
|
dismissed that from my mind. I had only once had the clap from a woman
|
|
not gay.
|
|
|
|
So I washed the tail of my shirt, laid it under my arse to dry, gave it
|
|
a natural stain of piss, and went to bed reflecting and wondering who
|
|
had first penetrated Jenny's privates.
|
|
|
|
A day or two afterwards I went to see her and shammed a knock. She
|
|
opened the door. "Oh!" she exclaimed as I entered, "now you shan't,--you
|
|
shan't again." "I shan't what my dear?" "I know why you came here,--but
|
|
you shan't." "I want a chat,---don't be foolish,--come here,--I won't do
|
|
anything,--I don't want anything,--but come here."
|
|
|
|
I got her into the parlour, and on to the sofa, then talked, then got
|
|
baudy. "Do just let me feel your thighs,--what harm can it do when
|
|
I have been between them." "No". "Just a feel,--there I won't put my
|
|
finger further,--oh! Jenny you like my finger,--be quiet dear,--just let
|
|
me feel it." Half an hour after she had said, "Now you shan't," my prick
|
|
was in her. No woman can refuse the cock which has once stretched her
|
|
cunt, she is at its mercy. We spent another afternoon in talking and
|
|
fucking, and she partly in crying and bemoaning her evil deeds.
|
|
|
|
I had not only opened her cunt, but opened her heart and mouth at the
|
|
same time. She was the funniest, frankest little woman I ever knew. She
|
|
told me all her past life, her future expectations, asked my advice,
|
|
deplored her wickedness to her young man, and all in an hour. She spoke
|
|
the same incessantly afterwards. In a fortnight I knew everything about
|
|
her from her birth, and about all her family; it was as if for the
|
|
first time in her life she had had a confident.
|
|
|
|
"What shall I do with your money?" "Put it with the rest." "But he knows
|
|
what I've got,--we always tell each other." "Keep it to get a good stock
|
|
of clothes before you are married." "But he knows all about my clothes."
|
|
"Put it in a little at a time, or don't tell him till you are married;
|
|
then say you kept him in ignorance for a pleasant surprise, or tell him
|
|
nothing at all about it,--you will have more than that." "I don't want
|
|
your money, I fear it will bring me harm."
|
|
|
|
"Well give it back to me Jenny." But Jenny did not seem to see the
|
|
advantage of that; so she kept it, and had more besides in time.
|
|
|
|
"What will become of me and poor John?--he'd die if he knew how ill
|
|
I behave to him,--now don't,--you do upset a body so a talking, and
|
|
putting your fingers there,--oh! leave me alone,--no no more." "Once
|
|
more dear,--how hot your little cunt is,--it's longing for a prick." "Oh
|
|
I take care of my cap, you will tear it,--I'll take it off." "What a
|
|
fat backside you've got Jenny,--how wet your cunt is,--shove, shove,
|
|
fuck,--where is my prick Jenny now?" But Jenny became speechless always
|
|
after three cock-shoves, and began moistening the intruder with all her
|
|
cunt-power.
|
|
|
|
After fucking she was tranquil for a time; sperm seemed to soothe her,
|
|
but then she had funks. "Oh I dear what have you made me do? oh! if I am
|
|
in the family way!--oh! if he finds it out, he won't marry me! and he is
|
|
such a good young man, and so fond of me,--o--o---ho--ho!--I've behaved
|
|
very bad to him,--and I didn't mean,--oho!--it's all your fault, oho!
|
|
--I didn't know what I was about,--I never do when it lightens,--oho! Do
|
|
you think he will find it out when we are married?" she would ask in
|
|
her calmer moments, after she had cried herself out. This scene occurred
|
|
every day I fucked her for a time, then less frequently.
|
|
|
|
I tried to comfort her, told facts, and many inventions of my own, of
|
|
how I had had women, who afterwards married and whose husbands had never
|
|
known that they had been broached.
|
|
|
|
"Is it true really!--oh! do tell me the truth,--if he finds it out I
|
|
will drown myself, I'm sure he will,--it's all your fault,--you must be
|
|
a bad man to take advantage of a poor girl in the house alone." "But if
|
|
you're not in the family way, he can't find out until you are married,
|
|
and then it will be too late. You won't tell him, and your cunt can't
|
|
speak." "Oh! sir you do say such funny things."
|
|
|
|
This went on for weeks. "Oh! it's my time, and it's not come on." Then
|
|
with joy, "Oh! I'm all right, but you can't do anything to-day,--oh! if
|
|
my Mistress should find out, or if my sister should come home and catch
|
|
you here,--oh! if the next-door neighbours should see you come here so
|
|
often, and tell my Mistress." One or another of these fears was always
|
|
upon her, but did not prevent our fucking. At that time Sarah was away,
|
|
and Louisa Fisher still ill, so Jenny had all my essence; and later on
|
|
as much as Louisa and Sarah spared me. As to my home, I had pretty well
|
|
done with fucking there.
|
|
|
|
Jenny's cunt was well-haired, and had rather large inner lips; not so
|
|
large as I have seen in many women, but larger than I liked. Her tube
|
|
was easy. What a fight I had when first I saw it. "I won't be pulled
|
|
about like that,--no it's shameful." "I dare say your John has seen it."
|
|
That always sent her off howling, and when she had subsided she let me
|
|
do as I liked. "It's a nasty thing to pull me about like that." But
|
|
it came soon to the old world-wide habit: a feel and a look before the
|
|
entry. The same woman who won't let you see the bottom of her belly at
|
|
first, will hold her cunt open for your inspection in a month. It
|
|
is breaking in a woman to baudiness which is the happiness of the
|
|
honeymoon, not the hard burst through a bit of gristle.
|
|
|
|
It had weighted on my mind ever since I had had her, and about three
|
|
weeks afterwards I told her my doubts of her then being a virgin.
|
|
She swore that no man had even put his hands on it till I did. "Am
|
|
I different from other woman?" She was indignant at the doubt, and
|
|
honestly and truly I believe. A schoolfellow used to look at her quim,
|
|
she at her schoolfellow's, she always thought hers was the most open of
|
|
the two, she always could put her finger up easily, "but you did hurt me
|
|
through, though I did not bleed. My sister says she did bleed a little
|
|
when she first had her husband,"--and Jenny now described her sister's
|
|
first night, and her sister's form, and rather wetted my lust for her
|
|
sister.
|
|
|
|
I came to the conclusion that she was born loose at her inlet, or had
|
|
broken through the cover when quite young, and that no prick had
|
|
rubbed her but mine; but her organ was a peculiar one in it's habit of
|
|
distilling its liquids.
|
|
|
|
I have told how my shirt was stained at first, and soon found that Jenny
|
|
was one of those women who spend rapidly, frequently, and copiously. I
|
|
have met I think two like her in my career, to the time I correct this.
|
|
|
|
On the second day's poking I noticed this and became fully aware of it
|
|
afterwards. When I put my prick up her, and began my movements; a
|
|
shiver and a sigh escaped her almost directly, her bum gave a heave,
|
|
a discharge came from her, and if I pulled my prick out then, it was
|
|
perfectly wet. It used in fact to run out a little, and if pushing one
|
|
hand well under her arse (which was not so easy, for she had a fine
|
|
backside), I felt the root of my prick, or rather the end of the stem,
|
|
I could feel her moisture running down one of her bum-cheeks, or
|
|
between them. That over by the time I spent we usually discharged
|
|
simultaneously. Her voluptuousness was greater when we spent together,
|
|
than on her preliminary discharge. She said she could not account for
|
|
it, but that a delicious sensation crept over her the moment the prick
|
|
entered; that her cunt tightened and seemed to wet itself copiously;
|
|
that her spend at the climax was longer, more thrilling, voluptuous,
|
|
satisfying, and exhausting; that when our spunks had mingled her whole
|
|
body was satisfied; but that her first spend seemed only to confine its
|
|
pleasure to her cunt. It is difficult to describe these sensations.
|
|
|
|
I frigged her several times, and got a copious discharge from her, thin,
|
|
milky, and barely sticky, yet it left a strong stain on linen. She was
|
|
astonished when I told her of her peculiarity. Perhaps she wondered what
|
|
her poor John would think of it. I can't say I altogether admired her
|
|
wetness; I took a dislike to a tall thin girl who was much of the same
|
|
sort as Jenny, but that girl was quite slippy-cunted, though not with
|
|
the whites. This was since.
|
|
|
|
(Another woman who had this sensitive and sensuous [for it was both]
|
|
organization, was the sister of an intimate friend, and whom I have
|
|
fucked since the above was written. I don't know that I shall say
|
|
anything more about the lady, so tell of her cuntal peculiarity here.
|
|
She was plump, fair-faced, had a fine complexion, and in face strongly
|
|
resembled the queen. She was to be married.)
|
|
|
|
When her young man came to town, and Jenny went out with him, the girl
|
|
upbraided herself. When I next saw her after his visit she felt herself
|
|
a deceiving wretch, and cried. Now would I please desist, and not make
|
|
her sin any more. But the persuasion was too great, the recollection of
|
|
her pleasure too strong, and never did I go away without having plugged
|
|
her.
|
|
|
|
Did she love her young man? Yes she supposed she did; he was kind,
|
|
attentive, and would make a good husband. She wanted to get married, to
|
|
have a home of her own; besides he was not a workman, but a tradesman,
|
|
and when married they would have a shop, and be in a higher position.
|
|
She always spoke more of the house and shop, and her liberty, than of
|
|
her young man.
|
|
|
|
She was of a highly nervous organization, and through me she was to be
|
|
shocked severely. She half fainted the first day I took liberties with
|
|
her, thunder and lightning gave her an inclination that way, twice
|
|
afterwards she nearly fainted, any sudden thing annoyed her and turned
|
|
her white. One occasion I'll tell of now, the other in due course.
|
|
|
|
We fucked on the sofa after the first day; but though large, it was not
|
|
like a bed, so afterwards we used to go to her bed-room. I used to leave
|
|
my hat and stick downstairs, so that in case of surprise I might stand
|
|
in the hall, and say I had called to enquire. It was a stupid thing to
|
|
do as I found out, and then I used to take it into the bed-room. I had
|
|
fucked her one afternoon, when a double knock came at the street-door, I
|
|
knew it. "It's my wife," I said. Down I rushed for my hat, and returned
|
|
to the bed-room; and then Jenny opened the door. She had called to make
|
|
some enquiry, and went away. I heard the door close, but no further
|
|
noise or movement, then crept downstairs.
|
|
|
|
There sat Jenny on a chair, just recovering from a half faint. "Oh!"
|
|
said she, "I nearly dropped down." "Ah! she would have knocked you down
|
|
my dear, if your cunt could have spoken and said what was inside it."
|
|
But Jenny never could joke. It was always dreadful, and she was to be
|
|
punished in some way for her evil deeds with me. A few tears, and then a
|
|
little baudy chaffing brought smiles again on her face.
|
|
|
|
I delighted in talking baudy to her, told her smutty stories about the
|
|
women I had had, described their charms, and any special lasciviousness
|
|
connected with them. Her astonishment was great; her curiosity intense;
|
|
she in return told me all she knew about every other woman, and all her
|
|
own little baudy doings. Never was a woman so frank about such matters.
|
|
When I left her I doubt whether her dear John could have told her half
|
|
what she could have told him about fucking, and the two articles that
|
|
copulation is done with.
|
|
|
|
Her talk was all about her sisters, and principally of the married one
|
|
who came to sleep with her; a woman about twenty-eight years of age,
|
|
who had been married some years, and had two children, the last one four
|
|
years old. She, or rather he, did not mean to have any more, they could
|
|
not afford to keep them. "How did they stop it?" I asked Jenny. She did
|
|
not know. But one night the sister wanted particularly to sleep at home,
|
|
and had asked Jenny if for once she would sleep in the house alone. She
|
|
consented though frightened. I proposed sleeping with her, and we passed
|
|
a very delicious night together: a man and woman fresh to each
|
|
other, always do in bed. What a night of feeling, frigging, sniffing,
|
|
inspecting, and fucking it was!
|
|
|
|
At all times, no matter what we began talking about, cunt and cock were
|
|
sure to become the subject. That night I learned that her sister had
|
|
slept away, expecting to catch her husband out in some infidelities.
|
|
Since he had determined to have no more children, he made her frig him
|
|
instead of fucking; so the sister went short of cock and had to frig
|
|
herself. That annoyed her. Then when he fucked her he did not do it
|
|
properly, he cheated her sister, Jenny said. I was a long time in
|
|
getting out of Jenny what the man did, at length she said, that just
|
|
as the stuff was coming, he pulled it out, and it went all over her
|
|
sister's thighs or her belly, and often before she had had her own
|
|
pleasure. Her sister thought it was just as well not to be married, as
|
|
to go on like that.
|
|
|
|
That was not all. He used at first to do it every night, and now not
|
|
once a week, said he could do without it, that he did not care about
|
|
it, and so on. She believed that he had other women, and that was more
|
|
aggravating because she wanted it herself more than ever. She was not
|
|
so well, she told Jenny for want of fucking, she liked it, and would
|
|
willingly have more children though she was so poor. I asked cautiously
|
|
if she had heard of the skins which people put over their pricks, and
|
|
into which they spent their seed? Jenny had not. I explained what they
|
|
where. She said she would ask her sister about it. I cautioned her about
|
|
showing that she knew too much. A few days afterwards Jenny told me her
|
|
sister had tried them, but they did not like them, besides they could
|
|
not afford them. What Jenny's sister paid for French letters I don't
|
|
know, I used to pay nine pence each. I fucked Jenny with one on just to
|
|
instruct her.
|
|
|
|
These two women talked often about such matters; and each day Jenny told
|
|
me what her sister had said. Soon I knew all about her sister's doings,
|
|
from the night she lost her virginity to the birth of her last child.
|
|
The little fucking that the sister had, and her longing for more
|
|
affected me considerably; I quite longed to see this hot-bummed,
|
|
cunt-neglected wife, and soon my curiosity was to be gratified in a way
|
|
I little expected.
|
|
|
|
Jenny and I settled down quite matrimonially, I saw her certainly four
|
|
days a week, or else every day excepting Sundays. At times I spent the
|
|
whole day there, took wine, and meat, and newspapers. She cooked, and
|
|
very badly. We ate and drank together, and fucked, she cried about John
|
|
and her wickedness, and her fears of being found out. Then I read to her
|
|
the news, and also every baudy book I could get hold of, and explained
|
|
to her every use that could be made of our tools, both male and female,
|
|
from flat-cocking to buggery, so far as I knew,--but I did not know so
|
|
much as I do now.
|
|
|
|
To prevent its being known I was there, we got quite cunning. I was not
|
|
to come at eleven o'clock, because then the butcher came; nor at twelve,
|
|
because the girls were always at the window next door; between one and
|
|
two o'clock I was safe, because the family was always at dinner at that
|
|
time; at three the milkman came, and I avoided him. So with a little
|
|
trouble I pretty well escaped observation, during the eight or ten weeks
|
|
which I did husband duty, and perhaps as much as some two husbands would
|
|
have done.
|
|
|
|
Once she was awfully uneasy, for her courses had not come on, and shed
|
|
flood of tears. She would lose her John, poor fellow! When in that
|
|
way she was always pitying him, but she was always irregular in her
|
|
menstruation, which rendered it difficult to judge of her condition. Oh!
|
|
she was sure she was now in the family way, she had symptoms; she had
|
|
asked her sister how she had felt when she had conceived, and her own
|
|
symptoms were the same. "My God what shall I do!--I'll drown myself,
|
|
I will,--I shall never be able to face him,--poor fellow!" "Go and
|
|
get something, go and see some one." She went, took a dose of what she
|
|
called "hikery-pikery," and the ugly red stream came on. I don't believe
|
|
she was in the family way. Years after I heard she had never had a
|
|
child, though long married.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XX.
|
|
|
|
A Saturday afternoon.--Copulation interrupted.--Retreat cut
|
|
off.--Under the bed.--Enter sister.--The new dress.--Heat
|
|
and sweat.--Undressing.--Jenny's anxiety.--Sweating much,
|
|
and stripping.--Nature in its simplicity.--Nature in its
|
|
vulgarity.--Delicious peeps.--A cunt near my nose.--Erotic
|
|
recklessness.--Fist-fucking.
|
|
|
|
And now I was to become acquainted with her sister,--the married one.
|
|
Jenny had no brother, had none of that knowledge about boy's cocks which
|
|
girls of the humbler classes have when they have brothers. I sometimes
|
|
think that boys in the humbler classes show their cocks to their
|
|
sisters; I don't recollect a girl I have fucked who did not say she had
|
|
seen her brother's cock.
|
|
|
|
My knowledge of her sister's dissatisfaction with the small amount of
|
|
fucking she got, her disappointment at having her husband's sperm on
|
|
her thighs instead of up her cunt, and her very reasonable fears that at
|
|
times it went into other receptacles besides her own, came forcibly to
|
|
my mind. It would have been odd if it had not, for every time I poked
|
|
Jenny we talked about her sister, indeed all our talk, unless about her
|
|
sweetheart, and her fears was about fucking. I don't recollect any woman
|
|
I have had who was so anxious to know all, and delighted to hear of my
|
|
amours, and the descriptions I gave of my various women. If I described
|
|
their cunts she was amused beyond measure; and to tell all this suited
|
|
me exactly. For all that she thought it wicked, and that they and I, and
|
|
she, would be punished by the Almighty (her ideas about the action of
|
|
Providence were peculiar).
|
|
|
|
It was the good fortune of her married sister to give me one of the most
|
|
laughable, but yet natural, salacious, voluptuous treats I ever had,
|
|
without her knowing she had done so,--and from that came consequences
|
|
which affected that lady herself.
|
|
|
|
I have always been highly delighted to see modest women naked or
|
|
undress, or doing their toilet and little affairs, when they had no idea
|
|
that any one saw them. I have looked through dozens of key-holes, bored
|
|
holes in doors, waited breathless and half-naked for hours at night,
|
|
have risen by day-light to enable me to get these treats. I had seen as
|
|
already said, the cunts of my aunt and cousins, young ladies and others
|
|
bathing, etc. (and as I shall tell of, have since seen a noble lady frig
|
|
herself.) I have seen in fact modest ladies at their most decent, as
|
|
well as the most indelicate of their toilet performances, and think
|
|
I prefer looking at them under such circumstances, rather than at the
|
|
beautiful voluptuous creatures who undress willingly in my presence, for
|
|
those are so intent on displaying their charms to the best advantage, to
|
|
get a male erection and its crisis, as soon as possible, make much too
|
|
evident what they do it for.
|
|
|
|
Jenny's sister gave me one of those natural displays. Had the lady been
|
|
drilled in the art of unfolding her charms for the excitement of a male,
|
|
and driving him into erotic fury, she could not have more effectually
|
|
done so. Of the many displays of female charms (of modest females)
|
|
I have seen, I never had one so gradual, natural, voluptuous, and
|
|
cock-stiffening, as she unconsciously gave me.
|
|
|
|
I called on Jenny one Saturday afternoon, she had said I had better go
|
|
quite early, but I did not. It was another sultry day, thunder had been
|
|
heard, the atmosphere was heavy, but no rain had fallen; and the sun was
|
|
bright and blazing hot. Said Jenny, "I'm frightened to let you stop, my
|
|
sister is going to leave off work early, and she will be here about five
|
|
o'clock,--don't come in." I would. "We shan't be half-an-hour,--it's
|
|
not half-past three." A kiss, and a twiddle on her cunt settled the
|
|
matter, and we went to her bed-room. She was on the bed, I between her
|
|
thighs, ready to drop into her, indeed I'm not sure that my prick had
|
|
not touched her cunt, when a knock and a ring came at the street-door.
|
|
|
|
To fully understand what follows it should be known that the old lady
|
|
my friend, for fear that the rooms should be used; had locked up all the
|
|
rooms but the parlours and a little closet overlooking the street, and
|
|
the servants' bed-room, and had taken away the keys. I did not know that
|
|
then, I knew it that day.
|
|
|
|
"Oh! my God it's my sister,--what shall I do?--I shall be ruined." Pale
|
|
as death, I thought she was going to faint again.
|
|
|
|
"Don't be nervous, I'll go and hide in the room below, and when she is
|
|
downstairs or up here, go out quietly, and leave the street-door ajar."
|
|
"Oh! all the rooms are locked up." "I'll go into the parlours then,
|
|
--you get her downstairs." "Oh! she always goes into the parlour first,
|
|
and sits down a minute, and talks." There was no time for us to talk,
|
|
more, for the woman knocked again. "Fetch my hat and stick (it was in
|
|
the parlour),--you get her into the kitchen, then I'll slip out leaving
|
|
the street-door ajar." Down we both went, three stairs at a time, up
|
|
I went again with hat and umbrella, and had only got to the top when
|
|
I heard poor trembling Jenny opening the street-door. I leant over the
|
|
banisters, and listened.
|
|
|
|
"I've knocked twice Jenny." "Did you?--I was dozing,--the thundery
|
|
weather makes me so queer.--Have a cup of tea, and take a table out
|
|
into the garden,--it will be fresher there to have tea."
|
|
|
|
"No I've got my new dress, it will rumple it if it's long in the bundle,
|
|
I must open it. Such a pretty one,--you will like it I think.--Tom did
|
|
when I showed him the pattern,--I'll take it up to the bed-room, and
|
|
hang it up."
|
|
|
|
Jenny's voice rose almost to a shriek. "Oh! no, no, don't,--come and
|
|
have tea first,--I'm so thirsty, so tired,--come downstairs." "Well you
|
|
go and make it, I'll only just hang it up in the bed-room, and come down
|
|
directly," said her sister.
|
|
|
|
Jenny objecting, the sister answered angrily, "What are you in such a
|
|
hurry for tea for?--it's not time,--well have it by yourself, I can't
|
|
drink it,--I had a lot of beer at dinner, and Tom gave me nearly a pint
|
|
before I left him,--it was so hot, I was so thirsty,--it's on my chest
|
|
now,--I can't put tea on the top of it yet." "Well if you won't, I may
|
|
as well go up with you," said Jenny. Footsteps came nearer, and hat,
|
|
stick, and self, I threw under the bed. Jenny came in looking like
|
|
death. "She won't find me here,--get her down soon," was all I had time
|
|
to say in a whisper before the sister following Jenny entered the room.
|
|
I had quite hidden myself.
|
|
|
|
The bed had been a good one, the old gentleman and lady had slept on it
|
|
for years; it was large and handsome, but being shabby and worn out, had
|
|
that very month only been put to servants' use. Round it were old red
|
|
valances hanging to the floor, things not given to servants. No sooner
|
|
was I under the bed, than I saw there were little openings at the seams,
|
|
and some moth-holes, which permitted me to see through them. At one spot
|
|
near to my shoulder as I lay crouching and doubled up, was a long slit
|
|
where the valance had been torn down. By raising myself on my elbow,
|
|
and squeezing my head against the mattress I could see perfectly, but
|
|
no person in the room would have noticed me, even though the room was as
|
|
bright as day, for the thick red hangings hid me in darkness under the
|
|
bed, and I was on the side away from the window. I gazed earnestly at
|
|
Jenny's sister through this opening and others.
|
|
|
|
She was a well-grown, strong woman, with a handsome round face, and dark
|
|
hair and eyes; she had shortish petticoats, and thickish ankles in good
|
|
lace-up boots which, made much noise as she walked about. She had a
|
|
huge paper parcel in her hands, which she placed on the bed; then for a
|
|
moment she rested her bum on the bed-side, and Jenny did the same by the
|
|
side of her. The parcel was between them, her ankles were within a few
|
|
inches of my nose; I gently lifted the valance, and saw up the calf of
|
|
her legs, her petticoats cut as they were in those days, being drawn up
|
|
by sitting down. I remember almost every word, every action which took
|
|
place on that memorable afternoon, and not a movement escaped me.
|
|
|
|
"I can't untie it,--cut it." "The scissors are downstairs." "I'll go and
|
|
fetch them." "Oh! no,--where is the knife that I cut my corns with?" "Oh
|
|
I never mind,--there, I've done it,--I've broken it,"--and she rose up
|
|
as did Jenny from the bed, and both now stood standing facing the side
|
|
of the bed where I lay.
|
|
|
|
I heard the rustling of paper, the rustling of a dress, the noise of
|
|
feet paddling about. "Oh! it _is_ nice,--what did it cost?--who made
|
|
it?" "I made the skirt, and Miss Skinner the body,--she charged me seven
|
|
and six,--it's not dear, is it?--I'll hang it up, then the creases will
|
|
come out." "Let's hang it up first." And then on a peg at the back
|
|
of the door the dress was hung up, and for a moment, both women stood
|
|
admiring it, their backs towards me and the bed.
|
|
|
|
"Look," said the sister, "it just wants a little something done to the
|
|
sleeves,--she said it was not finished there,--oh! yes here it is,--I
|
|
would not wait for her, I can easily do it myself,--I was glad to get
|
|
it, and half feared I should not get it for Sunday,--the old beast never
|
|
keeps her promise, but she has this time,--I gave her sixpence
|
|
extra. Oh I my gracious how hot it is,--I'm sweating all over,--it's
|
|
awful,--I'll pull off my frock, then I'll finish the sleeves as it hangs
|
|
up,--get us the needle and thread Jenny,--just thread a needle dear,
|
|
while I pull off my frock."
|
|
|
|
"Don't," said Jenny in an agitated manner, "let's have tea first." "No
|
|
I must finish it," and as she spoke she undid her dress, and slipped it
|
|
off. A beautiful handsome pair of breasts came in view. "Oh! Lord look
|
|
at my chemise,--look how I've sweated--see how the stain from the dress
|
|
has gone through under my arms,--I stink of sweat,--how glad I shall be
|
|
when the weather is cooler." As she said that with a slight effort she
|
|
drew her arms through the sleeves of her chemise, and lifting her
|
|
freed arms showed a pair of black hairy armpits. I began to thrill and
|
|
cock-stiffen. She lifted her fine arms up, and looked at the stained
|
|
chemise as it hung over her stays, then with a heave and a push she
|
|
freed her breasts, so that they were right over the top of her stays
|
|
showing the nipples; then with naked arms, she began to work at the
|
|
sleeves of the dress hanging up behind the door.
|
|
|
|
Jenny was all this time moving about in a restless manner, taking every
|
|
now and then a hurried glance at the valance of the bed which concealed
|
|
me; and as it seemed to me placing herself in such a position, as
|
|
to prevent my seeing her sister's upper nakedness; but it was quite
|
|
useless, I could see all she had exposed.
|
|
|
|
She worked a few minutes talking to Jenny, who was making as much noise
|
|
with her feet as she could. Then the sister looked up, and leaving off
|
|
her needlework said, "This will make Tom want to do it to me,--a new
|
|
dress always does, when he sees me in it,--he ain't done it lately, he
|
|
will to-morrow." They both laughed, and she went to work again.
|
|
|
|
Again she stopped, Jenny then seated herself at the edge of the bed over
|
|
me. "Oh! how awfully hot I am,--what a bore petticoats are,--I declare
|
|
I've a good mind to leave them off this weather." She stepped forwards.
|
|
"I'll take them off, I can slammack about to-night,--no one will see
|
|
me." "Oh! no don't," said Jenny in an excited way; but she quickly
|
|
unlaced her stays, untied her petticoats, and slipped them down to her
|
|
ankles. Her chemise which was no longer held up to her shoulders by the
|
|
arms, slipped down with them, and she stood naked before me excepting
|
|
her boots and stockings. She seemed to have forgotten that her chemise
|
|
was no longer held up, for just as the petticoats fell below her cunt,
|
|
she made a slight grasp as if to hold them up, then she gave a laugh,
|
|
"That's cool enough," said she.
|
|
|
|
"Don't,--what are you doing?" shrieked Jenny, "put on your
|
|
chemise,--you're naked,--you're naked,"--and she tried to pull up the
|
|
chemise; but the woman stepped away from the clothes as they lay on the
|
|
floor, caught up the chemise, threw it on the bed, and placed petticoats
|
|
and stays on a chair by the washhand stand. I saw large hips, a mass of
|
|
dark hair at her cunt, a large white backside, fine round thighs, and
|
|
limbs; in brief a fine, plump, well-fed woman, a splendid sight. The
|
|
innocence of the action was beautiful. "Oh! isn't it nice and cool," she
|
|
said, "I've got so hot walking."
|
|
|
|
"Put on your things,--what are you doing?" said Jenny. "Oh! isn't it
|
|
nice!--I wish one could go in one's skin this weather," she replied. She
|
|
scratched her motte-hair, and felt her arse, and seemed so pleased with
|
|
herself. Then she looked under each of her armpits. "Oh! Lord how hot I
|
|
am,--where is a towel?" She took one, and began gently rubbing herself
|
|
with it under her armpits, put it down, and again scratched the hair of
|
|
her motte.
|
|
|
|
"I'm surprised at you," said Jenny walking about, and I'm sure trying
|
|
to prevent me from seeing her sister, though she always declared to me
|
|
afterwards that she had no such intention. "Cover yourself, you'll catch
|
|
cold." "Catch cold?--nonsense,--and you have the window shut also,--what
|
|
do you shut it for?" "Oh! I can't bear it open in thundering weather."
|
|
The fact was we always shut it when we went to the bed to exclude noise,
|
|
and left the door open, to hear if any one knocked at the street-door.
|
|
"Put something on you at all events," said Jenny, "it's not decent."
|
|
"Decent?--you _are_ modest all of a sudden."
|
|
|
|
"It's delicious!" She walked round the bed to the window, opened it,
|
|
came back naked as she was, and went on working at her dress; and so for
|
|
a quarter of an hour did I see this handsomely-made woman naked, first
|
|
her side, then her belly, then her bum came in view, till I was driven
|
|
mad by the state of my penis which was throbbing with excitement, and
|
|
urging me to frig it.
|
|
|
|
"Well that will do," she said as she finished, "the creases will never
|
|
be noticed where they are,"--and she walked backwards to the bed, the
|
|
short distance she was from it, and sat down at the edge just where the
|
|
valance had dropped. With care I pulled the valance, and the seam opened
|
|
more, but not much. I raised myself on my elbow, my eyes to the opening.
|
|
There were the thighs and legs stretching out to the floor, her bum
|
|
was at the mere edge of the bed, her cunt but about six inches above my
|
|
nose. I had a wonderfully keen scent for the aroma of a woman, and swear
|
|
I smelt her cunt distinctly, though I could not see it. She sat there
|
|
for full five minutes, talking to Jenny about the dress, whilst I kept
|
|
sniffing up the aroma from her flesh and her love-orifice, and feeling
|
|
my quivering prick, whilst my greedy eyes gloated on the fat thighs, so
|
|
far as I could see them.
|
|
|
|
At length she turned round. "I'll put my slippers on,"--and sitting down
|
|
opposite the bed on the chair on which she had placed her petticoats,
|
|
she put one leg up, and began unlacing the boot, then between and under
|
|
the thighs I saw the dark hairy notch. She had scarcely put herself in
|
|
that attitude before putting her foot down, she came to the bed, put one
|
|
foot up, and there continued unlacing it,--and there was her cunt just
|
|
visible, and within a foot of my greedy eyes, whilst she leisurely
|
|
unlaced the boot on the bed, the other foot on the floor. Had I placed
|
|
her there for the purpose I could not have done it better.
|
|
|
|
"Oh! don't," said Jenny, "take your foot off." "What's the matter?"
|
|
replied she as if just noticing Jenny's excitement, "you've got one of
|
|
your foolish fits on I think." "You will dirty the bed,--take your foot
|
|
off." "Nonsense it's quite dry, besides it's on my chemise,--I wish
|
|
you'd go and make tea, if you are in such a hurry,--one would think you
|
|
had got St. Vitus' dance,"--for Jenny in her agitation, and also to make
|
|
noise to prevent any indiscreet movement of mine being noticed, had kept
|
|
moving about noisily and restlessly the whole time.
|
|
|
|
Silenced, she said no more, but still walked restlessly about, went at
|
|
the back of her sister, and glared at the valance where she guessed my
|
|
eyes were peeping. Her face was the picture of anxiety. But I did not
|
|
look at that long, I was rivetted on her sister's form and dark-haired
|
|
cunt; that cunt was at times slightly opened by the attitude she was in,
|
|
and altered its shape as she moved. I saw the thick dark hair curling
|
|
away until I lost sight of it in the direction of her arse-hole, and I
|
|
could smell her cunt again I swear, my excitement grew intense, I could
|
|
not keep my hand from my prick, I knew the delicate position I was in,
|
|
the injury I should do the poor girl if found out;--but a spend in sight
|
|
of that cunt and splendid pair of thighs I must have. I just touched
|
|
myself, holding my breath restraining all emotion, gave one or two
|
|
frigs, and a shower of sperm fell over my trowsers. If any man might
|
|
be pardoned for having a solitary pleasure, it was I, placed in such a
|
|
lust-stirring situation.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXI.
|
|
|
|
Further undressing.--Slippers wanted.--Toilet operations.--
|
|
The effects of hash and beer.--A windy escape.--Feeling for
|
|
the pot.--Sisters exeunt.--A crushed hat, and soiled
|
|
trowsers.--A narrow escape.--My benevolent intentions
|
|
towards Jenny's sister.
|
|
|
|
I thought I had had my pleasure in silence, but I was wrong, I was
|
|
heard, I had given a slight sigh. The anxious ears of poor Jenny heard
|
|
it. She made increased noise whilst her sister went tranquilly on, and
|
|
unlaced her boots without taking any notice or hearing me, whilst the
|
|
last drop of sperm was running over, and I was still looking at her
|
|
cunt, and sniffing.
|
|
|
|
Then she stood looking at her boots. "Ah! this one wants soling,--where
|
|
are my slippers?--where did I put them?" They were just under the
|
|
bed, close by me. "Here they are," said Jenny rushing to the side, and
|
|
pulling them out she gave them to her sister who took them, but instead
|
|
of putting them on pulled off both her stockings. "I'll wash these
|
|
to-night," said she, "and darn them the first thing to-morrow,--I'll cut
|
|
my corns." "Oh! do come down and have tea,--you can cut your corns after
|
|
you have washed your feet to-night,--oh! put something on, and come." "I
|
|
won't be long,--you go and make tea." "No I shan't, I know you'll be
|
|
an hour,--it will be spoiled." "I can cut them so much better by
|
|
daylight,--I cut my toe last Saturday night you know," and without more
|
|
ado she walked round the foot of the bed to the other side, where in
|
|
front of the window was a small dressing-table, a looking-glass, and a
|
|
chair by the side of it. She was now absolutely naked from head to foot.
|
|
As she neared the window she said, "Oh! how delicious the air is blowing
|
|
upon one's skin,--I quite hate putting on my chemise again." Jenny still
|
|
kept moving about, and shuffling her feet; but the sister engrossed in
|
|
herself, kept on talking about her dress, her Tom, the place she was
|
|
going to on the morrow, and seemed to notice nothing. At length she
|
|
placed one foot on the chair by the window, and began cutting her corns.
|
|
And now I had a view of her backside and naked form from that side of
|
|
the bed.
|
|
|
|
When she had finished one foot, she put it down, and sat on the edge of
|
|
the bed. "Poof! how hot it makes me stooping,--it makes me sweat,--but
|
|
I'll do the other,--drat the tight boots, they make corns,"--and up went
|
|
the other foot. Out went my head, and up went the valance, but I was
|
|
fearful of being seen, so took out my pen-knife, and cut a long slit in
|
|
the valance. Then my eye was never still to her buttocks, but I could
|
|
not see her seat of pleasure so well, so I took to the floor again, and
|
|
saw her cunt better.
|
|
|
|
Then she stood for a minute looking over a little white blind into the
|
|
gardens. "There is Mrs. B----- and her daughter walking." "Oh! pray put
|
|
something on,--if they should see you." "Impossible they can't,"--and
|
|
she stooped down, and began operating on the other corn. The cunt opened
|
|
a little and so did something else, for out popped a pretty loud, short,
|
|
sharp fart.
|
|
|
|
"You beast," said Jenny. "I beg your pardon," said the sister, "I'm
|
|
always windy when I have eaten hash, and drank beer,--I could not help
|
|
it." "It's dirty," growled Jenny. "You're far enough off, and it's
|
|
better out than in,"--and ceasing to chuckle, and as if half ashamed of
|
|
herself she went on corn-cutting without speaking, but that did not suit
|
|
Jenny who soon began a conversation, and shuffling about. She made no
|
|
further allusion to the fart.
|
|
|
|
When she had finished it only seemed as if I had been looking at her
|
|
there for a few seconds, but on that side of the bed she must have given
|
|
me ten minutes of that lascivious gratification. I was so engrossed,
|
|
so delighted that even the fart did not amuse me; it annoyed me; for
|
|
it made her alter her position, and withdraw from my lustful gaze, that
|
|
charm which perhaps no one but her husband had ever gazed upon so long
|
|
and so earnestly.
|
|
|
|
Then she went back again to the other side of the bed, put on stockings
|
|
and slippers, and getting up, "Where is the pot" said she, "is it this
|
|
side or the other?" and began feeling under the valance within a few
|
|
inches of me, but it was not there. Evidently it was usually there,
|
|
indeed I know it was, but Jenny and I both pissed before we began to
|
|
think of fucking, and I had put the pot under the washing-stand.
|
|
|
|
"Not there," shrieked Jenny rushing to the pot. The sister turned
|
|
round and saw it, I peeped just in time to see her thighs open as she
|
|
squatted, then came a heavy thump on the bed. The sister said, "What's
|
|
the matter?---don't give way,--don't be a fool now." Then without
|
|
pissing she got up, and came to the bedside. Poor Jenny excited beyond
|
|
bearing by anxiety, had fainted on seeing her sister on the point of
|
|
discovering me in searching for the pot.
|
|
|
|
She shook Jenny, threw water on her face, and Jenny soon recovered.
|
|
"What on earth's the matter?--you give way, you do,--a woman need not
|
|
faint like that, I'm sure," said she angrily, "you scared me dreadful."
|
|
Jenny said nothing, but repeated that she wanted her tea, that thundery
|
|
weather always made her feel sick and faint.
|
|
|
|
"Well we will go down at once,--I did not think you were ill." "You
|
|
might have seen I was." "I did not, but I'll be ready in a minute."
|
|
Again she squatted on the pot, thighs wide open, belly towards me,
|
|
pissed like a water-spout, and let one or two little farts of which no
|
|
notice was taken, whilst I with cock stiff was looking on, and again
|
|
frigging myself. I could not help it, for every turn, every movement
|
|
she made was such as if done expressly to show off her naked charms, and
|
|
drive me randy-mad.
|
|
|
|
"Give me my night-gown Jenny, it's at the foot of the bed, and I'll only
|
|
put my dress over it,--it's so hot." Jenny turned to take the night-gown
|
|
from the bed. "I'll just wash a bit," said her sister, "I'm almost in a
|
|
lather with heat and sweat." Pouring out water in the basin she placed
|
|
it on the floor, and turning towards the bed squatted, and sluiced her
|
|
cunt, then rubbed it dry with the towel. "That has made me comfortable,"
|
|
she remarked, and began putting on her frock.
|
|
|
|
As she did so she remarked, "You have not emptied the pot to-day,--you
|
|
should, it smells this hot weather." "Yes I did," said Jenny innocently.
|
|
"Well then you've peed a lot." "I've done it once or twice since
|
|
morning," said Jenny hastily.
|
|
|
|
Then the sister went out first. When half-way downstairs I emerged from
|
|
my hiding-place and listened, heard Jenny say, "I may as well empty the
|
|
slops, you go and see if the water boils." Up came Jenny. "Oh! I'm
|
|
ready to die,--hish!--be quiet." She emptied the pot and waters into a
|
|
slop-pail, and went downstairs quickly whilst I followed her silently.
|
|
I was covered with flue, and had managed to crush my hat; my trows-ers
|
|
were partly unbuttoned, and one leg covered with spunk. We got to the
|
|
ground-floor almost together, and there I stopped. So soon as I heard
|
|
she was in the kitchen I moved along the passage, and slipped out,
|
|
leaving the street-door ajar. Luckily a cab was close by, and I jumped
|
|
into it. The first thing I did was to button up properly. I bolted past
|
|
my servant as she opened the door to me, took another hat, wrapped the
|
|
old one up in paper, and the same night tore out the lining, and threw
|
|
both away in a bye-road.
|
|
|
|
I was in an indescribable state of excitement after this delicious
|
|
afternoon, and was seized with an almost delirious letch for the woman.
|
|
I was sleepless for a night or two, scheming how to possess her.
|
|
|
|
Early on the Monday I got to Jenny's, and spent the rest of the day
|
|
fucking, and talking of the sight I had seen. My imagination helped to
|
|
allay my excitement, for the form of her sister though more beautiful
|
|
than Jenny's had still a family likeness to her, and as I clasped Jenny
|
|
in my arms I pictured her as her sister, and enjoyed her as such.
|
|
|
|
I was cautious in my disclosures, for I found that Jenny who had been
|
|
most inquisitive about other women, and delighted to hear about how they
|
|
talked, and walked, and pissed, and fucked; was annoyed when I talked of
|
|
her sister's nakedness. I ought not to have looked,--why I had seen more
|
|
than she, her own sister,--a poor woman, and married, and she to have
|
|
her thing looked at by a strange man,--her husband could not have seen
|
|
more,--and so on. So though I described her sister's charms I took care
|
|
not to express any admiration of them, nor to say I had frigged myself,
|
|
and felt desire for her. Jenny had not noticed that my trowsers were
|
|
undone, and sperm-soiled. I had not noticed that myself till I got out
|
|
of the house on that eventful afternoon.
|
|
|
|
On the Monday when I saw Jenny, she declared that another hour's anxiety
|
|
would have killed her. We found that the time from the minute the sister
|
|
came into the bed-room, to the time she went downstairs was two hours.
|
|
Jenny thought that she must have been half-an-hour working at her dress.
|
|
Jenny had walked round the room trying if she could see me, or if I was
|
|
looking, but could only do so once or twice at the holes, or fancy she
|
|
did; but the long tear in the valance through which I could see with
|
|
both eyes at once, and just above which her sister had put up her legs,
|
|
she had never noticed; nor did she believe me when I said that I could
|
|
see the cunt when her sister's backside was towards me, when near the
|
|
window. So I made her lie down, and look from the floor whilst I stood
|
|
naked, pretending to cut my corns. Then she said it was a shame of me to
|
|
be peeping. She had a clear inspection from my bum-hole to my ballocks,
|
|
and knew I had seen the cunt.
|
|
|
|
She did not contend any longer. "Do you mean to say, that if you had
|
|
been under the bed, and had known a naked man was cutting his corns, you
|
|
would not have peeped out?" No she would not; but had it been a naked
|
|
woman perhaps she would, Jenny replied. So after she had heard from me
|
|
how much I had seen of her sister's body, between her back-bone and her
|
|
navel, and I had told her something which made her say, "Law has she!"
|
|
though I can't recollect what it was, the subject dropped. Then I learnt
|
|
from her more about her sister's wages, mode of life, and where she
|
|
worked; for although the thing seemed ridiculous, I had a letch, and
|
|
meant to try to put into that young woman if possible, though I had not
|
|
then stroked Jenny many weeks. I liked variety.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXII.
|
|
|
|
The Sunday following.--Chaste calculations.--The sister
|
|
alone.--My embarrassement.--Ale fetched.--Warm
|
|
conversation.--Stiffening.--Bolder talk.--An exhibition of
|
|
masculinity.--A golden promise.--Lust creeping.--Baudy
|
|
dalliance.--Cock and cunt in conjunction.
|
|
|
|
On the following Sunday her young man was coming to London, and she was
|
|
to spend the day with him at his relatives. Her sister was to keep
|
|
the house, the husband was going elsewhere, so the sister would be
|
|
alone,--all provided it was fine weather. Jenny had promised her
|
|
Mistress that until her return she would never go out with her young
|
|
man, and that is how Jenny kept her word. She knew I would not tell,
|
|
would I?--I felt her cunt, and kissed her. "It's not very likely, is
|
|
it my pet?" Then she snivelled, said she was very wicked, and hoped God
|
|
would not punish her.
|
|
|
|
When I heard of this arrangement I lusted strongly. In vain I said to
|
|
myself, "What again a married woman! in comfortable circumstances for
|
|
her class, with two children,--a woman you have never spoken to,--can
|
|
you expect to get her!" I did not expect it, but had a burning desire to
|
|
see and speak to her, to look closely at, and have a chat with a woman
|
|
whose privates I had seen so nakedly. It seemed to me to promise a
|
|
titillating treat. Besides I had been so successful with women,--gay
|
|
women had even been anxious to get me,--that a half-belief came over me,
|
|
that if I had time, I could persuade even her to let me. Time was the
|
|
difficulty, for she did not yet even know me by face (so I thought, but
|
|
was wrong). At all events see her I would,--she was dissatisfied with
|
|
her fucking, that I knew; she might be randy, and then be much less
|
|
impregnable than she seemed; so I determined to see her on the Sunday
|
|
that Jenny went out.
|
|
|
|
I could think only of one powerful means of getting her, if anything
|
|
encouraged a hope, and that was by money. I had not too much then,
|
|
though getting better off, but determined if ten pounds would tempt her,
|
|
that she should have it. I was a long time I recollect pondering over
|
|
the sum. The Sunday turned out fine, I put the gold in my purse, and
|
|
went to the house just after their dinner-time, and after my luncheon,
|
|
at which I fed myself up well, and to give me courage took an extra
|
|
glass, for I had one of my nervous fits of funking come on, mixed with
|
|
doubts about the morality of deliberately trying a married woman.
|
|
|
|
She opened the door, I walked straight in. "Who are you?" "Where is the
|
|
housemaid?" said I, "I have promised Mrs. W-----to call and see from
|
|
time to time." "Oh! I'm her sister sir, my name is-----, I sleep here
|
|
every night sir, Mrs. W----- pays me to do so sir,--my sister is out
|
|
sir,--I'm very sorry, but she is not at all well from being confined to
|
|
the house so much,--I told her she might go to church,--it would be a
|
|
change, and give her a little fresh air;--she will be back at half-past
|
|
four sir." "Oh! so you are Mr. So-and-So?" "Yes I am." I walked into the
|
|
parlours. There was a large beer-jug and two tumblers on the table, and
|
|
ale in one glass. She rushed to take them away. "I beg pardon sir, but
|
|
Mrs. W------ said we might sit in the parlours, when we have done work,
|
|
and on Sundays besides, cause it's so dull in the kitchens." The woman
|
|
was agitated at her sister being out, and at being caught drinking beer
|
|
in the parlour; she thought I might make mischief, I suppose.
|
|
|
|
I told her that she need not disturb herself, for I should not stay
|
|
long, and kept looking with cock already stiffening into her face,
|
|
then at her arms, then at the bottom of her belly, and in my mind's eye
|
|
seeing the dark hair down there. I had planned conversation, but forgot
|
|
what to say, through thinking of her nakedness and sexual charms; and
|
|
stood staring at her till she turned her eyes away confused, and colored
|
|
up.
|
|
|
|
I continued to be embarrassed, and so lost recollection of all I had
|
|
intended to say and do, that I was actually going away. I asked one or
|
|
two stupid questions: if letters had come, if any one had been, and so
|
|
on; all the time thinking that I was looking through her clothes at her
|
|
naked charms. I was in a sort of a trance of baudiness which muddled me;
|
|
when noticing the ale-glass I asked, "What are you drinking?" "Fourpenny
|
|
ale sir." That reply broke the spell, my senses returned, I thought of
|
|
an excuse for stopping. "Give me a glass,--I'm thirsty." "That's the
|
|
last of it sir." "Can't you get some?" "The pot-boy brought that,--it's
|
|
Sunday, and the public is not always open." I looked at my watch. "It's
|
|
not church-time yet, send some one to fetch some,--I'm so thirsty, and
|
|
hot, and so tired,"--and I sat down. "I'm alone." "Is not your husband
|
|
here?" "No, no one." "Do you mind fetching me some?" "If you don't
|
|
mind waiting sir." "No." I gave her money. "How much?" "Oh! fill the
|
|
jug,--not with fourpenny,--with the best ale,--ask them to draw it
|
|
mild, and get me two bottles of ginger-beer". In a few minutes she was
|
|
back,--I had given her a five shilling piece. "You may keep the change."
|
|
"Thank you sir", said she quite touched and delighted. I always gave the
|
|
change to girls whom I wanted to poke.
|
|
|
|
In her absence I went all over the house that was not locked up, even to
|
|
the privy and coal-cellar, had satisfied myself that she was alone, and
|
|
was getting quite myself again when she came back.
|
|
|
|
"Have a glass." "Thank you sir." "So you are Jenny's sister,--Jane's her
|
|
name I think." Yes it was. "Aren't you afraid to be in the house of a
|
|
night?" No she was not. "Sit down." "Thank you sir,"--but she stood. "So
|
|
you are an upholstress,--sit down,"--and after a little pressure down
|
|
she sat. We took ale together, and no doubt I spoke with all that
|
|
kindness which a man shows towards a woman whom he desires to poke, I
|
|
have heard women say that I have a winning, persuasive manner.
|
|
|
|
Gradually the conversation became about herself. "You've two
|
|
children,--why not more?" "Oh! quite enough for poor people." "Well you
|
|
see I can't get any." "Poor people are sure to have lots." "Two is not a
|
|
lot,--how manage to stop at two?" "Oh! it's all chance." "Is not another
|
|
coming?" She was getting flushed and excited. "Lord no, I hope not."
|
|
"Don't you know?" "I don't." "Yes you do,--how old is your last?" "Four
|
|
years." "If I were your husband I'd have a dozen." "Well you say _you_
|
|
haven't any yet sir," said she. "No I can't get any." "Ah! if we had
|
|
your money!--but with we poor people is different,--it's hard enough to
|
|
fill the bellies of two." "And so you won't have your belly filled with
|
|
another little one,--won't you, eh!"
|
|
|
|
"Oh! Lord," said she laughing spite of herself, "you are plain-spoken."
|
|
I was in the vein now, did not say an improper word, but gave baudy
|
|
hints, smutty suggestions about the dullness of sleeping alone, of the
|
|
results of wives being away from husbands, etc., till her eyes twinkled,
|
|
and she laughed much. I had now broken down the barrier, had brought
|
|
myself to her level, and she as every other woman would have done, took
|
|
advantage of it, and began to return my chaffing and banter, every
|
|
woman feels instinctively that when a man is chaffing her (be it ever so
|
|
decently veiled), about fucking, that she may safely return it: both are
|
|
at once on a common level. A washerwoman would banter a prince, if the
|
|
subject was cunt, without the prince being offended. To talk of fucking
|
|
with a woman is to remove all social distinctions, and I had done it
|
|
without uttering at first a smutty word.
|
|
|
|
Jenny's sister went on chaffing, and drank ale freely. "Oh! I dare say,
|
|
but why don't _you_ have children?" "I can't get any I tell you, but I
|
|
try." "Not much at home," said she, "from all I have heard." "No I try
|
|
out as well, and get none,--I'm a safe man." Then I found she knew a
|
|
lot about me and my affairs; She had actually worked at my house on some
|
|
curtains, had seen me once, and knew my voice, though for the moment she
|
|
had not recollected my face with my hat on when I entered the door that
|
|
afternoon. But I had never seen her at my house to my knowledge, though
|
|
if I had I was not likely to have noticed a common upholstress.
|
|
|
|
We went on chaffing, looking in each other's faces, each knowing we were
|
|
talking about fucking. "Well Mrs.------ playing at mother and father's
|
|
a delicious amusement, is it not?" "I don't know." "If you don't
|
|
know we'd better try,--I'd give five pounds to be your husband for
|
|
an hour,--and five pounds would buy you anew dress." "It would buy me
|
|
three," said she without noticing the other part of my remark. "Three?"
|
|
"Yes three,--I can't afford more than thirty shillings for a best
|
|
dress." "Really!--such a beautiful creature as you ought to have plenty
|
|
of dress, for I have rarely seen a more lovely woman, and so well
|
|
grown,--I'll bet you have fine limbs." She was flattered, the praise
|
|
upset her, her eyes tinkled. Yes she might have done better she knew,
|
|
but it was to be. I went close to her, caught and kissed her. She made
|
|
not too strong a resistance, but got away. "That's going a little too
|
|
far." "That's the beginning of a game at mother and father, and you are
|
|
going to have the three dresses." She laughed in a funny way. "I don't
|
|
want to be a mother any more, so I don't want any games." But she seemed
|
|
to me to look as if she did.
|
|
|
|
What did she get for stopping at the house? Five shillings a week, and
|
|
her supper and breakfast,--that was an object. "Five shillings?--why
|
|
my kiss was worth that,--let me give you another, and I'll give you
|
|
ten shillings for the two." "You don't mean that," said she with a low
|
|
laugh. "On my soul yes,--but you must give me a kiss as well." She
|
|
shook her head. "It's going too far," said she. "There it is, I'll trust
|
|
you,--you won't take it without letting me." She was then sitting. I put
|
|
the half sovereign into her hand. "Thank you sir," said she softly. I
|
|
kissed her rapturously, she let me kiss half-a-dozen times, and whilst
|
|
doing I so took hold of her hand, and pressed it as if by accident
|
|
against my cock. She a married woman knew the hard line her hand pressed
|
|
against, for she moved her hand away. "Now your promise,--kiss me." "I
|
|
didn't promise." "You took the money." "There then," said she giving me
|
|
a kiss, and jumping up sharply, "we are going too far,--we really are
|
|
now,--we don't either of us know what we are about I think." "I don't
|
|
think I do," said I, "for though I never saw you before, I've never been
|
|
so struck with a woman in my life, I'd give ten pounds to be in bed with
|
|
you an hour."
|
|
|
|
I had been putting my cock straight in my trowsers, feeling and
|
|
squeezing my balls whenever I saw her looking at me. I fancied she kept
|
|
looking askant at that part of my person. She was getting red in face,
|
|
hot, and confused in manner. Just then I observed a bed pillow on the
|
|
sofa, she had I guessed been laying down after dinner. "Why here is
|
|
a pillow,--you've been on the sofa with your husband,--you have been
|
|
playing at mother and father here." She burst out into laughter. "Why
|
|
I've not seen him for a week." "Then you've been tickling by yourself."
|
|
"Tickling?" (it was said quite innocently.) "Yes between your legs."
|
|
"Oh! really now you are a going too far sir," said she jumping up again,
|
|
"you speak too freely,--I don't like it." Then she laughed, and said,
|
|
"Well--this--really is,--oh!"
|
|
|
|
"Not at all,--you are lovely, exquisite, delicious,--if you've really
|
|
not seen your husband for a week, let me,--who will know?--we are in the
|
|
house alone,--let us,"--and standing close to her I put my arms round
|
|
her, but I felt afraid of going too far.
|
|
|
|
"You must not talk like that." "Oh! nonsense,--I'll give you six
|
|
pounds." "Oh! no, you don't mean what you say,--it's wild talk." I took
|
|
out my purse, and putting six pounds on the table in gold, just as I had
|
|
done to her sister the ten pounds; there said I, "That is yours,"--and
|
|
pulled out my prick. She got up, and ran to the other side of the room
|
|
as if I had pulled out a pistol. "You're talking too plain sir,--it's
|
|
going too far,--if you expose yourself like that I'll go to the
|
|
street-door." I'm at a loss to know why I pitched upon six pounds, I had
|
|
intended ten, but cannot tell why I offered that particular sum. I have
|
|
often thought since, of what made me take that economical figure.
|
|
|
|
"Sit down." "I won't if you expose yourself,--it's not gentlemanlike." I
|
|
put my cock into my trowsers, then kissed her again, resistance was not
|
|
so strong. "Now sir don't." "Sit down my darling,"--and getting her to
|
|
the sofa we went on talking. "How foolish,--who would know,--why not
|
|
delight me,--why not take the money." "No." "Do now." "No." "Won't you?"
|
|
"Of course not,--no,--no." "Well kiss me." "There then." "Do let me
|
|
dear." "I won't,--I won't,--I shan't,--there."
|
|
|
|
Just then I noticed one of her garters was hanging down by her foot.
|
|
"Your garter's undone," said I. I stooped forwards, and took it up.
|
|
"Give it me." I kissed it. "No,--it's been so near where I want to go,
|
|
--I shall keep it till I've been there." "You will keep it a long time
|
|
then."
|
|
|
|
She drank more ale, it was sweet and strong, and I went on talking.
|
|
Thought I, "She must want it if she has not seen her husband for a
|
|
week." Where did she garter.--below or above knee? "Let me feel?" I felt
|
|
outside, then pinched the leg, then higher up. She began looking me full
|
|
in the face, and laughing at my smutty insinuations. I pulled her back
|
|
on the sofa, kissed her, and let her rise up again. I repeated the pull
|
|
and the kiss more than once, and then as she was rising up and saying,
|
|
"Now don't pull me about like that," I put her hand on my prick which
|
|
I had slipped out again. "Oh!"--and she let it go. Quick as lightning
|
|
I slipped a hand up her clothes to her cunt. "Let me now,--there's a
|
|
darling." "I shan't." "Do." "I shan't." She repulsed my hand, but did
|
|
not get away from me. I thought from the way she looked at me, and the
|
|
quiet manner in which she pushed away my hand, that she was hot with
|
|
lust, and could scarcely refuse me. I pulled her to me, and got my
|
|
finger on her clitoris. "Do let me feel your cunt, and fuck,--put my
|
|
prick in there,--let us,--do darling," said I twiddling like mad, and
|
|
rattling out a volume of baudiness.
|
|
|
|
She bore it all for a minute quietly, wriggling and saying, "I
|
|
shan't,--I won't,--no, now take your hand away." Then with a sudden
|
|
impulse she pushed me off, got up, and sat down further from me on the
|
|
sofa. "Oh! now be quiet,--let me think a minute,--I don't know whether
|
|
I'm on my heels or my head." She picked up something which had fallen at
|
|
her feet, as she had doubled herself down when my finger was stimulating
|
|
her randiness.
|
|
|
|
Then catching her by her waist I pulled her back on to the sofa, and
|
|
threw myself on her. "You shan't" were the last words I recollect her
|
|
uttering; as I threw up her clothes and felt the wet gash. My prick the
|
|
next instant was buried in it, and we were fucking.
|
|
|
|
"Don't,--oh.--take it out,--do,--oh!--oh!--ohoe!" she murmured. She
|
|
had fetched me, and pump; pump, pump, pump, went my spunk up her. Then
|
|
delicious oblivion. As I came to myself I found her arse still moving.
|
|
"Oh! do" she murmured. She was besides herself, with desire to spend.
|
|
|
|
But my prick instead of obeying me as it usually did on such exciting
|
|
occasions, refused, and shrinking left her cunt, to my intense vexation.
|
|
"I haven't done it," said she softly, and with disappointment as her bum
|
|
ceased its labors, and my tool lay dropping outside her quim.
|
|
|
|
We spoke no more, but I lay trying to squeeze it up again. To stiffen it
|
|
I felt up and round her, rubbed the tip on her spermy nymphoe, she made
|
|
gentle efforts to second me, but it was of no use, so I rolled off.
|
|
She sat up, and after looking at me for a minute with eyes filled with
|
|
baudiness, began like all women, to feel if her hair was all right.
|
|
"Were you just coming my dear?" She made no reply.
|
|
|
|
She had not taken any care to arrange her dress, it had dragged up
|
|
behind her bum, and the petticoats were up to her knees, the leg which
|
|
had lost its garter was half naked. Taking her round the waist I put my
|
|
hand on to her cunt, and titillated the clitoris. She let me go on,
|
|
and continued feeling about her hair. Then looking me full in the
|
|
face, looking as if she were ready to spend, she pushed me away.
|
|
"Don't,--don't,--I don't like it done that way." "You can do it that
|
|
way yourself, can't you?" "Of course I can." "I shall soon fuck again."
|
|
"Oh! I dare say," and she walked to the looking-glass, then went to the
|
|
window, and looked out into the garden without paying any heed to my
|
|
exciting remarks. I sat on the sofa feeling my cock, and trying to
|
|
stiffen it, but it was useless; so I tried to interest her in something
|
|
else, feeling annoyed, though I had nothing to be ashamed of.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXIII.
|
|
|
|
Jenny's bed-room.--The money hid.--On the bed.--Fears of
|
|
maternity.--Inspection of sex.--The use of a husband.--
|
|
Another Sunday.--Regrets and refusal.--Resistance overcome.--
|
|
Jenny's ignorance.--Her Master returns.--Difficulty in
|
|
getting at Jenny.--Her sister waylaid.--Against a fence.--
|
|
Jenny's marriage, and rise in life.
|
|
|
|
"Why don't you take the money?" said I. "You really mean it?" "Of
|
|
course." She took it up. "It's a real God-send,--it comes just in
|
|
time,--who'd have thought it?" said she as if to herself. "I must put
|
|
it where it can't be found, and take it home to-morrow." She went to
|
|
the door. "Aren't you going?" "No I'm going to do it again soon." "But
|
|
you're not." "But I am." Without reply she went upstairs. I had meant to
|
|
have ready a stiff-stander, when she came back, but changed my mind, and
|
|
followed her. She was nearly at the top when hearing me she waited, and
|
|
said, "What do you want?"
|
|
|
|
"I'm coming to see what you do." "You won't." "I will." "I'll come down
|
|
and wait till you are gone." "I'll stop till your sister comes home."
|
|
"Do go down sir," said she in a coaxing tone. "No." She sat down on the
|
|
top-stairs, I did the same a few stairs below her. Her knees were wide
|
|
apart, my mind went to the afternoon when I had seen her naked. That
|
|
glorious two hours. I stared in a voluptuous reverie, her cunt was as
|
|
visible to me through her clothes, as if she were naked, and my cock
|
|
began to swell. I stared on without uttering a word.
|
|
|
|
"What are you staring at?" said she at last, "go down, and I'll be down
|
|
in a minute." "I'm looking at your cunt, it's open slightly, I can see
|
|
my spunk in it." "Oh!" said she jumping up, "I never heard such a man in
|
|
my life." (She had the gold still in her hand.) "You have upset me so,
|
|
I don't know what I am about." She then turned her bum round towards
|
|
me, and I put my hand quickly up her clothes, as she went up the stairs.
|
|
"Oh! you frighten me so I don't know what I'm doing." I followed her
|
|
into the room, and she locked up the money in a bag that was in a
|
|
drawer. Turning round she saw my prick out, and as stiff as ever. It was
|
|
the recollection of what had taken place in that room on the Saturday
|
|
week previous, which had rendered me capable again. I closed on her,
|
|
kissing and inciting her, pulled her to the bed, and began feeling
|
|
her. "I don't like that done,--you know you can't,--leave me alone,--go
|
|
down,--oh! don't."
|
|
|
|
I coaxed her for a second. She got on to the bed, and opened her thighs
|
|
wide like a well-trained fuckster to help me, I inserted my penis, and
|
|
she met me with passion. I was not so rapid, the want of a spend was
|
|
not now overpowering my senses; whilst she had had two hours baudy talk,
|
|
been fucked, but cheated of her pleasure, and been left at the critical
|
|
moment, unsatisfied, with my spunk in her. She was dying for a spend,
|
|
wanting it like a woman who has been for a week unsatisfied. Her cunt
|
|
was hungry for prick, throbbing and tightening to pour out it's amatory
|
|
juices, her backside's movements became quick and fierce.
|
|
"Oh! it's big," she gasped whilst I was still sensible,
|
|
"oh!--I'm--com--coming,"--and gluing her mouth to mine she spent
|
|
copiously ere I'd well nigh began to feel the full urging of lust.
|
|
|
|
The constriction of her cunt, the delight of feeling her pleasure
|
|
increased my stiffness. "Let me wash,--do." "You won't come on the bed
|
|
again." "Yes I will, but let me wash." I clutched her like a vise. "NO
|
|
I'm coming,--you'll spend again." My prick stiffer and stiffer drove
|
|
with fury up against her womb. "Oh! don't push so hard." "Fuck my
|
|
darling,--there,--the tip's only in,--it's in your spunk, and mine
|
|
together." "Oh! you hurt." On I drove. Her backside's play began, her
|
|
lips were glued to mine, our tongues played against each other, and we
|
|
spent together with ejaculations. "Oh!--don't,--you hurt,--oh! oh!--I'm
|
|
coming." Then we lay palpitating, my prick throbbing and soaking, her
|
|
cunt squeezing and sucking.
|
|
|
|
"Let me get up,--let me wash,--pray do." I laid on her heavy, nestled my
|
|
balls up to her arse, held her as long as I could; but uncunting me she
|
|
got off the bed, and washed her cunt. I still lay playing with my prick.
|
|
"You'll have a child this day nine months my dear." "Oh! my God don't
|
|
say so,--but I believe I shall." "You are all right, I don't get them
|
|
you know." "Have you never had any children!" "None at home." "Oh!
|
|
that's nothing,--have you any out, for you are a gay man?"
|
|
|
|
I got up to piss, and saw my thick sperm in the basin. "You've washed it
|
|
all out my dear,--you are safe." She shook her head. "This is a
|
|
strange business," she remarked, "I scarce know where I am,--what I'm
|
|
about,--it's impossible,"--and she stood staring at me playing with my
|
|
cock. Then she went to the drawer and looked at the money, as if she
|
|
doubted its being there. "It's a fact," she said locking it up again,
|
|
"are you not going down?" "No." "I wish you would,--I want to be by
|
|
myself." "You want to piddle." "You are a strange man," and taking the
|
|
pot she pissed. "You'd better empty all," said I, "if your sister Jenny
|
|
comes back and sees it, she will think your husband's been doing it
|
|
to you." "She won't think or know anything if she does see," said Mrs.
|
|
------"Well I declare I'm a talking to you just like my husband,--I
|
|
don't seem to know whether I am on my head or my heels."
|
|
|
|
"Church must be over,--Jenny has not come back." "She won't be back till
|
|
nine o'clock, she is out with her young man." "Oh! not at church?" "No
|
|
I told you so because Mrs. W-----told her not to go out on Sunday;--but
|
|
you won't tell?" "Of course not my dear, I dare say Jenny and her
|
|
young man have done what we have been doing." "Lord sir, he is a
|
|
most respectable young man, and far above her,--they are going to be
|
|
married,--she is lucky, luckier than I am,--she'd knock his head off
|
|
if he laid hand upon her improperly,--that she would, she! Lor bless
|
|
you,"--and Mrs. ------ laughed with incredulity. I laughed also. "Ah!
|
|
she looks a quiet young woman." "So she is, and so is he,--his family is
|
|
well off,"--and then she told me all that Jenny had told me.
|
|
|
|
"I wish you would let me make the bed." "I'm going to have you again."
|
|
"Oh! likely." "I am." "No you're not,--please go." "No." "Then I shall
|
|
go downstairs," "Go my dear." She took me at my word, her manner had
|
|
quite changed, she had been laughing and chaffing, she had blushed,
|
|
looked at me with fun and lust in her eyes, and at last with full open
|
|
eyes one moment, followed by the half-dosed eye and languishing manner
|
|
of a randy woman. Now she was quiet, almost sullen, and if she looked at
|
|
me her eyes fell directly, the randiness had been taken out of her. "I
|
|
must rouse it up well if I am to have her again," said I, to myself as I
|
|
lay thinking about her, and the delicious sight I had seen in that room,
|
|
the sight I never dare disclose to her,--but how I longed to tell her.
|
|
|
|
Up she came looking glum. "Are you not going?" "No." "Let me make the
|
|
bed then." "Not until I have had you again." "Then it will go unmade."
|
|
"That won't matter to me." "But it will to me,--what will my sister say
|
|
if she sees the bed's been laid upon like that?" "Perhaps she will think
|
|
a man has been with you." "Well you take it mighty cool,--I do
|
|
hope you're going." "Not till I've had you." "Now you are a talking
|
|
nonsense,--you know you can't do it," said she with an incredulous look,
|
|
and the tone of a woman who knew what a prick could do and what not.
|
|
"Look at this," I uncovered my prick which was nearly at a full-stand.
|
|
She smiled when she saw it. "Nonsense I am ashamed." "My dear I'm proud,
|
|
and not ashamed,--come." "I shan't." "Then here I'll lay,"--and I fell
|
|
back, and pulled balls and cod well out of my trowsers.
|
|
|
|
I had always a lust stirring tongue, fifty women have told me so. "You'd
|
|
talk any women randy," said a gay woman once to me. Brighton Bessie
|
|
said, that in five minutes I could talk her into a lewd state. Others
|
|
have given me similar compliments. I was not specially conscious of that
|
|
power that I recollect, but instinctively used it when I had got over
|
|
fits of modesty, which sometimes prevented my uttering even veiled
|
|
allusions for a time.
|
|
|
|
Mrs. ------ like Jenny was easily flattered. What lovely limbs she had
|
|
I said; had she much hair on her cunt? my excitement had prevented me
|
|
feeling or seeing it. "Come and let me feel,--let me look." She colored
|
|
and blushed, and at every lascivious remark, "Oh! I never,--no I never
|
|
did,--oh!" Then she again went to the drawer where the money was,
|
|
looked in it as if to make sure it was there, and locked the drawer now.
|
|
"Mine's bigger than your husband's, isn't it?" "Well if I ever heard
|
|
such remarks." "You said it was big when it was up you." "Oh! you
|
|
story." "You did my dear, you said when you were just coming, 'Oh! it's
|
|
big.'" "I didn't." "_Yes you did_, you know you did,--look how stiff it
|
|
is now,--come." "I won't."
|
|
|
|
I moved off the bed, caught her, and pushed her against the side of the
|
|
bed. "Let's see your cunt." "You shan't." "How foolish,--I've fucked it
|
|
twice,--let me feel it, and you feel my cock,--let me look at it,--I'm
|
|
sure it's lovely." She got on to the bed after a little resistance, took
|
|
my pego in her fist, and I got my fingers in her crack. "A delicious
|
|
fuck you are,"--then she let me pull up her clothes and look. "My
|
|
God what a lovely cunt,--how deliciously you join your wet lips to
|
|
mine,--how you move,--I shall never forget it to the last moment of
|
|
my life,--oh! let me." "I musn't,--I would, but I'm frightened." "How
|
|
foolish,--it's not an hour since my prick was in you,--what is the harm
|
|
of doing it another time?" "Will you go then?" "Yes." Gently Mrs.------
|
|
opened her thighs. Our backsides were soon at the short wriggles. "It's
|
|
big, isn't it?" "Oh! don't," said she, "I shall spend." My remark,
|
|
tallying perhaps with something which was passing in her own mind
|
|
fetched her, and me with her instantly.
|
|
|
|
When it was over I would not go. "No I'll do it again." "That's
|
|
nonsense," said she, "you know you can't, even if you try, and you're
|
|
only making me anxious." We laid side by side talking, for she liked
|
|
the subject. I had a most buttock-stirring letch on me, and to her
|
|
astonishment in about an hour I produced another stiff one. One
|
|
persuasion is very much like another with the same woman; each time I
|
|
had less difficulty, for she liked the poking. Dusk was coming on, she
|
|
got lights, she fetched some liquor, and after the liquor I got her to
|
|
lay on the sofa (for we then had gone downstairs), and on pretence
|
|
of kissing her quim I got her to open her thighs wide, and saw in the
|
|
twilight what I had seen before, large and ugly inner-lips. For all that
|
|
I fucked her again, after frigging myself up gently to stiffness, and
|
|
fucked as if it was the last bout with a woman I was ever going to have.
|
|
Then I left at her earnest entreaties before her sister returned. I had
|
|
been there six hours.
|
|
|
|
I called on Jenny next day. She was in a way. Her sister directly she
|
|
had returned home said she must go and see her husband; and spite of
|
|
Jenny's entreaties not to leave her alone, had gone and never returned
|
|
all night. Jenny could not make out the reason, but thought that she
|
|
went away expecting to find her husband with a woman. She returned to
|
|
sleep as usual on the Monday night with Jenny, I found subsequently.
|
|
|
|
That day I went off without poking Jenny, and slunk away ashamed. I
|
|
was done up with poking her sister. Jenny seemed astonished, but said
|
|
nothing.
|
|
|
|
Afterwards I got out of Jenny cautiously all I wanted to know about her
|
|
sister. The result was, that finding on the next Sunday fortnight, Jenny
|
|
was again going out with her young man, and the sister again would be
|
|
left in the house, I went there. The woman's astonishment was great, and
|
|
I believe she was genuinely distressed at seeing me. I attacked her for
|
|
a time fruitlessly, she would not move from the street-door. "Did you
|
|
not swear when I let you do it the last time, you would never come near
|
|
me again, and never tell any one?" said she.
|
|
|
|
I could not deny it, had great difficulty with her, and thought I never
|
|
should succeed. For full an hour with her back against the wall of the
|
|
passage did she stand, refusing to move. I pulled up her clothes, felt
|
|
her cunt, knelt on the mat, got my head up her petticoats, my nose on
|
|
her motte, my mouth on her thighs and cunt, my hand round her marbly
|
|
buttocks, and held her kissing, sniffing, and groping my fingers between
|
|
her bum-cheeks, and the red orifice which I wanted to plug. In her
|
|
struggles to prevent me she once nearly fell, but she got away.
|
|
|
|
But what woman who has been fucked by a man could withstand an hour's
|
|
persistent feeling, cunt-kissing, baudy talk, and beseeching. I
|
|
conquered, and fucked her on the sofa. She did not rush out to wash her
|
|
cunt as she had done at our first meeting, there was no water near. I
|
|
had her again and again. At each assault when the pleasure overtook her,
|
|
she had the same mouth-sucking and arse-wagging. When our love-making
|
|
was over, I gave her two pounds. I had offered it her before in the
|
|
passage, but she had knocked it out of my hand. When she took it she
|
|
said, "Ah! it's an awful thing to be poor!" I shall tell of another
|
|
woman who made the same excuse to herself for getting her lust
|
|
satisfied, or yielding.
|
|
|
|
That satisfied me, and I never had her again in the house. A letch for
|
|
her came again about two months afterwards,--why? God only knows, for
|
|
then at times I was having her sister, another woman, Louisa Fisher,
|
|
and lastly Sarah Mavis. The old couple had returned, Jenny had a
|
|
fellow-servant; I could only get a poke up her with difficulty on the
|
|
Sundays, which her young man did not see her. I took her to a baudy
|
|
house for an hour or so, then she went to church, and heard the text,
|
|
because her Mistress always asked her what the text was when she went
|
|
home. It was a supposition that she went to church on a Sunday.
|
|
|
|
I knew where Jenny's sister lived, and the place where she worked. It
|
|
was now dark about six o'clock. I waylaid her on her way home on the
|
|
high-road which was well lighted and full of people. I walked with her,
|
|
but she prayed me not to do so, for her husband came partly the same
|
|
road, and sometimes met her. What would happen if he met her with a
|
|
swell walking by her side. I could not persuade her to go to a house.
|
|
No,--she was not a loose woman, though she knew what she had done,--I
|
|
had done her more harm than I had any idea of, already,--why injure
|
|
her?
|
|
|
|
The more she objected, the more I longed for her. At last under solemn
|
|
promise that I would go away after, we turned up a short street leading
|
|
into a lane by garden-grounds, and there up a fence I fucked her. Away
|
|
she went, and I never saw her afterwards to speak to, though I have
|
|
passed her without taking notice. I think that in that parting fuck I
|
|
had all the pleasure, she none.
|
|
|
|
Jenny's Mistress had been taken ill at the seaside, and kept there a
|
|
month longer than was intended. Owing to this my complete enjoyment of
|
|
Jenny's charms was prolonged, and to that I owed the second Sunday's
|
|
fucking of Jenny's sister. Old Mr. W----- came up to London twice, and
|
|
once nearly caught me in the house. I had written to say I had called
|
|
at their home, and had never found their servant out. The lady wrote to
|
|
thank me, and in writing to my mother, said how much obliged they were
|
|
for my calling; but my wife said she thought the servant (Jenny) was a
|
|
sly sort of minx, and wondered how they could be so foolish as to leave
|
|
her in the house by herself.
|
|
|
|
When they came to town I was for a time very intimate with them, which
|
|
pleased them much. Jenny used to let me out at the garden-gate, and
|
|
leave the gate unlocked. Instead of going away, I used to hide in the
|
|
shrubs, Jenny would come back, close the street-door ajar, and a few
|
|
minutes afterwards come out again very quietly. Then up against an
|
|
ivy covered wall we poked, and she went indoors with wetted privates.
|
|
Sometimes after waiting I had to go away unsatisfied, she not appearing,
|
|
sometimes rain prevented us,--all of which was very annoying.
|
|
|
|
Fucking her in fact became a matter of anxiety. She had to dodge her
|
|
fellow-servant as well as her Master and Mistress, and we copulated in
|
|
fear and trembling. In the midst of the work she has left me because
|
|
of some scare; once she went off saying, "Oh! there is Missus' bell
|
|
ringing,--oh!"--and uncunting me, off she ran. One night we went on
|
|
to the flower-beds between two large trees, and the next day the old
|
|
gentleman remarked that some man had got over the wall into his garden,
|
|
and he should tell the police. If there was moonlight we were done. One
|
|
night latish she was sent to fetch some butter. I waited, and we fucked
|
|
up against some palings. Unfortunately the butter was let fall out of
|
|
the basket on to the gravel. We went back for more, but the shop was
|
|
then shut, so she had to take home the dirty butter, and make the best
|
|
story she could about it. On Sundays when at the baudy house, the girl
|
|
was awfully frightened lest she should be seen, and we used to walk
|
|
there on opposite sides of the way, I going in first. Then we went away
|
|
with similar precautions,--but I began to get very tired of this, having
|
|
indeed had enough of her.
|
|
|
|
Jenny had lost all fear of being in the family way, and poked freely,
|
|
but she never ceased bewailing her poor young man; though at length my
|
|
tool had become to her a thing to be longed for. The young man had money
|
|
left him, quitted his place, and Jenny left to be married. I heard of
|
|
them for many years afterwards, they opened a shop, then a larger one,
|
|
and so on, till at length he became (I found this quite recently) the
|
|
mayor of the town,--if not it was some one of the same name, and in the
|
|
same line of business. He was much respected, and Jenny his wife was
|
|
equally so. They had no children up to the time when the old lady her
|
|
former Mistress, died; and for aught I know they may still be living in
|
|
the town of------.
|
|
|
|
One night some time before she left her situation, we spoke of her
|
|
sister. "She is in the family way again," said she, "and in such a way
|
|
about it, and so is he,--the night she left me to sleep by myself, she
|
|
went home to her husband, because she suspected there was another
|
|
woman there;--well that night she declared he did not let his stuff go
|
|
outside,--he says he did,--they quarrel, he says it's her fault, and she
|
|
says it's his."
|
|
|
|
Then it seemed evident to me that after the heavy fucking I gave her
|
|
that day, that she feared being in the family way; so went home, and
|
|
incited her man to fuck her, and enable her to say that the child was
|
|
his, and of course it might have been, though it might have been mine.
|
|
|
|
|
|
FINIS VOLUME THREE
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
End of Project Gutenberg's My Secret Life, Volumes I. to III., by Anonymous
|
|
|
|
*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK MY SECRET LIFE, VOLUMES I. TO III. ***
|
|
|
|
***** This file should be named 30360.txt or 30360.zip *****
|
|
This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
|
|
http://www.gutenberg.org/3/0/3/6/30360/
|
|
|
|
Produced by An Anonymous Volunteer (This file was produced
|
|
from scans of public domain material produced by Google
|
|
Books)
|
|
|
|
|
|
Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
|
|
will be renamed.
|
|
|
|
Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
|
|
one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
|
|
(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
|
|
permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
|
|
set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
|
|
copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
|
|
protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
|
|
Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
|
|
charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
|
|
do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
|
|
rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
|
|
such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
|
|
research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
|
|
practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
|
|
subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
|
|
redistribution.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
|
|
|
|
THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
|
|
PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
|
|
|
|
To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
|
|
distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
|
|
(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
|
|
Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
|
|
Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
|
|
http://gutenberg.org/license).
|
|
|
|
|
|
Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
|
|
electronic works
|
|
|
|
1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
|
|
electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
|
|
and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
|
|
(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
|
|
the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
|
|
all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
|
|
If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
|
|
Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
|
|
terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
|
|
entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
|
|
|
|
1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
|
|
used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
|
|
agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
|
|
things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
|
|
even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
|
|
paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
|
|
Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
|
|
and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
|
|
works. See paragraph 1.E below.
|
|
|
|
1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
|
|
or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
|
|
Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
|
|
collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
|
|
individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
|
|
located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
|
|
copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
|
|
works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
|
|
are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
|
|
Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
|
|
freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
|
|
this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
|
|
the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
|
|
keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
|
|
Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
|
|
|
|
1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
|
|
what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
|
|
a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
|
|
the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
|
|
before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
|
|
creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
|
|
Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
|
|
the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
|
|
States.
|
|
|
|
1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
|
|
|
|
1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
|
|
access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
|
|
whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
|
|
phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
|
|
Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
|
|
copied or distributed:
|
|
|
|
This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
|
|
almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
|
|
re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
|
|
with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
|
|
|
|
1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
|
|
from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
|
|
posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
|
|
and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
|
|
or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
|
|
with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
|
|
work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
|
|
through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
|
|
Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
|
|
1.E.9.
|
|
|
|
1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
|
|
with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
|
|
must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
|
|
terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
|
|
to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
|
|
permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
|
|
|
|
1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
|
|
License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
|
|
work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
|
|
|
|
1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
|
|
electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
|
|
prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
|
|
active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
|
|
Gutenberg-tm License.
|
|
|
|
1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
|
|
compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
|
|
word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
|
|
distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
|
|
"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
|
|
posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
|
|
you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
|
|
copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
|
|
request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
|
|
form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
|
|
License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
|
|
|
|
1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
|
|
performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
|
|
unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
|
|
|
|
1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
|
|
access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
|
|
that
|
|
|
|
- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
|
|
the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
|
|
you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
|
|
owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
|
|
has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
|
|
Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
|
|
must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
|
|
prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
|
|
returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
|
|
sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
|
|
address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
|
|
the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
|
|
|
|
- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
|
|
you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
|
|
does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
|
|
License. You must require such a user to return or
|
|
destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
|
|
and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
|
|
Project Gutenberg-tm works.
|
|
|
|
- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
|
|
money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
|
|
electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
|
|
of receipt of the work.
|
|
|
|
- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
|
|
distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
|
|
|
|
1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
|
|
electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
|
|
forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
|
|
both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
|
|
Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
|
|
Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
|
|
|
|
1.F.
|
|
|
|
1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
|
|
effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
|
|
public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
|
|
collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
|
|
works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
|
|
"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
|
|
corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
|
|
property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
|
|
computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
|
|
your equipment.
|
|
|
|
1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
|
|
of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
|
|
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
|
|
Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
|
|
Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
|
|
liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
|
|
fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
|
|
LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
|
|
PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
|
|
TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
|
|
LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
|
|
INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
|
|
DAMAGE.
|
|
|
|
1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
|
|
defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
|
|
receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
|
|
written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
|
|
received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
|
|
your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
|
|
the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
|
|
refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
|
|
providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
|
|
receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
|
|
is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
|
|
opportunities to fix the problem.
|
|
|
|
1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
|
|
in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
|
|
WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
|
|
WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
|
|
|
|
1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
|
|
warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
|
|
If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
|
|
law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
|
|
interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
|
|
the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
|
|
provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
|
|
|
|
1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
|
|
trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
|
|
providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
|
|
with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
|
|
promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
|
|
harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
|
|
that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
|
|
or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
|
|
work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
|
|
Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
|
|
|
|
Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
|
|
electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
|
|
including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
|
|
because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
|
|
people in all walks of life.
|
|
|
|
Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
|
|
assistance they need, are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
|
|
goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
|
|
remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
|
|
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
|
|
and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
|
|
To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
|
|
and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
|
|
and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
|
|
Foundation
|
|
|
|
The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
|
|
501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
|
|
state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
|
|
Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
|
|
number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
|
|
http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
|
|
Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
|
|
permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
|
|
|
|
The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
|
|
Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
|
|
throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
|
|
809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
|
|
business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
|
|
information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
|
|
page at http://pglaf.org
|
|
|
|
For additional contact information:
|
|
Dr. Gregory B. Newby
|
|
Chief Executive and Director
|
|
gbnewby@pglaf.org
|
|
|
|
|
|
Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
|
|
Literary Archive Foundation
|
|
|
|
Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
|
|
spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
|
|
increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
|
|
freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
|
|
array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
|
|
($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
|
|
status with the IRS.
|
|
|
|
The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
|
|
charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
|
|
States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
|
|
considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
|
|
with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
|
|
where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
|
|
SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
|
|
particular state visit http://pglaf.org
|
|
|
|
While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
|
|
have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
|
|
against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
|
|
approach us with offers to donate.
|
|
|
|
International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
|
|
any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
|
|
outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
|
|
|
|
Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
|
|
methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
|
|
ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
|
|
To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
|
|
|
|
|
|
Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
|
|
works.
|
|
|
|
Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
|
|
concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
|
|
with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
|
|
Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
|
|
editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
|
|
unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
|
|
keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
|
|
|
|
http://www.gutenberg.org
|
|
|
|
This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
|
|
including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
|
|
Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
|
|
subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
|